Quotations.ch
  Directory : Bleak House
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • The Project Gutenberg eBook, Bleak House, by Charles Dickens
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • Title: Bleak House
  • Author: Charles Dickens
  • Release Date: August 1, 1997 [eBook #1023]
  • Most recently updated: February 21, 2012
  • Language: English
  • Character set encoding: ISO-646-US (US-ASCII)
  • ***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK BLEAK HOUSE***
  • E-text prepared by Donald Lainson, Toronto, Canada,
  • and revised by Thomas Berger and Joseph E. Loewenstein, M.D.
  • BLEAK HOUSE
  • by
  • CHARLES DICKENS
  • CONTENTS
  • Preface
  • I. In Chancery
  • II. In Fashion
  • III. A Progress
  • IV. Telescopic Philanthropy
  • V. A Morning Adventure
  • VI. Quite at Home
  • VII. The Ghost's Walk
  • VIII. Covering a Multitude of Sins
  • IX. Signs and Tokens
  • X. The Law-Writer
  • XI. Our Dear Brother
  • XII. On the Watch
  • XIII. Esther's Narrative
  • XIV. Deportment
  • XV. Bell Yard
  • XVI. Tom-all-Alone's
  • XVII. Esther's Narrative
  • XVIII. Lady Dedlock
  • XIX. Moving On
  • XX. A New Lodger
  • XXI. The Smallweed Family
  • XXII. Mr. Bucket
  • XXIII. Esther's Narrative
  • XXIV. An Appeal Case
  • XXV. Mrs. Snagsby Sees It All
  • XXVI. Sharpshooters
  • XXVII. More Old Soldiers Than One
  • XXVIII. The Ironmaster
  • XXIX. The Young Man
  • XXX. Esther's Narrative
  • XXXI. Nurse and Patient
  • XXXII. The Appointed Time
  • XXXIII. Interlopers
  • XXXIV. A Turn of the Screw
  • XXXV. Esther's Narrative
  • XXXVI. Chesney Wold
  • XXXVII. Jarndyce and Jarndyce
  • XXXVIII. A Struggle
  • XXXIX. Attorney and Client
  • XL. National and Domestic
  • XLI. In Mr. Tulkinghorn's Room
  • XLII. In Mr. Tulkinghorn's Chambers
  • XLIII. Esther's Narrative
  • XLIV. The Letter and the Answer
  • XLV. In Trust
  • XLVI. Stop Him!
  • XLVII. Jo's Will
  • XLVIII. Closing In
  • XLIX. Dutiful Friendship
  • L. Esther's Narrative
  • LI. Enlightened
  • LII. Obstinacy
  • LIII. The Track
  • LIV. Springing a Mine
  • LV. Flight
  • LVI. Pursuit
  • LVII. Esther's Narrative
  • LVIII. A Wintry Day and Night
  • LIX. Esther's Narrative
  • LX. Perspective
  • LXI. A Discovery
  • LXII. Another Discovery
  • LXIII. Steel and Iron
  • LXIV. Esther's Narrative
  • LXV. Beginning the World
  • LXVI. Down in Lincolnshire
  • LXVII. The Close of Esther's Narrative
  • PREFACE
  • A Chancery judge once had the kindness to inform me, as one of a
  • company of some hundred and fifty men and women not labouring under
  • any suspicions of lunacy, that the Court of Chancery, though the
  • shining subject of much popular prejudice (at which point I thought
  • the judge's eye had a cast in my direction), was almost immaculate.
  • There had been, he admitted, a trivial blemish or so in its rate of
  • progress, but this was exaggerated and had been entirely owing to the
  • "parsimony of the public," which guilty public, it appeared, had been
  • until lately bent in the most determined manner on by no means
  • enlarging the number of Chancery judges appointed--I believe by
  • Richard the Second, but any other king will do as well.
  • This seemed to me too profound a joke to be inserted in the body of
  • this book or I should have restored it to Conversation Kenge or to
  • Mr. Vholes, with one or other of whom I think it must have
  • originated. In such mouths I might have coupled it with an apt
  • quotation from one of Shakespeare's sonnets:
  • "My nature is subdued
  • To what it works in, like the dyer's hand:
  • Pity me, then, and wish I were renewed!"
  • But as it is wholesome that the parsimonious public should know what
  • has been doing, and still is doing, in this connexion, I mention here
  • that everything set forth in these pages concerning the Court of
  • Chancery is substantially true, and within the truth. The case of
  • Gridley is in no essential altered from one of actual occurrence,
  • made public by a disinterested person who was professionally
  • acquainted with the whole of the monstrous wrong from beginning to
  • end. At the present moment (August, 1853) there is a suit before the
  • court which was commenced nearly twenty years ago, in which from
  • thirty to forty counsel have been known to appear at one time, in
  • which costs have been incurred to the amount of seventy thousand
  • pounds, which is A FRIENDLY SUIT, and which is (I am assured) no
  • nearer to its termination now than when it was begun. There is
  • another well-known suit in Chancery, not yet decided, which was
  • commenced before the close of the last century and in which more than
  • double the amount of seventy thousand pounds has been swallowed up in
  • costs. If I wanted other authorities for Jarndyce and Jarndyce, I
  • could rain them on these pages, to the shame of--a parsimonious
  • public.
  • There is only one other point on which I offer a word of remark. The
  • possibility of what is called spontaneous combustion has been denied
  • since the death of Mr. Krook; and my good friend Mr. Lewes (quite
  • mistaken, as he soon found, in supposing the thing to have been
  • abandoned by all authorities) published some ingenious letters to me
  • at the time when that event was chronicled, arguing that spontaneous
  • combustion could not possibly be. I have no need to observe that I do
  • not wilfully or negligently mislead my readers and that before I
  • wrote that description I took pains to investigate the subject. There
  • are about thirty cases on record, of which the most famous, that of
  • the Countess Cornelia de Baudi Cesenate, was minutely investigated
  • and described by Giuseppe Bianchini, a prebendary of Verona,
  • otherwise distinguished in letters, who published an account of it at
  • Verona in 1731, which he afterwards republished at Rome. The
  • appearances, beyond all rational doubt, observed in that case are the
  • appearances observed in Mr. Krook's case. The next most famous
  • instance happened at Rheims six years earlier, and the historian in
  • that case is Le Cat, one of the most renowned surgeons produced by
  • France. The subject was a woman, whose husband was ignorantly
  • convicted of having murdered her; but on solemn appeal to a higher
  • court, he was acquitted because it was shown upon the evidence that
  • she had died the death of which this name of spontaneous combustion
  • is given. I do not think it necessary to add to these notable facts,
  • and that general reference to the authorities which will be found at
  • page 30, vol. ii.,* the recorded opinions and experiences of
  • distinguished medical professors, French, English, and Scotch, in
  • more modern days, contenting myself with observing that I shall not
  • abandon the facts until there shall have been a considerable
  • spontaneous combustion of the testimony on which human occurrences
  • are usually received.**
  • In Bleak House I have purposely dwelt upon the romantic side of
  • familiar things.
  • 1853
  • *Transcriber's note. This referred to a specific page in
  • the printed book. In this Project Gutenberg edition the
  • pertinent information is in Chapter XXX, paragraph 90.
  • ** Another case, very clearly described by a dentist,
  • occurred at the town of Columbus, in the United States
  • of America, quite recently. The subject was a German who
  • kept a liquor-shop and was an inveterate drunkard.
  • CHAPTER I
  • In Chancery
  • London. Michaelmas term lately over, and the Lord Chancellor sitting
  • in Lincoln's Inn Hall. Implacable November weather. As much mud in
  • the streets as if the waters had but newly retired from the face of
  • the earth, and it would not be wonderful to meet a Megalosaurus,
  • forty feet long or so, waddling like an elephantine lizard up Holborn
  • Hill. Smoke lowering down from chimney-pots, making a soft black
  • drizzle, with flakes of soot in it as big as full-grown
  • snowflakes--gone into mourning, one might imagine, for the death of
  • the sun. Dogs, undistinguishable in mire. Horses, scarcely better;
  • splashed to their very blinkers. Foot passengers, jostling one
  • another's umbrellas in a general infection of ill temper, and losing
  • their foot-hold at street-corners, where tens of thousands of other
  • foot passengers have been slipping and sliding since the day broke
  • (if this day ever broke), adding new deposits to the crust upon crust
  • of mud, sticking at those points tenaciously to the pavement, and
  • accumulating at compound interest.
  • Fog everywhere. Fog up the river, where it flows among green aits and
  • meadows; fog down the river, where it rolls defiled among the tiers
  • of shipping and the waterside pollutions of a great (and dirty) city.
  • Fog on the Essex marshes, fog on the Kentish heights. Fog creeping
  • into the cabooses of collier-brigs; fog lying out on the yards and
  • hovering in the rigging of great ships; fog drooping on the gunwales
  • of barges and small boats. Fog in the eyes and throats of ancient
  • Greenwich pensioners, wheezing by the firesides of their wards; fog
  • in the stem and bowl of the afternoon pipe of the wrathful skipper,
  • down in his close cabin; fog cruelly pinching the toes and fingers of
  • his shivering little 'prentice boy on deck. Chance people on the
  • bridges peeping over the parapets into a nether sky of fog, with fog
  • all round them, as if they were up in a balloon and hanging in the
  • misty clouds.
  • Gas looming through the fog in divers places in the streets, much as
  • the sun may, from the spongey fields, be seen to loom by husbandman
  • and ploughboy. Most of the shops lighted two hours before their
  • time--as the gas seems to know, for it has a haggard and unwilling
  • look.
  • The raw afternoon is rawest, and the dense fog is densest, and the
  • muddy streets are muddiest near that leaden-headed old obstruction,
  • appropriate ornament for the threshold of a leaden-headed old
  • corporation, Temple Bar. And hard by Temple Bar, in Lincoln's Inn
  • Hall, at the very heart of the fog, sits the Lord High Chancellor in
  • his High Court of Chancery.
  • Never can there come fog too thick, never can there come mud and mire
  • too deep, to assort with the groping and floundering condition which
  • this High Court of Chancery, most pestilent of hoary sinners, holds
  • this day in the sight of heaven and earth.
  • On such an afternoon, if ever, the Lord High Chancellor ought to be
  • sitting here--as here he is--with a foggy glory round his head,
  • softly fenced in with crimson cloth and curtains, addressed by a
  • large advocate with great whiskers, a little voice, and an
  • interminable brief, and outwardly directing his contemplation to the
  • lantern in the roof, where he can see nothing but fog. On such an
  • afternoon some score of members of the High Court of Chancery bar
  • ought to be--as here they are--mistily engaged in one of the ten
  • thousand stages of an endless cause, tripping one another up on
  • slippery precedents, groping knee-deep in technicalities, running
  • their goat-hair and horsehair warded heads against walls of words and
  • making a pretence of equity with serious faces, as players might. On
  • such an afternoon the various solicitors in the cause, some two or
  • three of whom have inherited it from their fathers, who made a
  • fortune by it, ought to be--as are they not?--ranged in a line, in a
  • long matted well (but you might look in vain for truth at the bottom
  • of it) between the registrar's red table and the silk gowns, with
  • bills, cross-bills, answers, rejoinders, injunctions, affidavits,
  • issues, references to masters, masters' reports, mountains of costly
  • nonsense, piled before them. Well may the court be dim, with wasting
  • candles here and there; well may the fog hang heavy in it, as if it
  • would never get out; well may the stained-glass windows lose their
  • colour and admit no light of day into the place; well may the
  • uninitiated from the streets, who peep in through the glass panes in
  • the door, be deterred from entrance by its owlish aspect and by the
  • drawl, languidly echoing to the roof from the padded dais where the
  • Lord High Chancellor looks into the lantern that has no light in it
  • and where the attendant wigs are all stuck in a fog-bank! This is the
  • Court of Chancery, which has its decaying houses and its blighted
  • lands in every shire, which has its worn-out lunatic in every
  • madhouse and its dead in every churchyard, which has its ruined
  • suitor with his slipshod heels and threadbare dress borrowing and
  • begging through the round of every man's acquaintance, which gives to
  • monied might the means abundantly of wearying out the right, which so
  • exhausts finances, patience, courage, hope, so overthrows the brain
  • and breaks the heart, that there is not an honourable man among its
  • practitioners who would not give--who does not often give--the
  • warning, "Suffer any wrong that can be done you rather than come
  • here!"
  • Who happen to be in the Lord Chancellor's court this murky afternoon
  • besides the Lord Chancellor, the counsel in the cause, two or three
  • counsel who are never in any cause, and the well of solicitors before
  • mentioned? There is the registrar below the judge, in wig and gown;
  • and there are two or three maces, or petty-bags, or privy purses, or
  • whatever they may be, in legal court suits. These are all yawning,
  • for no crumb of amusement ever falls from Jarndyce and Jarndyce (the
  • cause in hand), which was squeezed dry years upon years ago. The
  • short-hand writers, the reporters of the court, and the reporters of
  • the newspapers invariably decamp with the rest of the regulars when
  • Jarndyce and Jarndyce comes on. Their places are a blank. Standing on
  • a seat at the side of the hall, the better to peer into the curtained
  • sanctuary, is a little mad old woman in a squeezed bonnet who is
  • always in court, from its sitting to its rising, and always expecting
  • some incomprehensible judgment to be given in her favour. Some say
  • she really is, or was, a party to a suit, but no one knows for
  • certain because no one cares. She carries some small litter in a
  • reticule which she calls her documents, principally consisting of
  • paper matches and dry lavender. A sallow prisoner has come up, in
  • custody, for the half-dozenth time to make a personal application "to
  • purge himself of his contempt," which, being a solitary surviving
  • executor who has fallen into a state of conglomeration about accounts
  • of which it is not pretended that he had ever any knowledge, he is
  • not at all likely ever to do. In the meantime his prospects in life
  • are ended. Another ruined suitor, who periodically appears from
  • Shropshire and breaks out into efforts to address the Chancellor at
  • the close of the day's business and who can by no means be made to
  • understand that the Chancellor is legally ignorant of his existence
  • after making it desolate for a quarter of a century, plants himself
  • in a good place and keeps an eye on the judge, ready to call out "My
  • Lord!" in a voice of sonorous complaint on the instant of his rising.
  • A few lawyers' clerks and others who know this suitor by sight linger
  • on the chance of his furnishing some fun and enlivening the dismal
  • weather a little.
  • Jarndyce and Jarndyce drones on. This scarecrow of a suit has, in
  • course of time, become so complicated that no man alive knows what it
  • means. The parties to it understand it least, but it has been
  • observed that no two Chancery lawyers can talk about it for five
  • minutes without coming to a total disagreement as to all the
  • premises. Innumerable children have been born into the cause;
  • innumerable young people have married into it; innumerable old people
  • have died out of it. Scores of persons have deliriously found
  • themselves made parties in Jarndyce and Jarndyce without knowing how
  • or why; whole families have inherited legendary hatreds with the
  • suit. The little plaintiff or defendant who was promised a new
  • rocking-horse when Jarndyce and Jarndyce should be settled has grown
  • up, possessed himself of a real horse, and trotted away into the
  • other world. Fair wards of court have faded into mothers and
  • grandmothers; a long procession of Chancellors has come in and gone
  • out; the legion of bills in the suit have been transformed into mere
  • bills of mortality; there are not three Jarndyces left upon the earth
  • perhaps since old Tom Jarndyce in despair blew his brains out at a
  • coffee-house in Chancery Lane; but Jarndyce and Jarndyce still drags
  • its dreary length before the court, perennially hopeless.
  • Jarndyce and Jarndyce has passed into a joke. That is the only good
  • that has ever come of it. It has been death to many, but it is a joke
  • in the profession. Every master in Chancery has had a reference out
  • of it. Every Chancellor was "in it," for somebody or other, when he
  • was counsel at the bar. Good things have been said about it by
  • blue-nosed, bulbous-shoed old benchers in select port-wine committee
  • after dinner in hall. Articled clerks have been in the habit of
  • fleshing their legal wit upon it. The last Lord Chancellor handled it
  • neatly, when, correcting Mr. Blowers, the eminent silk gown who said
  • that such a thing might happen when the sky rained potatoes, he
  • observed, "or when we get through Jarndyce and Jarndyce, Mr.
  • Blowers"--a pleasantry that particularly tickled the maces, bags, and
  • purses.
  • How many people out of the suit Jarndyce and Jarndyce has stretched
  • forth its unwholesome hand to spoil and corrupt would be a very wide
  • question. From the master upon whose impaling files reams of dusty
  • warrants in Jarndyce and Jarndyce have grimly writhed into many
  • shapes, down to the copying-clerk in the Six Clerks' Office who has
  • copied his tens of thousands of Chancery folio-pages under that
  • eternal heading, no man's nature has been made better by it. In
  • trickery, evasion, procrastination, spoliation, botheration, under
  • false pretences of all sorts, there are influences that can never
  • come to good. The very solicitors' boys who have kept the wretched
  • suitors at bay, by protesting time out of mind that Mr. Chizzle,
  • Mizzle, or otherwise was particularly engaged and had appointments
  • until dinner, may have got an extra moral twist and shuffle into
  • themselves out of Jarndyce and Jarndyce. The receiver in the cause
  • has acquired a goodly sum of money by it but has acquired too a
  • distrust of his own mother and a contempt for his own kind. Chizzle,
  • Mizzle, and otherwise have lapsed into a habit of vaguely promising
  • themselves that they will look into that outstanding little matter
  • and see what can be done for Drizzle--who was not well used--when
  • Jarndyce and Jarndyce shall be got out of the office. Shirking and
  • sharking in all their many varieties have been sown broadcast by the
  • ill-fated cause; and even those who have contemplated its history
  • from the outermost circle of such evil have been insensibly tempted
  • into a loose way of letting bad things alone to take their own bad
  • course, and a loose belief that if the world go wrong it was in some
  • off-hand manner never meant to go right.
  • Thus, in the midst of the mud and at the heart of the fog, sits the
  • Lord High Chancellor in his High Court of Chancery.
  • "Mr. Tangle," says the Lord High Chancellor, latterly something
  • restless under the eloquence of that learned gentleman.
  • "Mlud," says Mr. Tangle. Mr. Tangle knows more of Jarndyce and
  • Jarndyce than anybody. He is famous for it--supposed never to have
  • read anything else since he left school.
  • "Have you nearly concluded your argument?"
  • "Mlud, no--variety of points--feel it my duty tsubmit--ludship," is
  • the reply that slides out of Mr. Tangle.
  • "Several members of the bar are still to be heard, I believe?" says
  • the Chancellor with a slight smile.
  • Eighteen of Mr. Tangle's learned friends, each armed with a little
  • summary of eighteen hundred sheets, bob up like eighteen hammers in a
  • pianoforte, make eighteen bows, and drop into their eighteen places
  • of obscurity.
  • "We will proceed with the hearing on Wednesday fortnight," says the
  • Chancellor. For the question at issue is only a question of costs, a
  • mere bud on the forest tree of the parent suit, and really will come
  • to a settlement one of these days.
  • The Chancellor rises; the bar rises; the prisoner is brought forward
  • in a hurry; the man from Shropshire cries, "My lord!" Maces, bags,
  • and purses indignantly proclaim silence and frown at the man from
  • Shropshire.
  • "In reference," proceeds the Chancellor, still on Jarndyce and
  • Jarndyce, "to the young girl--"
  • "Begludship's pardon--boy," says Mr. Tangle prematurely. "In
  • reference," proceeds the Chancellor with extra distinctness, "to the
  • young girl and boy, the two young people"--Mr. Tangle crushed--"whom
  • I directed to be in attendance to-day and who are now in my private
  • room, I will see them and satisfy myself as to the expediency of
  • making the order for their residing with their uncle."
  • Mr. Tangle on his legs again. "Begludship's pardon--dead."
  • "With their"--Chancellor looking through his double eye-glass at the
  • papers on his desk--"grandfather."
  • "Begludship's pardon--victim of rash action--brains."
  • Suddenly a very little counsel with a terrific bass voice arises,
  • fully inflated, in the back settlements of the fog, and says, "Will
  • your lordship allow me? I appear for him. He is a cousin, several
  • times removed. I am not at the moment prepared to inform the court in
  • what exact remove he is a cousin, but he IS a cousin."
  • Leaving this address (delivered like a sepulchral message) ringing in
  • the rafters of the roof, the very little counsel drops, and the fog
  • knows him no more. Everybody looks for him. Nobody can see him.
  • "I will speak with both the young people," says the Chancellor anew,
  • "and satisfy myself on the subject of their residing with their
  • cousin. I will mention the matter to-morrow morning when I take my
  • seat."
  • The Chancellor is about to bow to the bar when the prisoner is
  • presented. Nothing can possibly come of the prisoner's conglomeration
  • but his being sent back to prison, which is soon done. The man from
  • Shropshire ventures another remonstrative "My lord!" but the
  • Chancellor, being aware of him, has dexterously vanished. Everybody
  • else quickly vanishes too. A battery of blue bags is loaded with
  • heavy charges of papers and carried off by clerks; the little mad old
  • woman marches off with her documents; the empty court is locked up.
  • If all the injustice it has committed and all the misery it has
  • caused could only be locked up with it, and the whole burnt away in a
  • great funeral pyre--why so much the better for other parties than the
  • parties in Jarndyce and Jarndyce!
  • CHAPTER II
  • In Fashion
  • It is but a glimpse of the world of fashion that we want on this same
  • miry afternoon. It is not so unlike the Court of Chancery but that we
  • may pass from the one scene to the other, as the crow flies. Both the
  • world of fashion and the Court of Chancery are things of precedent
  • and usage: oversleeping Rip Van Winkles who have played at strange
  • games through a deal of thundery weather; sleeping beauties whom the
  • knight will wake one day, when all the stopped spits in the kitchen
  • shall begin to turn prodigiously!
  • It is not a large world. Relatively even to this world of ours, which
  • has its limits too (as your Highness shall find when you have made
  • the tour of it and are come to the brink of the void beyond), it is a
  • very little speck. There is much good in it; there are many good and
  • true people in it; it has its appointed place. But the evil of it is
  • that it is a world wrapped up in too much jeweller's cotton and fine
  • wool, and cannot hear the rushing of the larger worlds, and cannot
  • see them as they circle round the sun. It is a deadened world, and
  • its growth is sometimes unhealthy for want of air.
  • My Lady Dedlock has returned to her house in town for a few days
  • previous to her departure for Paris, where her ladyship intends to
  • stay some weeks, after which her movements are uncertain. The
  • fashionable intelligence says so for the comfort of the Parisians,
  • and it knows all fashionable things. To know things otherwise were to
  • be unfashionable. My Lady Dedlock has been down at what she calls, in
  • familiar conversation, her "place" in Lincolnshire. The waters are
  • out in Lincolnshire. An arch of the bridge in the park has been
  • sapped and sopped away. The adjacent low-lying ground for half a mile
  • in breadth is a stagnant river with melancholy trees for islands in
  • it and a surface punctured all over, all day long, with falling rain.
  • My Lady Dedlock's place has been extremely dreary. The weather for
  • many a day and night has been so wet that the trees seem wet through,
  • and the soft loppings and prunings of the woodman's axe can make no
  • crash or crackle as they fall. The deer, looking soaked, leave
  • quagmires where they pass. The shot of a rifle loses its sharpness in
  • the moist air, and its smoke moves in a tardy little cloud towards
  • the green rise, coppice-topped, that makes a background for the
  • falling rain. The view from my Lady Dedlock's own windows is
  • alternately a lead-coloured view and a view in Indian ink. The vases
  • on the stone terrace in the foreground catch the rain all day; and
  • the heavy drops fall--drip, drip, drip--upon the broad flagged
  • pavement, called from old time the Ghost's Walk, all night. On
  • Sundays the little church in the park is mouldy; the oaken pulpit
  • breaks out into a cold sweat; and there is a general smell and taste
  • as of the ancient Dedlocks in their graves. My Lady Dedlock (who is
  • childless), looking out in the early twilight from her boudoir at a
  • keeper's lodge and seeing the light of a fire upon the latticed
  • panes, and smoke rising from the chimney, and a child, chased by a
  • woman, running out into the rain to meet the shining figure of a
  • wrapped-up man coming through the gate, has been put quite out of
  • temper. My Lady Dedlock says she has been "bored to death."
  • Therefore my Lady Dedlock has come away from the place in
  • Lincolnshire and has left it to the rain, and the crows, and the
  • rabbits, and the deer, and the partridges and pheasants. The pictures
  • of the Dedlocks past and gone have seemed to vanish into the damp
  • walls in mere lowness of spirits, as the housekeeper has passed along
  • the old rooms shutting up the shutters. And when they will next come
  • forth again, the fashionable intelligence--which, like the fiend, is
  • omniscient of the past and present, but not the future--cannot yet
  • undertake to say.
  • Sir Leicester Dedlock is only a baronet, but there is no mightier
  • baronet than he. His family is as old as the hills, and infinitely
  • more respectable. He has a general opinion that the world might get
  • on without hills but would be done up without Dedlocks. He would on
  • the whole admit nature to be a good idea (a little low, perhaps, when
  • not enclosed with a park-fence), but an idea dependent for its
  • execution on your great county families. He is a gentleman of strict
  • conscience, disdainful of all littleness and meanness and ready on
  • the shortest notice to die any death you may please to mention rather
  • than give occasion for the least impeachment of his integrity. He is
  • an honourable, obstinate, truthful, high-spirited, intensely
  • prejudiced, perfectly unreasonable man.
  • Sir Leicester is twenty years, full measure, older than my Lady. He
  • will never see sixty-five again, nor perhaps sixty-six, nor yet
  • sixty-seven. He has a twist of the gout now and then and walks a
  • little stiffly. He is of a worthy presence, with his light-grey hair
  • and whiskers, his fine shirt-frill, his pure-white waistcoat, and his
  • blue coat with bright buttons always buttoned. He is ceremonious,
  • stately, most polite on every occasion to my Lady, and holds her
  • personal attractions in the highest estimation. His gallantry to my
  • Lady, which has never changed since he courted her, is the one little
  • touch of romantic fancy in him.
  • Indeed, he married her for love. A whisper still goes about that she
  • had not even family; howbeit, Sir Leicester had so much family that
  • perhaps he had enough and could dispense with any more. But she had
  • beauty, pride, ambition, insolent resolve, and sense enough to
  • portion out a legion of fine ladies. Wealth and station, added to
  • these, soon floated her upward, and for years now my Lady Dedlock has
  • been at the centre of the fashionable intelligence and at the top of
  • the fashionable tree.
  • How Alexander wept when he had no more worlds to conquer, everybody
  • knows--or has some reason to know by this time, the matter having
  • been rather frequently mentioned. My Lady Dedlock, having conquered
  • HER world, fell not into the melting, but rather into the freezing,
  • mood. An exhausted composure, a worn-out placidity, an equanimity of
  • fatigue not to be ruffled by interest or satisfaction, are the
  • trophies of her victory. She is perfectly well-bred. If she could be
  • translated to heaven to-morrow, she might be expected to ascend
  • without any rapture.
  • She has beauty still, and if it be not in its heyday, it is not yet
  • in its autumn. She has a fine face--originally of a character that
  • would be rather called very pretty than handsome, but improved into
  • classicality by the acquired expression of her fashionable state. Her
  • figure is elegant and has the effect of being tall. Not that she is
  • so, but that "the most is made," as the Honourable Bob Stables has
  • frequently asserted upon oath, "of all her points." The same
  • authority observes that she is perfectly got up and remarks in
  • commendation of her hair especially that she is the best-groomed
  • woman in the whole stud.
  • With all her perfections on her head, my Lady Dedlock has come up
  • from her place in Lincolnshire (hotly pursued by the fashionable
  • intelligence) to pass a few days at her house in town previous to her
  • departure for Paris, where her ladyship intends to stay some weeks,
  • after which her movements are uncertain. And at her house in town,
  • upon this muddy, murky afternoon, presents himself an old-fashioned
  • old gentleman, attorney-at-law and eke solicitor of the High Court of
  • Chancery, who has the honour of acting as legal adviser of the
  • Dedlocks and has as many cast-iron boxes in his office with that name
  • outside as if the present baronet were the coin of the conjuror's
  • trick and were constantly being juggled through the whole set. Across
  • the hall, and up the stairs, and along the passages, and through the
  • rooms, which are very brilliant in the season and very dismal out of
  • it--fairy-land to visit, but a desert to live in--the old gentleman
  • is conducted by a Mercury in powder to my Lady's presence.
  • The old gentleman is rusty to look at, but is reputed to have made
  • good thrift out of aristocratic marriage settlements and aristocratic
  • wills, and to be very rich. He is surrounded by a mysterious halo of
  • family confidences, of which he is known to be the silent depository.
  • There are noble mausoleums rooted for centuries in retired glades of
  • parks among the growing timber and the fern, which perhaps hold fewer
  • noble secrets than walk abroad among men, shut up in the breast of
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn. He is of what is called the old school--a phrase
  • generally meaning any school that seems never to have been young--and
  • wears knee-breeches tied with ribbons, and gaiters or stockings. One
  • peculiarity of his black clothes and of his black stockings, be they
  • silk or worsted, is that they never shine. Mute, close, irresponsive
  • to any glancing light, his dress is like himself. He never converses
  • when not professionally consulted. He is found sometimes, speechless
  • but quite at home, at corners of dinner-tables in great country
  • houses and near doors of drawing-rooms, concerning which the
  • fashionable intelligence is eloquent, where everybody knows him and
  • where half the Peerage stops to say "How do you do, Mr. Tulkinghorn?"
  • He receives these salutations with gravity and buries them along with
  • the rest of his knowledge.
  • Sir Leicester Dedlock is with my Lady and is happy to see Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn. There is an air of prescription about him which is
  • always agreeable to Sir Leicester; he receives it as a kind of
  • tribute. He likes Mr. Tulkinghorn's dress; there is a kind of tribute
  • in that too. It is eminently respectable, and likewise, in a general
  • way, retainer-like. It expresses, as it were, the steward of the
  • legal mysteries, the butler of the legal cellar, of the Dedlocks.
  • Has Mr. Tulkinghorn any idea of this himself? It may be so, or it may
  • not, but there is this remarkable circumstance to be noted in
  • everything associated with my Lady Dedlock as one of a class--as one
  • of the leaders and representatives of her little world. She supposes
  • herself to be an inscrutable Being, quite out of the reach and ken of
  • ordinary mortals--seeing herself in her glass, where indeed she looks
  • so. Yet every dim little star revolving about her, from her maid to
  • the manager of the Italian Opera, knows her weaknesses, prejudices,
  • follies, haughtinesses, and caprices and lives upon as accurate a
  • calculation and as nice a measure of her moral nature as her
  • dressmaker takes of her physical proportions. Is a new dress, a new
  • custom, a new singer, a new dancer, a new form of jewellery, a new
  • dwarf or giant, a new chapel, a new anything, to be set up? There are
  • deferential people in a dozen callings whom my Lady Dedlock suspects
  • of nothing but prostration before her, who can tell you how to manage
  • her as if she were a baby, who do nothing but nurse her all their
  • lives, who, humbly affecting to follow with profound subservience,
  • lead her and her whole troop after them; who, in hooking one, hook
  • all and bear them off as Lemuel Gulliver bore away the stately fleet
  • of the majestic Lilliput. "If you want to address our people, sir,"
  • say Blaze and Sparkle, the jewellers--meaning by our people Lady
  • Dedlock and the rest--"you must remember that you are not dealing
  • with the general public; you must hit our people in their weakest
  • place, and their weakest place is such a place." "To make this
  • article go down, gentlemen," say Sheen and Gloss, the mercers, to
  • their friends the manufacturers, "you must come to us, because we
  • know where to have the fashionable people, and we can make it
  • fashionable." "If you want to get this print upon the tables of my
  • high connexion, sir," says Mr. Sladdery, the librarian, "or if you
  • want to get this dwarf or giant into the houses of my high connexion,
  • sir, or if you want to secure to this entertainment the patronage of
  • my high connexion, sir, you must leave it, if you please, to me, for
  • I have been accustomed to study the leaders of my high connexion,
  • sir, and I may tell you without vanity that I can turn them round my
  • finger"--in which Mr. Sladdery, who is an honest man, does not
  • exaggerate at all.
  • Therefore, while Mr. Tulkinghorn may not know what is passing in the
  • Dedlock mind at present, it is very possible that he may.
  • "My Lady's cause has been again before the Chancellor, has it, Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn?" says Sir Leicester, giving him his hand.
  • "Yes. It has been on again to-day," Mr. Tulkinghorn replies, making
  • one of his quiet bows to my Lady, who is on a sofa near the fire,
  • shading her face with a hand-screen.
  • "It would be useless to ask," says my Lady with the dreariness of the
  • place in Lincolnshire still upon her, "whether anything has been
  • done."
  • "Nothing that YOU would call anything has been done to-day," replies
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn.
  • "Nor ever will be," says my Lady.
  • Sir Leicester has no objection to an interminable Chancery suit. It
  • is a slow, expensive, British, constitutional kind of thing. To be
  • sure, he has not a vital interest in the suit in question, her part
  • in which was the only property my Lady brought him; and he has a
  • shadowy impression that for his name--the name of Dedlock--to be in a
  • cause, and not in the title of that cause, is a most ridiculous
  • accident. But he regards the Court of Chancery, even if it should
  • involve an occasional delay of justice and a trifling amount of
  • confusion, as a something devised in conjunction with a variety of
  • other somethings by the perfection of human wisdom for the eternal
  • settlement (humanly speaking) of everything. And he is upon the whole
  • of a fixed opinion that to give the sanction of his countenance to
  • any complaints respecting it would be to encourage some person in the
  • lower classes to rise up somewhere--like Wat Tyler.
  • "As a few fresh affidavits have been put upon the file," says Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn, "and as they are short, and as I proceed upon the
  • troublesome principle of begging leave to possess my clients with any
  • new proceedings in a cause"--cautious man Mr. Tulkinghorn, taking no
  • more responsibility than necessary--"and further, as I see you are
  • going to Paris, I have brought them in my pocket."
  • (Sir Leicester was going to Paris too, by the by, but the delight of
  • the fashionable intelligence was in his Lady.)
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn takes out his papers, asks permission to place them
  • on a golden talisman of a table at my Lady's elbow, puts on his
  • spectacles, and begins to read by the light of a shaded lamp.
  • "'In Chancery. Between John Jarndyce--'"
  • My Lady interrupts, requesting him to miss as many of the formal
  • horrors as he can.
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn glances over his spectacles and begins again lower
  • down. My Lady carelessly and scornfully abstracts her attention. Sir
  • Leicester in a great chair looks at the file and appears to have a
  • stately liking for the legal repetitions and prolixities as ranging
  • among the national bulwarks. It happens that the fire is hot where my
  • Lady sits and that the hand-screen is more beautiful than useful,
  • being priceless but small. My Lady, changing her position, sees the
  • papers on the table--looks at them nearer--looks at them nearer
  • still--asks impulsively, "Who copied that?"
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn stops short, surprised by my Lady's animation and her
  • unusual tone.
  • "Is it what you people call law-hand?" she asks, looking full at him
  • in her careless way again and toying with her screen.
  • "Not quite. Probably"--Mr. Tulkinghorn examines it as he speaks--"the
  • legal character which it has was acquired after the original hand was
  • formed. Why do you ask?"
  • "Anything to vary this detestable monotony. Oh, go on, do!"
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn reads again. The heat is greater; my Lady screens her
  • face. Sir Leicester dozes, starts up suddenly, and cries, "Eh? What
  • do you say?"
  • "I say I am afraid," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, who had risen hastily,
  • "that Lady Dedlock is ill."
  • "Faint," my Lady murmurs with white lips, "only that; but it is like
  • the faintness of death. Don't speak to me. Ring, and take me to my
  • room!"
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn retires into another chamber; bells ring, feet
  • shuffle and patter, silence ensues. Mercury at last begs Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn to return.
  • "Better now," quoth Sir Leicester, motioning the lawyer to sit down
  • and read to him alone. "I have been quite alarmed. I never knew my
  • Lady swoon before. But the weather is extremely trying, and she
  • really has been bored to death down at our place in Lincolnshire."
  • CHAPTER III
  • A Progress
  • I have a great deal of difficulty in beginning to write my portion of
  • these pages, for I know I am not clever. I always knew that. I can
  • remember, when I was a very little girl indeed, I used to say to my
  • doll when we were alone together, "Now, Dolly, I am not clever, you
  • know very well, and you must be patient with me, like a dear!" And so
  • she used to sit propped up in a great arm-chair, with her beautiful
  • complexion and rosy lips, staring at me--or not so much at me, I
  • think, as at nothing--while I busily stitched away and told her every
  • one of my secrets.
  • My dear old doll! I was such a shy little thing that I seldom dared
  • to open my lips, and never dared to open my heart, to anybody else.
  • It almost makes me cry to think what a relief it used to be to me
  • when I came home from school of a day to run upstairs to my room and
  • say, "Oh, you dear faithful Dolly, I knew you would be expecting me!"
  • and then to sit down on the floor, leaning on the elbow of her great
  • chair, and tell her all I had noticed since we parted. I had always
  • rather a noticing way--not a quick way, oh, no!--a silent way of
  • noticing what passed before me and thinking I should like to
  • understand it better. I have not by any means a quick understanding.
  • When I love a person very tenderly indeed, it seems to brighten. But
  • even that may be my vanity.
  • I was brought up, from my earliest remembrance--like some of the
  • princesses in the fairy stories, only I was not charming--by my
  • godmother. At least, I only knew her as such. She was a good, good
  • woman! She went to church three times every Sunday, and to morning
  • prayers on Wednesdays and Fridays, and to lectures whenever there
  • were lectures; and never missed. She was handsome; and if she had
  • ever smiled, would have been (I used to think) like an angel--but she
  • never smiled. She was always grave and strict. She was so very good
  • herself, I thought, that the badness of other people made her frown
  • all her life. I felt so different from her, even making every
  • allowance for the differences between a child and a woman; I felt so
  • poor, so trifling, and so far off that I never could be unrestrained
  • with her--no, could never even love her as I wished. It made me very
  • sorry to consider how good she was and how unworthy of her I was, and
  • I used ardently to hope that I might have a better heart; and I
  • talked it over very often with the dear old doll, but I never loved
  • my godmother as I ought to have loved her and as I felt I must have
  • loved her if I had been a better girl.
  • This made me, I dare say, more timid and retiring than I naturally
  • was and cast me upon Dolly as the only friend with whom I felt at
  • ease. But something happened when I was still quite a little thing
  • that helped it very much.
  • I had never heard my mama spoken of. I had never heard of my papa
  • either, but I felt more interested about my mama. I had never worn a
  • black frock, that I could recollect. I had never been shown my mama's
  • grave. I had never been told where it was. Yet I had never been
  • taught to pray for any relation but my godmother. I had more than
  • once approached this subject of my thoughts with Mrs. Rachael, our
  • only servant, who took my light away when I was in bed (another very
  • good woman, but austere to me), and she had only said, "Esther, good
  • night!" and gone away and left me.
  • Although there were seven girls at the neighbouring school where I
  • was a day boarder, and although they called me little Esther
  • Summerson, I knew none of them at home. All of them were older than
  • I, to be sure (I was the youngest there by a good deal), but there
  • seemed to be some other separation between us besides that, and
  • besides their being far more clever than I was and knowing much more
  • than I did. One of them in the first week of my going to the school
  • (I remember it very well) invited me home to a little party, to my
  • great joy. But my godmother wrote a stiff letter declining for me,
  • and I never went. I never went out at all.
  • It was my birthday. There were holidays at school on other
  • birthdays--none on mine. There were rejoicings at home on other
  • birthdays, as I knew from what I heard the girls relate to one
  • another--there were none on mine. My birthday was the most melancholy
  • day at home in the whole year.
  • I have mentioned that unless my vanity should deceive me (as I know
  • it may, for I may be very vain without suspecting it, though indeed I
  • don't), my comprehension is quickened when my affection is. My
  • disposition is very affectionate, and perhaps I might still feel such
  • a wound if such a wound could be received more than once with the
  • quickness of that birthday.
  • Dinner was over, and my godmother and I were sitting at the table
  • before the fire. The clock ticked, the fire clicked; not another
  • sound had been heard in the room or in the house for I don't know how
  • long. I happened to look timidly up from my stitching, across the
  • table at my godmother, and I saw in her face, looking gloomily at me,
  • "It would have been far better, little Esther, that you had had no
  • birthday, that you had never been born!"
  • I broke out crying and sobbing, and I said, "Oh, dear godmother, tell
  • me, pray do tell me, did Mama die on my birthday?"
  • "No," she returned. "Ask me no more, child!"
  • "Oh, do pray tell me something of her. Do now, at last, dear
  • godmother, if you please! What did I do to her? How did I lose her?
  • Why am I so different from other children, and why is it my fault,
  • dear godmother? No, no, no, don't go away. Oh, speak to me!"
  • I was in a kind of fright beyond my grief, and I caught hold of her
  • dress and was kneeling to her. She had been saying all the while,
  • "Let me go!" But now she stood still.
  • Her darkened face had such power over me that it stopped me in the
  • midst of my vehemence. I put up my trembling little hand to clasp
  • hers or to beg her pardon with what earnestness I might, but withdrew
  • it as she looked at me, and laid it on my fluttering heart. She
  • raised me, sat in her chair, and standing me before her, said slowly
  • in a cold, low voice--I see her knitted brow and pointed
  • finger--"Your mother, Esther, is your disgrace, and you were hers.
  • The time will come--and soon enough--when you will understand this
  • better and will feel it too, as no one save a woman can. I have
  • forgiven her"--but her face did not relent--"the wrong she did to me,
  • and I say no more of it, though it was greater than you will ever
  • know--than any one will ever know but I, the sufferer. For yourself,
  • unfortunate girl, orphaned and degraded from the first of these evil
  • anniversaries, pray daily that the sins of others be not visited upon
  • your head, according to what is written. Forget your mother and leave
  • all other people to forget her who will do her unhappy child that
  • greatest kindness. Now, go!"
  • She checked me, however, as I was about to depart from her--so frozen
  • as I was!--and added this, "Submission, self-denial, diligent work,
  • are the preparations for a life begun with such a shadow on it. You
  • are different from other children, Esther, because you were not born,
  • like them, in common sinfulness and wrath. You are set apart."
  • I went up to my room, and crept to bed, and laid my doll's cheek
  • against mine wet with tears, and holding that solitary friend upon my
  • bosom, cried myself to sleep. Imperfect as my understanding of my
  • sorrow was, I knew that I had brought no joy at any time to anybody's
  • heart and that I was to no one upon earth what Dolly was to me.
  • Dear, dear, to think how much time we passed alone together
  • afterwards, and how often I repeated to the doll the story of my
  • birthday and confided to her that I would try as hard as ever I could
  • to repair the fault I had been born with (of which I confessedly felt
  • guilty and yet innocent) and would strive as I grew up to be
  • industrious, contented, and kind-hearted and to do some good to some
  • one, and win some love to myself if I could. I hope it is not
  • self-indulgent to shed these tears as I think of it. I am very
  • thankful, I am very cheerful, but I cannot quite help their coming to
  • my eyes.
  • There! I have wiped them away now and can go on again properly.
  • I felt the distance between my godmother and myself so much more
  • after the birthday, and felt so sensible of filling a place in her
  • house which ought to have been empty, that I found her more difficult
  • of approach, though I was fervently grateful to her in my heart, than
  • ever. I felt in the same way towards my school companions; I felt in
  • the same way towards Mrs. Rachael, who was a widow; and oh, towards
  • her daughter, of whom she was proud, who came to see her once a
  • fortnight! I was very retired and quiet, and tried to be very
  • diligent.
  • One sunny afternoon when I had come home from school with my books
  • and portfolio, watching my long shadow at my side, and as I was
  • gliding upstairs to my room as usual, my godmother looked out of the
  • parlour-door and called me back. Sitting with her, I found--which was
  • very unusual indeed--a stranger. A portly, important-looking
  • gentleman, dressed all in black, with a white cravat, large gold
  • watch seals, a pair of gold eye-glasses, and a large seal-ring upon
  • his little finger.
  • "This," said my godmother in an undertone, "is the child." Then she
  • said in her naturally stern way of speaking, "This is Esther, sir."
  • The gentleman put up his eye-glasses to look at me and said, "Come
  • here, my dear!" He shook hands with me and asked me to take off my
  • bonnet, looking at me all the while. When I had complied, he said,
  • "Ah!" and afterwards "Yes!" And then, taking off his eye-glasses and
  • folding them in a red case, and leaning back in his arm-chair,
  • turning the case about in his two hands, he gave my godmother a nod.
  • Upon that, my godmother said, "You may go upstairs, Esther!" And I
  • made him my curtsy and left him.
  • It must have been two years afterwards, and I was almost fourteen,
  • when one dreadful night my godmother and I sat at the fireside. I was
  • reading aloud, and she was listening. I had come down at nine o'clock
  • as I always did to read the Bible to her, and was reading from St.
  • John how our Saviour stooped down, writing with his finger in the
  • dust, when they brought the sinful woman to him.
  • "So when they continued asking him, he lifted up himself and said
  • unto them, 'He that is without sin among you, let him first cast a
  • stone at her!'"
  • I was stopped by my godmother's rising, putting her hand to her head,
  • and crying out in an awful voice from quite another part of the book,
  • "'Watch ye, therefore, lest coming suddenly he find you sleeping. And
  • what I say unto you, I say unto all, Watch!'"
  • In an instant, while she stood before me repeating these words, she
  • fell down on the floor. I had no need to cry out; her voice had
  • sounded through the house and been heard in the street.
  • She was laid upon her bed. For more than a week she lay there, little
  • altered outwardly, with her old handsome resolute frown that I so
  • well knew carved upon her face. Many and many a time, in the day and
  • in the night, with my head upon the pillow by her that my whispers
  • might be plainer to her, I kissed her, thanked her, prayed for her,
  • asked her for her blessing and forgiveness, entreated her to give me
  • the least sign that she knew or heard me. No, no, no. Her face was
  • immovable. To the very last, and even afterwards, her frown remained
  • unsoftened.
  • On the day after my poor good godmother was buried, the gentleman in
  • black with the white neckcloth reappeared. I was sent for by Mrs.
  • Rachael, and found him in the same place, as if he had never gone
  • away.
  • "My name is Kenge," he said; "you may remember it, my child; Kenge
  • and Carboy, Lincoln's Inn."
  • I replied that I remembered to have seen him once before.
  • "Pray be seated--here near me. Don't distress yourself; it's of no
  • use. Mrs. Rachael, I needn't inform you who were acquainted with the
  • late Miss Barbary's affairs, that her means die with her and that
  • this young lady, now her aunt is dead--"
  • "My aunt, sir!"
  • "It is really of no use carrying on a deception when no object is to
  • be gained by it," said Mr. Kenge smoothly, "Aunt in fact, though not
  • in law. Don't distress yourself! Don't weep! Don't tremble! Mrs.
  • Rachael, our young friend has no doubt heard of--the--a--Jarndyce and
  • Jarndyce."
  • "Never," said Mrs. Rachael.
  • "Is it possible," pursued Mr. Kenge, putting up his eye-glasses,
  • "that our young friend--I BEG you won't distress yourself!--never
  • heard of Jarndyce and Jarndyce!"
  • I shook my head, wondering even what it was.
  • "Not of Jarndyce and Jarndyce?" said Mr. Kenge, looking over his
  • glasses at me and softly turning the case about and about as if he
  • were petting something. "Not of one of the greatest Chancery suits
  • known? Not of Jarndyce and Jarndyce--the--a--in itself a monument of
  • Chancery practice. In which (I would say) every difficulty, every
  • contingency, every masterly fiction, every form of procedure known
  • in that court, is represented over and over again? It is a cause
  • that could not exist out of this free and great country. I should
  • say that the aggregate of costs in Jarndyce and Jarndyce, Mrs.
  • Rachael"--I was afraid he addressed himself to her because I appeared
  • inattentive"--amounts at the present hour to from SIX-ty to SEVEN-ty
  • THOUSAND POUNDS!" said Mr. Kenge, leaning back in his chair.
  • I felt very ignorant, but what could I do? I was so entirely
  • unacquainted with the subject that I understood nothing about it even
  • then.
  • "And she really never heard of the cause!" said Mr. Kenge.
  • "Surprising!"
  • "Miss Barbary, sir," returned Mrs. Rachael, "who is now among the
  • Seraphim--"
  • "I hope so, I am sure," said Mr. Kenge politely.
  • "--Wished Esther only to know what would be serviceable to her. And
  • she knows, from any teaching she has had here, nothing more."
  • "Well!" said Mr. Kenge. "Upon the whole, very proper. Now to the
  • point," addressing me. "Miss Barbary, your sole relation (in fact
  • that is, for I am bound to observe that in law you had none) being
  • deceased and it naturally not being to be expected that Mrs.
  • Rachael--"
  • "Oh, dear no!" said Mrs. Rachael quickly.
  • "Quite so," assented Mr. Kenge; "--that Mrs. Rachael should charge
  • herself with your maintenance and support (I beg you won't distress
  • yourself), you are in a position to receive the renewal of an offer
  • which I was instructed to make to Miss Barbary some two years ago and
  • which, though rejected then, was understood to be renewable under the
  • lamentable circumstances that have since occurred. Now, if I avow
  • that I represent, in Jarndyce and Jarndyce and otherwise, a highly
  • humane, but at the same time singular, man, shall I compromise myself
  • by any stretch of my professional caution?" said Mr. Kenge, leaning
  • back in his chair again and looking calmly at us both.
  • He appeared to enjoy beyond everything the sound of his own voice. I
  • couldn't wonder at that, for it was mellow and full and gave great
  • importance to every word he uttered. He listened to himself with
  • obvious satisfaction and sometimes gently beat time to his own music
  • with his head or rounded a sentence with his hand. I was very much
  • impressed by him--even then, before I knew that he formed himself on
  • the model of a great lord who was his client and that he was
  • generally called Conversation Kenge.
  • "Mr. Jarndyce," he pursued, "being aware of the--I would say,
  • desolate--position of our young friend, offers to place her at a
  • first-rate establishment where her education shall be completed,
  • where her comfort shall be secured, where her reasonable wants shall
  • be anticipated, where she shall be eminently qualified to discharge
  • her duty in that station of life unto which it has pleased--shall I
  • say Providence?--to call her."
  • My heart was filled so full, both by what he said and by his
  • affecting manner of saying it, that I was not able to speak, though I
  • tried.
  • "Mr. Jarndyce," he went on, "makes no condition beyond expressing his
  • expectation that our young friend will not at any time remove herself
  • from the establishment in question without his knowledge and
  • concurrence. That she will faithfully apply herself to the
  • acquisition of those accomplishments, upon the exercise of which she
  • will be ultimately dependent. That she will tread in the paths of
  • virtue and honour, and--the--a--so forth."
  • I was still less able to speak than before.
  • "Now, what does our young friend say?" proceeded Mr. Kenge. "Take
  • time, take time! I pause for her reply. But take time!"
  • What the destitute subject of such an offer tried to say, I need not
  • repeat. What she did say, I could more easily tell, if it were worth
  • the telling. What she felt, and will feel to her dying hour, I could
  • never relate.
  • This interview took place at Windsor, where I had passed (as far as I
  • knew) my whole life. On that day week, amply provided with all
  • necessaries, I left it, inside the stagecoach, for Reading.
  • Mrs. Rachael was too good to feel any emotion at parting, but I was
  • not so good, and wept bitterly. I thought that I ought to have known
  • her better after so many years and ought to have made myself enough
  • of a favourite with her to make her sorry then. When she gave me one
  • cold parting kiss upon my forehead, like a thaw-drop from the stone
  • porch--it was a very frosty day--I felt so miserable and
  • self-reproachful that I clung to her and told her it was my fault, I
  • knew, that she could say good-bye so easily!
  • "No, Esther!" she returned. "It is your misfortune!"
  • The coach was at the little lawn-gate--we had not come out until we
  • heard the wheels--and thus I left her, with a sorrowful heart. She
  • went in before my boxes were lifted to the coach-roof and shut the
  • door. As long as I could see the house, I looked back at it from the
  • window through my tears. My godmother had left Mrs. Rachael all the
  • little property she possessed; and there was to be a sale; and an old
  • hearth-rug with roses on it, which always seemed to me the first
  • thing in the world I had ever seen, was hanging outside in the frost
  • and snow. A day or two before, I had wrapped the dear old doll in her
  • own shawl and quietly laid her--I am half ashamed to tell it--in the
  • garden-earth under the tree that shaded my old window. I had no
  • companion left but my bird, and him I carried with me in his cage.
  • When the house was out of sight, I sat, with my bird-cage in the
  • straw at my feet, forward on the low seat to look out of the high
  • window, watching the frosty trees, that were like beautiful pieces of
  • spar, and the fields all smooth and white with last night's snow, and
  • the sun, so red but yielding so little heat, and the ice, dark like
  • metal where the skaters and sliders had brushed the snow away. There
  • was a gentleman in the coach who sat on the opposite seat and looked
  • very large in a quantity of wrappings, but he sat gazing out of the
  • other window and took no notice of me.
  • I thought of my dead godmother, of the night when I read to her, of
  • her frowning so fixedly and sternly in her bed, of the strange place
  • I was going to, of the people I should find there, and what they
  • would be like, and what they would say to me, when a voice in the
  • coach gave me a terrible start.
  • It said, "What the de-vil are you crying for?"
  • I was so frightened that I lost my voice and could only answer in a
  • whisper, "Me, sir?" For of course I knew it must have been the
  • gentleman in the quantity of wrappings, though he was still looking
  • out of his window.
  • "Yes, you," he said, turning round.
  • "I didn't know I was crying, sir," I faltered.
  • "But you are!" said the gentleman. "Look here!" He came quite
  • opposite to me from the other corner of the coach, brushed one of his
  • large furry cuffs across my eyes (but without hurting me), and showed
  • me that it was wet.
  • "There! Now you know you are," he said. "Don't you?"
  • "Yes, sir," I said.
  • "And what are you crying for?" said the gentleman, "Don't you want to
  • go there?"
  • "Where, sir?"
  • "Where? Why, wherever you are going," said the gentleman.
  • "I am very glad to go there, sir," I answered.
  • "Well, then! Look glad!" said the gentleman.
  • I thought he was very strange, or at least that what I could see of
  • him was very strange, for he was wrapped up to the chin, and his face
  • was almost hidden in a fur cap with broad fur straps at the side of
  • his head fastened under his chin; but I was composed again, and not
  • afraid of him. So I told him that I thought I must have been crying
  • because of my godmother's death and because of Mrs. Rachael's not
  • being sorry to part with me.
  • "Confound Mrs. Rachael!" said the gentleman. "Let her fly away in a
  • high wind on a broomstick!"
  • I began to be really afraid of him now and looked at him with the
  • greatest astonishment. But I thought that he had pleasant eyes,
  • although he kept on muttering to himself in an angry manner and
  • calling Mrs. Rachael names.
  • After a little while he opened his outer wrapper, which appeared to
  • me large enough to wrap up the whole coach, and put his arm down into
  • a deep pocket in the side.
  • "Now, look here!" he said. "In this paper," which was nicely folded,
  • "is a piece of the best plum-cake that can be got for money--sugar on
  • the outside an inch thick, like fat on mutton chops. Here's a little
  • pie (a gem this is, both for size and quality), made in France. And
  • what do you suppose it's made of? Livers of fat geese. There's a pie!
  • Now let's see you eat 'em."
  • "Thank you, sir," I replied; "thank you very much indeed, but I hope
  • you won't be offended--they are too rich for me."
  • "Floored again!" said the gentleman, which I didn't at all
  • understand, and threw them both out of window.
  • He did not speak to me any more until he got out of the coach a
  • little way short of Reading, when he advised me to be a good girl and
  • to be studious, and shook hands with me. I must say I was relieved by
  • his departure. We left him at a milestone. I often walked past it
  • afterwards, and never for a long time without thinking of him and
  • half expecting to meet him. But I never did; and so, as time went on,
  • he passed out of my mind.
  • When the coach stopped, a very neat lady looked up at the window and
  • said, "Miss Donny."
  • "No, ma'am, Esther Summerson."
  • "That is quite right," said the lady, "Miss Donny."
  • I now understood that she introduced herself by that name, and begged
  • Miss Donny's pardon for my mistake, and pointed out my boxes at her
  • request. Under the direction of a very neat maid, they were put
  • outside a very small green carriage; and then Miss Donny, the maid,
  • and I got inside and were driven away.
  • "Everything is ready for you, Esther," said Miss Donny, "and the
  • scheme of your pursuits has been arranged in exact accordance with
  • the wishes of your guardian, Mr. Jarndyce."
  • "Of--did you say, ma'am?"
  • "Of your guardian, Mr. Jarndyce," said Miss Donny.
  • I was so bewildered that Miss Donny thought the cold had been too
  • severe for me and lent me her smelling-bottle.
  • "Do you know my--guardian, Mr. Jarndyce, ma'am?" I asked after a good
  • deal of hesitation.
  • "Not personally, Esther," said Miss Donny; "merely through his
  • solicitors, Messrs. Kenge and Carboy, of London. A very superior
  • gentleman, Mr. Kenge. Truly eloquent indeed. Some of his periods
  • quite majestic!"
  • I felt this to be very true but was too confused to attend to it. Our
  • speedy arrival at our destination, before I had time to recover
  • myself, increased my confusion, and I never shall forget the
  • uncertain and the unreal air of everything at Greenleaf (Miss Donny's
  • house) that afternoon!
  • But I soon became used to it. I was so adapted to the routine of
  • Greenleaf before long that I seemed to have been there a great while
  • and almost to have dreamed rather than really lived my old life at my
  • godmother's. Nothing could be more precise, exact, and orderly than
  • Greenleaf. There was a time for everything all round the dial of the
  • clock, and everything was done at its appointed moment.
  • We were twelve boarders, and there were two Miss Donnys, twins. It
  • was understood that I would have to depend, by and by, on my
  • qualifications as a governess, and I was not only instructed in
  • everything that was taught at Greenleaf, but was very soon engaged in
  • helping to instruct others. Although I was treated in every other
  • respect like the rest of the school, this single difference was made
  • in my case from the first. As I began to know more, I taught more,
  • and so in course of time I had plenty to do, which I was very fond of
  • doing because it made the dear girls fond of me. At last, whenever a
  • new pupil came who was a little downcast and unhappy, she was so
  • sure--indeed I don't know why--to make a friend of me that all
  • new-comers were confided to my care. They said I was so gentle, but I
  • am sure THEY were! I often thought of the resolution I had made on my
  • birthday to try to be industrious, contented, and true-hearted and to
  • do some good to some one and win some love if I could; and indeed,
  • indeed, I felt almost ashamed to have done so little and have won so
  • much.
  • I passed at Greenleaf six happy, quiet years. I never saw in any face
  • there, thank heaven, on my birthday, that it would have been better
  • if I had never been born. When the day came round, it brought me so
  • many tokens of affectionate remembrance that my room was beautiful
  • with them from New Year's Day to Christmas.
  • In those six years I had never been away except on visits at holiday
  • time in the neighbourhood. After the first six months or so I had
  • taken Miss Donny's advice in reference to the propriety of writing to
  • Mr. Kenge to say that I was happy and grateful, and with her approval
  • I had written such a letter. I had received a formal answer
  • acknowledging its receipt and saying, "We note the contents thereof,
  • which shall be duly communicated to our client." After that I
  • sometimes heard Miss Donny and her sister mention how regular my
  • accounts were paid, and about twice a year I ventured to write a
  • similar letter. I always received by return of post exactly the same
  • answer in the same round hand, with the signature of Kenge and Carboy
  • in another writing, which I supposed to be Mr. Kenge's.
  • It seems so curious to me to be obliged to write all this about
  • myself! As if this narrative were the narrative of MY life! But my
  • little body will soon fall into the background now.
  • Six quiet years (I find I am saying it for the second time) I had
  • passed at Greenleaf, seeing in those around me, as it might be in a
  • looking-glass, every stage of my own growth and change there, when,
  • one November morning, I received this letter. I omit the date.
  • Old Square, Lincoln's Inn
  • Madam,
  • Jarndyce and Jarndyce
  • Our clt Mr. Jarndyce being abt to rece into his house,
  • under an Order of the Ct of Chy, a Ward of the Ct in this
  • cause, for whom he wishes to secure an elgble compn,
  • directs us to inform you that he will be glad of your
  • serces in the afsd capacity.
  • We have arrngd for your being forded, carriage free, pr
  • eight o'clock coach from Reading, on Monday morning next,
  • to White Horse Cellar, Piccadilly, London, where one of
  • our clks will be in waiting to convey you to our offe as
  • above.
  • We are, Madam, Your obedt Servts,
  • Kenge and Carboy
  • Miss Esther Summerson
  • Oh, never, never, never shall I forget the emotion this letter caused
  • in the house! It was so tender in them to care so much for me, it was
  • so gracious in that father who had not forgotten me to have made my
  • orphan way so smooth and easy and to have inclined so many youthful
  • natures towards me, that I could hardly bear it. Not that I would
  • have had them less sorry--I am afraid not; but the pleasure of it,
  • and the pain of it, and the pride and joy of it, and the humble
  • regret of it were so blended that my heart seemed almost breaking
  • while it was full of rapture.
  • The letter gave me only five days' notice of my removal. When every
  • minute added to the proofs of love and kindness that were given me in
  • those five days, and when at last the morning came and when they took
  • me through all the rooms that I might see them for the last time, and
  • when some cried, "Esther, dear, say good-bye to me here at my
  • bedside, where you first spoke so kindly to me!" and when others
  • asked me only to write their names, "With Esther's love," and when
  • they all surrounded me with their parting presents and clung to me
  • weeping and cried, "What shall we do when dear, dear Esther's gone!"
  • and when I tried to tell them how forbearing and how good they had
  • all been to me and how I blessed and thanked them every one, what a
  • heart I had!
  • And when the two Miss Donnys grieved as much to part with me as the
  • least among them, and when the maids said, "Bless you, miss, wherever
  • you go!" and when the ugly lame old gardener, who I thought had
  • hardly noticed me in all those years, came panting after the coach to
  • give me a little nosegay of geraniums and told me I had been the
  • light of his eyes--indeed the old man said so!--what a heart I had
  • then!
  • And could I help it if with all this, and the coming to the little
  • school, and the unexpected sight of the poor children outside waving
  • their hats and bonnets to me, and of a grey-haired gentleman and lady
  • whose daughter I had helped to teach and at whose house I had visited
  • (who were said to be the proudest people in all that country), caring
  • for nothing but calling out, "Good-bye, Esther. May you be very
  • happy!"--could I help it if I was quite bowed down in the coach by
  • myself and said "Oh, I am so thankful, I am so thankful!" many times
  • over!
  • But of course I soon considered that I must not take tears where I
  • was going after all that had been done for me. Therefore, of course,
  • I made myself sob less and persuaded myself to be quiet by saying
  • very often, "Esther, now you really must! This WILL NOT do!" I
  • cheered myself up pretty well at last, though I am afraid I was
  • longer about it than I ought to have been; and when I had cooled my
  • eyes with lavender water, it was time to watch for London.
  • I was quite persuaded that we were there when we were ten miles off,
  • and when we really were there, that we should never get there.
  • However, when we began to jolt upon a stone pavement, and
  • particularly when every other conveyance seemed to be running into
  • us, and we seemed to be running into every other conveyance, I began
  • to believe that we really were approaching the end of our journey.
  • Very soon afterwards we stopped.
  • A young gentleman who had inked himself by accident addressed me from
  • the pavement and said, "I am from Kenge and Carboy's, miss, of
  • Lincoln's Inn."
  • "If you please, sir," said I.
  • He was very obliging, and as he handed me into a fly after
  • superintending the removal of my boxes, I asked him whether there was
  • a great fire anywhere? For the streets were so full of dense brown
  • smoke that scarcely anything was to be seen.
  • "Oh, dear no, miss," he said. "This is a London particular."
  • I had never heard of such a thing.
  • "A fog, miss," said the young gentleman.
  • "Oh, indeed!" said I.
  • We drove slowly through the dirtiest and darkest streets that ever
  • were seen in the world (I thought) and in such a distracting state of
  • confusion that I wondered how the people kept their senses, until we
  • passed into sudden quietude under an old gateway and drove on through
  • a silent square until we came to an odd nook in a corner, where there
  • was an entrance up a steep, broad flight of stairs, like an entrance
  • to a church. And there really was a churchyard outside under some
  • cloisters, for I saw the gravestones from the staircase window.
  • This was Kenge and Carboy's. The young gentleman showed me through an
  • outer office into Mr. Kenge's room--there was no one in it--and
  • politely put an arm-chair for me by the fire. He then called my
  • attention to a little looking-glass hanging from a nail on one side
  • of the chimney-piece.
  • "In case you should wish to look at yourself, miss, after the
  • journey, as you're going before the Chancellor. Not that it's
  • requisite, I am sure," said the young gentleman civilly.
  • "Going before the Chancellor?" I said, startled for a moment.
  • "Only a matter of form, miss," returned the young gentleman. "Mr.
  • Kenge is in court now. He left his compliments, and would you partake
  • of some refreshment"--there were biscuits and a decanter of wine on a
  • small table--"and look over the paper," which the young gentleman
  • gave me as he spoke. He then stirred the fire and left me.
  • Everything was so strange--the stranger from its being night in the
  • day-time, the candles burning with a white flame, and looking raw and
  • cold--that I read the words in the newspaper without knowing what
  • they meant and found myself reading the same words repeatedly. As it
  • was of no use going on in that way, I put the paper down, took a peep
  • at my bonnet in the glass to see if it was neat, and looked at the
  • room, which was not half lighted, and at the shabby, dusty tables,
  • and at the piles of writings, and at a bookcase full of the most
  • inexpressive-looking books that ever had anything to say for
  • themselves. Then I went on, thinking, thinking, thinking; and the
  • fire went on, burning, burning, burning; and the candles went on
  • flickering and guttering, and there were no snuffers--until the young
  • gentleman by and by brought a very dirty pair--for two hours.
  • At last Mr. Kenge came. HE was not altered, but he was surprised to
  • see how altered I was and appeared quite pleased. "As you are going
  • to be the companion of the young lady who is now in the Chancellor's
  • private room, Miss Summerson," he said, "we thought it well that you
  • should be in attendance also. You will not be discomposed by the Lord
  • Chancellor, I dare say?"
  • "No, sir," I said, "I don't think I shall," really not seeing on
  • consideration why I should be.
  • So Mr. Kenge gave me his arm and we went round the corner, under a
  • colonnade, and in at a side door. And so we came, along a passage,
  • into a comfortable sort of room where a young lady and a young
  • gentleman were standing near a great, loud-roaring fire. A screen was
  • interposed between them and it, and they were leaning on the screen,
  • talking.
  • They both looked up when I came in, and I saw in the young lady, with
  • the fire shining upon her, such a beautiful girl! With such rich
  • golden hair, such soft blue eyes, and such a bright, innocent,
  • trusting face!
  • "Miss Ada," said Mr. Kenge, "this is Miss Summerson."
  • She came to meet me with a smile of welcome and her hand extended,
  • but seemed to change her mind in a moment and kissed me. In short,
  • she had such a natural, captivating, winning manner that in a few
  • minutes we were sitting in the window-seat, with the light of the
  • fire upon us, talking together as free and happy as could be.
  • What a load off my mind! It was so delightful to know that she could
  • confide in me and like me! It was so good of her, and so encouraging
  • to me!
  • The young gentleman was her distant cousin, she told me, and his name
  • Richard Carstone. He was a handsome youth with an ingenuous face and
  • a most engaging laugh; and after she had called him up to where we
  • sat, he stood by us, in the light of the fire, talking gaily, like a
  • light-hearted boy. He was very young, not more than nineteen then, if
  • quite so much, but nearly two years older than she was. They were
  • both orphans and (what was very unexpected and curious to me) had
  • never met before that day. Our all three coming together for the
  • first time in such an unusual place was a thing to talk about, and we
  • talked about it; and the fire, which had left off roaring, winked its
  • red eyes at us--as Richard said--like a drowsy old Chancery lion.
  • We conversed in a low tone because a full-dressed gentleman in a bag
  • wig frequently came in and out, and when he did so, we could hear a
  • drawling sound in the distance, which he said was one of the counsel
  • in our case addressing the Lord Chancellor. He told Mr. Kenge that
  • the Chancellor would be up in five minutes; and presently we heard a
  • bustle and a tread of feet, and Mr. Kenge said that the Court had
  • risen and his lordship was in the next room.
  • The gentleman in the bag wig opened the door almost directly and
  • requested Mr. Kenge to come in. Upon that, we all went into the next
  • room, Mr. Kenge first, with my darling--it is so natural to me now
  • that I can't help writing it; and there, plainly dressed in black and
  • sitting in an arm-chair at a table near the fire, was his lordship,
  • whose robe, trimmed with beautiful gold lace, was thrown upon another
  • chair. He gave us a searching look as we entered, but his manner was
  • both courtly and kind.
  • The gentleman in the bag wig laid bundles of papers on his lordship's
  • table, and his lordship silently selected one and turned over the
  • leaves.
  • "Miss Clare," said the Lord Chancellor. "Miss Ada Clare?"
  • Mr. Kenge presented her, and his lordship begged her to sit down near
  • him. That he admired her and was interested by her even I could see
  • in a moment. It touched me that the home of such a beautiful young
  • creature should be represented by that dry, official place. The Lord
  • High Chancellor, at his best, appeared so poor a substitute for the
  • love and pride of parents.
  • "The Jarndyce in question," said the Lord Chancellor, still turning
  • over leaves, "is Jarndyce of Bleak House."
  • "Jarndyce of Bleak House, my lord," said Mr. Kenge.
  • "A dreary name," said the Lord Chancellor.
  • "But not a dreary place at present, my lord," said Mr. Kenge.
  • "And Bleak House," said his lordship, "is in--"
  • "Hertfordshire, my lord."
  • "Mr. Jarndyce of Bleak House is not married?" said his lordship.
  • "He is not, my lord," said Mr. Kenge.
  • A pause.
  • "Young Mr. Richard Carstone is present?" said the Lord Chancellor,
  • glancing towards him.
  • Richard bowed and stepped forward.
  • "Hum!" said the Lord Chancellor, turning over more leaves.
  • "Mr. Jarndyce of Bleak House, my lord," Mr. Kenge observed in a low
  • voice, "if I may venture to remind your lordship, provides a suitable
  • companion for--"
  • "For Mr. Richard Carstone?" I thought (but I am not quite sure) I
  • heard his lordship say in an equally low voice and with a smile.
  • "For Miss Ada Clare. This is the young lady. Miss Summerson."
  • His lordship gave me an indulgent look and acknowledged my curtsy
  • very graciously.
  • "Miss Summerson is not related to any party in the cause, I think?"
  • "No, my lord."
  • Mr. Kenge leant over before it was quite said and whispered. His
  • lordship, with his eyes upon his papers, listened, nodded twice or
  • thrice, turned over more leaves, and did not look towards me again
  • until we were going away.
  • Mr. Kenge now retired, and Richard with him, to where I was, near the
  • door, leaving my pet (it is so natural to me that again I can't help
  • it!) sitting near the Lord Chancellor, with whom his lordship spoke a
  • little part, asking her, as she told me afterwards, whether she had
  • well reflected on the proposed arrangement, and if she thought she
  • would be happy under the roof of Mr. Jarndyce of Bleak House, and why
  • she thought so? Presently he rose courteously and released her, and
  • then he spoke for a minute or two with Richard Carstone, not seated,
  • but standing, and altogether with more ease and less ceremony, as if
  • he still knew, though he WAS Lord Chancellor, how to go straight to
  • the candour of a boy.
  • "Very well!" said his lordship aloud. "I shall make the order. Mr.
  • Jarndyce of Bleak House has chosen, so far as I may judge," and this
  • was when he looked at me, "a very good companion for the young lady,
  • and the arrangement altogether seems the best of which the
  • circumstances admit."
  • He dismissed us pleasantly, and we all went out, very much obliged to
  • him for being so affable and polite, by which he had certainly lost
  • no dignity but seemed to us to have gained some.
  • When we got under the colonnade, Mr. Kenge remembered that he must go
  • back for a moment to ask a question and left us in the fog, with the
  • Lord Chancellor's carriage and servants waiting for him to come out.
  • "Well!" said Richard Carstone. "THAT'S over! And where do we go next,
  • Miss Summerson?"
  • "Don't you know?" I said.
  • "Not in the least," said he.
  • "And don't YOU know, my love?" I asked Ada.
  • "No!" said she. "Don't you?"
  • "Not at all!" said I.
  • We looked at one another, half laughing at our being like the
  • children in the wood, when a curious little old woman in a squeezed
  • bonnet and carrying a reticule came curtsying and smiling up to us
  • with an air of great ceremony.
  • "Oh!" said she. "The wards in Jarndyce! Ve-ry happy, I am sure, to
  • have the honour! It is a good omen for youth, and hope, and beauty
  • when they find themselves in this place, and don't know what's to
  • come of it."
  • "Mad!" whispered Richard, not thinking she could hear him.
  • "Right! Mad, young gentleman," she returned so quickly that he was
  • quite abashed. "I was a ward myself. I was not mad at that time,"
  • curtsying low and smiling between every little sentence. "I had youth
  • and hope. I believe, beauty. It matters very little now. Neither of
  • the three served or saved me. I have the honour to attend court
  • regularly. With my documents. I expect a judgment. Shortly. On the
  • Day of Judgment. I have discovered that the sixth seal mentioned in
  • the Revelations is the Great Seal. It has been open a long time! Pray
  • accept my blessing."
  • As Ada was a little frightened, I said, to humour the poor old lady,
  • that we were much obliged to her.
  • "Ye-es!" she said mincingly. "I imagine so. And here is Conversation
  • Kenge. With HIS documents! How does your honourable worship do?"
  • "Quite well, quite well! Now don't be troublesome, that's a good
  • soul!" said Mr. Kenge, leading the way back.
  • "By no means," said the poor old lady, keeping up with Ada and me.
  • "Anything but troublesome. I shall confer estates on both--which is
  • not being troublesome, I trust? I expect a judgment. Shortly. On the
  • Day of Judgment. This is a good omen for you. Accept my blessing!"
  • She stopped at the bottom of the steep, broad flight of stairs; but
  • we looked back as we went up, and she was still there, saying, still
  • with a curtsy and a smile between every little sentence, "Youth. And
  • hope. And beauty. And Chancery. And Conversation Kenge! Ha! Pray
  • accept my blessing!"
  • CHAPTER IV
  • Telescopic Philanthropy
  • We were to pass the night, Mr. Kenge told us when we arrived in his
  • room, at Mrs. Jellyby's; and then he turned to me and said he took it
  • for granted I knew who Mrs. Jellyby was.
  • "I really don't, sir," I returned. "Perhaps Mr. Carstone--or Miss
  • Clare--"
  • But no, they knew nothing whatever about Mrs. Jellyby. "In-deed! Mrs.
  • Jellyby," said Mr. Kenge, standing with his back to the fire and
  • casting his eyes over the dusty hearth-rug as if it were Mrs.
  • Jellyby's biography, "is a lady of very remarkable strength of
  • character who devotes herself entirely to the public. She has devoted
  • herself to an extensive variety of public subjects at various times
  • and is at present (until something else attracts her) devoted to the
  • subject of Africa, with a view to the general cultivation of the
  • coffee berry--AND the natives--and the happy settlement, on the banks
  • of the African rivers, of our superabundant home population. Mr.
  • Jarndyce, who is desirous to aid any work that is considered likely
  • to be a good work and who is much sought after by philanthropists,
  • has, I believe, a very high opinion of Mrs. Jellyby."
  • Mr. Kenge, adjusting his cravat, then looked at us.
  • "And Mr. Jellyby, sir?" suggested Richard.
  • "Ah! Mr. Jellyby," said Mr. Kenge, "is--a--I don't know that I can
  • describe him to you better than by saying that he is the husband of
  • Mrs. Jellyby."
  • "A nonentity, sir?" said Richard with a droll look.
  • "I don't say that," returned Mr. Kenge gravely. "I can't say that,
  • indeed, for I know nothing whatever OF Mr. Jellyby. I never, to my
  • knowledge, had the pleasure of seeing Mr. Jellyby. He may be a very
  • superior man, but he is, so to speak, merged--merged--in the more
  • shining qualities of his wife." Mr. Kenge proceeded to tell us that
  • as the road to Bleak House would have been very long, dark, and
  • tedious on such an evening, and as we had been travelling already,
  • Mr. Jarndyce had himself proposed this arrangement. A carriage would
  • be at Mrs. Jellyby's to convey us out of town early in the forenoon
  • of to-morrow.
  • He then rang a little bell, and the young gentleman came in.
  • Addressing him by the name of Guppy, Mr. Kenge inquired whether Miss
  • Summerson's boxes and the rest of the baggage had been "sent round."
  • Mr. Guppy said yes, they had been sent round, and a coach was waiting
  • to take us round too as soon as we pleased.
  • "Then it only remains," said Mr. Kenge, shaking hands with us, "for
  • me to express my lively satisfaction in (good day, Miss Clare!) the
  • arrangement this day concluded and my (GOOD-bye to you, Miss
  • Summerson!) lively hope that it will conduce to the happiness, the
  • (glad to have had the honour of making your acquaintance, Mr.
  • Carstone!) welfare, the advantage in all points of view, of all
  • concerned! Guppy, see the party safely there."
  • "Where IS 'there,' Mr. Guppy?" said Richard as we went downstairs.
  • "No distance," said Mr. Guppy; "round in Thavies Inn, you know."
  • "I can't say I know where it is, for I come from Winchester and am
  • strange in London."
  • "Only round the corner," said Mr. Guppy. "We just twist up Chancery
  • Lane, and cut along Holborn, and there we are in four minutes' time,
  • as near as a toucher. This is about a London particular NOW, ain't
  • it, miss?" He seemed quite delighted with it on my account.
  • "The fog is very dense indeed!" said I.
  • "Not that it affects you, though, I'm sure," said Mr. Guppy, putting
  • up the steps. "On the contrary, it seems to do you good, miss,
  • judging from your appearance."
  • I knew he meant well in paying me this compliment, so I laughed at
  • myself for blushing at it when he had shut the door and got upon the
  • box; and we all three laughed and chatted about our inexperience and
  • the strangeness of London until we turned up under an archway to our
  • destination--a narrow street of high houses like an oblong cistern to
  • hold the fog. There was a confused little crowd of people,
  • principally children, gathered about the house at which we stopped,
  • which had a tarnished brass plate on the door with the inscription
  • JELLYBY.
  • "Don't be frightened!" said Mr. Guppy, looking in at the
  • coach-window. "One of the young Jellybys been and got his head
  • through the area railings!"
  • "Oh, poor child," said I; "let me out, if you please!"
  • "Pray be careful of yourself, miss. The young Jellybys are always up
  • to something," said Mr. Guppy.
  • I made my way to the poor child, who was one of the dirtiest little
  • unfortunates I ever saw, and found him very hot and frightened and
  • crying loudly, fixed by the neck between two iron railings, while a
  • milkman and a beadle, with the kindest intentions possible, were
  • endeavouring to drag him back by the legs, under a general impression
  • that his skull was compressible by those means. As I found (after
  • pacifying him) that he was a little boy with a naturally large head,
  • I thought that perhaps where his head could go, his body could
  • follow, and mentioned that the best mode of extrication might be to
  • push him forward. This was so favourably received by the milkman and
  • beadle that he would immediately have been pushed into the area if I
  • had not held his pinafore while Richard and Mr. Guppy ran down
  • through the kitchen to catch him when he should be released. At last
  • he was happily got down without any accident, and then he began to
  • beat Mr. Guppy with a hoop-stick in quite a frantic manner.
  • Nobody had appeared belonging to the house except a person in
  • pattens, who had been poking at the child from below with a broom; I
  • don't know with what object, and I don't think she did. I therefore
  • supposed that Mrs. Jellyby was not at home, and was quite surprised
  • when the person appeared in the passage without the pattens, and
  • going up to the back room on the first floor before Ada and me,
  • announced us as, "Them two young ladies, Missis Jellyby!" We passed
  • several more children on the way up, whom it was difficult to avoid
  • treading on in the dark; and as we came into Mrs. Jellyby's presence,
  • one of the poor little things fell downstairs--down a whole flight
  • (as it sounded to me), with a great noise.
  • Mrs. Jellyby, whose face reflected none of the uneasiness which we
  • could not help showing in our own faces as the dear child's head
  • recorded its passage with a bump on every stair--Richard afterwards
  • said he counted seven, besides one for the landing--received us with
  • perfect equanimity. She was a pretty, very diminutive, plump woman of
  • from forty to fifty, with handsome eyes, though they had a curious
  • habit of seeming to look a long way off. As if--I am quoting Richard
  • again--they could see nothing nearer than Africa!
  • "I am very glad indeed," said Mrs. Jellyby in an agreeable voice, "to
  • have the pleasure of receiving you. I have a great respect for Mr.
  • Jarndyce, and no one in whom he is interested can be an object of
  • indifference to me."
  • We expressed our acknowledgments and sat down behind the door, where
  • there was a lame invalid of a sofa. Mrs. Jellyby had very good hair
  • but was too much occupied with her African duties to brush it. The
  • shawl in which she had been loosely muffled dropped onto her chair
  • when she advanced to us; and as she turned to resume her seat, we
  • could not help noticing that her dress didn't nearly meet up the back
  • and that the open space was railed across with a lattice-work of
  • stay-lace--like a summer-house.
  • The room, which was strewn with papers and nearly filled by a great
  • writing-table covered with similar litter, was, I must say, not only
  • very untidy but very dirty. We were obliged to take notice of that
  • with our sense of sight, even while, with our sense of hearing, we
  • followed the poor child who had tumbled downstairs: I think into the
  • back kitchen, where somebody seemed to stifle him.
  • But what principally struck us was a jaded and unhealthy-looking
  • though by no means plain girl at the writing-table, who sat biting
  • the feather of her pen and staring at us. I suppose nobody ever was
  • in such a state of ink. And from her tumbled hair to her pretty feet,
  • which were disfigured with frayed and broken satin slippers trodden
  • down at heel, she really seemed to have no article of dress upon her,
  • from a pin upwards, that was in its proper condition or its right
  • place.
  • "You find me, my dears," said Mrs. Jellyby, snuffing the two great
  • office candles in tin candlesticks, which made the room taste
  • strongly of hot tallow (the fire had gone out, and there was nothing
  • in the grate but ashes, a bundle of wood, and a poker), "you find me,
  • my dears, as usual, very busy; but that you will excuse. The African
  • project at present employs my whole time. It involves me in
  • correspondence with public bodies and with private individuals
  • anxious for the welfare of their species all over the country. I am
  • happy to say it is advancing. We hope by this time next year to have
  • from a hundred and fifty to two hundred healthy families cultivating
  • coffee and educating the natives of Borrioboola-Gha, on the left bank
  • of the Niger."
  • As Ada said nothing, but looked at me, I said it must be very
  • gratifying.
  • "It IS gratifying," said Mrs. Jellyby. "It involves the devotion of
  • all my energies, such as they are; but that is nothing, so that it
  • succeeds; and I am more confident of success every day. Do you know,
  • Miss Summerson, I almost wonder that YOU never turned your thoughts
  • to Africa."
  • This application of the subject was really so unexpected to me that I
  • was quite at a loss how to receive it. I hinted that the climate--
  • "The finest climate in the world!" said Mrs. Jellyby.
  • "Indeed, ma'am?"
  • "Certainly. With precaution," said Mrs. Jellyby. "You may go into
  • Holborn, without precaution, and be run over. You may go into
  • Holborn, with precaution, and never be run over. Just so with
  • Africa."
  • I said, "No doubt." I meant as to Holborn.
  • "If you would like," said Mrs. Jellyby, putting a number of papers
  • towards us, "to look over some remarks on that head, and on the
  • general subject, which have been extensively circulated, while I
  • finish a letter I am now dictating to my eldest daughter, who is my
  • amanuensis--"
  • The girl at the table left off biting her pen and made a return to
  • our recognition, which was half bashful and half sulky.
  • "--I shall then have finished for the present," proceeded Mrs.
  • Jellyby with a sweet smile, "though my work is never done. Where are
  • you, Caddy?"
  • "'Presents her compliments to Mr. Swallow, and begs--'" said Caddy.
  • "'And begs,'" said Mrs. Jellyby, dictating, "'to inform him, in
  • reference to his letter of inquiry on the African project--' No,
  • Peepy! Not on my account!"
  • Peepy (so self-named) was the unfortunate child who had fallen
  • downstairs, who now interrupted the correspondence by presenting
  • himself, with a strip of plaster on his forehead, to exhibit his
  • wounded knees, in which Ada and I did not know which to pity
  • most--the bruises or the dirt. Mrs. Jellyby merely added, with the
  • serene composure with which she said everything, "Go along, you
  • naughty Peepy!" and fixed her fine eyes on Africa again.
  • However, as she at once proceeded with her dictation, and as I
  • interrupted nothing by doing it, I ventured quietly to stop poor
  • Peepy as he was going out and to take him up to nurse. He looked very
  • much astonished at it and at Ada's kissing him, but soon fell fast
  • asleep in my arms, sobbing at longer and longer intervals, until he
  • was quiet. I was so occupied with Peepy that I lost the letter in
  • detail, though I derived such a general impression from it of the
  • momentous importance of Africa, and the utter insignificance of all
  • other places and things, that I felt quite ashamed to have thought so
  • little about it.
  • "Six o'clock!" said Mrs. Jellyby. "And our dinner hour is nominally
  • (for we dine at all hours) five! Caddy, show Miss Clare and Miss
  • Summerson their rooms. You will like to make some change, perhaps?
  • You will excuse me, I know, being so much occupied. Oh, that very bad
  • child! Pray put him down, Miss Summerson!"
  • I begged permission to retain him, truly saying that he was not at
  • all troublesome, and carried him upstairs and laid him on my bed. Ada
  • and I had two upper rooms with a door of communication between. They
  • were excessively bare and disorderly, and the curtain to my window
  • was fastened up with a fork.
  • "You would like some hot water, wouldn't you?" said Miss Jellyby,
  • looking round for a jug with a handle to it, but looking in vain.
  • "If it is not being troublesome," said we.
  • "Oh, it's not the trouble," returned Miss Jellyby; "the question is,
  • if there IS any."
  • The evening was so very cold and the rooms had such a marshy smell
  • that I must confess it was a little miserable, and Ada was half
  • crying. We soon laughed, however, and were busily unpacking when Miss
  • Jellyby came back to say that she was sorry there was no hot water,
  • but they couldn't find the kettle, and the boiler was out of order.
  • We begged her not to mention it and made all the haste we could to
  • get down to the fire again. But all the little children had come up
  • to the landing outside to look at the phenomenon of Peepy lying on my
  • bed, and our attention was distracted by the constant apparition of
  • noses and fingers in situations of danger between the hinges of the
  • doors. It was impossible to shut the door of either room, for my
  • lock, with no knob to it, looked as if it wanted to be wound up; and
  • though the handle of Ada's went round and round with the greatest
  • smoothness, it was attended with no effect whatever on the door.
  • Therefore I proposed to the children that they should come in and be
  • very good at my table, and I would tell them the story of Little Red
  • Riding Hood while I dressed; which they did, and were as quiet as
  • mice, including Peepy, who awoke opportunely before the appearance of
  • the wolf.
  • When we went downstairs we found a mug with "A Present from Tunbridge
  • Wells" on it lighted up in the staircase window with a floating wick,
  • and a young woman, with a swelled face bound up in a flannel bandage
  • blowing the fire of the drawing-room (now connected by an open door
  • with Mrs. Jellyby's room) and choking dreadfully. It smoked to that
  • degree, in short, that we all sat coughing and crying with the
  • windows open for half an hour, during which Mrs. Jellyby, with the
  • same sweetness of temper, directed letters about Africa. Her being so
  • employed was, I must say, a great relief to me, for Richard told us
  • that he had washed his hands in a pie-dish and that they had found
  • the kettle on his dressing-table, and he made Ada laugh so that they
  • made me laugh in the most ridiculous manner.
  • Soon after seven o'clock we went down to dinner, carefully, by Mrs.
  • Jellyby's advice, for the stair-carpets, besides being very deficient
  • in stair-wires, were so torn as to be absolute traps. We had a fine
  • cod-fish, a piece of roast beef, a dish of cutlets, and a pudding; an
  • excellent dinner, if it had had any cooking to speak of, but it was
  • almost raw. The young woman with the flannel bandage waited, and
  • dropped everything on the table wherever it happened to go, and never
  • moved it again until she put it on the stairs. The person I had seen
  • in pattens, who I suppose to have been the cook, frequently came and
  • skirmished with her at the door, and there appeared to be ill will
  • between them.
  • All through dinner--which was long, in consequence of such accidents
  • as the dish of potatoes being mislaid in the coal skuttle and the
  • handle of the corkscrew coming off and striking the young woman in
  • the chin--Mrs. Jellyby preserved the evenness of her disposition. She
  • told us a great deal that was interesting about Borrioboola-Gha and
  • the natives, and received so many letters that Richard, who sat by
  • her, saw four envelopes in the gravy at once. Some of the letters
  • were proceedings of ladies' committees or resolutions of ladies'
  • meetings, which she read to us; others were applications from people
  • excited in various ways about the cultivation of coffee, and natives;
  • others required answers, and these she sent her eldest daughter from
  • the table three or four times to write. She was full of business and
  • undoubtedly was, as she had told us, devoted to the cause.
  • I was a little curious to know who a mild bald gentleman in
  • spectacles was, who dropped into a vacant chair (there was no top or
  • bottom in particular) after the fish was taken away and seemed
  • passively to submit himself to Borrioboola-Gha but not to be actively
  • interested in that settlement. As he never spoke a word, he might
  • have been a native but for his complexion. It was not until we left
  • the table and he remained alone with Richard that the possibility of
  • his being Mr. Jellyby ever entered my head. But he WAS Mr. Jellyby;
  • and a loquacious young man called Mr. Quale, with large shining knobs
  • for temples and his hair all brushed to the back of his head, who
  • came in the evening, and told Ada he was a philanthropist, also
  • informed her that he called the matrimonial alliance of Mrs. Jellyby
  • with Mr. Jellyby the union of mind and matter.
  • This young man, besides having a great deal to say for himself about
  • Africa and a project of his for teaching the coffee colonists to
  • teach the natives to turn piano-forte legs and establish an export
  • trade, delighted in drawing Mrs. Jellyby out by saying, "I believe
  • now, Mrs. Jellyby, you have received as many as from one hundred and
  • fifty to two hundred letters respecting Africa in a single day, have
  • you not?" or, "If my memory does not deceive me, Mrs. Jellyby, you
  • once mentioned that you had sent off five thousand circulars from one
  • post-office at one time?"--always repeating Mrs. Jellyby's answer to
  • us like an interpreter. During the whole evening, Mr. Jellyby sat in
  • a corner with his head against the wall as if he were subject to low
  • spirits. It seemed that he had several times opened his mouth when
  • alone with Richard after dinner, as if he had something on his mind,
  • but had always shut it again, to Richard's extreme confusion, without
  • saying anything.
  • Mrs. Jellyby, sitting in quite a nest of waste paper, drank coffee
  • all the evening and dictated at intervals to her eldest daughter. She
  • also held a discussion with Mr. Quale, of which the subject seemed to
  • be--if I understood it--the brotherhood of humanity, and gave
  • utterance to some beautiful sentiments. I was not so attentive an
  • auditor as I might have wished to be, however, for Peepy and the
  • other children came flocking about Ada and me in a corner of the
  • drawing-room to ask for another story; so we sat down among them and
  • told them in whispers "Puss in Boots" and I don't know what else
  • until Mrs. Jellyby, accidentally remembering them, sent them to bed.
  • As Peepy cried for me to take him to bed, I carried him upstairs,
  • where the young woman with the flannel bandage charged into the midst
  • of the little family like a dragon and overturned them into cribs.
  • After that I occupied myself in making our room a little tidy and in
  • coaxing a very cross fire that had been lighted to burn, which at
  • last it did, quite brightly. On my return downstairs, I felt that
  • Mrs. Jellyby looked down upon me rather for being so frivolous, and I
  • was sorry for it, though at the same time I knew that I had no higher
  • pretensions.
  • It was nearly midnight before we found an opportunity of going to
  • bed, and even then we left Mrs. Jellyby among her papers drinking
  • coffee and Miss Jellyby biting the feather of her pen.
  • "What a strange house!" said Ada when we got upstairs. "How curious
  • of my cousin Jarndyce to send us here!"
  • "My love," said I, "it quite confuses me. I want to understand it,
  • and I can't understand it at all."
  • "What?" asked Ada with her pretty smile.
  • "All this, my dear," said I. "It MUST be very good of Mrs. Jellyby to
  • take such pains about a scheme for the benefit of natives--and
  • yet--Peepy and the housekeeping!"
  • Ada laughed and put her arm about my neck as I stood looking at the
  • fire, and told me I was a quiet, dear, good creature and had won her
  • heart. "You are so thoughtful, Esther," she said, "and yet so
  • cheerful! And you do so much, so unpretendingly! You would make a
  • home out of even this house."
  • My simple darling! She was quite unconscious that she only praised
  • herself and that it was in the goodness of her own heart that she
  • made so much of me!
  • "May I ask you a question?" said I when we had sat before the fire a
  • little while.
  • "Five hundred," said Ada.
  • "Your cousin, Mr. Jarndyce. I owe so much to him. Would you mind
  • describing him to me?"
  • Shaking her golden hair, Ada turned her eyes upon me with such
  • laughing wonder that I was full of wonder too, partly at her beauty,
  • partly at her surprise.
  • "Esther!" she cried.
  • "My dear!"
  • "You want a description of my cousin Jarndyce?"
  • "My dear, I never saw him."
  • "And I never saw him!" returned Ada.
  • Well, to be sure!
  • No, she had never seen him. Young as she was when her mama died, she
  • remembered how the tears would come into her eyes when she spoke of
  • him and of the noble generosity of his character, which she had said
  • was to be trusted above all earthly things; and Ada trusted it. Her
  • cousin Jarndyce had written to her a few months ago--"a plain, honest
  • letter," Ada said--proposing the arrangement we were now to enter on
  • and telling her that "in time it might heal some of the wounds made
  • by the miserable Chancery suit." She had replied, gratefully
  • accepting his proposal. Richard had received a similar letter and had
  • made a similar response. He HAD seen Mr. Jarndyce once, but only
  • once, five years ago, at Winchester school. He had told Ada, when
  • they were leaning on the screen before the fire where I found them,
  • that he recollected him as "a bluff, rosy fellow." This was the
  • utmost description Ada could give me.
  • It set me thinking so that when Ada was asleep, I still remained
  • before the fire, wondering and wondering about Bleak House, and
  • wondering and wondering that yesterday morning should seem so long
  • ago. I don't know where my thoughts had wandered when they were
  • recalled by a tap at the door.
  • I opened it softly and found Miss Jellyby shivering there with a
  • broken candle in a broken candlestick in one hand and an egg-cup in
  • the other.
  • "Good night!" she said very sulkily.
  • "Good night!" said I.
  • "May I come in?" she shortly and unexpectedly asked me in the same
  • sulky way.
  • "Certainly," said I. "Don't wake Miss Clare."
  • She would not sit down, but stood by the fire dipping her inky middle
  • finger in the egg-cup, which contained vinegar, and smearing it over
  • the ink stains on her face, frowning the whole time and looking very
  • gloomy.
  • "I wish Africa was dead!" she said on a sudden.
  • I was going to remonstrate.
  • "I do!" she said "Don't talk to me, Miss Summerson. I hate it and
  • detest it. It's a beast!"
  • I told her she was tired, and I was sorry. I put my hand upon her
  • head, and touched her forehead, and said it was hot now but would be
  • cool to-morrow. She still stood pouting and frowning at me, but
  • presently put down her egg-cup and turned softly towards the bed
  • where Ada lay.
  • "She is very pretty!" she said with the same knitted brow and in the
  • same uncivil manner.
  • I assented with a smile.
  • "An orphan. Ain't she?"
  • "Yes."
  • "But knows a quantity, I suppose? Can dance, and play music, and
  • sing? She can talk French, I suppose, and do geography, and globes,
  • and needlework, and everything?"
  • "No doubt," said I.
  • "I can't," she returned. "I can't do anything hardly, except write.
  • I'm always writing for Ma. I wonder you two were not ashamed of
  • yourselves to come in this afternoon and see me able to do nothing
  • else. It was like your ill nature. Yet you think yourselves very
  • fine, I dare say!"
  • I could see that the poor girl was near crying, and I resumed my
  • chair without speaking and looked at her (I hope) as mildly as I felt
  • towards her.
  • "It's disgraceful," she said. "You know it is. The whole house is
  • disgraceful. The children are disgraceful. I'M disgraceful. Pa's
  • miserable, and no wonder! Priscilla drinks--she's always drinking.
  • It's a great shame and a great story of you if you say you didn't
  • smell her to-day. It was as bad as a public-house, waiting at dinner;
  • you know it was!"
  • "My dear, I don't know it," said I.
  • "You do," she said very shortly. "You shan't say you don't. You do!"
  • "Oh, my dear!" said I. "If you won't let me speak--"
  • "You're speaking now. You know you are. Don't tell stories, Miss
  • Summerson."
  • "My dear," said I, "as long as you won't hear me out--"
  • "I don't want to hear you out."
  • "Oh, yes, I think you do," said I, "because that would be so very
  • unreasonable. I did not know what you tell me because the servant did
  • not come near me at dinner; but I don't doubt what you tell me, and I
  • am sorry to hear it."
  • "You needn't make a merit of that," said she.
  • "No, my dear," said I. "That would be very foolish."
  • She was still standing by the bed, and now stooped down (but still
  • with the same discontented face) and kissed Ada. That done, she came
  • softly back and stood by the side of my chair. Her bosom was heaving
  • in a distressful manner that I greatly pitied, but I thought it
  • better not to speak.
  • "I wish I was dead!" she broke out. "I wish we were all dead. It
  • would be a great deal better for us."
  • In a moment afterwards, she knelt on the ground at my side, hid her
  • face in my dress, passionately begged my pardon, and wept. I
  • comforted her and would have raised her, but she cried no, no; she
  • wanted to stay there!
  • "You used to teach girls," she said, "If you could only have taught
  • me, I could have learnt from you! I am so very miserable, and I like
  • you so much!"
  • I could not persuade her to sit by me or to do anything but move a
  • ragged stool to where she was kneeling, and take that, and still hold
  • my dress in the same manner. By degrees the poor tired girl fell
  • asleep, and then I contrived to raise her head so that it should rest
  • on my lap, and to cover us both with shawls. The fire went out, and
  • all night long she slumbered thus before the ashy grate. At first I
  • was painfully awake and vainly tried to lose myself, with my eyes
  • closed, among the scenes of the day. At length, by slow degrees, they
  • became indistinct and mingled. I began to lose the identity of the
  • sleeper resting on me. Now it was Ada, now one of my old Reading
  • friends from whom I could not believe I had so recently parted. Now
  • it was the little mad woman worn out with curtsying and smiling, now
  • some one in authority at Bleak House. Lastly, it was no one, and I
  • was no one.
  • The purblind day was feebly struggling with the fog when I opened my
  • eyes to encounter those of a dirty-faced little spectre fixed upon
  • me. Peepy had scaled his crib, and crept down in his bed-gown and
  • cap, and was so cold that his teeth were chattering as if he had cut
  • them all.
  • CHAPTER V
  • A Morning Adventure
  • Although the morning was raw, and although the fog still seemed
  • heavy--I say seemed, for the windows were so encrusted with dirt that
  • they would have made midsummer sunshine dim--I was sufficiently
  • forewarned of the discomfort within doors at that early hour and
  • sufficiently curious about London to think it a good idea on the part
  • of Miss Jellyby when she proposed that we should go out for a walk.
  • "Ma won't be down for ever so long," she said, "and then it's a
  • chance if breakfast's ready for an hour afterwards, they dawdle so.
  • As to Pa, he gets what he can and goes to the office. He never has
  • what you would call a regular breakfast. Priscilla leaves him out the
  • loaf and some milk, when there is any, overnight. Sometimes there
  • isn't any milk, and sometimes the cat drinks it. But I'm afraid you
  • must be tired, Miss Summerson, and perhaps you would rather go to
  • bed."
  • "I am not at all tired, my dear," said I, "and would much prefer to
  • go out."
  • "If you're sure you would," returned Miss Jellyby, "I'll get my
  • things on."
  • Ada said she would go too, and was soon astir. I made a proposal to
  • Peepy, in default of being able to do anything better for him, that
  • he should let me wash him and afterwards lay him down on my bed
  • again. To this he submitted with the best grace possible, staring at
  • me during the whole operation as if he never had been, and never
  • could again be, so astonished in his life--looking very miserable
  • also, certainly, but making no complaint, and going snugly to sleep
  • as soon as it was over. At first I was in two minds about taking such
  • a liberty, but I soon reflected that nobody in the house was likely
  • to notice it.
  • What with the bustle of dispatching Peepy and the bustle of getting
  • myself ready and helping Ada, I was soon quite in a glow. We found
  • Miss Jellyby trying to warm herself at the fire in the writing-room,
  • which Priscilla was then lighting with a smutty parlour candlestick,
  • throwing the candle in to make it burn better. Everything was just as
  • we had left it last night and was evidently intended to remain so.
  • Below-stairs the dinner-cloth had not been taken away, but had been
  • left ready for breakfast. Crumbs, dust, and waste-paper were all over
  • the house. Some pewter pots and a milk-can hung on the area railings;
  • the door stood open; and we met the cook round the corner coming out
  • of a public-house, wiping her mouth. She mentioned, as she passed us,
  • that she had been to see what o'clock it was.
  • But before we met the cook, we met Richard, who was dancing up and
  • down Thavies Inn to warm his feet. He was agreeably surprised to see
  • us stirring so soon and said he would gladly share our walk. So he
  • took care of Ada, and Miss Jellyby and I went first. I may mention
  • that Miss Jellyby had relapsed into her sulky manner and that I
  • really should not have thought she liked me much unless she had told
  • me so.
  • "Where would you wish to go?" she asked.
  • "Anywhere, my dear," I replied.
  • "Anywhere's nowhere," said Miss Jellyby, stopping perversely.
  • "Let us go somewhere at any rate," said I.
  • She then walked me on very fast.
  • "I don't care!" she said. "Now, you are my witness, Miss Summerson, I
  • say I don't care--but if he was to come to our house with his great,
  • shining, lumpy forehead night after night till he was as old as
  • Methuselah, I wouldn't have anything to say to him. Such ASSES as he
  • and Ma make of themselves!"
  • "My dear!" I remonstrated, in allusion to the epithet and the
  • vigorous emphasis Miss Jellyby set upon it. "Your duty as a child--"
  • "Oh! Don't talk of duty as a child, Miss Summerson; where's Ma's duty
  • as a parent? All made over to the public and Africa, I suppose! Then
  • let the public and Africa show duty as a child; it's much more their
  • affair than mine. You are shocked, I dare say! Very well, so am I
  • shocked too; so we are both shocked, and there's an end of it!"
  • She walked me on faster yet.
  • "But for all that, I say again, he may come, and come, and come, and
  • I won't have anything to say to him. I can't bear him. If there's any
  • stuff in the world that I hate and detest, it's the stuff he and Ma
  • talk. I wonder the very paving-stones opposite our house can have the
  • patience to stay there and be a witness of such inconsistencies and
  • contradictions as all that sounding nonsense, and Ma's management!"
  • I could not but understand her to refer to Mr. Quale, the young
  • gentleman who had appeared after dinner yesterday. I was saved the
  • disagreeable necessity of pursuing the subject by Richard and Ada
  • coming up at a round pace, laughing and asking us if we meant to run
  • a race. Thus interrupted, Miss Jellyby became silent and walked
  • moodily on at my side while I admired the long successions and
  • varieties of streets, the quantity of people already going to and
  • fro, the number of vehicles passing and repassing, the busy
  • preparations in the setting forth of shop windows and the sweeping
  • out of shops, and the extraordinary creatures in rags secretly
  • groping among the swept-out rubbish for pins and other refuse.
  • "So, cousin," said the cheerful voice of Richard to Ada behind me.
  • "We are never to get out of Chancery! We have come by another way to
  • our place of meeting yesterday, and--by the Great Seal, here's the
  • old lady again!"
  • Truly, there she was, immediately in front of us, curtsying, and
  • smiling, and saying with her yesterday's air of patronage, "The wards
  • in Jarndyce! Ve-ry happy, I am sure!"
  • "You are out early, ma'am," said I as she curtsied to me.
  • "Ye-es! I usually walk here early. Before the court sits. It's
  • retired. I collect my thoughts here for the business of the day,"
  • said the old lady mincingly. "The business of the day requires a
  • great deal of thought. Chancery justice is so ve-ry difficult to
  • follow."
  • "Who's this, Miss Summerson?" whispered Miss Jellyby, drawing my arm
  • tighter through her own.
  • The little old lady's hearing was remarkably quick. She answered for
  • herself directly.
  • "A suitor, my child. At your service. I have the honour to attend
  • court regularly. With my documents. Have I the pleasure of addressing
  • another of the youthful parties in Jarndyce?" said the old lady,
  • recovering herself, with her head on one side, from a very low
  • curtsy.
  • Richard, anxious to atone for his thoughtlessness of yesterday,
  • good-naturedly explained that Miss Jellyby was not connected with the
  • suit.
  • "Ha!" said the old lady. "She does not expect a judgment? She will
  • still grow old. But not so old. Oh, dear, no! This is the garden of
  • Lincoln's Inn. I call it my garden. It is quite a bower in the
  • summer-time. Where the birds sing melodiously. I pass the greater
  • part of the long vacation here. In contemplation. You find the long
  • vacation exceedingly long, don't you?"
  • We said yes, as she seemed to expect us to say so.
  • "When the leaves are falling from the trees and there are no more
  • flowers in bloom to make up into nosegays for the Lord Chancellor's
  • court," said the old lady, "the vacation is fulfilled and the sixth
  • seal, mentioned in the Revelations, again prevails. Pray come and see
  • my lodging. It will be a good omen for me. Youth, and hope, and
  • beauty are very seldom there. It is a long, long time since I had a
  • visit from either."
  • She had taken my hand, and leading me and Miss Jellyby away, beckoned
  • Richard and Ada to come too. I did not know how to excuse myself and
  • looked to Richard for aid. As he was half amused and half curious and
  • all in doubt how to get rid of the old lady without offence, she
  • continued to lead us away, and he and Ada continued to follow, our
  • strange conductress informing us all the time, with much smiling
  • condescension, that she lived close by.
  • It was quite true, as it soon appeared. She lived so close by that we
  • had not time to have done humouring her for a few moments before she
  • was at home. Slipping us out at a little side gate, the old lady
  • stopped most unexpectedly in a narrow back street, part of some
  • courts and lanes immediately outside the wall of the inn, and said,
  • "This is my lodging. Pray walk up!"
  • She had stopped at a shop over which was written KROOK, RAG AND
  • BOTTLE WAREHOUSE. Also, in long thin letters, KROOK, DEALER IN MARINE
  • STORES. In one part of the window was a picture of a red paper mill
  • at which a cart was unloading a quantity of sacks of old rags. In
  • another was the inscription BONES BOUGHT. In another, KITCHEN-STUFF
  • BOUGHT. In another, OLD IRON BOUGHT. In another, WASTE-PAPER BOUGHT.
  • In another, LADIES' AND GENTLEMEN'S WARDROBES BOUGHT. Everything
  • seemed to be bought and nothing to be sold there. In all parts of the
  • window were quantities of dirty bottles--blacking bottles, medicine
  • bottles, ginger-beer and soda-water bottles, pickle bottles, wine
  • bottles, ink bottles; I am reminded by mentioning the latter that the
  • shop had in several little particulars the air of being in a legal
  • neighbourhood and of being, as it were, a dirty hanger-on and
  • disowned relation of the law. There were a great many ink bottles.
  • There was a little tottering bench of shabby old volumes outside the
  • door, labelled "Law Books, all at 9d." Some of the inscriptions I
  • have enumerated were written in law-hand, like the papers I had seen
  • in Kenge and Carboy's office and the letters I had so long received
  • from the firm. Among them was one, in the same writing, having
  • nothing to do with the business of the shop, but announcing that a
  • respectable man aged forty-five wanted engrossing or copying to
  • execute with neatness and dispatch: Address to Nemo, care of Mr.
  • Krook, within. There were several second-hand bags, blue and red,
  • hanging up. A little way within the shop-door lay heaps of old
  • crackled parchment scrolls and discoloured and dog's-eared
  • law-papers. I could have fancied that all the rusty keys, of which
  • there must have been hundreds huddled together as old iron, had once
  • belonged to doors of rooms or strong chests in lawyers' offices. The
  • litter of rags tumbled partly into and partly out of a one-legged
  • wooden scale, hanging without any counterpoise from a beam, might
  • have been counsellors' bands and gowns torn up. One had only to
  • fancy, as Richard whispered to Ada and me while we all stood looking
  • in, that yonder bones in a corner, piled together and picked very
  • clean, were the bones of clients, to make the picture complete.
  • As it was still foggy and dark, and as the shop was blinded besides
  • by the wall of Lincoln's Inn, intercepting the light within a couple
  • of yards, we should not have seen so much but for a lighted lantern
  • that an old man in spectacles and a hairy cap was carrying about in
  • the shop. Turning towards the door, he now caught sight of us. He was
  • short, cadaverous, and withered, with his head sunk sideways between
  • his shoulders and the breath issuing in visible smoke from his mouth
  • as if he were on fire within. His throat, chin, and eyebrows were so
  • frosted with white hairs and so gnarled with veins and puckered skin
  • that he looked from his breast upward like some old root in a fall of
  • snow.
  • "Hi, hi!" said the old man, coming to the door. "Have you anything to
  • sell?"
  • We naturally drew back and glanced at our conductress, who had been
  • trying to open the house-door with a key she had taken from her
  • pocket, and to whom Richard now said that as we had had the pleasure
  • of seeing where she lived, we would leave her, being pressed for
  • time. But she was not to be so easily left. She became so
  • fantastically and pressingly earnest in her entreaties that we would
  • walk up and see her apartment for an instant, and was so bent, in her
  • harmless way, on leading me in, as part of the good omen she desired,
  • that I (whatever the others might do) saw nothing for it but to
  • comply. I suppose we were all more or less curious; at any rate, when
  • the old man added his persuasions to hers and said, "Aye, aye! Please
  • her! It won't take a minute! Come in, come in! Come in through the
  • shop if t'other door's out of order!" we all went in, stimulated by
  • Richard's laughing encouragement and relying on his protection.
  • "My landlord, Krook," said the little old lady, condescending to him
  • from her lofty station as she presented him to us. "He is called
  • among the neighbours the Lord Chancellor. His shop is called the
  • Court of Chancery. He is a very eccentric person. He is very odd. Oh,
  • I assure you he is very odd!"
  • She shook her head a great many times and tapped her forehead with
  • her finger to express to us that we must have the goodness to excuse
  • him, "For he is a little--you know--M!" said the old lady with great
  • stateliness. The old man overheard, and laughed.
  • "It's true enough," he said, going before us with the lantern, "that
  • they call me the Lord Chancellor and call my shop Chancery. And why
  • do you think they call me the Lord Chancellor and my shop Chancery?"
  • "I don't know, I am sure!" said Richard rather carelessly.
  • "You see," said the old man, stopping and turning round, "they--Hi!
  • Here's lovely hair! I have got three sacks of ladies' hair below, but
  • none so beautiful and fine as this. What colour, and what texture!"
  • "That'll do, my good friend!" said Richard, strongly disapproving of
  • his having drawn one of Ada's tresses through his yellow hand. "You
  • can admire as the rest of us do without taking that liberty."
  • The old man darted at him a sudden look which even called my
  • attention from Ada, who, startled and blushing, was so remarkably
  • beautiful that she seemed to fix the wandering attention of the
  • little old lady herself. But as Ada interposed and laughingly said
  • she could only feel proud of such genuine admiration, Mr. Krook
  • shrunk into his former self as suddenly as he had leaped out of it.
  • "You see, I have so many things here," he resumed, holding up the
  • lantern, "of so many kinds, and all as the neighbours think (but THEY
  • know nothing), wasting away and going to rack and ruin, that that's
  • why they have given me and my place a christening. And I have so many
  • old parchmentses and papers in my stock. And I have a liking for rust
  • and must and cobwebs. And all's fish that comes to my net. And I
  • can't abear to part with anything I once lay hold of (or so my
  • neighbours think, but what do THEY know?) or to alter anything, or to
  • have any sweeping, nor scouring, nor cleaning, nor repairing going on
  • about me. That's the way I've got the ill name of Chancery. I don't
  • mind. I go to see my noble and learned brother pretty well every day,
  • when he sits in the Inn. He don't notice me, but I notice him.
  • There's no great odds betwixt us. We both grub on in a muddle. Hi,
  • Lady Jane!"
  • A large grey cat leaped from some neighbouring shelf on his shoulder
  • and startled us all.
  • "Hi! Show 'em how you scratch. Hi! Tear, my lady!" said her master.
  • The cat leaped down and ripped at a bundle of rags with her tigerish
  • claws, with a sound that it set my teeth on edge to hear.
  • "She'd do as much for any one I was to set her on," said the old man.
  • "I deal in cat-skins among other general matters, and hers was
  • offered to me. It's a very fine skin, as you may see, but I didn't
  • have it stripped off! THAT warn't like Chancery practice though, says
  • you!"
  • He had by this time led us across the shop, and now opened a door in
  • the back part of it, leading to the house-entry. As he stood with his
  • hand upon the lock, the little old lady graciously observed to him
  • before passing out, "That will do, Krook. You mean well, but are
  • tiresome. My young friends are pressed for time. I have none to spare
  • myself, having to attend court very soon. My young friends are the
  • wards in Jarndyce."
  • "Jarndyce!" said the old man with a start.
  • "Jarndyce and Jarndyce. The great suit, Krook," returned his lodger.
  • "Hi!" exclaimed the old man in a tone of thoughtful amazement and
  • with a wider stare than before. "Think of it!"
  • He seemed so rapt all in a moment and looked so curiously at us that
  • Richard said, "Why, you appear to trouble yourself a good deal about
  • the causes before your noble and learned brother, the other
  • Chancellor!"
  • "Yes," said the old man abstractedly. "Sure! YOUR name now will be--"
  • "Richard Carstone."
  • "Carstone," he repeated, slowly checking off that name upon his
  • forefinger; and each of the others he went on to mention upon a
  • separate finger. "Yes. There was the name of Barbary, and the name of
  • Clare, and the name of Dedlock, too, I think."
  • "He knows as much of the cause as the real salaried Chancellor!" said
  • Richard, quite astonished, to Ada and me.
  • "Aye!" said the old man, coming slowly out of his abstraction. "Yes!
  • Tom Jarndyce--you'll excuse me, being related; but he was never known
  • about court by any other name, and was as well known there as--she is
  • now," nodding slightly at his lodger. "Tom Jarndyce was often in
  • here. He got into a restless habit of strolling about when the cause
  • was on, or expected, talking to the little shopkeepers and telling
  • 'em to keep out of Chancery, whatever they did. 'For,' says he, 'it's
  • being ground to bits in a slow mill; it's being roasted at a slow
  • fire; it's being stung to death by single bees; it's being drowned by
  • drops; it's going mad by grains.' He was as near making away with
  • himself, just where the young lady stands, as near could be."
  • We listened with horror.
  • "He come in at the door," said the old man, slowly pointing an
  • imaginary track along the shop, "on the day he did it--the whole
  • neighbourhood had said for months before that he would do it, of a
  • certainty sooner or later--he come in at the door that day, and
  • walked along there, and sat himself on a bench that stood there, and
  • asked me (you'll judge I was a mortal sight younger then) to fetch
  • him a pint of wine. 'For,' says he, 'Krook, I am much depressed; my
  • cause is on again, and I think I'm nearer judgment than I ever was.'
  • I hadn't a mind to leave him alone; and I persuaded him to go to the
  • tavern over the way there, t'other side my lane (I mean Chancery
  • Lane); and I followed and looked in at the window, and saw him,
  • comfortable as I thought, in the arm-chair by the fire, and company
  • with him. I hadn't hardly got back here when I heard a shot go
  • echoing and rattling right away into the inn. I ran out--neighbours
  • ran out--twenty of us cried at once, 'Tom Jarndyce!'"
  • The old man stopped, looked hard at us, looked down into the lantern,
  • blew the light out, and shut the lantern up.
  • "We were right, I needn't tell the present hearers. Hi! To be sure,
  • how the neighbourhood poured into court that afternoon while the
  • cause was on! How my noble and learned brother, and all the rest of
  • 'em, grubbed and muddled away as usual and tried to look as if they
  • hadn't heard a word of the last fact in the case or as if they
  • had--Oh, dear me!--nothing at all to do with it if they had heard of
  • it by any chance!"
  • Ada's colour had entirely left her, and Richard was scarcely less
  • pale. Nor could I wonder, judging even from my emotions, and I was no
  • party in the suit, that to hearts so untried and fresh it was a shock
  • to come into the inheritance of a protracted misery, attended in the
  • minds of many people with such dreadful recollections. I had another
  • uneasiness, in the application of the painful story to the poor
  • half-witted creature who had brought us there; but, to my surprise,
  • she seemed perfectly unconscious of that and only led the way
  • upstairs again, informing us with the toleration of a superior
  • creature for the infirmities of a common mortal that her landlord was
  • "a little M, you know!"
  • She lived at the top of the house, in a pretty large room, from which
  • she had a glimpse of Lincoln's Inn Hall. This seemed to have been her
  • principal inducement, originally, for taking up her residence there.
  • She could look at it, she said, in the night, especially in the
  • moonshine. Her room was clean, but very, very bare. I noticed the
  • scantiest necessaries in the way of furniture; a few old prints from
  • books, of Chancellors and barristers, wafered against the wall; and
  • some half-dozen reticles and work-bags, "containing documents," as
  • she informed us. There were neither coals nor ashes in the grate, and
  • I saw no articles of clothing anywhere, nor any kind of food. Upon a
  • shelf in an open cupboard were a plate or two, a cup or two, and so
  • forth, but all dry and empty. There was a more affecting meaning in
  • her pinched appearance, I thought as I looked round, than I had
  • understood before.
  • "Extremely honoured, I am sure," said our poor hostess with the
  • greatest suavity, "by this visit from the wards in Jarndyce. And very
  • much indebted for the omen. It is a retired situation. Considering. I
  • am limited as to situation. In consequence of the necessity of
  • attending on the Chancellor. I have lived here many years. I pass my
  • days in court, my evenings and my nights here. I find the nights
  • long, for I sleep but little and think much. That is, of course,
  • unavoidable, being in Chancery. I am sorry I cannot offer chocolate.
  • I expect a judgment shortly and shall then place my establishment on
  • a superior footing. At present, I don't mind confessing to the wards
  • in Jarndyce (in strict confidence) that I sometimes find it difficult
  • to keep up a genteel appearance. I have felt the cold here. I have
  • felt something sharper than cold. It matters very little. Pray excuse
  • the introduction of such mean topics."
  • She partly drew aside the curtain of the long, low garret window and
  • called our attention to a number of bird-cages hanging there, some
  • containing several birds. There were larks, linnets, and
  • goldfinches--I should think at least twenty.
  • "I began to keep the little creatures," she said, "with an object
  • that the wards will readily comprehend. With the intention of
  • restoring them to liberty. When my judgment should be given. Ye-es!
  • They die in prison, though. Their lives, poor silly things, are so
  • short in comparison with Chancery proceedings that, one by one, the
  • whole collection has died over and over again. I doubt, do you know,
  • whether one of these, though they are all young, will live to be
  • free! Ve-ry mortifying, is it not?"
  • Although she sometimes asked a question, she never seemed to expect a
  • reply, but rambled on as if she were in the habit of doing so when no
  • one but herself was present.
  • "Indeed," she pursued, "I positively doubt sometimes, I do assure
  • you, whether while matters are still unsettled, and the sixth or
  • Great Seal still prevails, I may not one day be found lying stark and
  • senseless here, as I have found so many birds!"
  • Richard, answering what he saw in Ada's compassionate eyes, took the
  • opportunity of laying some money, softly and unobserved, on the
  • chimney-piece. We all drew nearer to the cages, feigning to examine
  • the birds.
  • "I can't allow them to sing much," said the little old lady, "for
  • (you'll think this curious) I find my mind confused by the idea that
  • they are singing while I am following the arguments in court. And my
  • mind requires to be so very clear, you know! Another time, I'll tell
  • you their names. Not at present. On a day of such good omen, they
  • shall sing as much as they like. In honour of youth," a smile and
  • curtsy, "hope," a smile and curtsy, "and beauty," a smile and curtsy.
  • "There! We'll let in the full light."
  • The birds began to stir and chirp.
  • "I cannot admit the air freely," said the little old lady--the room
  • was close, and would have been the better for it--"because the cat
  • you saw downstairs, called Lady Jane, is greedy for their lives. She
  • crouches on the parapet outside for hours and hours. I have
  • discovered," whispering mysteriously, "that her natural cruelty is
  • sharpened by a jealous fear of their regaining their liberty. In
  • consequence of the judgment I expect being shortly given. She is sly
  • and full of malice. I half believe, sometimes, that she is no cat,
  • but the wolf of the old saying. It is so very difficult to keep her
  • from the door."
  • Some neighbouring bells, reminding the poor soul that it was
  • half-past nine, did more for us in the way of bringing our visit to
  • an end than we could easily have done for ourselves. She hurriedly
  • took up her little bag of documents, which she had laid upon the
  • table on coming in, and asked if we were also going into court. On
  • our answering no, and that we would on no account detain her, she
  • opened the door to attend us downstairs.
  • "With such an omen, it is even more necessary than usual that I
  • should be there before the Chancellor comes in," said she, "for he
  • might mention my case the first thing. I have a presentiment that he
  • WILL mention it the first thing this morning."
  • She stopped to tell us in a whisper as we were going down that the
  • whole house was filled with strange lumber which her landlord had
  • bought piecemeal and had no wish to sell, in consequence of being a
  • little M. This was on the first floor. But she had made a previous
  • stoppage on the second floor and had silently pointed at a dark door
  • there.
  • "The only other lodger," she now whispered in explanation, "a
  • law-writer. The children in the lanes here say he has sold himself to
  • the devil. I don't know what he can have done with the money. Hush!"
  • She appeared to mistrust that the lodger might hear her even there,
  • and repeating "Hush!" went before us on tiptoe as though even the
  • sound of her footsteps might reveal to him what she had said.
  • Passing through the shop on our way out, as we had passed through it
  • on our way in, we found the old man storing a quantity of packets of
  • waste-paper in a kind of well in the floor. He seemed to be working
  • hard, with the perspiration standing on his forehead, and had a piece
  • of chalk by him, with which, as he put each separate package or
  • bundle down, he made a crooked mark on the panelling of the wall.
  • Richard and Ada, and Miss Jellyby, and the little old lady had gone
  • by him, and I was going when he touched me on the arm to stay me, and
  • chalked the letter J upon the wall--in a very curious manner,
  • beginning with the end of the letter and shaping it backward. It was
  • a capital letter, not a printed one, but just such a letter as any
  • clerk in Messrs. Kenge and Carboy's office would have made.
  • "Can you read it?" he asked me with a keen glance.
  • "Surely," said I. "It's very plain."
  • "What is it?"
  • "J."
  • With another glance at me, and a glance at the door, he rubbed it out
  • and turned an "a" in its place (not a capital letter this time), and
  • said, "What's that?"
  • I told him. He then rubbed that out and turned the letter "r," and
  • asked me the same question. He went on quickly until he had formed in
  • the same curious manner, beginning at the ends and bottoms of the
  • letters, the word Jarndyce, without once leaving two letters on the
  • wall together.
  • "What does that spell?" he asked me.
  • When I told him, he laughed. In the same odd way, yet with the same
  • rapidity, he then produced singly, and rubbed out singly, the letters
  • forming the words Bleak House. These, in some astonishment, I also
  • read; and he laughed again.
  • "Hi!" said the old man, laying aside the chalk. "I have a turn for
  • copying from memory, you see, miss, though I can neither read nor
  • write."
  • He looked so disagreeable and his cat looked so wickedly at me, as if
  • I were a blood-relation of the birds upstairs, that I was quite
  • relieved by Richard's appearing at the door and saying, "Miss
  • Summerson, I hope you are not bargaining for the sale of your hair.
  • Don't be tempted. Three sacks below are quite enough for Mr. Krook!"
  • I lost no time in wishing Mr. Krook good morning and joining my
  • friends outside, where we parted with the little old lady, who gave
  • us her blessing with great ceremony and renewed her assurance of
  • yesterday in reference to her intention of settling estates on Ada
  • and me. Before we finally turned out of those lanes, we looked back
  • and saw Mr. Krook standing at his shop-door, in his spectacles,
  • looking after us, with his cat upon his shoulder, and her tail
  • sticking up on one side of his hairy cap like a tall feather.
  • "Quite an adventure for a morning in London!" said Richard with a
  • sigh. "Ah, cousin, cousin, it's a weary word this Chancery!"
  • "It is to me, and has been ever since I can remember," returned Ada.
  • "I am grieved that I should be the enemy--as I suppose I am--of a
  • great number of relations and others, and that they should be my
  • enemies--as I suppose they are--and that we should all be ruining one
  • another without knowing how or why and be in constant doubt and
  • discord all our lives. It seems very strange, as there must be right
  • somewhere, that an honest judge in real earnest has not been able to
  • find out through all these years where it is."
  • "Ah, cousin!" said Richard. "Strange, indeed! All this wasteful,
  • wanton chess-playing IS very strange. To see that composed court
  • yesterday jogging on so serenely and to think of the wretchedness of
  • the pieces on the board gave me the headache and the heartache both
  • together. My head ached with wondering how it happened, if men were
  • neither fools nor rascals; and my heart ached to think they could
  • possibly be either. But at all events, Ada--I may call you Ada?"
  • "Of course you may, cousin Richard."
  • "At all events, Chancery will work none of its bad influences on US.
  • We have happily been brought together, thanks to our good kinsman,
  • and it can't divide us now!"
  • "Never, I hope, cousin Richard!" said Ada gently.
  • Miss Jellyby gave my arm a squeeze and me a very significant look. I
  • smiled in return, and we made the rest of the way back very
  • pleasantly.
  • In half an hour after our arrival, Mrs. Jellyby appeared; and in the
  • course of an hour the various things necessary for breakfast
  • straggled one by one into the dining-room. I do not doubt that Mrs.
  • Jellyby had gone to bed and got up in the usual manner, but she
  • presented no appearance of having changed her dress. She was greatly
  • occupied during breakfast, for the morning's post brought a heavy
  • correspondence relative to Borrioboola-Gha, which would occasion her
  • (she said) to pass a busy day. The children tumbled about, and
  • notched memoranda of their accidents in their legs, which were
  • perfect little calendars of distress; and Peepy was lost for an hour
  • and a half, and brought home from Newgate market by a policeman. The
  • equable manner in which Mrs. Jellyby sustained both his absence and
  • his restoration to the family circle surprised us all.
  • She was by that time perseveringly dictating to Caddy, and Caddy was
  • fast relapsing into the inky condition in which we had found her. At
  • one o'clock an open carriage arrived for us, and a cart for our
  • luggage. Mrs. Jellyby charged us with many remembrances to her good
  • friend Mr. Jarndyce; Caddy left her desk to see us depart, kissed me
  • in the passage, and stood biting her pen and sobbing on the steps;
  • Peepy, I am happy to say, was asleep and spared the pain of
  • separation (I was not without misgivings that he had gone to Newgate
  • market in search of me); and all the other children got up behind the
  • barouche and fell off, and we saw them, with great concern, scattered
  • over the surface of Thavies Inn as we rolled out of its precincts.
  • CHAPTER VI
  • Quite at Home
  • The day had brightened very much, and still brightened as we went
  • westward. We went our way through the sunshine and the fresh air,
  • wondering more and more at the extent of the streets, the brilliancy
  • of the shops, the great traffic, and the crowds of people whom the
  • pleasanter weather seemed to have brought out like many-coloured
  • flowers. By and by we began to leave the wonderful city and to
  • proceed through suburbs which, of themselves, would have made a
  • pretty large town in my eyes; and at last we got into a real country
  • road again, with windmills, rick-yards, milestones, farmers' waggons,
  • scents of old hay, swinging signs, and horse troughs: trees, fields,
  • and hedge-rows. It was delightful to see the green landscape before
  • us and the immense metropolis behind; and when a waggon with a train
  • of beautiful horses, furnished with red trappings and clear-sounding
  • bells, came by us with its music, I believe we could all three have
  • sung to the bells, so cheerful were the influences around.
  • "The whole road has been reminding me of my namesake Whittington,"
  • said Richard, "and that waggon is the finishing touch. Halloa! What's
  • the matter?"
  • We had stopped, and the waggon had stopped too. Its music changed as
  • the horses came to a stand, and subsided to a gentle tinkling, except
  • when a horse tossed his head or shook himself and sprinkled off a
  • little shower of bell-ringing.
  • "Our postilion is looking after the waggoner," said Richard, "and the
  • waggoner is coming back after us. Good day, friend!" The waggoner was
  • at our coach-door. "Why, here's an extraordinary thing!" added
  • Richard, looking closely at the man. "He has got your name, Ada, in
  • his hat!"
  • He had all our names in his hat. Tucked within the band were three
  • small notes--one addressed to Ada, one to Richard, one to me. These
  • the waggoner delivered to each of us respectively, reading the name
  • aloud first. In answer to Richard's inquiry from whom they came, he
  • briefly answered, "Master, sir, if you please"; and putting on his
  • hat again (which was like a soft bowl), cracked his whip, re-awakened
  • his music, and went melodiously away.
  • "Is that Mr. Jarndyce's waggon?" said Richard, calling to our
  • post-boy.
  • "Yes, sir," he replied. "Going to London."
  • We opened the notes. Each was a counterpart of the other and
  • contained these words in a solid, plain hand.
  • I look forward, my dear, to our meeting easily and
  • without constraint on either side. I therefore have to
  • propose that we meet as old friends and take the past for
  • granted. It will be a relief to you possibly, and to me
  • certainly, and so my love to you.
  • John Jarndyce
  • I had perhaps less reason to be surprised than either of my
  • companions, having never yet enjoyed an opportunity of thanking one
  • who had been my benefactor and sole earthly dependence through so
  • many years. I had not considered how I could thank him, my gratitude
  • lying too deep in my heart for that; but I now began to consider how
  • I could meet him without thanking him, and felt it would be very
  • difficult indeed.
  • The notes revived in Richard and Ada a general impression that they
  • both had, without quite knowing how they came by it, that their
  • cousin Jarndyce could never bear acknowledgments for any kindness he
  • performed and that sooner than receive any he would resort to the
  • most singular expedients and evasions or would even run away. Ada
  • dimly remembered to have heard her mother tell, when she was a very
  • little child, that he had once done her an act of uncommon generosity
  • and that on her going to his house to thank him, he happened to see
  • her through a window coming to the door, and immediately escaped by
  • the back gate, and was not heard of for three months. This discourse
  • led to a great deal more on the same theme, and indeed it lasted us
  • all day, and we talked of scarcely anything else. If we did by any
  • chance diverge into another subject, we soon returned to this, and
  • wondered what the house would be like, and when we should get there,
  • and whether we should see Mr. Jarndyce as soon as we arrived or after
  • a delay, and what he would say to us, and what we should say to him.
  • All of which we wondered about, over and over again.
  • The roads were very heavy for the horses, but the pathway was
  • generally good, so we alighted and walked up all the hills, and liked
  • it so well that we prolonged our walk on the level ground when we got
  • to the top. At Barnet there were other horses waiting for us, but as
  • they had only just been fed, we had to wait for them too, and got a
  • long fresh walk over a common and an old battle-field before the
  • carriage came up. These delays so protracted the journey that the
  • short day was spent and the long night had closed in before we came
  • to St. Albans, near to which town Bleak House was, we knew.
  • By that time we were so anxious and nervous that even Richard
  • confessed, as we rattled over the stones of the old street, to
  • feeling an irrational desire to drive back again. As to Ada and me,
  • whom he had wrapped up with great care, the night being sharp and
  • frosty, we trembled from head to foot. When we turned out of the
  • town, round a corner, and Richard told us that the post-boy, who had
  • for a long time sympathized with our heightened expectation, was
  • looking back and nodding, we both stood up in the carriage (Richard
  • holding Ada lest she should be jolted down) and gazed round upon the
  • open country and the starlight night for our destination. There was a
  • light sparkling on the top of a hill before us, and the driver,
  • pointing to it with his whip and crying, "That's Bleak House!" put
  • his horses into a canter and took us forward at such a rate, uphill
  • though it was, that the wheels sent the road drift flying about our
  • heads like spray from a water-mill. Presently we lost the light,
  • presently saw it, presently lost it, presently saw it, and turned
  • into an avenue of trees and cantered up towards where it was beaming
  • brightly. It was in a window of what seemed to be an old-fashioned
  • house with three peaks in the roof in front and a circular sweep
  • leading to the porch. A bell was rung as we drew up, and amidst the
  • sound of its deep voice in the still air, and the distant barking of
  • some dogs, and a gush of light from the opened door, and the smoking
  • and steaming of the heated horses, and the quickened beating of our
  • own hearts, we alighted in no inconsiderable confusion.
  • "Ada, my love, Esther, my dear, you are welcome. I rejoice to see
  • you! Rick, if I had a hand to spare at present, I would give it you!"
  • The gentleman who said these words in a clear, bright, hospitable
  • voice had one of his arms round Ada's waist and the other round mine,
  • and kissed us both in a fatherly way, and bore us across the hall
  • into a ruddy little room, all in a glow with a blazing fire. Here he
  • kissed us again, and opening his arms, made us sit down side by side
  • on a sofa ready drawn out near the hearth. I felt that if we had been
  • at all demonstrative, he would have run away in a moment.
  • "Now, Rick!" said he. "I have a hand at liberty. A word in earnest is
  • as good as a speech. I am heartily glad to see you. You are at home.
  • Warm yourself!"
  • Richard shook him by both hands with an intuitive mixture of respect
  • and frankness, and only saying (though with an earnestness that
  • rather alarmed me, I was so afraid of Mr. Jarndyce's suddenly
  • disappearing), "You are very kind, sir! We are very much obliged to
  • you!" laid aside his hat and coat and came up to the fire.
  • "And how did you like the ride? And how did you like Mrs. Jellyby, my
  • dear?" said Mr. Jarndyce to Ada.
  • While Ada was speaking to him in reply, I glanced (I need not say
  • with how much interest) at his face. It was a handsome, lively, quick
  • face, full of change and motion; and his hair was a silvered
  • iron-grey. I took him to be nearer sixty than fifty, but he was
  • upright, hearty, and robust. From the moment of his first speaking to
  • us his voice had connected itself with an association in my mind that
  • I could not define; but now, all at once, a something sudden in his
  • manner and a pleasant expression in his eyes recalled the gentleman
  • in the stagecoach six years ago on the memorable day of my journey to
  • Reading. I was certain it was he. I never was so frightened in my
  • life as when I made the discovery, for he caught my glance, and
  • appearing to read my thoughts, gave such a look at the door that I
  • thought we had lost him.
  • However, I am happy to say he remained where he was, and asked me
  • what I thought of Mrs. Jellyby.
  • "She exerts herself very much for Africa, sir," I said.
  • "Nobly!" returned Mr. Jarndyce. "But you answer like Ada." Whom I had
  • not heard. "You all think something else, I see."
  • "We rather thought," said I, glancing at Richard and Ada, who
  • entreated me with their eyes to speak, "that perhaps she was a little
  • unmindful of her home."
  • "Floored!" cried Mr. Jarndyce.
  • I was rather alarmed again.
  • "Well! I want to know your real thoughts, my dear. I may have sent
  • you there on purpose."
  • "We thought that, perhaps," said I, hesitating, "it is right to begin
  • with the obligations of home, sir; and that, perhaps, while those are
  • overlooked and neglected, no other duties can possibly be substituted
  • for them."
  • "The little Jellybys," said Richard, coming to my relief, "are
  • really--I can't help expressing myself strongly, sir--in a devil of a
  • state."
  • "She means well," said Mr. Jarndyce hastily. "The wind's in the
  • east."
  • "It was in the north, sir, as we came down," observed Richard.
  • "My dear Rick," said Mr. Jarndyce, poking the fire, "I'll take an
  • oath it's either in the east or going to be. I am always conscious of
  • an uncomfortable sensation now and then when the wind is blowing in
  • the east."
  • "Rheumatism, sir?" said Richard.
  • "I dare say it is, Rick. I believe it is. And so the little Jell--I
  • had my doubts about 'em--are in a--oh, Lord, yes, it's easterly!"
  • said Mr. Jarndyce.
  • He had taken two or three undecided turns up and down while uttering
  • these broken sentences, retaining the poker in one hand and rubbing
  • his hair with the other, with a good-natured vexation at once so
  • whimsical and so lovable that I am sure we were more delighted with
  • him than we could possibly have expressed in any words. He gave an
  • arm to Ada and an arm to me, and bidding Richard bring a candle, was
  • leading the way out when he suddenly turned us all back again.
  • "Those little Jellybys. Couldn't you--didn't you--now, if it had
  • rained sugar-plums, or three-cornered raspberry tarts, or anything of
  • that sort!" said Mr. Jarndyce.
  • "Oh, cousin--" Ada hastily began.
  • "Good, my pretty pet. I like cousin. Cousin John, perhaps, is
  • better."
  • "Then, cousin John--" Ada laughingly began again.
  • "Ha, ha! Very good indeed!" said Mr. Jarndyce with great enjoyment.
  • "Sounds uncommonly natural. Yes, my dear?"
  • "It did better than that. It rained Esther."
  • "Aye?" said Mr. Jarndyce. "What did Esther do?"
  • "Why, cousin John," said Ada, clasping her hands upon his arm and
  • shaking her head at me across him--for I wanted her to be
  • quiet--"Esther was their friend directly. Esther nursed them, coaxed
  • them to sleep, washed and dressed them, told them stories, kept them
  • quiet, bought them keepsakes"--My dear girl! I had only gone out with
  • Peepy after he was found and given him a little, tiny horse!--"and,
  • cousin John, she softened poor Caroline, the eldest one, so much and
  • was so thoughtful for me and so amiable! No, no, I won't be
  • contradicted, Esther dear! You know, you know, it's true!"
  • The warm-hearted darling leaned across her cousin John and kissed me,
  • and then looking up in his face, boldly said, "At all events, cousin
  • John, I WILL thank you for the companion you have given me." I felt
  • as if she challenged him to run away. But he didn't.
  • "Where did you say the wind was, Rick?" asked Mr. Jarndyce.
  • "In the north as we came down, sir."
  • "You are right. There's no east in it. A mistake of mine. Come,
  • girls, come and see your home!"
  • It was one of those delightfully irregular houses where you go up and
  • down steps out of one room into another, and where you come upon more
  • rooms when you think you have seen all there are, and where there is
  • a bountiful provision of little halls and passages, and where you
  • find still older cottage-rooms in unexpected places with lattice
  • windows and green growth pressing through them. Mine, which we
  • entered first, was of this kind, with an up-and-down roof that had
  • more corners in it than I ever counted afterwards and a chimney
  • (there was a wood fire on the hearth) paved all around with pure
  • white tiles, in every one of which a bright miniature of the fire was
  • blazing. Out of this room, you went down two steps into a charming
  • little sitting-room looking down upon a flower-garden, which room was
  • henceforth to belong to Ada and me. Out of this you went up three
  • steps into Ada's bedroom, which had a fine broad window commanding a
  • beautiful view (we saw a great expanse of darkness lying underneath
  • the stars), to which there was a hollow window-seat, in which, with a
  • spring-lock, three dear Adas might have been lost at once. Out of
  • this room you passed into a little gallery, with which the other best
  • rooms (only two) communicated, and so, by a little staircase of
  • shallow steps with a number of corner stairs in it, considering its
  • length, down into the hall. But if instead of going out at Ada's door
  • you came back into my room, and went out at the door by which you had
  • entered it, and turned up a few crooked steps that branched off in an
  • unexpected manner from the stairs, you lost yourself in passages,
  • with mangles in them, and three-cornered tables, and a native Hindu
  • chair, which was also a sofa, a box, and a bedstead, and looked in
  • every form something between a bamboo skeleton and a great bird-cage,
  • and had been brought from India nobody knew by whom or when. From
  • these you came on Richard's room, which was part library, part
  • sitting-room, part bedroom, and seemed indeed a comfortable compound
  • of many rooms. Out of that you went straight, with a little interval
  • of passage, to the plain room where Mr. Jarndyce slept, all the year
  • round, with his window open, his bedstead without any furniture
  • standing in the middle of the floor for more air, and his cold bath
  • gaping for him in a smaller room adjoining. Out of that you came into
  • another passage, where there were back-stairs and where you could
  • hear the horses being rubbed down outside the stable and being told
  • to "Hold up" and "Get over," as they slipped about very much on the
  • uneven stones. Or you might, if you came out at another door (every
  • room had at least two doors), go straight down to the hall again by
  • half-a-dozen steps and a low archway, wondering how you got back
  • there or had ever got out of it.
  • The furniture, old-fashioned rather than old, like the house, was as
  • pleasantly irregular. Ada's sleeping-room was all flowers--in chintz
  • and paper, in velvet, in needlework, in the brocade of two stiff
  • courtly chairs which stood, each attended by a little page of a stool
  • for greater state, on either side of the fire-place. Our sitting-room
  • was green and had framed and glazed upon the walls numbers of
  • surprising and surprised birds, staring out of pictures at a real
  • trout in a case, as brown and shining as if it had been served with
  • gravy; at the death of Captain Cook; and at the whole process of
  • preparing tea in China, as depicted by Chinese artists. In my room
  • there were oval engravings of the months--ladies haymaking in short
  • waists and large hats tied under the chin, for June; smooth-legged
  • noblemen pointing with cocked-hats to village steeples, for October.
  • Half-length portraits in crayons abounded all through the house, but
  • were so dispersed that I found the brother of a youthful officer of
  • mine in the china-closet and the grey old age of my pretty young
  • bride, with a flower in her bodice, in the breakfast-room. As
  • substitutes, I had four angels, of Queen Anne's reign, taking a
  • complacent gentleman to heaven, in festoons, with some difficulty;
  • and a composition in needlework representing fruit, a kettle, and an
  • alphabet. All the movables, from the wardrobes to the chairs and
  • tables, hangings, glasses, even to the pincushions and scent-bottles
  • on the dressing-tables, displayed the same quaint variety. They
  • agreed in nothing but their perfect neatness, their display of the
  • whitest linen, and their storing-up, wheresoever the existence of a
  • drawer, small or large, rendered it possible, of quantities of
  • rose-leaves and sweet lavender. Such, with its illuminated windows,
  • softened here and there by shadows of curtains, shining out upon the
  • starlight night; with its light, and warmth, and comfort; with its
  • hospitable jingle, at a distance, of preparations for dinner; with
  • the face of its generous master brightening everything we saw; and
  • just wind enough without to sound a low accompaniment to everything
  • we heard, were our first impressions of Bleak House.
  • "I am glad you like it," said Mr. Jarndyce when he had brought us
  • round again to Ada's sitting-room. "It makes no pretensions, but it
  • is a comfortable little place, I hope, and will be more so with such
  • bright young looks in it. You have barely half an hour before dinner.
  • There's no one here but the finest creature upon earth--a child."
  • "More children, Esther!" said Ada.
  • "I don't mean literally a child," pursued Mr. Jarndyce; "not a child
  • in years. He is grown up--he is at least as old as I am--but in
  • simplicity, and freshness, and enthusiasm, and a fine guileless
  • inaptitude for all worldly affairs, he is a perfect child."
  • We felt that he must be very interesting.
  • "He knows Mrs. Jellyby," said Mr. Jarndyce. "He is a musical man, an
  • amateur, but might have been a professional. He is an artist too, an
  • amateur, but might have been a professional. He is a man of
  • attainments and of captivating manners. He has been unfortunate in
  • his affairs, and unfortunate in his pursuits, and unfortunate in his
  • family; but he don't care--he's a child!"
  • "Did you imply that he has children of his own, sir?" inquired
  • Richard.
  • "Yes, Rick! Half-a-dozen. More! Nearer a dozen, I should think. But
  • he has never looked after them. How could he? He wanted somebody to
  • look after HIM. He is a child, you know!" said Mr. Jarndyce.
  • "And have the children looked after themselves at all, sir?" inquired
  • Richard.
  • "Why, just as you may suppose," said Mr. Jarndyce, his countenance
  • suddenly falling. "It is said that the children of the very poor are
  • not brought up, but dragged up. Harold Skimpole's children have
  • tumbled up somehow or other. The wind's getting round again, I am
  • afraid. I feel it rather!"
  • Richard observed that the situation was exposed on a sharp night.
  • "It IS exposed," said Mr. Jarndyce. "No doubt that's the cause. Bleak
  • House has an exposed sound. But you are coming my way. Come along!"
  • Our luggage having arrived and being all at hand, I was dressed in a
  • few minutes and engaged in putting my worldly goods away when a maid
  • (not the one in attendance upon Ada, but another, whom I had not
  • seen) brought a basket into my room with two bunches of keys in it,
  • all labelled.
  • "For you, miss, if you please," said she.
  • "For me?" said I.
  • "The housekeeping keys, miss."
  • I showed my surprise, for she added with some little surprise on her
  • own part, "I was told to bring them as soon as you was alone, miss.
  • Miss Summerson, if I don't deceive myself?"
  • "Yes," said I. "That is my name."
  • "The large bunch is the housekeeping, and the little bunch is the
  • cellars, miss. Any time you was pleased to appoint to-morrow morning,
  • I was to show you the presses and things they belong to."
  • I said I would be ready at half-past six, and after she was gone,
  • stood looking at the basket, quite lost in the magnitude of my trust.
  • Ada found me thus and had such a delightful confidence in me when I
  • showed her the keys and told her about them that it would have been
  • insensibility and ingratitude not to feel encouraged. I knew, to be
  • sure, that it was the dear girl's kindness, but I liked to be so
  • pleasantly cheated.
  • When we went downstairs, we were presented to Mr. Skimpole, who was
  • standing before the fire telling Richard how fond he used to be, in
  • his school-time, of football. He was a little bright creature with a
  • rather large head, but a delicate face and a sweet voice, and there
  • was a perfect charm in him. All he said was so free from effort and
  • spontaneous and was said with such a captivating gaiety that it was
  • fascinating to hear him talk. Being of a more slender figure than Mr.
  • Jarndyce and having a richer complexion, with browner hair, he looked
  • younger. Indeed, he had more the appearance in all respects of a
  • damaged young man than a well-preserved elderly one. There was an
  • easy negligence in his manner and even in his dress (his hair
  • carelessly disposed, and his neck-kerchief loose and flowing, as I
  • have seen artists paint their own portraits) which I could not
  • separate from the idea of a romantic youth who had undergone some
  • unique process of depreciation. It struck me as being not at all like
  • the manner or appearance of a man who had advanced in life by the
  • usual road of years, cares, and experiences.
  • I gathered from the conversation that Mr. Skimpole had been educated
  • for the medical profession and had once lived, in his professional
  • capacity, in the household of a German prince. He told us, however,
  • that as he had always been a mere child in point of weights and
  • measures and had never known anything about them (except that they
  • disgusted him), he had never been able to prescribe with the
  • requisite accuracy of detail. In fact, he said, he had no head for
  • detail. And he told us, with great humour, that when he was wanted to
  • bleed the prince or physic any of his people, he was generally found
  • lying on his back in bed, reading the newspapers or making
  • fancy-sketches in pencil, and couldn't come. The prince, at last,
  • objecting to this, "in which," said Mr. Skimpole, in the frankest
  • manner, "he was perfectly right," the engagement terminated, and Mr.
  • Skimpole having (as he added with delightful gaiety) "nothing to live
  • upon but love, fell in love, and married, and surrounded himself with
  • rosy cheeks." His good friend Jarndyce and some other of his good
  • friends then helped him, in quicker or slower succession, to several
  • openings in life, but to no purpose, for he must confess to two of
  • the oldest infirmities in the world: one was that he had no idea of
  • time, the other that he had no idea of money. In consequence of which
  • he never kept an appointment, never could transact any business, and
  • never knew the value of anything! Well! So he had got on in life, and
  • here he was! He was very fond of reading the papers, very fond of
  • making fancy-sketches with a pencil, very fond of nature, very fond
  • of art. All he asked of society was to let him live. THAT wasn't
  • much. His wants were few. Give him the papers, conversation, music,
  • mutton, coffee, landscape, fruit in the season, a few sheets of
  • Bristol-board, and a little claret, and he asked no more. He was a
  • mere child in the world, but he didn't cry for the moon. He said to
  • the world, "Go your several ways in peace! Wear red coats, blue
  • coats, lawn sleeves; put pens behind your ears, wear aprons; go after
  • glory, holiness, commerce, trade, any object you prefer; only--let
  • Harold Skimpole live!"
  • All this and a great deal more he told us, not only with the
  • utmost brilliancy and enjoyment, but with a certain vivacious
  • candour--speaking of himself as if he were not at all his own affair,
  • as if Skimpole were a third person, as if he knew that Skimpole had
  • his singularities but still had his claims too, which were the
  • general business of the community and must not be slighted. He was
  • quite enchanting. If I felt at all confused at that early time in
  • endeavouring to reconcile anything he said with anything I had
  • thought about the duties and accountabilities of life (which I am far
  • from sure of), I was confused by not exactly understanding why he was
  • free of them. That he WAS free of them, I scarcely doubted; he was so
  • very clear about it himself.
  • "I covet nothing," said Mr. Skimpole in the same light way.
  • "Possession is nothing to me. Here is my friend Jarndyce's excellent
  • house. I feel obliged to him for possessing it. I can sketch it and
  • alter it. I can set it to music. When I am here, I have sufficient
  • possession of it and have neither trouble, cost, nor responsibility.
  • My steward's name, in short, is Jarndyce, and he can't cheat me. We
  • have been mentioning Mrs. Jellyby. There is a bright-eyed woman, of a
  • strong will and immense power of business detail, who throws herself
  • into objects with surprising ardour! I don't regret that I have not a
  • strong will and an immense power of business detail to throw myself
  • into objects with surprising ardour. I can admire her without envy. I
  • can sympathize with the objects. I can dream of them. I can lie down
  • on the grass--in fine weather--and float along an African river,
  • embracing all the natives I meet, as sensible of the deep silence and
  • sketching the dense overhanging tropical growth as accurately as if I
  • were there. I don't know that it's of any direct use my doing so, but
  • it's all I can do, and I do it thoroughly. Then, for heaven's sake,
  • having Harold Skimpole, a confiding child, petitioning you, the
  • world, an agglomeration of practical people of business habits, to
  • let him live and admire the human family, do it somehow or other,
  • like good souls, and suffer him to ride his rocking-horse!"
  • It was plain enough that Mr. Jarndyce had not been neglectful of the
  • adjuration. Mr. Skimpole's general position there would have rendered
  • it so without the addition of what he presently said.
  • "It's only you, the generous creatures, whom I envy," said Mr.
  • Skimpole, addressing us, his new friends, in an impersonal manner. "I
  • envy you your power of doing what you do. It is what I should revel
  • in myself. I don't feel any vulgar gratitude to you. I almost feel as
  • if YOU ought to be grateful to ME for giving you the opportunity of
  • enjoying the luxury of generosity. I know you like it. For anything I
  • can tell, I may have come into the world expressly for the purpose of
  • increasing your stock of happiness. I may have been born to be a
  • benefactor to you by sometimes giving you an opportunity of assisting
  • me in my little perplexities. Why should I regret my incapacity for
  • details and worldly affairs when it leads to such pleasant
  • consequences? I don't regret it therefore."
  • Of all his playful speeches (playful, yet always fully meaning what
  • they expressed) none seemed to be more to the taste of Mr. Jarndyce
  • than this. I had often new temptations, afterwards, to wonder whether
  • it was really singular, or only singular to me, that he, who was
  • probably the most grateful of mankind upon the least occasion, should
  • so desire to escape the gratitude of others.
  • We were all enchanted. I felt it a merited tribute to the engaging
  • qualities of Ada and Richard that Mr. Skimpole, seeing them for the
  • first time, should be so unreserved and should lay himself out to be
  • so exquisitely agreeable. They (and especially Richard) were
  • naturally pleased, for similar reasons, and considered it no common
  • privilege to be so freely confided in by such an attractive man. The
  • more we listened, the more gaily Mr. Skimpole talked. And what with
  • his fine hilarious manner and his engaging candour and his genial way
  • of lightly tossing his own weaknesses about, as if he had said, "I am
  • a child, you know! You are designing people compared with me" (he
  • really made me consider myself in that light) "but I am gay and
  • innocent; forget your worldly arts and play with me!" the effect was
  • absolutely dazzling.
  • He was so full of feeling too and had such a delicate sentiment for
  • what was beautiful or tender that he could have won a heart by that
  • alone. In the evening, when I was preparing to make tea and Ada was
  • touching the piano in the adjoining room and softly humming a tune to
  • her cousin Richard, which they had happened to mention, he came and
  • sat down on the sofa near me and so spoke of Ada that I almost loved
  • him.
  • "She is like the morning," he said. "With that golden hair, those
  • blue eyes, and that fresh bloom on her cheek, she is like the summer
  • morning. The birds here will mistake her for it. We will not call
  • such a lovely young creature as that, who is a joy to all mankind, an
  • orphan. She is the child of the universe."
  • Mr. Jarndyce, I found, was standing near us with his hands behind him
  • and an attentive smile upon his face.
  • "The universe," he observed, "makes rather an indifferent parent, I
  • am afraid."
  • "Oh! I don't know!" cried Mr. Skimpole buoyantly.
  • "I think I do know," said Mr. Jarndyce.
  • "Well!" cried Mr. Skimpole. "You know the world (which in your sense
  • is the universe), and I know nothing of it, so you shall have your
  • way. But if I had mine," glancing at the cousins, "there should be no
  • brambles of sordid realities in such a path as that. It should be
  • strewn with roses; it should lie through bowers, where there was no
  • spring, autumn, nor winter, but perpetual summer. Age or change
  • should never wither it. The base word money should never be breathed
  • near it!"
  • Mr. Jarndyce patted him on the head with a smile, as if he had been
  • really a child, and passing a step or two on, and stopping a moment,
  • glanced at the young cousins. His look was thoughtful, but had a
  • benignant expression in it which I often (how often!) saw again,
  • which has long been engraven on my heart. The room in which they
  • were, communicating with that in which he stood, was only lighted by
  • the fire. Ada sat at the piano; Richard stood beside her, bending
  • down. Upon the wall, their shadows blended together, surrounded by
  • strange forms, not without a ghostly motion caught from the unsteady
  • fire, though reflecting from motionless objects. Ada touched the
  • notes so softly and sang so low that the wind, sighing away to the
  • distant hills, was as audible as the music. The mystery of the future
  • and the little clue afforded to it by the voice of the present seemed
  • expressed in the whole picture.
  • But it is not to recall this fancy, well as I remember it, that I
  • recall the scene. First, I was not quite unconscious of the contrast
  • in respect of meaning and intention between the silent look directed
  • that way and the flow of words that had preceded it. Secondly, though
  • Mr. Jarndyce's glance as he withdrew it rested for but a moment on
  • me, I felt as if in that moment he confided to me--and knew that he
  • confided to me and that I received the confidence--his hope that Ada
  • and Richard might one day enter on a dearer relationship.
  • Mr. Skimpole could play on the piano and the violoncello, and he was
  • a composer--had composed half an opera once, but got tired of it--and
  • played what he composed with taste. After tea we had quite a little
  • concert, in which Richard--who was enthralled by Ada's singing and
  • told me that she seemed to know all the songs that ever were
  • written--and Mr. Jarndyce, and I were the audience. After a little
  • while I missed first Mr. Skimpole and afterwards Richard, and while I
  • was thinking how could Richard stay away so long and lose so much,
  • the maid who had given me the keys looked in at the door, saying, "If
  • you please, miss, could you spare a minute?"
  • When I was shut out with her in the hall, she said, holding up her
  • hands, "Oh, if you please, miss, Mr. Carstone says would you come
  • upstairs to Mr. Skimpole's room. He has been took, miss!"
  • "Took?" said I.
  • "Took, miss. Sudden," said the maid.
  • I was apprehensive that his illness might be of a dangerous kind, but
  • of course I begged her to be quiet and not disturb any one and
  • collected myself, as I followed her quickly upstairs, sufficiently to
  • consider what were the best remedies to be applied if it should prove
  • to be a fit. She threw open a door and I went into a chamber, where,
  • to my unspeakable surprise, instead of finding Mr. Skimpole stretched
  • upon the bed or prostrate on the floor, I found him standing before
  • the fire smiling at Richard, while Richard, with a face of great
  • embarrassment, looked at a person on the sofa, in a white great-coat,
  • with smooth hair upon his head and not much of it, which he was
  • wiping smoother and making less of with a pocket-handkerchief.
  • "Miss Summerson," said Richard hurriedly, "I am glad you are come.
  • You will be able to advise us. Our friend Mr. Skimpole--don't be
  • alarmed!--is arrested for debt."
  • "And really, my dear Miss Summerson," said Mr. Skimpole with his
  • agreeable candour, "I never was in a situation in which that
  • excellent sense and quiet habit of method and usefulness, which
  • anybody must observe in you who has the happiness of being a quarter
  • of an hour in your society, was more needed."
  • The person on the sofa, who appeared to have a cold in his head, gave
  • such a very loud snort that he startled me.
  • "Are you arrested for much, sir?" I inquired of Mr. Skimpole.
  • "My dear Miss Summerson," said he, shaking his head pleasantly, "I
  • don't know. Some pounds, odd shillings, and halfpence, I think, were
  • mentioned."
  • "It's twenty-four pound, sixteen, and sevenpence ha'penny," observed
  • the stranger. "That's wot it is."
  • "And it sounds--somehow it sounds," said Mr. Skimpole, "like a small
  • sum?"
  • The strange man said nothing but made another snort. It was such a
  • powerful one that it seemed quite to lift him out of his seat.
  • "Mr. Skimpole," said Richard to me, "has a delicacy in applying to my
  • cousin Jarndyce because he has lately--I think, sir, I understood you
  • that you had lately--"
  • "Oh, yes!" returned Mr. Skimpole, smiling. "Though I forgot how much
  • it was and when it was. Jarndyce would readily do it again, but I
  • have the epicure-like feeling that I would prefer a novelty in help,
  • that I would rather," and he looked at Richard and me, "develop
  • generosity in a new soil and in a new form of flower."
  • "What do you think will be best, Miss Summerson?" said Richard,
  • aside.
  • I ventured to inquire, generally, before replying, what would happen
  • if the money were not produced.
  • "Jail," said the strange man, coolly putting his handkerchief into
  • his hat, which was on the floor at his feet. "Or Coavinses."
  • "May I ask, sir, what is--"
  • "Coavinses?" said the strange man. "A 'ouse."
  • Richard and I looked at one another again. It was a most singular
  • thing that the arrest was our embarrassment and not Mr. Skimpole's.
  • He observed us with a genial interest, but there seemed, if I may
  • venture on such a contradiction, nothing selfish in it. He had
  • entirely washed his hands of the difficulty, and it had become ours.
  • "I thought," he suggested, as if good-naturedly to help us out, "that
  • being parties in a Chancery suit concerning (as people say) a large
  • amount of property, Mr. Richard or his beautiful cousin, or both,
  • could sign something, or make over something, or give some sort of
  • undertaking, or pledge, or bond? I don't know what the business name
  • of it may be, but I suppose there is some instrument within their
  • power that would settle this?"
  • "Not a bit on it," said the strange man.
  • "Really?" returned Mr. Skimpole. "That seems odd, now, to one who is
  • no judge of these things!"
  • "Odd or even," said the stranger gruffly, "I tell you, not a bit on
  • it!"
  • "Keep your temper, my good fellow, keep your temper!" Mr. Skimpole
  • gently reasoned with him as he made a little drawing of his head on
  • the fly-leaf of a book. "Don't be ruffled by your occupation. We can
  • separate you from your office; we can separate the individual from
  • the pursuit. We are not so prejudiced as to suppose that in private
  • life you are otherwise than a very estimable man, with a great deal
  • of poetry in your nature, of which you may not be conscious."
  • The stranger only answered with another violent snort, whether in
  • acceptance of the poetry-tribute or in disdainful rejection of it, he
  • did not express to me.
  • "Now, my dear Miss Summerson, and my dear Mr. Richard," said Mr.
  • Skimpole gaily, innocently, and confidingly as he looked at his
  • drawing with his head on one side, "here you see me utterly incapable
  • of helping myself, and entirely in your hands! I only ask to be free.
  • The butterflies are free. Mankind will surely not deny to Harold
  • Skimpole what it concedes to the butterflies!"
  • "My dear Miss Summerson," said Richard in a whisper, "I have ten
  • pounds that I received from Mr. Kenge. I must try what that will do."
  • I possessed fifteen pounds, odd shillings, which I had saved from my
  • quarterly allowance during several years. I had always thought that
  • some accident might happen which would throw me suddenly, without any
  • relation or any property, on the world and had always tried to keep
  • some little money by me that I might not be quite penniless. I told
  • Richard of my having this little store and having no present need of
  • it, and I asked him delicately to inform Mr. Skimpole, while I should
  • be gone to fetch it, that we would have the pleasure of paying his
  • debt.
  • When I came back, Mr. Skimpole kissed my hand and seemed quite
  • touched. Not on his own account (I was again aware of that perplexing
  • and extraordinary contradiction), but on ours, as if personal
  • considerations were impossible with him and the contemplation of our
  • happiness alone affected him. Richard, begging me, for the greater
  • grace of the transaction, as he said, to settle with Coavinses (as
  • Mr. Skimpole now jocularly called him), I counted out the money and
  • received the necessary acknowledgment. This, too, delighted Mr.
  • Skimpole.
  • His compliments were so delicately administered that I blushed less
  • than I might have done and settled with the stranger in the white
  • coat without making any mistakes. He put the money in his pocket and
  • shortly said, "Well, then, I'll wish you a good evening, miss.
  • "My friend," said Mr. Skimpole, standing with his back to the fire
  • after giving up the sketch when it was half finished, "I should like
  • to ask you something, without offence."
  • I think the reply was, "Cut away, then!"
  • "Did you know this morning, now, that you were coming out on this
  • errand?" said Mr. Skimpole.
  • "Know'd it yes'day aft'noon at tea-time," said Coavinses.
  • "It didn't affect your appetite? Didn't make you at all uneasy?"
  • "Not a bit," said Coavinses. "I know'd if you wos missed to-day, you
  • wouldn't be missed to-morrow. A day makes no such odds."
  • "But when you came down here," proceeded Mr. Skimpole, "it was a fine
  • day. The sun was shining, the wind was blowing, the lights and
  • shadows were passing across the fields, the birds were singing."
  • "Nobody said they warn't, in MY hearing," returned Coavinses.
  • "No," observed Mr. Skimpole. "But what did you think upon the road?"
  • "Wot do you mean?" growled Coavinses with an appearance of strong
  • resentment. "Think! I've got enough to do, and little enough to get
  • for it without thinking. Thinking!" (with profound contempt).
  • "Then you didn't think, at all events," proceeded Mr. Skimpole, "to
  • this effect: 'Harold Skimpole loves to see the sun shine, loves to
  • hear the wind blow, loves to watch the changing lights and shadows,
  • loves to hear the birds, those choristers in Nature's great
  • cathedral. And does it seem to me that I am about to deprive Harold
  • Skimpole of his share in such possessions, which are his only
  • birthright!' You thought nothing to that effect?"
  • "I--certainly--did--NOT," said Coavinses, whose doggedness in utterly
  • renouncing the idea was of that intense kind that he could only give
  • adequate expression to it by putting a long interval between each
  • word, and accompanying the last with a jerk that might have
  • dislocated his neck.
  • "Very odd and very curious, the mental process is, in you men of
  • business!" said Mr. Skimpole thoughtfully. "Thank you, my friend.
  • Good night."
  • As our absence had been long enough already to seem strange
  • downstairs, I returned at once and found Ada sitting at work by the
  • fireside talking to her cousin John. Mr. Skimpole presently appeared,
  • and Richard shortly after him. I was sufficiently engaged during the
  • remainder of the evening in taking my first lesson in backgammon from
  • Mr. Jarndyce, who was very fond of the game and from whom I wished of
  • course to learn it as quickly as I could in order that I might be of
  • the very small use of being able to play when he had no better
  • adversary. But I thought, occasionally, when Mr. Skimpole played some
  • fragments of his own compositions or when, both at the piano and the
  • violoncello, and at our table, he preserved with an absence of all
  • effort his delightful spirits and his easy flow of conversation, that
  • Richard and I seemed to retain the transferred impression of having
  • been arrested since dinner and that it was very curious altogether.
  • It was late before we separated, for when Ada was going at eleven
  • o'clock, Mr. Skimpole went to the piano and rattled hilariously that
  • the best of all ways to lengthen our days was to steal a few hours
  • from night, my dear! It was past twelve before he took his candle and
  • his radiant face out of the room, and I think he might have kept us
  • there, if he had seen fit, until daybreak. Ada and Richard were
  • lingering for a few moments by the fire, wondering whether Mrs.
  • Jellyby had yet finished her dictation for the day, when Mr.
  • Jarndyce, who had been out of the room, returned.
  • "Oh, dear me, what's this, what's this!" he said, rubbing his head
  • and walking about with his good-humoured vexation. "What's this they
  • tell me? Rick, my boy, Esther, my dear, what have you been doing? Why
  • did you do it? How could you do it? How much apiece was it? The
  • wind's round again. I feel it all over me!"
  • We neither of us quite knew what to answer.
  • "Come, Rick, come! I must settle this before I sleep. How much are
  • you out of pocket? You two made the money up, you know! Why did you?
  • How could you? Oh, Lord, yes, it's due east--must be!"
  • "Really, sir," said Richard, "I don't think it would be honourable in
  • me to tell you. Mr. Skimpole relied upon us--"
  • "Lord bless you, my dear boy! He relies upon everybody!" said Mr.
  • Jarndyce, giving his head a great rub and stopping short.
  • "Indeed, sir?"
  • "Everybody! And he'll be in the same scrape again next week!" said
  • Mr. Jarndyce, walking again at a great pace, with a candle in his
  • hand that had gone out. "He's always in the same scrape. He was born
  • in the same scrape. I verily believe that the announcement in the
  • newspapers when his mother was confined was 'On Tuesday last, at her
  • residence in Botheration Buildings, Mrs. Skimpole of a son in
  • difficulties.'"
  • Richard laughed heartily but added, "Still, sir, I don't want to
  • shake his confidence or to break his confidence, and if I submit to
  • your better knowledge again, that I ought to keep his secret, I hope
  • you will consider before you press me any more. Of course, if you do
  • press me, sir, I shall know I am wrong and will tell you."
  • "Well!" cried Mr. Jarndyce, stopping again, and making several absent
  • endeavours to put his candlestick in his pocket. "I--here! Take it
  • away, my dear. I don't know what I am about with it; it's all the
  • wind--invariably has that effect--I won't press you, Rick; you may be
  • right. But really--to get hold of you and Esther--and to squeeze you
  • like a couple of tender young Saint Michael's oranges! It'll blow a
  • gale in the course of the night!"
  • He was now alternately putting his hands into his pockets as if he
  • were going to keep them there a long time, and taking them out again
  • and vehemently rubbing them all over his head.
  • I ventured to take this opportunity of hinting that Mr. Skimpole,
  • being in all such matters quite a child--
  • "Eh, my dear?" said Mr. Jarndyce, catching at the word.
  • "Being quite a child, sir," said I, "and so different from other
  • people--"
  • "You are right!" said Mr. Jarndyce, brightening. "Your woman's wit
  • hits the mark. He is a child--an absolute child. I told you he was a
  • child, you know, when I first mentioned him."
  • Certainly! Certainly! we said.
  • "And he IS a child. Now, isn't he?" asked Mr. Jarndyce, brightening
  • more and more.
  • He was indeed, we said.
  • "When you come to think of it, it's the height of childishness in
  • you--I mean me--" said Mr. Jarndyce, "to regard him for a moment as a
  • man. You can't make HIM responsible. The idea of Harold Skimpole with
  • designs or plans, or knowledge of consequences! Ha, ha, ha!"
  • It was so delicious to see the clouds about his bright face clearing,
  • and to see him so heartily pleased, and to know, as it was impossible
  • not to know, that the source of his pleasure was the goodness which
  • was tortured by condemning, or mistrusting, or secretly accusing any
  • one, that I saw the tears in Ada's eyes, while she echoed his laugh,
  • and felt them in my own.
  • "Why, what a cod's head and shoulders I am," said Mr. Jarndyce, "to
  • require reminding of it! The whole business shows the child from
  • beginning to end. Nobody but a child would have thought of singling
  • YOU two out for parties in the affair! Nobody but a child would have
  • thought of YOUR having the money! If it had been a thousand pounds,
  • it would have been just the same!" said Mr. Jarndyce with his whole
  • face in a glow.
  • We all confirmed it from our night's experience.
  • "To be sure, to be sure!" said Mr. Jarndyce. "However, Rick, Esther,
  • and you too, Ada, for I don't know that even your little purse is
  • safe from his inexperience--I must have a promise all round that
  • nothing of this sort shall ever be done any more. No advances! Not
  • even sixpences."
  • We all promised faithfully, Richard with a merry glance at me
  • touching his pocket as if to remind me that there was no danger of
  • OUR transgressing.
  • "As to Skimpole," said Mr. Jarndyce, "a habitable doll's house with
  • good board and a few tin people to get into debt with and borrow
  • money of would set the boy up in life. He is in a child's sleep by
  • this time, I suppose; it's time I should take my craftier head to my
  • more worldly pillow. Good night, my dears. God bless you!"
  • He peeped in again, with a smiling face, before we had lighted our
  • candles, and said, "Oh! I have been looking at the weather-cock. I
  • find it was a false alarm about the wind. It's in the south!" And
  • went away singing to himself.
  • Ada and I agreed, as we talked together for a little while upstairs,
  • that this caprice about the wind was a fiction and that he used the
  • pretence to account for any disappointment he could not conceal,
  • rather than he would blame the real cause of it or disparage or
  • depreciate any one. We thought this very characteristic of his
  • eccentric gentleness and of the difference between him and those
  • petulant people who make the weather and the winds (particularly that
  • unlucky wind which he had chosen for such a different purpose) the
  • stalking-horses of their splenetic and gloomy humours.
  • Indeed, so much affection for him had been added in this one evening
  • to my gratitude that I hoped I already began to understand him
  • through that mingled feeling. Any seeming inconsistencies in Mr.
  • Skimpole or in Mrs. Jellyby I could not expect to be able to
  • reconcile, having so little experience or practical knowledge.
  • Neither did I try, for my thoughts were busy when I was alone, with
  • Ada and Richard and with the confidence I had seemed to receive
  • concerning them. My fancy, made a little wild by the wind perhaps,
  • would not consent to be all unselfish, either, though I would have
  • persuaded it to be so if I could. It wandered back to my godmother's
  • house and came along the intervening track, raising up shadowy
  • speculations which had sometimes trembled there in the dark as to
  • what knowledge Mr. Jarndyce had of my earliest history--even as to
  • the possibility of his being my father, though that idle dream was
  • quite gone now.
  • It was all gone now, I remembered, getting up from the fire. It was
  • not for me to muse over bygones, but to act with a cheerful spirit
  • and a grateful heart. So I said to myself, "Esther, Esther, Esther!
  • Duty, my dear!" and gave my little basket of housekeeping keys such a
  • shake that they sounded like little bells and rang me hopefully to
  • bed.
  • CHAPTER VII
  • The Ghost's Walk
  • While Esther sleeps, and while Esther wakes, it is still wet weather
  • down at the place in Lincolnshire. The rain is ever falling--drip,
  • drip, drip--by day and night upon the broad flagged terrace-pavement,
  • the Ghost's Walk. The weather is so very bad down in Lincolnshire
  • that the liveliest imagination can scarcely apprehend its ever being
  • fine again. Not that there is any superabundant life of imagination
  • on the spot, for Sir Leicester is not here (and, truly, even if he
  • were, would not do much for it in that particular), but is in Paris
  • with my Lady; and solitude, with dusky wings, sits brooding upon
  • Chesney Wold.
  • There may be some motions of fancy among the lower animals at Chesney
  • Wold. The horses in the stables--the long stables in a barren,
  • red-brick court-yard, where there is a great bell in a turret, and a
  • clock with a large face, which the pigeons who live near it and who
  • love to perch upon its shoulders seem to be always consulting--THEY
  • may contemplate some mental pictures of fine weather on occasions,
  • and may be better artists at them than the grooms. The old roan, so
  • famous for cross-country work, turning his large eyeball to the
  • grated window near his rack, may remember the fresh leaves that
  • glisten there at other times and the scents that stream in, and may
  • have a fine run with the hounds, while the human helper, clearing out
  • the next stall, never stirs beyond his pitchfork and birch-broom. The
  • grey, whose place is opposite the door and who with an impatient
  • rattle of his halter pricks his ears and turns his head so wistfully
  • when it is opened, and to whom the opener says, "Woa grey, then,
  • steady! Noabody wants you to-day!" may know it quite as well as the
  • man. The whole seemingly monotonous and uncompanionable half-dozen,
  • stabled together, may pass the long wet hours when the door is shut
  • in livelier communication than is held in the servants' hall or at
  • the Dedlock Arms, or may even beguile the time by improving (perhaps
  • corrupting) the pony in the loose-box in the corner.
  • So the mastiff, dozing in his kennel in the court-yard with his large
  • head on his paws, may think of the hot sunshine when the shadows of
  • the stable-buildings tire his patience out by changing and leave him
  • at one time of the day no broader refuge than the shadow of his own
  • house, where he sits on end, panting and growling short, and very
  • much wanting something to worry besides himself and his chain. So
  • now, half-waking and all-winking, he may recall the house full of
  • company, the coach-houses full of vehicles, the stables full of
  • horses, and the out-buildings full of attendants upon horses, until
  • he is undecided about the present and comes forth to see how it is.
  • Then, with that impatient shake of himself, he may growl in the
  • spirit, "Rain, rain, rain! Nothing but rain--and no family here!" as
  • he goes in again and lies down with a gloomy yawn.
  • So with the dogs in the kennel-buildings across the park, who have
  • their restless fits and whose doleful voices when the wind has been
  • very obstinate have even made it known in the house itself--upstairs,
  • downstairs, and in my Lady's chamber. They may hunt the whole
  • country-side, while the raindrops are pattering round their
  • inactivity. So the rabbits with their self-betraying tails, frisking
  • in and out of holes at roots of trees, may be lively with ideas of
  • the breezy days when their ears are blown about or of those seasons
  • of interest when there are sweet young plants to gnaw. The turkey in
  • the poultry-yard, always troubled with a class-grievance (probably
  • Christmas), may be reminiscent of that summer morning wrongfully
  • taken from him when he got into the lane among the felled trees,
  • where there was a barn and barley. The discontented goose, who stoops
  • to pass under the old gateway, twenty feet high, may gabble out, if
  • we only knew it, a waddling preference for weather when the gateway
  • casts its shadow on the ground.
  • Be this as it may, there is not much fancy otherwise stirring at
  • Chesney Wold. If there be a little at any odd moment, it goes, like a
  • little noise in that old echoing place, a long way and usually leads
  • off to ghosts and mystery.
  • It has rained so hard and rained so long down in Lincolnshire that
  • Mrs. Rouncewell, the old housekeeper at Chesney Wold, has several
  • times taken off her spectacles and cleaned them to make certain that
  • the drops were not upon the glasses. Mrs. Rouncewell might have been
  • sufficiently assured by hearing the rain, but that she is rather
  • deaf, which nothing will induce her to believe. She is a fine old
  • lady, handsome, stately, wonderfully neat, and has such a back and
  • such a stomacher that if her stays should turn out when she dies to
  • have been a broad old-fashioned family fire-grate, nobody who knows
  • her would have cause to be surprised. Weather affects Mrs. Rouncewell
  • little. The house is there in all weathers, and the house, as she
  • expresses it, "is what she looks at." She sits in her room (in a side
  • passage on the ground floor, with an arched window commanding a
  • smooth quadrangle, adorned at regular intervals with smooth round
  • trees and smooth round blocks of stone, as if the trees were going to
  • play at bowls with the stones), and the whole house reposes on her
  • mind. She can open it on occasion and be busy and fluttered, but it
  • is shut up now and lies on the breadth of Mrs. Rouncewell's
  • iron-bound bosom in a majestic sleep.
  • It is the next difficult thing to an impossibility to imagine Chesney
  • Wold without Mrs. Rouncewell, but she has only been here fifty years.
  • Ask her how long, this rainy day, and she shall answer "fifty year,
  • three months, and a fortnight, by the blessing of heaven, if I live
  • till Tuesday." Mr. Rouncewell died some time before the decease of
  • the pretty fashion of pig-tails, and modestly hid his own (if he took
  • it with him) in a corner of the churchyard in the park near the
  • mouldy porch. He was born in the market-town, and so was his young
  • widow. Her progress in the family began in the time of the last Sir
  • Leicester and originated in the still-room.
  • The present representative of the Dedlocks is an excellent master. He
  • supposes all his dependents to be utterly bereft of individual
  • characters, intentions, or opinions, and is persuaded that he was
  • born to supersede the necessity of their having any. If he were to
  • make a discovery to the contrary, he would be simply stunned--would
  • never recover himself, most likely, except to gasp and die. But he is
  • an excellent master still, holding it a part of his state to be so.
  • He has a great liking for Mrs. Rouncewell; he says she is a most
  • respectable, creditable woman. He always shakes hands with her when
  • he comes down to Chesney Wold and when he goes away; and if he were
  • very ill, or if he were knocked down by accident, or run over, or
  • placed in any situation expressive of a Dedlock at a disadvantage, he
  • would say if he could speak, "Leave me, and send Mrs. Rouncewell
  • here!" feeling his dignity, at such a pass, safer with her than with
  • anybody else.
  • Mrs. Rouncewell has known trouble. She has had two sons, of whom the
  • younger ran wild, and went for a soldier, and never came back. Even
  • to this hour, Mrs. Rouncewell's calm hands lose their composure when
  • she speaks of him, and unfolding themselves from her stomacher, hover
  • about her in an agitated manner as she says what a likely lad, what a
  • fine lad, what a gay, good-humoured, clever lad he was! Her second
  • son would have been provided for at Chesney Wold and would have been
  • made steward in due season, but he took, when he was a schoolboy, to
  • constructing steam-engines out of saucepans and setting birds to draw
  • their own water with the least possible amount of labour, so
  • assisting them with artful contrivance of hydraulic pressure that a
  • thirsty canary had only, in a literal sense, to put his shoulder to
  • the wheel and the job was done. This propensity gave Mrs. Rouncewell
  • great uneasiness. She felt it with a mother's anguish to be a move in
  • the Wat Tyler direction, well knowing that Sir Leicester had that
  • general impression of an aptitude for any art to which smoke and a
  • tall chimney might be considered essential. But the doomed young
  • rebel (otherwise a mild youth, and very persevering), showing no sign
  • of grace as he got older but, on the contrary, constructing a model
  • of a power-loom, she was fain, with many tears, to mention his
  • backslidings to the baronet. "Mrs. Rouncewell," said Sir Leicester,
  • "I can never consent to argue, as you know, with any one on any
  • subject. You had better get rid of your boy; you had better get him
  • into some Works. The iron country farther north is, I suppose, the
  • congenial direction for a boy with these tendencies." Farther north
  • he went, and farther north he grew up; and if Sir Leicester Dedlock
  • ever saw him when he came to Chesney Wold to visit his mother, or
  • ever thought of him afterwards, it is certain that he only regarded
  • him as one of a body of some odd thousand conspirators, swarthy and
  • grim, who were in the habit of turning out by torchlight two or three
  • nights in the week for unlawful purposes.
  • Nevertheless, Mrs. Rouncewell's son has, in the course of nature and
  • art, grown up, and established himself, and married, and called unto
  • him Mrs. Rouncewell's grandson, who, being out of his apprenticeship,
  • and home from a journey in far countries, whither he was sent to
  • enlarge his knowledge and complete his preparations for the venture
  • of this life, stands leaning against the chimney-piece this very day
  • in Mrs. Rouncewell's room at Chesney Wold.
  • "And, again and again, I am glad to see you, Watt! And, once again, I
  • am glad to see you, Watt!" says Mrs. Rouncewell. "You are a fine
  • young fellow. You are like your poor uncle George. Ah!" Mrs.
  • Rouncewell's hands unquiet, as usual, on this reference.
  • "They say I am like my father, grandmother."
  • "Like him, also, my dear--but most like your poor uncle George! And
  • your dear father." Mrs. Rouncewell folds her hands again. "He is
  • well?"
  • "Thriving, grandmother, in every way."
  • "I am thankful!" Mrs. Rouncewell is fond of her son but has a
  • plaintive feeling towards him, much as if he were a very honourable
  • soldier who had gone over to the enemy.
  • "He is quite happy?" says she.
  • "Quite."
  • "I am thankful! So he has brought you up to follow in his ways and
  • has sent you into foreign countries and the like? Well, he knows
  • best. There may be a world beyond Chesney Wold that I don't
  • understand. Though I am not young, either. And I have seen a quantity
  • of good company too!"
  • "Grandmother," says the young man, changing the subject, "what a very
  • pretty girl that was I found with you just now. You called her Rosa?"
  • "Yes, child. She is daughter of a widow in the village. Maids are so
  • hard to teach, now-a-days, that I have put her about me young. She's
  • an apt scholar and will do well. She shows the house already, very
  • pretty. She lives with me at my table here."
  • "I hope I have not driven her away?"
  • "She supposes we have family affairs to speak about, I dare say. She
  • is very modest. It is a fine quality in a young woman. And scarcer,"
  • says Mrs. Rouncewell, expanding her stomacher to its utmost limits,
  • "than it formerly was!"
  • The young man inclines his head in acknowledgment of the precepts of
  • experience. Mrs. Rouncewell listens.
  • "Wheels!" says she. They have long been audible to the younger ears
  • of her companion. "What wheels on such a day as this, for gracious
  • sake?"
  • After a short interval, a tap at the door. "Come in!" A dark-eyed,
  • dark-haired, shy, village beauty comes in--so fresh in her rosy and
  • yet delicate bloom that the drops of rain which have beaten on her
  • hair look like the dew upon a flower fresh gathered.
  • "What company is this, Rosa?" says Mrs. Rouncewell.
  • "It's two young men in a gig, ma'am, who want to see the house--yes,
  • and if you please, I told them so!" in quick reply to a gesture of
  • dissent from the housekeeper. "I went to the hall-door and told them
  • it was the wrong day and the wrong hour, but the young man who was
  • driving took off his hat in the wet and begged me to bring this card
  • to you."
  • "Read it, my dear Watt," says the housekeeper.
  • Rosa is so shy as she gives it to him that they drop it between them
  • and almost knock their foreheads together as they pick it up. Rosa is
  • shyer than before.
  • "Mr. Guppy" is all the information the card yields.
  • "Guppy!" repeats Mrs. Rouncewell, "MR. Guppy! Nonsense, I never heard
  • of him!"
  • "If you please, he told ME that!" says Rosa. "But he said that he and
  • the other young gentleman came from London only last night by the
  • mail, on business at the magistrates' meeting, ten miles off, this
  • morning, and that as their business was soon over, and they had heard
  • a great deal said of Chesney Wold, and really didn't know what to do
  • with themselves, they had come through the wet to see it. They are
  • lawyers. He says he is not in Mr. Tulkinghorn's office, but he is
  • sure he may make use of Mr. Tulkinghorn's name if necessary."
  • Finding, now she leaves off, that she has been making quite a long
  • speech, Rosa is shyer than ever.
  • Now, Mr. Tulkinghorn is, in a manner, part and parcel of the place,
  • and besides, is supposed to have made Mrs. Rouncewell's will. The old
  • lady relaxes, consents to the admission of the visitors as a favour,
  • and dismisses Rosa. The grandson, however, being smitten by a sudden
  • wish to see the house himself, proposes to join the party. The
  • grandmother, who is pleased that he should have that interest,
  • accompanies him--though to do him justice, he is exceedingly
  • unwilling to trouble her.
  • "Much obliged to you, ma'am!" says Mr. Guppy, divesting himself of
  • his wet dreadnought in the hall. "Us London lawyers don't often get
  • an out, and when we do, we like to make the most of it, you know."
  • The old housekeeper, with a gracious severity of deportment, waves
  • her hand towards the great staircase. Mr. Guppy and his friend follow
  • Rosa; Mrs. Rouncewell and her grandson follow them; a young gardener
  • goes before to open the shutters.
  • As is usually the case with people who go over houses, Mr. Guppy and
  • his friend are dead beat before they have well begun. They straggle
  • about in wrong places, look at wrong things, don't care for the right
  • things, gape when more rooms are opened, exhibit profound depression
  • of spirits, and are clearly knocked up. In each successive chamber
  • that they enter, Mrs. Rouncewell, who is as upright as the house
  • itself, rests apart in a window-seat or other such nook and listens
  • with stately approval to Rosa's exposition. Her grandson is so
  • attentive to it that Rosa is shyer than ever--and prettier. Thus they
  • pass on from room to room, raising the pictured Dedlocks for a few
  • brief minutes as the young gardener admits the light, and
  • reconsigning them to their graves as he shuts it out again. It
  • appears to the afflicted Mr. Guppy and his inconsolable friend that
  • there is no end to the Dedlocks, whose family greatness seems to
  • consist in their never having done anything to distinguish themselves
  • for seven hundred years.
  • Even the long drawing-room of Chesney Wold cannot revive Mr. Guppy's
  • spirits. He is so low that he droops on the threshold and has hardly
  • strength of mind to enter. But a portrait over the chimney-piece,
  • painted by the fashionable artist of the day, acts upon him like a
  • charm. He recovers in a moment. He stares at it with uncommon
  • interest; he seems to be fixed and fascinated by it.
  • "Dear me!" says Mr. Guppy. "Who's that?"
  • "The picture over the fire-place," says Rosa, "is the portrait of the
  • present Lady Dedlock. It is considered a perfect likeness, and the
  • best work of the master."
  • "Blest," says Mr. Guppy, staring in a kind of dismay at his friend,
  • "if I can ever have seen her. Yet I know her! Has the picture been
  • engraved, miss?"
  • "The picture has never been engraved. Sir Leicester has always
  • refused permission."
  • "Well!" says Mr. Guppy in a low voice. "I'll be shot if it ain't very
  • curious how well I know that picture! So that's Lady Dedlock, is it!"
  • "The picture on the right is the present Sir Leicester Dedlock. The
  • picture on the left is his father, the late Sir Leicester."
  • Mr. Guppy has no eyes for either of these magnates. "It's
  • unaccountable to me," he says, still staring at the portrait, "how
  • well I know that picture! I'm dashed," adds Mr. Guppy, looking round,
  • "if I don't think I must have had a dream of that picture, you know!"
  • As no one present takes any especial interest in Mr. Guppy's dreams,
  • the probability is not pursued. But he still remains so absorbed by
  • the portrait that he stands immovable before it until the young
  • gardener has closed the shutters, when he comes out of the room in a
  • dazed state that is an odd though a sufficient substitute for
  • interest and follows into the succeeding rooms with a confused stare,
  • as if he were looking everywhere for Lady Dedlock again.
  • He sees no more of her. He sees her rooms, which are the last shown,
  • as being very elegant, and he looks out of the windows from which she
  • looked out, not long ago, upon the weather that bored her to death.
  • All things have an end, even houses that people take infinite pains
  • to see and are tired of before they begin to see them. He has come to
  • the end of the sight, and the fresh village beauty to the end of her
  • description; which is always this: "The terrace below is much
  • admired. It is called, from an old story in the family, the Ghost's
  • Walk."
  • "No?" says Mr. Guppy, greedily curious. "What's the story, miss? Is
  • it anything about a picture?"
  • "Pray tell us the story," says Watt in a half whisper.
  • "I don't know it, sir." Rosa is shyer than ever.
  • "It is not related to visitors; it is almost forgotten," says the
  • housekeeper, advancing. "It has never been more than a family
  • anecdote."
  • "You'll excuse my asking again if it has anything to do with a
  • picture, ma'am," observes Mr. Guppy, "because I do assure you that
  • the more I think of that picture the better I know it, without
  • knowing how I know it!"
  • The story has nothing to do with a picture; the housekeeper can
  • guarantee that. Mr. Guppy is obliged to her for the information and
  • is, moreover, generally obliged. He retires with his friend, guided
  • down another staircase by the young gardener, and presently is heard
  • to drive away. It is now dusk. Mrs. Rouncewell can trust to the
  • discretion of her two young hearers and may tell THEM how the terrace
  • came to have that ghostly name.
  • She seats herself in a large chair by the fast-darkening window and
  • tells them: "In the wicked days, my dears, of King Charles the
  • First--I mean, of course, in the wicked days of the rebels who
  • leagued themselves against that excellent king--Sir Morbury Dedlock
  • was the owner of Chesney Wold. Whether there was any account of a
  • ghost in the family before those days, I can't say. I should think it
  • very likely indeed."
  • Mrs. Rouncewell holds this opinion because she considers that a
  • family of such antiquity and importance has a right to a ghost. She
  • regards a ghost as one of the privileges of the upper classes, a
  • genteel distinction to which the common people have no claim.
  • "Sir Morbury Dedlock," says Mrs. Rouncewell, "was, I have no occasion
  • to say, on the side of the blessed martyr. But it IS supposed that
  • his Lady, who had none of the family blood in her veins, favoured the
  • bad cause. It is said that she had relations among King Charles's
  • enemies, that she was in correspondence with them, and that she gave
  • them information. When any of the country gentlemen who followed his
  • Majesty's cause met here, it is said that my Lady was always nearer
  • to the door of their council-room than they supposed. Do you hear a
  • sound like a footstep passing along the terrace, Watt?"
  • Rosa draws nearer to the housekeeper.
  • "I hear the rain-drip on the stones," replies the young man, "and I
  • hear a curious echo--I suppose an echo--which is very like a halting
  • step."
  • The housekeeper gravely nods and continues: "Partly on account of
  • this division between them, and partly on other accounts, Sir Morbury
  • and his Lady led a troubled life. She was a lady of a haughty temper.
  • They were not well suited to each other in age or character, and they
  • had no children to moderate between them. After her favourite
  • brother, a young gentleman, was killed in the civil wars (by Sir
  • Morbury's near kinsman), her feeling was so violent that she hated
  • the race into which she had married. When the Dedlocks were about to
  • ride out from Chesney Wold in the king's cause, she is supposed to
  • have more than once stolen down into the stables in the dead of night
  • and lamed their horses; and the story is that once at such an hour,
  • her husband saw her gliding down the stairs and followed her into the
  • stall where his own favourite horse stood. There he seized her by the
  • wrist, and in a struggle or in a fall or through the horse being
  • frightened and lashing out, she was lamed in the hip and from that
  • hour began to pine away."
  • The housekeeper has dropped her voice to a little more than a
  • whisper.
  • "She had been a lady of a handsome figure and a noble carriage. She
  • never complained of the change; she never spoke to any one of being
  • crippled or of being in pain, but day by day she tried to walk upon
  • the terrace, and with the help of the stone balustrade, went up and
  • down, up and down, up and down, in sun and shadow, with greater
  • difficulty every day. At last, one afternoon her husband (to whom she
  • had never, on any persuasion, opened her lips since that night),
  • standing at the great south window, saw her drop upon the pavement.
  • He hastened down to raise her, but she repulsed him as he bent over
  • her, and looking at him fixedly and coldly, said, 'I will die here
  • where I have walked. And I will walk here, though I am in my grave. I
  • will walk here until the pride of this house is humbled. And when
  • calamity or when disgrace is coming to it, let the Dedlocks listen
  • for my step!'"
  • Watt looks at Rosa. Rosa in the deepening gloom looks down upon the
  • ground, half frightened and half shy.
  • "There and then she died. And from those days," says Mrs. Rouncewell,
  • "the name has come down--the Ghost's Walk. If the tread is an echo,
  • it is an echo that is only heard after dark, and is often unheard for
  • a long while together. But it comes back from time to time; and so
  • sure as there is sickness or death in the family, it will be heard
  • then."
  • "And disgrace, grandmother--" says Watt.
  • "Disgrace never comes to Chesney Wold," returns the housekeeper.
  • Her grandson apologizes with "True. True."
  • "That is the story. Whatever the sound is, it is a worrying sound,"
  • says Mrs. Rouncewell, getting up from her chair; "and what is to be
  • noticed in it is that it MUST BE HEARD. My Lady, who is afraid of
  • nothing, admits that when it is there, it must be heard. You cannot
  • shut it out. Watt, there is a tall French clock behind you (placed
  • there, 'a purpose) that has a loud beat when it is in motion and can
  • play music. You understand how those things are managed?"
  • "Pretty well, grandmother, I think."
  • "Set it a-going."
  • Watt sets it a-going--music and all.
  • "Now, come hither," says the housekeeper. "Hither, child, towards my
  • Lady's pillow. I am not sure that it is dark enough yet, but listen!
  • Can you hear the sound upon the terrace, through the music, and the
  • beat, and everything?"
  • "I certainly can!"
  • "So my Lady says."
  • CHAPTER VIII
  • Covering a Multitude of Sins
  • It was interesting when I dressed before daylight to peep out of
  • window, where my candles were reflected in the black panes like
  • two beacons, and finding all beyond still enshrouded in the
  • indistinctness of last night, to watch how it turned out when the day
  • came on. As the prospect gradually revealed itself and disclosed the
  • scene over which the wind had wandered in the dark, like my memory
  • over my life, I had a pleasure in discovering the unknown objects
  • that had been around me in my sleep. At first they were faintly
  • discernible in the mist, and above them the later stars still
  • glimmered. That pale interval over, the picture began to enlarge and
  • fill up so fast that at every new peep I could have found enough
  • to look at for an hour. Imperceptibly my candles became the only
  • incongruous part of the morning, the dark places in my room all
  • melted away, and the day shone bright upon a cheerful landscape,
  • prominent in which the old Abbey Church, with its massive tower,
  • threw a softer train of shadow on the view than seemed compatible
  • with its rugged character. But so from rough outsides (I hope I have
  • learnt), serene and gentle influences often proceed.
  • Every part of the house was in such order, and every one was so
  • attentive to me, that I had no trouble with my two bunches of keys,
  • though what with trying to remember the contents of each little
  • store-room drawer and cupboard; and what with making notes on a slate
  • about jams, and pickles, and preserves, and bottles, and glass, and
  • china, and a great many other things; and what with being generally a
  • methodical, old-maidish sort of foolish little person, I was so busy
  • that I could not believe it was breakfast-time when I heard the bell
  • ring. Away I ran, however, and made tea, as I had already been
  • installed into the responsibility of the tea-pot; and then, as they
  • were all rather late and nobody was down yet, I thought I would take
  • a peep at the garden and get some knowledge of that too. I found it
  • quite a delightful place--in front, the pretty avenue and drive by
  • which we had approached (and where, by the by, we had cut up the
  • gravel so terribly with our wheels that I asked the gardener to roll
  • it); at the back, the flower-garden, with my darling at her window up
  • there, throwing it open to smile out at me, as if she would have
  • kissed me from that distance. Beyond the flower-garden was a
  • kitchen-garden, and then a paddock, and then a snug little rick-yard,
  • and then a dear little farm-yard. As to the house itself, with its
  • three peaks in the roof; its various-shaped windows, some so large,
  • some so small, and all so pretty; its trellis-work, against the
  • south-front for roses and honey-suckle, and its homely, comfortable,
  • welcoming look--it was, as Ada said when she came out to meet me with
  • her arm through that of its master, worthy of her cousin John, a bold
  • thing to say, though he only pinched her dear cheek for it.
  • Mr. Skimpole was as agreeable at breakfast as he had been overnight.
  • There was honey on the table, and it led him into a discourse about
  • bees. He had no objection to honey, he said (and I should think he
  • had not, for he seemed to like it), but he protested against the
  • overweening assumptions of bees. He didn't at all see why the busy
  • bee should be proposed as a model to him; he supposed the bee liked
  • to make honey, or he wouldn't do it--nobody asked him. It was not
  • necessary for the bee to make such a merit of his tastes. If every
  • confectioner went buzzing about the world banging against everything
  • that came in his way and egotistically calling upon everybody to take
  • notice that he was going to his work and must not be interrupted, the
  • world would be quite an unsupportable place. Then, after all, it was
  • a ridiculous position to be smoked out of your fortune with brimstone
  • as soon as you had made it. You would have a very mean opinion of a
  • Manchester man if he spun cotton for no other purpose. He must say he
  • thought a drone the embodiment of a pleasanter and wiser idea. The
  • drone said unaffectedly, "You will excuse me; I really cannot attend
  • to the shop! I find myself in a world in which there is so much to
  • see and so short a time to see it in that I must take the liberty of
  • looking about me and begging to be provided for by somebody who
  • doesn't want to look about him." This appeared to Mr. Skimpole to be
  • the drone philosophy, and he thought it a very good philosophy,
  • always supposing the drone to be willing to be on good terms with the
  • bee, which, so far as he knew, the easy fellow always was, if the
  • consequential creature would only let him, and not be so conceited
  • about his honey!
  • He pursued this fancy with the lightest foot over a variety of ground
  • and made us all merry, though again he seemed to have as serious a
  • meaning in what he said as he was capable of having. I left them
  • still listening to him when I withdrew to attend to my new duties.
  • They had occupied me for some time, and I was passing through the
  • passages on my return with my basket of keys on my arm when Mr.
  • Jarndyce called me into a small room next his bed-chamber, which I
  • found to be in part a little library of books and papers and in part
  • quite a little museum of his boots and shoes and hat-boxes.
  • "Sit down, my dear," said Mr. Jarndyce. "This, you must know, is the
  • growlery. When I am out of humour, I come and growl here."
  • "You must be here very seldom, sir," said I.
  • "Oh, you don't know me!" he returned. "When I am deceived or
  • disappointed in--the wind, and it's easterly, I take refuge here. The
  • growlery is the best-used room in the house. You are not aware of
  • half my humours yet. My dear, how you are trembling!"
  • I could not help it; I tried very hard, but being alone with that
  • benevolent presence, and meeting his kind eyes, and feeling so happy
  • and so honoured there, and my heart so full--I kissed his hand. I
  • don't know what I said, or even that I spoke. He was disconcerted and
  • walked to the window; I almost believed with an intention of jumping
  • out, until he turned and I was reassured by seeing in his eyes what
  • he had gone there to hide. He gently patted me on the head, and I sat
  • down.
  • "There! There!" he said. "That's over. Pooh! Don't be foolish."
  • "It shall not happen again, sir," I returned, "but at first it is
  • difficult--"
  • "Nonsense!" he said. "It's easy, easy. Why not? I hear of a good
  • little orphan girl without a protector, and I take it into my head to
  • be that protector. She grows up, and more than justifies my good
  • opinion, and I remain her guardian and her friend. What is there in
  • all this? So, so! Now, we have cleared off old scores, and I have
  • before me thy pleasant, trusting, trusty face again."
  • I said to myself, "Esther, my dear, you surprise me! This really is
  • not what I expected of you!" And it had such a good effect that I
  • folded my hands upon my basket and quite recovered myself. Mr.
  • Jarndyce, expressing his approval in his face, began to talk to me as
  • confidentially as if I had been in the habit of conversing with him
  • every morning for I don't know how long. I almost felt as if I had.
  • "Of course, Esther," he said, "you don't understand this Chancery
  • business?"
  • And of course I shook my head.
  • "I don't know who does," he returned. "The lawyers have twisted it
  • into such a state of bedevilment that the original merits of the case
  • have long disappeared from the face of the earth. It's about a will
  • and the trusts under a will--or it was once. It's about nothing but
  • costs now. We are always appearing, and disappearing, and swearing,
  • and interrogating, and filing, and cross-filing, and arguing, and
  • sealing, and motioning, and referring, and reporting, and revolving
  • about the Lord Chancellor and all his satellites, and equitably
  • waltzing ourselves off to dusty death, about costs. That's the great
  • question. All the rest, by some extraordinary means, has melted
  • away."
  • "But it was, sir," said I, to bring him back, for he began to rub his
  • head, "about a will?"
  • "Why, yes, it was about a will when it was about anything," he
  • returned. "A certain Jarndyce, in an evil hour, made a great fortune,
  • and made a great will. In the question how the trusts under that will
  • are to be administered, the fortune left by the will is squandered
  • away; the legatees under the will are reduced to such a miserable
  • condition that they would be sufficiently punished if they had
  • committed an enormous crime in having money left them, and the will
  • itself is made a dead letter. All through the deplorable cause,
  • everything that everybody in it, except one man, knows already is
  • referred to that only one man who don't know, it to find out--all
  • through the deplorable cause, everybody must have copies, over and
  • over again, of everything that has accumulated about it in the way of
  • cartloads of papers (or must pay for them without having them, which
  • is the usual course, for nobody wants them) and must go down the
  • middle and up again through such an infernal country-dance of costs
  • and fees and nonsense and corruption as was never dreamed of in the
  • wildest visions of a witch's Sabbath. Equity sends questions to law,
  • law sends questions back to equity; law finds it can't do this,
  • equity finds it can't do that; neither can so much as say it can't
  • do anything, without this solicitor instructing and this counsel
  • appearing for A, and that solicitor instructing and that counsel
  • appearing for B; and so on through the whole alphabet, like the
  • history of the apple pie. And thus, through years and years, and
  • lives and lives, everything goes on, constantly beginning over and
  • over again, and nothing ever ends. And we can't get out of the suit
  • on any terms, for we are made parties to it, and MUST BE parties to
  • it, whether we like it or not. But it won't do to think of it! When
  • my great uncle, poor Tom Jarndyce, began to think of it, it was the
  • beginning of the end!"
  • "The Mr. Jarndyce, sir, whose story I have heard?"
  • He nodded gravely. "I was his heir, and this was his house, Esther.
  • When I came here, it was bleak indeed. He had left the signs of his
  • misery upon it."
  • "How changed it must be now!" I said.
  • "It had been called, before his time, the Peaks. He gave it its
  • present name and lived here shut up, day and night poring over the
  • wicked heaps of papers in the suit and hoping against hope to
  • disentangle it from its mystification and bring it to a close. In the
  • meantime, the place became dilapidated, the wind whistled through the
  • cracked walls, the rain fell through the broken roof, the weeds
  • choked the passage to the rotting door. When I brought what remained
  • of him home here, the brains seemed to me to have been blown out of
  • the house too, it was so shattered and ruined."
  • He walked a little to and fro after saying this to himself with a
  • shudder, and then looked at me, and brightened, and came and sat down
  • again with his hands in his pockets.
  • "I told you this was the growlery, my dear. Where was I?"
  • I reminded him, at the hopeful change he had made in Bleak House.
  • "Bleak House; true. There is, in that city of London there, some
  • property of ours which is much at this day what Bleak House was then;
  • I say property of ours, meaning of the suit's, but I ought to call it
  • the property of costs, for costs is the only power on earth that will
  • ever get anything out of it now or will ever know it for anything but
  • an eyesore and a heartsore. It is a street of perishing blind houses,
  • with their eyes stoned out, without a pane of glass, without so much
  • as a window-frame, with the bare blank shutters tumbling from their
  • hinges and falling asunder, the iron rails peeling away in flakes of
  • rust, the chimneys sinking in, the stone steps to every door (and
  • every door might be death's door) turning stagnant green, the very
  • crutches on which the ruins are propped decaying. Although Bleak
  • House was not in Chancery, its master was, and it was stamped with
  • the same seal. These are the Great Seal's impressions, my dear, all
  • over England--the children know them!"
  • "How changed it is!" I said again.
  • "Why, so it is," he answered much more cheerfully; "and it is wisdom
  • in you to keep me to the bright side of the picture." (The idea of my
  • wisdom!) "These are things I never talk about or even think about,
  • excepting in the growlery here. If you consider it right to mention
  • them to Rick and Ada," looking seriously at me, "you can. I leave it
  • to your discretion, Esther."
  • "I hope, sir--" said I.
  • "I think you had better call me guardian, my dear."
  • I felt that I was choking again--I taxed myself with it, "Esther,
  • now, you know you are!"--when he feigned to say this slightly, as if
  • it were a whim instead of a thoughtful tenderness. But I gave the
  • housekeeping keys the least shake in the world as a reminder to
  • myself, and folding my hands in a still more determined manner on the
  • basket, looked at him quietly.
  • "I hope, guardian," said I, "that you may not trust too much to my
  • discretion. I hope you may not mistake me. I am afraid it will be a
  • disappointment to you to know that I am not clever, but it really is
  • the truth, and you would soon find it out if I had not the honesty to
  • confess it."
  • He did not seem at all disappointed; quite the contrary. He told me,
  • with a smile all over his face, that he knew me very well indeed and
  • that I was quite clever enough for him.
  • "I hope I may turn out so," said I, "but I am much afraid of it,
  • guardian."
  • "You are clever enough to be the good little woman of our lives here,
  • my dear," he returned playfully; "the little old woman of the child's
  • (I don't mean Skimpole's) rhyme:
  • "'Little old woman, and whither so high?'
  • 'To sweep the cobwebs out of the sky.'
  • "You will sweep them so neatly out of OUR sky in the course of your
  • housekeeping, Esther, that one of these days we shall have to abandon
  • the growlery and nail up the door."
  • This was the beginning of my being called Old Woman, and Little Old
  • Woman, and Cobweb, and Mrs. Shipton, and Mother Hubbard, and Dame
  • Durden, and so many names of that sort that my own name soon became
  • quite lost among them.
  • "However," said Mr. Jarndyce, "to return to our gossip. Here's Rick,
  • a fine young fellow full of promise. What's to be done with him?"
  • Oh, my goodness, the idea of asking my advice on such a point!
  • "Here he is, Esther," said Mr. Jarndyce, comfortably putting his
  • hands into his pockets and stretching out his legs. "He must have a
  • profession; he must make some choice for himself. There will be a
  • world more wiglomeration about it, I suppose, but it must be done."
  • "More what, guardian?" said I.
  • "More wiglomeration," said he. "It's the only name I know for the
  • thing. He is a ward in Chancery, my dear. Kenge and Carboy will have
  • something to say about it; Master Somebody--a sort of ridiculous
  • sexton, digging graves for the merits of causes in a back room at the
  • end of Quality Court, Chancery Lane--will have something to say about
  • it; counsel will have something to say about it; the Chancellor will
  • have something to say about it; the satellites will have something to
  • say about it; they will all have to be handsomely feed, all round,
  • about it; the whole thing will be vastly ceremonious, wordy,
  • unsatisfactory, and expensive, and I call it, in general,
  • wiglomeration. How mankind ever came to be afflicted with
  • wiglomeration, or for whose sins these young people ever fell into a
  • pit of it, I don't know; so it is."
  • He began to rub his head again and to hint that he felt the wind. But
  • it was a delightful instance of his kindness towards me that whether
  • he rubbed his head, or walked about, or did both, his face was sure
  • to recover its benignant expression as it looked at mine; and he was
  • sure to turn comfortable again and put his hands in his pockets and
  • stretch out his legs.
  • "Perhaps it would be best, first of all," said I, "to ask Mr. Richard
  • what he inclines to himself."
  • "Exactly so," he returned. "That's what I mean! You know, just
  • accustom yourself to talk it over, with your tact and in your quiet
  • way, with him and Ada, and see what you all make of it. We are sure
  • to come at the heart of the matter by your means, little woman."
  • I really was frightened at the thought of the importance I was
  • attaining and the number of things that were being confided to me. I
  • had not meant this at all; I had meant that he should speak to
  • Richard. But of course I said nothing in reply except that I would do
  • my best, though I feared (I really felt it necessary to repeat this)
  • that he thought me much more sagacious than I was. At which my
  • guardian only laughed the pleasantest laugh I ever heard.
  • "Come!" he said, rising and pushing back his chair. "I think we may
  • have done with the growlery for one day! Only a concluding word.
  • Esther, my dear, do you wish to ask me anything?"
  • He looked so attentively at me that I looked attentively at him and
  • felt sure I understood him.
  • "About myself, sir?" said I.
  • "Yes."
  • "Guardian," said I, venturing to put my hand, which was suddenly
  • colder than I could have wished, in his, "nothing! I am quite sure
  • that if there were anything I ought to know or had any need to know,
  • I should not have to ask you to tell it to me. If my whole reliance
  • and confidence were not placed in you, I must have a hard heart
  • indeed. I have nothing to ask you, nothing in the world."
  • He drew my hand through his arm and we went away to look for Ada.
  • From that hour I felt quite easy with him, quite unreserved, quite
  • content to know no more, quite happy.
  • We lived, at first, rather a busy life at Bleak House, for we had to
  • become acquainted with many residents in and out of the neighbourhood
  • who knew Mr. Jarndyce. It seemed to Ada and me that everybody knew
  • him who wanted to do anything with anybody else's money. It amazed us
  • when we began to sort his letters and to answer some of them for him
  • in the growlery of a morning to find how the great object of the
  • lives of nearly all his correspondents appeared to be to form
  • themselves into committees for getting in and laying out money. The
  • ladies were as desperate as the gentlemen; indeed, I think they were
  • even more so. They threw themselves into committees in the most
  • impassioned manner and collected subscriptions with a vehemence quite
  • extraordinary. It appeared to us that some of them must pass their
  • whole lives in dealing out subscription-cards to the whole
  • post-office directory--shilling cards, half-crown cards,
  • half-sovereign cards, penny cards. They wanted everything. They
  • wanted wearing apparel, they wanted linen rags, they wanted money,
  • they wanted coals, they wanted soup, they wanted interest, they
  • wanted autographs, they wanted flannel, they wanted whatever Mr.
  • Jarndyce had--or had not. Their objects were as various as their
  • demands. They were going to raise new buildings, they were going to
  • pay off debts on old buildings, they were going to establish in a
  • picturesque building (engraving of proposed west elevation attached)
  • the Sisterhood of Mediaeval Marys, they were going to give a
  • testimonial to Mrs. Jellyby, they were going to have their
  • secretary's portrait painted and presented to his mother-in-law,
  • whose deep devotion to him was well known, they were going to get up
  • everything, I really believe, from five hundred thousand tracts to an
  • annuity and from a marble monument to a silver tea-pot. They took a
  • multitude of titles. They were the Women of England, the Daughters of
  • Britain, the Sisters of all the cardinal virtues separately, the
  • Females of America, the Ladies of a hundred denominations. They
  • appeared to be always excited about canvassing and electing. They
  • seemed to our poor wits, and according to their own accounts, to be
  • constantly polling people by tens of thousands, yet never bringing
  • their candidates in for anything. It made our heads ache to think, on
  • the whole, what feverish lives they must lead.
  • Among the ladies who were most distinguished for this rapacious
  • benevolence (if I may use the expression) was a Mrs. Pardiggle, who
  • seemed, as I judged from the number of her letters to Mr. Jarndyce,
  • to be almost as powerful a correspondent as Mrs. Jellyby herself. We
  • observed that the wind always changed when Mrs. Pardiggle became the
  • subject of conversation and that it invariably interrupted Mr.
  • Jarndyce and prevented his going any farther, when he had remarked
  • that there were two classes of charitable people; one, the people who
  • did a little and made a great deal of noise; the other, the people
  • who did a great deal and made no noise at all. We were therefore
  • curious to see Mrs. Pardiggle, suspecting her to be a type of the
  • former class, and were glad when she called one day with her five
  • young sons.
  • She was a formidable style of lady with spectacles, a prominent nose,
  • and a loud voice, who had the effect of wanting a great deal of room.
  • And she really did, for she knocked down little chairs with her
  • skirts that were quite a great way off. As only Ada and I were at
  • home, we received her timidly, for she seemed to come in like cold
  • weather and to make the little Pardiggles blue as they followed.
  • "These, young ladies," said Mrs. Pardiggle with great volubility
  • after the first salutations, "are my five boys. You may have seen
  • their names in a printed subscription list (perhaps more than one) in
  • the possession of our esteemed friend Mr. Jarndyce. Egbert, my eldest
  • (twelve), is the boy who sent out his pocket-money, to the amount of
  • five and threepence, to the Tockahoopo Indians. Oswald, my second
  • (ten and a half), is the child who contributed two and nine-pence to
  • the Great National Smithers Testimonial. Francis, my third (nine),
  • one and sixpence halfpenny; Felix, my fourth (seven), eightpence to
  • the Superannuated Widows; Alfred, my youngest (five), has voluntarily
  • enrolled himself in the Infant Bonds of Joy, and is pledged never,
  • through life, to use tobacco in any form."
  • We had never seen such dissatisfied children. It was not merely that
  • they were weazened and shrivelled--though they were certainly that
  • too--but they looked absolutely ferocious with discontent. At the
  • mention of the Tockahoopo Indians, I could really have supposed
  • Egbert to be one of the most baleful members of that tribe, he gave
  • me such a savage frown. The face of each child, as the amount of his
  • contribution was mentioned, darkened in a peculiarly vindictive
  • manner, but his was by far the worst. I must except, however, the
  • little recruit into the Infant Bonds of Joy, who was stolidly and
  • evenly miserable.
  • "You have been visiting, I understand," said Mrs. Pardiggle, "at Mrs.
  • Jellyby's?"
  • We said yes, we had passed one night there.
  • "Mrs. Jellyby," pursued the lady, always speaking in the same
  • demonstrative, loud, hard tone, so that her voice impressed my fancy
  • as if it had a sort of spectacles on too--and I may take the
  • opportunity of remarking that her spectacles were made the less
  • engaging by her eyes being what Ada called "choking eyes," meaning
  • very prominent--"Mrs. Jellyby is a benefactor to society and deserves
  • a helping hand. My boys have contributed to the African
  • project--Egbert, one and six, being the entire allowance of nine
  • weeks; Oswald, one and a penny halfpenny, being the same; the rest,
  • according to their little means. Nevertheless, I do not go with Mrs.
  • Jellyby in all things. I do not go with Mrs. Jellyby in her treatment
  • of her young family. It has been noticed. It has been observed that
  • her young family are excluded from participation in the objects to
  • which she is devoted. She may be right, she may be wrong; but, right
  • or wrong, this is not my course with MY young family. I take them
  • everywhere."
  • I was afterwards convinced (and so was Ada) that from the
  • ill-conditioned eldest child, these words extorted a sharp yell. He
  • turned it off into a yawn, but it began as a yell.
  • "They attend matins with me (very prettily done) at half-past six
  • o'clock in the morning all the year round, including of course the
  • depth of winter," said Mrs. Pardiggle rapidly, "and they are with me
  • during the revolving duties of the day. I am a School lady, I am a
  • Visiting lady, I am a Reading lady, I am a Distributing lady; I am on
  • the local Linen Box Committee and many general committees; and my
  • canvassing alone is very extensive--perhaps no one's more so. But
  • they are my companions everywhere; and by these means they acquire
  • that knowledge of the poor, and that capacity of doing charitable
  • business in general--in short, that taste for the sort of
  • thing--which will render them in after life a service to their
  • neighbours and a satisfaction to themselves. My young family are not
  • frivolous; they expend the entire amount of their allowance in
  • subscriptions, under my direction; and they have attended as many
  • public meetings and listened to as many lectures, orations, and
  • discussions as generally fall to the lot of few grown people. Alfred
  • (five), who, as I mentioned, has of his own election joined the
  • Infant Bonds of Joy, was one of the very few children who manifested
  • consciousness on that occasion after a fervid address of two hours
  • from the chairman of the evening."
  • Alfred glowered at us as if he never could, or would, forgive the
  • injury of that night.
  • "You may have observed, Miss Summerson," said Mrs. Pardiggle, "in
  • some of the lists to which I have referred, in the possession of our
  • esteemed friend Mr. Jarndyce, that the names of my young family are
  • concluded with the name of O. A. Pardiggle, F.R.S., one pound. That
  • is their father. We usually observe the same routine. I put down my
  • mite first; then my young family enrol their contributions, according
  • to their ages and their little means; and then Mr. Pardiggle brings
  • up the rear. Mr. Pardiggle is happy to throw in his limited donation,
  • under my direction; and thus things are made not only pleasant to
  • ourselves, but, we trust, improving to others."
  • Suppose Mr. Pardiggle were to dine with Mr. Jellyby, and suppose Mr.
  • Jellyby were to relieve his mind after dinner to Mr. Pardiggle, would
  • Mr. Pardiggle, in return, make any confidential communication to Mr.
  • Jellyby? I was quite confused to find myself thinking this, but it
  • came into my head.
  • "You are very pleasantly situated here!" said Mrs. Pardiggle.
  • We were glad to change the subject, and going to the window, pointed
  • out the beauties of the prospect, on which the spectacles appeared to
  • me to rest with curious indifference.
  • "You know Mr. Gusher?" said our visitor.
  • We were obliged to say that we had not the pleasure of Mr. Gusher's
  • acquaintance.
  • "The loss is yours, I assure you," said Mrs. Pardiggle with her
  • commanding deportment. "He is a very fervid, impassioned
  • speaker--full of fire! Stationed in a waggon on this lawn, now,
  • which, from the shape of the land, is naturally adapted to a public
  • meeting, he would improve almost any occasion you could mention for
  • hours and hours! By this time, young ladies," said Mrs. Pardiggle,
  • moving back to her chair and overturning, as if by invisible agency,
  • a little round table at a considerable distance with my work-basket
  • on it, "by this time you have found me out, I dare say?"
  • This was really such a confusing question that Ada looked at me in
  • perfect dismay. As to the guilty nature of my own consciousness after
  • what I had been thinking, it must have been expressed in the colour
  • of my cheeks.
  • "Found out, I mean," said Mrs. Pardiggle, "the prominent point in my
  • character. I am aware that it is so prominent as to be discoverable
  • immediately. I lay myself open to detection, I know. Well! I freely
  • admit, I am a woman of business. I love hard work; I enjoy hard work.
  • The excitement does me good. I am so accustomed and inured to hard
  • work that I don't know what fatigue is."
  • We murmured that it was very astonishing and very gratifying, or
  • something to that effect. I don't think we knew what it was either,
  • but this is what our politeness expressed.
  • "I do not understand what it is to be tired; you cannot tire me if
  • you try!" said Mrs. Pardiggle. "The quantity of exertion (which is no
  • exertion to me), the amount of business (which I regard as nothing),
  • that I go through sometimes astonishes myself. I have seen my young
  • family, and Mr. Pardiggle, quite worn out with witnessing it, when I
  • may truly say I have been as fresh as a lark!"
  • If that dark-visaged eldest boy could look more malicious than he had
  • already looked, this was the time when he did it. I observed that he
  • doubled his right fist and delivered a secret blow into the crown of
  • his cap, which was under his left arm.
  • "This gives me a great advantage when I am making my rounds," said
  • Mrs. Pardiggle. "If I find a person unwilling to hear what I have to
  • say, I tell that person directly, 'I am incapable of fatigue, my good
  • friend, I am never tired, and I mean to go on until I have done.' It
  • answers admirably! Miss Summerson, I hope I shall have your
  • assistance in my visiting rounds immediately, and Miss Clare's very
  • soon."
  • At first I tried to excuse myself for the present on the general
  • ground of having occupations to attend to which I must not neglect.
  • But as this was an ineffectual protest, I then said, more
  • particularly, that I was not sure of my qualifications. That I was
  • inexperienced in the art of adapting my mind to minds very
  • differently situated, and addressing them from suitable points of
  • view. That I had not that delicate knowledge of the heart which must
  • be essential to such a work. That I had much to learn, myself, before
  • I could teach others, and that I could not confide in my good
  • intentions alone. For these reasons I thought it best to be as useful
  • as I could, and to render what kind services I could to those
  • immediately about me, and to try to let that circle of duty gradually
  • and naturally expand itself. All this I said with anything but
  • confidence, because Mrs. Pardiggle was much older than I, and had
  • great experience, and was so very military in her manners.
  • "You are wrong, Miss Summerson," said she, "but perhaps you are not
  • equal to hard work or the excitement of it, and that makes a vast
  • difference. If you would like to see how I go through my work, I am
  • now about--with my young family--to visit a brickmaker in the
  • neighbourhood (a very bad character) and shall be glad to take you
  • with me. Miss Clare also, if she will do me the favour."
  • Ada and I interchanged looks, and as we were going out in any case,
  • accepted the offer. When we hastily returned from putting on our
  • bonnets, we found the young family languishing in a corner and Mrs.
  • Pardiggle sweeping about the room, knocking down nearly all the light
  • objects it contained. Mrs. Pardiggle took possession of Ada, and I
  • followed with the family.
  • Ada told me afterwards that Mrs. Pardiggle talked in the same loud
  • tone (that, indeed, I overheard) all the way to the brickmaker's
  • about an exciting contest which she had for two or three years waged
  • against another lady relative to the bringing in of their rival
  • candidates for a pension somewhere. There had been a quantity of
  • printing, and promising, and proxying, and polling, and it appeared
  • to have imparted great liveliness to all concerned, except the
  • pensioners--who were not elected yet.
  • I am very fond of being confided in by children and am happy in being
  • usually favoured in that respect, but on this occasion it gave me
  • great uneasiness. As soon as we were out of doors, Egbert, with the
  • manner of a little footpad, demanded a shilling of me on the ground
  • that his pocket-money was "boned" from him. On my pointing out the
  • great impropriety of the word, especially in connexion with his
  • parent (for he added sulkily "By her!"), he pinched me and said, "Oh,
  • then! Now! Who are you! YOU wouldn't like it, I think? What does she
  • make a sham for, and pretend to give me money, and take it away
  • again? Why do you call it my allowance, and never let me spend it?"
  • These exasperating questions so inflamed his mind and the minds of
  • Oswald and Francis that they all pinched me at once, and in a
  • dreadfully expert way--screwing up such little pieces of my arms that
  • I could hardly forbear crying out. Felix, at the same time, stamped
  • upon my toes. And the Bond of Joy, who on account of always having
  • the whole of his little income anticipated stood in fact pledged to
  • abstain from cakes as well as tobacco, so swelled with grief and rage
  • when we passed a pastry-cook's shop that he terrified me by becoming
  • purple. I never underwent so much, both in body and mind, in the
  • course of a walk with young people as from these unnaturally
  • constrained children when they paid me the compliment of being
  • natural.
  • I was glad when we came to the brickmaker's house, though it was one
  • of a cluster of wretched hovels in a brick-field, with pigsties close
  • to the broken windows and miserable little gardens before the doors
  • growing nothing but stagnant pools. Here and there an old tub was put
  • to catch the droppings of rain-water from a roof, or they were banked
  • up with mud into a little pond like a large dirt-pie. At the doors
  • and windows some men and women lounged or prowled about, and took
  • little notice of us except to laugh to one another or to say
  • something as we passed about gentlefolks minding their own business
  • and not troubling their heads and muddying their shoes with coming to
  • look after other people's.
  • Mrs. Pardiggle, leading the way with a great show of moral
  • determination and talking with much volubility about the untidy
  • habits of the people (though I doubted if the best of us could have
  • been tidy in such a place), conducted us into a cottage at the
  • farthest corner, the ground-floor room of which we nearly filled.
  • Besides ourselves, there were in this damp, offensive room a woman
  • with a black eye, nursing a poor little gasping baby by the fire; a
  • man, all stained with clay and mud and looking very dissipated, lying
  • at full length on the ground, smoking a pipe; a powerful young man
  • fastening a collar on a dog; and a bold girl doing some kind of
  • washing in very dirty water. They all looked up at us as we came in,
  • and the woman seemed to turn her face towards the fire as if to hide
  • her bruised eye; nobody gave us any welcome.
  • "Well, my friends," said Mrs. Pardiggle, but her voice had not a
  • friendly sound, I thought; it was much too business-like and
  • systematic. "How do you do, all of you? I am here again. I told you,
  • you couldn't tire me, you know. I am fond of hard work, and am true
  • to my word."
  • "There an't," growled the man on the floor, whose head rested on his
  • hand as he stared at us, "any more on you to come in, is there?"
  • "No, my friend," said Mrs. Pardiggle, seating herself on one stool
  • and knocking down another. "We are all here."
  • "Because I thought there warn't enough of you, perhaps?" said the
  • man, with his pipe between his lips as he looked round upon us.
  • The young man and the girl both laughed. Two friends of the young
  • man, whom we had attracted to the doorway and who stood there with
  • their hands in their pockets, echoed the laugh noisily.
  • "You can't tire me, good people," said Mrs. Pardiggle to these
  • latter. "I enjoy hard work, and the harder you make mine, the better
  • I like it."
  • "Then make it easy for her!" growled the man upon the floor. "I wants
  • it done, and over. I wants a end of these liberties took with my
  • place. I wants an end of being drawed like a badger. Now you're
  • a-going to poll-pry and question according to custom--I know what
  • you're a-going to be up to. Well! You haven't got no occasion to be
  • up to it. I'll save you the trouble. Is my daughter a-washin? Yes,
  • she IS a-washin. Look at the water. Smell it! That's wot we drinks.
  • How do you like it, and what do you think of gin instead! An't my
  • place dirty? Yes, it is dirty--it's nat'rally dirty, and it's
  • nat'rally onwholesome; and we've had five dirty and onwholesome
  • children, as is all dead infants, and so much the better for them,
  • and for us besides. Have I read the little book wot you left? No, I
  • an't read the little book wot you left. There an't nobody here as
  • knows how to read it; and if there wos, it wouldn't be suitable to
  • me. It's a book fit for a babby, and I'm not a babby. If you was to
  • leave me a doll, I shouldn't nuss it. How have I been conducting of
  • myself? Why, I've been drunk for three days; and I'da been drunk four
  • if I'da had the money. Don't I never mean for to go to church? No, I
  • don't never mean for to go to church. I shouldn't be expected there,
  • if I did; the beadle's too gen-teel for me. And how did my wife get
  • that black eye? Why, I give it her; and if she says I didn't, she's a
  • lie!"
  • He had pulled his pipe out of his mouth to say all this, and he now
  • turned over on his other side and smoked again. Mrs. Pardiggle, who
  • had been regarding him through her spectacles with a forcible
  • composure, calculated, I could not help thinking, to increase his
  • antagonism, pulled out a good book as if it were a constable's staff
  • and took the whole family into custody. I mean into religious
  • custody, of course; but she really did it as if she were an
  • inexorable moral policeman carrying them all off to a station-house.
  • Ada and I were very uncomfortable. We both felt intrusive and out of
  • place, and we both thought that Mrs. Pardiggle would have got on
  • infinitely better if she had not had such a mechanical way of taking
  • possession of people. The children sulked and stared; the family took
  • no notice of us whatever, except when the young man made the dog
  • bark, which he usually did when Mrs. Pardiggle was most emphatic. We
  • both felt painfully sensible that between us and these people there
  • was an iron barrier which could not be removed by our new friend. By
  • whom or how it could be removed, we did not know, but we knew that.
  • Even what she read and said seemed to us to be ill-chosen for such
  • auditors, if it had been imparted ever so modestly and with ever so
  • much tact. As to the little book to which the man on the floor had
  • referred, we acquired a knowledge of it afterwards, and Mr. Jarndyce
  • said he doubted if Robinson Crusoe could have read it, though he had
  • had no other on his desolate island.
  • We were much relieved, under these circumstances, when Mrs. Pardiggle
  • left off.
  • The man on the floor, then turning his head round again, said
  • morosely, "Well! You've done, have you?"
  • "For to-day, I have, my friend. But I am never fatigued. I shall come
  • to you again in your regular order," returned Mrs. Pardiggle with
  • demonstrative cheerfulness.
  • "So long as you goes now," said he, folding his arms and shutting his
  • eyes with an oath, "you may do wot you like!"
  • Mrs. Pardiggle accordingly rose and made a little vortex in the
  • confined room from which the pipe itself very narrowly escaped.
  • Taking one of her young family in each hand, and telling the others
  • to follow closely, and expressing her hope that the brickmaker and
  • all his house would be improved when she saw them next, she then
  • proceeded to another cottage. I hope it is not unkind in me to say
  • that she certainly did make, in this as in everything else, a show
  • that was not conciliatory of doing charity by wholesale and of
  • dealing in it to a large extent.
  • She supposed that we were following her, but as soon as the space was
  • left clear, we approached the woman sitting by the fire to ask if the
  • baby were ill.
  • She only looked at it as it lay on her lap. We had observed before
  • that when she looked at it she covered her discoloured eye with her
  • hand, as though she wished to separate any association with noise and
  • violence and ill treatment from the poor little child.
  • Ada, whose gentle heart was moved by its appearance, bent down to
  • touch its little face. As she did so, I saw what happened and drew
  • her back. The child died.
  • "Oh, Esther!" cried Ada, sinking on her knees beside it. "Look here!
  • Oh, Esther, my love, the little thing! The suffering, quiet, pretty
  • little thing! I am so sorry for it. I am so sorry for the mother. I
  • never saw a sight so pitiful as this before! Oh, baby, baby!"
  • Such compassion, such gentleness, as that with which she bent down
  • weeping and put her hand upon the mother's might have softened any
  • mother's heart that ever beat. The woman at first gazed at her in
  • astonishment and then burst into tears.
  • Presently I took the light burden from her lap, did what I could to
  • make the baby's rest the prettier and gentler, laid it on a shelf,
  • and covered it with my own handkerchief. We tried to comfort the
  • mother, and we whispered to her what Our Saviour said of children.
  • She answered nothing, but sat weeping--weeping very much.
  • When I turned, I found that the young man had taken out the dog and
  • was standing at the door looking in upon us with dry eyes, but quiet.
  • The girl was quiet too and sat in a corner looking on the ground. The
  • man had risen. He still smoked his pipe with an air of defiance, but
  • he was silent.
  • An ugly woman, very poorly clothed, hurried in while I was glancing
  • at them, and coming straight up to the mother, said, "Jenny! Jenny!"
  • The mother rose on being so addressed and fell upon the woman's neck.
  • She also had upon her face and arms the marks of ill usage. She had
  • no kind of grace about her, but the grace of sympathy; but when she
  • condoled with the woman, and her own tears fell, she wanted no
  • beauty. I say condoled, but her only words were "Jenny! Jenny!" All
  • the rest was in the tone in which she said them.
  • I thought it very touching to see these two women, coarse and shabby
  • and beaten, so united; to see what they could be to one another; to
  • see how they felt for one another, how the heart of each to each was
  • softened by the hard trials of their lives. I think the best side of
  • such people is almost hidden from us. What the poor are to the poor
  • is little known, excepting to themselves and God.
  • We felt it better to withdraw and leave them uninterrupted. We stole
  • out quietly and without notice from any one except the man. He was
  • leaning against the wall near the door, and finding that there was
  • scarcely room for us to pass, went out before us. He seemed to want
  • to hide that he did this on our account, but we perceived that he
  • did, and thanked him. He made no answer.
  • Ada was so full of grief all the way home, and Richard, whom we found
  • at home, was so distressed to see her in tears (though he said to me,
  • when she was not present, how beautiful it was too!), that we
  • arranged to return at night with some little comforts and repeat our
  • visit at the brick-maker's house. We said as little as we could to
  • Mr. Jarndyce, but the wind changed directly.
  • Richard accompanied us at night to the scene of our morning
  • expedition. On our way there, we had to pass a noisy drinking-house,
  • where a number of men were flocking about the door. Among them, and
  • prominent in some dispute, was the father of the little child. At a
  • short distance, we passed the young man and the dog, in congenial
  • company. The sister was standing laughing and talking with some other
  • young women at the corner of the row of cottages, but she seemed
  • ashamed and turned away as we went by.
  • We left our escort within sight of the brickmaker's dwelling and
  • proceeded by ourselves. When we came to the door, we found the woman
  • who had brought such consolation with her standing there looking
  • anxiously out.
  • "It's you, young ladies, is it?" she said in a whisper. "I'm
  • a-watching for my master. My heart's in my mouth. If he was to catch
  • me away from home, he'd pretty near murder me."
  • "Do you mean your husband?" said I.
  • "Yes, miss, my master. Jenny's asleep, quite worn out. She's scarcely
  • had the child off her lap, poor thing, these seven days and nights,
  • except when I've been able to take it for a minute or two."
  • As she gave way for us, she went softly in and put what we had
  • brought near the miserable bed on which the mother slept. No effort
  • had been made to clean the room--it seemed in its nature almost
  • hopeless of being clean; but the small waxen form from which so much
  • solemnity diffused itself had been composed afresh, and washed, and
  • neatly dressed in some fragments of white linen; and on my
  • handkerchief, which still covered the poor baby, a little bunch of
  • sweet herbs had been laid by the same rough, scarred hands, so
  • lightly, so tenderly!
  • "May heaven reward you!" we said to her. "You are a good woman."
  • "Me, young ladies?" she returned with surprise. "Hush! Jenny, Jenny!"
  • The mother had moaned in her sleep and moved. The sound of the
  • familiar voice seemed to calm her again. She was quiet once more.
  • How little I thought, when I raised my handkerchief to look upon the
  • tiny sleeper underneath and seemed to see a halo shine around the
  • child through Ada's drooping hair as her pity bent her head--how
  • little I thought in whose unquiet bosom that handkerchief would come
  • to lie after covering the motionless and peaceful breast! I only
  • thought that perhaps the Angel of the child might not be all
  • unconscious of the woman who replaced it with so compassionate a
  • hand; not all unconscious of her presently, when we had taken leave,
  • and left her at the door, by turns looking, and listening in terror
  • for herself, and saying in her old soothing manner, "Jenny, Jenny!"
  • CHAPTER IX
  • Signs and Tokens
  • I don't know how it is I seem to be always writing about myself. I
  • mean all the time to write about other people, and I try to think
  • about myself as little as possible, and I am sure, when I find myself
  • coming into the story again, I am really vexed and say, "Dear, dear,
  • you tiresome little creature, I wish you wouldn't!" but it is all of
  • no use. I hope any one who may read what I write will understand that
  • if these pages contain a great deal about me, I can only suppose it
  • must be because I have really something to do with them and can't be
  • kept out.
  • My darling and I read together, and worked, and practised, and found
  • so much employment for our time that the winter days flew by us like
  • bright-winged birds. Generally in the afternoons, and always in the
  • evenings, Richard gave us his company. Although he was one of the
  • most restless creatures in the world, he certainly was very fond of
  • our society.
  • He was very, very, very fond of Ada. I mean it, and I had better say
  • it at once. I had never seen any young people falling in love before,
  • but I found them out quite soon. I could not say so, of course, or
  • show that I knew anything about it. On the contrary, I was so demure
  • and used to seem so unconscious that sometimes I considered within
  • myself while I was sitting at work whether I was not growing quite
  • deceitful.
  • But there was no help for it. All I had to do was to be quiet, and I
  • was as quiet as a mouse. They were as quiet as mice too, so far as
  • any words were concerned, but the innocent manner in which they
  • relied more and more upon me as they took more and more to one
  • another was so charming that I had great difficulty in not showing
  • how it interested me.
  • "Our dear little old woman is such a capital old woman," Richard
  • would say, coming up to meet me in the garden early, with his
  • pleasant laugh and perhaps the least tinge of a blush, "that I can't
  • get on without her. Before I begin my harum-scarum day--grinding away
  • at those books and instruments and then galloping up hill and down
  • dale, all the country round, like a highwayman--it does me so much
  • good to come and have a steady walk with our comfortable friend, that
  • here I am again!"
  • "You know, Dame Durden, dear," Ada would say at night, with her head
  • upon my shoulder and the firelight shining in her thoughtful eyes, "I
  • don't want to talk when we come upstairs here. Only to sit a little
  • while thinking, with your dear face for company, and to hear the wind
  • and remember the poor sailors at sea--"
  • Ah! Perhaps Richard was going to be a sailor. We had talked it over
  • very often now, and there was some talk of gratifying the inclination
  • of his childhood for the sea. Mr. Jarndyce had written to a relation
  • of the family, a great Sir Leicester Dedlock, for his interest in
  • Richard's favour, generally; and Sir Leicester had replied in a
  • gracious manner that he would be happy to advance the prospects of
  • the young gentleman if it should ever prove to be within his power,
  • which was not at all probable, and that my Lady sent her compliments
  • to the young gentleman (to whom she perfectly remembered that she was
  • allied by remote consanguinity) and trusted that he would ever do his
  • duty in any honourable profession to which he might devote himself.
  • "So I apprehend it's pretty clear," said Richard to me, "that I shall
  • have to work my own way. Never mind! Plenty of people have had to do
  • that before now, and have done it. I only wish I had the command of a
  • clipping privateer to begin with and could carry off the Chancellor
  • and keep him on short allowance until he gave judgment in our cause.
  • He'd find himself growing thin, if he didn't look sharp!"
  • With a buoyancy and hopefulness and a gaiety that hardly ever
  • flagged, Richard had a carelessness in his character that quite
  • perplexed me, principally because he mistook it, in such a very odd
  • way, for prudence. It entered into all his calculations about money
  • in a singular manner which I don't think I can better explain than by
  • reverting for a moment to our loan to Mr. Skimpole.
  • Mr. Jarndyce had ascertained the amount, either from Mr. Skimpole
  • himself or from Coavinses, and had placed the money in my hands with
  • instructions to me to retain my own part of it and hand the rest to
  • Richard. The number of little acts of thoughtless expenditure which
  • Richard justified by the recovery of his ten pounds, and the number
  • of times he talked to me as if he had saved or realized that amount,
  • would form a sum in simple addition.
  • "My prudent Mother Hubbard, why not?" he said to me when he wanted,
  • without the least consideration, to bestow five pounds on the
  • brickmaker. "I made ten pounds, clear, out of Coavinses' business."
  • "How was that?" said I.
  • "Why, I got rid of ten pounds which I was quite content to get rid of
  • and never expected to see any more. You don't deny that?"
  • "No," said I.
  • "Very well! Then I came into possession of ten pounds--"
  • "The same ten pounds," I hinted.
  • "That has nothing to do with it!" returned Richard. "I have got ten
  • pounds more than I expected to have, and consequently I can afford to
  • spend it without being particular."
  • In exactly the same way, when he was persuaded out of the sacrifice
  • of these five pounds by being convinced that it would do no good, he
  • carried that sum to his credit and drew upon it.
  • "Let me see!" he would say. "I saved five pounds out of the
  • brickmaker's affair, so if I have a good rattle to London and back in
  • a post-chaise and put that down at four pounds, I shall have saved
  • one. And it's a very good thing to save one, let me tell you: a penny
  • saved is a penny got!"
  • I believe Richard's was as frank and generous a nature as there
  • possibly can be. He was ardent and brave, and in the midst of all his
  • wild restlessness, was so gentle that I knew him like a brother in a
  • few weeks. His gentleness was natural to him and would have shown
  • itself abundantly even without Ada's influence; but with it, he
  • became one of the most winning of companions, always so ready to be
  • interested and always so happy, sanguine, and light-hearted. I am
  • sure that I, sitting with them, and walking with them, and talking
  • with them, and noticing from day to day how they went on, falling
  • deeper and deeper in love, and saying nothing about it, and each
  • shyly thinking that this love was the greatest of secrets, perhaps
  • not yet suspected even by the other--I am sure that I was scarcely
  • less enchanted than they were and scarcely less pleased with the
  • pretty dream.
  • We were going on in this way, when one morning at breakfast Mr.
  • Jarndyce received a letter, and looking at the superscription, said,
  • "From Boythorn? Aye, aye!" and opened and read it with evident
  • pleasure, announcing to us in a parenthesis when he was about
  • half-way through, that Boythorn was "coming down" on a visit. Now who
  • was Boythorn, we all thought. And I dare say we all thought too--I am
  • sure I did, for one--would Boythorn at all interfere with what was
  • going forward?
  • "I went to school with this fellow, Lawrence Boythorn," said Mr.
  • Jarndyce, tapping the letter as he laid it on the table, "more than
  • five and forty years ago. He was then the most impetuous boy in the
  • world, and he is now the most impetuous man. He was then the loudest
  • boy in the world, and he is now the loudest man. He was then the
  • heartiest and sturdiest boy in the world, and he is now the heartiest
  • and sturdiest man. He is a tremendous fellow."
  • "In stature, sir?" asked Richard.
  • "Pretty well, Rick, in that respect," said Mr. Jarndyce; "being some
  • ten years older than I and a couple of inches taller, with his head
  • thrown back like an old soldier, his stalwart chest squared, his
  • hands like a clean blacksmith's, and his lungs! There's no simile for
  • his lungs. Talking, laughing, or snoring, they make the beams of the
  • house shake."
  • As Mr. Jarndyce sat enjoying the image of his friend Boythorn, we
  • observed the favourable omen that there was not the least indication
  • of any change in the wind.
  • "But it's the inside of the man, the warm heart of the man, the
  • passion of the man, the fresh blood of the man, Rick--and Ada, and
  • little Cobweb too, for you are all interested in a visitor--that I
  • speak of," he pursued. "His language is as sounding as his voice. He
  • is always in extremes, perpetually in the superlative degree. In his
  • condemnation he is all ferocity. You might suppose him to be an ogre
  • from what he says, and I believe he has the reputation of one with
  • some people. There! I tell you no more of him beforehand. You must
  • not be surprised to see him take me under his protection, for he has
  • never forgotten that I was a low boy at school and that our
  • friendship began in his knocking two of my head tyrant's teeth out
  • (he says six) before breakfast. Boythorn and his man," to me, "will
  • be here this afternoon, my dear."
  • I took care that the necessary preparations were made for Mr.
  • Boythorn's reception, and we looked forward to his arrival with some
  • curiosity. The afternoon wore away, however, and he did not appear.
  • The dinner-hour arrived, and still he did not appear. The dinner was
  • put back an hour, and we were sitting round the fire with no light
  • but the blaze when the hall-door suddenly burst open and the hall
  • resounded with these words, uttered with the greatest vehemence and
  • in a stentorian tone: "We have been misdirected, Jarndyce, by a most
  • abandoned ruffian, who told us to take the turning to the right
  • instead of to the left. He is the most intolerable scoundrel on the
  • face of the earth. His father must have been a most consummate
  • villain, ever to have such a son. I would have had that fellow shot
  • without the least remorse!"
  • "Did he do it on purpose?" Mr. Jarndyce inquired.
  • "I have not the slightest doubt that the scoundrel has passed his
  • whole existence in misdirecting travellers!" returned the other. "By
  • my soul, I thought him the worst-looking dog I had ever beheld when
  • he was telling me to take the turning to the right. And yet I stood
  • before that fellow face to face and didn't knock his brains out!"
  • "Teeth, you mean?" said Mr. Jarndyce.
  • "Ha, ha, ha!" laughed Mr. Lawrence Boythorn, really making the whole
  • house vibrate. "What, you have not forgotten it yet! Ha, ha, ha! And
  • that was another most consummate vagabond! By my soul, the
  • countenance of that fellow when he was a boy was the blackest image
  • of perfidy, cowardice, and cruelty ever set up as a scarecrow in a
  • field of scoundrels. If I were to meet that most unparalleled despot
  • in the streets to-morrow, I would fell him like a rotten tree!"
  • "I have no doubt of it," said Mr. Jarndyce. "Now, will you come
  • upstairs?"
  • "By my soul, Jarndyce," returned his guest, who seemed to refer to
  • his watch, "if you had been married, I would have turned back at the
  • garden-gate and gone away to the remotest summits of the Himalaya
  • Mountains sooner than I would have presented myself at this
  • unseasonable hour."
  • "Not quite so far, I hope?" said Mr. Jarndyce.
  • "By my life and honour, yes!" cried the visitor. "I wouldn't be
  • guilty of the audacious insolence of keeping a lady of the house
  • waiting all this time for any earthly consideration. I would
  • infinitely rather destroy myself--infinitely rather!"
  • Talking thus, they went upstairs, and presently we heard him in his
  • bedroom thundering "Ha, ha, ha!" and again "Ha, ha, ha!" until the
  • flattest echo in the neighbourhood seemed to catch the contagion and
  • to laugh as enjoyingly as he did or as we did when we heard him
  • laugh.
  • We all conceived a prepossession in his favour, for there was a
  • sterling quality in this laugh, and in his vigorous, healthy voice,
  • and in the roundness and fullness with which he uttered every word he
  • spoke, and in the very fury of his superlatives, which seemed to go
  • off like blank cannons and hurt nothing. But we were hardly prepared
  • to have it so confirmed by his appearance when Mr. Jarndyce presented
  • him. He was not only a very handsome old gentleman--upright and
  • stalwart as he had been described to us--with a massive grey head, a
  • fine composure of face when silent, a figure that might have become
  • corpulent but for his being so continually in earnest that he gave it
  • no rest, and a chin that might have subsided into a double chin but
  • for the vehement emphasis in which it was constantly required to
  • assist; but he was such a true gentleman in his manner, so
  • chivalrously polite, his face was lighted by a smile of so much
  • sweetness and tenderness, and it seemed so plain that he had nothing
  • to hide, but showed himself exactly as he was--incapable, as Richard
  • said, of anything on a limited scale, and firing away with those
  • blank great guns because he carried no small arms whatever--that
  • really I could not help looking at him with equal pleasure as he sat
  • at dinner, whether he smilingly conversed with Ada and me, or was led
  • by Mr. Jarndyce into some great volley of superlatives, or threw up
  • his head like a bloodhound and gave out that tremendous "Ha, ha, ha!"
  • "You have brought your bird with you, I suppose?" said Mr. Jarndyce.
  • "By heaven, he is the most astonishing bird in Europe!" replied the
  • other. "He IS the most wonderful creature! I wouldn't take ten
  • thousand guineas for that bird. I have left an annuity for his sole
  • support in case he should outlive me. He is, in sense and attachment,
  • a phenomenon. And his father before him was one of the most
  • astonishing birds that ever lived!"
  • The subject of this laudation was a very little canary, who was so
  • tame that he was brought down by Mr. Boythorn's man, on his
  • forefinger, and after taking a gentle flight round the room, alighted
  • on his master's head. To hear Mr. Boythorn presently expressing the
  • most implacable and passionate sentiments, with this fragile mite of
  • a creature quietly perched on his forehead, was to have a good
  • illustration of his character, I thought.
  • "By my soul, Jarndyce," he said, very gently holding up a bit of
  • bread to the canary to peck at, "if I were in your place I would
  • seize every master in Chancery by the throat to-morrow morning and
  • shake him until his money rolled out of his pockets and his bones
  • rattled in his skin. I would have a settlement out of somebody, by
  • fair means or by foul. If you would empower me to do it, I would do
  • it for you with the greatest satisfaction!" (All this time the very
  • small canary was eating out of his hand.)
  • "I thank you, Lawrence, but the suit is hardly at such a point at
  • present," returned Mr. Jarndyce, laughing, "that it would be greatly
  • advanced even by the legal process of shaking the bench and the whole
  • bar."
  • "There never was such an infernal cauldron as that Chancery on the
  • face of the earth!" said Mr. Boythorn. "Nothing but a mine below it
  • on a busy day in term time, with all its records, rules, and
  • precedents collected in it and every functionary belonging to it
  • also, high and low, upward and downward, from its son the
  • Accountant-General to its father the Devil, and the whole blown to
  • atoms with ten thousand hundredweight of gunpowder, would reform it
  • in the least!"
  • It was impossible not to laugh at the energetic gravity with which he
  • recommended this strong measure of reform. When we laughed, he threw
  • up his head and shook his broad chest, and again the whole country
  • seemed to echo to his "Ha, ha, ha!" It had not the least effect in
  • disturbing the bird, whose sense of security was complete and who
  • hopped about the table with its quick head now on this side and now
  • on that, turning its bright sudden eye on its master as if he were no
  • more than another bird.
  • "But how do you and your neighbour get on about the disputed right of
  • way?" said Mr. Jarndyce. "You are not free from the toils of the law
  • yourself!"
  • "The fellow has brought actions against ME for trespass, and I have
  • brought actions against HIM for trespass," returned Mr. Boythorn. "By
  • heaven, he is the proudest fellow breathing. It is morally impossible
  • that his name can be Sir Leicester. It must be Sir Lucifer."
  • "Complimentary to our distant relation!" said my guardian laughingly
  • to Ada and Richard.
  • "I would beg Miss Clare's pardon and Mr. Carstone's pardon," resumed
  • our visitor, "if I were not reassured by seeing in the fair face of
  • the lady and the smile of the gentleman that it is quite unnecessary
  • and that they keep their distant relation at a comfortable distance."
  • "Or he keeps us," suggested Richard.
  • "By my soul," exclaimed Mr. Boythorn, suddenly firing another volley,
  • "that fellow is, and his father was, and his grandfather was, the
  • most stiff-necked, arrogant imbecile, pig-headed numskull, ever, by
  • some inexplicable mistake of Nature, born in any station of life but
  • a walking-stick's! The whole of that family are the most solemnly
  • conceited and consummate blockheads! But it's no matter; he should
  • not shut up my path if he were fifty baronets melted into one and
  • living in a hundred Chesney Wolds, one within another, like the ivory
  • balls in a Chinese carving. The fellow, by his agent, or secretary,
  • or somebody, writes to me 'Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, presents
  • his compliments to Mr. Lawrence Boythorn, and has to call his
  • attention to the fact that the green pathway by the old
  • parsonage-house, now the property of Mr. Lawrence Boythorn, is Sir
  • Leicester's right of way, being in fact a portion of the park of
  • Chesney Wold, and that Sir Leicester finds it convenient to close up
  • the same.' I write to the fellow, 'Mr. Lawrence Boythorn presents his
  • compliments to Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, and has to call HIS
  • attention to the fact that he totally denies the whole of Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock's positions on every possible subject and has to
  • add, in reference to closing up the pathway, that he will be glad to
  • see the man who may undertake to do it.' The fellow sends a most
  • abandoned villain with one eye to construct a gateway. I play upon
  • that execrable scoundrel with a fire-engine until the breath is
  • nearly driven out of his body. The fellow erects a gate in the night.
  • I chop it down and burn it in the morning. He sends his myrmidons to
  • come over the fence and pass and repass. I catch them in humane man
  • traps, fire split peas at their legs, play upon them with the
  • engine--resolve to free mankind from the insupportable burden of the
  • existence of those lurking ruffians. He brings actions for trespass;
  • I bring actions for trespass. He brings actions for assault and
  • battery; I defend them and continue to assault and batter. Ha, ha,
  • ha!"
  • To hear him say all this with unimaginable energy, one might have
  • thought him the angriest of mankind. To see him at the very same
  • time, looking at the bird now perched upon his thumb and softly
  • smoothing its feathers with his forefinger, one might have thought
  • him the gentlest. To hear him laugh and see the broad good nature of
  • his face then, one might have supposed that he had not a care in the
  • world, or a dispute, or a dislike, but that his whole existence was a
  • summer joke.
  • "No, no," he said, "no closing up of my paths by any Dedlock! Though
  • I willingly confess," here he softened in a moment, "that Lady
  • Dedlock is the most accomplished lady in the world, to whom I would
  • do any homage that a plain gentleman, and no baronet with a head
  • seven hundred years thick, may. A man who joined his regiment at
  • twenty and within a week challenged the most imperious and
  • presumptuous coxcomb of a commanding officer that ever drew the
  • breath of life through a tight waist--and got broke for it--is not
  • the man to be walked over by all the Sir Lucifers, dead or alive,
  • locked or unlocked. Ha, ha, ha!"
  • "Nor the man to allow his junior to be walked over either?" said my
  • guardian.
  • "Most assuredly not!" said Mr. Boythorn, clapping him on the shoulder
  • with an air of protection that had something serious in it, though he
  • laughed. "He will stand by the low boy, always. Jarndyce, you may
  • rely upon him! But speaking of this trespass--with apologies to Miss
  • Clare and Miss Summerson for the length at which I have pursued so
  • dry a subject--is there nothing for me from your men Kenge and
  • Carboy?"
  • "I think not, Esther?" said Mr. Jarndyce.
  • "Nothing, guardian."
  • "Much obliged!" said Mr. Boythorn. "Had no need to ask, after even my
  • slight experience of Miss Summerson's forethought for every one about
  • her." (They all encouraged me; they were determined to do it.) "I
  • inquired because, coming from Lincolnshire, I of course have not yet
  • been in town, and I thought some letters might have been sent down
  • here. I dare say they will report progress to-morrow morning."
  • I saw him so often in the course of the evening, which passed very
  • pleasantly, contemplate Richard and Ada with an interest and a
  • satisfaction that made his fine face remarkably agreeable as he sat
  • at a little distance from the piano listening to the music--and he
  • had small occasion to tell us that he was passionately fond of music,
  • for his face showed it--that I asked my guardian as we sat at the
  • backgammon board whether Mr. Boythorn had ever been married.
  • "No," said he. "No."
  • "But he meant to be!" said I.
  • "How did you find out that?" he returned with a smile. "Why,
  • guardian," I explained, not without reddening a little at hazarding
  • what was in my thoughts, "there is something so tender in his manner,
  • after all, and he is so very courtly and gentle to us, and--"
  • Mr. Jarndyce directed his eyes to where he was sitting as I have just
  • described him.
  • I said no more.
  • "You are right, little woman," he answered. "He was all but married
  • once. Long ago. And once."
  • "Did the lady die?"
  • "No--but she died to him. That time has had its influence on all his
  • later life. Would you suppose him to have a head and a heart full of
  • romance yet?"
  • "I think, guardian, I might have supposed so. But it is easy to say
  • that when you have told me so."
  • "He has never since been what he might have been," said Mr. Jarndyce,
  • "and now you see him in his age with no one near him but his servant
  • and his little yellow friend. It's your throw, my dear!"
  • I felt, from my guardian's manner, that beyond this point I could not
  • pursue the subject without changing the wind. I therefore forbore to
  • ask any further questions. I was interested, but not curious. I
  • thought a little while about this old love story in the night, when I
  • was awakened by Mr. Boythorn's lusty snoring; and I tried to do that
  • very difficult thing, imagine old people young again and invested
  • with the graces of youth. But I fell asleep before I had succeeded,
  • and dreamed of the days when I lived in my godmother's house. I am
  • not sufficiently acquainted with such subjects to know whether it is
  • at all remarkable that I almost always dreamed of that period of my
  • life.
  • With the morning there came a letter from Messrs. Kenge and Carboy to
  • Mr. Boythorn informing him that one of their clerks would wait upon
  • him at noon. As it was the day of the week on which I paid the bills,
  • and added up my books, and made all the household affairs as compact
  • as possible, I remained at home while Mr. Jarndyce, Ada, and Richard
  • took advantage of a very fine day to make a little excursion, Mr.
  • Boythorn was to wait for Kenge and Carboy's clerk and then was to go
  • on foot to meet them on their return.
  • Well! I was full of business, examining tradesmen's books, adding up
  • columns, paying money, filing receipts, and I dare say making a great
  • bustle about it when Mr. Guppy was announced and shown in. I had had
  • some idea that the clerk who was to be sent down might be the young
  • gentleman who had met me at the coach-office, and I was glad to see
  • him, because he was associated with my present happiness.
  • I scarcely knew him again, he was so uncommonly smart. He had an
  • entirely new suit of glossy clothes on, a shining hat, lilac-kid
  • gloves, a neckerchief of a variety of colours, a large hot-house
  • flower in his button-hole, and a thick gold ring on his little
  • finger. Besides which, he quite scented the dining-room with
  • bear's-grease and other perfumery. He looked at me with an attention
  • that quite confused me when I begged him to take a seat until the
  • servant should return; and as he sat there crossing and uncrossing
  • his legs in a corner, and I asked him if he had had a pleasant ride,
  • and hoped that Mr. Kenge was well, I never looked at him, but I found
  • him looking at me in the same scrutinizing and curious way.
  • When the request was brought to him that he would go upstairs to Mr.
  • Boythorn's room, I mentioned that he would find lunch prepared for
  • him when he came down, of which Mr. Jarndyce hoped he would partake.
  • He said with some embarrassment, holding the handle of the door,
  • "Shall I have the honour of finding you here, miss?" I replied yes, I
  • should be there; and he went out with a bow and another look.
  • I thought him only awkward and shy, for he was evidently much
  • embarrassed; and I fancied that the best thing I could do would be to
  • wait until I saw that he had everything he wanted and then to leave
  • him to himself. The lunch was soon brought, but it remained for some
  • time on the table. The interview with Mr. Boythorn was a long one,
  • and a stormy one too, I should think, for although his room was at
  • some distance I heard his loud voice rising every now and then like a
  • high wind, and evidently blowing perfect broadsides of denunciation.
  • At last Mr. Guppy came back, looking something the worse for the
  • conference. "My eye, miss," he said in a low voice, "he's a Tartar!"
  • "Pray take some refreshment, sir," said I.
  • Mr. Guppy sat down at the table and began nervously sharpening the
  • carving-knife on the carving-fork, still looking at me (as I felt
  • quite sure without looking at him) in the same unusual manner. The
  • sharpening lasted so long that at last I felt a kind of obligation on
  • me to raise my eyes in order that I might break the spell under which
  • he seemed to labour, of not being able to leave off.
  • He immediately looked at the dish and began to carve.
  • "What will you take yourself, miss? You'll take a morsel of
  • something?"
  • "No, thank you," said I.
  • "Shan't I give you a piece of anything at all, miss?" said Mr. Guppy,
  • hurriedly drinking off a glass of wine.
  • "Nothing, thank you," said I. "I have only waited to see that you
  • have everything you want. Is there anything I can order for you?"
  • "No, I am much obliged to you, miss, I'm sure. I've everything that I
  • can require to make me comfortable--at least I--not comfortable--I'm
  • never that." He drank off two more glasses of wine, one after
  • another.
  • I thought I had better go.
  • "I beg your pardon, miss!" said Mr. Guppy, rising when he saw me
  • rise. "But would you allow me the favour of a minute's private
  • conversation?"
  • Not knowing what to say, I sat down again.
  • "What follows is without prejudice, miss?" said Mr. Guppy, anxiously
  • bringing a chair towards my table.
  • "I don't understand what you mean," said I, wondering.
  • "It's one of our law terms, miss. You won't make any use of it to my
  • detriment at Kenge and Carboy's or elsewhere. If our conversation
  • shouldn't lead to anything, I am to be as I was and am not to be
  • prejudiced in my situation or worldly prospects. In short, it's in
  • total confidence."
  • "I am at a loss, sir," said I, "to imagine what you can have to
  • communicate in total confidence to me, whom you have never seen but
  • once; but I should be very sorry to do you any injury."
  • "Thank you, miss. I'm sure of it--that's quite sufficient." All this
  • time Mr. Guppy was either planing his forehead with his handkerchief
  • or tightly rubbing the palm of his left hand with the palm of his
  • right. "If you would excuse my taking another glass of wine, miss, I
  • think it might assist me in getting on without a continual choke that
  • cannot fail to be mutually unpleasant."
  • He did so, and came back again. I took the opportunity of moving well
  • behind my table.
  • "You wouldn't allow me to offer you one, would you miss?" said Mr.
  • Guppy, apparently refreshed.
  • "Not any," said I.
  • "Not half a glass?" said Mr. Guppy. "Quarter? No! Then, to proceed.
  • My present salary, Miss Summerson, at Kenge and Carboy's, is two
  • pound a week. When I first had the happiness of looking upon you, it
  • was one fifteen, and had stood at that figure for a lengthened
  • period. A rise of five has since taken place, and a further rise of
  • five is guaranteed at the expiration of a term not exceeding twelve
  • months from the present date. My mother has a little property, which
  • takes the form of a small life annuity, upon which she lives in an
  • independent though unassuming manner in the Old Street Road. She is
  • eminently calculated for a mother-in-law. She never interferes, is
  • all for peace, and her disposition easy. She has her failings--as who
  • has not?--but I never knew her do it when company was present, at
  • which time you may freely trust her with wines, spirits, or malt
  • liquors. My own abode is lodgings at Penton Place, Pentonville. It is
  • lowly, but airy, open at the back, and considered one of the
  • 'ealthiest outlets. Miss Summerson! In the mildest language, I adore
  • you. Would you be so kind as to allow me (as I may say) to file a
  • declaration--to make an offer!"
  • Mr. Guppy went down on his knees. I was well behind my table and not
  • much frightened. I said, "Get up from that ridiculous position
  • immediately, sir, or you will oblige me to break my implied promise
  • and ring the bell!"
  • "Hear me out, miss!" said Mr. Guppy, folding his hands.
  • "I cannot consent to hear another word, sir," I returned, "Unless you
  • get up from the carpet directly and go and sit down at the table as
  • you ought to do if you have any sense at all."
  • He looked piteously, but slowly rose and did so.
  • "Yet what a mockery it is, miss," he said with his hand upon his
  • heart and shaking his head at me in a melancholy manner over the
  • tray, "to be stationed behind food at such a moment. The soul recoils
  • from food at such a moment, miss."
  • "I beg you to conclude," said I; "you have asked me to hear you out,
  • and I beg you to conclude."
  • "I will, miss," said Mr. Guppy. "As I love and honour, so likewise I
  • obey. Would that I could make thee the subject of that vow before the
  • shrine!"
  • "That is quite impossible," said I, "and entirely out of the
  • question."
  • "I am aware," said Mr. Guppy, leaning forward over the tray and
  • regarding me, as I again strangely felt, though my eyes were not
  • directed to him, with his late intent look, "I am aware that in a
  • worldly point of view, according to all appearances, my offer is a
  • poor one. But, Miss Summerson! Angel! No, don't ring--I have been
  • brought up in a sharp school and am accustomed to a variety of
  • general practice. Though a young man, I have ferreted out evidence,
  • got up cases, and seen lots of life. Blest with your hand, what means
  • might I not find of advancing your interests and pushing your
  • fortunes! What might I not get to know, nearly concerning you? I know
  • nothing now, certainly; but what MIGHT I not if I had your
  • confidence, and you set me on?"
  • I told him that he addressed my interest or what he supposed to be my
  • interest quite as unsuccessfully as he addressed my inclination, and
  • he would now understand that I requested him, if he pleased, to go
  • away immediately.
  • "Cruel miss," said Mr. Guppy, "hear but another word! I think you
  • must have seen that I was struck with those charms on the day when I
  • waited at the Whytorseller. I think you must have remarked that I
  • could not forbear a tribute to those charms when I put up the steps
  • of the 'ackney-coach. It was a feeble tribute to thee, but it was
  • well meant. Thy image has ever since been fixed in my breast. I have
  • walked up and down of an evening opposite Jellyby's house only to
  • look upon the bricks that once contained thee. This out of to-day,
  • quite an unnecessary out so far as the attendance, which was its
  • pretended object, went, was planned by me alone for thee alone. If I
  • speak of interest, it is only to recommend myself and my respectful
  • wretchedness. Love was before it, and is before it."
  • "I should be pained, Mr. Guppy," said I, rising and putting my hand
  • upon the bell-rope, "to do you or any one who was sincere the
  • injustice of slighting any honest feeling, however disagreeably
  • expressed. If you have really meant to give me a proof of your good
  • opinion, though ill-timed and misplaced, I feel that I ought to thank
  • you. I have very little reason to be proud, and I am not proud. I
  • hope," I think I added, without very well knowing what I said, "that
  • you will now go away as if you had never been so exceedingly foolish
  • and attend to Messrs. Kenge and Carboy's business."
  • "Half a minute, miss!" cried Mr. Guppy, checking me as I was about to
  • ring. "This has been without prejudice?"
  • "I will never mention it," said I, "unless you should give me future
  • occasion to do so."
  • "A quarter of a minute, miss! In case you should think better at any
  • time, however distant--THAT'S no consequence, for my feelings can
  • never alter--of anything I have said, particularly what might I not
  • do, Mr. William Guppy, eighty-seven, Penton Place, or if removed, or
  • dead (of blighted hopes or anything of that sort), care of Mrs.
  • Guppy, three hundred and two, Old Street Road, will be sufficient."
  • I rang the bell, the servant came, and Mr. Guppy, laying his written
  • card upon the table and making a dejected bow, departed. Raising my
  • eyes as he went out, I once more saw him looking at me after he had
  • passed the door.
  • I sat there for another hour or more, finishing my books and payments
  • and getting through plenty of business. Then I arranged my desk, and
  • put everything away, and was so composed and cheerful that I thought
  • I had quite dismissed this unexpected incident. But, when I went
  • upstairs to my own room, I surprised myself by beginning to laugh
  • about it and then surprised myself still more by beginning to cry
  • about it. In short, I was in a flutter for a little while and felt as
  • if an old chord had been more coarsely touched than it ever had been
  • since the days of the dear old doll, long buried in the garden.
  • CHAPTER X
  • The Law-Writer
  • On the eastern borders of Chancery Lane, that is to say, more
  • particularly in Cook's Court, Cursitor Street, Mr. Snagsby,
  • law-stationer, pursues his lawful calling. In the shade of Cook's
  • Court, at most times a shady place, Mr. Snagsby has dealt in
  • all sorts of blank forms of legal process; in skins and rolls
  • of parchment; in paper--foolscap, brief, draft, brown, white,
  • whitey-brown, and blotting; in stamps; in office-quills, pens,
  • ink, India-rubber, pounce, pins, pencils, sealing-wax, and
  • wafers; in red tape and green ferret; in pocket-books, almanacs,
  • diaries, and law lists; in string boxes, rulers, inkstands--glass
  • and leaden--pen-knives, scissors, bodkins, and other small
  • office-cutlery; in short, in articles too numerous to mention, ever
  • since he was out of his time and went into partnership with Peffer.
  • On that occasion, Cook's Court was in a manner revolutionized by the
  • new inscription in fresh paint, PEFFER AND SNAGSBY, displacing the
  • time-honoured and not easily to be deciphered legend PEFFER only. For
  • smoke, which is the London ivy, had so wreathed itself round Peffer's
  • name and clung to his dwelling-place that the affectionate parasite
  • quite overpowered the parent tree.
  • Peffer is never seen in Cook's Court now. He is not expected there,
  • for he has been recumbent this quarter of a century in the churchyard
  • of St. Andrews, Holborn, with the waggons and hackney-coaches roaring
  • past him all the day and half the night like one great dragon. If he
  • ever steal forth when the dragon is at rest to air himself again in
  • Cook's Court until admonished to return by the crowing of the
  • sanguine cock in the cellar at the little dairy in Cursitor Street,
  • whose ideas of daylight it would be curious to ascertain, since he
  • knows from his personal observation next to nothing about it--if
  • Peffer ever do revisit the pale glimpses of Cook's Court, which no
  • law-stationer in the trade can positively deny, he comes invisibly,
  • and no one is the worse or wiser.
  • In his lifetime, and likewise in the period of Snagsby's "time"
  • of seven long years, there dwelt with Peffer in the same
  • law-stationering premises a niece--a short, shrewd niece, something
  • too violently compressed about the waist, and with a sharp nose like
  • a sharp autumn evening, inclining to be frosty towards the end. The
  • Cook's Courtiers had a rumour flying among them that the mother of
  • this niece did, in her daughter's childhood, moved by too jealous a
  • solicitude that her figure should approach perfection, lace her
  • up every morning with her maternal foot against the bed-post for
  • a stronger hold and purchase; and further, that she exhibited
  • internally pints of vinegar and lemon-juice, which acids, they held,
  • had mounted to the nose and temper of the patient. With whichsoever
  • of the many tongues of Rumour this frothy report originated, it
  • either never reached or never influenced the ears of young Snagsby,
  • who, having wooed and won its fair subject on his arrival at man's
  • estate, entered into two partnerships at once. So now, in Cook's
  • Court, Cursitor Street, Mr. Snagsby and the niece are one; and the
  • niece still cherishes her figure, which, however tastes may differ,
  • is unquestionably so far precious that there is mighty little of it.
  • Mr. and Mrs. Snagsby are not only one bone and one flesh, but, to the
  • neighbours' thinking, one voice too. That voice, appearing to proceed
  • from Mrs. Snagsby alone, is heard in Cook's Court very often. Mr.
  • Snagsby, otherwise than as he finds expression through these dulcet
  • tones, is rarely heard. He is a mild, bald, timid man with a shining
  • head and a scrubby clump of black hair sticking out at the back. He
  • tends to meekness and obesity. As he stands at his door in Cook's
  • Court in his grey shop-coat and black calico sleeves, looking up at
  • the clouds, or stands behind a desk in his dark shop with a heavy
  • flat ruler, snipping and slicing at sheepskin in company with his two
  • 'prentices, he is emphatically a retiring and unassuming man. From
  • beneath his feet, at such times, as from a shrill ghost unquiet in
  • its grave, there frequently arise complainings and lamentations in
  • the voice already mentioned; and haply, on some occasions when these
  • reach a sharper pitch than usual, Mr. Snagsby mentions to the
  • 'prentices, "I think my little woman is a-giving it to Guster!"
  • This proper name, so used by Mr. Snagsby, has before now sharpened
  • the wit of the Cook's Courtiers to remark that it ought to be the
  • name of Mrs. Snagsby, seeing that she might with great force and
  • expression be termed a Guster, in compliment to her stormy character.
  • It is, however, the possession, and the only possession except fifty
  • shillings per annum and a very small box indifferently filled with
  • clothing, of a lean young woman from a workhouse (by some supposed to
  • have been christened Augusta) who, although she was farmed or
  • contracted for during her growing time by an amiable benefactor of
  • his species resident at Tooting, and cannot fail to have been
  • developed under the most favourable circumstances, "has fits," which
  • the parish can't account for.
  • Guster, really aged three or four and twenty, but looking a round ten
  • years older, goes cheap with this unaccountable drawback of fits, and
  • is so apprehensive of being returned on the hands of her patron saint
  • that except when she is found with her head in the pail, or the sink,
  • or the copper, or the dinner, or anything else that happens to be
  • near her at the time of her seizure, she is always at work. She is a
  • satisfaction to the parents and guardians of the 'prentices, who feel
  • that there is little danger of her inspiring tender emotions in the
  • breast of youth; she is a satisfaction to Mrs. Snagsby, who can
  • always find fault with her; she is a satisfaction to Mr. Snagsby, who
  • thinks it a charity to keep her. The law-stationer's establishment
  • is, in Guster's eyes, a temple of plenty and splendour. She believes
  • the little drawing-room upstairs, always kept, as one may say, with
  • its hair in papers and its pinafore on, to be the most elegant
  • apartment in Christendom. The view it commands of Cook's Court at one
  • end (not to mention a squint into Cursitor Street) and of Coavinses'
  • the sheriff's officer's backyard at the other she regards as a
  • prospect of unequalled beauty. The portraits it displays in oil--and
  • plenty of it too--of Mr. Snagsby looking at Mrs. Snagsby and of Mrs.
  • Snagsby looking at Mr. Snagsby are in her eyes as achievements of
  • Raphael or Titian. Guster has some recompenses for her many
  • privations.
  • Mr. Snagsby refers everything not in the practical mysteries of the
  • business to Mrs. Snagsby. She manages the money, reproaches the
  • tax-gatherers, appoints the times and places of devotion on Sundays,
  • licenses Mr. Snagsby's entertainments, and acknowledges no
  • responsibility as to what she thinks fit to provide for dinner,
  • insomuch that she is the high standard of comparison among the
  • neighbouring wives a long way down Chancery Lane on both sides, and
  • even out in Holborn, who in any domestic passages of arms habitually
  • call upon their husbands to look at the difference between their (the
  • wives') position and Mrs. Snagsby's, and their (the husbands')
  • behaviour and Mr. Snagsby's. Rumour, always flying bat-like about
  • Cook's Court and skimming in and out at everybody's windows, does say
  • that Mrs. Snagsby is jealous and inquisitive and that Mr. Snagsby is
  • sometimes worried out of house and home, and that if he had the
  • spirit of a mouse he wouldn't stand it. It is even observed that the
  • wives who quote him to their self-willed husbands as a shining
  • example in reality look down upon him and that nobody does so with
  • greater superciliousness than one particular lady whose lord is more
  • than suspected of laying his umbrella on her as an instrument of
  • correction. But these vague whisperings may arise from Mr. Snagsby's
  • being in his way rather a meditative and poetical man, loving to walk
  • in Staple Inn in the summer-time and to observe how countrified the
  • sparrows and the leaves are, also to lounge about the Rolls Yard of a
  • Sunday afternoon and to remark (if in good spirits) that there were
  • old times once and that you'd find a stone coffin or two now under
  • that chapel, he'll be bound, if you was to dig for it. He solaces his
  • imagination, too, by thinking of the many Chancellors and Vices, and
  • Masters of the Rolls who are deceased; and he gets such a flavour of
  • the country out of telling the two 'prentices how he HAS heard say
  • that a brook "as clear as crystal" once ran right down the middle of
  • Holborn, when Turnstile really was a turnstile, leading slap away
  • into the meadows--gets such a flavour of the country out of this that
  • he never wants to go there.
  • The day is closing in and the gas is lighted, but is not yet fully
  • effective, for it is not quite dark. Mr. Snagsby standing at his
  • shop-door looking up at the clouds sees a crow who is out late skim
  • westward over the slice of sky belonging to Cook's Court. The crow
  • flies straight across Chancery Lane and Lincoln's Inn Garden into
  • Lincoln's Inn Fields.
  • Here, in a large house, formerly a house of state, lives Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn. It is let off in sets of chambers now, and in those
  • shrunken fragments of its greatness, lawyers lie like maggots in
  • nuts. But its roomy staircases, passages, and antechambers still
  • remain; and even its painted ceilings, where Allegory, in Roman
  • helmet and celestial linen, sprawls among balustrades and pillars,
  • flowers, clouds, and big-legged boys, and makes the head ache--as
  • would seem to be Allegory's object always, more or less. Here, among
  • his many boxes labelled with transcendent names, lives Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn, when not speechlessly at home in country-houses where
  • the great ones of the earth are bored to death. Here he is to-day,
  • quiet at his table. An oyster of the old school whom nobody can open.
  • Like as he is to look at, so is his apartment in the dusk of
  • the present afternoon. Rusty, out of date, withdrawing from
  • attention, able to afford it. Heavy, broad-backed, old-fashioned,
  • mahogany-and-horsehair chairs, not easily lifted; obsolete tables
  • with spindle-legs and dusty baize covers; presentation prints of the
  • holders of great titles in the last generation or the last but one,
  • environ him. A thick and dingy Turkey-carpet muffles the floor where
  • he sits, attended by two candles in old-fashioned silver candlesticks
  • that give a very insufficient light to his large room. The titles on
  • the backs of his books have retired into the binding; everything that
  • can have a lock has got one; no key is visible. Very few loose papers
  • are about. He has some manuscript near him, but is not referring
  • to it. With the round top of an inkstand and two broken bits of
  • sealing-wax he is silently and slowly working out whatever train of
  • indecision is in his mind. Now the inkstand top is in the middle, now
  • the red bit of sealing-wax, now the black bit. That's not it. Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn must gather them all up and begin again.
  • Here, beneath the painted ceiling, with foreshortened Allegory
  • staring down at his intrusion as if it meant to swoop upon him, and
  • he cutting it dead, Mr. Tulkinghorn has at once his house and office.
  • He keeps no staff, only one middle-aged man, usually a little out at
  • elbows, who sits in a high pew in the hall and is rarely overburdened
  • with business. Mr. Tulkinghorn is not in a common way. He wants no
  • clerks. He is a great reservoir of confidences, not to be so tapped.
  • His clients want HIM; he is all in all. Drafts that he requires to be
  • drawn are drawn by special-pleaders in the temple on mysterious
  • instructions; fair copies that he requires to be made are made at the
  • stationers', expense being no consideration. The middle-aged man in
  • the pew knows scarcely more of the affairs of the peerage than any
  • crossing-sweeper in Holborn.
  • The red bit, the black bit, the inkstand top, the other inkstand top,
  • the little sand-box. So! You to the middle, you to the right, you to
  • the left. This train of indecision must surely be worked out now or
  • never. Now! Mr. Tulkinghorn gets up, adjusts his spectacles, puts on
  • his hat, puts the manuscript in his pocket, goes out, tells the
  • middle-aged man out at elbows, "I shall be back presently." Very
  • rarely tells him anything more explicit.
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn goes, as the crow came--not quite so straight, but
  • nearly--to Cook's Court, Cursitor Street. To Snagsby's,
  • Law-Stationer's, Deeds engrossed and copied, Law-Writing executed in
  • all its branches, &c., &c., &c.
  • It is somewhere about five or six o'clock in the afternoon, and a
  • balmy fragrance of warm tea hovers in Cook's Court. It hovers about
  • Snagsby's door. The hours are early there: dinner at half-past one
  • and supper at half-past nine. Mr. Snagsby was about to descend into
  • the subterranean regions to take tea when he looked out of his door
  • just now and saw the crow who was out late.
  • "Master at home?"
  • Guster is minding the shop, for the 'prentices take tea in the
  • kitchen with Mr. and Mrs. Snagsby; consequently, the robe-maker's two
  • daughters, combing their curls at the two glasses in the two
  • second-floor windows of the opposite house, are not driving the two
  • 'prentices to distraction as they fondly suppose, but are merely
  • awakening the unprofitable admiration of Guster, whose hair won't
  • grow, and never would, and it is confidently thought, never will.
  • "Master at home?" says Mr. Tulkinghorn.
  • Master is at home, and Guster will fetch him. Guster disappears, glad
  • to get out of the shop, which she regards with mingled dread and
  • veneration as a storehouse of awful implements of the great torture
  • of the law--a place not to be entered after the gas is turned off.
  • Mr. Snagsby appears, greasy, warm, herbaceous, and chewing. Bolts a
  • bit of bread and butter. Says, "Bless my soul, sir! Mr. Tulkinghorn!"
  • "I want half a word with you, Snagsby."
  • "Certainly, sir! Dear me, sir, why didn't you send your young man
  • round for me? Pray walk into the back shop, sir." Snagsby has
  • brightened in a moment.
  • The confined room, strong of parchment-grease, is warehouse,
  • counting-house, and copying-office. Mr. Tulkinghorn sits, facing
  • round, on a stool at the desk.
  • "Jarndyce and Jarndyce, Snagsby."
  • "Yes, sir." Mr. Snagsby turns up the gas and coughs behind his hand,
  • modestly anticipating profit. Mr. Snagsby, as a timid man, is
  • accustomed to cough with a variety of expressions, and so to save
  • words.
  • "You copied some affidavits in that cause for me lately."
  • "Yes, sir, we did."
  • "There was one of them," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, carelessly
  • feeling--tight, unopenable oyster of the old school!--in the wrong
  • coat-pocket, "the handwriting of which is peculiar, and I rather
  • like. As I happened to be passing, and thought I had it about me, I
  • looked in to ask you--but I haven't got it. No matter, any other time
  • will do. Ah! here it is! I looked in to ask you who copied this."
  • "Who copied this, sir?" says Mr. Snagsby, taking it, laying it flat
  • on the desk, and separating all the sheets at once with a twirl and a
  • twist of the left hand peculiar to lawstationers. "We gave this out,
  • sir. We were giving out rather a large quantity of work just at that
  • time. I can tell you in a moment who copied it, sir, by referring to
  • my book."
  • Mr. Snagsby takes his book down from the safe, makes another bolt of
  • the bit of bread and butter which seemed to have stopped short, eyes
  • the affidavit aside, and brings his right forefinger travelling down
  • a page of the book, "Jewby--Packer--Jarndyce."
  • "Jarndyce! Here we are, sir," says Mr. Snagsby. "To be sure! I might
  • have remembered it. This was given out, sir, to a writer who lodges
  • just over on the opposite side of the lane."
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn has seen the entry, found it before the
  • law-stationer, read it while the forefinger was coming down the hill.
  • "WHAT do you call him? Nemo?" says Mr. Tulkinghorn. "Nemo, sir. Here
  • it is. Forty-two folio. Given out on the Wednesday night at eight
  • o'clock, brought in on the Thursday morning at half after nine."
  • "Nemo!" repeats Mr. Tulkinghorn. "Nemo is Latin for no one."
  • "It must be English for some one, sir, I think," Mr. Snagsby submits
  • with his deferential cough. "It is a person's name. Here it is, you
  • see, sir! Forty-two folio. Given out Wednesday night, eight o'clock;
  • brought in Thursday morning, half after nine."
  • The tail of Mr. Snagsby's eye becomes conscious of the head of Mrs.
  • Snagsby looking in at the shop-door to know what he means by
  • deserting his tea. Mr. Snagsby addresses an explanatory cough to Mrs.
  • Snagsby, as who should say, "My dear, a customer!"
  • "Half after nine, sir," repeats Mr. Snagsby. "Our law-writers, who
  • live by job-work, are a queer lot; and this may not be his name, but
  • it's the name he goes by. I remember now, sir, that he gives it in a
  • written advertisement he sticks up down at the Rule Office, and the
  • King's Bench Office, and the Judges' Chambers, and so forth. You know
  • the kind of document, sir--wanting employ?"
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn glances through the little window at the back of
  • Coavinses', the sheriff's officer's, where lights shine in Coavinses'
  • windows. Coavinses' coffee-room is at the back, and the shadows of
  • several gentlemen under a cloud loom cloudily upon the blinds. Mr.
  • Snagsby takes the opportunity of slightly turning his head to glance
  • over his shoulder at his little woman and to make apologetic motions
  • with his mouth to this effect: "Tul-king-horn--rich--in-flu-en-tial!"
  • "Have you given this man work before?" asks Mr. Tulkinghorn.
  • "Oh, dear, yes, sir! Work of yours."
  • "Thinking of more important matters, I forget where you said he
  • lived?"
  • "Across the lane, sir. In fact, he lodges at a--" Mr. Snagsby makes
  • another bolt, as if the bit of bread and butter were insurmountable
  • "--at a rag and bottle shop."
  • "Can you show me the place as I go back?"
  • "With the greatest pleasure, sir!"
  • Mr. Snagsby pulls off his sleeves and his grey coat, pulls on his
  • black coat, takes his hat from its peg. "Oh! Here is my little
  • woman!" he says aloud. "My dear, will you be so kind as to tell one
  • of the lads to look after the shop while I step across the lane with
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn? Mrs. Snagsby, sir--I shan't be two minutes, my
  • love!"
  • Mrs. Snagsby bends to the lawyer, retires behind the counter, peeps
  • at them through the window-blind, goes softly into the back office,
  • refers to the entries in the book still lying open. Is evidently
  • curious.
  • "You will find that the place is rough, sir," says Mr. Snagsby,
  • walking deferentially in the road and leaving the narrow pavement to
  • the lawyer; "and the party is very rough. But they're a wild lot in
  • general, sir. The advantage of this particular man is that he never
  • wants sleep. He'll go at it right on end if you want him to, as long
  • as ever you like."
  • It is quite dark now, and the gas-lamps have acquired their full
  • effect. Jostling against clerks going to post the day's letters, and
  • against counsel and attorneys going home to dinner, and against
  • plaintiffs and defendants and suitors of all sorts, and against the
  • general crowd, in whose way the forensic wisdom of ages has
  • interposed a million of obstacles to the transaction of the commonest
  • business of life; diving through law and equity, and through that
  • kindred mystery, the street mud, which is made of nobody knows what
  • and collects about us nobody knows whence or how--we only knowing in
  • general that when there is too much of it we find it necessary to
  • shovel it away--the lawyer and the law-stationer come to a rag and
  • bottle shop and general emporium of much disregarded merchandise,
  • lying and being in the shadow of the wall of Lincoln's Inn, and kept,
  • as is announced in paint, to all whom it may concern, by one Krook.
  • "This is where he lives, sir," says the law-stationer.
  • "This is where he lives, is it?" says the lawyer unconcernedly.
  • "Thank you."
  • "Are you not going in, sir?"
  • "No, thank you, no; I am going on to the Fields at present. Good
  • evening. Thank you!" Mr. Snagsby lifts his hat and returns to his
  • little woman and his tea.
  • But Mr. Tulkinghorn does not go on to the Fields at present. He goes
  • a short way, turns back, comes again to the shop of Mr. Krook, and
  • enters it straight. It is dim enough, with a blot-headed candle or so
  • in the windows, and an old man and a cat sitting in the back part by
  • a fire. The old man rises and comes forward, with another blot-headed
  • candle in his hand.
  • "Pray is your lodger within?"
  • "Male or female, sir?" says Mr. Krook.
  • "Male. The person who does copying."
  • Mr. Krook has eyed his man narrowly. Knows him by sight. Has an
  • indistinct impression of his aristocratic repute.
  • "Did you wish to see him, sir?"
  • "Yes."
  • "It's what I seldom do myself," says Mr. Krook with a grin. "Shall I
  • call him down? But it's a weak chance if he'd come, sir!"
  • "I'll go up to him, then," says Mr. Tulkinghorn.
  • "Second floor, sir. Take the candle. Up there!" Mr. Krook, with his
  • cat beside him, stands at the bottom of the staircase, looking after
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn. "Hi-hi!" he says when Mr. Tulkinghorn has nearly
  • disappeared. The lawyer looks down over the hand-rail. The cat
  • expands her wicked mouth and snarls at him.
  • "Order, Lady Jane! Behave yourself to visitors, my lady! You know
  • what they say of my lodger?" whispers Krook, going up a step or two.
  • "What do they say of him?"
  • "They say he has sold himself to the enemy, but you and I know
  • better--he don't buy. I'll tell you what, though; my lodger is so
  • black-humoured and gloomy that I believe he'd as soon make that
  • bargain as any other. Don't put him out, sir. That's my advice!"
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn with a nod goes on his way. He comes to the dark door
  • on the second floor. He knocks, receives no answer, opens it, and
  • accidentally extinguishes his candle in doing so.
  • The air of the room is almost bad enough to have extinguished it if
  • he had not. It is a small room, nearly black with soot, and grease,
  • and dirt. In the rusty skeleton of a grate, pinched at the middle as
  • if poverty had gripped it, a red coke fire burns low. In the corner
  • by the chimney stand a deal table and a broken desk, a wilderness
  • marked with a rain of ink. In another corner a ragged old portmanteau
  • on one of the two chairs serves for cabinet or wardrobe; no larger
  • one is needed, for it collapses like the cheeks of a starved man. The
  • floor is bare, except that one old mat, trodden to shreds of
  • rope-yarn, lies perishing upon the hearth. No curtain veils the
  • darkness of the night, but the discoloured shutters are drawn
  • together, and through the two gaunt holes pierced in them, famine
  • might be staring in--the banshee of the man upon the bed.
  • For, on a low bed opposite the fire, a confusion of dirty patchwork,
  • lean-ribbed ticking, and coarse sacking, the lawyer, hesitating just
  • within the doorway, sees a man. He lies there, dressed in shirt and
  • trousers, with bare feet. He has a yellow look in the spectral
  • darkness of a candle that has guttered down until the whole length of
  • its wick (still burning) has doubled over and left a tower of
  • winding-sheet above it. His hair is ragged, mingling with his
  • whiskers and his beard--the latter, ragged too, and grown, like the
  • scum and mist around him, in neglect. Foul and filthy as the room is,
  • foul and filthy as the air is, it is not easy to perceive what fumes
  • those are which most oppress the senses in it; but through the
  • general sickliness and faintness, and the odour of stale tobacco,
  • there comes into the lawyer's mouth the bitter, vapid taste of opium.
  • "Hallo, my friend!" he cries, and strikes his iron candlestick
  • against the door.
  • He thinks he has awakened his friend. He lies a little turned away,
  • but his eyes are surely open.
  • "Hallo, my friend!" he cries again. "Hallo! Hallo!"
  • As he rattles on the door, the candle which has drooped so long goes
  • out and leaves him in the dark, with the gaunt eyes in the shutters
  • staring down upon the bed.
  • CHAPTER XI
  • Our Dear Brother
  • A touch on the lawyer's wrinkled hand as he stands in the dark room,
  • irresolute, makes him start and say, "What's that?"
  • "It's me," returns the old man of the house, whose breath is in his
  • ear. "Can't you wake him?"
  • "No."
  • "What have you done with your candle?"
  • "It's gone out. Here it is."
  • Krook takes it, goes to the fire, stoops over the red embers, and
  • tries to get a light. The dying ashes have no light to spare, and his
  • endeavours are vain. Muttering, after an ineffectual call to his
  • lodger, that he will go downstairs and bring a lighted candle from
  • the shop, the old man departs. Mr. Tulkinghorn, for some new reason
  • that he has, does not await his return in the room, but on the stairs
  • outside.
  • The welcome light soon shines upon the wall, as Krook comes slowly up
  • with his green-eyed cat following at his heels. "Does the man
  • generally sleep like this?" inquired the lawyer in a low voice. "Hi!
  • I don't know," says Krook, shaking his head and lifting his eyebrows.
  • "I know next to nothing of his habits except that he keeps himself
  • very close."
  • Thus whispering, they both go in together. As the light goes in, the
  • great eyes in the shutters, darkening, seem to close. Not so the eyes
  • upon the bed.
  • "God save us!" exclaims Mr. Tulkinghorn. "He is dead!" Krook drops
  • the heavy hand he has taken up so suddenly that the arm swings over
  • the bedside.
  • They look at one another for a moment.
  • "Send for some doctor! Call for Miss Flite up the stairs, sir. Here's
  • poison by the bed! Call out for Flite, will you?" says Krook, with
  • his lean hands spread out above the body like a vampire's wings.
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn hurries to the landing and calls, "Miss Flite! Flite!
  • Make haste, here, whoever you are! Flite!" Krook follows him with his
  • eyes, and while he is calling, finds opportunity to steal to the old
  • portmanteau and steal back again.
  • "Run, Flite, run! The nearest doctor! Run!" So Mr. Krook addresses a
  • crazy little woman who is his female lodger, who appears and vanishes
  • in a breath, who soon returns accompanied by a testy medical man
  • brought from his dinner, with a broad, snuffy upper lip and a broad
  • Scotch tongue.
  • "Ey! Bless the hearts o' ye," says the medical man, looking up at
  • them after a moment's examination. "He's just as dead as Phairy!"
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn (standing by the old portmanteau) inquires if he has
  • been dead any time.
  • "Any time, sir?" says the medical gentleman. "It's probable he wull
  • have been dead aboot three hours."
  • "About that time, I should say," observes a dark young man on the
  • other side of the bed.
  • "Air you in the maydickle prayfession yourself, sir?" inquires the
  • first.
  • The dark young man says yes.
  • "Then I'll just tak' my depairture," replies the other, "for I'm nae
  • gude here!" With which remark he finishes his brief attendance and
  • returns to finish his dinner.
  • The dark young surgeon passes the candle across and across the face
  • and carefully examines the law-writer, who has established his
  • pretensions to his name by becoming indeed No one.
  • "I knew this person by sight very well," says he. "He has purchased
  • opium of me for the last year and a half. Was anybody present related
  • to him?" glancing round upon the three bystanders.
  • "I was his landlord," grimly answers Krook, taking the candle from
  • the surgeon's outstretched hand. "He told me once I was the nearest
  • relation he had."
  • "He has died," says the surgeon, "of an over-dose of opium, there is
  • no doubt. The room is strongly flavoured with it. There is enough
  • here now," taking an old tea-pot from Mr. Krook, "to kill a dozen
  • people."
  • "Do you think he did it on purpose?" asks Krook.
  • "Took the over-dose?"
  • "Yes!" Krook almost smacks his lips with the unction of a horrible
  • interest.
  • "I can't say. I should think it unlikely, as he has been in the habit
  • of taking so much. But nobody can tell. He was very poor, I suppose?"
  • "I suppose he was. His room--don't look rich," says Krook, who might
  • have changed eyes with his cat, as he casts his sharp glance around.
  • "But I have never been in it since he had it, and he was too close to
  • name his circumstances to me."
  • "Did he owe you any rent?"
  • "Six weeks."
  • "He will never pay it!" says the young man, resuming his examination.
  • "It is beyond a doubt that he is indeed as dead as Pharaoh; and to
  • judge from his appearance and condition, I should think it a happy
  • release. Yet he must have been a good figure when a youth, and I dare
  • say, good-looking." He says this, not unfeelingly, while sitting on
  • the bedstead's edge with his face towards that other face and his
  • hand upon the region of the heart. "I recollect once thinking there
  • was something in his manner, uncouth as it was, that denoted a fall
  • in life. Was that so?" he continues, looking round.
  • Krook replies, "You might as well ask me to describe the ladies whose
  • heads of hair I have got in sacks downstairs. Than that he was my
  • lodger for a year and a half and lived--or didn't live--by
  • law-writing, I know no more of him."
  • During this dialogue Mr. Tulkinghorn has stood aloof by the old
  • portmanteau, with his hands behind him, equally removed, to all
  • appearance, from all three kinds of interest exhibited near the
  • bed--from the young surgeon's professional interest in death,
  • noticeable as being quite apart from his remarks on the deceased as
  • an individual; from the old man's unction; and the little crazy
  • woman's awe. His imperturbable face has been as inexpressive as his
  • rusty clothes. One could not even say he has been thinking all this
  • while. He has shown neither patience nor impatience, nor attention
  • nor abstraction. He has shown nothing but his shell. As easily might
  • the tone of a delicate musical instrument be inferred from its case,
  • as the tone of Mr. Tulkinghorn from his case.
  • He now interposes, addressing the young surgeon in his unmoved,
  • professional way.
  • "I looked in here," he observes, "just before you, with the
  • intention of giving this deceased man, whom I never saw alive, some
  • employment at his trade of copying. I had heard of him from my
  • stationer--Snagsby of Cook's Court. Since no one here knows anything
  • about him, it might be as well to send for Snagsby. Ah!" to the
  • little crazy woman, who has often seen him in court, and whom he has
  • often seen, and who proposes, in frightened dumb-show, to go for the
  • law-stationer. "Suppose you do!"
  • While she is gone, the surgeon abandons his hopeless investigation
  • and covers its subject with the patchwork counterpane. Mr. Krook and
  • he interchange a word or two. Mr. Tulkinghorn says nothing, but
  • stands, ever, near the old portmanteau.
  • Mr. Snagsby arrives hastily in his grey coat and his black sleeves.
  • "Dear me, dear me," he says; "and it has come to this, has it! Bless
  • my soul!"
  • "Can you give the person of the house any information about this
  • unfortunate creature, Snagsby?" inquires Mr. Tulkinghorn. "He was in
  • arrears with his rent, it seems. And he must be buried, you know."
  • "Well, sir," says Mr. Snagsby, coughing his apologetic cough behind
  • his hand, "I really don't know what advice I could offer, except
  • sending for the beadle."
  • "I don't speak of advice," returns Mr. Tulkinghorn. "I could
  • advise--"
  • "No one better, sir, I am sure," says Mr. Snagsby, with his
  • deferential cough.
  • "I speak of affording some clue to his connexions, or to where he
  • came from, or to anything concerning him."
  • "I assure you, sir," says Mr. Snagsby after prefacing his reply with
  • his cough of general propitiation, "that I no more know where he came
  • from than I know--"
  • "Where he has gone to, perhaps," suggests the surgeon to help him
  • out.
  • A pause. Mr. Tulkinghorn looking at the law-stationer. Mr. Krook,
  • with his mouth open, looking for somebody to speak next.
  • "As to his connexions, sir," says Mr. Snagsby, "if a person was to
  • say to me, 'Snagsby, here's twenty thousand pound down, ready for you
  • in the Bank of England if you'll only name one of 'em,' I couldn't do
  • it, sir! About a year and a half ago--to the best of my belief, at
  • the time when he first came to lodge at the present rag and bottle
  • shop--"
  • "That was the time!" says Krook with a nod.
  • "About a year and a half ago," says Mr. Snagsby, strengthened, "he
  • came into our place one morning after breakfast, and finding my
  • little woman (which I name Mrs. Snagsby when I use that appellation)
  • in our shop, produced a specimen of his handwriting and gave her to
  • understand that he was in want of copying work to do and was, not to
  • put too fine a point upon it," a favourite apology for plain speaking
  • with Mr. Snagsby, which he always offers with a sort of argumentative
  • frankness, "hard up! My little woman is not in general partial to
  • strangers, particular--not to put too fine a point upon it--when they
  • want anything. But she was rather took by something about this
  • person, whether by his being unshaved, or by his hair being in want
  • of attention, or by what other ladies' reasons, I leave you to judge;
  • and she accepted of the specimen, and likewise of the address. My
  • little woman hasn't a good ear for names," proceeds Mr. Snagsby after
  • consulting his cough of consideration behind his hand, "and she
  • considered Nemo equally the same as Nimrod. In consequence of which,
  • she got into a habit of saying to me at meals, 'Mr. Snagsby, you
  • haven't found Nimrod any work yet!' or 'Mr. Snagsby, why didn't you
  • give that eight and thirty Chancery folio in Jarndyce to Nimrod?' or
  • such like. And that is the way he gradually fell into job-work at our
  • place; and that is the most I know of him except that he was a quick
  • hand, and a hand not sparing of night-work, and that if you gave him
  • out, say, five and forty folio on the Wednesday night, you would have
  • it brought in on the Thursday morning. All of which--" Mr. Snagsby
  • concludes by politely motioning with his hat towards the bed, as much
  • as to add, "I have no doubt my honourable friend would confirm if he
  • were in a condition to do it."
  • "Hadn't you better see," says Mr. Tulkinghorn to Krook, "whether he
  • had any papers that may enlighten you? There will be an inquest, and
  • you will be asked the question. You can read?"
  • "No, I can't," returns the old man with a sudden grin.
  • "Snagsby," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, "look over the room for him. He will
  • get into some trouble or difficulty otherwise. Being here, I'll wait
  • if you make haste, and then I can testify on his behalf, if it should
  • ever be necessary, that all was fair and right. If you will hold the
  • candle for Mr. Snagsby, my friend, he'll soon see whether there is
  • anything to help you."
  • "In the first place, here's an old portmanteau, sir," says Snagsby.
  • Ah, to be sure, so there is! Mr. Tulkinghorn does not appear to have
  • seen it before, though he is standing so close to it, and though
  • there is very little else, heaven knows.
  • The marine-store merchant holds the light, and the law-stationer
  • conducts the search. The surgeon leans against the corner of the
  • chimney-piece; Miss Flite peeps and trembles just within the door.
  • The apt old scholar of the old school, with his dull black breeches
  • tied with ribbons at the knees, his large black waistcoat, his
  • long-sleeved black coat, and his wisp of limp white neckerchief tied
  • in the bow the peerage knows so well, stands in exactly the same
  • place and attitude.
  • There are some worthless articles of clothing in the old portmanteau;
  • there is a bundle of pawnbrokers' duplicates, those turnpike tickets
  • on the road of poverty; there is a crumpled paper, smelling of opium,
  • on which are scrawled rough memoranda--as, took, such a day, so many
  • grains; took, such another day, so many more--begun some time ago, as
  • if with the intention of being regularly continued, but soon left
  • off. There are a few dirty scraps of newspapers, all referring to
  • coroners' inquests; there is nothing else. They search the cupboard
  • and the drawer of the ink-splashed table. There is not a morsel of an
  • old letter or of any other writing in either. The young surgeon
  • examines the dress on the law-writer. A knife and some odd halfpence
  • are all he finds. Mr. Snagsby's suggestion is the practical
  • suggestion after all, and the beadle must be called in.
  • So the little crazy lodger goes for the beadle, and the rest come out
  • of the room. "Don't leave the cat there!" says the surgeon; "that
  • won't do!" Mr. Krook therefore drives her out before him, and she
  • goes furtively downstairs, winding her lithe tail and licking her
  • lips.
  • "Good night!" says Mr. Tulkinghorn, and goes home to Allegory and
  • meditation.
  • By this time the news has got into the court. Groups of its
  • inhabitants assemble to discuss the thing, and the outposts of the
  • army of observation (principally boys) are pushed forward to Mr.
  • Krook's window, which they closely invest. A policeman has already
  • walked up to the room, and walked down again to the door, where he
  • stands like a tower, only condescending to see the boys at his base
  • occasionally; but whenever he does see them, they quail and fall
  • back. Mrs. Perkins, who has not been for some weeks on speaking terms
  • with Mrs. Piper in consequence for an unpleasantness originating in
  • young Perkins' having "fetched" young Piper "a crack," renews her
  • friendly intercourse on this auspicious occasion. The potboy at the
  • corner, who is a privileged amateur, as possessing official knowledge
  • of life and having to deal with drunken men occasionally, exchanges
  • confidential communications with the policeman and has the appearance
  • of an impregnable youth, unassailable by truncheons and unconfinable
  • in station-houses. People talk across the court out of window, and
  • bare-headed scouts come hurrying in from Chancery Lane to know what's
  • the matter. The general feeling seems to be that it's a blessing Mr.
  • Krook warn't made away with first, mingled with a little natural
  • disappointment that he was not. In the midst of this sensation, the
  • beadle arrives.
  • The beadle, though generally understood in the neighbourhood to be a
  • ridiculous institution, is not without a certain popularity for the
  • moment, if it were only as a man who is going to see the body. The
  • policeman considers him an imbecile civilian, a remnant of the
  • barbarous watchmen times, but gives him admission as something that
  • must be borne with until government shall abolish him. The sensation
  • is heightened as the tidings spread from mouth to mouth that the
  • beadle is on the ground and has gone in.
  • By and by the beadle comes out, once more intensifying the sensation,
  • which has rather languished in the interval. He is understood to be
  • in want of witnesses for the inquest to-morrow who can tell the
  • coroner and jury anything whatever respecting the deceased. Is
  • immediately referred to innumerable people who can tell nothing
  • whatever. Is made more imbecile by being constantly informed that
  • Mrs. Green's son "was a law-writer his-self and knowed him better
  • than anybody," which son of Mrs. Green's appears, on inquiry, to be
  • at the present time aboard a vessel bound for China, three months
  • out, but considered accessible by telegraph on application to the
  • Lords of the Admiralty. Beadle goes into various shops and parlours,
  • examining the inhabitants, always shutting the door first, and by
  • exclusion, delay, and general idiotcy exasperating the public.
  • Policeman seen to smile to potboy. Public loses interest and
  • undergoes reaction. Taunts the beadle in shrill youthful voices with
  • having boiled a boy, choruses fragments of a popular song to that
  • effect and importing that the boy was made into soup for the
  • workhouse. Policeman at last finds it necessary to support the law
  • and seize a vocalist, who is released upon the flight of the rest on
  • condition of his getting out of this then, come, and cutting it--a
  • condition he immediately observes. So the sensation dies off for the
  • time; and the unmoved policeman (to whom a little opium, more or
  • less, is nothing), with his shining hat, stiff stock, inflexible
  • great-coat, stout belt and bracelet, and all things fitting, pursues
  • his lounging way with a heavy tread, beating the palms of his white
  • gloves one against the other and stopping now and then at a
  • street-corner to look casually about for anything between a lost
  • child and a murder.
  • Under cover of the night, the feeble-minded beadle comes flitting
  • about Chancery Lane with his summonses, in which every juror's name
  • is wrongly spelt, and nothing rightly spelt but the beadle's own
  • name, which nobody can read or wants to know. The summonses served
  • and his witnesses forewarned, the beadle goes to Mr. Krook's to keep
  • a small appointment he has made with certain paupers, who, presently
  • arriving, are conducted upstairs, where they leave the great eyes in
  • the shutter something new to stare at, in that last shape which
  • earthly lodgings take for No one--and for Every one.
  • And all that night the coffin stands ready by the old portmanteau;
  • and the lonely figure on the bed, whose path in life has lain through
  • five and forty years, lies there with no more track behind him that
  • any one can trace than a deserted infant.
  • Next day the court is all alive--is like a fair, as Mrs. Perkins,
  • more than reconciled to Mrs. Piper, says in amicable conversation
  • with that excellent woman. The coroner is to sit in the first-floor
  • room at the Sol's Arms, where the Harmonic Meetings take place twice
  • a week and where the chair is filled by a gentleman of professional
  • celebrity, faced by Little Swills, the comic vocalist, who hopes
  • (according to the bill in the window) that his friends will rally
  • round him and support first-rate talent. The Sol's Arms does a brisk
  • stroke of business all the morning. Even children so require
  • sustaining under the general excitement that a pieman who has
  • established himself for the occasion at the corner of the court says
  • his brandy-balls go off like smoke. What time the beadle, hovering
  • between the door of Mr. Krook's establishment and the door of the
  • Sol's Arms, shows the curiosity in his keeping to a few discreet
  • spirits and accepts the compliment of a glass of ale or so in return.
  • At the appointed hour arrives the coroner, for whom the jurymen are
  • waiting and who is received with a salute of skittles from the good
  • dry skittle-ground attached to the Sol's Arms. The coroner frequents
  • more public-houses than any man alive. The smell of sawdust, beer,
  • tobacco-smoke, and spirits is inseparable in his vocation from death
  • in its most awful shapes. He is conducted by the beadle and the
  • landlord to the Harmonic Meeting Room, where he puts his hat on the
  • piano and takes a Windsor-chair at the head of a long table formed of
  • several short tables put together and ornamented with glutinous rings
  • in endless involutions, made by pots and glasses. As many of the jury
  • as can crowd together at the table sit there. The rest get among the
  • spittoons and pipes or lean against the piano. Over the coroner's
  • head is a small iron garland, the pendant handle of a bell, which
  • rather gives the majesty of the court the appearance of going to be
  • hanged presently.
  • Call over and swear the jury! While the ceremony is in progress,
  • sensation is created by the entrance of a chubby little man in a
  • large shirt-collar, with a moist eye and an inflamed nose, who
  • modestly takes a position near the door as one of the general public,
  • but seems familiar with the room too. A whisper circulates that this
  • is Little Swills. It is considered not unlikely that he will get up
  • an imitation of the coroner and make it the principal feature of the
  • Harmonic Meeting in the evening.
  • "Well, gentlemen--" the coroner begins.
  • "Silence there, will you!" says the beadle. Not to the coroner,
  • though it might appear so.
  • "Well, gentlemen," resumes the coroner. "You are impanelled here to
  • inquire into the death of a certain man. Evidence will be given
  • before you as to the circumstances attending that death, and you will
  • give your verdict according to the--skittles; they must be stopped,
  • you know, beadle!--evidence, and not according to anything else. The
  • first thing to be done is to view the body."
  • "Make way there!" cries the beadle.
  • So they go out in a loose procession, something after the manner of a
  • straggling funeral, and make their inspection in Mr. Krook's back
  • second floor, from which a few of the jurymen retire pale and
  • precipitately. The beadle is very careful that two gentlemen not very
  • neat about the cuffs and buttons (for whose accommodation he has
  • provided a special little table near the coroner in the Harmonic
  • Meeting Room) should see all that is to be seen. For they are the
  • public chroniclers of such inquiries by the line; and he is not
  • superior to the universal human infirmity, but hopes to read in print
  • what "Mooney, the active and intelligent beadle of the district,"
  • said and did and even aspires to see the name of Mooney as familiarly
  • and patronizingly mentioned as the name of the hangman is, according
  • to the latest examples.
  • Little Swills is waiting for the coroner and jury on their return.
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn, also. Mr. Tulkinghorn is received with distinction
  • and seated near the coroner between that high judicial officer, a
  • bagatelle-board, and the coal-box. The inquiry proceeds. The jury
  • learn how the subject of their inquiry died, and learn no more about
  • him. "A very eminent solicitor is in attendance, gentlemen," says the
  • coroner, "who, I am informed, was accidentally present when discovery
  • of the death was made, but he could only repeat the evidence you have
  • already heard from the surgeon, the landlord, the lodger, and the
  • law-stationer, and it is not necessary to trouble him. Is anybody in
  • attendance who knows anything more?"
  • Mrs. Piper pushed forward by Mrs. Perkins. Mrs. Piper sworn.
  • Anastasia Piper, gentlemen. Married woman. Now, Mrs. Piper, what have
  • you got to say about this?
  • Why, Mrs. Piper has a good deal to say, chiefly in parentheses and
  • without punctuation, but not much to tell. Mrs. Piper lives in the
  • court (which her husband is a cabinet-maker), and it has long been
  • well beknown among the neighbours (counting from the day next but one
  • before the half-baptizing of Alexander James Piper aged eighteen
  • months and four days old on accounts of not being expected to live
  • such was the sufferings gentlemen of that child in his gums) as the
  • plaintive--so Mrs. Piper insists on calling the deceased--was
  • reported to have sold himself. Thinks it was the plaintive's air in
  • which that report originatinin. See the plaintive often and
  • considered as his air was feariocious and not to be allowed to go
  • about some children being timid (and if doubted hoping Mrs. Perkins
  • may be brought forard for she is here and will do credit to her
  • husband and herself and family). Has seen the plaintive wexed and
  • worrited by the children (for children they will ever be and you
  • cannot expect them specially if of playful dispositions to be
  • Methoozellers which you was not yourself). On accounts of this and
  • his dark looks has often dreamed as she see him take a pick-axe from
  • his pocket and split Johnny's head (which the child knows not fear
  • and has repeatually called after him close at his eels). Never
  • however see the plaintive take a pick-axe or any other wepping far
  • from it. Has seen him hurry away when run and called after as if not
  • partial to children and never see him speak to neither child nor
  • grown person at any time (excepting the boy that sweeps the crossing
  • down the lane over the way round the corner which if he was here
  • would tell you that he has been seen a-speaking to him frequent).
  • Says the coroner, is that boy here? Says the beadle, no, sir, he is
  • not here. Says the coroner, go and fetch him then. In the absence of
  • the active and intelligent, the coroner converses with Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn.
  • Oh! Here's the boy, gentlemen!
  • Here he is, very muddy, very hoarse, very ragged. Now, boy! But stop
  • a minute. Caution. This boy must be put through a few preliminary
  • paces.
  • Name, Jo. Nothing else that he knows on. Don't know that everybody
  • has two names. Never heerd of sich a think. Don't know that Jo is
  • short for a longer name. Thinks it long enough for HIM. HE don't find
  • no fault with it. Spell it? No. HE can't spell it. No father, no
  • mother, no friends. Never been to school. What's home? Knows a
  • broom's a broom, and knows it's wicked to tell a lie. Don't recollect
  • who told him about the broom or about the lie, but knows both. Can't
  • exactly say what'll be done to him arter he's dead if he tells a lie
  • to the gentlemen here, but believes it'll be something wery bad to
  • punish him, and serve him right--and so he'll tell the truth.
  • "This won't do, gentlemen!" says the coroner with a melancholy shake
  • of the head.
  • "Don't you think you can receive his evidence, sir?" asks an
  • attentive juryman.
  • "Out of the question," says the coroner. "You have heard the boy.
  • 'Can't exactly say' won't do, you know. We can't take THAT in a court
  • of justice, gentlemen. It's terrible depravity. Put the boy aside."
  • Boy put aside, to the great edification of the audience, especially
  • of Little Swills, the comic vocalist.
  • Now. Is there any other witness? No other witness.
  • Very well, gentlemen! Here's a man unknown, proved to have been in
  • the habit of taking opium in large quantities for a year and a half,
  • found dead of too much opium. If you think you have any evidence to
  • lead you to the conclusion that he committed suicide, you will come
  • to that conclusion. If you think it is a case of accidental death,
  • you will find a verdict accordingly.
  • Verdict accordingly. Accidental death. No doubt. Gentlemen, you are
  • discharged. Good afternoon.
  • While the coroner buttons his great-coat, Mr. Tulkinghorn and he give
  • private audience to the rejected witness in a corner.
  • That graceless creature only knows that the dead man (whom he
  • recognized just now by his yellow face and black hair) was sometimes
  • hooted and pursued about the streets. That one cold winter night when
  • he, the boy, was shivering in a doorway near his crossing, the man
  • turned to look at him, and came back, and having questioned him and
  • found that he had not a friend in the world, said, "Neither have I.
  • Not one!" and gave him the price of a supper and a night's lodging.
  • That the man had often spoken to him since and asked him whether he
  • slept sound at night, and how he bore cold and hunger, and whether he
  • ever wished to die, and similar strange questions. That when the man
  • had no money, he would say in passing, "I am as poor as you to-day,
  • Jo," but that when he had any, he had always (as the boy most
  • heartily believes) been glad to give him some.
  • "He was wery good to me," says the boy, wiping his eyes with his
  • wretched sleeve. "Wen I see him a-layin' so stritched out just now, I
  • wished he could have heerd me tell him so. He wos wery good to me, he
  • wos!"
  • As he shuffles downstairs, Mr. Snagsby, lying in wait for him, puts a
  • half-crown in his hand. "If you ever see me coming past your crossing
  • with my little woman--I mean a lady--" says Mr. Snagsby with his
  • finger on his nose, "don't allude to it!"
  • For some little time the jurymen hang about the Sol's Arms
  • colloquially. In the sequel, half-a-dozen are caught up in a cloud of
  • pipe-smoke that pervades the parlour of the Sol's Arms; two stroll to
  • Hampstead; and four engage to go half-price to the play at night, and
  • top up with oysters. Little Swills is treated on several hands. Being
  • asked what he thinks of the proceedings, characterizes them (his
  • strength lying in a slangular direction) as "a rummy start." The
  • landlord of the Sol's Arms, finding Little Swills so popular,
  • commends him highly to the jurymen and public, observing that for a
  • song in character he don't know his equal and that that man's
  • character-wardrobe would fill a cart.
  • Thus, gradually the Sol's Arms melts into the shadowy night and then
  • flares out of it strong in gas. The Harmonic Meeting hour arriving,
  • the gentleman of professional celebrity takes the chair, is faced
  • (red-faced) by Little Swills; their friends rally round them and
  • support first-rate talent. In the zenith of the evening, Little
  • Swills says, "Gentlemen, if you'll permit me, I'll attempt a short
  • description of a scene of real life that came off here to-day." Is
  • much applauded and encouraged; goes out of the room as Swills; comes
  • in as the coroner (not the least in the world like him); describes
  • the inquest, with recreative intervals of piano-forte accompaniment,
  • to the refrain: With his (the coroner's) tippy tol li doll, tippy tol
  • lo doll, tippy tol li doll, Dee!
  • The jingling piano at last is silent, and the Harmonic friends rally
  • round their pillows. Then there is rest around the lonely figure, now
  • laid in its last earthly habitation; and it is watched by the gaunt
  • eyes in the shutters through some quiet hours of night. If this
  • forlorn man could have been prophetically seen lying here by the
  • mother at whose breast he nestled, a little child, with eyes upraised
  • to her loving face, and soft hand scarcely knowing how to close upon
  • the neck to which it crept, what an impossibility the vision would
  • have seemed! Oh, if in brighter days the now-extinguished fire within
  • him ever burned for one woman who held him in her heart, where is
  • she, while these ashes are above the ground!
  • It is anything but a night of rest at Mr. Snagsby's, in Cook's Court,
  • where Guster murders sleep by going, as Mr. Snagsby himself
  • allows--not to put too fine a point upon it--out of one fit into
  • twenty. The occasion of this seizure is that Guster has a tender
  • heart and a susceptible something that possibly might have been
  • imagination, but for Tooting and her patron saint. Be it what it may,
  • now, it was so direfully impressed at tea-time by Mr. Snagsby's
  • account of the inquiry at which he had assisted that at supper-time
  • she projected herself into the kitchen, preceded by a flying Dutch
  • cheese, and fell into a fit of unusual duration, which she only came
  • out of to go into another, and another, and so on through a chain of
  • fits, with short intervals between, of which she has pathetically
  • availed herself by consuming them in entreaties to Mrs. Snagsby not
  • to give her warning "when she quite comes to," and also in appeals to
  • the whole establishment to lay her down on the stones and go to bed.
  • Hence, Mr. Snagsby, at last hearing the cock at the little dairy in
  • Cursitor Street go into that disinterested ecstasy of his on the
  • subject of daylight, says, drawing a long breath, though the most
  • patient of men, "I thought you was dead, I am sure!"
  • What question this enthusiastic fowl supposes he settles when he
  • strains himself to such an extent, or why he should thus crow (so men
  • crow on various triumphant public occasions, however) about what
  • cannot be of any moment to him, is his affair. It is enough that
  • daylight comes, morning comes, noon comes.
  • Then the active and intelligent, who has got into the morning papers
  • as such, comes with his pauper company to Mr. Krook's and bears off
  • the body of our dear brother here departed to a hemmed-in churchyard,
  • pestiferous and obscene, whence malignant diseases are communicated
  • to the bodies of our dear brothers and sisters who have not departed,
  • while our dear brothers and sisters who hang about official
  • back-stairs--would to heaven they HAD departed!--are very complacent
  • and agreeable. Into a beastly scrap of ground which a Turk would
  • reject as a savage abomination and a Caffre would shudder at, they
  • bring our dear brother here departed to receive Christian burial.
  • With houses looking on, on every side, save where a reeking little
  • tunnel of a court gives access to the iron gate--with every villainy
  • of life in action close on death, and every poisonous element of
  • death in action close on life--here they lower our dear brother down
  • a foot or two, here sow him in corruption, to be raised in
  • corruption: an avenging ghost at many a sick-bedside, a shameful
  • testimony to future ages how civilization and barbarism walked this
  • boastful island together.
  • Come night, come darkness, for you cannot come too soon or stay too
  • long by such a place as this! Come, straggling lights into the
  • windows of the ugly houses; and you who do iniquity therein, do it at
  • least with this dread scene shut out! Come, flame of gas, burning so
  • sullenly above the iron gate, on which the poisoned air deposits its
  • witch-ointment slimy to the touch! It is well that you should call to
  • every passerby, "Look here!"
  • With the night comes a slouching figure through the tunnel-court to
  • the outside of the iron gate. It holds the gate with its hands and
  • looks in between the bars, stands looking in for a little while.
  • It then, with an old broom it carries, softly sweeps the step and
  • makes the archway clean. It does so very busily and trimly, looks in
  • again a little while, and so departs.
  • Jo, is it thou? Well, well! Though a rejected witness, who "can't
  • exactly say" what will be done to him in greater hands than men's,
  • thou art not quite in outer darkness. There is something like a
  • distant ray of light in thy muttered reason for this: "He wos wery
  • good to me, he wos!"
  • CHAPTER XII
  • On the Watch
  • It has left off raining down in Lincolnshire at last, and Chesney
  • Wold has taken heart. Mrs. Rouncewell is full of hospitable cares,
  • for Sir Leicester and my Lady are coming home from Paris. The
  • fashionable intelligence has found it out and communicates the glad
  • tidings to benighted England. It has also found out that they will
  • entertain a brilliant and distinguished circle of the ELITE of the
  • BEAU MONDE (the fashionable intelligence is weak in English, but a
  • giant refreshed in French) at the ancient and hospitable family seat
  • in Lincolnshire.
  • For the greater honour of the brilliant and distinguished circle, and
  • of Chesney Wold into the bargain, the broken arch of the bridge in
  • the park is mended; and the water, now retired within its proper
  • limits and again spanned gracefully, makes a figure in the prospect
  • from the house. The clear, cold sunshine glances into the brittle
  • woods and approvingly beholds the sharp wind scattering the leaves
  • and drying the moss. It glides over the park after the moving shadows
  • of the clouds, and chases them, and never catches them, all day. It
  • looks in at the windows and touches the ancestral portraits with bars
  • and patches of brightness never contemplated by the painters. Athwart
  • the picture of my Lady, over the great chimney-piece, it throws a
  • broad bend-sinister of light that strikes down crookedly into the
  • hearth and seems to rend it.
  • Through the same cold sunshine and the same sharp wind, my Lady and
  • Sir Leicester, in their travelling chariot (my Lady's woman and Sir
  • Leicester's man affectionate in the rumble), start for home. With a
  • considerable amount of jingling and whip-cracking, and many plunging
  • demonstrations on the part of two bare-backed horses and two centaurs
  • with glazed hats, jack-boots, and flowing manes and tails, they
  • rattle out of the yard of the Hotel Bristol in the Place Vendome and
  • canter between the sun-and-shadow-chequered colonnade of the Rue de
  • Rivoli and the garden of the ill-fated palace of a headless king and
  • queen, off by the Place of Concord, and the Elysian Fields, and the
  • Gate of the Star, out of Paris.
  • Sooth to say, they cannot go away too fast, for even here my Lady
  • Dedlock has been bored to death. Concert, assembly, opera, theatre,
  • drive, nothing is new to my Lady under the worn-out heavens. Only
  • last Sunday, when poor wretches were gay--within the walls playing
  • with children among the clipped trees and the statues in the Palace
  • Garden; walking, a score abreast, in the Elysian Fields, made more
  • Elysian by performing dogs and wooden horses; between whiles
  • filtering (a few) through the gloomy Cathedral of Our Lady to say a
  • word or two at the base of a pillar within flare of a rusty little
  • gridiron-full of gusty little tapers; without the walls encompassing
  • Paris with dancing, love-making, wine-drinking, tobacco-smoking,
  • tomb-visiting, billiard card and domino playing, quack-doctoring, and
  • much murderous refuse, animate and inanimate--only last Sunday, my
  • Lady, in the desolation of Boredom and the clutch of Giant Despair,
  • almost hated her own maid for being in spirits.
  • She cannot, therefore, go too fast from Paris. Weariness of soul lies
  • before her, as it lies behind--her Ariel has put a girdle of it round
  • the whole earth, and it cannot be unclasped--but the imperfect remedy
  • is always to fly from the last place where it has been experienced.
  • Fling Paris back into the distance, then, exchanging it for endless
  • avenues and cross-avenues of wintry trees! And, when next beheld, let
  • it be some leagues away, with the Gate of the Star a white speck
  • glittering in the sun, and the city a mere mound in a plain--two dark
  • square towers rising out of it, and light and shadow descending on it
  • aslant, like the angels in Jacob's dream!
  • Sir Leicester is generally in a complacent state, and rarely bored.
  • When he has nothing else to do, he can always contemplate his own
  • greatness. It is a considerable advantage to a man to have so
  • inexhaustible a subject. After reading his letters, he leans back in
  • his corner of the carriage and generally reviews his importance to
  • society.
  • "You have an unusual amount of correspondence this morning?" says my
  • Lady after a long time. She is fatigued with reading. Has almost read
  • a page in twenty miles.
  • "Nothing in it, though. Nothing whatever."
  • "I saw one of Mr. Tulkinghorn's long effusions, I think?"
  • "You see everything," says Sir Leicester with admiration.
  • "Ha!" sighs my Lady. "He is the most tiresome of men!"
  • "He sends--I really beg your pardon--he sends," says Sir Leicester,
  • selecting the letter and unfolding it, "a message to you. Our
  • stopping to change horses as I came to his postscript drove it out of
  • my memory. I beg you'll excuse me. He says--" Sir Leicester is so
  • long in taking out his eye-glass and adjusting it that my Lady looks
  • a little irritated. "He says 'In the matter of the right of way--' I
  • beg your pardon, that's not the place. He says--yes! Here I have it!
  • He says, 'I beg my respectful compliments to my Lady, who, I hope,
  • has benefited by the change. Will you do me the favour to mention (as
  • it may interest her) that I have something to tell her on her return
  • in reference to the person who copied the affidavit in the Chancery
  • suit, which so powerfully stimulated her curiosity. I have seen
  • him.'"
  • My Lady, leaning forward, looks out of her window.
  • "That's the message," observes Sir Leicester.
  • "I should like to walk a little," says my Lady, still looking out of
  • her window.
  • "Walk?" repeats Sir Leicester in a tone of surprise.
  • "I should like to walk a little," says my Lady with unmistakable
  • distinctness. "Please to stop the carriage."
  • The carriage is stopped, the affectionate man alights from the
  • rumble, opens the door, and lets down the steps, obedient to an
  • impatient motion of my Lady's hand. My Lady alights so quickly and
  • walks away so quickly that Sir Leicester, for all his scrupulous
  • politeness, is unable to assist her, and is left behind. A space of a
  • minute or two has elapsed before he comes up with her. She smiles,
  • looks very handsome, takes his arm, lounges with him for a quarter of
  • a mile, is very much bored, and resumes her seat in the carriage.
  • The rattle and clatter continue through the greater part of three
  • days, with more or less of bell-jingling and whip-cracking, and more
  • or less plunging of centaurs and bare-backed horses. Their courtly
  • politeness to each other at the hotels where they tarry is the theme
  • of general admiration. Though my Lord IS a little aged for my Lady,
  • says Madame, the hostess of the Golden Ape, and though he might be
  • her amiable father, one can see at a glance that they love each
  • other. One observes my Lord with his white hair, standing, hat in
  • hand, to help my Lady to and from the carriage. One observes my Lady,
  • how recognisant of my Lord's politeness, with an inclination of her
  • gracious head and the concession of her so-genteel fingers! It is
  • ravishing!
  • The sea has no appreciation of great men, but knocks them about like
  • the small fry. It is habitually hard upon Sir Leicester, whose
  • countenance it greenly mottles in the manner of sage-cheese and in
  • whose aristocratic system it effects a dismal revolution. It is the
  • Radical of Nature to him. Nevertheless, his dignity gets over it
  • after stopping to refit, and he goes on with my Lady for Chesney
  • Wold, lying only one night in London on the way to Lincolnshire.
  • Through the same cold sunlight, colder as the day declines, and
  • through the same sharp wind, sharper as the separate shadows of bare
  • trees gloom together in the woods, and as the Ghost's Walk, touched
  • at the western corner by a pile of fire in the sky, resigns itself to
  • coming night, they drive into the park. The rooks, swinging in their
  • lofty houses in the elm-tree avenue, seem to discuss the question of
  • the occupancy of the carriage as it passes underneath, some agreeing
  • that Sir Leicester and my Lady are come down, some arguing with
  • malcontents who won't admit it, now all consenting to consider the
  • question disposed of, now all breaking out again in violent debate,
  • incited by one obstinate and drowsy bird who will persist in putting
  • in a last contradictory croak. Leaving them to swing and caw, the
  • travelling chariot rolls on to the house, where fires gleam warmly
  • through some of the windows, though not through so many as to give an
  • inhabited expression to the darkening mass of front. But the
  • brilliant and distinguished circle will soon do that.
  • Mrs. Rouncewell is in attendance and receives Sir Leicester's
  • customary shake of the hand with a profound curtsy.
  • "How do you do, Mrs. Rouncewell? I am glad to see you."
  • "I hope I have the honour of welcoming you in good health, Sir
  • Leicester?"
  • "In excellent health, Mrs. Rouncewell."
  • "My Lady is looking charmingly well," says Mrs. Rouncewell with
  • another curtsy.
  • My Lady signifies, without profuse expenditure of words, that she is
  • as wearily well as she can hope to be.
  • But Rosa is in the distance, behind the housekeeper; and my Lady, who
  • has not subdued the quickness of her observation, whatever else she
  • may have conquered, asks, "Who is that girl?"
  • "A young scholar of mine, my Lady. Rosa."
  • "Come here, Rosa!" Lady Dedlock beckons her, with even an appearance
  • of interest. "Why, do you know how pretty you are, child?" she says,
  • touching her shoulder with her two forefingers.
  • Rosa, very much abashed, says, "No, if you please, my Lady!" and
  • glances up, and glances down, and don't know where to look, but looks
  • all the prettier.
  • "How old are you?"
  • "Nineteen, my Lady."
  • "Nineteen," repeats my Lady thoughtfully. "Take care they don't spoil
  • you by flattery."
  • "Yes, my Lady."
  • My Lady taps her dimpled cheek with the same delicate gloved fingers
  • and goes on to the foot of the oak staircase, where Sir Leicester
  • pauses for her as her knightly escort. A staring old Dedlock in a
  • panel, as large as life and as dull, looks as if he didn't know what
  • to make of it, which was probably his general state of mind in the
  • days of Queen Elizabeth.
  • That evening, in the housekeeper's room, Rosa can do nothing but
  • murmur Lady Dedlock's praises. She is so affable, so graceful, so
  • beautiful, so elegant; has such a sweet voice and such a thrilling
  • touch that Rosa can feel it yet! Mrs. Rouncewell confirms all this,
  • not without personal pride, reserving only the one point of
  • affability. Mrs. Rouncewell is not quite sure as to that. Heaven
  • forbid that she should say a syllable in dispraise of any member of
  • that excellent family, above all, of my Lady, whom the whole world
  • admires; but if my Lady would only be "a little more free," not quite
  • so cold and distant, Mrs. Rouncewell thinks she would be more
  • affable.
  • "'Tis almost a pity," Mrs. Rouncewell adds--only "almost" because it
  • borders on impiety to suppose that anything could be better than it
  • is, in such an express dispensation as the Dedlock affairs--"that my
  • Lady has no family. If she had had a daughter now, a grown young
  • lady, to interest her, I think she would have had the only kind of
  • excellence she wants."
  • "Might not that have made her still more proud, grandmother?" says
  • Watt, who has been home and come back again, he is such a good
  • grandson.
  • "More and most, my dear," returns the housekeeper with dignity, "are
  • words it's not my place to use--nor so much as to hear--applied to
  • any drawback on my Lady."
  • "I beg your pardon, grandmother. But she is proud, is she not?"
  • "If she is, she has reason to be. The Dedlock family have always
  • reason to be."
  • "Well," says Watt, "it's to be hoped they line out of their
  • prayer-books a certain passage for the common people about pride and
  • vainglory. Forgive me, grandmother! Only a joke!"
  • "Sir Leicester and Lady Dedlock, my dear, are not fit subjects for
  • joking."
  • "Sir Leicester is no joke by any means," says Watt, "and I humbly ask
  • his pardon. I suppose, grandmother, that even with the family and
  • their guests down here, there is no objection to my prolonging my
  • stay at the Dedlock Arms for a day or two, as any other traveller
  • might?"
  • "Surely, none in the world, child."
  • "I am glad of that," says Watt, "because I have an inexpressible
  • desire to extend my knowledge of this beautiful neighbourhood."
  • He happens to glance at Rosa, who looks down and is very shy indeed.
  • But according to the old superstition, it should be Rosa's ears that
  • burn, and not her fresh bright cheeks, for my Lady's maid is holding
  • forth about her at this moment with surpassing energy.
  • My Lady's maid is a Frenchwoman of two and thirty, from somewhere in
  • the southern country about Avignon and Marseilles, a large-eyed brown
  • woman with black hair who would be handsome but for a certain feline
  • mouth and general uncomfortable tightness of face, rendering the jaws
  • too eager and the skull too prominent. There is something indefinably
  • keen and wan about her anatomy, and she has a watchful way of looking
  • out of the corners of her eyes without turning her head which could
  • be pleasantly dispensed with, especially when she is in an ill humour
  • and near knives. Through all the good taste of her dress and little
  • adornments, these objections so express themselves that she seems to
  • go about like a very neat she-wolf imperfectly tamed. Besides being
  • accomplished in all the knowledge appertaining to her post, she is
  • almost an Englishwoman in her acquaintance with the language;
  • consequently, she is in no want of words to shower upon Rosa for
  • having attracted my Lady's attention, and she pours them out with
  • such grim ridicule as she sits at dinner that her companion, the
  • affectionate man, is rather relieved when she arrives at the spoon
  • stage of that performance.
  • Ha, ha, ha! She, Hortense, been in my Lady's service since five years
  • and always kept at the distance, and this doll, this puppet,
  • caressed--absolutely caressed--by my Lady on the moment of her
  • arriving at the house! Ha, ha, ha! "And do you know how pretty you
  • are, child?" "No, my Lady." You are right there! "And how old are
  • you, child! And take care they do not spoil you by flattery, child!"
  • Oh, how droll! It is the BEST thing altogether.
  • In short, it is such an admirable thing that Mademoiselle Hortense
  • can't forget it; but at meals for days afterwards, even among her
  • countrywomen and others attached in like capacity to the troop of
  • visitors, relapses into silent enjoyment of the joke--an enjoyment
  • expressed, in her own convivial manner, by an additional tightness of
  • face, thin elongation of compressed lips, and sidewise look, which
  • intense appreciation of humour is frequently reflected in my Lady's
  • mirrors when my Lady is not among them.
  • All the mirrors in the house are brought into action now, many of
  • them after a long blank. They reflect handsome faces, simpering
  • faces, youthful faces, faces of threescore and ten that will not
  • submit to be old; the entire collection of faces that have come to
  • pass a January week or two at Chesney Wold, and which the fashionable
  • intelligence, a mighty hunter before the Lord, hunts with a keen
  • scent, from their breaking cover at the Court of St. James's to their
  • being run down to death. The place in Lincolnshire is all alive. By
  • day guns and voices are heard ringing in the woods, horsemen and
  • carriages enliven the park roads, servants and hangers-on pervade the
  • village and the Dedlock Arms. Seen by night from distant openings in
  • the trees, the row of windows in the long drawing-room, where my
  • Lady's picture hangs over the great chimney-piece, is like a row of
  • jewels set in a black frame. On Sunday the chill little church is
  • almost warmed by so much gallant company, and the general flavour of
  • the Dedlock dust is quenched in delicate perfumes.
  • The brilliant and distinguished circle comprehends within it no
  • contracted amount of education, sense, courage, honour, beauty, and
  • virtue. Yet there is something a little wrong about it in despite of
  • its immense advantages. What can it be?
  • Dandyism? There is no King George the Fourth now (more the pity) to
  • set the dandy fashion; there are no clear-starched jack-towel
  • neckcloths, no short-waisted coats, no false calves, no stays. There
  • are no caricatures, now, of effeminate exquisites so arrayed,
  • swooning in opera boxes with excess of delight and being revived by
  • other dainty creatures poking long-necked scent-bottles at their
  • noses. There is no beau whom it takes four men at once to shake into
  • his buckskins, or who goes to see all the executions, or who is
  • troubled with the self-reproach of having once consumed a pea. But is
  • there dandyism in the brilliant and distinguished circle
  • notwithstanding, dandyism of a more mischievous sort, that has got
  • below the surface and is doing less harmless things than
  • jack-towelling itself and stopping its own digestion, to which no
  • rational person need particularly object?
  • Why, yes. It cannot be disguised. There ARE at Chesney Wold this
  • January week some ladies and gentlemen of the newest fashion, who
  • have set up a dandyism--in religion, for instance. Who in mere
  • lackadaisical want of an emotion have agreed upon a little dandy talk
  • about the vulgar wanting faith in things in general, meaning in the
  • things that have been tried and found wanting, as though a low fellow
  • should unaccountably lose faith in a bad shilling after finding it
  • out! Who would make the vulgar very picturesque and faithful by
  • putting back the hands upon the clock of time and cancelling a few
  • hundred years of history.
  • There are also ladies and gentlemen of another fashion, not so new,
  • but very elegant, who have agreed to put a smooth glaze on the world
  • and to keep down all its realities. For whom everything must be
  • languid and pretty. Who have found out the perpetual stoppage. Who
  • are to rejoice at nothing and be sorry for nothing. Who are not to be
  • disturbed by ideas. On whom even the fine arts, attending in powder
  • and walking backward like the Lord Chamberlain, must array themselves
  • in the milliners' and tailors' patterns of past generations and be
  • particularly careful not to be in earnest or to receive any impress
  • from the moving age.
  • Then there is my Lord Boodle, of considerable reputation with his
  • party, who has known what office is and who tells Sir Leicester
  • Dedlock with much gravity, after dinner, that he really does not see
  • to what the present age is tending. A debate is not what a debate
  • used to be; the House is not what the House used to be; even a
  • Cabinet is not what it formerly was. He perceives with astonishment
  • that supposing the present government to be overthrown, the limited
  • choice of the Crown, in the formation of a new ministry, would lie
  • between Lord Coodle and Sir Thomas Doodle--supposing it to be
  • impossible for the Duke of Foodle to act with Goodle, which may be
  • assumed to be the case in consequence of the breach arising out of
  • that affair with Hoodle. Then, giving the Home Department and the
  • leadership of the House of Commons to Joodle, the Exchequer to
  • Koodle, the Colonies to Loodle, and the Foreign Office to Moodle,
  • what are you to do with Noodle? You can't offer him the Presidency of
  • the Council; that is reserved for Poodle. You can't put him in the
  • Woods and Forests; that is hardly good enough for Quoodle. What
  • follows? That the country is shipwrecked, lost, and gone to pieces
  • (as is made manifest to the patriotism of Sir Leicester Dedlock)
  • because you can't provide for Noodle!
  • On the other hand, the Right Honourable William Buffy, M.P., contends
  • across the table with some one else that the shipwreck of the
  • country--about which there is no doubt; it is only the manner of it
  • that is in question--is attributable to Cuffy. If you had done with
  • Cuffy what you ought to have done when he first came into Parliament,
  • and had prevented him from going over to Duffy, you would have got
  • him into alliance with Fuffy, you would have had with you the weight
  • attaching as a smart debater to Guffy, you would have brought to bear
  • upon the elections the wealth of Huffy, you would have got in for
  • three counties Juffy, Kuffy, and Luffy, and you would have
  • strengthened your administration by the official knowledge and the
  • business habits of Muffy. All this, instead of being as you now are,
  • dependent on the mere caprice of Puffy!
  • As to this point, and as to some minor topics, there are differences
  • of opinion; but it is perfectly clear to the brilliant and
  • distinguished circle, all round, that nobody is in question but
  • Boodle and his retinue, and Buffy and HIS retinue. These are the
  • great actors for whom the stage is reserved. A People there are, no
  • doubt--a certain large number of supernumeraries, who are to be
  • occasionally addressed, and relied upon for shouts and choruses, as
  • on the theatrical stage; but Boodle and Buffy, their followers and
  • families, their heirs, executors, administrators, and assigns, are
  • the born first-actors, managers, and leaders, and no others can
  • appear upon the scene for ever and ever.
  • In this, too, there is perhaps more dandyism at Chesney Wold than the
  • brilliant and distinguished circle will find good for itself in the
  • long run. For it is, even with the stillest and politest circles, as
  • with the circle the necromancer draws around him--very strange
  • appearances may be seen in active motion outside. With this
  • difference, that being realities and not phantoms, there is the
  • greater danger of their breaking in.
  • Chesney Wold is quite full anyhow, so full that a burning sense of
  • injury arises in the breasts of ill-lodged ladies'-maids, and is not
  • to be extinguished. Only one room is empty. It is a turret chamber of
  • the third order of merit, plainly but comfortably furnished and
  • having an old-fashioned business air. It is Mr. Tulkinghorn's room,
  • and is never bestowed on anybody else, for he may come at any time.
  • He is not come yet. It is his quiet habit to walk across the park
  • from the village in fine weather, to drop into this room as if he had
  • never been out of it since he was last seen there, to request a
  • servant to inform Sir Leicester that he is arrived in case he should
  • be wanted, and to appear ten minutes before dinner in the shadow of
  • the library-door. He sleeps in his turret with a complaining
  • flag-staff over his head, and has some leads outside on which, any
  • fine morning when he is down here, his black figure may be seen
  • walking before breakfast like a larger species of rook.
  • Every day before dinner, my Lady looks for him in the dusk of the
  • library, but he is not there. Every day at dinner, my Lady glances
  • down the table for the vacant place that would be waiting to receive
  • him if he had just arrived, but there is no vacant place. Every night
  • my Lady casually asks her maid, "Is Mr. Tulkinghorn come?"
  • Every night the answer is, "No, my Lady, not yet."
  • One night, while having her hair undressed, my Lady loses herself in
  • deep thought after this reply until she sees her own brooding face in
  • the opposite glass, and a pair of black eyes curiously observing her.
  • "Be so good as to attend," says my Lady then, addressing the
  • reflection of Hortense, "to your business. You can contemplate your
  • beauty at another time."
  • "Pardon! It was your Ladyship's beauty."
  • "That," says my Lady, "you needn't contemplate at all."
  • At length, one afternoon a little before sunset, when the bright
  • groups of figures which have for the last hour or two enlivened the
  • Ghost's Walk are all dispersed and only Sir Leicester and my Lady
  • remain upon the terrace, Mr. Tulkinghorn appears. He comes towards
  • them at his usual methodical pace, which is never quickened, never
  • slackened. He wears his usual expressionless mask--if it be a
  • mask--and carries family secrets in every limb of his body and every
  • crease of his dress. Whether his whole soul is devoted to the great
  • or whether he yields them nothing beyond the services he sells is his
  • personal secret. He keeps it, as he keeps the secrets of his clients;
  • he is his own client in that matter, and will never betray himself.
  • "How do you do, Mr. Tulkinghorn?" says Sir Leicester, giving him his
  • hand.
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn is quite well. Sir Leicester is quite well. My Lady
  • is quite well. All highly satisfactory. The lawyer, with his hands
  • behind him, walks at Sir Leicester's side along the terrace. My Lady
  • walks upon the other side.
  • "We expected you before," says Sir Leicester. A gracious observation.
  • As much as to say, "Mr. Tulkinghorn, we remember your existence when
  • you are not here to remind us of it by your presence. We bestow a
  • fragment of our minds upon you, sir, you see!"
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn, comprehending it, inclines his head and says he is
  • much obliged.
  • "I should have come down sooner," he explains, "but that I have been
  • much engaged with those matters in the several suits between yourself
  • and Boythorn."
  • "A man of a very ill-regulated mind," observes Sir Leicester with
  • severity. "An extremely dangerous person in any community. A man of a
  • very low character of mind."
  • "He is obstinate," says Mr. Tulkinghorn.
  • "It is natural to such a man to be so," says Sir Leicester, looking
  • most profoundly obstinate himself. "I am not at all surprised to hear
  • it."
  • "The only question is," pursues the lawyer, "whether you will give up
  • anything."
  • "No, sir," replies Sir Leicester. "Nothing. I give up?"
  • "I don't mean anything of importance. That, of course, I know you
  • would not abandon. I mean any minor point."
  • "Mr. Tulkinghorn," returns Sir Leicester, "there can be no minor
  • point between myself and Mr. Boythorn. If I go farther, and observe
  • that I cannot readily conceive how ANY right of mine can be a minor
  • point, I speak not so much in reference to myself as an individual as
  • in reference to the family position I have it in charge to maintain."
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn inclines his head again. "I have now my
  • instructions," he says. "Mr. Boythorn will give us a good deal of
  • trouble--"
  • "It is the character of such a mind, Mr. Tulkinghorn," Sir Leicester
  • interrupts him, "TO give trouble. An exceedingly ill-conditioned,
  • levelling person. A person who, fifty years ago, would probably have
  • been tried at the Old Bailey for some demagogue proceeding, and
  • severely punished--if not," adds Sir Leicester after a moment's
  • pause, "if not hanged, drawn, and quartered."
  • Sir Leicester appears to discharge his stately breast of a burden in
  • passing this capital sentence, as if it were the next satisfactory
  • thing to having the sentence executed.
  • "But night is coming on," says he, "and my Lady will take cold. My
  • dear, let us go in."
  • As they turn towards the hall-door, Lady Dedlock addresses Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn for the first time.
  • "You sent me a message respecting the person whose writing I happened
  • to inquire about. It was like you to remember the circumstance; I had
  • quite forgotten it. Your message reminded me of it again. I can't
  • imagine what association I had with a hand like that, but I surely
  • had some."
  • "You had some?" Mr. Tulkinghorn repeats.
  • "Oh, yes!" returns my Lady carelessly. "I think I must have had some.
  • And did you really take the trouble to find out the writer of that
  • actual thing--what is it!--affidavit?"
  • "Yes."
  • "How very odd!"
  • They pass into a sombre breakfast-room on the ground floor, lighted
  • in the day by two deep windows. It is now twilight. The fire glows
  • brightly on the panelled wall and palely on the window-glass, where,
  • through the cold reflection of the blaze, the colder landscape
  • shudders in the wind and a grey mist creeps along, the only traveller
  • besides the waste of clouds.
  • My Lady lounges in a great chair in the chimney-corner, and Sir
  • Leicester takes another great chair opposite. The lawyer stands
  • before the fire with his hand out at arm's length, shading his face.
  • He looks across his arm at my Lady.
  • "Yes," he says, "I inquired about the man, and found him. And, what
  • is very strange, I found him--"
  • "Not to be any out-of-the-way person, I am afraid!" Lady Dedlock
  • languidly anticipates.
  • "I found him dead."
  • "Oh, dear me!" remonstrated Sir Leicester. Not so much shocked by the
  • fact as by the fact of the fact being mentioned.
  • "I was directed to his lodging--a miserable, poverty-stricken
  • place--and I found him dead."
  • "You will excuse me, Mr. Tulkinghorn," observes Sir Leicester. "I
  • think the less said--"
  • "Pray, Sir Leicester, let me hear the story out" (it is my Lady
  • speaking). "It is quite a story for twilight. How very shocking!
  • Dead?"
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn re-asserts it by another inclination of his head.
  • "Whether by his own hand--"
  • "Upon my honour!" cries Sir Leicester. "Really!"
  • "Do let me hear the story!" says my Lady.
  • "Whatever you desire, my dear. But, I must say--"
  • "No, you mustn't say! Go on, Mr. Tulkinghorn."
  • Sir Leicester's gallantry concedes the point, though he still feels
  • that to bring this sort of squalor among the upper classes is
  • really--really--
  • "I was about to say," resumes the lawyer with undisturbed calmness,
  • "that whether he had died by his own hand or not, it was beyond my
  • power to tell you. I should amend that phrase, however, by saying
  • that he had unquestionably died of his own act, though whether by his
  • own deliberate intention or by mischance can never certainly be
  • known. The coroner's jury found that he took the poison
  • accidentally."
  • "And what kind of man," my Lady asks, "was this deplorable creature?"
  • "Very difficult to say," returns the lawyer, shaking his head. "He
  • had lived so wretchedly and was so neglected, with his gipsy colour
  • and his wild black hair and beard, that I should have considered him
  • the commonest of the common. The surgeon had a notion that he had
  • once been something better, both in appearance and condition."
  • "What did they call the wretched being?"
  • "They called him what he had called himself, but no one knew his
  • name."
  • "Not even any one who had attended on him?"
  • "No one had attended on him. He was found dead. In fact, I found
  • him."
  • "Without any clue to anything more?"
  • "Without any; there was," says the lawyer meditatively, "an old
  • portmanteau, but--No, there were no papers."
  • During the utterance of every word of this short dialogue, Lady
  • Dedlock and Mr. Tulkinghorn, without any other alteration in their
  • customary deportment, have looked very steadily at one another--as
  • was natural, perhaps, in the discussion of so unusual a subject. Sir
  • Leicester has looked at the fire, with the general expression of the
  • Dedlock on the staircase. The story being told, he renews his stately
  • protest, saying that as it is quite clear that no association in my
  • Lady's mind can possibly be traceable to this poor wretch (unless he
  • was a begging-letter writer), he trusts to hear no more about a
  • subject so far removed from my Lady's station.
  • "Certainly, a collection of horrors," says my Lady, gathering up her
  • mantles and furs, "but they interest one for the moment! Have the
  • kindness, Mr. Tulkinghorn, to open the door for me."
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn does so with deference and holds it open while she
  • passes out. She passes close to him, with her usual fatigued manner
  • and insolent grace. They meet again at dinner--again, next
  • day--again, for many days in succession. Lady Dedlock is always the
  • same exhausted deity, surrounded by worshippers, and terribly liable
  • to be bored to death, even while presiding at her own shrine. Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn is always the same speechless repository of noble
  • confidences, so oddly out of place and yet so perfectly at home. They
  • appear to take as little note of one another as any two people
  • enclosed within the same walls could. But whether each evermore
  • watches and suspects the other, evermore mistrustful of some great
  • reservation; whether each is evermore prepared at all points for the
  • other, and never to be taken unawares; what each would give to know
  • how much the other knows--all this is hidden, for the time, in their
  • own hearts.
  • CHAPTER XIII
  • Esther's Narrative
  • We held many consultations about what Richard was to be, first
  • without Mr. Jarndyce, as he had requested, and afterwards with him,
  • but it was a long time before we seemed to make progress. Richard
  • said he was ready for anything. When Mr. Jarndyce doubted whether he
  • might not already be too old to enter the Navy, Richard said he had
  • thought of that, and perhaps he was. When Mr. Jarndyce asked him what
  • he thought of the Army, Richard said he had thought of that, too, and
  • it wasn't a bad idea. When Mr. Jarndyce advised him to try and decide
  • within himself whether his old preference for the sea was an ordinary
  • boyish inclination or a strong impulse, Richard answered, Well he
  • really HAD tried very often, and he couldn't make out.
  • "How much of this indecision of character," Mr. Jarndyce said to me,
  • "is chargeable on that incomprehensible heap of uncertainty and
  • procrastination on which he has been thrown from his birth, I don't
  • pretend to say; but that Chancery, among its other sins, is
  • responsible for some of it, I can plainly see. It has engendered or
  • confirmed in him a habit of putting off--and trusting to this, that,
  • and the other chance, without knowing what chance--and dismissing
  • everything as unsettled, uncertain, and confused. The character of
  • much older and steadier people may be even changed by the
  • circumstances surrounding them. It would be too much to expect that a
  • boy's, in its formation, should be the subject of such influences and
  • escape them."
  • I felt this to be true; though if I may venture to mention what I
  • thought besides, I thought it much to be regretted that Richard's
  • education had not counteracted those influences or directed his
  • character. He had been eight years at a public school and had learnt,
  • I understood, to make Latin verses of several sorts in the most
  • admirable manner. But I never heard that it had been anybody's
  • business to find out what his natural bent was, or where his failings
  • lay, or to adapt any kind of knowledge to HIM. HE had been adapted to
  • the verses and had learnt the art of making them to such perfection
  • that if he had remained at school until he was of age, I suppose he
  • could only have gone on making them over and over again unless he had
  • enlarged his education by forgetting how to do it. Still, although I
  • had no doubt that they were very beautiful, and very improving, and
  • very sufficient for a great many purposes of life, and always
  • remembered all through life, I did doubt whether Richard would not
  • have profited by some one studying him a little, instead of his
  • studying them quite so much.
  • To be sure, I knew nothing of the subject and do not even now know
  • whether the young gentlemen of classic Rome or Greece made verses to
  • the same extent--or whether the young gentlemen of any country ever
  • did.
  • "I haven't the least idea," said Richard, musing, "what I had better
  • be. Except that I am quite sure I don't want to go into the Church,
  • it's a toss-up."
  • "You have no inclination in Mr. Kenge's way?" suggested Mr. Jarndyce.
  • "I don't know that, sir!" replied Richard. "I am fond of boating.
  • Articled clerks go a good deal on the water. It's a capital
  • profession!"
  • "Surgeon--" suggested Mr. Jarndyce.
  • "That's the thing, sir!" cried Richard.
  • I doubt if he had ever once thought of it before.
  • "That's the thing, sir," repeated Richard with the greatest
  • enthusiasm. "We have got it at last. M.R.C.S.!"
  • He was not to be laughed out of it, though he laughed at it heartily.
  • He said he had chosen his profession, and the more he thought of it,
  • the more he felt that his destiny was clear; the art of healing was
  • the art of all others for him. Mistrusting that he only came to this
  • conclusion because, having never had much chance of finding out for
  • himself what he was fitted for and having never been guided to the
  • discovery, he was taken by the newest idea and was glad to get rid of
  • the trouble of consideration, I wondered whether the Latin verses
  • often ended in this or whether Richard's was a solitary case.
  • Mr. Jarndyce took great pains to talk with him seriously and to put
  • it to his good sense not to deceive himself in so important a matter.
  • Richard was a little grave after these interviews, but invariably
  • told Ada and me that it was all right, and then began to talk about
  • something else.
  • "By heaven!" cried Mr. Boythorn, who interested himself strongly in
  • the subject--though I need not say that, for he could do nothing
  • weakly; "I rejoice to find a young gentleman of spirit and gallantry
  • devoting himself to that noble profession! The more spirit there is
  • in it, the better for mankind and the worse for those mercenary
  • task-masters and low tricksters who delight in putting that
  • illustrious art at a disadvantage in the world. By all that is base
  • and despicable," cried Mr. Boythorn, "the treatment of surgeons
  • aboard ship is such that I would submit the legs--both legs--of every
  • member of the Admiralty Board to a compound fracture and render it a
  • transportable offence in any qualified practitioner to set them if
  • the system were not wholly changed in eight and forty hours!"
  • "Wouldn't you give them a week?" asked Mr. Jarndyce.
  • "No!" cried Mr. Boythorn firmly. "Not on any consideration! Eight and
  • forty hours! As to corporations, parishes, vestry-boards, and similar
  • gatherings of jolter-headed clods who assemble to exchange such
  • speeches that, by heaven, they ought to be worked in quicksilver
  • mines for the short remainder of their miserable existence, if it
  • were only to prevent their detestable English from contaminating a
  • language spoken in the presence of the sun--as to those fellows, who
  • meanly take advantage of the ardour of gentlemen in the pursuit of
  • knowledge to recompense the inestimable services of the best years of
  • their lives, their long study, and their expensive education with
  • pittances too small for the acceptance of clerks, I would have the
  • necks of every one of them wrung and their skulls arranged in
  • Surgeons' Hall for the contemplation of the whole profession in order
  • that its younger members might understand from actual measurement, in
  • early life, HOW thick skulls may become!"
  • He wound up this vehement declaration by looking round upon us with a
  • most agreeable smile and suddenly thundering, "Ha, ha, ha!" over and
  • over again, until anybody else might have been expected to be quite
  • subdued by the exertion.
  • As Richard still continued to say that he was fixed in his choice
  • after repeated periods for consideration had been recommended by Mr.
  • Jarndyce and had expired, and he still continued to assure Ada and me
  • in the same final manner that it was "all right," it became advisable
  • to take Mr. Kenge into council. Mr. Kenge, therefore, came down to
  • dinner one day, and leaned back in his chair, and turned his
  • eye-glasses over and over, and spoke in a sonorous voice, and did
  • exactly what I remembered to have seen him do when I was a little
  • girl.
  • "Ah!" said Mr. Kenge. "Yes. Well! A very good profession, Mr.
  • Jarndyce, a very good profession."
  • "The course of study and preparation requires to be diligently
  • pursued," observed my guardian with a glance at Richard.
  • "Oh, no doubt," said Mr. Kenge. "Diligently."
  • "But that being the case, more or less, with all pursuits that are
  • worth much," said Mr. Jarndyce, "it is not a special consideration
  • which another choice would be likely to escape."
  • "Truly," said Mr. Kenge. "And Mr. Richard Carstone, who has so
  • meritoriously acquitted himself in the--shall I say the classic
  • shades?--in which his youth had been passed, will, no doubt, apply
  • the habits, if not the principles and practice, of versification in
  • that tongue in which a poet was said (unless I mistake) to be born,
  • not made, to the more eminently practical field of action on which he
  • enters."
  • "You may rely upon it," said Richard in his off-hand manner, "that I
  • shall go at it and do my best."
  • "Very well, Mr. Jarndyce!" said Mr. Kenge, gently nodding his head.
  • "Really, when we are assured by Mr. Richard that he means to go at it
  • and to do his best," nodding feelingly and smoothly over those
  • expressions, "I would submit to you that we have only to inquire into
  • the best mode of carrying out the object of his ambition. Now, with
  • reference to placing Mr. Richard with some sufficiently eminent
  • practitioner. Is there any one in view at present?"
  • "No one, Rick, I think?" said my guardian.
  • "No one, sir," said Richard.
  • "Quite so!" observed Mr. Kenge. "As to situation, now. Is there any
  • particular feeling on that head?"
  • "N--no," said Richard.
  • "Quite so!" observed Mr. Kenge again.
  • "I should like a little variety," said Richard; "I mean a good range
  • of experience."
  • "Very requisite, no doubt," returned Mr. Kenge. "I think this may be
  • easily arranged, Mr. Jarndyce? We have only, in the first place, to
  • discover a sufficiently eligible practitioner; and as soon as we make
  • our want--and shall I add, our ability to pay a premium?--known, our
  • only difficulty will be in the selection of one from a large number.
  • We have only, in the second place, to observe those little
  • formalities which are rendered necessary by our time of life and our
  • being under the guardianship of the court. We shall soon be--shall I
  • say, in Mr. Richard's own light-hearted manner, 'going at it'--to our
  • heart's content. It is a coincidence," said Mr. Kenge with a tinge of
  • melancholy in his smile, "one of those coincidences which may or may
  • not require an explanation beyond our present limited faculties, that
  • I have a cousin in the medical profession. He might be deemed
  • eligible by you and might be disposed to respond to this proposal. I
  • can answer for him as little as for you, but he MIGHT!"
  • As this was an opening in the prospect, it was arranged that Mr.
  • Kenge should see his cousin. And as Mr. Jarndyce had before proposed
  • to take us to London for a few weeks, it was settled next day that we
  • should make our visit at once and combine Richard's business with it.
  • Mr. Boythorn leaving us within a week, we took up our abode at a
  • cheerful lodging near Oxford Street over an upholsterer's shop.
  • London was a great wonder to us, and we were out for hours and hours
  • at a time, seeing the sights, which appeared to be less capable of
  • exhaustion than we were. We made the round of the principal theatres,
  • too, with great delight, and saw all the plays that were worth
  • seeing. I mention this because it was at the theatre that I began to
  • be made uncomfortable again by Mr. Guppy.
  • I was sitting in front of the box one night with Ada, and Richard was
  • in the place he liked best, behind Ada's chair, when, happening to
  • look down into the pit, I saw Mr. Guppy, with his hair flattened down
  • upon his head and woe depicted in his face, looking up at me. I felt
  • all through the performance that he never looked at the actors but
  • constantly looked at me, and always with a carefully prepared
  • expression of the deepest misery and the profoundest dejection.
  • It quite spoiled my pleasure for that night because it was so very
  • embarrassing and so very ridiculous. But from that time forth, we
  • never went to the play without my seeing Mr. Guppy in the pit, always
  • with his hair straight and flat, his shirt-collar turned down, and a
  • general feebleness about him. If he were not there when we went in,
  • and I began to hope he would not come and yielded myself for a little
  • while to the interest of the scene, I was certain to encounter his
  • languishing eyes when I least expected it and, from that time, to be
  • quite sure that they were fixed upon me all the evening.
  • I really cannot express how uneasy this made me. If he would only
  • have brushed up his hair or turned up his collar, it would have been
  • bad enough; but to know that that absurd figure was always gazing at
  • me, and always in that demonstrative state of despondency, put such a
  • constraint upon me that I did not like to laugh at the play, or to
  • cry at it, or to move, or to speak. I seemed able to do nothing
  • naturally. As to escaping Mr. Guppy by going to the back of the box,
  • I could not bear to do that because I knew Richard and Ada relied on
  • having me next them and that they could never have talked together so
  • happily if anybody else had been in my place. So there I sat, not
  • knowing where to look--for wherever I looked, I knew Mr. Guppy's eyes
  • were following me--and thinking of the dreadful expense to which this
  • young man was putting himself on my account.
  • Sometimes I thought of telling Mr. Jarndyce. Then I feared that the
  • young man would lose his situation and that I might ruin him.
  • Sometimes I thought of confiding in Richard, but was deterred by the
  • possibility of his fighting Mr. Guppy and giving him black eyes.
  • Sometimes I thought, should I frown at him or shake my head. Then I
  • felt I could not do it. Sometimes I considered whether I should write
  • to his mother, but that ended in my being convinced that to open a
  • correspondence would be to make the matter worse. I always came to
  • the conclusion, finally, that I could do nothing. Mr. Guppy's
  • perseverance, all this time, not only produced him regularly at any
  • theatre to which we went, but caused him to appear in the crowd as we
  • were coming out, and even to get up behind our fly--where I am sure I
  • saw him, two or three times, struggling among the most dreadful
  • spikes. After we got home, he haunted a post opposite our house. The
  • upholsterer's where we lodged being at the corner of two streets, and
  • my bedroom window being opposite the post, I was afraid to go near
  • the window when I went upstairs, lest I should see him (as I did one
  • moonlight night) leaning against the post and evidently catching
  • cold. If Mr. Guppy had not been, fortunately for me, engaged in the
  • daytime, I really should have had no rest from him.
  • While we were making this round of gaieties, in which Mr. Guppy so
  • extraordinarily participated, the business which had helped to bring
  • us to town was not neglected. Mr. Kenge's cousin was a Mr. Bayham
  • Badger, who had a good practice at Chelsea and attended a large
  • public institution besides. He was quite willing to receive Richard
  • into his house and to superintend his studies, and as it seemed that
  • those could be pursued advantageously under Mr. Badger's roof, and
  • Mr. Badger liked Richard, and as Richard said he liked Mr. Badger
  • "well enough," an agreement was made, the Lord Chancellor's consent
  • was obtained, and it was all settled.
  • On the day when matters were concluded between Richard and Mr.
  • Badger, we were all under engagement to dine at Mr. Badger's house.
  • We were to be "merely a family party," Mrs. Badger's note said; and
  • we found no lady there but Mrs. Badger herself. She was surrounded in
  • the drawing-room by various objects, indicative of her painting a
  • little, playing the piano a little, playing the guitar a little,
  • playing the harp a little, singing a little, working a little,
  • reading a little, writing poetry a little, and botanizing a little.
  • She was a lady of about fifty, I should think, youthfully dressed,
  • and of a very fine complexion. If I add to the little list of her
  • accomplishments that she rouged a little, I do not mean that there
  • was any harm in it.
  • Mr. Bayham Badger himself was a pink, fresh-faced, crisp-looking
  • gentleman with a weak voice, white teeth, light hair, and surprised
  • eyes, some years younger, I should say, than Mrs. Bayham Badger. He
  • admired her exceedingly, but principally, and to begin with, on the
  • curious ground (as it seemed to us) of her having had three husbands.
  • We had barely taken our seats when he said to Mr. Jarndyce quite
  • triumphantly, "You would hardly suppose that I am Mrs. Bayham
  • Badger's third!"
  • "Indeed?" said Mr. Jarndyce.
  • "Her third!" said Mr. Badger. "Mrs. Bayham Badger has not the
  • appearance, Miss Summerson, of a lady who has had two former
  • husbands?"
  • I said "Not at all!"
  • "And most remarkable men!" said Mr. Badger in a tone of confidence.
  • "Captain Swosser of the Royal Navy, who was Mrs. Badger's first
  • husband, was a very distinguished officer indeed. The name of
  • Professor Dingo, my immediate predecessor, is one of European
  • reputation."
  • Mrs. Badger overheard him and smiled.
  • "Yes, my dear!" Mr. Badger replied to the smile, "I was observing to
  • Mr. Jarndyce and Miss Summerson that you had had two former
  • husbands--both very distinguished men. And they found it, as people
  • generally do, difficult to believe."
  • "I was barely twenty," said Mrs. Badger, "when I married Captain
  • Swosser of the Royal Navy. I was in the Mediterranean with him; I am
  • quite a sailor. On the twelfth anniversary of my wedding-day, I
  • became the wife of Professor Dingo."
  • "Of European reputation," added Mr. Badger in an undertone.
  • "And when Mr. Badger and myself were married," pursued Mrs. Badger,
  • "we were married on the same day of the year. I had become attached
  • to the day."
  • "So that Mrs. Badger has been married to three husbands--two of them
  • highly distinguished men," said Mr. Badger, summing up the facts,
  • "and each time upon the twenty-first of March at eleven in the
  • forenoon!"
  • We all expressed our admiration.
  • "But for Mr. Badger's modesty," said Mr. Jarndyce, "I would take
  • leave to correct him and say three distinguished men."
  • "Thank you, Mr. Jarndyce! What I always tell him!" observed Mrs.
  • Badger.
  • "And, my dear," said Mr. Badger, "what do I always tell you? That
  • without any affectation of disparaging such professional distinction
  • as I may have attained (which our friend Mr. Carstone will have many
  • opportunities of estimating), I am not so weak--no, really," said Mr.
  • Badger to us generally, "so unreasonable--as to put my reputation on
  • the same footing with such first-rate men as Captain Swosser and
  • Professor Dingo. Perhaps you may be interested, Mr. Jarndyce,"
  • continued Mr. Bayham Badger, leading the way into the next
  • drawing-room, "in this portrait of Captain Swosser. It was taken on
  • his return home from the African station, where he had suffered from
  • the fever of the country. Mrs. Badger considers it too yellow. But
  • it's a very fine head. A very fine head!"
  • We all echoed, "A very fine head!"
  • "I feel when I look at it," said Mr. Badger, "'That's a man I should
  • like to have seen!' It strikingly bespeaks the first-class man that
  • Captain Swosser pre-eminently was. On the other side, Professor
  • Dingo. I knew him well--attended him in his last illness--a speaking
  • likeness! Over the piano, Mrs. Bayham Badger when Mrs. Swosser. Over
  • the sofa, Mrs. Bayham Badger when Mrs. Dingo. Of Mrs. Bayham Badger
  • IN ESSE, I possess the original and have no copy."
  • Dinner was now announced, and we went downstairs. It was a very
  • genteel entertainment, very handsomely served. But the captain and
  • the professor still ran in Mr. Badger's head, and as Ada and I had
  • the honour of being under his particular care, we had the full
  • benefit of them.
  • "Water, Miss Summerson? Allow me! Not in that tumbler, pray. Bring me
  • the professor's goblet, James!"
  • Ada very much admired some artificial flowers under a glass.
  • "Astonishing how they keep!" said Mr. Badger. "They were presented to
  • Mrs. Bayham Badger when she was in the Mediterranean."
  • He invited Mr. Jarndyce to take a glass of claret.
  • "Not that claret!" he said. "Excuse me! This is an occasion, and ON
  • an occasion I produce some very special claret I happen to have.
  • (James, Captain Swosser's wine!) Mr. Jarndyce, this is a wine that
  • was imported by the captain, we will not say how many years ago. You
  • will find it very curious. My dear, I shall be happy to take some of
  • this wine with you. (Captain Swosser's claret to your mistress,
  • James!) My love, your health!"
  • After dinner, when we ladies retired, we took Mrs. Badger's first and
  • second husband with us. Mrs. Badger gave us in the drawing-room a
  • biographical sketch of the life and services of Captain Swosser
  • before his marriage and a more minute account of him dating from the
  • time when he fell in love with her at a ball on board the Crippler,
  • given to the officers of that ship when she lay in Plymouth Harbour.
  • "The dear old Crippler!" said Mrs. Badger, shaking her head. "She was
  • a noble vessel. Trim, ship-shape, all a taunto, as Captain Swosser
  • used to say. You must excuse me if I occasionally introduce a
  • nautical expression; I was quite a sailor once. Captain Swosser loved
  • that craft for my sake. When she was no longer in commission, he
  • frequently said that if he were rich enough to buy her old hulk, he
  • would have an inscription let into the timbers of the quarter-deck
  • where we stood as partners in the dance to mark the spot where he
  • fell--raked fore and aft (Captain Swosser used to say) by the fire
  • from my tops. It was his naval way of mentioning my eyes."
  • Mrs. Badger shook her head, sighed, and looked in the glass.
  • "It was a great change from Captain Swosser to Professor Dingo," she
  • resumed with a plaintive smile. "I felt it a good deal at first. Such
  • an entire revolution in my mode of life! But custom, combined with
  • science--particularly science--inured me to it. Being the professor's
  • sole companion in his botanical excursions, I almost forgot that I
  • had ever been afloat, and became quite learned. It is singular that
  • the professor was the antipodes of Captain Swosser and that Mr.
  • Badger is not in the least like either!"
  • We then passed into a narrative of the deaths of Captain Swosser and
  • Professor Dingo, both of whom seem to have had very bad complaints.
  • In the course of it, Mrs. Badger signified to us that she had never
  • madly loved but once and that the object of that wild affection,
  • never to be recalled in its fresh enthusiasm, was Captain Swosser.
  • The professor was yet dying by inches in the most dismal manner, and
  • Mrs. Badger was giving us imitations of his way of saying, with great
  • difficulty, "Where is Laura? Let Laura give me my toast and water!"
  • when the entrance of the gentlemen consigned him to the tomb.
  • Now, I observed that evening, as I had observed for some days past,
  • that Ada and Richard were more than ever attached to each other's
  • society, which was but natural, seeing that they were going to be
  • separated so soon. I was therefore not very much surprised when we
  • got home, and Ada and I retired upstairs, to find Ada more silent
  • than usual, though I was not quite prepared for her coming into my
  • arms and beginning to speak to me, with her face hidden.
  • "My darling Esther!" murmured Ada. "I have a great secret to tell
  • you!"
  • A mighty secret, my pretty one, no doubt!
  • "What is it, Ada?"
  • "Oh, Esther, you would never guess!"
  • "Shall I try to guess?" said I.
  • "Oh, no! Don't! Pray don't!" cried Ada, very much startled by the
  • idea of my doing so.
  • "Now, I wonder who it can be about?" said I, pretending to consider.
  • "It's about--" said Ada in a whisper. "It's about--my cousin
  • Richard!"
  • "Well, my own!" said I, kissing her bright hair, which was all I
  • could see. "And what about him?"
  • "Oh, Esther, you would never guess!"
  • It was so pretty to have her clinging to me in that way, hiding her
  • face, and to know that she was not crying in sorrow but in a little
  • glow of joy, and pride, and hope, that I would not help her just yet.
  • "He says--I know it's very foolish, we are both so young--but he
  • says," with a burst of tears, "that he loves me dearly, Esther."
  • "Does he indeed?" said I. "I never heard of such a thing! Why, my pet
  • of pets, I could have told you that weeks and weeks ago!"
  • To see Ada lift up her flushed face in joyful surprise, and hold me
  • round the neck, and laugh, and cry, and blush, was so pleasant!
  • "Why, my darling," said I, "what a goose you must take me for! Your
  • cousin Richard has been loving you as plainly as he could for I don't
  • know how long!"
  • "And yet you never said a word about it!" cried Ada, kissing me.
  • "No, my love," said I. "I waited to be told."
  • "But now I have told you, you don't think it wrong of me, do you?"
  • returned Ada. She might have coaxed me to say no if I had been the
  • hardest-hearted duenna in the world. Not being that yet, I said no
  • very freely.
  • "And now," said I, "I know the worst of it."
  • "Oh, that's not quite the worst of it, Esther dear!" cried Ada,
  • holding me tighter and laying down her face again upon my breast.
  • "No?" said I. "Not even that?"
  • "No, not even that!" said Ada, shaking her head.
  • "Why, you never mean to say--" I was beginning in joke.
  • But Ada, looking up and smiling through her tears, cried, "Yes, I do!
  • You know, you know I do!" And then sobbed out, "With all my heart I
  • do! With all my whole heart, Esther!"
  • I told her, laughing, why I had known that, too, just as well as I
  • had known the other! And we sat before the fire, and I had all the
  • talking to myself for a little while (though there was not much of
  • it); and Ada was soon quiet and happy.
  • "Do you think my cousin John knows, dear Dame Durden?" she asked.
  • "Unless my cousin John is blind, my pet," said I, "I should think my
  • cousin John knows pretty well as much as we know."
  • "We want to speak to him before Richard goes," said Ada timidly, "and
  • we wanted you to advise us, and to tell him so. Perhaps you wouldn't
  • mind Richard's coming in, Dame Durden?"
  • "Oh! Richard is outside, is he, my dear?" said I.
  • "I am not quite certain," returned Ada with a bashful simplicity that
  • would have won my heart if she had not won it long before, "but I
  • think he's waiting at the door."
  • There he was, of course. They brought a chair on either side of me,
  • and put me between them, and really seemed to have fallen in love
  • with me instead of one another, they were so confiding, and so
  • trustful, and so fond of me. They went on in their own wild way for a
  • little while--I never stopped them; I enjoyed it too much myself--and
  • then we gradually fell to considering how young they were, and how
  • there must be a lapse of several years before this early love could
  • come to anything, and how it could come to happiness only if it were
  • real and lasting and inspired them with a steady resolution to do
  • their duty to each other, with constancy, fortitude, and
  • perseverance, each always for the other's sake. Well! Richard said
  • that he would work his fingers to the bone for Ada, and Ada said that
  • she would work her fingers to the bone for Richard, and they called
  • me all sorts of endearing and sensible names, and we sat there,
  • advising and talking, half the night. Finally, before we parted, I
  • gave them my promise to speak to their cousin John to-morrow.
  • So, when to-morrow came, I went to my guardian after breakfast, in
  • the room that was our town-substitute for the growlery, and told him
  • that I had it in trust to tell him something.
  • "Well, little woman," said he, shutting up his book, "if you have
  • accepted the trust, there can be no harm in it."
  • "I hope not, guardian," said I. "I can guarantee that there is no
  • secrecy in it. For it only happened yesterday."
  • "Aye? And what is it, Esther?"
  • "Guardian," said I, "you remember the happy night when first we came
  • down to Bleak House? When Ada was singing in the dark room?"
  • I wished to call to his remembrance the look he had given me then.
  • Unless I am much mistaken, I saw that I did so.
  • "Because--" said I with a little hesitation.
  • "Yes, my dear!" said he. "Don't hurry."
  • "Because," said I, "Ada and Richard have fallen in love. And have
  • told each other so."
  • "Already!" cried my guardian, quite astonished.
  • "Yes!" said I. "And to tell you the truth, guardian, I rather
  • expected it."
  • "The deuce you did!" said he.
  • He sat considering for a minute or two, with his smile, at once so
  • handsome and so kind, upon his changing face, and then requested me
  • to let them know that he wished to see them. When they came, he
  • encircled Ada with one arm in his fatherly way and addressed himself
  • to Richard with a cheerful gravity.
  • "Rick," said Mr. Jarndyce, "I am glad to have won your confidence. I
  • hope to preserve it. When I contemplated these relations between us
  • four which have so brightened my life and so invested it with new
  • interests and pleasures, I certainly did contemplate, afar off, the
  • possibility of you and your pretty cousin here (don't be shy, Ada,
  • don't be shy, my dear!) being in a mind to go through life together.
  • I saw, and do see, many reasons to make it desirable. But that was
  • afar off, Rick, afar off!"
  • "We look afar off, sir," returned Richard.
  • "Well!" said Mr. Jarndyce. "That's rational. Now, hear me, my dears!
  • I might tell you that you don't know your own minds yet, that a
  • thousand things may happen to divert you from one another, that it is
  • well this chain of flowers you have taken up is very easily broken,
  • or it might become a chain of lead. But I will not do that. Such
  • wisdom will come soon enough, I dare say, if it is to come at all. I
  • will assume that a few years hence you will be in your hearts to one
  • another what you are to-day. All I say before speaking to you
  • according to that assumption is, if you DO change--if you DO come to
  • find that you are more commonplace cousins to each other as man and
  • woman than you were as boy and girl (your manhood will excuse me,
  • Rick!)--don't be ashamed still to confide in me, for there will be
  • nothing monstrous or uncommon in it. I am only your friend and
  • distant kinsman. I have no power over you whatever. But I wish and
  • hope to retain your confidence if I do nothing to forfeit it."
  • "I am very sure, sir," returned Richard, "that I speak for Ada too
  • when I say that you have the strongest power over us both--rooted in
  • respect, gratitude, and affection--strengthening every day."
  • "Dear cousin John," said Ada, on his shoulder, "my father's place can
  • never be empty again. All the love and duty I could ever have
  • rendered to him is transferred to you."
  • "Come!" said Mr. Jarndyce. "Now for our assumption. Now we lift our
  • eyes up and look hopefully at the distance! Rick, the world is before
  • you; and it is most probable that as you enter it, so it will receive
  • you. Trust in nothing but in Providence and your own efforts. Never
  • separate the two, like the heathen waggoner. Constancy in love is a
  • good thing, but it means nothing, and is nothing, without constancy
  • in every kind of effort. If you had the abilities of all the great
  • men, past and present, you could do nothing well without sincerely
  • meaning it and setting about it. If you entertain the supposition
  • that any real success, in great things or in small, ever was or could
  • be, ever will or can be, wrested from Fortune by fits and starts,
  • leave that wrong idea here or leave your cousin Ada here."
  • "I will leave IT here, sir," replied Richard smiling, "if I brought
  • it here just now (but I hope I did not), and will work my way on to
  • my cousin Ada in the hopeful distance."
  • "Right!" said Mr. Jarndyce. "If you are not to make her happy, why
  • should you pursue her?"
  • "I wouldn't make her unhappy--no, not even for her love," retorted
  • Richard proudly.
  • "Well said!" cried Mr. Jarndyce. "That's well said! She remains here,
  • in her home with me. Love her, Rick, in your active life, no less
  • than in her home when you revisit it, and all will go well.
  • Otherwise, all will go ill. That's the end of my preaching. I think
  • you and Ada had better take a walk."
  • Ada tenderly embraced him, and Richard heartily shook hands with him,
  • and then the cousins went out of the room, looking back again
  • directly, though, to say that they would wait for me.
  • The door stood open, and we both followed them with our eyes as they
  • passed down the adjoining room, on which the sun was shining, and out
  • at its farther end. Richard with his head bent, and her hand drawn
  • through his arm, was talking to her very earnestly; and she looked up
  • in his face, listening, and seemed to see nothing else. So young, so
  • beautiful, so full of hope and promise, they went on lightly through
  • the sunlight as their own happy thoughts might then be traversing the
  • years to come and making them all years of brightness. So they passed
  • away into the shadow and were gone. It was only a burst of light that
  • had been so radiant. The room darkened as they went out, and the sun
  • was clouded over.
  • "Am I right, Esther?" said my guardian when they were gone.
  • He was so good and wise to ask ME whether he was right!
  • "Rick may gain, out of this, the quality he wants. Wants, at the core
  • of so much that is good!" said Mr. Jarndyce, shaking his head. "I
  • have said nothing to Ada, Esther. She has her friend and counsellor
  • always near." And he laid his hand lovingly upon my head.
  • I could not help showing that I was a little moved, though I did all
  • I could to conceal it.
  • "Tut tut!" said he. "But we must take care, too, that our little
  • woman's life is not all consumed in care for others."
  • "Care? My dear guardian, I believe I am the happiest creature in the
  • world!"
  • "I believe so, too," said he. "But some one may find out what Esther
  • never will--that the little woman is to be held in remembrance above
  • all other people!"
  • I have omitted to mention in its place that there was some one else
  • at the family dinner party. It was not a lady. It was a gentleman. It
  • was a gentleman of a dark complexion--a young surgeon. He was rather
  • reserved, but I thought him very sensible and agreeable. At least,
  • Ada asked me if I did not, and I said yes.
  • CHAPTER XIV
  • Deportment
  • Richard left us on the very next evening to begin his new career, and
  • committed Ada to my charge with great love for her and great trust in
  • me. It touched me then to reflect, and it touches me now, more
  • nearly, to remember (having what I have to tell) how they both
  • thought of me, even at that engrossing time. I was a part of all
  • their plans, for the present and the future. I was to write Richard
  • once a week, making my faithful report of Ada, who was to write to
  • him every alternate day. I was to be informed, under his own hand, of
  • all his labours and successes; I was to observe how resolute and
  • persevering he would be; I was to be Ada's bridesmaid when they were
  • married; I was to live with them afterwards; I was to keep all the
  • keys of their house; I was to be made happy for ever and a day.
  • "And if the suit SHOULD make us rich, Esther--which it may, you
  • know!" said Richard to crown all.
  • A shade crossed Ada's face.
  • "My dearest Ada," asked Richard, "why not?"
  • "It had better declare us poor at once," said Ada.
  • "Oh! I don't know about that," returned Richard, "but at all events,
  • it won't declare anything at once. It hasn't declared anything in
  • heaven knows how many years."
  • "Too true," said Ada.
  • "Yes, but," urged Richard, answering what her look suggested rather
  • than her words, "the longer it goes on, dear cousin, the nearer it
  • must be to a settlement one way or other. Now, is not that
  • reasonable?"
  • "You know best, Richard. But I am afraid if we trust to it, it will
  • make us unhappy."
  • "But, my Ada, we are not going to trust to it!" cried Richard gaily.
  • "We know it better than to trust to it. We only say that if it SHOULD
  • make us rich, we have no constitutional objection to being rich. The
  • court is, by solemn settlement of law, our grim old guardian, and we
  • are to suppose that what it gives us (when it gives us anything) is
  • our right. It is not necessary to quarrel with our right."
  • "No," said Ada, "but it may be better to forget all about it."
  • "Well, well," cried Richard, "then we will forget all about it! We
  • consign the whole thing to oblivion. Dame Durden puts on her
  • approving face, and it's done!"
  • "Dame Durden's approving face," said I, looking out of the box in
  • which I was packing his books, "was not very visible when you called
  • it by that name; but it does approve, and she thinks you can't do
  • better."
  • So, Richard said there was an end of it, and immediately began, on no
  • other foundation, to build as many castles in the air as would man
  • the Great Wall of China. He went away in high spirits. Ada and I,
  • prepared to miss him very much, commenced our quieter career.
  • On our arrival in London, we had called with Mr. Jarndyce at Mrs.
  • Jellyby's but had not been so fortunate as to find her at home. It
  • appeared that she had gone somewhere to a tea-drinking and had taken
  • Miss Jellyby with her. Besides the tea-drinking, there was to be some
  • considerable speech-making and letter-writing on the general merits
  • of the cultivation of coffee, conjointly with natives, at the
  • Settlement of Borrioboola-Gha. All this involved, no doubt,
  • sufficient active exercise of pen and ink to make her daughter's part
  • in the proceedings anything but a holiday.
  • It being now beyond the time appointed for Mrs. Jellyby's return, we
  • called again. She was in town, but not at home, having gone to Mile
  • End directly after breakfast on some Borrioboolan business, arising
  • out of a society called the East London Branch Aid Ramification. As I
  • had not seen Peepy on the occasion of our last call (when he was not
  • to be found anywhere, and when the cook rather thought he must have
  • strolled away with the dustman's cart), I now inquired for him again.
  • The oyster shells he had been building a house with were still in the
  • passage, but he was nowhere discoverable, and the cook supposed that
  • he had "gone after the sheep." When we repeated, with some surprise,
  • "The sheep?" she said, Oh, yes, on market days he sometimes followed
  • them quite out of town and came back in such a state as never was!
  • I was sitting at the window with my guardian on the following
  • morning, and Ada was busy writing--of course to Richard--when Miss
  • Jellyby was announced, and entered, leading the identical Peepy, whom
  • she had made some endeavours to render presentable by wiping the dirt
  • into corners of his face and hands and making his hair very wet and
  • then violently frizzling it with her fingers. Everything the dear
  • child wore was either too large for him or too small. Among his other
  • contradictory decorations he had the hat of a bishop and the little
  • gloves of a baby. His boots were, on a small scale, the boots of a
  • ploughman, while his legs, so crossed and recrossed with scratches
  • that they looked like maps, were bare below a very short pair of
  • plaid drawers finished off with two frills of perfectly different
  • patterns. The deficient buttons on his plaid frock had evidently been
  • supplied from one of Mr. Jellyby's coats, they were so extremely
  • brazen and so much too large. Most extraordinary specimens of
  • needlework appeared on several parts of his dress, where it had been
  • hastily mended, and I recognized the same hand on Miss Jellyby's. She
  • was, however, unaccountably improved in her appearance and looked
  • very pretty. She was conscious of poor little Peepy being but a
  • failure after all her trouble, and she showed it as she came in by
  • the way in which she glanced first at him and then at us.
  • "Oh, dear me!" said my guardian. "Due east!"
  • Ada and I gave her a cordial welcome and presented her to Mr.
  • Jarndyce, to whom she said as she sat down, "Ma's compliments, and
  • she hopes you'll excuse her, because she's correcting proofs of the
  • plan. She's going to put out five thousand new circulars, and she
  • knows you'll be interested to hear that. I have brought one of them
  • with me. Ma's compliments." With which she presented it sulkily
  • enough.
  • "Thank you," said my guardian. "I am much obliged to Mrs. Jellyby.
  • Oh, dear me! This is a very trying wind!"
  • We were busy with Peepy, taking off his clerical hat, asking him if
  • he remembered us, and so on. Peepy retired behind his elbow at first,
  • but relented at the sight of sponge-cake and allowed me to take him
  • on my lap, where he sat munching quietly. Mr. Jarndyce then
  • withdrawing into the temporary growlery, Miss Jellyby opened a
  • conversation with her usual abruptness.
  • "We are going on just as bad as ever in Thavies Inn," said she. "I
  • have no peace of my life. Talk of Africa! I couldn't be worse off if
  • I was a what's-his-name--man and a brother!"
  • I tried to say something soothing.
  • "Oh, it's of no use, Miss Summerson," exclaimed Miss Jellyby, "though
  • I thank you for the kind intention all the same. I know how I am
  • used, and I am not to be talked over. YOU wouldn't be talked over if
  • you were used so. Peepy, go and play at Wild Beasts under the piano!"
  • "I shan't!" said Peepy.
  • "Very well, you ungrateful, naughty, hard-hearted boy!" returned Miss
  • Jellyby with tears in her eyes. "I'll never take pains to dress you
  • any more."
  • "Yes, I will go, Caddy!" cried Peepy, who was really a good child and
  • who was so moved by his sister's vexation that he went at once.
  • "It seems a little thing to cry about," said poor Miss Jellyby
  • apologetically, "but I am quite worn out. I was directing the new
  • circulars till two this morning. I detest the whole thing so that
  • that alone makes my head ache till I can't see out of my eyes. And
  • look at that poor unfortunate child! Was there ever such a fright as
  • he is!"
  • Peepy, happily unconscious of the defects in his appearance, sat on
  • the carpet behind one of the legs of the piano, looking calmly out of
  • his den at us while he ate his cake.
  • "I have sent him to the other end of the room," observed Miss
  • Jellyby, drawing her chair nearer ours, "because I don't want him to
  • hear the conversation. Those little things are so sharp! I was going
  • to say, we really are going on worse than ever. Pa will be a bankrupt
  • before long, and then I hope Ma will be satisfied. There'll he nobody
  • but Ma to thank for it."
  • We said we hoped Mr. Jellyby's affairs were not in so bad a state as
  • that.
  • "It's of no use hoping, though it's very kind of you," returned Miss
  • Jellyby, shaking her head. "Pa told me only yesterday morning (and
  • dreadfully unhappy he is) that he couldn't weather the storm. I
  • should be surprised if he could. When all our tradesmen send into our
  • house any stuff they like, and the servants do what they like with
  • it, and I have no time to improve things if I knew how, and Ma don't
  • care about anything, I should like to make out how Pa is to weather
  • the storm. I declare if I was Pa, I'd run away."
  • "My dear!" said I, smiling. "Your papa, no doubt, considers his
  • family."
  • "Oh, yes, his family is all very fine, Miss Summerson," replied Miss
  • Jellyby; "but what comfort is his family to him? His family is
  • nothing but bills, dirt, waste, noise, tumbles downstairs, confusion,
  • and wretchedness. His scrambling home, from week's end to week's end,
  • is like one great washing-day--only nothing's washed!"
  • Miss Jellyby tapped her foot upon the floor and wiped her eyes.
  • "I am sure I pity Pa to that degree," she said, "and am so angry with
  • Ma that I can't find words to express myself! However, I am not going
  • to bear it, I am determined. I won't be a slave all my life, and I
  • won't submit to be proposed to by Mr. Quale. A pretty thing, indeed,
  • to marry a philanthropist. As if I hadn't had enough of THAT!" said
  • poor Miss Jellyby.
  • I must confess that I could not help feeling rather angry with Mrs.
  • Jellyby myself, seeing and hearing this neglected girl and knowing
  • how much of bitterly satirical truth there was in what she said.
  • "If it wasn't that we had been intimate when you stopped at our
  • house," pursued Miss Jellyby, "I should have been ashamed to come
  • here to-day, for I know what a figure I must seem to you two. But as
  • it is, I made up my mind to call, especially as I am not likely to
  • see you again the next time you come to town."
  • She said this with such great significance that Ada and I glanced at
  • one another, foreseeing something more.
  • "No!" said Miss Jellyby, shaking her head. "Not at all likely! I know
  • I may trust you two. I am sure you won't betray me. I am engaged."
  • "Without their knowledge at home?" said I.
  • "Why, good gracious me, Miss Summerson," she returned, justifying
  • herself in a fretful but not angry manner, "how can it be otherwise?
  • You know what Ma is--and I needn't make poor Pa more miserable by
  • telling HIM."
  • "But would it not be adding to his unhappiness to marry without his
  • knowledge or consent, my dear?" said I.
  • "No," said Miss Jellyby, softening. "I hope not. I should try to make
  • him happy and comfortable when he came to see me, and Peepy and the
  • others should take it in turns to come and stay with me, and they
  • should have some care taken of them then."
  • There was a good deal of affection in poor Caddy. She softened more
  • and more while saying this and cried so much over the unwonted little
  • home-picture she had raised in her mind that Peepy, in his cave under
  • the piano, was touched, and turned himself over on his back with loud
  • lamentations. It was not until I had brought him to kiss his sister,
  • and had restored him to his place on my lap, and had shown him that
  • Caddy was laughing (she laughed expressly for the purpose), that we
  • could recall his peace of mind; even then it was for some time
  • conditional on his taking us in turns by the chin and smoothing our
  • faces all over with his hand. At last, as his spirits were not equal
  • to the piano, we put him on a chair to look out of window; and Miss
  • Jellyby, holding him by one leg, resumed her confidence.
  • "It began in your coming to our house," she said.
  • We naturally asked how.
  • "I felt I was so awkward," she replied, "that I made up my mind to be
  • improved in that respect at all events and to learn to dance. I told
  • Ma I was ashamed of myself, and I must be taught to dance. Ma looked
  • at me in that provoking way of hers as if I wasn't in sight, but I
  • was quite determined to be taught to dance, and so I went to Mr.
  • Turveydrop's Academy in Newman Street."
  • "And was it there, my dear--" I began.
  • "Yes, it was there," said Caddy, "and I am engaged to Mr. Turveydrop.
  • There are two Mr. Turveydrops, father and son. My Mr. Turveydrop is
  • the son, of course. I only wish I had been better brought up and was
  • likely to make him a better wife, for I am very fond of him."
  • "I am sorry to hear this," said I, "I must confess."
  • "I don't know why you should be sorry," she retorted a little
  • anxiously, "but I am engaged to Mr. Turveydrop, whether or no, and he
  • is very fond of me. It's a secret as yet, even on his side, because
  • old Mr. Turveydrop has a share in the connexion and it might break
  • his heart or give him some other shock if he was told of it abruptly.
  • Old Mr. Turveydrop is a very gentlemanly man indeed--very
  • gentlemanly."
  • "Does his wife know of it?" asked Ada.
  • "Old Mr. Turveydrop's wife, Miss Clare?" returned Miss Jellyby,
  • opening her eyes. "There's no such person. He is a widower."
  • We were here interrupted by Peepy, whose leg had undergone so much on
  • account of his sister's unconsciously jerking it like a bell-rope
  • whenever she was emphatic that the afflicted child now bemoaned his
  • sufferings with a very low-spirited noise. As he appealed to me for
  • compassion, and as I was only a listener, I undertook to hold him.
  • Miss Jellyby proceeded, after begging Peepy's pardon with a kiss and
  • assuring him that she hadn't meant to do it.
  • "That's the state of the case," said Caddy. "If I ever blame myself,
  • I still think it's Ma's fault. We are to be married whenever we can,
  • and then I shall go to Pa at the office and write to Ma. It won't
  • much agitate Ma; I am only pen and ink to HER. One great comfort is,"
  • said Caddy with a sob, "that I shall never hear of Africa after I am
  • married. Young Mr. Turveydrop hates it for my sake, and if old Mr.
  • Turveydrop knows there is such a place, it's as much as he does."
  • "It was he who was very gentlemanly, I think!" said I.
  • "Very gentlemanly indeed," said Caddy. "He is celebrated almost
  • everywhere for his deportment."
  • "Does he teach?" asked Ada.
  • "No, he don't teach anything in particular," replied Caddy. "But his
  • deportment is beautiful."
  • Caddy went on to say with considerable hesitation and reluctance that
  • there was one thing more she wished us to know, and felt we ought to
  • know, and which she hoped would not offend us. It was that she had
  • improved her acquaintance with Miss Flite, the little crazy old lady,
  • and that she frequently went there early in the morning and met her
  • lover for a few minutes before breakfast--only for a few minutes. "I
  • go there at other times," said Caddy, "but Prince does not come then.
  • Young Mr. Turveydrop's name is Prince; I wish it wasn't, because it
  • sounds like a dog, but of course he didn't christen himself. Old Mr.
  • Turveydrop had him christened Prince in remembrance of the Prince
  • Regent. Old Mr. Turveydrop adored the Prince Regent on account of his
  • deportment. I hope you won't think the worse of me for having made
  • these little appointments at Miss Flite's, where I first went with
  • you, because I like the poor thing for her own sake and I believe she
  • likes me. If you could see young Mr. Turveydrop, I am sure you would
  • think well of him--at least, I am sure you couldn't possibly think
  • any ill of him. I am going there now for my lesson. I couldn't ask
  • you to go with me, Miss Summerson; but if you would," said Caddy, who
  • had said all this earnestly and tremblingly, "I should be very
  • glad--very glad."
  • It happened that we had arranged with my guardian to go to Miss
  • Flite's that day. We had told him of our former visit, and our
  • account had interested him; but something had always happened to
  • prevent our going there again. As I trusted that I might have
  • sufficient influence with Miss Jellyby to prevent her taking any very
  • rash step if I fully accepted the confidence she was so willing to
  • place in me, poor girl, I proposed that she and I and Peepy should go
  • to the academy and afterwards meet my guardian and Ada at Miss
  • Flite's, whose name I now learnt for the first time. This was on
  • condition that Miss Jellyby and Peepy should come back with us to
  • dinner. The last article of the agreement being joyfully acceded to
  • by both, we smartened Peepy up a little with the assistance of a few
  • pins, some soap and water, and a hair-brush, and went out, bending
  • our steps towards Newman Street, which was very near.
  • I found the academy established in a sufficiently dingy house at the
  • corner of an archway, with busts in all the staircase windows. In the
  • same house there were also established, as I gathered from the plates
  • on the door, a drawing-master, a coal-merchant (there was, certainly,
  • no room for his coals), and a lithographic artist. On the plate
  • which, in size and situation, took precedence of all the rest, I
  • read, MR. TURVEYDROP. The door was open, and the hall was blocked up
  • by a grand piano, a harp, and several other musical instruments in
  • cases, all in progress of removal, and all looking rakish in the
  • daylight. Miss Jellyby informed me that the academy had been lent,
  • last night, for a concert.
  • We went upstairs--it had been quite a fine house once, when it was
  • anybody's business to keep it clean and fresh, and nobody's business
  • to smoke in it all day--and into Mr. Turveydrop's great room, which
  • was built out into a mews at the back and was lighted by a skylight.
  • It was a bare, resounding room smelling of stables, with cane forms
  • along the walls, and the walls ornamented at regular intervals with
  • painted lyres and little cut-glass branches for candles, which seemed
  • to be shedding their old-fashioned drops as other branches might shed
  • autumn leaves. Several young lady pupils, ranging from thirteen or
  • fourteen years of age to two or three and twenty, were assembled; and
  • I was looking among them for their instructor when Caddy, pinching my
  • arm, repeated the ceremony of introduction. "Miss Summerson, Mr.
  • Prince Turveydrop!"
  • I curtsied to a little blue-eyed fair man of youthful appearance with
  • flaxen hair parted in the middle and curling at the ends all round
  • his head. He had a little fiddle, which we used to call at school a
  • kit, under his left arm, and its little bow in the same hand. His
  • little dancing-shoes were particularly diminutive, and he had a
  • little innocent, feminine manner which not only appealed to me in an
  • amiable way, but made this singular effect upon me, that I received
  • the impression that he was like his mother and that his mother had
  • not been much considered or well used.
  • "I am very happy to see Miss Jellyby's friend," he said, bowing low
  • to me. "I began to fear," with timid tenderness, "as it was past the
  • usual time, that Miss Jellyby was not coming."
  • "I beg you will have the goodness to attribute that to me, who have
  • detained her, and to receive my excuses, sir," said I.
  • "Oh, dear!" said he.
  • "And pray," I entreated, "do not allow me to be the cause of any more
  • delay."
  • With that apology I withdrew to a seat between Peepy (who, being well
  • used to it, had already climbed into a corner place) and an old lady
  • of a censorious countenance whose two nieces were in the class and
  • who was very indignant with Peepy's boots. Prince Turveydrop then
  • tinkled the strings of his kit with his fingers, and the young ladies
  • stood up to dance. Just then there appeared from a side-door old Mr.
  • Turveydrop, in the full lustre of his deportment.
  • He was a fat old gentleman with a false complexion, false teeth,
  • false whiskers, and a wig. He had a fur collar, and he had a padded
  • breast to his coat, which only wanted a star or a broad blue ribbon
  • to be complete. He was pinched in, and swelled out, and got up, and
  • strapped down, as much as he could possibly bear. He had such a
  • neckcloth on (puffing his very eyes out of their natural shape), and
  • his chin and even his ears so sunk into it, that it seemed as though
  • he must inevitably double up if it were cast loose. He had under his
  • arm a hat of great size and weight, shelving downward from the crown
  • to the brim, and in his hand a pair of white gloves with which he
  • flapped it as he stood poised on one leg in a high-shouldered,
  • round-elbowed state of elegance not to be surpassed. He had a cane,
  • he had an eye-glass, he had a snuff-box, he had rings, he had
  • wristbands, he had everything but any touch of nature; he was not
  • like youth, he was not like age, he was not like anything in the
  • world but a model of deportment.
  • "Father! A visitor. Miss Jellyby's friend, Miss Summerson."
  • "Distinguished," said Mr. Turveydrop, "by Miss Summerson's presence."
  • As he bowed to me in that tight state, I almost believe I saw creases
  • come into the whites of his eyes.
  • "My father," said the son, aside, to me with quite an affecting
  • belief in him, "is a celebrated character. My father is greatly
  • admired."
  • "Go on, Prince! Go on!" said Mr. Turveydrop, standing with his back
  • to the fire and waving his gloves condescendingly. "Go on, my son!"
  • At this command, or by this gracious permission, the lesson went on.
  • Prince Turveydrop sometimes played the kit, dancing; sometimes played
  • the piano, standing; sometimes hummed the tune with what little
  • breath he could spare, while he set a pupil right; always
  • conscientiously moved with the least proficient through every step
  • and every part of the figure; and never rested for an instant. His
  • distinguished father did nothing whatever but stand before the fire,
  • a model of deportment.
  • "And he never does anything else," said the old lady of the
  • censorious countenance. "Yet would you believe that it's HIS name on
  • the door-plate?"
  • "His son's name is the same, you know," said I.
  • "He wouldn't let his son have any name if he could take it from him,"
  • returned the old lady. "Look at the son's dress!" It certainly was
  • plain--threadbare--almost shabby. "Yet the father must be garnished
  • and tricked out," said the old lady, "because of his deportment. I'd
  • deport him! Transport him would be better!"
  • I felt curious to know more concerning this person. I asked, "Does he
  • give lessons in deportment now?"
  • "Now!" returned the old lady shortly. "Never did."
  • After a moment's consideration, I suggested that perhaps fencing had
  • been his accomplishment.
  • "I don't believe he can fence at all, ma'am," said the old lady.
  • I looked surprised and inquisitive. The old lady, becoming more and
  • more incensed against the master of deportment as she dwelt upon the
  • subject, gave me some particulars of his career, with strong
  • assurances that they were mildly stated.
  • He had married a meek little dancing-mistress, with a tolerable
  • connexion (having never in his life before done anything but deport
  • himself), and had worked her to death, or had, at the best, suffered
  • her to work herself to death, to maintain him in those expenses which
  • were indispensable to his position. At once to exhibit his deportment
  • to the best models and to keep the best models constantly before
  • himself, he had found it necessary to frequent all public places of
  • fashionable and lounging resort, to be seen at Brighton and elsewhere
  • at fashionable times, and to lead an idle life in the very best
  • clothes. To enable him to do this, the affectionate little
  • dancing-mistress had toiled and laboured and would have toiled and
  • laboured to that hour if her strength had lasted so long. For the
  • mainspring of the story was that in spite of the man's absorbing
  • selfishness, his wife (overpowered by his deportment) had, to the
  • last, believed in him and had, on her death-bed, in the most moving
  • terms, confided him to their son as one who had an inextinguishable
  • claim upon him and whom he could never regard with too much pride and
  • deference. The son, inheriting his mother's belief, and having the
  • deportment always before him, had lived and grown in the same faith,
  • and now, at thirty years of age, worked for his father twelve hours a
  • day and looked up to him with veneration on the old imaginary
  • pinnacle.
  • "The airs the fellow gives himself!" said my informant, shaking her
  • head at old Mr. Turveydrop with speechless indignation as he drew on
  • his tight gloves, of course unconscious of the homage she was
  • rendering. "He fully believes he is one of the aristocracy! And he is
  • so condescending to the son he so egregiously deludes that you might
  • suppose him the most virtuous of parents. Oh!" said the old lady,
  • apostrophizing him with infinite vehemence. "I could bite you!"
  • I could not help being amused, though I heard the old lady out with
  • feelings of real concern. It was difficult to doubt her with the
  • father and son before me. What I might have thought of them without
  • the old lady's account, or what I might have thought of the old
  • lady's account without them, I cannot say. There was a fitness of
  • things in the whole that carried conviction with it.
  • My eyes were yet wandering, from young Mr. Turveydrop working so
  • hard, to old Mr. Turveydrop deporting himself so beautifully, when
  • the latter came ambling up to me and entered into conversation.
  • He asked me, first of all, whether I conferred a charm and a
  • distinction on London by residing in it? I did not think it necessary
  • to reply that I was perfectly aware I should not do that, in any
  • case, but merely told him where I did reside.
  • "A lady so graceful and accomplished," he said, kissing his
  • right glove and afterwards extending it towards the pupils,
  • "will look leniently on the deficiencies here. We do our best to
  • polish--polish--polish!"
  • He sat down beside me, taking some pains to sit on the form, I
  • thought, in imitation of the print of his illustrious model on the
  • sofa. And really he did look very like it.
  • "To polish--polish--polish!" he repeated, taking a pinch of snuff and
  • gently fluttering his fingers. "But we are not, if I may say so to
  • one formed to be graceful both by Nature and Art--" with the
  • high-shouldered bow, which it seemed impossible for him to make
  • without lifting up his eyebrows and shutting his eyes "--we are not
  • what we used to be in point of deportment."
  • "Are we not, sir?" said I.
  • "We have degenerated," he returned, shaking his head, which he could
  • do to a very limited extent in his cravat. "A levelling age is not
  • favourable to deportment. It develops vulgarity. Perhaps I speak with
  • some little partiality. It may not be for me to say that I have been
  • called, for some years now, Gentleman Turveydrop, or that his Royal
  • Highness the Prince Regent did me the honour to inquire, on my
  • removing my hat as he drove out of the Pavilion at Brighton (that
  • fine building), 'Who is he? Who the devil is he? Why don't I know
  • him? Why hasn't he thirty thousand a year?' But these are little
  • matters of anecdote--the general property, ma'am--still repeated
  • occasionally among the upper classes."
  • "Indeed?" said I.
  • He replied with the high-shouldered bow. "Where what is left among us
  • of deportment," he added, "still lingers. England--alas, my
  • country!--has degenerated very much, and is degenerating every day.
  • She has not many gentlemen left. We are few. I see nothing to succeed
  • us but a race of weavers."
  • "One might hope that the race of gentlemen would be perpetuated
  • here," said I.
  • "You are very good." He smiled with a high-shouldered bow again. "You
  • flatter me. But, no--no! I have never been able to imbue my poor boy
  • with that part of his art. Heaven forbid that I should disparage my
  • dear child, but he has--no deportment."
  • "He appears to be an excellent master," I observed.
  • "Understand me, my dear madam, he IS an excellent master. All that
  • can be acquired, he has acquired. All that can be imparted, he can
  • impart. But there ARE things--" He took another pinch of snuff and
  • made the bow again, as if to add, "This kind of thing, for instance."
  • I glanced towards the centre of the room, where Miss Jellyby's lover,
  • now engaged with single pupils, was undergoing greater drudgery than
  • ever.
  • "My amiable child," murmured Mr. Turveydrop, adjusting his cravat.
  • "Your son is indefatigable," said I.
  • "It is my reward," said Mr. Turveydrop, "to hear you say so. In some
  • respects, he treads in the footsteps of his sainted mother. She was a
  • devoted creature. But wooman, lovely wooman," said Mr. Turveydrop
  • with very disagreeable gallantry, "what a sex you are!"
  • I rose and joined Miss Jellyby, who was by this time putting on her
  • bonnet. The time allotted to a lesson having fully elapsed, there was
  • a general putting on of bonnets. When Miss Jellyby and the
  • unfortunate Prince found an opportunity to become betrothed I don't
  • know, but they certainly found none on this occasion to exchange a
  • dozen words.
  • "My dear," said Mr. Turveydrop benignly to his son, "do you know the
  • hour?"
  • "No, father." The son had no watch. The father had a handsome gold
  • one, which he pulled out with an air that was an example to mankind.
  • "My son," said he, "it's two o'clock. Recollect your school at
  • Kensington at three."
  • "That's time enough for me, father," said Prince. "I can take a
  • morsel of dinner standing and be off."
  • "My dear boy," returned his father, "you must be very quick. You will
  • find the cold mutton on the table."
  • "Thank you, father. Are YOU off now, father?"
  • "Yes, my dear. I suppose," said Mr. Turveydrop, shutting his eyes and
  • lifting up his shoulders with modest consciousness, "that I must show
  • myself, as usual, about town."
  • "You had better dine out comfortably somewhere," said his son.
  • "My dear child, I intend to. I shall take my little meal, I think, at
  • the French house, in the Opera Colonnade."
  • "That's right. Good-bye, father!" said Prince, shaking hands.
  • "Good-bye, my son. Bless you!"
  • Mr. Turveydrop said this in quite a pious manner, and it seemed to do
  • his son good, who, in parting from him, was so pleased with him, so
  • dutiful to him, and so proud of him that I almost felt as if it were
  • an unkindness to the younger man not to be able to believe implicitly
  • in the elder. The few moments that were occupied by Prince in taking
  • leave of us (and particularly of one of us, as I saw, being in the
  • secret), enhanced my favourable impression of his almost childish
  • character. I felt a liking for him and a compassion for him as he put
  • his little kit in his pocket--and with it his desire to stay a little
  • while with Caddy--and went away good-humouredly to his cold mutton
  • and his school at Kensington, that made me scarcely less irate with
  • his father than the censorious old lady.
  • The father opened the room door for us and bowed us out in a manner,
  • I must acknowledge, worthy of his shining original. In the same style
  • he presently passed us on the other side of the street, on his way to
  • the aristocratic part of the town, where he was going to show himself
  • among the few other gentlemen left. For some moments, I was so lost
  • in reconsidering what I had heard and seen in Newman Street that I
  • was quite unable to talk to Caddy or even to fix my attention on what
  • she said to me, especially when I began to inquire in my mind whether
  • there were, or ever had been, any other gentlemen, not in the dancing
  • profession, who lived and founded a reputation entirely on their
  • deportment. This became so bewildering and suggested the possibility
  • of so many Mr. Turveydrops that I said, "Esther, you must make up
  • your mind to abandon this subject altogether and attend to Caddy." I
  • accordingly did so, and we chatted all the rest of the way to
  • Lincoln's Inn.
  • Caddy told me that her lover's education had been so neglected that
  • it was not always easy to read his notes. She said if he were not so
  • anxious about his spelling and took less pains to make it clear, he
  • would do better; but he put so many unnecessary letters into short
  • words that they sometimes quite lost their English appearance. "He
  • does it with the best intention," observed Caddy, "but it hasn't the
  • effect he means, poor fellow!" Caddy then went on to reason, how
  • could he be expected to be a scholar when he had passed his whole
  • life in the dancing-school and had done nothing but teach and fag,
  • fag and teach, morning, noon, and night! And what did it matter? She
  • could write letters enough for both, as she knew to her cost, and it
  • was far better for him to be amiable than learned. "Besides, it's not
  • as if I was an accomplished girl who had any right to give herself
  • airs," said Caddy. "I know little enough, I am sure, thanks to Ma!
  • "There's another thing I want to tell you, now we are alone,"
  • continued Caddy, "which I should not have liked to mention unless you
  • had seen Prince, Miss Summerson. You know what a house ours is. It's
  • of no use my trying to learn anything that it would be useful for
  • Prince's wife to know in OUR house. We live in such a state of muddle
  • that it's impossible, and I have only been more disheartened whenever
  • I have tried. So I get a little practice with--who do you think? Poor
  • Miss Flite! Early in the morning I help her to tidy her room and
  • clean her birds, and I make her cup of coffee for her (of course she
  • taught me), and I have learnt to make it so well that Prince says
  • it's the very best coffee he ever tasted, and would quite delight old
  • Mr. Turveydrop, who is very particular indeed about his coffee. I can
  • make little puddings too; and I know how to buy neck of mutton, and
  • tea, and sugar, and butter, and a good many housekeeping things. I am
  • not clever at my needle, yet," said Caddy, glancing at the repairs on
  • Peepy's frock, "but perhaps I shall improve, and since I have been
  • engaged to Prince and have been doing all this, I have felt
  • better-tempered, I hope, and more forgiving to Ma. It rather put me
  • out at first this morning to see you and Miss Clare looking so neat
  • and pretty and to feel ashamed of Peepy and myself too, but on the
  • whole I hope I am better-tempered than I was and more forgiving to
  • Ma."
  • The poor girl, trying so hard, said it from her heart, and touched
  • mine. "Caddy, my love," I replied, "I begin to have a great affection
  • for you, and I hope we shall become friends."
  • "Oh, do you?" cried Caddy. "How happy that would make me!"
  • "My dear Caddy," said I, "let us be friends from this time, and let
  • us often have a chat about these matters and try to find the right
  • way through them." Caddy was overjoyed. I said everything I could in
  • my old-fashioned way to comfort and encourage her, and I would not
  • have objected to old Mr. Turveydrop that day for any smaller
  • consideration than a settlement on his daughter-in-law.
  • By this time we were come to Mr. Krook's, whose private door stood
  • open. There was a bill, pasted on the door-post, announcing a room to
  • let on the second floor. It reminded Caddy to tell me as we proceeded
  • upstairs that there had been a sudden death there and an inquest and
  • that our little friend had been ill of the fright. The door and
  • window of the vacant room being open, we looked in. It was the room
  • with the dark door to which Miss Flite had secretly directed my
  • attention when I was last in the house. A sad and desolate place it
  • was, a gloomy, sorrowful place that gave me a strange sensation of
  • mournfulness and even dread. "You look pale," said Caddy when we came
  • out, "and cold!" I felt as if the room had chilled me.
  • We had walked slowly while we were talking, and my guardian and Ada
  • were here before us. We found them in Miss Flite's garret. They were
  • looking at the birds, while a medical gentleman who was so good as to
  • attend Miss Flite with much solicitude and compassion spoke with her
  • cheerfully by the fire.
  • "I have finished my professional visit," he said, coming forward.
  • "Miss Flite is much better and may appear in court (as her mind is
  • set upon it) to-morrow. She has been greatly missed there, I
  • understand."
  • Miss Flite received the compliment with complacency and dropped a
  • general curtsy to us.
  • "Honoured, indeed," said she, "by another visit from the wards in
  • Jarndyce! Ve-ry happy to receive Jarndyce of Bleak House beneath my
  • humble roof!" with a special curtsy. "Fitz-Jarndyce, my dear"--she
  • had bestowed that name on Caddy, it appeared, and always called her
  • by it--"a double welcome!"
  • "Has she been very ill?" asked Mr. Jarndyce of the gentleman whom we
  • had found in attendance on her. She answered for herself directly,
  • though he had put the question in a whisper.
  • "Oh, decidedly unwell! Oh, very unwell indeed," she said
  • confidentially. "Not pain, you know--trouble. Not bodily so much as
  • nervous, nervous! The truth is," in a subdued voice and trembling,
  • "we have had death here. There was poison in the house. I am very
  • susceptible to such horrid things. It frightened me. Only Mr.
  • Woodcourt knows how much. My physician, Mr. Woodcourt!" with
  • great stateliness. "The wards in Jarndyce--Jarndyce of Bleak
  • House--Fitz-Jarndyce!"
  • "Miss Flite," said Mr. Woodcourt in a grave kind of voice, as if he
  • were appealing to her while speaking to us, and laying his hand
  • gently on her arm, "Miss Flite describes her illness with her usual
  • accuracy. She was alarmed by an occurrence in the house which might
  • have alarmed a stronger person, and was made ill by the distress and
  • agitation. She brought me here in the first hurry of the discovery,
  • though too late for me to be of any use to the unfortunate man. I
  • have compensated myself for that disappointment by coming here since
  • and being of some small use to her."
  • "The kindest physician in the college," whispered Miss Flite to me.
  • "I expect a judgment. On the day of judgment. And shall then confer
  • estates."
  • "She will be as well in a day or two," said Mr. Woodcourt, looking at
  • her with an observant smile, "as she ever will be. In other words,
  • quite well of course. Have you heard of her good fortune?"
  • "Most extraordinary!" said Miss Flite, smiling brightly. "You never
  • heard of such a thing, my dear! Every Saturday, Conversation Kenge or
  • Guppy (clerk to Conversation K.) places in my hand a paper of
  • shillings. Shillings. I assure you! Always the same number in the
  • paper. Always one for every day in the week. Now you know, really! So
  • well-timed, is it not? Ye-es! From whence do these papers come, you
  • say? That is the great question. Naturally. Shall I tell you what I
  • think? I think," said Miss Flite, drawing herself back with a very
  • shrewd look and shaking her right forefinger in a most significant
  • manner, "that the Lord Chancellor, aware of the length of time during
  • which the Great Seal has been open (for it has been open a long
  • time!), forwards them. Until the judgment I expect is given. Now
  • that's very creditable, you know. To confess in that way that he IS a
  • little slow for human life. So delicate! Attending court the other
  • day--I attend it regularly, with my documents--I taxed him with it,
  • and he almost confessed. That is, I smiled at him from my bench, and
  • HE smiled at me from his bench. But it's great good fortune, is it
  • not? And Fitz-Jarndyce lays the money out for me to great advantage.
  • Oh, I assure you to the greatest advantage!"
  • I congratulated her (as she addressed herself to me) upon this
  • fortunate addition to her income and wished her a long continuance of
  • it. I did not speculate upon the source from which it came or wonder
  • whose humanity was so considerate. My guardian stood before me,
  • contemplating the birds, and I had no need to look beyond him.
  • "And what do you call these little fellows, ma'am?" said he in his
  • pleasant voice. "Have they any names?"
  • "I can answer for Miss Flite that they have," said I, "for she
  • promised to tell us what they were. Ada remembers?"
  • Ada remembered very well.
  • "Did I?" said Miss Flite. "Who's that at my door? What are you
  • listening at my door for, Krook?"
  • The old man of the house, pushing it open before him, appeared there
  • with his fur cap in his hand and his cat at his heels.
  • "I warn't listening, Miss Flite," he said, "I was going to give a rap
  • with my knuckles, only you're so quick!"
  • "Make your cat go down. Drive her away!" the old lady angrily
  • exclaimed.
  • "Bah, bah! There ain't no danger, gentlefolks," said Mr. Krook,
  • looking slowly and sharply from one to another until he had looked at
  • all of us; "she'd never offer at the birds when I was here unless I
  • told her to it."
  • "You will excuse my landlord," said the old lady with a dignified
  • air. "M, quite M! What do you want, Krook, when I have company?"
  • "Hi!" said the old man. "You know I am the Chancellor."
  • "Well?" returned Miss Flite. "What of that?"
  • "For the Chancellor," said the old man with a chuckle, "not to be
  • acquainted with a Jarndyce is queer, ain't it, Miss Flite? Mightn't I
  • take the liberty? Your servant, sir. I know Jarndyce and Jarndyce
  • a'most as well as you do, sir. I knowed old Squire Tom, sir. I never
  • to my knowledge see you afore though, not even in court. Yet, I go
  • there a mortal sight of times in the course of the year, taking one
  • day with another."
  • "I never go there," said Mr. Jarndyce (which he never did on any
  • consideration). "I would sooner go--somewhere else."
  • "Would you though?" returned Krook, grinning. "You're bearing hard
  • upon my noble and learned brother in your meaning, sir, though
  • perhaps it is but nat'ral in a Jarndyce. The burnt child, sir! What,
  • you're looking at my lodger's birds, Mr. Jarndyce?" The old man had
  • come by little and little into the room until he now touched my
  • guardian with his elbow and looked close up into his face with his
  • spectacled eyes. "It's one of her strange ways that she'll never tell
  • the names of these birds if she can help it, though she named 'em
  • all." This was in a whisper. "Shall I run 'em over, Flite?" he asked
  • aloud, winking at us and pointing at her as she turned away,
  • affecting to sweep the grate.
  • "If you like," she answered hurriedly.
  • The old man, looking up at the cages after another look at us, went
  • through the list.
  • "Hope, Joy, Youth, Peace, Rest, Life, Dust, Ashes, Waste, Want, Ruin,
  • Despair, Madness, Death, Cunning, Folly, Words, Wigs, Rags,
  • Sheepskin, Plunder, Precedent, Jargon, Gammon, and Spinach. That's
  • the whole collection," said the old man, "all cooped up together, by
  • my noble and learned brother."
  • "This is a bitter wind!" muttered my guardian.
  • "When my noble and learned brother gives his judgment, they're to be
  • let go free," said Krook, winking at us again. "And then," he added,
  • whispering and grinning, "if that ever was to happen--which it
  • won't--the birds that have never been caged would kill 'em."
  • "If ever the wind was in the east," said my guardian, pretending to
  • look out of the window for a weathercock, "I think it's there
  • to-day!"
  • We found it very difficult to get away from the house. It was not
  • Miss Flite who detained us; she was as reasonable a little creature
  • in consulting the convenience of others as there possibly could be.
  • It was Mr. Krook. He seemed unable to detach himself from Mr.
  • Jarndyce. If he had been linked to him, he could hardly have attended
  • him more closely. He proposed to show us his Court of Chancery and
  • all the strange medley it contained; during the whole of our
  • inspection (prolonged by himself) he kept close to Mr. Jarndyce and
  • sometimes detained him under one pretence or other until we had
  • passed on, as if he were tormented by an inclination to enter upon
  • some secret subject which he could not make up his mind to approach.
  • I cannot imagine a countenance and manner more singularly expressive
  • of caution and indecision, and a perpetual impulse to do something he
  • could not resolve to venture on, than Mr. Krook's was that day. His
  • watchfulness of my guardian was incessant. He rarely removed his eyes
  • from his face. If he went on beside him, he observed him with the
  • slyness of an old white fox. If he went before, he looked back. When
  • we stood still, he got opposite to him, and drawing his hand across
  • and across his open mouth with a curious expression of a sense of
  • power, and turning up his eyes, and lowering his grey eyebrows until
  • they appeared to be shut, seemed to scan every lineament of his face.
  • At last, having been (always attended by the cat) all over the house
  • and having seen the whole stock of miscellaneous lumber, which was
  • certainly curious, we came into the back part of the shop. Here on
  • the head of an empty barrel stood on end were an ink-bottle, some old
  • stumps of pens, and some dirty playbills; and against the wall were
  • pasted several large printed alphabets in several plain hands.
  • "What are you doing here?" asked my guardian.
  • "Trying to learn myself to read and write," said Krook.
  • "And how do you get on?"
  • "Slow. Bad," returned the old man impatiently. "It's hard at my time
  • of life."
  • "It would be easier to be taught by some one," said my guardian.
  • "Aye, but they might teach me wrong!" returned the old man with a
  • wonderfully suspicious flash of his eye. "I don't know what I may
  • have lost by not being learned afore. I wouldn't like to lose
  • anything by being learned wrong now."
  • "Wrong?" said my guardian with his good-humoured smile. "Who do you
  • suppose would teach you wrong?"
  • "I don't know, Mr. Jarndyce of Bleak House!" replied the old man,
  • turning up his spectacles on his forehead and rubbing his hands. "I
  • don't suppose as anybody would, but I'd rather trust my own self than
  • another!"
  • These answers and his manner were strange enough to cause my guardian
  • to inquire of Mr. Woodcourt, as we all walked across Lincoln's Inn
  • together, whether Mr. Krook were really, as his lodger represented
  • him, deranged. The young surgeon replied, no, he had seen no reason
  • to think so. He was exceedingly distrustful, as ignorance usually
  • was, and he was always more or less under the influence of raw gin,
  • of which he drank great quantities and of which he and his back-shop,
  • as we might have observed, smelt strongly; but he did not think him
  • mad as yet.
  • On our way home, I so conciliated Peepy's affections by buying him a
  • windmill and two flour-sacks that he would suffer nobody else to take
  • off his hat and gloves and would sit nowhere at dinner but at my
  • side. Caddy sat upon the other side of me, next to Ada, to whom we
  • imparted the whole history of the engagement as soon as we got back.
  • We made much of Caddy, and Peepy too; and Caddy brightened
  • exceedingly; and my guardian was as merry as we were; and we were all
  • very happy indeed until Caddy went home at night in a hackney-coach,
  • with Peepy fast asleep, but holding tight to the windmill.
  • I have forgotten to mention--at least I have not mentioned--that Mr.
  • Woodcourt was the same dark young surgeon whom we had met at Mr.
  • Badger's. Or that Mr. Jarndyce invited him to dinner that day. Or
  • that he came. Or that when they were all gone and I said to Ada,
  • "Now, my darling, let us have a little talk about Richard!" Ada
  • laughed and said--
  • But I don't think it matters what my darling said. She was always
  • merry.
  • CHAPTER XV
  • Bell Yard
  • While we were in London Mr. Jarndyce was constantly beset by the
  • crowd of excitable ladies and gentlemen whose proceedings had so much
  • astonished us. Mr. Quale, who presented himself soon after our
  • arrival, was in all such excitements. He seemed to project those two
  • shining knobs of temples of his into everything that went on and to
  • brush his hair farther and farther back, until the very roots were
  • almost ready to fly out of his head in inappeasable philanthropy. All
  • objects were alike to him, but he was always particularly ready for
  • anything in the way of a testimonial to any one. His great power
  • seemed to be his power of indiscriminate admiration. He would sit for
  • any length of time, with the utmost enjoyment, bathing his temples in
  • the light of any order of luminary. Having first seen him perfectly
  • swallowed up in admiration of Mrs. Jellyby, I had supposed her to be
  • the absorbing object of his devotion. I soon discovered my mistake
  • and found him to be train-bearer and organ-blower to a whole
  • procession of people.
  • Mrs. Pardiggle came one day for a subscription to something, and with
  • her, Mr. Quale. Whatever Mrs. Pardiggle said, Mr. Quale repeated to
  • us; and just as he had drawn Mrs. Jellyby out, he drew Mrs. Pardiggle
  • out. Mrs. Pardiggle wrote a letter of introduction to my guardian in
  • behalf of her eloquent friend Mr. Gusher. With Mr. Gusher appeared
  • Mr. Quale again. Mr. Gusher, being a flabby gentleman with a moist
  • surface and eyes so much too small for his moon of a face that they
  • seemed to have been originally made for somebody else, was not at
  • first sight prepossessing; yet he was scarcely seated before Mr.
  • Quale asked Ada and me, not inaudibly, whether he was not a great
  • creature--which he certainly was, flabbily speaking, though Mr. Quale
  • meant in intellectual beauty--and whether we were not struck by his
  • massive configuration of brow. In short, we heard of a great many
  • missions of various sorts among this set of people, but nothing
  • respecting them was half so clear to us as that it was Mr. Quale's
  • mission to be in ecstasies with everybody else's mission and that it
  • was the most popular mission of all.
  • Mr. Jarndyce had fallen into this company in the tenderness of his
  • heart and his earnest desire to do all the good in his power; but
  • that he felt it to be too often an unsatisfactory company, where
  • benevolence took spasmodic forms, where charity was assumed as a
  • regular uniform by loud professors and speculators in cheap
  • notoriety, vehement in profession, restless and vain in action,
  • servile in the last degree of meanness to the great, adulatory of one
  • another, and intolerable to those who were anxious quietly to help
  • the weak from failing rather than with a great deal of bluster and
  • self-laudation to raise them up a little way when they were down, he
  • plainly told us. When a testimonial was originated to Mr. Quale by
  • Mr. Gusher (who had already got one, originated by Mr. Quale), and
  • when Mr. Gusher spoke for an hour and a half on the subject to a
  • meeting, including two charity schools of small boys and girls, who
  • were specially reminded of the widow's mite, and requested to come
  • forward with halfpence and be acceptable sacrifices, I think the wind
  • was in the east for three whole weeks.
  • I mention this because I am coming to Mr. Skimpole again. It seemed
  • to me that his off-hand professions of childishness and carelessness
  • were a great relief to my guardian, by contrast with such things, and
  • were the more readily believed in since to find one perfectly
  • undesigning and candid man among many opposites could not fail to
  • give him pleasure. I should be sorry to imply that Mr. Skimpole
  • divined this and was politic; I really never understood him well
  • enough to know. What he was to my guardian, he certainly was to the
  • rest of the world.
  • He had not been very well; and thus, though he lived in London, we
  • had seen nothing of him until now. He appeared one morning in his
  • usual agreeable way and as full of pleasant spirits as ever.
  • Well, he said, here he was! He had been bilious, but rich men were
  • often bilious, and therefore he had been persuading himself that he
  • was a man of property. So he was, in a certain point of view--in his
  • expansive intentions. He had been enriching his medical attendant in
  • the most lavish manner. He had always doubled, and sometimes
  • quadrupled, his fees. He had said to the doctor, "Now, my dear
  • doctor, it is quite a delusion on your part to suppose that you
  • attend me for nothing. I am overwhelming you with money--in my
  • expansive intentions--if you only knew it!" And really (he said) he
  • meant it to that degree that he thought it much the same as doing it.
  • If he had had those bits of metal or thin paper to which mankind
  • attached so much importance to put in the doctor's hand, he would
  • have put them in the doctor's hand. Not having them, he substituted
  • the will for the deed. Very well! If he really meant it--if his will
  • were genuine and real, which it was--it appeared to him that it was
  • the same as coin, and cancelled the obligation.
  • "It may be, partly, because I know nothing of the value of money,"
  • said Mr. Skimpole, "but I often feel this. It seems so reasonable! My
  • butcher says to me he wants that little bill. It's a part of the
  • pleasant unconscious poetry of the man's nature that he always calls
  • it a 'little' bill--to make the payment appear easy to both of us. I
  • reply to the butcher, 'My good friend, if you knew it, you are paid.
  • You haven't had the trouble of coming to ask for the little bill. You
  • are paid. I mean it.'"
  • "But, suppose," said my guardian, laughing, "he had meant the meat in
  • the bill, instead of providing it?"
  • "My dear Jarndyce," he returned, "you surprise me. You take the
  • butcher's position. A butcher I once dealt with occupied that very
  • ground. Says he, 'Sir, why did you eat spring lamb at eighteen pence
  • a pound?' 'Why did I eat spring lamb at eighteen pence a pound, my
  • honest friend?' said I, naturally amazed by the question. 'I like
  • spring lamb!' This was so far convincing. 'Well, sir,' says he, 'I
  • wish I had meant the lamb as you mean the money!' 'My good fellow,'
  • said I, 'pray let us reason like intellectual beings. How could that
  • be? It was impossible. You HAD got the lamb, and I have NOT got the
  • money. You couldn't really mean the lamb without sending it in,
  • whereas I can, and do, really mean the money without paying it!' He
  • had not a word. There was an end of the subject."
  • "Did he take no legal proceedings?" inquired my guardian.
  • "Yes, he took legal proceedings," said Mr. Skimpole. "But in that he
  • was influenced by passion, not by reason. Passion reminds me of
  • Boythorn. He writes me that you and the ladies have promised him a
  • short visit at his bachelor-house in Lincolnshire."
  • "He is a great favourite with my girls," said Mr. Jarndyce, "and I
  • have promised for them."
  • "Nature forgot to shade him off, I think," observed Mr. Skimpole to
  • Ada and me. "A little too boisterous--like the sea. A little too
  • vehement--like a bull who has made up his mind to consider every
  • colour scarlet. But I grant a sledge-hammering sort of merit in him!"
  • I should have been surprised if those two could have thought very
  • highly of one another, Mr. Boythorn attaching so much importance to
  • many things and Mr. Skimpole caring so little for anything. Besides
  • which, I had noticed Mr. Boythorn more than once on the point of
  • breaking out into some strong opinion when Mr. Skimpole was referred
  • to. Of course I merely joined Ada in saying that we had been greatly
  • pleased with him.
  • "He has invited me," said Mr. Skimpole; "and if a child may trust
  • himself in such hands--which the present child is encouraged to do,
  • with the united tenderness of two angels to guard him--I shall go. He
  • proposes to frank me down and back again. I suppose it will cost
  • money? Shillings perhaps? Or pounds? Or something of that sort? By
  • the by, Coavinses. You remember our friend Coavinses, Miss
  • Summerson?"
  • He asked me as the subject arose in his mind, in his graceful,
  • light-hearted manner and without the least embarrassment.
  • "Oh, yes!" said I.
  • "Coavinses has been arrested by the Great Bailiff," said Mr.
  • Skimpole. "He will never do violence to the sunshine any more."
  • It quite shocked me to hear it, for I had already recalled with
  • anything but a serious association the image of the man sitting on
  • the sofa that night wiping his head.
  • "His successor informed me of it yesterday," said Mr. Skimpole. "His
  • successor is in my house now--in possession, I think he calls it. He
  • came yesterday, on my blue-eyed daughter's birthday. I put it to him,
  • 'This is unreasonable and inconvenient. If you had a blue-eyed
  • daughter you wouldn't like ME to come, uninvited, on HER birthday?'
  • But he stayed."
  • Mr. Skimpole laughed at the pleasant absurdity and lightly touched
  • the piano by which he was seated.
  • "And he told me," he said, playing little chords where I shall put
  • full stops, "The Coavinses had left. Three children. No mother. And
  • that Coavinses' profession. Being unpopular. The rising Coavinses.
  • Were at a considerable disadvantage."
  • Mr. Jarndyce got up, rubbing his head, and began to walk about. Mr.
  • Skimpole played the melody of one of Ada's favourite songs. Ada and I
  • both looked at Mr. Jarndyce, thinking that we knew what was passing
  • in his mind.
  • After walking and stopping, and several times leaving off rubbing his
  • head, and beginning again, my guardian put his hand upon the keys and
  • stopped Mr. Skimpole's playing. "I don't like this, Skimpole," he
  • said thoughtfully.
  • Mr. Skimpole, who had quite forgotten the subject, looked up
  • surprised.
  • "The man was necessary," pursued my guardian, walking backward and
  • forward in the very short space between the piano and the end of the
  • room and rubbing his hair up from the back of his head as if a high
  • east wind had blown it into that form. "If we make such men necessary
  • by our faults and follies, or by our want of worldly knowledge, or by
  • our misfortunes, we must not revenge ourselves upon them. There was
  • no harm in his trade. He maintained his children. One would like to
  • know more about this."
  • "Oh! Coavinses?" cried Mr. Skimpole, at length perceiving what he
  • meant. "Nothing easier. A walk to Coavinses' headquarters, and you
  • can know what you will."
  • Mr. Jarndyce nodded to us, who were only waiting for the signal.
  • "Come! We will walk that way, my dears. Why not that way as soon as
  • another!" We were quickly ready and went out. Mr. Skimpole went with
  • us and quite enjoyed the expedition. It was so new and so refreshing,
  • he said, for him to want Coavinses instead of Coavinses wanting him!
  • He took us, first, to Cursitor Street, Chancery Lane, where there was
  • a house with barred windows, which he called Coavinses' Castle. On
  • our going into the entry and ringing a bell, a very hideous boy came
  • out of a sort of office and looked at us over a spiked wicket.
  • "Who did you want?" said the boy, fitting two of the spikes into his
  • chin.
  • "There was a follower, or an officer, or something, here," said Mr.
  • Jarndyce, "who is dead."
  • "Yes?" said the boy. "Well?"
  • "I want to know his name, if you please?"
  • "Name of Neckett," said the boy.
  • "And his address?"
  • "Bell Yard," said the boy. "Chandler's shop, left hand side, name of
  • Blinder."
  • "Was he--I don't know how to shape the question--" murmured my
  • guardian, "industrious?"
  • "Was Neckett?" said the boy. "Yes, wery much so. He was never tired
  • of watching. He'd set upon a post at a street corner eight or ten
  • hours at a stretch if he undertook to do it."
  • "He might have done worse," I heard my guardian soliloquize. "He
  • might have undertaken to do it and not done it. Thank you. That's all
  • I want."
  • We left the boy, with his head on one side and his arms on the gate,
  • fondling and sucking the spikes, and went back to Lincoln's Inn,
  • where Mr. Skimpole, who had not cared to remain nearer Coavinses,
  • awaited us. Then we all went to Bell Yard, a narrow alley at a very
  • short distance. We soon found the chandler's shop. In it was a
  • good-natured-looking old woman with a dropsy, or an asthma, or
  • perhaps both.
  • "Neckett's children?" said she in reply to my inquiry. "Yes, Surely,
  • miss. Three pair, if you please. Door right opposite the stairs." And
  • she handed me the key across the counter.
  • I glanced at the key and glanced at her, but she took it for granted
  • that I knew what to do with it. As it could only be intended for the
  • children's door, I came out without asking any more questions and led
  • the way up the dark stairs. We went as quietly as we could, but four
  • of us made some noise on the aged boards, and when we came to the
  • second story we found we had disturbed a man who was standing there
  • looking out of his room.
  • "Is it Gridley that's wanted?" he said, fixing his eyes on me with an
  • angry stare.
  • "No, sir," said I; "I am going higher up."
  • He looked at Ada, and at Mr. Jarndyce, and at Mr. Skimpole, fixing
  • the same angry stare on each in succession as they passed and
  • followed me. Mr. Jarndyce gave him good day. "Good day!" he said
  • abruptly and fiercely. He was a tall, sallow man with a careworn head
  • on which but little hair remained, a deeply lined face, and prominent
  • eyes. He had a combative look and a chafing, irritable manner which,
  • associated with his figure--still large and powerful, though
  • evidently in its decline--rather alarmed me. He had a pen in his
  • hand, and in the glimpse I caught of his room in passing, I saw that
  • it was covered with a litter of papers.
  • Leaving him standing there, we went up to the top room. I tapped at
  • the door, and a little shrill voice inside said, "We are locked in.
  • Mrs. Blinder's got the key!"
  • I applied the key on hearing this and opened the door. In a poor room
  • with a sloping ceiling and containing very little furniture was a
  • mite of a boy, some five or six years old, nursing and hushing a
  • heavy child of eighteen months. There was no fire, though the weather
  • was cold; both children were wrapped in some poor shawls and tippets
  • as a substitute. Their clothing was not so warm, however, but that
  • their noses looked red and pinched and their small figures shrunken
  • as the boy walked up and down nursing and hushing the child with its
  • head on his shoulder.
  • "Who has locked you up here alone?" we naturally asked.
  • "Charley," said the boy, standing still to gaze at us.
  • "Is Charley your brother?"
  • "No. She's my sister, Charlotte. Father called her Charley."
  • "Are there any more of you besides Charley?"
  • "Me," said the boy, "and Emma," patting the limp bonnet of the child
  • he was nursing. "And Charley."
  • "Where is Charley now?"
  • "Out a-washing," said the boy, beginning to walk up and down again
  • and taking the nankeen bonnet much too near the bedstead by trying to
  • gaze at us at the same time.
  • We were looking at one another and at these two children when there
  • came into the room a very little girl, childish in figure but shrewd
  • and older-looking in the face--pretty-faced too--wearing a womanly
  • sort of bonnet much too large for her and drying her bare arms on a
  • womanly sort of apron. Her fingers were white and wrinkled with
  • washing, and the soap-suds were yet smoking which she wiped off her
  • arms. But for this, she might have been a child playing at washing
  • and imitating a poor working-woman with a quick observation of the
  • truth.
  • She had come running from some place in the neighbourhood and had
  • made all the haste she could. Consequently, though she was very
  • light, she was out of breath and could not speak at first, as she
  • stood panting, and wiping her arms, and looking quietly at us.
  • "Oh, here's Charley!" said the boy.
  • The child he was nursing stretched forth its arms and cried out to be
  • taken by Charley. The little girl took it, in a womanly sort of
  • manner belonging to the apron and the bonnet, and stood looking at us
  • over the burden that clung to her most affectionately.
  • "Is it possible," whispered my guardian as we put a chair for the
  • little creature and got her to sit down with her load, the boy
  • keeping close to her, holding to her apron, "that this child works
  • for the rest? Look at this! For God's sake, look at this!"
  • It was a thing to look at. The three children close together, and two
  • of them relying solely on the third, and the third so young and yet
  • with an air of age and steadiness that sat so strangely on the
  • childish figure.
  • "Charley, Charley!" said my guardian. "How old are you?"
  • "Over thirteen, sir," replied the child.
  • "Oh! What a great age," said my guardian. "What a great age,
  • Charley!"
  • I cannot describe the tenderness with which he spoke to her, half
  • playfully yet all the more compassionately and mournfully.
  • "And do you live alone here with these babies, Charley?" said my
  • guardian.
  • "Yes, sir," returned the child, looking up into his face with perfect
  • confidence, "since father died."
  • "And how do you live, Charley? Oh! Charley," said my guardian,
  • turning his face away for a moment, "how do you live?"
  • "Since father died, sir, I've gone out to work. I'm out washing
  • to-day."
  • "God help you, Charley!" said my guardian. "You're not tall enough to
  • reach the tub!"
  • "In pattens I am, sir," she said quickly. "I've got a high pair as
  • belonged to mother."
  • "And when did mother die? Poor mother!"
  • "Mother died just after Emma was born," said the child, glancing at
  • the face upon her bosom. "Then father said I was to be as good a
  • mother to her as I could. And so I tried. And so I worked at home and
  • did cleaning and nursing and washing for a long time before I began
  • to go out. And that's how I know how; don't you see, sir?"
  • "And do you often go out?"
  • "As often as I can," said Charley, opening her eyes and smiling,
  • "because of earning sixpences and shillings!"
  • "And do you always lock the babies up when you go out?"
  • "To keep 'em safe, sir, don't you see?" said Charley. "Mrs. Blinder
  • comes up now and then, and Mr. Gridley comes up sometimes, and
  • perhaps I can run in sometimes, and they can play you know, and Tom
  • an't afraid of being locked up, are you, Tom?"
  • "No-o!" said Tom stoutly.
  • "When it comes on dark, the lamps are lighted down in the court, and
  • they show up here quite bright--almost quite bright. Don't they,
  • Tom?"
  • "Yes, Charley," said Tom, "almost quite bright."
  • "Then he's as good as gold," said the little creature--Oh, in such a
  • motherly, womanly way! "And when Emma's tired, he puts her to bed.
  • And when he's tired he goes to bed himself. And when I come home and
  • light the candle and has a bit of supper, he sits up again and has it
  • with me. Don't you, Tom?"
  • "Oh, yes, Charley!" said Tom. "That I do!" And either in this glimpse
  • of the great pleasure of his life or in gratitude and love for
  • Charley, who was all in all to him, he laid his face among the scanty
  • folds of her frock and passed from laughing into crying.
  • It was the first time since our entry that a tear had been shed among
  • these children. The little orphan girl had spoken of their father and
  • their mother as if all that sorrow were subdued by the necessity of
  • taking courage, and by her childish importance in being able to work,
  • and by her bustling busy way. But now, when Tom cried, although she
  • sat quite tranquil, looking quietly at us, and did not by any
  • movement disturb a hair of the head of either of her little charges,
  • I saw two silent tears fall down her face.
  • I stood at the window with Ada, pretending to look at the housetops,
  • and the blackened stack of chimneys, and the poor plants, and the
  • birds in little cages belonging to the neighbours, when I found that
  • Mrs. Blinder, from the shop below, had come in (perhaps it had taken
  • her all this time to get upstairs) and was talking to my guardian.
  • "It's not much to forgive 'em the rent, sir," she said; "who could
  • take it from them!"
  • "Well, well!" said my guardian to us two. "It is enough that the time
  • will come when this good woman will find that it WAS much, and that
  • forasmuch as she did it unto the least of these--This child," he
  • added after a few moments, "could she possibly continue this?"
  • "Really, sir, I think she might," said Mrs. Blinder, getting her
  • heavy breath by painful degrees. "She's as handy as it's possible to
  • be. Bless you, sir, the way she tended them two children after the
  • mother died was the talk of the yard! And it was a wonder to see her
  • with him after he was took ill, it really was! 'Mrs. Blinder,' he
  • said to me the very last he spoke--he was lying there--'Mrs.
  • Blinder, whatever my calling may have been, I see a angel sitting in
  • this room last night along with my child, and I trust her to Our
  • Father!'"
  • "He had no other calling?" said my guardian.
  • "No, sir," returned Mrs. Blinder, "he was nothing but a follerers.
  • When he first came to lodge here, I didn't know what he was, and I
  • confess that when I found out I gave him notice. It wasn't liked in
  • the yard. It wasn't approved by the other lodgers. It is NOT a
  • genteel calling," said Mrs. Blinder, "and most people do object to
  • it. Mr. Gridley objected to it very strong, and he is a good lodger,
  • though his temper has been hard tried."
  • "So you gave him notice?" said my guardian.
  • "So I gave him notice," said Mrs. Blinder. "But really when the time
  • came, and I knew no other ill of him, I was in doubts. He was
  • punctual and diligent; he did what he had to do, sir," said Mrs.
  • Blinder, unconsciously fixing Mr. Skimpole with her eye, "and it's
  • something in this world even to do that."
  • "So you kept him after all?"
  • "Why, I said that if he could arrange with Mr. Gridley, I could
  • arrange it with the other lodgers and should not so much mind its
  • being liked or disliked in the yard. Mr. Gridley gave his consent
  • gruff--but gave it. He was always gruff with him, but he has been
  • kind to the children since. A person is never known till a person is
  • proved."
  • "Have many people been kind to the children?" asked Mr. Jarndyce.
  • "Upon the whole, not so bad, sir," said Mrs. Blinder; "but certainly
  • not so many as would have been if their father's calling had been
  • different. Mr. Coavins gave a guinea, and the follerers made up a
  • little purse. Some neighbours in the yard that had always joked and
  • tapped their shoulders when he went by came forward with a little
  • subscription, and--in general--not so bad. Similarly with Charlotte.
  • Some people won't employ her because she was a follerer's child; some
  • people that do employ her cast it at her; some make a merit of having
  • her to work for them, with that and all her draw-backs upon her, and
  • perhaps pay her less and put upon her more. But she's patienter than
  • others would be, and is clever too, and always willing, up to the
  • full mark of her strength and over. So I should say, in general, not
  • so bad, sir, but might be better."
  • Mrs. Blinder sat down to give herself a more favourable opportunity
  • of recovering her breath, exhausted anew by so much talking before it
  • was fully restored. Mr. Jarndyce was turning to speak to us when his
  • attention was attracted by the abrupt entrance into the room of the
  • Mr. Gridley who had been mentioned and whom we had seen on our way
  • up.
  • "I don't know what you may be doing here, ladies and gentlemen," he
  • said, as if he resented our presence, "but you'll excuse my coming
  • in. I don't come in to stare about me. Well, Charley! Well, Tom!
  • Well, little one! How is it with us all to-day?"
  • He bent over the group in a caressing way and clearly was regarded as
  • a friend by the children, though his face retained its stern
  • character and his manner to us was as rude as it could be. My
  • guardian noticed it and respected it.
  • "No one, surely, would come here to stare about him," he said mildly.
  • "May be so, sir, may be so," returned the other, taking Tom upon his
  • knee and waving him off impatiently. "I don't want to argue with
  • ladies and gentlemen. I have had enough of arguing to last one man
  • his life."
  • "You have sufficient reason, I dare say," said Mr. Jarndyce, "for
  • being chafed and irritated--"
  • "There again!" exclaimed the man, becoming violently angry. "I am of
  • a quarrelsome temper. I am irascible. I am not polite!"
  • "Not very, I think."
  • "Sir," said Gridley, putting down the child and going up to him as if
  • he meant to strike him, "do you know anything of Courts of Equity?"
  • "Perhaps I do, to my sorrow."
  • "To your sorrow?" said the man, pausing in his wrath, "if so, I beg
  • your pardon. I am not polite, I know. I beg your pardon! Sir," with
  • renewed violence, "I have been dragged for five and twenty years over
  • burning iron, and I have lost the habit of treading upon velvet. Go
  • into the Court of Chancery yonder and ask what is one of the standing
  • jokes that brighten up their business sometimes, and they will tell
  • you that the best joke they have is the man from Shropshire. I," he
  • said, beating one hand on the other passionately, "am the man from
  • Shropshire."
  • "I believe I and my family have also had the honour of furnishing
  • some entertainment in the same grave place," said my guardian
  • composedly. "You may have heard my name--Jarndyce."
  • "Mr. Jarndyce," said Gridley with a rough sort of salutation, "you
  • bear your wrongs more quietly than I can bear mine. More than that, I
  • tell you--and I tell this gentleman, and these young ladies, if they
  • are friends of yours--that if I took my wrongs in any other way, I
  • should be driven mad! It is only by resenting them, and by revenging
  • them in my mind, and by angrily demanding the justice I never get,
  • that I am able to keep my wits together. It is only that!" he said,
  • speaking in a homely, rustic way and with great vehemence. "You may
  • tell me that I over-excite myself. I answer that it's in my nature to
  • do it, under wrong, and I must do it. There's nothing between doing
  • it, and sinking into the smiling state of the poor little mad woman
  • that haunts the court. If I was once to sit down under it, I should
  • become imbecile."
  • The passion and heat in which he was, and the manner in which his
  • face worked, and the violent gestures with which he accompanied what
  • he said, were most painful to see.
  • "Mr. Jarndyce," he said, "consider my case. As true as there is a
  • heaven above us, this is my case. I am one of two brothers. My father
  • (a farmer) made a will and left his farm and stock and so forth to my
  • mother for her life. After my mother's death, all was to come to me
  • except a legacy of three hundred pounds that I was then to pay my
  • brother. My mother died. My brother some time afterwards claimed his
  • legacy. I and some of my relations said that he had had a part of it
  • already in board and lodging and some other things. Now mind! That
  • was the question, and nothing else. No one disputed the will; no one
  • disputed anything but whether part of that three hundred pounds had
  • been already paid or not. To settle that question, my brother filing
  • a bill, I was obliged to go into this accursed Chancery; I was forced
  • there because the law forced me and would let me go nowhere else.
  • Seventeen people were made defendants to that simple suit! It first
  • came on after two years. It was then stopped for another two years
  • while the master (may his head rot off!) inquired whether I was my
  • father's son, about which there was no dispute at all with any mortal
  • creature. He then found out that there were not defendants
  • enough--remember, there were only seventeen as yet!--but that we must
  • have another who had been left out and must begin all over again. The
  • costs at that time--before the thing was begun!--were three times the
  • legacy. My brother would have given up the legacy, and joyful, to
  • escape more costs. My whole estate, left to me in that will of my
  • father's, has gone in costs. The suit, still undecided, has fallen
  • into rack, and ruin, and despair, with everything else--and here I
  • stand, this day! Now, Mr. Jarndyce, in your suit there are thousands
  • and thousands involved, where in mine there are hundreds. Is mine
  • less hard to bear or is it harder to bear, when my whole living was
  • in it and has been thus shamefully sucked away?"
  • Mr. Jarndyce said that he condoled with him with all his heart and
  • that he set up no monopoly himself in being unjustly treated by this
  • monstrous system.
  • "There again!" said Mr. Gridley with no diminution of his rage. "The
  • system! I am told on all hands, it's the system. I mustn't look to
  • individuals. It's the system. I mustn't go into court and say, 'My
  • Lord, I beg to know this from you--is this right or wrong? Have you
  • the face to tell me I have received justice and therefore am
  • dismissed?' My Lord knows nothing of it. He sits there to administer
  • the system. I mustn't go to Mr. Tulkinghorn, the solicitor in
  • Lincoln's Inn Fields, and say to him when he makes me furious by
  • being so cool and satisfied--as they all do, for I know they gain by
  • it while I lose, don't I?--I mustn't say to him, 'I will have
  • something out of some one for my ruin, by fair means or foul!' HE is
  • not responsible. It's the system. But, if I do no violence to any of
  • them, here--I may! I don't know what may happen if I am carried
  • beyond myself at last! I will accuse the individual workers of that
  • system against me, face to face, before the great eternal bar!"
  • His passion was fearful. I could not have believed in such rage
  • without seeing it.
  • "I have done!" he said, sitting down and wiping his face. "Mr.
  • Jarndyce, I have done! I am violent, I know. I ought to know it. I
  • have been in prison for contempt of court. I have been in prison for
  • threatening the solicitor. I have been in this trouble, and that
  • trouble, and shall be again. I am the man from Shropshire, and I
  • sometimes go beyond amusing them, though they have found it amusing,
  • too, to see me committed into custody and brought up in custody and
  • all that. It would be better for me, they tell me, if I restrained
  • myself. I tell them that if I did restrain myself I should become
  • imbecile. I was a good-enough-tempered man once, I believe. People in
  • my part of the country say they remember me so, but now I must have
  • this vent under my sense of injury or nothing could hold my wits
  • together. It would be far better for you, Mr. Gridley,' the Lord
  • Chancellor told me last week, 'not to waste your time here, and to
  • stay, usefully employed, down in Shropshire.' 'My Lord, my Lord, I
  • know it would,' said I to him, 'and it would have been far better for
  • me never to have heard the name of your high office, but unhappily
  • for me, I can't undo the past, and the past drives me here!'
  • Besides," he added, breaking fiercely out, "I'll shame them. To the
  • last, I'll show myself in that court to its shame. If I knew when I
  • was going to die, and could be carried there, and had a voice to
  • speak with, I would die there, saying, 'You have brought me here and
  • sent me from here many and many a time. Now send me out feet
  • foremost!'"
  • His countenance had, perhaps for years, become so set in its
  • contentious expression that it did not soften, even now when he was
  • quiet.
  • "I came to take these babies down to my room for an hour," he said,
  • going to them again, "and let them play about. I didn't mean to say
  • all this, but it don't much signify. You're not afraid of me, Tom,
  • are you?"
  • "No!" said Tom. "You ain't angry with ME."
  • "You are right, my child. You're going back, Charley? Aye? Come then,
  • little one!" He took the youngest child on his arm, where she was
  • willing enough to be carried. "I shouldn't wonder if we found a
  • ginger-bread soldier downstairs. Let's go and look for him!"
  • He made his former rough salutation, which was not deficient in a
  • certain respect, to Mr. Jarndyce, and bowing slightly to us, went
  • downstairs to his room.
  • Upon that, Mr. Skimpole began to talk, for the first time since our
  • arrival, in his usual gay strain. He said, Well, it was really very
  • pleasant to see how things lazily adapted themselves to purposes.
  • Here was this Mr. Gridley, a man of a robust will and surprising
  • energy--intellectually speaking, a sort of inharmonious
  • blacksmith--and he could easily imagine that there Gridley was, years
  • ago, wandering about in life for something to expend his superfluous
  • combativeness upon--a sort of Young Love among the thorns--when the
  • Court of Chancery came in his way and accommodated him with the exact
  • thing he wanted. There they were, matched, ever afterwards! Otherwise
  • he might have been a great general, blowing up all sorts of towns, or
  • he might have been a great politician, dealing in all sorts of
  • parliamentary rhetoric; but as it was, he and the Court of Chancery
  • had fallen upon each other in the pleasantest way, and nobody was
  • much the worse, and Gridley was, so to speak, from that hour provided
  • for. Then look at Coavinses! How delightfully poor Coavinses (father
  • of these charming children) illustrated the same principle! He, Mr.
  • Skimpole, himself, had sometimes repined at the existence of
  • Coavinses. He had found Coavinses in his way. He could had dispensed
  • with Coavinses. There had been times when, if he had been a sultan,
  • and his grand vizier had said one morning, "What does the Commander
  • of the Faithful require at the hands of his slave?" he might have
  • even gone so far as to reply, "The head of Coavinses!" But what
  • turned out to be the case? That, all that time, he had been giving
  • employment to a most deserving man, that he had been a benefactor to
  • Coavinses, that he had actually been enabling Coavinses to bring up
  • these charming children in this agreeable way, developing these
  • social virtues! Insomuch that his heart had just now swelled and the
  • tears had come into his eyes when he had looked round the room and
  • thought, "I was the great patron of Coavinses, and his little
  • comforts were MY work!"
  • There was something so captivating in his light way of touching these
  • fantastic strings, and he was such a mirthful child by the side of
  • the graver childhood we had seen, that he made my guardian smile even
  • as he turned towards us from a little private talk with Mrs. Blinder.
  • We kissed Charley, and took her downstairs with us, and stopped
  • outside the house to see her run away to her work. I don't know where
  • she was going, but we saw her run, such a little, little creature in
  • her womanly bonnet and apron, through a covered way at the bottom of
  • the court and melt into the city's strife and sound like a dewdrop in
  • an ocean.
  • CHAPTER XVI
  • Tom-all-Alone's
  • My Lady Dedlock is restless, very restless. The astonished
  • fashionable intelligence hardly knows where to have her. To-day she
  • is at Chesney Wold; yesterday she was at her house in town; to-morrow
  • she may be abroad, for anything the fashionable intelligence can with
  • confidence predict. Even Sir Leicester's gallantry has some trouble
  • to keep pace with her. It would have more but that his other faithful
  • ally, for better and for worse--the gout--darts into the old oak
  • bed-chamber at Chesney Wold and grips him by both legs.
  • Sir Leicester receives the gout as a troublesome demon, but still a
  • demon of the patrician order. All the Dedlocks, in the direct male
  • line, through a course of time during and beyond which the memory of
  • man goeth not to the contrary, have had the gout. It can be proved,
  • sir. Other men's fathers may have died of the rheumatism or may have
  • taken base contagion from the tainted blood of the sick vulgar, but
  • the Dedlock family have communicated something exclusive even to the
  • levelling process of dying by dying of their own family gout. It has
  • come down through the illustrious line like the plate, or the
  • pictures, or the place in Lincolnshire. It is among their dignities.
  • Sir Leicester is perhaps not wholly without an impression, though he
  • has never resolved it into words, that the angel of death in the
  • discharge of his necessary duties may observe to the shades of the
  • aristocracy, "My lords and gentlemen, I have the honour to present to
  • you another Dedlock certified to have arrived per the family gout."
  • Hence Sir Leicester yields up his family legs to the family disorder
  • as if he held his name and fortune on that feudal tenure. He feels
  • that for a Dedlock to be laid upon his back and spasmodically
  • twitched and stabbed in his extremities is a liberty taken somewhere,
  • but he thinks, "We have all yielded to this; it belongs to us; it has
  • for some hundreds of years been understood that we are not to make
  • the vaults in the park interesting on more ignoble terms; and I
  • submit myself to the compromise."
  • And a goodly show he makes, lying in a flush of crimson and gold in
  • the midst of the great drawing-room before his favourite picture of
  • my Lady, with broad strips of sunlight shining in, down the long
  • perspective, through the long line of windows, and alternating with
  • soft reliefs of shadow. Outside, the stately oaks, rooted for ages in
  • the green ground which has never known ploughshare, but was still a
  • chase when kings rode to battle with sword and shield and rode
  • a-hunting with bow and arrow, bear witness to his greatness. Inside,
  • his forefathers, looking on him from the walls, say, "Each of us was
  • a passing reality here and left this coloured shadow of himself and
  • melted into remembrance as dreamy as the distant voices of the rooks
  • now lulling you to rest," and hear their testimony to his greatness
  • too. And he is very great this day. And woe to Boythorn or other
  • daring wight who shall presumptuously contest an inch with him!
  • My Lady is at present represented, near Sir Leicester, by her
  • portrait. She has flitted away to town, with no intention of
  • remaining there, and will soon flit hither again, to the confusion of
  • the fashionable intelligence. The house in town is not prepared for
  • her reception. It is muffled and dreary. Only one Mercury in powder
  • gapes disconsolate at the hall-window; and he mentioned last night to
  • another Mercury of his acquaintance, also accustomed to good society,
  • that if that sort of thing was to last--which it couldn't, for a man
  • of his spirits couldn't bear it, and a man of his figure couldn't be
  • expected to bear it--there would be no resource for him, upon his
  • honour, but to cut his throat!
  • What connexion can there be between the place in Lincolnshire, the
  • house in town, the Mercury in powder, and the whereabout of Jo the
  • outlaw with the broom, who had that distant ray of light upon him
  • when he swept the churchyard-step? What connexion can there have been
  • between many people in the innumerable histories of this world who
  • from opposite sides of great gulfs have, nevertheless, been very
  • curiously brought together!
  • Jo sweeps his crossing all day long, unconscious of the link, if any
  • link there be. He sums up his mental condition when asked a question
  • by replying that he "don't know nothink." He knows that it's hard to
  • keep the mud off the crossing in dirty weather, and harder still to
  • live by doing it. Nobody taught him even that much; he found it out.
  • Jo lives--that is to say, Jo has not yet died--in a ruinous place
  • known to the like of him by the name of Tom-all-Alone's. It is a
  • black, dilapidated street, avoided by all decent people, where the
  • crazy houses were seized upon, when their decay was far advanced, by
  • some bold vagrants who after establishing their own possession took
  • to letting them out in lodgings. Now, these tumbling tenements
  • contain, by night, a swarm of misery. As on the ruined human wretch
  • vermin parasites appear, so these ruined shelters have bred a crowd
  • of foul existence that crawls in and out of gaps in walls and boards;
  • and coils itself to sleep, in maggot numbers, where the rain drips
  • in; and comes and goes, fetching and carrying fever and sowing more
  • evil in its every footprint than Lord Coodle, and Sir Thomas Doodle,
  • and the Duke of Foodle, and all the fine gentlemen in office, down to
  • Zoodle, shall set right in five hundred years--though born expressly
  • to do it.
  • Twice lately there has been a crash and a cloud of dust, like the
  • springing of a mine, in Tom-all-Alone's; and each time a house has
  • fallen. These accidents have made a paragraph in the newspapers and
  • have filled a bed or two in the nearest hospital. The gaps remain,
  • and there are not unpopular lodgings among the rubbish. As several
  • more houses are nearly ready to go, the next crash in Tom-all-Alone's
  • may be expected to be a good one.
  • This desirable property is in Chancery, of course. It would be an
  • insult to the discernment of any man with half an eye to tell him so.
  • Whether "Tom" is the popular representative of the original plaintiff
  • or defendant in Jarndyce and Jarndyce, or whether Tom lived here when
  • the suit had laid the street waste, all alone, until other settlers
  • came to join him, or whether the traditional title is a comprehensive
  • name for a retreat cut off from honest company and put out of the
  • pale of hope, perhaps nobody knows. Certainly Jo don't know.
  • "For I don't," says Jo, "I don't know nothink."
  • It must be a strange state to be like Jo! To shuffle through the
  • streets, unfamiliar with the shapes, and in utter darkness as to the
  • meaning, of those mysterious symbols, so abundant over the shops, and
  • at the corners of streets, and on the doors, and in the windows! To
  • see people read, and to see people write, and to see the postmen
  • deliver letters, and not to have the least idea of all that
  • language--to be, to every scrap of it, stone blind and dumb! It must
  • be very puzzling to see the good company going to the churches on
  • Sundays, with their books in their hands, and to think (for perhaps
  • Jo DOES think at odd times) what does it all mean, and if it means
  • anything to anybody, how comes it that it means nothing to me? To be
  • hustled, and jostled, and moved on; and really to feel that it would
  • appear to be perfectly true that I have no business here, or there,
  • or anywhere; and yet to be perplexed by the consideration that I AM
  • here somehow, too, and everybody overlooked me until I became the
  • creature that I am! It must be a strange state, not merely to be told
  • that I am scarcely human (as in the case of my offering myself for a
  • witness), but to feel it of my own knowledge all my life! To see the
  • horses, dogs, and cattle go by me and to know that in ignorance I
  • belong to them and not to the superior beings in my shape, whose
  • delicacy I offend! Jo's ideas of a criminal trial, or a judge, or a
  • bishop, or a government, or that inestimable jewel to him (if he only
  • knew it) the Constitution, should be strange! His whole material and
  • immaterial life is wonderfully strange; his death, the strangest
  • thing of all.
  • Jo comes out of Tom-all-Alone's, meeting the tardy morning which is
  • always late in getting down there, and munches his dirty bit of bread
  • as he comes along. His way lying through many streets, and the houses
  • not yet being open, he sits down to breakfast on the door-step of the
  • Society for the Propagation of the Gospel in Foreign Parts and gives
  • it a brush when he has finished as an acknowledgment of the
  • accommodation. He admires the size of the edifice and wonders what
  • it's all about. He has no idea, poor wretch, of the spiritual
  • destitution of a coral reef in the Pacific or what it costs to look
  • up the precious souls among the coco-nuts and bread-fruit.
  • He goes to his crossing and begins to lay it out for the day. The
  • town awakes; the great tee-totum is set up for its daily spin and
  • whirl; all that unaccountable reading and writing, which has been
  • suspended for a few hours, recommences. Jo and the other lower
  • animals get on in the unintelligible mess as they can. It is
  • market-day. The blinded oxen, over-goaded, over-driven, never guided,
  • run into wrong places and are beaten out, and plunge red-eyed and
  • foaming at stone walls, and often sorely hurt the innocent, and often
  • sorely hurt themselves. Very like Jo and his order; very, very like!
  • A band of music comes and plays. Jo listens to it. So does a dog--a
  • drover's dog, waiting for his master outside a butcher's shop, and
  • evidently thinking about those sheep he has had upon his mind for
  • some hours and is happily rid of. He seems perplexed respecting three
  • or four, can't remember where he left them, looks up and down the
  • street as half expecting to see them astray, suddenly pricks up his
  • ears and remembers all about it. A thoroughly vagabond dog,
  • accustomed to low company and public-houses; a terrific dog to sheep,
  • ready at a whistle to scamper over their backs and tear out mouthfuls
  • of their wool; but an educated, improved, developed dog who has been
  • taught his duties and knows how to discharge them. He and Jo listen
  • to the music, probably with much the same amount of animal
  • satisfaction; likewise as to awakened association, aspiration, or
  • regret, melancholy or joyful reference to things beyond the senses,
  • they are probably upon a par. But, otherwise, how far above the human
  • listener is the brute!
  • Turn that dog's descendants wild, like Jo, and in a very few years
  • they will so degenerate that they will lose even their bark--but not
  • their bite.
  • The day changes as it wears itself away and becomes dark and drizzly.
  • Jo fights it out at his crossing among the mud and wheels, the
  • horses, whips, and umbrellas, and gets but a scanty sum to pay for
  • the unsavoury shelter of Tom-all-Alone's. Twilight comes on; gas
  • begins to start up in the shops; the lamplighter, with his ladder,
  • runs along the margin of the pavement. A wretched evening is
  • beginning to close in.
  • In his chambers Mr. Tulkinghorn sits meditating an application to the
  • nearest magistrate to-morrow morning for a warrant. Gridley, a
  • disappointed suitor, has been here to-day and has been alarming. We
  • are not to be put in bodily fear, and that ill-conditioned fellow
  • shall be held to bail again. From the ceiling, foreshortened
  • Allegory, in the person of one impossible Roman upside down, points
  • with the arm of Samson (out of joint, and an odd one) obtrusively
  • toward the window. Why should Mr. Tulkinghorn, for such no reason,
  • look out of window? Is the hand not always pointing there? So he does
  • not look out of window.
  • And if he did, what would it be to see a woman going by? There are
  • women enough in the world, Mr. Tulkinghorn thinks--too many; they are
  • at the bottom of all that goes wrong in it, though, for the matter of
  • that, they create business for lawyers. What would it be to see a
  • woman going by, even though she were going secretly? They are all
  • secret. Mr. Tulkinghorn knows that very well.
  • But they are not all like the woman who now leaves him and his house
  • behind, between whose plain dress and her refined manner there is
  • something exceedingly inconsistent. She should be an upper servant by
  • her attire, yet in her air and step, though both are hurried and
  • assumed--as far as she can assume in the muddy streets, which she
  • treads with an unaccustomed foot--she is a lady. Her face is veiled,
  • and still she sufficiently betrays herself to make more than one of
  • those who pass her look round sharply.
  • She never turns her head. Lady or servant, she has a purpose in her
  • and can follow it. She never turns her head until she comes to the
  • crossing where Jo plies with his broom. He crosses with her and begs.
  • Still, she does not turn her head until she has landed on the other
  • side. Then she slightly beckons to him and says, "Come here!"
  • Jo follows her a pace or two into a quiet court.
  • "Are you the boy I've read of in the papers?" she asked behind her
  • veil.
  • "I don't know," says Jo, staring moodily at the veil, "nothink about
  • no papers. I don't know nothink about nothink at all."
  • "Were you examined at an inquest?"
  • "I don't know nothink about no--where I was took by the beadle, do
  • you mean?" says Jo. "Was the boy's name at the inkwhich Jo?"
  • "Yes."
  • "That's me!" says Jo.
  • "Come farther up."
  • "You mean about the man?" says Jo, following. "Him as wos dead?"
  • "Hush! Speak in a whisper! Yes. Did he look, when he was living, so
  • very ill and poor?"
  • "Oh, jist!" says Jo.
  • "Did he look like--not like YOU?" says the woman with abhorrence.
  • "Oh, not so bad as me," says Jo. "I'm a reg'lar one I am! You didn't
  • know him, did you?"
  • "How dare you ask me if I knew him?"
  • "No offence, my lady," says Jo with much humility, for even he has
  • got at the suspicion of her being a lady.
  • "I am not a lady. I am a servant."
  • "You are a jolly servant!" says Jo without the least idea of saying
  • anything offensive, merely as a tribute of admiration.
  • "Listen and be silent. Don't talk to me, and stand farther from me!
  • Can you show me all those places that were spoken of in the account I
  • read? The place he wrote for, the place he died at, the place where
  • you were taken to, and the place where he was buried? Do you know the
  • place where he was buried?"
  • Jo answers with a nod, having also nodded as each other place was
  • mentioned.
  • "Go before me and show me all those dreadful places. Stop opposite to
  • each, and don't speak to me unless I speak to you. Don't look back.
  • Do what I want, and I will pay you well."
  • Jo attends closely while the words are being spoken; tells them off
  • on his broom-handle, finding them rather hard; pauses to consider
  • their meaning; considers it satisfactory; and nods his ragged head.
  • "I'm fly," says Jo. "But fen larks, you know. Stow hooking it!"
  • "What does the horrible creature mean?" exclaims the servant,
  • recoiling from him.
  • "Stow cutting away, you know!" says Jo.
  • "I don't understand you. Go on before! I will give you more money
  • than you ever had in your life."
  • Jo screws up his mouth into a whistle, gives his ragged head a rub,
  • takes his broom under his arm, and leads the way, passing deftly with
  • his bare feet over the hard stones and through the mud and mire.
  • Cook's Court. Jo stops. A pause.
  • "Who lives here?"
  • "Him wot give him his writing and give me half a bull," says Jo in a
  • whisper without looking over his shoulder.
  • "Go on to the next."
  • Krook's house. Jo stops again. A longer pause.
  • "Who lives here?"
  • "HE lived here," Jo answers as before.
  • After a silence he is asked, "In which room?"
  • "In the back room up there. You can see the winder from this corner.
  • Up there! That's where I see him stritched out. This is the
  • public-ouse where I was took to."
  • "Go on to the next!"
  • It is a longer walk to the next, but Jo, relieved of his first
  • suspicions, sticks to the forms imposed upon him and does not look
  • round. By many devious ways, reeking with offence of many kinds, they
  • come to the little tunnel of a court, and to the gas-lamp (lighted
  • now), and to the iron gate.
  • "He was put there," says Jo, holding to the bars and looking in.
  • "Where? Oh, what a scene of horror!"
  • "There!" says Jo, pointing. "Over yinder. Among them piles of bones,
  • and close to that there kitchin winder! They put him wery nigh the
  • top. They was obliged to stamp upon it to git it in. I could unkiver
  • it for you with my broom if the gate was open. That's why they locks
  • it, I s'pose," giving it a shake. "It's always locked. Look at the
  • rat!" cries Jo, excited. "Hi! Look! There he goes! Ho! Into the
  • ground!"
  • The servant shrinks into a corner, into a corner of that hideous
  • archway, with its deadly stains contaminating her dress; and putting
  • out her two hands and passionately telling him to keep away from her,
  • for he is loathsome to her, so remains for some moments. Jo stands
  • staring and is still staring when she recovers herself.
  • "Is this place of abomination consecrated ground?"
  • "I don't know nothink of consequential ground," says Jo, still
  • staring.
  • "Is it blessed?"
  • "Which?" says Jo, in the last degree amazed.
  • "Is it blessed?"
  • "I'm blest if I know," says Jo, staring more than ever; "but I
  • shouldn't think it warn't. Blest?" repeats Jo, something troubled in
  • his mind. "It an't done it much good if it is. Blest? I should think
  • it was t'othered myself. But I don't know nothink!"
  • The servant takes as little heed of what he says as she seems to take
  • of what she has said herself. She draws off her glove to get some
  • money from her purse. Jo silently notices how white and small her
  • hand is and what a jolly servant she must be to wear such sparkling
  • rings.
  • She drops a piece of money in his hand without touching it, and
  • shuddering as their hands approach. "Now," she adds, "show me the
  • spot again!"
  • Jo thrusts the handle of his broom between the bars of the gate, and
  • with his utmost power of elaboration, points it out. At length,
  • looking aside to see if he has made himself intelligible, he finds
  • that he is alone.
  • His first proceeding is to hold the piece of money to the gas-light
  • and to be overpowered at finding that it is yellow--gold. His next is
  • to give it a one-sided bite at the edge as a test of its quality.
  • His next, to put it in his mouth for safety and to sweep the
  • step and passage with great care. His job done, he sets off for
  • Tom-all-Alone's, stopping in the light of innumerable gas-lamps to
  • produce the piece of gold and give it another one-sided bite as a
  • reassurance of its being genuine.
  • The Mercury in powder is in no want of society to-night, for my Lady
  • goes to a grand dinner and three or four balls. Sir Leicester is
  • fidgety down at Chesney Wold, with no better company than the gout;
  • he complains to Mrs. Rouncewell that the rain makes such a monotonous
  • pattering on the terrace that he can't read the paper even by the
  • fireside in his own snug dressing-room.
  • "Sir Leicester would have done better to try the other side of the
  • house, my dear," says Mrs. Rouncewell to Rosa. "His dressing-room is
  • on my Lady's side. And in all these years I never heard the step upon
  • the Ghost's Walk more distinct than it is to-night!"
  • CHAPTER XVII
  • Esther's Narrative
  • Richard very often came to see us while we remained in London (though
  • he soon failed in his letter-writing), and with his quick abilities,
  • his good spirits, his good temper, his gaiety and freshness, was
  • always delightful. But though I liked him more and more the better I
  • knew him, I still felt more and more how much it was to be regretted
  • that he had been educated in no habits of application and
  • concentration. The system which had addressed him in exactly the same
  • manner as it had addressed hundreds of other boys, all varying in
  • character and capacity, had enabled him to dash through his tasks,
  • always with fair credit and often with distinction, but in a fitful,
  • dazzling way that had confirmed his reliance on those very qualities
  • in himself which it had been most desirable to direct and train. They
  • were good qualities, without which no high place can be meritoriously
  • won, but like fire and water, though excellent servants, they were
  • very bad masters. If they had been under Richard's direction, they
  • would have been his friends; but Richard being under their direction,
  • they became his enemies.
  • I write down these opinions not because I believe that this or any
  • other thing was so because I thought so, but only because I did think
  • so and I want to be quite candid about all I thought and did. These
  • were my thoughts about Richard. I thought I often observed besides
  • how right my guardian was in what he had said, and that the
  • uncertainties and delays of the Chancery suit had imparted to his
  • nature something of the careless spirit of a gamester who felt that
  • he was part of a great gaming system.
  • Mr. and Mrs. Bayham Badger coming one afternoon when my guardian was
  • not at home, in the course of conversation I naturally inquired after
  • Richard.
  • "Why, Mr. Carstone," said Mrs. Badger, "is very well and is, I assure
  • you, a great acquisition to our society. Captain Swosser used to say
  • of me that I was always better than land a-head and a breeze a-starn
  • to the midshipmen's mess when the purser's junk had become as tough
  • as the fore-topsel weather earings. It was his naval way of
  • mentioning generally that I was an acquisition to any society. I may
  • render the same tribute, I am sure, to Mr. Carstone. But I--you won't
  • think me premature if I mention it?"
  • I said no, as Mrs. Badger's insinuating tone seemed to require such
  • an answer.
  • "Nor Miss Clare?" said Mrs. Bayham Badger sweetly.
  • Ada said no, too, and looked uneasy.
  • "Why, you see, my dears," said Mrs. Badger, "--you'll excuse me
  • calling you my dears?"
  • We entreated Mrs. Badger not to mention it.
  • "Because you really are, if I may take the liberty of saying so,"
  • pursued Mrs. Badger, "so perfectly charming. You see, my dears, that
  • although I am still young--or Mr. Bayham Badger pays me the
  • compliment of saying so--"
  • "No," Mr. Badger called out like some one contradicting at a public
  • meeting. "Not at all!"
  • "Very well," smiled Mrs. Badger, "we will say still young."
  • "Undoubtedly," said Mr. Badger.
  • "My dears, though still young, I have had many opportunities of
  • observing young men. There were many such on board the dear old
  • Crippler, I assure you. After that, when I was with Captain Swosser
  • in the Mediterranean, I embraced every opportunity of knowing and
  • befriending the midshipmen under Captain Swosser's command. YOU never
  • heard them called the young gentlemen, my dears, and probably would
  • not understand allusions to their pipe-claying their weekly accounts,
  • but it is otherwise with me, for blue water has been a second home to
  • me, and I have been quite a sailor. Again, with Professor Dingo."
  • "A man of European reputation," murmured Mr. Badger.
  • "When I lost my dear first and became the wife of my dear second,"
  • said Mrs. Badger, speaking of her former husbands as if they were
  • parts of a charade, "I still enjoyed opportunities of observing
  • youth. The class attendant on Professor Dingo's lectures was a large
  • one, and it became my pride, as the wife of an eminent scientific man
  • seeking herself in science the utmost consolation it could impart, to
  • throw our house open to the students as a kind of Scientific
  • Exchange. Every Tuesday evening there was lemonade and a mixed
  • biscuit for all who chose to partake of those refreshments. And there
  • was science to an unlimited extent."
  • "Remarkable assemblies those, Miss Summerson," said Mr. Badger
  • reverentially. "There must have been great intellectual friction
  • going on there under the auspices of such a man!"
  • "And now," pursued Mrs. Badger, "now that I am the wife of my dear
  • third, Mr. Badger, I still pursue those habits of observation which
  • were formed during the lifetime of Captain Swosser and adapted to new
  • and unexpected purposes during the lifetime of Professor Dingo. I
  • therefore have not come to the consideration of Mr. Carstone as a
  • neophyte. And yet I am very much of the opinion, my dears, that he
  • has not chosen his profession advisedly."
  • Ada looked so very anxious now that I asked Mrs. Badger on what she
  • founded her supposition.
  • "My dear Miss Summerson," she replied, "on Mr. Carstone's character
  • and conduct. He is of such a very easy disposition that probably he
  • would never think it worth-while to mention how he really feels, but
  • he feels languid about the profession. He has not that positive
  • interest in it which makes it his vocation. If he has any decided
  • impression in reference to it, I should say it was that it is a
  • tiresome pursuit. Now, this is not promising. Young men like Mr.
  • Allan Woodcourt who take it from a strong interest in all that it can
  • do will find some reward in it through a great deal of work for a
  • very little money and through years of considerable endurance and
  • disappointment. But I am quite convinced that this would never be the
  • case with Mr. Carstone."
  • "Does Mr. Badger think so too?" asked Ada timidly.
  • "Why," said Mr. Badger, "to tell the truth, Miss Clare, this view of
  • the matter had not occurred to me until Mrs. Badger mentioned it. But
  • when Mrs. Badger put it in that light, I naturally gave great
  • consideration to it, knowing that Mrs. Badger's mind, in addition to
  • its natural advantages, has had the rare advantage of being formed by
  • two such very distinguished (I will even say illustrious) public men
  • as Captain Swosser of the Royal Navy and Professor Dingo. The
  • conclusion at which I have arrived is--in short, is Mrs. Badger's
  • conclusion."
  • "It was a maxim of Captain Swosser's," said Mrs. Badger, "speaking in
  • his figurative naval manner, that when you make pitch hot, you cannot
  • make it too hot; and that if you only have to swab a plank, you
  • should swab it as if Davy Jones were after you. It appears to me that
  • this maxim is applicable to the medical as well as to the nautical
  • profession.
  • "To all professions," observed Mr. Badger. "It was admirably said by
  • Captain Swosser. Beautifully said."
  • "People objected to Professor Dingo when we were staying in the north
  • of Devon after our marriage," said Mrs. Badger, "that he disfigured
  • some of the houses and other buildings by chipping off fragments of
  • those edifices with his little geological hammer. But the professor
  • replied that he knew of no building save the Temple of Science. The
  • principle is the same, I think?"
  • "Precisely the same," said Mr. Badger. "Finely expressed! The
  • professor made the same remark, Miss Summerson, in his last illness,
  • when (his mind wandering) he insisted on keeping his little hammer
  • under the pillow and chipping at the countenances of the attendants.
  • The ruling passion!"
  • Although we could have dispensed with the length at which Mr. and
  • Mrs. Badger pursued the conversation, we both felt that it was
  • disinterested in them to express the opinion they had communicated to
  • us and that there was a great probability of its being sound. We
  • agreed to say nothing to Mr. Jarndyce until we had spoken to Richard;
  • and as he was coming next evening, we resolved to have a very serious
  • talk with him.
  • So after he had been a little while with Ada, I went in and found my
  • darling (as I knew she would be) prepared to consider him thoroughly
  • right in whatever he said.
  • "And how do you get on, Richard?" said I. I always sat down on the
  • other side of him. He made quite a sister of me.
  • "Oh! Well enough!" said Richard.
  • "He can't say better than that, Esther, can he?" cried my pet
  • triumphantly.
  • I tried to look at my pet in the wisest manner, but of course I
  • couldn't.
  • "Well enough?" I repeated.
  • "Yes," said Richard, "well enough. It's rather jog-trotty and
  • humdrum. But it'll do as well as anything else!"
  • "Oh! My dear Richard!" I remonstrated.
  • "What's the matter?" said Richard.
  • "Do as well as anything else!"
  • "I don't think there's any harm in that, Dame Durden," said Ada,
  • looking so confidingly at me across him; "because if it will do as
  • well as anything else, it will do very well, I hope."
  • "Oh, yes, I hope so," returned Richard, carelessly tossing his hair
  • from his forehead. "After all, it may be only a kind of probation
  • till our suit is--I forgot though. I am not to mention the suit.
  • Forbidden ground! Oh, yes, it's all right enough. Let us talk about
  • something else."
  • Ada would have done so willingly, and with a full persuasion that we
  • had brought the question to a most satisfactory state. But I thought
  • it would be useless to stop there, so I began again.
  • "No, but Richard," said I, "and my dear Ada! Consider how important
  • it is to you both, and what a point of honour it is towards your
  • cousin, that you, Richard, should be quite in earnest without any
  • reservation. I think we had better talk about this, really, Ada. It
  • will be too late very soon."
  • "Oh, yes! We must talk about it!" said Ada. "But I think Richard is
  • right."
  • What was the use of my trying to look wise when she was so pretty,
  • and so engaging, and so fond of him!
  • "Mr. and Mrs. Badger were here yesterday, Richard," said I, "and they
  • seemed disposed to think that you had no great liking for the
  • profession."
  • "Did they though?" said Richard. "Oh! Well, that rather alters the
  • case, because I had no idea that they thought so, and I should not
  • have liked to disappoint or inconvenience them. The fact is, I don't
  • care much about it. But, oh, it don't matter! It'll do as well as
  • anything else!"
  • "You hear him, Ada!" said I.
  • "The fact is," Richard proceeded, half thoughtfully and half
  • jocosely, "it is not quite in my way. I don't take to it. And I get
  • too much of Mrs. Bayham Badger's first and second."
  • "I am sure THAT'S very natural!" cried Ada, quite delighted. "The
  • very thing we both said yesterday, Esther!"
  • "Then," pursued Richard, "it's monotonous, and to-day is too like
  • yesterday, and to-morrow is too like to-day."
  • "But I am afraid," said I, "this is an objection to all kinds of
  • application--to life itself, except under some very uncommon
  • circumstances."
  • "Do you think so?" returned Richard, still considering. "Perhaps! Ha!
  • Why, then, you know," he added, suddenly becoming gay again, "we
  • travel outside a circle to what I said just now. It'll do as well as
  • anything else. Oh, it's all right enough! Let us talk about something
  • else."
  • But even Ada, with her loving face--and if it had seemed innocent and
  • trusting when I first saw it in that memorable November fog, how much
  • more did it seem now when I knew her innocent and trusting
  • heart--even Ada shook her head at this and looked serious. So I
  • thought it a good opportunity to hint to Richard that if he were
  • sometimes a little careless of himself, I was very sure he never
  • meant to be careless of Ada, and that it was a part of his
  • affectionate consideration for her not to slight the importance of a
  • step that might influence both their lives. This made him almost
  • grave.
  • "My dear Mother Hubbard," he said, "that's the very thing! I have
  • thought of that several times and have been quite angry with myself
  • for meaning to be so much in earnest and--somehow--not exactly being
  • so. I don't know how it is; I seem to want something or other to
  • stand by. Even you have no idea how fond I am of Ada (my darling
  • cousin, I love you, so much!), but I don't settle down to constancy
  • in other things. It's such uphill work, and it takes such a time!"
  • said Richard with an air of vexation.
  • "That may be," I suggested, "because you don't like what you have
  • chosen."
  • "Poor fellow!" said Ada. "I am sure I don't wonder at it!"
  • No. It was not of the least use my trying to look wise. I tried
  • again, but how could I do it, or how could it have any effect if I
  • could, while Ada rested her clasped hands upon his shoulder and while
  • he looked at her tender blue eyes, and while they looked at him!
  • "You see, my precious girl," said Richard, passing her golden curls
  • through and through his hand, "I was a little hasty perhaps; or I
  • misunderstood my own inclinations perhaps. They don't seem to lie in
  • that direction. I couldn't tell till I tried. Now the question is
  • whether it's worth-while to undo all that has been done. It seems
  • like making a great disturbance about nothing particular."
  • "My dear Richard," said I, "how CAN you say about nothing
  • particular?"
  • "I don't mean absolutely that," he returned. "I mean that it MAY be
  • nothing particular because I may never want it."
  • Both Ada and I urged, in reply, not only that it was decidedly
  • worth-while to undo what had been done, but that it must be undone. I
  • then asked Richard whether he had thought of any more congenial
  • pursuit.
  • "There, my dear Mrs. Shipton," said Richard, "you touch me home. Yes,
  • I have. I have been thinking that the law is the boy for me."
  • "The law!" repeated Ada as if she were afraid of the name.
  • "If I went into Kenge's office," said Richard, "and if I were placed
  • under articles to Kenge, I should have my eye on the--hum!--the
  • forbidden ground--and should be able to study it, and master it, and
  • to satisfy myself that it was not neglected and was being properly
  • conducted. I should be able to look after Ada's interests and my own
  • interests (the same thing!); and I should peg away at Blackstone and
  • all those fellows with the most tremendous ardour."
  • I was not by any means so sure of that, and I saw how his hankering
  • after the vague things yet to come of those long-deferred hopes cast
  • a shade on Ada's face. But I thought it best to encourage him in any
  • project of continuous exertion, and only advised him to be quite sure
  • that his mind was made up now.
  • "My dear Minerva," said Richard, "I am as steady as you are. I made a
  • mistake; we are all liable to mistakes; I won't do so any more, and
  • I'll become such a lawyer as is not often seen. That is, you know,"
  • said Richard, relapsing into doubt, "if it really is worth-while,
  • after all, to make such a disturbance about nothing particular!"
  • This led to our saying again, with a great deal of gravity, all that
  • we had said already and to our coming to much the same conclusion
  • afterwards. But we so strongly advised Richard to be frank and open
  • with Mr. Jarndyce, without a moment's delay, and his disposition was
  • naturally so opposed to concealment that he sought him out at once
  • (taking us with him) and made a full avowal. "Rick," said my
  • guardian, after hearing him attentively, "we can retreat with honour,
  • and we will. But we must be careful--for our cousin's sake, Rick, for
  • our cousin's sake--that we make no more such mistakes. Therefore, in
  • the matter of the law, we will have a good trial before we decide. We
  • will look before we leap, and take plenty of time about it."
  • Richard's energy was of such an impatient and fitful kind that he
  • would have liked nothing better than to have gone to Mr. Kenge's
  • office in that hour and to have entered into articles with him on the
  • spot. Submitting, however, with a good grace to the caution that we
  • had shown to be so necessary, he contented himself with sitting down
  • among us in his lightest spirits and talking as if his one unvarying
  • purpose in life from childhood had been that one which now held
  • possession of him. My guardian was very kind and cordial with him,
  • but rather grave, enough so to cause Ada, when he had departed and we
  • were going upstairs to bed, to say, "Cousin John, I hope you don't
  • think the worse of Richard?"
  • "No, my love," said he.
  • "Because it was very natural that Richard should be mistaken in such
  • a difficult case. It is not uncommon."
  • "No, no, my love," said he. "Don't look unhappy."
  • "Oh, I am not unhappy, cousin John!" said Ada, smiling cheerfully,
  • with her hand upon his shoulder, where she had put it in bidding him
  • good night. "But I should be a little so if you thought at all the
  • worse of Richard."
  • "My dear," said Mr. Jarndyce, "I should think the worse of him only
  • if you were ever in the least unhappy through his means. I should be
  • more disposed to quarrel with myself even then, than with poor Rick,
  • for I brought you together. But, tut, all this is nothing! He has
  • time before him, and the race to run. I think the worse of him? Not
  • I, my loving cousin! And not you, I swear!"
  • "No, indeed, cousin John," said Ada, "I am sure I could not--I am
  • sure I would not--think any ill of Richard if the whole world did. I
  • could, and I would, think better of him then than at any other time!"
  • So quietly and honestly she said it, with her hands upon his
  • shoulders--both hands now--and looking up into his face, like the
  • picture of truth!
  • "I think," said my guardian, thoughtfully regarding her, "I think it
  • must be somewhere written that the virtues of the mothers shall
  • occasionally be visited on the children, as well as the sins of the
  • father. Good night, my rosebud. Good night, little woman. Pleasant
  • slumbers! Happy dreams!"
  • This was the first time I ever saw him follow Ada with his eyes with
  • something of a shadow on their benevolent expression. I well
  • remembered the look with which he had contemplated her and Richard
  • when she was singing in the firelight; it was but a very little while
  • since he had watched them passing down the room in which the sun was
  • shining, and away into the shade; but his glance was changed, and
  • even the silent look of confidence in me which now followed it once
  • more was not quite so hopeful and untroubled as it had originally
  • been.
  • Ada praised Richard more to me that night than ever she had praised
  • him yet. She went to sleep with a little bracelet he had given her
  • clasped upon her arm. I fancied she was dreaming of him when I kissed
  • her cheek after she had slept an hour and saw how tranquil and happy
  • she looked.
  • For I was so little inclined to sleep myself that night that I sat up
  • working. It would not be worth mentioning for its own sake, but I was
  • wakeful and rather low-spirited. I don't know why. At least I don't
  • think I know why. At least, perhaps I do, but I don't think it
  • matters.
  • At any rate, I made up my mind to be so dreadfully industrious that I
  • would leave myself not a moment's leisure to be low-spirited. For I
  • naturally said, "Esther! You to be low-spirited. YOU!" And it really
  • was time to say so, for I--yes, I really did see myself in the glass,
  • almost crying. "As if you had anything to make you unhappy, instead
  • of everything to make you happy, you ungrateful heart!" said I.
  • If I could have made myself go to sleep, I would have done it
  • directly, but not being able to do that, I took out of my basket some
  • ornamental work for our house (I mean Bleak House) that I was busy
  • with at that time and sat down to it with great determination. It was
  • necessary to count all the stitches in that work, and I resolved to
  • go on with it until I couldn't keep my eyes open, and then to go to
  • bed.
  • I soon found myself very busy. But I had left some silk downstairs in
  • a work-table drawer in the temporary growlery, and coming to a stop
  • for want of it, I took my candle and went softly down to get it. To
  • my great surprise, on going in I found my guardian still there, and
  • sitting looking at the ashes. He was lost in thought, his book lay
  • unheeded by his side, his silvered iron-grey hair was scattered
  • confusedly upon his forehead as though his hand had been wandering
  • among it while his thoughts were elsewhere, and his face looked worn.
  • Almost frightened by coming upon him so unexpectedly, I stood still
  • for a moment and should have retired without speaking had he not, in
  • again passing his hand abstractedly through his hair, seen me and
  • started.
  • "Esther!"
  • I told him what I had come for.
  • "At work so late, my dear?"
  • "I am working late to-night," said I, "because I couldn't sleep and
  • wished to tire myself. But, dear guardian, you are late too, and look
  • weary. You have no trouble, I hope, to keep you waking?"
  • "None, little woman, that YOU would readily understand," said he.
  • He spoke in a regretful tone so new to me that I inwardly repeated,
  • as if that would help me to his meaning, "That I could readily
  • understand!"
  • "Remain a moment, Esther," said he, "You were in my thoughts."
  • "I hope I was not the trouble, guardian?"
  • He slightly waved his hand and fell into his usual manner. The change
  • was so remarkable, and he appeared to make it by dint of so much
  • self-command, that I found myself again inwardly repeating, "None
  • that I could understand!"
  • "Little woman," said my guardian, "I was thinking--that is, I have
  • been thinking since I have been sitting here--that you ought to know
  • of your own history all I know. It is very little. Next to nothing."
  • "Dear guardian," I replied, "when you spoke to me before on that
  • subject--"
  • "But since then," he gravely interposed, anticipating what I meant to
  • say, "I have reflected that your having anything to ask me, and my
  • having anything to tell you, are different considerations, Esther. It
  • is perhaps my duty to impart to you the little I know."
  • "If you think so, guardian, it is right."
  • "I think so," he returned very gently, and kindly, and very
  • distinctly. "My dear, I think so now. If any real disadvantage can
  • attach to your position in the mind of any man or woman worth a
  • thought, it is right that you at least of all the world should not
  • magnify it to yourself by having vague impressions of its nature."
  • I sat down and said after a little effort to be as calm as I ought to
  • be, "One of my earliest remembrances, guardian, is of these words:
  • 'Your mother, Esther, is your disgrace, and you were hers. The time
  • will come, and soon enough, when you will understand this better, and
  • will feel it too, as no one save a woman can.'" I had covered my face
  • with my hands in repeating the words, but I took them away now with a
  • better kind of shame, I hope, and told him that to him I owed the
  • blessing that I had from my childhood to that hour never, never,
  • never felt it. He put up his hand as if to stop me. I well knew that
  • he was never to be thanked, and said no more.
  • "Nine years, my dear," he said after thinking for a little while,
  • "have passed since I received a letter from a lady living in
  • seclusion, written with a stern passion and power that rendered it
  • unlike all other letters I have ever read. It was written to me (as
  • it told me in so many words), perhaps because it was the writer's
  • idiosyncrasy to put that trust in me, perhaps because it was mine to
  • justify it. It told me of a child, an orphan girl then twelve years
  • old, in some such cruel words as those which live in your
  • remembrance. It told me that the writer had bred her in secrecy from
  • her birth, had blotted out all trace of her existence, and that if
  • the writer were to die before the child became a woman, she would be
  • left entirely friendless, nameless, and unknown. It asked me to
  • consider if I would, in that case, finish what the writer had begun."
  • I listened in silence and looked attentively at him.
  • "Your early recollection, my dear, will supply the gloomy medium
  • through which all this was seen and expressed by the writer, and the
  • distorted religion which clouded her mind with impressions of the
  • need there was for the child to expiate an offence of which she was
  • quite innocent. I felt concerned for the little creature, in her
  • darkened life, and replied to the letter."
  • I took his hand and kissed it.
  • "It laid the injunction on me that I should never propose to see the
  • writer, who had long been estranged from all intercourse with the
  • world, but who would see a confidential agent if I would appoint one.
  • I accredited Mr. Kenge. The lady said, of her own accord and not of
  • his seeking, that her name was an assumed one. That she was, if there
  • were any ties of blood in such a case, the child's aunt. That more
  • than this she would never (and he was well persuaded of the
  • steadfastness of her resolution) for any human consideration
  • disclose. My dear, I have told you all."
  • I held his hand for a little while in mine.
  • "I saw my ward oftener than she saw me," he added, cheerily making
  • light of it, "and I always knew she was beloved, useful, and happy.
  • She repays me twenty-thousandfold, and twenty more to that, every
  • hour in every day!"
  • "And oftener still," said I, "she blesses the guardian who is a
  • father to her!"
  • At the word father, I saw his former trouble come into his face. He
  • subdued it as before, and it was gone in an instant; but it had been
  • there and it had come so swiftly upon my words that I felt as if they
  • had given him a shock. I again inwardly repeated, wondering, "That I
  • could readily understand. None that I could readily understand!" No,
  • it was true. I did not understand it. Not for many and many a day.
  • "Take a fatherly good night, my dear," said he, kissing me on the
  • forehead, "and so to rest. These are late hours for working and
  • thinking. You do that for all of us, all day long, little
  • housekeeper!"
  • I neither worked nor thought any more that night. I opened my
  • grateful heart to heaven in thankfulness for its providence to me and
  • its care of me, and fell asleep.
  • We had a visitor next day. Mr. Allan Woodcourt came. He came to take
  • leave of us; he had settled to do so beforehand. He was going to
  • China and to India as a surgeon on board ship. He was to be away a
  • long, long time.
  • I believe--at least I know--that he was not rich. All his widowed
  • mother could spare had been spent in qualifying him for his
  • profession. It was not lucrative to a young practitioner, with very
  • little influence in London; and although he was, night and day, at
  • the service of numbers of poor people and did wonders of gentleness
  • and skill for them, he gained very little by it in money. He was
  • seven years older than I. Not that I need mention it, for it hardly
  • seems to belong to anything.
  • I think--I mean, he told us--that he had been in practice three or
  • four years and that if he could have hoped to contend through three
  • or four more, he would not have made the voyage on which he was
  • bound. But he had no fortune or private means, and so he was going
  • away. He had been to see us several times altogether. We thought it a
  • pity he should go away. Because he was distinguished in his art among
  • those who knew it best, and some of the greatest men belonging to it
  • had a high opinion of him.
  • When he came to bid us good-bye, he brought his mother with him for
  • the first time. She was a pretty old lady, with bright black eyes,
  • but she seemed proud. She came from Wales and had had, a long time
  • ago, an eminent person for an ancestor, of the name of Morgan
  • ap-Kerrig--of some place that sounded like Gimlet--who was the most
  • illustrious person that ever was known and all of whose relations
  • were a sort of royal family. He appeared to have passed his life
  • in always getting up into mountains and fighting somebody; and
  • a bard whose name sounded like Crumlinwallinwer had sung his
  • praises in a piece which was called, as nearly as I could catch it,
  • Mewlinnwillinwodd.
  • Mrs. Woodcourt, after expatiating to us on the fame of her great
  • kinsman, said that no doubt wherever her son Allan went he would
  • remember his pedigree and would on no account form an alliance below
  • it. She told him that there were many handsome English ladies in
  • India who went out on speculation, and that there were some to be
  • picked up with property, but that neither charms nor wealth would
  • suffice for the descendant from such a line without birth, which must
  • ever be the first consideration. She talked so much about birth that
  • for a moment I half fancied, and with pain--But what an idle fancy to
  • suppose that she could think or care what MINE was!
  • Mr. Woodcourt seemed a little distressed by her prolixity, but he was
  • too considerate to let her see it and contrived delicately to bring
  • the conversation round to making his acknowledgments to my guardian
  • for his hospitality and for the very happy hours--he called them the
  • very happy hours--he had passed with us. The recollection of them, he
  • said, would go with him wherever he went and would be always
  • treasured. And so we gave him our hands, one after another--at least,
  • they did--and I did; and so he put his lips to Ada's hand--and to
  • mine; and so he went away upon his long, long voyage!
  • I was very busy indeed all day and wrote directions home to the
  • servants, and wrote notes for my guardian, and dusted his books and
  • papers, and jingled my housekeeping keys a good deal, one way and
  • another. I was still busy between the lights, singing and working by
  • the window, when who should come in but Caddy, whom I had no
  • expectation of seeing!
  • "Why, Caddy, my dear," said I, "what beautiful flowers!"
  • She had such an exquisite little nosegay in her hand.
  • "Indeed, I think so, Esther," replied Caddy. "They are the loveliest
  • I ever saw."
  • "Prince, my dear?" said I in a whisper.
  • "No," answered Caddy, shaking her head and holding them to me to
  • smell. "Not Prince."
  • "Well, to be sure, Caddy!" said I. "You must have two lovers!"
  • "What? Do they look like that sort of thing?" said Caddy.
  • "Do they look like that sort of thing?" I repeated, pinching her
  • cheek.
  • Caddy only laughed in return, and telling me that she had come for
  • half an hour, at the expiration of which time Prince would be waiting
  • for her at the corner, sat chatting with me and Ada in the window,
  • every now and then handing me the flowers again or trying how they
  • looked against my hair. At last, when she was going, she took me into
  • my room and put them in my dress.
  • "For me?" said I, surprised.
  • "For you," said Caddy with a kiss. "They were left behind by
  • somebody."
  • "Left behind?"
  • "At poor Miss Flite's," said Caddy. "Somebody who has been very good
  • to her was hurrying away an hour ago to join a ship and left these
  • flowers behind. No, no! Don't take them out. Let the pretty little
  • things lie here," said Caddy, adjusting them with a careful hand,
  • "because I was present myself, and I shouldn't wonder if somebody
  • left them on purpose!"
  • "Do they look like that sort of thing?" said Ada, coming laughingly
  • behind me and clasping me merrily round the waist. "Oh, yes, indeed
  • they do, Dame Durden! They look very, very like that sort of thing.
  • Oh, very like it indeed, my dear!"
  • CHAPTER XVIII
  • Lady Dedlock
  • It was not so easy as it had appeared at first to arrange for
  • Richard's making a trial of Mr. Kenge's office. Richard himself was
  • the chief impediment. As soon as he had it in his power to leave Mr.
  • Badger at any moment, he began to doubt whether he wanted to leave
  • him at all. He didn't know, he said, really. It wasn't a bad
  • profession; he couldn't assert that he disliked it; perhaps he liked
  • it as well as he liked any other--suppose he gave it one more chance!
  • Upon that, he shut himself up for a few weeks with some books and
  • some bones and seemed to acquire a considerable fund of information
  • with great rapidity. His fervour, after lasting about a month, began
  • to cool, and when it was quite cooled, began to grow warm again. His
  • vacillations between law and medicine lasted so long that midsummer
  • arrived before he finally separated from Mr. Badger and entered on an
  • experimental course of Messrs. Kenge and Carboy. For all his
  • waywardness, he took great credit to himself as being determined to
  • be in earnest "this time." And he was so good-natured throughout, and
  • in such high spirits, and so fond of Ada, that it was very difficult
  • indeed to be otherwise than pleased with him.
  • "As to Mr. Jarndyce," who, I may mention, found the wind much given,
  • during this period, to stick in the east; "As to Mr. Jarndyce,"
  • Richard would say to me, "he is the finest fellow in the world,
  • Esther! I must be particularly careful, if it were only for his
  • satisfaction, to take myself well to task and have a regular wind-up
  • of this business now."
  • The idea of his taking himself well to task, with that laughing face
  • and heedless manner and with a fancy that everything could catch and
  • nothing could hold, was ludicrously anomalous. However, he told us
  • between-whiles that he was doing it to such an extent that he
  • wondered his hair didn't turn grey. His regular wind-up of the
  • business was (as I have said) that he went to Mr. Kenge's about
  • midsummer to try how he liked it.
  • All this time he was, in money affairs, what I have described him in
  • a former illustration--generous, profuse, wildly careless, but fully
  • persuaded that he was rather calculating and prudent. I happened to
  • say to Ada, in his presence, half jestingly, half seriously, about
  • the time of his going to Mr. Kenge's, that he needed to have
  • Fortunatus' purse, he made so light of money, which he answered in
  • this way, "My jewel of a dear cousin, you hear this old woman! Why
  • does she say that? Because I gave eight pounds odd (or whatever it
  • was) for a certain neat waistcoat and buttons a few days ago. Now, if
  • I had stayed at Badger's I should have been obliged to spend twelve
  • pounds at a blow for some heart-breaking lecture-fees. So I make four
  • pounds--in a lump--by the transaction!"
  • It was a question much discussed between him and my guardian what
  • arrangements should be made for his living in London while he
  • experimented on the law, for we had long since gone back to Bleak
  • House, and it was too far off to admit of his coming there oftener
  • than once a week. My guardian told me that if Richard were to settle
  • down at Mr. Kenge's he would take some apartments or chambers where
  • we too could occasionally stay for a few days at a time; "but, little
  • woman," he added, rubbing his head very significantly, "he hasn't
  • settled down there yet!" The discussions ended in our hiring for him,
  • by the month, a neat little furnished lodging in a quiet old house
  • near Queen Square. He immediately began to spend all the money he had
  • in buying the oddest little ornaments and luxuries for this lodging;
  • and so often as Ada and I dissuaded him from making any purchase that
  • he had in contemplation which was particularly unnecessary and
  • expensive, he took credit for what it would have cost and made out
  • that to spend anything less on something else was to save the
  • difference.
  • While these affairs were in abeyance, our visit to Mr. Boythorn's was
  • postponed. At length, Richard having taken possession of his lodging,
  • there was nothing to prevent our departure. He could have gone with
  • us at that time of the year very well, but he was in the full novelty
  • of his new position and was making most energetic attempts to unravel
  • the mysteries of the fatal suit. Consequently we went without him,
  • and my darling was delighted to praise him for being so busy.
  • We made a pleasant journey down into Lincolnshire by the coach and
  • had an entertaining companion in Mr. Skimpole. His furniture had been
  • all cleared off, it appeared, by the person who took possession of it
  • on his blue-eyed daughter's birthday, but he seemed quite relieved to
  • think that it was gone. Chairs and table, he said, were wearisome
  • objects; they were monotonous ideas, they had no variety of
  • expression, they looked you out of countenance, and you looked them
  • out of countenance. How pleasant, then, to be bound to no particular
  • chairs and tables, but to sport like a butterfly among all the
  • furniture on hire, and to flit from rosewood to mahogany, and from
  • mahogany to walnut, and from this shape to that, as the humour took
  • one!
  • "The oddity of the thing is," said Mr. Skimpole with a quickened
  • sense of the ludicrous, "that my chairs and tables were not paid for,
  • and yet my landlord walks off with them as composedly as possible.
  • Now, that seems droll! There is something grotesque in it. The chair
  • and table merchant never engaged to pay my landlord my rent. Why
  • should my landlord quarrel with HIM? If I have a pimple on my nose
  • which is disagreeable to my landlord's peculiar ideas of beauty, my
  • landlord has no business to scratch my chair and table merchant's
  • nose, which has no pimple on it. His reasoning seems defective!"
  • "Well," said my guardian good-humouredly, "it's pretty clear that
  • whoever became security for those chairs and tables will have to pay
  • for them."
  • "Exactly!" returned Mr. Skimpole. "That's the crowning point of
  • unreason in the business! I said to my landlord, 'My good man, you
  • are not aware that my excellent friend Jarndyce will have to pay for
  • those things that you are sweeping off in that indelicate manner.
  • Have you no consideration for HIS property?' He hadn't the least."
  • "And refused all proposals," said my guardian.
  • "Refused all proposals," returned Mr. Skimpole. "I made him business
  • proposals. I had him into my room. I said, 'You are a man of
  • business, I believe?' He replied, 'I am,' 'Very well,' said I, 'now
  • let us be business-like. Here is an inkstand, here are pens and
  • paper, here are wafers. What do you want? I have occupied your house
  • for a considerable period, I believe to our mutual satisfaction until
  • this unpleasant misunderstanding arose; let us be at once friendly
  • and business-like. What do you want?' In reply to this, he made use
  • of the figurative expression--which has something Eastern about
  • it--that he had never seen the colour of my money. 'My amiable
  • friend,' said I, 'I never have any money. I never know anything about
  • money.' 'Well, sir,' said he, 'what do you offer if I give you time?'
  • 'My good fellow,' said I, 'I have no idea of time; but you say you
  • are a man of business, and whatever you can suggest to be done in a
  • business-like way with pen, and ink, and paper--and wafers--I am
  • ready to do. Don't pay yourself at another man's expense (which is
  • foolish), but be business-like!' However, he wouldn't be, and there
  • was an end of it."
  • If these were some of the inconveniences of Mr. Skimpole's childhood,
  • it assuredly possessed its advantages too. On the journey he had a
  • very good appetite for such refreshment as came in our way (including
  • a basket of choice hothouse peaches), but never thought of paying for
  • anything. So when the coachman came round for his fee, he pleasantly
  • asked him what he considered a very good fee indeed, now--a liberal
  • one--and on his replying half a crown for a single passenger, said it
  • was little enough too, all things considered, and left Mr. Jarndyce
  • to give it him.
  • It was delightful weather. The green corn waved so beautifully, the
  • larks sang so joyfully, the hedges were so full of wild flowers, the
  • trees were so thickly out in leaf, the bean-fields, with a light wind
  • blowing over them, filled the air with such a delicious fragrance!
  • Late in the afternoon we came to the market-town where we were to
  • alight from the coach--a dull little town with a church-spire, and a
  • marketplace, and a market-cross, and one intensely sunny street, and
  • a pond with an old horse cooling his legs in it, and a very few men
  • sleepily lying and standing about in narrow little bits of shade.
  • After the rustling of the leaves and the waving of the corn all along
  • the road, it looked as still, as hot, as motionless a little town as
  • England could produce.
  • At the inn we found Mr. Boythorn on horseback, waiting with an open
  • carriage to take us to his house, which was a few miles off. He was
  • overjoyed to see us and dismounted with great alacrity.
  • "By heaven!" said he after giving us a courteous greeting. "This a
  • most infamous coach. It is the most flagrant example of an abominable
  • public vehicle that ever encumbered the face of the earth. It is
  • twenty-five minutes after its time this afternoon. The coachman ought
  • to be put to death!"
  • "IS he after his time?" said Mr. Skimpole, to whom he happened to
  • address himself. "You know my infirmity."
  • "Twenty-five minutes! Twenty-six minutes!" replied Mr. Boythorn,
  • referring to his watch. "With two ladies in the coach, this scoundrel
  • has deliberately delayed his arrival six and twenty minutes.
  • Deliberately! It is impossible that it can be accidental! But his
  • father--and his uncle--were the most profligate coachmen that ever
  • sat upon a box."
  • While he said this in tones of the greatest indignation, he handed us
  • into the little phaeton with the utmost gentleness and was all smiles
  • and pleasure.
  • "I am sorry, ladies," he said, standing bare-headed at the
  • carriage-door when all was ready, "that I am obliged to conduct you
  • nearly two miles out of the way. But our direct road lies through Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock's park, and in that fellow's property I have sworn
  • never to set foot of mine, or horse's foot of mine, pending the
  • present relations between us, while I breathe the breath of life!"
  • And here, catching my guardian's eye, he broke into one of his
  • tremendous laughs, which seemed to shake even the motionless little
  • market-town.
  • "Are the Dedlocks down here, Lawrence?" said my guardian as we drove
  • along and Mr. Boythorn trotted on the green turf by the roadside.
  • "Sir Arrogant Numskull is here," replied Mr. Boythorn. "Ha ha ha! Sir
  • Arrogant is here, and I am glad to say, has been laid by the heels
  • here. My Lady," in naming whom he always made a courtly gesture as if
  • particularly to exclude her from any part in the quarrel, "is
  • expected, I believe, daily. I am not in the least surprised that she
  • postpones her appearance as long as possible. Whatever can have
  • induced that transcendent woman to marry that effigy and figure-head
  • of a baronet is one of the most impenetrable mysteries that ever
  • baffled human inquiry. Ha ha ha ha!"
  • "I suppose," said my guardian, laughing, "WE may set foot in the park
  • while we are here? The prohibition does not extend to us, does it?"
  • "I can lay no prohibition on my guests," he said, bending his head to
  • Ada and me with the smiling politeness which sat so gracefully upon
  • him, "except in the matter of their departure. I am only sorry that I
  • cannot have the happiness of being their escort about Chesney Wold,
  • which is a very fine place! But by the light of this summer day,
  • Jarndyce, if you call upon the owner while you stay with me, you are
  • likely to have but a cool reception. He carries himself like an
  • eight-day clock at all times, like one of a race of eight-day clocks
  • in gorgeous cases that never go and never went--Ha ha ha!--but he
  • will have some extra stiffness, I can promise you, for the friends of
  • his friend and neighbour Boythorn!"
  • "I shall not put him to the proof," said my guardian. "He is as
  • indifferent to the honour of knowing me, I dare say, as I am to the
  • honour of knowing him. The air of the grounds and perhaps such a view
  • of the house as any other sightseer might get are quite enough for
  • me."
  • "Well!" said Mr. Boythorn. "I am glad of it on the whole. It's in
  • better keeping. I am looked upon about here as a second Ajax defying
  • the lightning. Ha ha ha ha! When I go into our little church on a
  • Sunday, a considerable part of the inconsiderable congregation expect
  • to see me drop, scorched and withered, on the pavement under the
  • Dedlock displeasure. Ha ha ha ha! I have no doubt he is surprised
  • that I don't. For he is, by heaven, the most self-satisfied, and the
  • shallowest, and the most coxcombical and utterly brainless ass!"
  • Our coming to the ridge of a hill we had been ascending enabled our
  • friend to point out Chesney Wold itself to us and diverted his
  • attention from its master.
  • It was a picturesque old house in a fine park richly wooded. Among
  • the trees and not far from the residence he pointed out the spire of
  • the little church of which he had spoken. Oh, the solemn woods over
  • which the light and shadow travelled swiftly, as if heavenly wings
  • were sweeping on benignant errands through the summer air; the smooth
  • green slopes, the glittering water, the garden where the flowers were
  • so symmetrically arranged in clusters of the richest colours, how
  • beautiful they looked! The house, with gable and chimney, and tower,
  • and turret, and dark doorway, and broad terrace-walk, twining among
  • the balustrades of which, and lying heaped upon the vases, there was
  • one great flush of roses, seemed scarcely real in its light solidity
  • and in the serene and peaceful hush that rested on all around it. To
  • Ada and to me, that above all appeared the pervading influence. On
  • everything, house, garden, terrace, green slopes, water, old oaks,
  • fern, moss, woods again, and far away across the openings in the
  • prospect to the distance lying wide before us with a purple bloom
  • upon it, there seemed to be such undisturbed repose.
  • When we came into the little village and passed a small inn with the
  • sign of the Dedlock Arms swinging over the road in front, Mr.
  • Boythorn interchanged greetings with a young gentleman sitting on a
  • bench outside the inn-door who had some fishing-tackle lying beside
  • him.
  • "That's the housekeeper's grandson, Mr. Rouncewell by name," said,
  • he, "and he is in love with a pretty girl up at the house. Lady
  • Dedlock has taken a fancy to the pretty girl and is going to keep her
  • about her own fair person--an honour which my young friend himself
  • does not at all appreciate. However, he can't marry just yet, even if
  • his Rosebud were willing; so he is fain to make the best of it. In
  • the meanwhile, he comes here pretty often for a day or two at a time
  • to--fish. Ha ha ha ha!"
  • "Are he and the pretty girl engaged, Mr. Boythorn?" asked Ada.
  • "Why, my dear Miss Clare," he returned, "I think they may perhaps
  • understand each other; but you will see them soon, I dare say, and I
  • must learn from you on such a point--not you from me."
  • Ada blushed, and Mr. Boythorn, trotting forward on his comely grey
  • horse, dismounted at his own door and stood ready with extended arm
  • and uncovered head to welcome us when we arrived.
  • He lived in a pretty house, formerly the parsonage house, with a lawn
  • in front, a bright flower-garden at the side, and a well-stocked
  • orchard and kitchen-garden in the rear, enclosed with a venerable
  • wall that had of itself a ripened ruddy look. But, indeed, everything
  • about the place wore an aspect of maturity and abundance. The old
  • lime-tree walk was like green cloisters, the very shadows of the
  • cherry-trees and apple-trees were heavy with fruit, the
  • gooseberry-bushes were so laden that their branches arched and rested
  • on the earth, the strawberries and raspberries grew in like
  • profusion, and the peaches basked by the hundred on the wall. Tumbled
  • about among the spread nets and the glass frames sparkling and
  • winking in the sun there were such heaps of drooping pods, and
  • marrows, and cucumbers, that every foot of ground appeared a
  • vegetable treasury, while the smell of sweet herbs and all kinds of
  • wholesome growth (to say nothing of the neighbouring meadows where
  • the hay was carrying) made the whole air a great nosegay. Such
  • stillness and composure reigned within the orderly precincts of the
  • old red wall that even the feathers hung in garlands to scare the
  • birds hardly stirred; and the wall had such a ripening influence that
  • where, here and there high up, a disused nail and scrap of list still
  • clung to it, it was easy to fancy that they had mellowed with the
  • changing seasons and that they had rusted and decayed according to
  • the common fate.
  • The house, though a little disorderly in comparison with the garden,
  • was a real old house with settles in the chimney of the brick-floored
  • kitchen and great beams across the ceilings. On one side of it was
  • the terrible piece of ground in dispute, where Mr. Boythorn
  • maintained a sentry in a smock-frock day and night, whose duty was
  • supposed to be, in cases of aggression, immediately to ring a large
  • bell hung up there for the purpose, to unchain a great bull-dog
  • established in a kennel as his ally, and generally to deal
  • destruction on the enemy. Not content with these precautions, Mr.
  • Boythorn had himself composed and posted there, on painted boards to
  • which his name was attached in large letters, the following solemn
  • warnings: "Beware of the bull-dog. He is most ferocious. Lawrence
  • Boythorn." "The blunderbus is loaded with slugs. Lawrence Boythorn."
  • "Man-traps and spring-guns are set here at all times of the day and
  • night. Lawrence Boythorn." "Take notice. That any person or persons
  • audaciously presuming to trespass on this property will be punished
  • with the utmost severity of private chastisement and prosecuted with
  • the utmost rigour of the law. Lawrence Boythorn." These he showed us
  • from the drawing-room window, while his bird was hopping about his
  • head, and he laughed, "Ha ha ha ha! Ha ha ha ha!" to that extent as
  • he pointed them out that I really thought he would have hurt himself.
  • "But this is taking a good deal of trouble," said Mr. Skimpole in his
  • light way, "when you are not in earnest after all."
  • "Not in earnest!" returned Mr. Boythorn with unspeakable warmth. "Not
  • in earnest! If I could have hoped to train him, I would have bought a
  • lion instead of that dog and would have turned him loose upon the
  • first intolerable robber who should dare to make an encroachment on
  • my rights. Let Sir Leicester Dedlock consent to come out and decide
  • this question by single combat, and I will meet him with any weapon
  • known to mankind in any age or country. I am that much in earnest.
  • Not more!"
  • We arrived at his house on a Saturday. On the Sunday morning we all
  • set forth to walk to the little church in the park. Entering the
  • park, almost immediately by the disputed ground, we pursued a
  • pleasant footpath winding among the verdant turf and the beautiful
  • trees until it brought us to the church-porch.
  • The congregation was extremely small and quite a rustic one with the
  • exception of a large muster of servants from the house, some of whom
  • were already in their seats, while others were yet dropping in. There
  • were some stately footmen, and there was a perfect picture of an old
  • coachman, who looked as if he were the official representative of all
  • the pomps and vanities that had ever been put into his coach. There
  • was a very pretty show of young women, and above them, the handsome
  • old face and fine responsible portly figure of the housekeeper
  • towered pre-eminent. The pretty girl of whom Mr. Boythorn had told us
  • was close by her. She was so very pretty that I might have known her
  • by her beauty even if I had not seen how blushingly conscious she was
  • of the eyes of the young fisherman, whom I discovered not far off.
  • One face, and not an agreeable one, though it was handsome, seemed
  • maliciously watchful of this pretty girl, and indeed of every one and
  • everything there. It was a Frenchwoman's.
  • As the bell was yet ringing and the great people were not yet come, I
  • had leisure to glance over the church, which smelt as earthy as a
  • grave, and to think what a shady, ancient, solemn little church it
  • was. The windows, heavily shaded by trees, admitted a subdued light
  • that made the faces around me pale, and darkened the old brasses in
  • the pavement and the time and damp-worn monuments, and rendered the
  • sunshine in the little porch, where a monotonous ringer was working
  • at the bell, inestimably bright. But a stir in that direction, a
  • gathering of reverential awe in the rustic faces, and a blandly
  • ferocious assumption on the part of Mr. Boythorn of being resolutely
  • unconscious of somebody's existence forewarned me that the great
  • people were come and that the service was going to begin.
  • "'Enter not into judgment with thy servant, O Lord, for in thy
  • sight--'"
  • Shall I ever forget the rapid beating at my heart, occasioned by the
  • look I met as I stood up! Shall I ever forget the manner in which
  • those handsome proud eyes seemed to spring out of their languor and
  • to hold mine! It was only a moment before I cast mine down--released
  • again, if I may say so--on my book; but I knew the beautiful face
  • quite well in that short space of time.
  • And, very strangely, there was something quickened within me,
  • associated with the lonely days at my godmother's; yes, away even to
  • the days when I had stood on tiptoe to dress myself at my little
  • glass after dressing my doll. And this, although I had never seen
  • this lady's face before in all my life--I was quite sure of
  • it--absolutely certain.
  • It was easy to know that the ceremonious, gouty, grey-haired
  • gentleman, the only other occupant of the great pew, was Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock, and that the lady was Lady Dedlock. But why her
  • face should be, in a confused way, like a broken glass to me, in
  • which I saw scraps of old remembrances, and why I should be so
  • fluttered and troubled (for I was still) by having casually met her
  • eyes, I could not think.
  • I felt it to be an unmeaning weakness in me and tried to overcome it
  • by attending to the words I heard. Then, very strangely, I seemed to
  • hear them, not in the reader's voice, but in the well-remembered
  • voice of my godmother. This made me think, did Lady Dedlock's face
  • accidentally resemble my godmother's? It might be that it did, a
  • little; but the expression was so different, and the stern decision
  • which had worn into my godmother's face, like weather into rocks, was
  • so completely wanting in the face before me that it could not be that
  • resemblance which had struck me. Neither did I know the loftiness and
  • haughtiness of Lady Dedlock's face, at all, in any one. And yet I--I,
  • little Esther Summerson, the child who lived a life apart and on
  • whose birthday there was no rejoicing--seemed to arise before my own
  • eyes, evoked out of the past by some power in this fashionable lady,
  • whom I not only entertained no fancy that I had ever seen, but whom I
  • perfectly well knew I had never seen until that hour.
  • It made me tremble so to be thrown into this unaccountable agitation
  • that I was conscious of being distressed even by the observation of
  • the French maid, though I knew she had been looking watchfully here,
  • and there, and everywhere, from the moment of her coming into the
  • church. By degrees, though very slowly, I at last overcame my strange
  • emotion. After a long time, I looked towards Lady Dedlock again. It
  • was while they were preparing to sing, before the sermon. She took no
  • heed of me, and the beating at my heart was gone. Neither did it
  • revive for more than a few moments when she once or twice afterwards
  • glanced at Ada or at me through her glass.
  • The service being concluded, Sir Leicester gave his arm with much
  • taste and gallantry to Lady Dedlock--though he was obliged to walk by
  • the help of a thick stick--and escorted her out of church to the pony
  • carriage in which they had come. The servants then dispersed, and so
  • did the congregation, whom Sir Leicester had contemplated all along
  • (Mr. Skimpole said to Mr. Boythorn's infinite delight) as if he were
  • a considerable landed proprietor in heaven.
  • "He believes he is!" said Mr. Boythorn. "He firmly believes it. So
  • did his father, and his grandfather, and his great-grandfather!"
  • "Do you know," pursued Mr. Skimpole very unexpectedly to Mr.
  • Boythorn, "it's agreeable to me to see a man of that sort."
  • "IS it!" said Mr. Boythorn.
  • "Say that he wants to patronize me," pursued Mr. Skimpole. "Very
  • well! I don't object."
  • "I do," said Mr. Boythorn with great vigour.
  • "Do you really?" returned Mr. Skimpole in his easy light vein. "But
  • that's taking trouble, surely. And why should you take trouble? Here
  • am I, content to receive things childishly as they fall out, and I
  • never take trouble! I come down here, for instance, and I find a
  • mighty potentate exacting homage. Very well! I say 'Mighty potentate,
  • here IS my homage! It's easier to give it than to withhold it. Here
  • it is. If you have anything of an agreeable nature to show me, I
  • shall be happy to see it; if you have anything of an agreeable nature
  • to give me, I shall be happy to accept it.' Mighty potentate replies
  • in effect, 'This is a sensible fellow. I find him accord with my
  • digestion and my bilious system. He doesn't impose upon me the
  • necessity of rolling myself up like a hedgehog with my points
  • outward. I expand, I open, I turn my silver lining outward like
  • Milton's cloud, and it's more agreeable to both of us.' That's my
  • view of such things, speaking as a child!"
  • "But suppose you went down somewhere else to-morrow," said Mr.
  • Boythorn, "where there was the opposite of that fellow--or of this
  • fellow. How then?"
  • "How then?" said Mr. Skimpole with an appearance of the utmost
  • simplicity and candour. "Just the same then! I should say, 'My
  • esteemed Boythorn'--to make you the personification of our imaginary
  • friend--'my esteemed Boythorn, you object to the mighty potentate?
  • Very good. So do I. I take it that my business in the social system
  • is to be agreeable; I take it that everybody's business in the social
  • system is to be agreeable. It's a system of harmony, in short.
  • Therefore if you object, I object. Now, excellent Boythorn, let us go
  • to dinner!'"
  • "But excellent Boythorn might say," returned our host, swelling and
  • growing very red, "I'll be--"
  • "I understand," said Mr. Skimpole. "Very likely he would."
  • "--if I WILL go to dinner!" cried Mr. Boythorn in a violent burst and
  • stopping to strike his stick upon the ground. "And he would probably
  • add, 'Is there such a thing as principle, Mr. Harold Skimpole?'"
  • "To which Harold Skimpole would reply, you know," he returned in his
  • gayest manner and with his most ingenuous smile, "'Upon my life I
  • have not the least idea! I don't know what it is you call by that
  • name, or where it is, or who possesses it. If you possess it and find
  • it comfortable, I am quite delighted and congratulate you heartily.
  • But I know nothing about it, I assure you; for I am a mere child, and
  • I lay no claim to it, and I don't want it!' So, you see, excellent
  • Boythorn and I would go to dinner after all!"
  • This was one of many little dialogues between them which I always
  • expected to end, and which I dare say would have ended under other
  • circumstances, in some violent explosion on the part of our host. But
  • he had so high a sense of his hospitable and responsible position as
  • our entertainer, and my guardian laughed so sincerely at and with Mr.
  • Skimpole, as a child who blew bubbles and broke them all day long,
  • that matters never went beyond this point. Mr. Skimpole, who always
  • seemed quite unconscious of having been on delicate ground, then
  • betook himself to beginning some sketch in the park which he never
  • finished, or to playing fragments of airs on the piano, or to singing
  • scraps of songs, or to lying down on his back under a tree and
  • looking at the sky--which he couldn't help thinking, he said, was
  • what he was meant for; it suited him so exactly.
  • "Enterprise and effort," he would say to us (on his back), "are
  • delightful to me. I believe I am truly cosmopolitan. I have the
  • deepest sympathy with them. I lie in a shady place like this and
  • think of adventurous spirits going to the North Pole or penetrating
  • to the heart of the Torrid Zone with admiration. Mercenary creatures
  • ask, 'What is the use of a man's going to the North Pole? What good
  • does it do?' I can't say; but, for anything I CAN say, he may go for
  • the purpose--though he don't know it--of employing my thoughts as I
  • lie here. Take an extreme case. Take the case of the slaves on
  • American plantations. I dare say they are worked hard, I dare say
  • they don't altogether like it. I dare say theirs is an unpleasant
  • experience on the whole; but they people the landscape for me, they
  • give it a poetry for me, and perhaps that is one of the pleasanter
  • objects of their existence. I am very sensible of it, if it be, and I
  • shouldn't wonder if it were!"
  • I always wondered on these occasions whether he ever thought of Mrs.
  • Skimpole and the children, and in what point of view they presented
  • themselves to his cosmopolitan mind. So far as I could understand,
  • they rarely presented themselves at all.
  • The week had gone round to the Saturday following that beating of my
  • heart in the church; and every day had been so bright and blue that
  • to ramble in the woods, and to see the light striking down among the
  • transparent leaves and sparkling in the beautiful interlacings of the
  • shadows of the trees, while the birds poured out their songs and the
  • air was drowsy with the hum of insects, had been most delightful. We
  • had one favourite spot, deep in moss and last year's leaves, where
  • there were some felled trees from which the bark was all stripped
  • off. Seated among these, we looked through a green vista supported by
  • thousands of natural columns, the whitened stems of trees, upon a
  • distant prospect made so radiant by its contrast with the shade in
  • which we sat and made so precious by the arched perspective through
  • which we saw it that it was like a glimpse of the better land. Upon
  • the Saturday we sat here, Mr. Jarndyce, Ada, and I, until we heard
  • thunder muttering in the distance and felt the large raindrops rattle
  • through the leaves.
  • The weather had been all the week extremely sultry, but the storm
  • broke so suddenly--upon us, at least, in that sheltered spot--that
  • before we reached the outskirts of the wood the thunder and lightning
  • were frequent and the rain came plunging through the leaves as if
  • every drop were a great leaden bead. As it was not a time for
  • standing among trees, we ran out of the wood, and up and down the
  • moss-grown steps which crossed the plantation-fence like two
  • broad-staved ladders placed back to back, and made for a keeper's
  • lodge which was close at hand. We had often noticed the dark beauty
  • of this lodge standing in a deep twilight of trees, and how the ivy
  • clustered over it, and how there was a steep hollow near, where we
  • had once seen the keeper's dog dive down into the fern as if it were
  • water.
  • The lodge was so dark within, now the sky was overcast, that we only
  • clearly saw the man who came to the door when we took shelter there
  • and put two chairs for Ada and me. The lattice-windows were all
  • thrown open, and we sat just within the doorway watching the storm.
  • It was grand to see how the wind awoke, and bent the trees, and drove
  • the rain before it like a cloud of smoke; and to hear the solemn
  • thunder and to see the lightning; and while thinking with awe of the
  • tremendous powers by which our little lives are encompassed, to
  • consider how beneficent they are and how upon the smallest flower and
  • leaf there was already a freshness poured from all this seeming rage
  • which seemed to make creation new again.
  • "Is it not dangerous to sit in so exposed a place?"
  • "Oh, no, Esther dear!" said Ada quietly.
  • Ada said it to me, but I had not spoken.
  • The beating of my heart came back again. I had never heard the voice,
  • as I had never seen the face, but it affected me in the same strange
  • way. Again, in a moment, there arose before my mind innumerable
  • pictures of myself.
  • Lady Dedlock had taken shelter in the lodge before our arrival there
  • and had come out of the gloom within. She stood behind my chair with
  • her hand upon it. I saw her with her hand close to my shoulder when I
  • turned my head.
  • "I have frightened you?" she said.
  • No. It was not fright. Why should I be frightened!
  • "I believe," said Lady Dedlock to my guardian, "I have the pleasure
  • of speaking to Mr. Jarndyce."
  • "Your remembrance does me more honour than I had supposed it would,
  • Lady Dedlock," he returned.
  • "I recognized you in church on Sunday. I am sorry that any local
  • disputes of Sir Leicester's--they are not of his seeking, however, I
  • believe--should render it a matter of some absurd difficulty to show
  • you any attention here."
  • "I am aware of the circumstances," returned my guardian with a smile,
  • "and am sufficiently obliged."
  • She had given him her hand in an indifferent way that seemed habitual
  • to her and spoke in a correspondingly indifferent manner, though in a
  • very pleasant voice. She was as graceful as she was beautiful,
  • perfectly self-possessed, and had the air, I thought, of being able
  • to attract and interest any one if she had thought it worth her
  • while. The keeper had brought her a chair on which she sat in the
  • middle of the porch between us.
  • "Is the young gentleman disposed of whom you wrote to Sir Leicester
  • about and whose wishes Sir Leicester was sorry not to have it in his
  • power to advance in any way?" she said over her shoulder to my
  • guardian.
  • "I hope so," said he.
  • She seemed to respect him and even to wish to conciliate him. There
  • was something very winning in her haughty manner, and it became more
  • familiar--I was going to say more easy, but that could hardly be--as
  • she spoke to him over her shoulder.
  • "I presume this is your other ward, Miss Clare?"
  • He presented Ada, in form.
  • "You will lose the disinterested part of your Don Quixote character,"
  • said Lady Dedlock to Mr. Jarndyce over her shoulder again, "if you
  • only redress the wrongs of beauty like this. But present me," and she
  • turned full upon me, "to this young lady too!"
  • "Miss Summerson really is my ward," said Mr. Jarndyce. "I am
  • responsible to no Lord Chancellor in her case."
  • "Has Miss Summerson lost both her parents?" said my Lady.
  • "Yes."
  • "She is very fortunate in her guardian."
  • Lady Dedlock looked at me, and I looked at her and said I was indeed.
  • All at once she turned from me with a hasty air, almost expressive of
  • displeasure or dislike, and spoke to him over her shoulder again.
  • "Ages have passed since we were in the habit of meeting, Mr.
  • Jarndyce."
  • "A long time. At least I thought it was a long time, until I saw you
  • last Sunday," he returned.
  • "What! Even you are a courtier, or think it necessary to become one
  • to me!" she said with some disdain. "I have achieved that reputation,
  • I suppose."
  • "You have achieved so much, Lady Dedlock," said my guardian, "that
  • you pay some little penalty, I dare say. But none to me."
  • "So much!" she repeated, slightly laughing. "Yes!"
  • With her air of superiority, and power, and fascination, and I know
  • not what, she seemed to regard Ada and me as little more than
  • children. So, as she slightly laughed and afterwards sat looking at
  • the rain, she was as self-possessed and as free to occupy herself
  • with her own thoughts as if she had been alone.
  • "I think you knew my sister when we were abroad together better than
  • you know me?" she said, looking at him again.
  • "Yes, we happened to meet oftener," he returned.
  • "We went our several ways," said Lady Dedlock, "and had little in
  • common even before we agreed to differ. It is to be regretted, I
  • suppose, but it could not be helped."
  • Lady Dedlock again sat looking at the rain. The storm soon began to
  • pass upon its way. The shower greatly abated, the lightning ceased,
  • the thunder rolled among the distant hills, and the sun began to
  • glisten on the wet leaves and the falling rain. As we sat there,
  • silently, we saw a little pony phaeton coming towards us at a merry
  • pace.
  • "The messenger is coming back, my Lady," said the keeper, "with the
  • carriage."
  • As it drove up, we saw that there were two people inside. There
  • alighted from it, with some cloaks and wrappers, first the
  • Frenchwoman whom I had seen in church, and secondly the pretty girl,
  • the Frenchwoman with a defiant confidence, the pretty girl confused
  • and hesitating.
  • "What now?" said Lady Dedlock. "Two!"
  • "I am your maid, my Lady, at the present," said the Frenchwoman. "The
  • message was for the attendant."
  • "I was afraid you might mean me, my Lady," said the pretty girl.
  • "I did mean you, child," replied her mistress calmly. "Put that shawl
  • on me."
  • She slightly stooped her shoulders to receive it, and the pretty girl
  • lightly dropped it in its place. The Frenchwoman stood unnoticed,
  • looking on with her lips very tightly set.
  • "I am sorry," said Lady Dedlock to Mr. Jarndyce, "that we are not
  • likely to renew our former acquaintance. You will allow me to send
  • the carriage back for your two wards. It shall be here directly."
  • But as he would on no account accept this offer, she took a graceful
  • leave of Ada--none of me--and put her hand upon his proffered arm,
  • and got into the carriage, which was a little, low, park carriage
  • with a hood.
  • "Come in, child," she said to the pretty girl; "I shall want you. Go
  • on!"
  • The carriage rolled away, and the Frenchwoman, with the wrappers she
  • had brought hanging over her arm, remained standing where she had
  • alighted.
  • I suppose there is nothing pride can so little bear with as pride
  • itself, and that she was punished for her imperious manner. Her
  • retaliation was the most singular I could have imagined. She remained
  • perfectly still until the carriage had turned into the drive, and
  • then, without the least discomposure of countenance, slipped off her
  • shoes, left them on the ground, and walked deliberately in the same
  • direction through the wettest of the wet grass.
  • "Is that young woman mad?" said my guardian.
  • "Oh, no, sir!" said the keeper, who, with his wife, was looking after
  • her. "Hortense is not one of that sort. She has as good a head-piece
  • as the best. But she's mortal high and passionate--powerful high and
  • passionate; and what with having notice to leave, and having others
  • put above her, she don't take kindly to it."
  • "But why should she walk shoeless through all that water?" said my
  • guardian.
  • "Why, indeed, sir, unless it is to cool her down!" said the man.
  • "Or unless she fancies it's blood," said the woman. "She'd as soon
  • walk through that as anything else, I think, when her own's up!"
  • We passed not far from the house a few minutes afterwards. Peaceful
  • as it had looked when we first saw it, it looked even more so now,
  • with a diamond spray glittering all about it, a light wind blowing,
  • the birds no longer hushed but singing strongly, everything refreshed
  • by the late rain, and the little carriage shining at the doorway like
  • a fairy carriage made of silver. Still, very steadfastly and quietly
  • walking towards it, a peaceful figure too in the landscape, went
  • Mademoiselle Hortense, shoeless, through the wet grass.
  • CHAPTER XIX
  • Moving On
  • It is the long vacation in the regions of Chancery Lane. The good
  • ships Law and Equity, those teak-built, copper-bottomed,
  • iron-fastened, brazen-faced, and not by any means fast-sailing
  • clippers are laid up in ordinary. The Flying Dutchman, with a crew of
  • ghostly clients imploring all whom they may encounter to peruse their
  • papers, has drifted, for the time being, heaven knows where. The
  • courts are all shut up; the public offices lie in a hot sleep.
  • Westminster Hall itself is a shady solitude where nightingales might
  • sing, and a tenderer class of suitors than is usually found there,
  • walk.
  • The Temple, Chancery Lane, Serjeants' Inn, and Lincoln's Inn even
  • unto the Fields are like tidal harbours at low water, where stranded
  • proceedings, offices at anchor, idle clerks lounging on lop-sided
  • stools that will not recover their perpendicular until the current of
  • Term sets in, lie high and dry upon the ooze of the long vacation.
  • Outer doors of chambers are shut up by the score, messages and
  • parcels are to be left at the Porter's Lodge by the bushel. A crop of
  • grass would grow in the chinks of the stone pavement outside
  • Lincoln's Inn Hall, but that the ticket-porters, who have nothing to
  • do beyond sitting in the shade there, with their white aprons over
  • their heads to keep the flies off, grub it up and eat it
  • thoughtfully.
  • There is only one judge in town. Even he only comes twice a week to
  • sit in chambers. If the country folks of those assize towns on his
  • circuit could see him now! No full-bottomed wig, no red petticoats,
  • no fur, no javelin-men, no white wands. Merely a close-shaved
  • gentleman in white trousers and a white hat, with sea-bronze on the
  • judicial countenance, and a strip of bark peeled by the solar rays
  • from the judicial nose, who calls in at the shell-fish shop as he
  • comes along and drinks iced ginger-beer!
  • The bar of England is scattered over the face of the earth. How
  • England can get on through four long summer months without its
  • bar--which is its acknowledged refuge in adversity and its only
  • legitimate triumph in prosperity--is beside the question; assuredly
  • that shield and buckler of Britannia are not in present wear. The
  • learned gentleman who is always so tremendously indignant at the
  • unprecedented outrage committed on the feelings of his client by the
  • opposite party that he never seems likely to recover it is doing
  • infinitely better than might be expected in Switzerland. The learned
  • gentleman who does the withering business and who blights all
  • opponents with his gloomy sarcasm is as merry as a grig at a French
  • watering-place. The learned gentleman who weeps by the pint on the
  • smallest provocation has not shed a tear these six weeks. The very
  • learned gentleman who has cooled the natural heat of his gingery
  • complexion in pools and fountains of law until he has become great in
  • knotty arguments for term-time, when he poses the drowsy bench with
  • legal "chaff," inexplicable to the uninitiated and to most of the
  • initiated too, is roaming, with a characteristic delight in aridity
  • and dust, about Constantinople. Other dispersed fragments of the same
  • great palladium are to be found on the canals of Venice, at the
  • second cataract of the Nile, in the baths of Germany, and sprinkled
  • on the sea-sand all over the English coast. Scarcely one is to be
  • encountered in the deserted region of Chancery Lane. If such a lonely
  • member of the bar do flit across the waste and come upon a prowling
  • suitor who is unable to leave off haunting the scenes of his anxiety,
  • they frighten one another and retreat into opposite shades.
  • It is the hottest long vacation known for many years. All the young
  • clerks are madly in love, and according to their various degrees,
  • pine for bliss with the beloved object, at Margate, Ramsgate, or
  • Gravesend. All the middle-aged clerks think their families too large.
  • All the unowned dogs who stray into the Inns of Court and pant about
  • staircases and other dry places seeking water give short howls of
  • aggravation. All the blind men's dogs in the streets draw their
  • masters against pumps or trip them over buckets. A shop with a
  • sun-blind, and a watered pavement, and a bowl of gold and silver fish
  • in the window, is a sanctuary. Temple Bar gets so hot that it is, to
  • the adjacent Strand and Fleet Street, what a heater is in an urn, and
  • keeps them simmering all night.
  • There are offices about the Inns of Court in which a man might be
  • cool, if any coolness were worth purchasing at such a price in
  • dullness; but the little thoroughfares immediately outside those
  • retirements seem to blaze. In Mr. Krook's court, it is so hot that
  • the people turn their houses inside out and sit in chairs upon the
  • pavement--Mr. Krook included, who there pursues his studies, with his
  • cat (who never is too hot) by his side. The Sol's Arms has
  • discontinued the Harmonic Meetings for the season, and Little Swills
  • is engaged at the Pastoral Gardens down the river, where he comes out
  • in quite an innocent manner and sings comic ditties of a juvenile
  • complexion calculated (as the bill says) not to wound the feelings of
  • the most fastidious mind.
  • Over all the legal neighbourhood there hangs, like some great veil of
  • rust or gigantic cobweb, the idleness and pensiveness of the long
  • vacation. Mr. Snagsby, law-stationer of Cook's Court, Cursitor
  • Street, is sensible of the influence not only in his mind as a
  • sympathetic and contemplative man, but also in his business as a
  • law-stationer aforesaid. He has more leisure for musing in Staple Inn
  • and in the Rolls Yard during the long vacation than at other seasons,
  • and he says to the two 'prentices, what a thing it is in such hot
  • weather to think that you live in an island with the sea a-rolling
  • and a-bowling right round you.
  • Guster is busy in the little drawing-room on this present afternoon
  • in the long vacation, when Mr. and Mrs. Snagsby have it in
  • contemplation to receive company. The expected guests are rather
  • select than numerous, being Mr. and Mrs. Chadband and no more. From
  • Mr. Chadband's being much given to describe himself, both verbally
  • and in writing, as a vessel, he is occasionally mistaken by strangers
  • for a gentleman connected with navigation, but he is, as he expresses
  • it, "in the ministry." Mr. Chadband is attached to no particular
  • denomination and is considered by his persecutors to have nothing so
  • very remarkable to say on the greatest of subjects as to render his
  • volunteering, on his own account, at all incumbent on his conscience;
  • but he has his followers, and Mrs. Snagsby is of the number. Mrs.
  • Snagsby has but recently taken a passage upward by the vessel,
  • Chadband; and her attention was attracted to that Bark A 1, when she
  • was something flushed by the hot weather.
  • "My little woman," says Mr. Snagsby to the sparrows in Staple Inn,
  • "likes to have her religion rather sharp, you see!"
  • So Guster, much impressed by regarding herself for the time as the
  • handmaid of Chadband, whom she knows to be endowed with the gift of
  • holding forth for four hours at a stretch, prepares the little
  • drawing-room for tea. All the furniture is shaken and dusted, the
  • portraits of Mr. and Mrs. Snagsby are touched up with a wet cloth,
  • the best tea-service is set forth, and there is excellent provision
  • made of dainty new bread, crusty twists, cool fresh butter, thin
  • slices of ham, tongue, and German sausage, and delicate little rows
  • of anchovies nestling in parsley, not to mention new-laid eggs, to be
  • brought up warm in a napkin, and hot buttered toast. For Chadband is
  • rather a consuming vessel--the persecutors say a gorging vessel--and
  • can wield such weapons of the flesh as a knife and fork remarkably
  • well.
  • Mr. Snagsby in his best coat, looking at all the preparations when
  • they are completed and coughing his cough of deference behind his
  • hand, says to Mrs. Snagsby, "At what time did you expect Mr. and Mrs.
  • Chadband, my love?"
  • "At six," says Mrs. Snagsby.
  • Mr. Snagsby observes in a mild and casual way that "it's gone that."
  • "Perhaps you'd like to begin without them," is Mrs. Snagsby's
  • reproachful remark.
  • Mr. Snagsby does look as if he would like it very much, but he says,
  • with his cough of mildness, "No, my dear, no. I merely named the
  • time."
  • "What's time," says Mrs. Snagsby, "to eternity?"
  • "Very true, my dear," says Mr. Snagsby. "Only when a person lays in
  • victuals for tea, a person does it with a view--perhaps--more to
  • time. And when a time is named for having tea, it's better to come up
  • to it."
  • "To come up to it!" Mrs. Snagsby repeats with severity. "Up to it! As
  • if Mr. Chadband was a fighter!"
  • "Not at all, my dear," says Mr. Snagsby.
  • Here, Guster, who had been looking out of the bedroom window, comes
  • rustling and scratching down the little staircase like a popular
  • ghost, and falling flushed into the drawing-room, announces that Mr.
  • and Mrs. Chadband have appeared in the court. The bell at the inner
  • door in the passage immediately thereafter tinkling, she is
  • admonished by Mrs. Snagsby, on pain of instant reconsignment to her
  • patron saint, not to omit the ceremony of announcement. Much
  • discomposed in her nerves (which were previously in the best order)
  • by this threat, she so fearfully mutilates that point of state as to
  • announce "Mr. and Mrs. Cheeseming, least which, Imeantersay,
  • whatsername!" and retires conscience-stricken from the presence.
  • Mr. Chadband is a large yellow man with a fat smile and a general
  • appearance of having a good deal of train oil in his system. Mrs.
  • Chadband is a stern, severe-looking, silent woman. Mr. Chadband moves
  • softly and cumbrously, not unlike a bear who has been taught to walk
  • upright. He is very much embarrassed about the arms, as if they were
  • inconvenient to him and he wanted to grovel, is very much in a
  • perspiration about the head, and never speaks without first putting
  • up his great hand, as delivering a token to his hearers that he is
  • going to edify them.
  • "My friends," says Mr. Chadband, "peace be on this house! On the
  • master thereof, on the mistress thereof, on the young maidens, and on
  • the young men! My friends, why do I wish for peace? What is peace? Is
  • it war? No. Is it strife? No. Is it lovely, and gentle, and
  • beautiful, and pleasant, and serene, and joyful? Oh, yes! Therefore,
  • my friends, I wish for peace, upon you and upon yours."
  • In consequence of Mrs. Snagsby looking deeply edified, Mr. Snagsby
  • thinks it expedient on the whole to say amen, which is well received.
  • "Now, my friends," proceeds Mr. Chadband, "since I am upon this
  • theme--"
  • Guster presents herself. Mrs. Snagsby, in a spectral bass voice and
  • without removing her eyes from Chadband, says with dreadful
  • distinctness, "Go away!"
  • "Now, my friends," says Chadband, "since I am upon this theme, and in
  • my lowly path improving it--"
  • Guster is heard unaccountably to murmur "one thousing seven hundred
  • and eighty-two." The spectral voice repeats more solemnly, "Go away!"
  • "Now, my friends," says Mr. Chadband, "we will inquire in a spirit of
  • love--"
  • Still Guster reiterates "one thousing seven hundred and eighty-two."
  • Mr. Chadband, pausing with the resignation of a man accustomed to be
  • persecuted and languidly folding up his chin into his fat smile,
  • says, "Let us hear the maiden! Speak, maiden!"
  • "One thousing seven hundred and eighty-two, if you please, sir. Which
  • he wish to know what the shilling ware for," says Guster, breathless.
  • "For?" returns Mrs. Chadband. "For his fare!"
  • Guster replied that "he insistes on one and eightpence or on
  • summonsizzing the party." Mrs. Snagsby and Mrs. Chadband are
  • proceeding to grow shrill in indignation when Mr. Chadband quiets the
  • tumult by lifting up his hand.
  • "My friends," says he, "I remember a duty unfulfilled yesterday. It
  • is right that I should be chastened in some penalty. I ought not to
  • murmur. Rachael, pay the eightpence!"
  • While Mrs. Snagsby, drawing her breath, looks hard at Mr. Snagsby, as
  • who should say, "You hear this apostle!" and while Mr. Chadband glows
  • with humility and train oil, Mrs. Chadband pays the money. It is Mr.
  • Chadband's habit--it is the head and front of his pretensions
  • indeed--to keep this sort of debtor and creditor account in the
  • smallest items and to post it publicly on the most trivial occasions.
  • "My friends," says Chadband, "eightpence is not much; it might justly
  • have been one and fourpence; it might justly have been half a crown.
  • O let us be joyful, joyful! O let us be joyful!"
  • With which remark, which appears from its sound to be an extract in
  • verse, Mr. Chadband stalks to the table, and before taking a chair,
  • lifts up his admonitory hand.
  • "My friends," says he, "what is this which we now behold as being
  • spread before us? Refreshment. Do we need refreshment then, my
  • friends? We do. And why do we need refreshment, my friends? Because
  • we are but mortal, because we are but sinful, because we are but of
  • the earth, because we are not of the air. Can we fly, my friends? We
  • cannot. Why can we not fly, my friends?"
  • Mr. Snagsby, presuming on the success of his last point, ventures to
  • observe in a cheerful and rather knowing tone, "No wings." But is
  • immediately frowned down by Mrs. Snagsby.
  • "I say, my friends," pursues Mr. Chadband, utterly rejecting and
  • obliterating Mr. Snagsby's suggestion, "why can we not fly? Is it
  • because we are calculated to walk? It is. Could we walk, my friends,
  • without strength? We could not. What should we do without strength,
  • my friends? Our legs would refuse to bear us, our knees would double
  • up, our ankles would turn over, and we should come to the ground.
  • Then from whence, my friends, in a human point of view, do we derive
  • the strength that is necessary to our limbs? Is it," says Chadband,
  • glancing over the table, "from bread in various forms, from butter
  • which is churned from the milk which is yielded unto us by the cow,
  • from the eggs which are laid by the fowl, from ham, from tongue, from
  • sausage, and from such like? It is. Then let us partake of the good
  • things which are set before us!"
  • The persecutors denied that there was any particular gift in Mr.
  • Chadband's piling verbose flights of stairs, one upon another, after
  • this fashion. But this can only be received as a proof of their
  • determination to persecute, since it must be within everybody's
  • experience that the Chadband style of oratory is widely received and
  • much admired.
  • Mr. Chadband, however, having concluded for the present, sits down at
  • Mr. Snagsby's table and lays about him prodigiously. The conversion
  • of nutriment of any sort into oil of the quality already mentioned
  • appears to be a process so inseparable from the constitution of this
  • exemplary vessel that in beginning to eat and drink, he may be
  • described as always becoming a kind of considerable oil mills or
  • other large factory for the production of that article on a wholesale
  • scale. On the present evening of the long vacation, in Cook's Court,
  • Cursitor Street, he does such a powerful stroke of business that the
  • warehouse appears to be quite full when the works cease.
  • At this period of the entertainment, Guster, who has never recovered
  • her first failure, but has neglected no possible or impossible means
  • of bringing the establishment and herself into contempt--among which
  • may be briefly enumerated her unexpectedly performing clashing
  • military music on Mr. Chadband's head with plates, and afterwards
  • crowning that gentleman with muffins--at which period of the
  • entertainment, Guster whispers Mr. Snagsby that he is wanted.
  • "And being wanted in the--not to put too fine a point upon it--in the
  • shop," says Mr. Snagsby, rising, "perhaps this good company will
  • excuse me for half a minute."
  • Mr. Snagsby descends and finds the two 'prentices intently
  • contemplating a police constable, who holds a ragged boy by the arm.
  • "Why, bless my heart," says Mr. Snagsby, "what's the matter!"
  • "This boy," says the constable, "although he's repeatedly told to,
  • won't move on--"
  • "I'm always a-moving on, sar," cries the boy, wiping away his grimy
  • tears with his arm. "I've always been a-moving and a-moving on, ever
  • since I was born. Where can I possibly move to, sir, more nor I do
  • move!"
  • "He won't move on," says the constable calmly, with a slight
  • professional hitch of his neck involving its better settlement in his
  • stiff stock, "although he has been repeatedly cautioned, and
  • therefore I am obliged to take him into custody. He's as obstinate a
  • young gonoph as I know. He WON'T move on."
  • "Oh, my eye! Where can I move to!" cries the boy, clutching quite
  • desperately at his hair and beating his bare feet upon the floor of
  • Mr. Snagsby's passage.
  • "Don't you come none of that or I shall make blessed short work of
  • you!" says the constable, giving him a passionless shake. "My
  • instructions are that you are to move on. I have told you so five
  • hundred times."
  • "But where?" cries the boy.
  • "Well! Really, constable, you know," says Mr. Snagsby wistfully, and
  • coughing behind his hand his cough of great perplexity and doubt,
  • "really, that does seem a question. Where, you know?"
  • "My instructions don't go to that," replies the constable. "My
  • instructions are that this boy is to move on."
  • Do you hear, Jo? It is nothing to you or to any one else that the
  • great lights of the parliamentary sky have failed for some few years
  • in this business to set you the example of moving on. The one grand
  • recipe remains for you--the profound philosophical prescription--the
  • be-all and the end-all of your strange existence upon earth. Move on!
  • You are by no means to move off, Jo, for the great lights can't at
  • all agree about that. Move on!
  • Mr. Snagsby says nothing to this effect, says nothing at all indeed,
  • but coughs his forlornest cough, expressive of no thoroughfare in any
  • direction. By this time Mr. and Mrs. Chadband and Mrs. Snagsby,
  • hearing the altercation, have appeared upon the stairs. Guster having
  • never left the end of the passage, the whole household are assembled.
  • "The simple question is, sir," says the constable, "whether you know
  • this boy. He says you do."
  • Mrs. Snagsby, from her elevation, instantly cries out, "No he don't!"
  • "My lit-tle woman!" says Mr. Snagsby, looking up the staircase. "My
  • love, permit me! Pray have a moment's patience, my dear. I do know
  • something of this lad, and in what I know of him, I can't say that
  • there's any harm; perhaps on the contrary, constable." To whom the
  • law-stationer relates his Joful and woeful experience, suppressing
  • the half-crown fact.
  • "Well!" says the constable, "so far, it seems, he had grounds for
  • what he said. When I took him into custody up in Holborn, he said you
  • knew him. Upon that, a young man who was in the crowd said he was
  • acquainted with you, and you were a respectable housekeeper, and if
  • I'd call and make the inquiry, he'd appear. The young man don't seem
  • inclined to keep his word, but--Oh! Here IS the young man!"
  • Enter Mr. Guppy, who nods to Mr. Snagsby and touches his hat with the
  • chivalry of clerkship to the ladies on the stairs.
  • "I was strolling away from the office just now when I found this row
  • going on," says Mr. Guppy to the law-stationer, "and as your name was
  • mentioned, I thought it was right the thing should be looked into."
  • "It was very good-natured of you, sir," says Mr. Snagsby, "and I am
  • obliged to you." And Mr. Snagsby again relates his experience, again
  • suppressing the half-crown fact.
  • "Now, I know where you live," says the constable, then, to Jo. "You
  • live down in Tom-all-Alone's. That's a nice innocent place to live
  • in, ain't it?"
  • "I can't go and live in no nicer place, sir," replies Jo. "They
  • wouldn't have nothink to say to me if I wos to go to a nice innocent
  • place fur to live. Who ud go and let a nice innocent lodging to such
  • a reg'lar one as me!"
  • "You are very poor, ain't you?" says the constable.
  • "Yes, I am indeed, sir, wery poor in gin'ral," replies Jo. "I leave
  • you to judge now! I shook these two half-crowns out of him," says the
  • constable, producing them to the company, "in only putting my hand
  • upon him!"
  • "They're wot's left, Mr. Snagsby," says Jo, "out of a sov-ring as wos
  • give me by a lady in a wale as sed she wos a servant and as come to
  • my crossin one night and asked to be showd this 'ere ouse and the
  • ouse wot him as you giv the writin to died at, and the berrin-ground
  • wot he's berrid in. She ses to me she ses 'are you the boy at the
  • inkwhich?' she ses. I ses 'yes' I ses. She ses to me she ses 'can you
  • show me all them places?' I ses 'yes I can' I ses. And she ses to me
  • 'do it' and I dun it and she giv me a sov'ring and hooked it. And I
  • an't had much of the sov'ring neither," says Jo, with dirty tears,
  • "fur I had to pay five bob, down in Tom-all-Alone's, afore they'd
  • square it fur to give me change, and then a young man he thieved
  • another five while I was asleep and another boy he thieved ninepence
  • and the landlord he stood drains round with a lot more on it."
  • "You don't expect anybody to believe this, about the lady and the
  • sovereign, do you?" says the constable, eyeing him aside with
  • ineffable disdain.
  • "I don't know as I do, sir," replies Jo. "I don't expect nothink at
  • all, sir, much, but that's the true hist'ry on it."
  • "You see what he is!" the constable observes to the audience. "Well,
  • Mr. Snagsby, if I don't lock him up this time, will you engage for
  • his moving on?"
  • "No!" cries Mrs. Snagsby from the stairs.
  • "My little woman!" pleads her husband. "Constable, I have no doubt
  • he'll move on. You know you really must do it," says Mr. Snagsby.
  • "I'm everyways agreeable, sir," says the hapless Jo.
  • "Do it, then," observes the constable. "You know what you have got to
  • do. Do it! And recollect you won't get off so easy next time. Catch
  • hold of your money. Now, the sooner you're five mile off, the better
  • for all parties."
  • With this farewell hint and pointing generally to the setting sun as
  • a likely place to move on to, the constable bids his auditors good
  • afternoon and makes the echoes of Cook's Court perform slow music for
  • him as he walks away on the shady side, carrying his iron-bound hat
  • in his hand for a little ventilation.
  • Now, Jo's improbable story concerning the lady and the sovereign has
  • awakened more or less the curiosity of all the company. Mr. Guppy,
  • who has an inquiring mind in matters of evidence and who has
  • been suffering severely from the lassitude of the long vacation,
  • takes that interest in the case that he enters on a regular
  • cross-examination of the witness, which is found so interesting by
  • the ladies that Mrs. Snagsby politely invites him to step upstairs
  • and drink a cup of tea, if he will excuse the disarranged state of
  • the tea-table, consequent on their previous exertions. Mr. Guppy
  • yielding his assent to this proposal, Jo is requested to follow into
  • the drawing-room doorway, where Mr. Guppy takes him in hand as a
  • witness, patting him into this shape, that shape, and the other shape
  • like a butterman dealing with so much butter, and worrying him
  • according to the best models. Nor is the examination unlike many such
  • model displays, both in respect of its eliciting nothing and of its
  • being lengthy, for Mr. Guppy is sensible of his talent, and Mrs.
  • Snagsby feels not only that it gratifies her inquisitive disposition,
  • but that it lifts her husband's establishment higher up in the law.
  • During the progress of this keen encounter, the vessel Chadband,
  • being merely engaged in the oil trade, gets aground and waits to be
  • floated off.
  • "Well!" says Mr. Guppy. "Either this boy sticks to it like
  • cobbler's-wax or there is something out of the common here that beats
  • anything that ever came into my way at Kenge and Carboy's."
  • Mrs. Chadband whispers Mrs. Snagsby, who exclaims, "You don't say
  • so!"
  • "For years!" replied Mrs. Chadband.
  • "Has known Kenge and Carboy's office for years," Mrs. Snagsby
  • triumphantly explains to Mr. Guppy. "Mrs. Chadband--this gentleman's
  • wife--Reverend Mr. Chadband."
  • "Oh, indeed!" says Mr. Guppy.
  • "Before I married my present husband," says Mrs. Chadband.
  • "Was you a party in anything, ma'am?" says Mr. Guppy, transferring
  • his cross-examination.
  • "No."
  • "NOT a party in anything, ma'am?" says Mr. Guppy.
  • Mrs. Chadband shakes her head.
  • "Perhaps you were acquainted with somebody who was a party in
  • something, ma'am?" says Mr. Guppy, who likes nothing better than to
  • model his conversation on forensic principles.
  • "Not exactly that, either," replies Mrs. Chadband, humouring the joke
  • with a hard-favoured smile.
  • "Not exactly that, either!" repeats Mr. Guppy. "Very good. Pray,
  • ma'am, was it a lady of your acquaintance who had some transactions
  • (we will not at present say what transactions) with Kenge and
  • Carboy's office, or was it a gentleman of your acquaintance? Take
  • time, ma'am. We shall come to it presently. Man or woman, ma'am?"
  • "Neither," says Mrs. Chadband as before.
  • "Oh! A child!" says Mr. Guppy, throwing on the admiring Mrs. Snagsby
  • the regular acute professional eye which is thrown on British
  • jurymen. "Now, ma'am, perhaps you'll have the kindness to tell us
  • WHAT child."
  • "You have got it at last, sir," says Mrs. Chadband with another
  • hard-favoured smile. "Well, sir, it was before your time, most
  • likely, judging from your appearance. I was left in charge of a child
  • named Esther Summerson, who was put out in life by Messrs. Kenge and
  • Carboy."
  • "Miss Summerson, ma'am!" cries Mr. Guppy, excited.
  • "I call her Esther Summerson," says Mrs. Chadband with austerity.
  • "There was no Miss-ing of the girl in my time. It was Esther.
  • 'Esther, do this! Esther, do that!' and she was made to do it."
  • "My dear ma'am," returns Mr. Guppy, moving across the small
  • apartment, "the humble individual who now addresses you received that
  • young lady in London when she first came here from the establishment
  • to which you have alluded. Allow me to have the pleasure of taking
  • you by the hand."
  • Mr. Chadband, at last seeing his opportunity, makes his accustomed
  • signal and rises with a smoking head, which he dabs with his
  • pocket-handkerchief. Mrs. Snagsby whispers "Hush!"
  • "My friends," says Chadband, "we have partaken in moderation" (which
  • was certainly not the case so far as he was concerned) "of the
  • comforts which have been provided for us. May this house live upon
  • the fatness of the land; may corn and wine be plentiful therein; may
  • it grow, may it thrive, may it prosper, may it advance, may it
  • proceed, may it press forward! But, my friends, have we partaken of
  • anything else? We have. My friends, of what else have we partaken? Of
  • spiritual profit? Yes. From whence have we derived that spiritual
  • profit? My young friend, stand forth!"
  • Jo, thus apostrophized, gives a slouch backward, and another slouch
  • forward, and another slouch to each side, and confronts the eloquent
  • Chadband with evident doubts of his intentions.
  • "My young friend," says Chadband, "you are to us a pearl, you are to
  • us a diamond, you are to us a gem, you are to us a jewel. And why, my
  • young friend?"
  • "I don't know," replies Jo. "I don't know nothink."
  • "My young friend," says Chadband, "it is because you know nothing
  • that you are to us a gem and jewel. For what are you, my young
  • friend? Are you a beast of the field? No. A bird of the air? No. A
  • fish of the sea or river? No. You are a human boy, my young friend. A
  • human boy. O glorious to be a human boy! And why glorious, my young
  • friend? Because you are capable of receiving the lessons of wisdom,
  • because you are capable of profiting by this discourse which I now
  • deliver for your good, because you are not a stick, or a staff, or a
  • stock, or a stone, or a post, or a pillar.
  • O running stream of sparkling joy
  • To be a soaring human boy!
  • And do you cool yourself in that stream now, my young friend? No.
  • Why do you not cool yourself in that stream now? Because you are in a
  • state of darkness, because you are in a state of obscurity, because
  • you are in a state of sinfulness, because you are in a state of
  • bondage. My young friend, what is bondage? Let us, in a spirit of
  • love, inquire."
  • At this threatening stage of the discourse, Jo, who seems to have
  • been gradually going out of his mind, smears his right arm over his
  • face and gives a terrible yawn. Mrs. Snagsby indignantly expresses
  • her belief that he is a limb of the arch-fiend.
  • "My friends," says Mr. Chadband with his persecuted chin folding
  • itself into its fat smile again as he looks round, "it is right that
  • I should be humbled, it is right that I should be tried, it is right
  • that I should be mortified, it is right that I should be corrected. I
  • stumbled, on Sabbath last, when I thought with pride of my three
  • hours' improving. The account is now favourably balanced: my creditor
  • has accepted a composition. O let us be joyful, joyful! O let us be
  • joyful!"
  • Great sensation on the part of Mrs. Snagsby.
  • "My friends," says Chadband, looking round him in conclusion, "I will
  • not proceed with my young friend now. Will you come to-morrow, my
  • young friend, and inquire of this good lady where I am to be found to
  • deliver a discourse unto you, and will you come like the thirsty
  • swallow upon the next day, and upon the day after that, and upon the
  • day after that, and upon many pleasant days, to hear discourses?"
  • (This with a cow-like lightness.)
  • Jo, whose immediate object seems to be to get away on any terms,
  • gives a shuffling nod. Mr. Guppy then throws him a penny, and Mrs.
  • Snagsby calls to Guster to see him safely out of the house. But
  • before he goes downstairs, Mr. Snagsby loads him with some broken
  • meats from the table, which he carries away, hugging in his arms.
  • So, Mr. Chadband--of whom the persecutors say that it is no wonder he
  • should go on for any length of time uttering such abominable
  • nonsense, but that the wonder rather is that he should ever leave
  • off, having once the audacity to begin--retires into private life
  • until he invests a little capital of supper in the oil-trade. Jo
  • moves on, through the long vacation, down to Blackfriars Bridge,
  • where he finds a baking stony corner wherein to settle to his repast.
  • And there he sits, munching and gnawing, and looking up at the great
  • cross on the summit of St. Paul's Cathedral, glittering above a
  • red-and-violet-tinted cloud of smoke. From the boy's face one might
  • suppose that sacred emblem to be, in his eyes, the crowning confusion
  • of the great, confused city--so golden, so high up, so far out of his
  • reach. There he sits, the sun going down, the river running fast, the
  • crowd flowing by him in two streams--everything moving on to some
  • purpose and to one end--until he is stirred up and told to "move on"
  • too.
  • CHAPTER XX
  • A New Lodger
  • The long vacation saunters on towards term-time like an idle river
  • very leisurely strolling down a flat country to the sea. Mr. Guppy
  • saunters along with it congenially. He has blunted the blade of his
  • penknife and broken the point off by sticking that instrument into
  • his desk in every direction. Not that he bears the desk any ill will,
  • but he must do something, and it must be something of an unexciting
  • nature, which will lay neither his physical nor his intellectual
  • energies under too heavy contribution. He finds that nothing agrees
  • with him so well as to make little gyrations on one leg of his stool,
  • and stab his desk, and gape.
  • Kenge and Carboy are out of town, and the articled clerk has taken
  • out a shooting license and gone down to his father's, and Mr. Guppy's
  • two fellow-stipendiaries are away on leave. Mr. Guppy and Mr. Richard
  • Carstone divide the dignity of the office. But Mr. Carstone is for
  • the time being established in Kenge's room, whereat Mr. Guppy chafes.
  • So exceedingly that he with biting sarcasm informs his mother, in the
  • confidential moments when he sups with her off a lobster and lettuce
  • in the Old Street Road, that he is afraid the office is hardly good
  • enough for swells, and that if he had known there was a swell coming,
  • he would have got it painted.
  • Mr. Guppy suspects everybody who enters on the occupation of a stool
  • in Kenge and Carboy's office of entertaining, as a matter of course,
  • sinister designs upon him. He is clear that every such person wants
  • to depose him. If he be ever asked how, why, when, or wherefore, he
  • shuts up one eye and shakes his head. On the strength of these
  • profound views, he in the most ingenious manner takes infinite pains
  • to counterplot when there is no plot, and plays the deepest games of
  • chess without any adversary.
  • It is a source of much gratification to Mr. Guppy, therefore, to find
  • the new-comer constantly poring over the papers in Jarndyce and
  • Jarndyce, for he well knows that nothing but confusion and failure
  • can come of that. His satisfaction communicates itself to a third
  • saunterer through the long vacation in Kenge and Carboy's office, to
  • wit, Young Smallweed.
  • Whether Young Smallweed (metaphorically called Small and eke Chick
  • Weed, as it were jocularly to express a fledgling) was ever a boy is
  • much doubted in Lincoln's Inn. He is now something under fifteen and
  • an old limb of the law. He is facetiously understood to entertain a
  • passion for a lady at a cigar-shop in the neighbourhood of Chancery
  • Lane and for her sake to have broken off a contract with another
  • lady, to whom he had been engaged some years. He is a town-made
  • article, of small stature and weazen features, but may be perceived
  • from a considerable distance by means of his very tall hat. To become
  • a Guppy is the object of his ambition. He dresses at that gentleman
  • (by whom he is patronized), talks at him, walks at him, founds
  • himself entirely on him. He is honoured with Mr. Guppy's particular
  • confidence and occasionally advises him, from the deep wells of his
  • experience, on difficult points in private life.
  • Mr. Guppy has been lolling out of window all the morning after trying
  • all the stools in succession and finding none of them easy, and after
  • several times putting his head into the iron safe with a notion of
  • cooling it. Mr. Smallweed has been twice dispatched for effervescent
  • drinks, and has twice mixed them in the two official tumblers and
  • stirred them up with the ruler. Mr. Guppy propounds for Mr.
  • Smallweed's consideration the paradox that the more you drink the
  • thirstier you are and reclines his head upon the window-sill in a
  • state of hopeless languor.
  • While thus looking out into the shade of Old Square, Lincoln's Inn,
  • surveying the intolerable bricks and mortar, Mr. Guppy becomes
  • conscious of a manly whisker emerging from the cloistered walk below
  • and turning itself up in the direction of his face. At the same time,
  • a low whistle is wafted through the Inn and a suppressed voice cries,
  • "Hip! Gup-py!"
  • "Why, you don't mean it!" says Mr. Guppy, aroused. "Small! Here's
  • Jobling!" Small's head looks out of window too and nods to Jobling.
  • "Where have you sprung up from?" inquires Mr. Guppy.
  • "From the market-gardens down by Deptford. I can't stand it any
  • longer. I must enlist. I say! I wish you'd lend me half a crown. Upon
  • my soul, I'm hungry."
  • Jobling looks hungry and also has the appearance of having run to
  • seed in the market-gardens down by Deptford.
  • "I say! Just throw out half a crown if you have got one to spare. I
  • want to get some dinner."
  • "Will you come and dine with me?" says Mr. Guppy, throwing out the
  • coin, which Mr. Jobling catches neatly.
  • "How long should I have to hold out?" says Jobling.
  • "Not half an hour. I am only waiting here till the enemy goes,
  • returns Mr. Guppy, butting inward with his head.
  • "What enemy?"
  • "A new one. Going to be articled. Will you wait?"
  • "Can you give a fellow anything to read in the meantime?" says Mr.
  • Jobling.
  • Smallweed suggests the law list. But Mr. Jobling declares with much
  • earnestness that he "can't stand it."
  • "You shall have the paper," says Mr. Guppy. "He shall bring it down.
  • But you had better not be seen about here. Sit on our staircase and
  • read. It's a quiet place."
  • Jobling nods intelligence and acquiescence. The sagacious Smallweed
  • supplies him with the newspaper and occasionally drops his eye upon
  • him from the landing as a precaution against his becoming disgusted
  • with waiting and making an untimely departure. At last the enemy
  • retreats, and then Smallweed fetches Mr. Jobling up.
  • "Well, and how are you?" says Mr. Guppy, shaking hands with him.
  • "So, so. How are you?"
  • Mr. Guppy replying that he is not much to boast of, Mr. Jobling
  • ventures on the question, "How is SHE?" This Mr. Guppy resents as a
  • liberty, retorting, "Jobling, there ARE chords in the human mind--"
  • Jobling begs pardon.
  • "Any subject but that!" says Mr. Guppy with a gloomy enjoyment of his
  • injury. "For there ARE chords, Jobling--"
  • Mr. Jobling begs pardon again.
  • During this short colloquy, the active Smallweed, who is of the
  • dinner party, has written in legal characters on a slip of paper,
  • "Return immediately." This notification to all whom it may concern,
  • he inserts in the letter-box, and then putting on the tall hat at the
  • angle of inclination at which Mr. Guppy wears his, informs his patron
  • that they may now make themselves scarce.
  • Accordingly they betake themselves to a neighbouring dining-house, of
  • the class known among its frequenters by the denomination slap-bang,
  • where the waitress, a bouncing young female of forty, is supposed to
  • have made some impression on the susceptible Smallweed, of whom it
  • may be remarked that he is a weird changeling to whom years are
  • nothing. He stands precociously possessed of centuries of owlish
  • wisdom. If he ever lay in a cradle, it seems as if he must have lain
  • there in a tail-coat. He has an old, old eye, has Smallweed; and he
  • drinks and smokes in a monkeyish way; and his neck is stiff in his
  • collar; and he is never to be taken in; and he knows all about it,
  • whatever it is. In short, in his bringing up he has been so nursed by
  • Law and Equity that he has become a kind of fossil imp, to account
  • for whose terrestrial existence it is reported at the public offices
  • that his father was John Doe and his mother the only female member of
  • the Roe family, also that his first long-clothes were made from a
  • blue bag.
  • Into the dining-house, unaffected by the seductive show in the window
  • of artificially whitened cauliflowers and poultry, verdant baskets of
  • peas, coolly blooming cucumbers, and joints ready for the spit, Mr.
  • Smallweed leads the way. They know him there and defer to him. He has
  • his favourite box, he bespeaks all the papers, he is down upon bald
  • patriarchs, who keep them more than ten minutes afterwards. It is of
  • no use trying him with anything less than a full-sized "bread" or
  • proposing to him any joint in cut unless it is in the very best cut.
  • In the matter of gravy he is adamant.
  • Conscious of his elfin power and submitting to his dread experience,
  • Mr. Guppy consults him in the choice of that day's banquet, turning
  • an appealing look towards him as the waitress repeats the catalogue
  • of viands and saying "What do YOU take, Chick?" Chick, out of the
  • profundity of his artfulness, preferring "veal and ham and French
  • beans--and don't you forget the stuffing, Polly" (with an unearthly
  • cock of his venerable eye), Mr. Guppy and Mr. Jobling give the like
  • order. Three pint pots of half-and-half are superadded. Quickly the
  • waitress returns bearing what is apparently a model of the Tower of
  • Babel but what is really a pile of plates and flat tin dish-covers.
  • Mr. Smallweed, approving of what is set before him, conveys
  • intelligent benignity into his ancient eye and winks upon her. Then,
  • amid a constant coming in, and going out, and running about, and a
  • clatter of crockery, and a rumbling up and down of the machine which
  • brings the nice cuts from the kitchen, and a shrill crying for more
  • nice cuts down the speaking-pipe, and a shrill reckoning of the cost
  • of nice cuts that have been disposed of, and a general flush and
  • steam of hot joints, cut and uncut, and a considerably heated
  • atmosphere in which the soiled knives and tablecloths seem to break
  • out spontaneously into eruptions of grease and blotches of beer, the
  • legal triumvirate appease their appetites.
  • Mr. Jobling is buttoned up closer than mere adornment might require.
  • His hat presents at the rims a peculiar appearance of a glistening
  • nature, as if it had been a favourite snail-promenade. The same
  • phenomenon is visible on some parts of his coat, and particularly at
  • the seams. He has the faded appearance of a gentleman in embarrassed
  • circumstances; even his light whiskers droop with something of a
  • shabby air.
  • His appetite is so vigorous that it suggests spare living for some
  • little time back. He makes such a speedy end of his plate of veal and
  • ham, bringing it to a close while his companions are yet midway in
  • theirs, that Mr. Guppy proposes another. "Thank you, Guppy," says Mr.
  • Jobling, "I really don't know but what I WILL take another."
  • Another being brought, he falls to with great goodwill.
  • Mr. Guppy takes silent notice of him at intervals until he is half
  • way through this second plate and stops to take an enjoying pull at
  • his pint pot of half-and-half (also renewed) and stretches out his
  • legs and rubs his hands. Beholding him in which glow of contentment,
  • Mr. Guppy says, "You are a man again, Tony!"
  • "Well, not quite yet," says Mr. Jobling. "Say, just born."
  • "Will you take any other vegetables? Grass? Peas? Summer cabbage?"
  • "Thank you, Guppy," says Mr. Jobling. "I really don't know but what I
  • WILL take summer cabbage."
  • Order given; with the sarcastic addition (from Mr. Smallweed) of
  • "Without slugs, Polly!" And cabbage produced.
  • "I am growing up, Guppy," says Mr. Jobling, plying his knife and fork
  • with a relishing steadiness.
  • "Glad to hear it."
  • "In fact, I have just turned into my teens," says Mr. Jobling.
  • He says no more until he has performed his task, which he achieves as
  • Messrs. Guppy and Smallweed finish theirs, thus getting over the
  • ground in excellent style and beating those two gentlemen easily by a
  • veal and ham and a cabbage.
  • "Now, Small," says Mr. Guppy, "what would you recommend about
  • pastry?"
  • "Marrow puddings," says Mr. Smallweed instantly.
  • "Aye, aye!" cries Mr. Jobling with an arch look. "You're there, are
  • you? Thank you, Mr. Guppy, I don't know but what I WILL take a marrow
  • pudding."
  • Three marrow puddings being produced, Mr. Jobling adds in a pleasant
  • humour that he is coming of age fast. To these succeed, by command of
  • Mr. Smallweed, "three Cheshires," and to those "three small rums."
  • This apex of the entertainment happily reached, Mr. Jobling puts up
  • his legs on the carpeted seat (having his own side of the box to
  • himself), leans against the wall, and says, "I am grown up now,
  • Guppy. I have arrived at maturity."
  • "What do you think, now," says Mr. Guppy, "about--you don't mind
  • Smallweed?"
  • "Not the least in the world. I have the pleasure of drinking his good
  • health."
  • "Sir, to you!" says Mr. Smallweed.
  • "I was saying, what do you think NOW," pursues Mr. Guppy, "of
  • enlisting?"
  • "Why, what I may think after dinner," returns Mr. Jobling, "is one
  • thing, my dear Guppy, and what I may think before dinner is another
  • thing. Still, even after dinner, I ask myself the question, What am I
  • to do? How am I to live? Ill fo manger, you know," says Mr. Jobling,
  • pronouncing that word as if he meant a necessary fixture in an
  • English stable. "Ill fo manger. That's the French saying, and
  • mangering is as necessary to me as it is to a Frenchman. Or more so."
  • Mr. Smallweed is decidedly of opinion "much more so."
  • "If any man had told me," pursues Jobling, "even so lately as when
  • you and I had the frisk down in Lincolnshire, Guppy, and drove over
  • to see that house at Castle Wold--"
  • Mr. Smallweed corrects him--Chesney Wold.
  • "Chesney Wold. (I thank my honourable friend for that cheer.) If any
  • man had told me then that I should be as hard up at the present time
  • as I literally find myself, I should have--well, I should have
  • pitched into him," says Mr. Jobling, taking a little rum-and-water
  • with an air of desperate resignation; "I should have let fly at his
  • head."
  • "Still, Tony, you were on the wrong side of the post then,"
  • remonstrates Mr. Guppy. "You were talking about nothing else in the
  • gig."
  • "Guppy," says Mr. Jobling, "I will not deny it. I was on the wrong
  • side of the post. But I trusted to things coming round."
  • That very popular trust in flat things coming round! Not in their
  • being beaten round, or worked round, but in their "coming" round! As
  • though a lunatic should trust in the world's "coming" triangular!
  • "I had confident expectations that things would come round and be all
  • square," says Mr. Jobling with some vagueness of expression and
  • perhaps of meaning too. "But I was disappointed. They never did. And
  • when it came to creditors making rows at the office and to people
  • that the office dealt with making complaints about dirty trifles of
  • borrowed money, why there was an end of that connexion. And of any
  • new professional connexion too, for if I was to give a reference
  • to-morrow, it would be mentioned and would sew me up. Then what's a
  • fellow to do? I have been keeping out of the way and living cheap
  • down about the market-gardens, but what's the use of living cheap
  • when you have got no money? You might as well live dear."
  • "Better," Mr. Smallweed thinks.
  • "Certainly. It's the fashionable way; and fashion and whiskers have
  • been my weaknesses, and I don't care who knows it," says Mr. Jobling.
  • "They are great weaknesses--Damme, sir, they are great. Well,"
  • proceeds Mr. Jobling after a defiant visit to his rum-and-water,
  • "what can a fellow do, I ask you, BUT enlist?"
  • Mr. Guppy comes more fully into the conversation to state what, in
  • his opinion, a fellow can do. His manner is the gravely impressive
  • manner of a man who has not committed himself in life otherwise than
  • as he has become the victim of a tender sorrow of the heart.
  • "Jobling," says Mr. Guppy, "myself and our mutual friend Smallweed--"
  • Mr. Smallweed modestly observes, "Gentlemen both!" and drinks.
  • "--Have had a little conversation on this matter more than once since
  • you--"
  • "Say, got the sack!" cries Mr. Jobling bitterly. "Say it, Guppy. You
  • mean it."
  • "No-o-o! Left the Inn," Mr. Smallweed delicately suggests.
  • "Since you left the Inn, Jobling," says Mr. Guppy; "and I have
  • mentioned to our mutual friend Smallweed a plan I have lately thought
  • of proposing. You know Snagsby the stationer?"
  • "I know there is such a stationer," returns Mr. Jobling. "He was not
  • ours, and I am not acquainted with him."
  • "He IS ours, Jobling, and I AM acquainted with him," Mr. Guppy
  • retorts. "Well, sir! I have lately become better acquainted with him
  • through some accidental circumstances that have made me a visitor of
  • his in private life. Those circumstances it is not necessary to offer
  • in argument. They may--or they may not--have some reference to a
  • subject which may--or may not--have cast its shadow on my existence."
  • As it is Mr. Guppy's perplexing way with boastful misery to tempt his
  • particular friends into this subject, and the moment they touch it,
  • to turn on them with that trenchant severity about the chords in the
  • human mind, both Mr. Jobling and Mr. Smallweed decline the pitfall by
  • remaining silent.
  • "Such things may be," repeats Mr. Guppy, "or they may not be. They
  • are no part of the case. It is enough to mention that both Mr. and
  • Mrs. Snagsby are very willing to oblige me and that Snagsby has, in
  • busy times, a good deal of copying work to give out. He has all
  • Tulkinghorn's, and an excellent business besides. I believe if our
  • mutual friend Smallweed were put into the box, he could prove this?"
  • Mr. Smallweed nods and appears greedy to be sworn.
  • "Now, gentlemen of the jury," says Mr. Guppy, "--I mean, now,
  • Jobling--you may say this is a poor prospect of a living. Granted.
  • But it's better than nothing, and better than enlistment. You want
  • time. There must be time for these late affairs to blow over. You
  • might live through it on much worse terms than by writing for
  • Snagsby."
  • Mr. Jobling is about to interrupt when the sagacious Smallweed checks
  • him with a dry cough and the words, "Hem! Shakspeare!"
  • "There are two branches to this subject, Jobling," says Mr. Guppy.
  • "That is the first. I come to the second. You know Krook, the
  • Chancellor, across the lane. Come, Jobling," says Mr. Guppy in his
  • encouraging cross-examination-tone, "I think you know Krook, the
  • Chancellor, across the lane?"
  • "I know him by sight," says Mr. Jobling.
  • "You know him by sight. Very well. And you know little Flite?"
  • "Everybody knows her," says Mr. Jobling.
  • "Everybody knows her. VERY well. Now it has been one of my duties of
  • late to pay Flite a certain weekly allowance, deducting from it the
  • amount of her weekly rent, which I have paid (in consequence of
  • instructions I have received) to Krook himself, regularly in her
  • presence. This has brought me into communication with Krook and into
  • a knowledge of his house and his habits. I know he has a room to let.
  • You may live there at a very low charge under any name you like, as
  • quietly as if you were a hundred miles off. He'll ask no questions
  • and would accept you as a tenant at a word from me--before the clock
  • strikes, if you chose. And I tell you another thing, Jobling," says
  • Mr. Guppy, who has suddenly lowered his voice and become familiar
  • again, "he's an extraordinary old chap--always rummaging among a
  • litter of papers and grubbing away at teaching himself to read and
  • write, without getting on a bit, as it seems to me. He is a most
  • extraordinary old chap, sir. I don't know but what it might be worth
  • a fellow's while to look him up a bit."
  • "You don't mean--" Mr. Jobling begins.
  • "I mean," returns Mr. Guppy, shrugging his shoulders with becoming
  • modesty, "that I can't make him out. I appeal to our mutual friend
  • Smallweed whether he has or has not heard me remark that I can't make
  • him out."
  • Mr. Smallweed bears the concise testimony, "A few!"
  • "I have seen something of the profession and something of life,
  • Tony," says Mr. Guppy, "and it's seldom I can't make a man out, more
  • or less. But such an old card as this, so deep, so sly, and secret
  • (though I don't believe he is ever sober), I never came across. Now,
  • he must be precious old, you know, and he has not a soul about him,
  • and he is reported to be immensely rich; and whether he is a
  • smuggler, or a receiver, or an unlicensed pawnbroker, or a
  • money-lender--all of which I have thought likely at different
  • times--it might pay you to knock up a sort of knowledge of him. I
  • don't see why you shouldn't go in for it, when everything else
  • suits."
  • Mr. Jobling, Mr. Guppy, and Mr. Smallweed all lean their elbows on
  • the table and their chins upon their hands, and look at the ceiling.
  • After a time, they all drink, slowly lean back, put their hands in
  • their pockets, and look at one another.
  • "If I had the energy I once possessed, Tony!" says Mr. Guppy with a
  • sigh. "But there are chords in the human mind--"
  • Expressing the remainder of the desolate sentiment in rum-and-water,
  • Mr. Guppy concludes by resigning the adventure to Tony Jobling and
  • informing him that during the vacation and while things are slack,
  • his purse, "as far as three or four or even five pound goes," will be
  • at his disposal. "For never shall it be said," Mr. Guppy adds with
  • emphasis, "that William Guppy turned his back upon his friend!"
  • The latter part of the proposal is so directly to the purpose that
  • Mr. Jobling says with emotion, "Guppy, my trump, your fist!" Mr.
  • Guppy presents it, saying, "Jobling, my boy, there it is!" Mr.
  • Jobling returns, "Guppy, we have been pals now for some years!" Mr.
  • Guppy replies, "Jobling, we have."
  • They then shake hands, and Mr. Jobling adds in a feeling manner,
  • "Thank you, Guppy, I don't know but what I WILL take another glass
  • for old acquaintance sake."
  • "Krook's last lodger died there," observes Mr. Guppy in an incidental
  • way.
  • "Did he though!" says Mr. Jobling.
  • "There was a verdict. Accidental death. You don't mind that?"
  • "No," says Mr. Jobling, "I don't mind it; but he might as well have
  • died somewhere else. It's devilish odd that he need go and die at MY
  • place!" Mr. Jobling quite resents this liberty, several times
  • returning to it with such remarks as, "There are places enough to die
  • in, I should think!" or, "He wouldn't have liked my dying at HIS
  • place, I dare say!"
  • However, the compact being virtually made, Mr. Guppy proposes to
  • dispatch the trusty Smallweed to ascertain if Mr. Krook is at home,
  • as in that case they may complete the negotiation without delay. Mr.
  • Jobling approving, Smallweed puts himself under the tall hat and
  • conveys it out of the dining-rooms in the Guppy manner. He soon
  • returns with the intelligence that Mr. Krook is at home and that he
  • has seen him through the shop-door, sitting in the back premises,
  • sleeping "like one o'clock."
  • "Then I'll pay," says Mr. Guppy, "and we'll go and see him. Small,
  • what will it be?"
  • Mr. Smallweed, compelling the attendance of the waitress with one
  • hitch of his eyelash, instantly replies as follows: "Four veals and
  • hams is three, and four potatoes is three and four, and one summer
  • cabbage is three and six, and three marrows is four and six, and six
  • breads is five, and three Cheshires is five and three, and four
  • half-pints of half-and-half is six and three, and four small rums is
  • eight and three, and three Pollys is eight and six. Eight and six in
  • half a sovereign, Polly, and eighteenpence out!"
  • Not at all excited by these stupendous calculations, Smallweed
  • dismisses his friends with a cool nod and remains behind to take a
  • little admiring notice of Polly, as opportunity may serve, and to
  • read the daily papers, which are so very large in proportion to
  • himself, shorn of his hat, that when he holds up the Times to run his
  • eye over the columns, he seems to have retired for the night and to
  • have disappeared under the bedclothes.
  • Mr. Guppy and Mr. Jobling repair to the rag and bottle shop, where
  • they find Krook still sleeping like one o'clock, that is to say,
  • breathing stertorously with his chin upon his breast and quite
  • insensible to any external sounds or even to gentle shaking. On the
  • table beside him, among the usual lumber, stand an empty gin-bottle
  • and a glass. The unwholesome air is so stained with this liquor that
  • even the green eyes of the cat upon her shelf, as they open and shut
  • and glimmer on the visitors, look drunk.
  • "Hold up here!" says Mr. Guppy, giving the relaxed figure of the old
  • man another shake. "Mr. Krook! Halloa, sir!"
  • But it would seem as easy to wake a bundle of old clothes with a
  • spirituous heat smouldering in it. "Did you ever see such a stupor as
  • he falls into, between drink and sleep?" says Mr. Guppy.
  • "If this is his regular sleep," returns Jobling, rather alarmed,
  • "it'll last a long time one of these days, I am thinking."
  • "It's always more like a fit than a nap," says Mr. Guppy, shaking him
  • again. "Halloa, your lordship! Why, he might be robbed fifty times
  • over! Open your eyes!"
  • After much ado, he opens them, but without appearing to see his
  • visitors or any other objects. Though he crosses one leg on another,
  • and folds his hands, and several times closes and opens his parched
  • lips, he seems to all intents and purposes as insensible as before.
  • "He is alive, at any rate," says Mr. Guppy. "How are you, my Lord
  • Chancellor. I have brought a friend of mine, sir, on a little matter
  • of business."
  • The old man still sits, often smacking his dry lips without the least
  • consciousness. After some minutes he makes an attempt to rise. They
  • help him up, and he staggers against the wall and stares at them.
  • "How do you do, Mr. Krook?" says Mr. Guppy in some discomfiture. "How
  • do you do, sir? You are looking charming, Mr. Krook. I hope you are
  • pretty well?"
  • The old man, in aiming a purposeless blow at Mr. Guppy, or at
  • nothing, feebly swings himself round and comes with his face against
  • the wall. So he remains for a minute or two, heaped up against it,
  • and then staggers down the shop to the front door. The air, the
  • movement in the court, the lapse of time, or the combination of these
  • things recovers him. He comes back pretty steadily, adjusting his fur
  • cap on his head and looking keenly at them.
  • "Your servant, gentlemen; I've been dozing. Hi! I am hard to wake,
  • odd times."
  • "Rather so, indeed, sir," responds Mr. Guppy.
  • "What? You've been a-trying to do it, have you?" says the suspicious
  • Krook.
  • "Only a little," Mr. Guppy explains.
  • The old man's eye resting on the empty bottle, he takes it up,
  • examines it, and slowly tilts it upside down.
  • "I say!" he cries like the hobgoblin in the story. "Somebody's been
  • making free here!"
  • "I assure you we found it so," says Mr. Guppy. "Would you allow me to
  • get it filled for you?"
  • "Yes, certainly I would!" cries Krook in high glee. "Certainly I
  • would! Don't mention it! Get it filled next door--Sol's Arms--the
  • Lord Chancellor's fourteenpenny. Bless you, they know ME!"
  • He so presses the empty bottle upon Mr. Guppy that that gentleman,
  • with a nod to his friend, accepts the trust and hurries out and
  • hurries in again with the bottle filled. The old man receives it in
  • his arms like a beloved grandchild and pats it tenderly.
  • "But, I say," he whispers, with his eyes screwed up, after tasting
  • it, "this ain't the Lord Chancellor's fourteenpenny. This is
  • eighteenpenny!"
  • "I thought you might like that better," says Mr. Guppy.
  • "You're a nobleman, sir," returns Krook with another taste, and his
  • hot breath seems to come towards them like a flame. "You're a baron
  • of the land."
  • Taking advantage of this auspicious moment, Mr. Guppy presents his
  • friend under the impromptu name of Mr. Weevle and states the object
  • of their visit. Krook, with his bottle under his arm (he never gets
  • beyond a certain point of either drunkenness or sobriety), takes time
  • to survey his proposed lodger and seems to approve of him. "You'd
  • like to see the room, young man?" he says. "Ah! It's a good room!
  • Been whitewashed. Been cleaned down with soft soap and soda. Hi! It's
  • worth twice the rent, letting alone my company when you want it and
  • such a cat to keep the mice away."
  • Commending the room after this manner, the old man takes them
  • upstairs, where indeed they do find it cleaner than it used to be and
  • also containing some old articles of furniture which he has dug up
  • from his inexhaustible stores. The terms are easily concluded--for
  • the Lord Chancellor cannot be hard on Mr. Guppy, associated as he is
  • with Kenge and Carboy, Jarndyce and Jarndyce, and other famous claims
  • on his professional consideration--and it is agreed that Mr. Weevle
  • shall take possession on the morrow. Mr. Weevle and Mr. Guppy then
  • repair to Cook's Court, Cursitor Street, where the personal
  • introduction of the former to Mr. Snagsby is effected and (more
  • important) the vote and interest of Mrs. Snagsby are secured. They
  • then report progress to the eminent Smallweed, waiting at the office
  • in his tall hat for that purpose, and separate, Mr. Guppy explaining
  • that he would terminate his little entertainment by standing treat at
  • the play but that there are chords in the human mind which would
  • render it a hollow mockery.
  • On the morrow, in the dusk of evening, Mr. Weevle modestly appears at
  • Krook's, by no means incommoded with luggage, and establishes himself
  • in his new lodging, where the two eyes in the shutters stare at him
  • in his sleep, as if they were full of wonder. On the following day
  • Mr. Weevle, who is a handy good-for-nothing kind of young fellow,
  • borrows a needle and thread of Miss Flite and a hammer of his
  • landlord and goes to work devising apologies for window-curtains, and
  • knocking up apologies for shelves, and hanging up his two teacups,
  • milkpot, and crockery sundries on a pennyworth of little hooks, like
  • a shipwrecked sailor making the best of it.
  • But what Mr. Weevle prizes most of all his few possessions (next
  • after his light whiskers, for which he has an attachment that only
  • whiskers can awaken in the breast of man) is a choice collection of
  • copper-plate impressions from that truly national work The Divinities
  • of Albion, or Galaxy Gallery of British Beauty, representing ladies
  • of title and fashion in every variety of smirk that art, combined
  • with capital, is capable of producing. With these magnificent
  • portraits, unworthily confined in a band-box during his seclusion
  • among the market-gardens, he decorates his apartment; and as the
  • Galaxy Gallery of British Beauty wears every variety of fancy dress,
  • plays every variety of musical instrument, fondles every variety of
  • dog, ogles every variety of prospect, and is backed up by every
  • variety of flower-pot and balustrade, the result is very imposing.
  • But fashion is Mr. Weevle's, as it was Tony Jobling's, weakness. To
  • borrow yesterday's paper from the Sol's Arms of an evening and read
  • about the brilliant and distinguished meteors that are shooting
  • across the fashionable sky in every direction is unspeakable
  • consolation to him. To know what member of what brilliant and
  • distinguished circle accomplished the brilliant and distinguished
  • feat of joining it yesterday or contemplates the no less brilliant
  • and distinguished feat of leaving it to-morrow gives him a thrill of
  • joy. To be informed what the Galaxy Gallery of British Beauty is
  • about, and means to be about, and what Galaxy marriages are on the
  • tapis, and what Galaxy rumours are in circulation, is to become
  • acquainted with the most glorious destinies of mankind. Mr. Weevle
  • reverts from this intelligence to the Galaxy portraits implicated,
  • and seems to know the originals, and to be known of them.
  • For the rest he is a quiet lodger, full of handy shifts and devices
  • as before mentioned, able to cook and clean for himself as well as to
  • carpenter, and developing social inclinations after the shades of
  • evening have fallen on the court. At those times, when he is not
  • visited by Mr. Guppy or by a small light in his likeness quenched in
  • a dark hat, he comes out of his dull room--where he has inherited the
  • deal wilderness of desk bespattered with a rain of ink--and talks to
  • Krook or is "very free," as they call it in the court, commendingly,
  • with any one disposed for conversation. Wherefore, Mrs. Piper, who
  • leads the court, is impelled to offer two remarks to Mrs. Perkins:
  • firstly, that if her Johnny was to have whiskers, she could wish 'em
  • to be identically like that young man's; and secondly, "Mark my
  • words, Mrs. Perkins, ma'am, and don't you be surprised, Lord bless
  • you, if that young man comes in at last for old Krook's money!"
  • CHAPTER XXI
  • The Smallweed Family
  • In a rather ill-favoured and ill-savoured neighbourhood, though one
  • of its rising grounds bears the name of Mount Pleasant, the Elfin
  • Smallweed, christened Bartholomew and known on the domestic hearth as
  • Bart, passes that limited portion of his time on which the office and
  • its contingencies have no claim. He dwells in a little narrow street,
  • always solitary, shady, and sad, closely bricked in on all sides like
  • a tomb, but where there yet lingers the stump of an old forest tree
  • whose flavour is about as fresh and natural as the Smallweed smack of
  • youth.
  • There has been only one child in the Smallweed family for several
  • generations. Little old men and women there have been, but no child,
  • until Mr. Smallweed's grandmother, now living, became weak in her
  • intellect and fell (for the first time) into a childish state. With
  • such infantine graces as a total want of observation, memory,
  • understanding, and interest, and an eternal disposition to fall
  • asleep over the fire and into it, Mr. Smallweed's grandmother has
  • undoubtedly brightened the family.
  • Mr. Smallweed's grandfather is likewise of the party. He is in a
  • helpless condition as to his lower, and nearly so as to his upper,
  • limbs, but his mind is unimpaired. It holds, as well as it ever held,
  • the first four rules of arithmetic and a certain small collection of
  • the hardest facts. In respect of ideality, reverence, wonder, and
  • other such phrenological attributes, it is no worse off than it used
  • to be. Everything that Mr. Smallweed's grandfather ever put away in
  • his mind was a grub at first, and is a grub at last. In all his life
  • he has never bred a single butterfly.
  • The father of this pleasant grandfather, of the neighbourhood of
  • Mount Pleasant, was a horny-skinned, two-legged, money-getting
  • species of spider who spun webs to catch unwary flies and retired
  • into holes until they were entrapped. The name of this old pagan's
  • god was Compound Interest. He lived for it, married it, died of it.
  • Meeting with a heavy loss in an honest little enterprise in which all
  • the loss was intended to have been on the other side, he broke
  • something--something necessary to his existence, therefore it
  • couldn't have been his heart--and made an end of his career. As his
  • character was not good, and he had been bred at a charity school in a
  • complete course, according to question and answer, of those ancient
  • people the Amorites and Hittites, he was frequently quoted as an
  • example of the failure of education.
  • His spirit shone through his son, to whom he had always preached of
  • "going out" early in life and whom he made a clerk in a sharp
  • scrivener's office at twelve years old. There the young gentleman
  • improved his mind, which was of a lean and anxious character, and
  • developing the family gifts, gradually elevated himself into the
  • discounting profession. Going out early in life and marrying late, as
  • his father had done before him, he too begat a lean and
  • anxious-minded son, who in his turn, going out early in life and
  • marrying late, became the father of Bartholomew and Judith Smallweed,
  • twins. During the whole time consumed in the slow growth of this
  • family tree, the house of Smallweed, always early to go out and late
  • to marry, has strengthened itself in its practical character, has
  • discarded all amusements, discountenanced all story-books,
  • fairy-tales, fictions, and fables, and banished all levities
  • whatsoever. Hence the gratifying fact that it has had no child born
  • to it and that the complete little men and women whom it has produced
  • have been observed to bear a likeness to old monkeys with something
  • depressing on their minds.
  • At the present time, in the dark little parlour certain feet below
  • the level of the street--a grim, hard, uncouth parlour, only
  • ornamented with the coarsest of baize table-covers, and the hardest
  • of sheet-iron tea-trays, and offering in its decorative character no
  • bad allegorical representation of Grandfather Smallweed's
  • mind--seated in two black horsehair porter's chairs, one on each side
  • of the fire-place, the superannuated Mr. and Mrs. Smallweed while
  • away the rosy hours. On the stove are a couple of trivets for the
  • pots and kettles which it is Grandfather Smallweed's usual occupation
  • to watch, and projecting from the chimney-piece between them is a
  • sort of brass gallows for roasting, which he also superintends when
  • it is in action. Under the venerable Mr. Smallweed's seat and guarded
  • by his spindle legs is a drawer in his chair, reported to contain
  • property to a fabulous amount. Beside him is a spare cushion with
  • which he is always provided in order that he may have something to
  • throw at the venerable partner of his respected age whenever she
  • makes an allusion to money--a subject on which he is particularly
  • sensitive.
  • "And where's Bart?" Grandfather Smallweed inquires of Judy, Bart's
  • twin sister.
  • "He an't come in yet," says Judy.
  • "It's his tea-time, isn't it?"
  • "No."
  • "How much do you mean to say it wants then?"
  • "Ten minutes."
  • "Hey?"
  • "Ten minutes." (Loud on the part of Judy.)
  • "Ho!" says Grandfather Smallweed. "Ten minutes."
  • Grandmother Smallweed, who has been mumbling and shaking her head at
  • the trivets, hearing figures mentioned, connects them with money and
  • screeches like a horrible old parrot without any plumage, "Ten
  • ten-pound notes!"
  • Grandfather Smallweed immediately throws the cushion at her.
  • "Drat you, be quiet!" says the good old man.
  • The effect of this act of jaculation is twofold. It not only doubles
  • up Mrs. Smallweed's head against the side of her porter's chair and
  • causes her to present, when extricated by her granddaughter, a highly
  • unbecoming state of cap, but the necessary exertion recoils on Mr.
  • Smallweed himself, whom it throws back into HIS porter's chair like a
  • broken puppet. The excellent old gentleman being at these times a
  • mere clothes-bag with a black skull-cap on the top of it, does not
  • present a very animated appearance until he has undergone the two
  • operations at the hands of his granddaughter of being shaken up like
  • a great bottle and poked and punched like a great bolster. Some
  • indication of a neck being developed in him by these means, he and
  • the sharer of his life's evening again fronting one another in their
  • two porter's chairs, like a couple of sentinels long forgotten on
  • their post by the Black Serjeant, Death.
  • Judy the twin is worthy company for these associates. She is so
  • indubitably sister to Mr. Smallweed the younger that the two kneaded
  • into one would hardly make a young person of average proportions,
  • while she so happily exemplifies the before-mentioned family likeness
  • to the monkey tribe that attired in a spangled robe and cap she might
  • walk about the table-land on the top of a barrel-organ without
  • exciting much remark as an unusual specimen. Under existing
  • circumstances, however, she is dressed in a plain, spare gown of
  • brown stuff.
  • Judy never owned a doll, never heard of Cinderella, never played at
  • any game. She once or twice fell into children's company when she was
  • about ten years old, but the children couldn't get on with Judy, and
  • Judy couldn't get on with them. She seemed like an animal of another
  • species, and there was instinctive repugnance on both sides. It is
  • very doubtful whether Judy knows how to laugh. She has so rarely seen
  • the thing done that the probabilities are strong the other way. Of
  • anything like a youthful laugh, she certainly can have no conception.
  • If she were to try one, she would find her teeth in her way,
  • modelling that action of her face, as she has unconsciously modelled
  • all its other expressions, on her pattern of sordid age. Such is
  • Judy.
  • And her twin brother couldn't wind up a top for his life. He knows no
  • more of Jack the Giant Killer or of Sinbad the Sailor than he knows
  • of the people in the stars. He could as soon play at leap-frog or at
  • cricket as change into a cricket or a frog himself. But he is so much
  • the better off than his sister that on his narrow world of fact an
  • opening has dawned into such broader regions as lie within the ken of
  • Mr. Guppy. Hence his admiration and his emulation of that shining
  • enchanter.
  • Judy, with a gong-like clash and clatter, sets one of the sheet-iron
  • tea-trays on the table and arranges cups and saucers. The bread she
  • puts on in an iron basket, and the butter (and not much of it) in a
  • small pewter plate. Grandfather Smallweed looks hard after the tea as
  • it is served out and asks Judy where the girl is.
  • "Charley, do you mean?" says Judy.
  • "Hey?" from Grandfather Smallweed.
  • "Charley, do you mean?"
  • This touches a spring in Grandmother Smallweed, who, chuckling as
  • usual at the trivets, cries, "Over the water! Charley over the water,
  • Charley over the water, over the water to Charley, Charley over the
  • water, over the water to Charley!" and becomes quite energetic about
  • it. Grandfather looks at the cushion but has not sufficiently
  • recovered his late exertion.
  • "Ha!" he says when there is silence. "If that's her name. She eats a
  • deal. It would be better to allow her for her keep."
  • Judy, with her brother's wink, shakes her head and purses up her
  • mouth into no without saying it.
  • "No?" returns the old man. "Why not?"
  • "She'd want sixpence a day, and we can do it for less," says Judy.
  • "Sure?"
  • Judy answers with a nod of deepest meaning and calls, as she scrapes
  • the butter on the loaf with every precaution against waste and cuts
  • it into slices, "You, Charley, where are you?" Timidly obedient to
  • the summons, a little girl in a rough apron and a large bonnet, with
  • her hands covered with soap and water and a scrubbing brush in one of
  • them, appears, and curtsys.
  • "What work are you about now?" says Judy, making an ancient snap at
  • her like a very sharp old beldame.
  • "I'm a-cleaning the upstairs back room, miss," replies Charley.
  • "Mind you do it thoroughly, and don't loiter. Shirking won't do for
  • me. Make haste! Go along!" cries Judy with a stamp upon the ground.
  • "You girls are more trouble than you're worth, by half."
  • On this severe matron, as she returns to her task of scraping the
  • butter and cutting the bread, falls the shadow of her brother,
  • looking in at the window. For whom, knife and loaf in hand, she opens
  • the street-door.
  • "Aye, aye, Bart!" says Grandfather Smallweed. "Here you are, hey?"
  • "Here I am," says Bart.
  • "Been along with your friend again, Bart?"
  • Small nods.
  • "Dining at his expense, Bart?"
  • Small nods again.
  • "That's right. Live at his expense as much as you can, and take
  • warning by his foolish example. That's the use of such a friend. The
  • only use you can put him to," says the venerable sage.
  • His grandson, without receiving this good counsel as dutifully as he
  • might, honours it with all such acceptance as may lie in a slight
  • wink and a nod and takes a chair at the tea-table. The four old faces
  • then hover over teacups like a company of ghastly cherubim, Mrs.
  • Smallweed perpetually twitching her head and chattering at the
  • trivets and Mr. Smallweed requiring to be repeatedly shaken up like a
  • large black draught.
  • "Yes, yes," says the good old gentleman, reverting to his lesson of
  • wisdom. "That's such advice as your father would have given you,
  • Bart. You never saw your father. More's the pity. He was my true
  • son." Whether it is intended to be conveyed that he was particularly
  • pleasant to look at, on that account, does not appear.
  • "He was my true son," repeats the old gentleman, folding his bread
  • and butter on his knee, "a good accountant, and died fifteen years
  • ago."
  • Mrs. Smallweed, following her usual instinct, breaks out with
  • "Fifteen hundred pound. Fifteen hundred pound in a black box, fifteen
  • hundred pound locked up, fifteen hundred pound put away and hid!" Her
  • worthy husband, setting aside his bread and butter, immediately
  • discharges the cushion at her, crushes her against the side of her
  • chair, and falls back in his own, overpowered. His appearance, after
  • visiting Mrs. Smallweed with one of these admonitions, is
  • particularly impressive and not wholly prepossessing, firstly because
  • the exertion generally twists his black skull-cap over one eye and
  • gives him an air of goblin rakishness, secondly because he mutters
  • violent imprecations against Mrs. Smallweed, and thirdly because the
  • contrast between those powerful expressions and his powerless figure
  • is suggestive of a baleful old malignant who would be very wicked if
  • he could. All this, however, is so common in the Smallweed family
  • circle that it produces no impression. The old gentleman is merely
  • shaken and has his internal feathers beaten up, the cushion is
  • restored to its usual place beside him, and the old lady, perhaps
  • with her cap adjusted and perhaps not, is planted in her chair again,
  • ready to be bowled down like a ninepin.
  • Some time elapses in the present instance before the old gentleman is
  • sufficiently cool to resume his discourse, and even then he mixes it
  • up with several edifying expletives addressed to the unconscious
  • partner of his bosom, who holds communication with nothing on earth
  • but the trivets. As thus: "If your father, Bart, had lived longer, he
  • might have been worth a deal of money--you brimstone chatterer!--but
  • just as he was beginning to build up the house that he had been
  • making the foundations for, through many a year--you jade of a
  • magpie, jackdaw, and poll-parrot, what do you mean!--he took ill and
  • died of a low fever, always being a sparing and a spare man, full of
  • business care--I should like to throw a cat at you instead of a
  • cushion, and I will too if you make such a confounded fool of
  • yourself!--and your mother, who was a prudent woman as dry as a chip,
  • just dwindled away like touchwood after you and Judy were born--you
  • are an old pig. You are a brimstone pig. You're a head of swine!"
  • Judy, not interested in what she has often heard, begins to collect
  • in a basin various tributary streams of tea, from the bottoms of cups
  • and saucers and from the bottom of the tea-pot for the little
  • charwoman's evening meal. In like manner she gets together, in the
  • iron bread-basket, as many outside fragments and worn-down heels of
  • loaves as the rigid economy of the house has left in existence.
  • "But your father and me were partners, Bart," says the old gentleman,
  • "and when I am gone, you and Judy will have all there is. It's rare
  • for you both that you went out early in life--Judy to the flower
  • business, and you to the law. You won't want to spend it. You'll get
  • your living without it, and put more to it. When I am gone, Judy will
  • go back to the flower business and you'll still stick to the law."
  • One might infer from Judy's appearance that her business rather lay
  • with the thorns than the flowers, but she has in her time been
  • apprenticed to the art and mystery of artificial flower-making. A
  • close observer might perhaps detect both in her eye and her
  • brother's, when their venerable grandsire anticipates his being gone,
  • some little impatience to know when he may be going, and some
  • resentful opinion that it is time he went.
  • "Now, if everybody has done," says Judy, completing her preparations,
  • "I'll have that girl in to her tea. She would never leave off if she
  • took it by herself in the kitchen."
  • Charley is accordingly introduced, and under a heavy fire of eyes,
  • sits down to her basin and a Druidical ruin of bread and butter. In
  • the active superintendence of this young person, Judy Smallweed
  • appears to attain a perfectly geological age and to date from the
  • remotest periods. Her systematic manner of flying at her and pouncing
  • on her, with or without pretence, whether or no, is wonderful,
  • evincing an accomplishment in the art of girl-driving seldom reached
  • by the oldest practitioners.
  • "Now, don't stare about you all the afternoon," cries Judy, shaking
  • her head and stamping her foot as she happens to catch the glance
  • which has been previously sounding the basin of tea, "but take your
  • victuals and get back to your work."
  • "Yes, miss," says Charley.
  • "Don't say yes," returns Miss Smallweed, "for I know what you girls
  • are. Do it without saying it, and then I may begin to believe you."
  • Charley swallows a great gulp of tea in token of submission and so
  • disperses the Druidical ruins that Miss Smallweed charges her not to
  • gormandize, which "in you girls," she observes, is disgusting.
  • Charley might find some more difficulty in meeting her views on the
  • general subject of girls but for a knock at the door.
  • "See who it is, and don't chew when you open it!" cries Judy.
  • The object of her attentions withdrawing for the purpose, Miss
  • Smallweed takes that opportunity of jumbling the remainder of the
  • bread and butter together and launching two or three dirty tea-cups
  • into the ebb-tide of the basin of tea as a hint that she considers
  • the eating and drinking terminated.
  • "Now! Who is it, and what's wanted?" says the snappish Judy.
  • It is one Mr. George, it appears. Without other announcement or
  • ceremony, Mr. George walks in.
  • "Whew!" says Mr. George. "You are hot here. Always a fire, eh? Well!
  • Perhaps you do right to get used to one." Mr. George makes the latter
  • remark to himself as he nods to Grandfather Smallweed.
  • "Ho! It's you!" cries the old gentleman. "How de do? How de do?"
  • "Middling," replies Mr. George, taking a chair. "Your granddaughter I
  • have had the honour of seeing before; my service to you, miss."
  • "This is my grandson," says Grandfather Smallweed. "You ha'n't seen
  • him before. He is in the law and not much at home."
  • "My service to him, too! He is like his sister. He is very like his
  • sister. He is devilish like his sister," says Mr. George, laying a
  • great and not altogether complimentary stress on his last adjective.
  • "And how does the world use you, Mr. George?" Grandfather Smallweed
  • inquires, slowly rubbing his legs.
  • "Pretty much as usual. Like a football."
  • He is a swarthy brown man of fifty, well made, and good looking, with
  • crisp dark hair, bright eyes, and a broad chest. His sinewy and
  • powerful hands, as sunburnt as his face, have evidently been used to
  • a pretty rough life. What is curious about him is that he sits
  • forward on his chair as if he were, from long habit, allowing space
  • for some dress or accoutrements that he has altogether laid aside.
  • His step too is measured and heavy and would go well with a weighty
  • clash and jingle of spurs. He is close-shaved now, but his mouth is
  • set as if his upper lip had been for years familiar with a great
  • moustache; and his manner of occasionally laying the open palm of his
  • broad brown hand upon it is to the same effect. Altogether one might
  • guess Mr. George to have been a trooper once upon a time.
  • A special contrast Mr. George makes to the Smallweed family. Trooper
  • was never yet billeted upon a household more unlike him. It is a
  • broadsword to an oyster-knife. His developed figure and their stunted
  • forms, his large manner filling any amount of room and their little
  • narrow pinched ways, his sounding voice and their sharp spare tones,
  • are in the strongest and the strangest opposition. As he sits in the
  • middle of the grim parlour, leaning a little forward, with his hands
  • upon his thighs and his elbows squared, he looks as though, if he
  • remained there long, he would absorb into himself the whole family
  • and the whole four-roomed house, extra little back-kitchen and all.
  • "Do you rub your legs to rub life into 'em?" he asks of Grandfather
  • Smallweed after looking round the room.
  • "Why, it's partly a habit, Mr. George, and--yes--it partly helps the
  • circulation," he replies.
  • "The cir-cu-la-tion!" repeats Mr. George, folding his arms upon his
  • chest and seeming to become two sizes larger. "Not much of that, I
  • should think."
  • "Truly I'm old, Mr. George," says Grandfather Smallweed. "But I can
  • carry my years. I'm older than HER," nodding at his wife, "and see
  • what she is? You're a brimstone chatterer!" with a sudden revival of
  • his late hostility.
  • "Unlucky old soul!" says Mr. George, turning his head in that
  • direction. "Don't scold the old lady. Look at her here, with her poor
  • cap half off her head and her poor hair all in a muddle. Hold up,
  • ma'am. That's better. There we are! Think of your mother, Mr.
  • Smallweed," says Mr. George, coming back to his seat from assisting
  • her, "if your wife an't enough."
  • "I suppose you were an excellent son, Mr. George?" the old man hints
  • with a leer.
  • The colour of Mr. George's face rather deepens as he replies, "Why
  • no. I wasn't."
  • "I am astonished at it."
  • "So am I. I ought to have been a good son, and I think I meant to
  • have been one. But I wasn't. I was a thundering bad son, that's the
  • long and the short of it, and never was a credit to anybody."
  • "Surprising!" cries the old man.
  • "However," Mr. George resumes, "the less said about it, the better
  • now. Come! You know the agreement. Always a pipe out of the two
  • months' interest! (Bosh! It's all correct. You needn't be afraid to
  • order the pipe. Here's the new bill, and here's the two months'
  • interest-money, and a devil-and-all of a scrape it is to get it
  • together in my business.)"
  • Mr. George sits, with his arms folded, consuming the family and the
  • parlour while Grandfather Smallweed is assisted by Judy to two black
  • leathern cases out of a locked bureau, in one of which he secures the
  • document he has just received, and from the other takes another
  • similar document which he hands to Mr. George, who twists it up for a
  • pipelight. As the old man inspects, through his glasses, every
  • up-stroke and down-stroke of both documents before he releases them
  • from their leathern prison, and as he counts the money three times
  • over and requires Judy to say every word she utters at least twice,
  • and is as tremulously slow of speech and action as it is possible to
  • be, this business is a long time in progress. When it is quite
  • concluded, and not before, he disengages his ravenous eyes and
  • fingers from it and answers Mr. George's last remark by saying,
  • "Afraid to order the pipe? We are not so mercenary as that, sir.
  • Judy, see directly to the pipe and the glass of cold brandy-and-water
  • for Mr. George."
  • The sportive twins, who have been looking straight before them all
  • this time except when they have been engrossed by the black leathern
  • cases, retire together, generally disdainful of the visitor, but
  • leaving him to the old man as two young cubs might leave a traveller
  • to the parental bear.
  • "And there you sit, I suppose, all the day long, eh?" says Mr. George
  • with folded arms.
  • "Just so, just so," the old man nods.
  • "And don't you occupy yourself at all?"
  • "I watch the fire--and the boiling and the roasting--"
  • "When there is any," says Mr. George with great expression.
  • "Just so. When there is any."
  • "Don't you read or get read to?"
  • The old man shakes his head with sharp sly triumph. "No, no. We have
  • never been readers in our family. It don't pay. Stuff. Idleness.
  • Folly. No, no!"
  • "There's not much to choose between your two states," says the
  • visitor in a key too low for the old man's dull hearing as he looks
  • from him to the old woman and back again. "I say!" in a louder voice.
  • "I hear you."
  • "You'll sell me up at last, I suppose, when I am a day in arrear."
  • "My dear friend!" cries Grandfather Smallweed, stretching out both
  • hands to embrace him. "Never! Never, my dear friend! But my friend in
  • the city that I got to lend you the money--HE might!"
  • "Oh! You can't answer for him?" says Mr. George, finishing the
  • inquiry in his lower key with the words "You lying old rascal!"
  • "My dear friend, he is not to be depended on. I wouldn't trust him.
  • He will have his bond, my dear friend."
  • "Devil doubt him," says Mr. George. Charley appearing with a
  • tray, on which are the pipe, a small paper of tobacco, and the
  • brandy-and-water, he asks her, "How do you come here! You haven't got
  • the family face."
  • "I goes out to work, sir," returns Charley.
  • The trooper (if trooper he be or have been) takes her bonnet off,
  • with a light touch for so strong a hand, and pats her on the head.
  • "You give the house almost a wholesome look. It wants a bit of youth
  • as much as it wants fresh air." Then he dismisses her, lights his
  • pipe, and drinks to Mr. Smallweed's friend in the city--the one
  • solitary flight of that esteemed old gentleman's imagination.
  • "So you think he might be hard upon me, eh?"
  • "I think he might--I am afraid he would. I have known him do it,"
  • says Grandfather Smallweed incautiously, "twenty times."
  • Incautiously, because his stricken better-half, who has been dozing
  • over the fire for some time, is instantly aroused and jabbers "Twenty
  • thousand pounds, twenty twenty-pound notes in a money-box, twenty
  • guineas, twenty million twenty per cent, twenty--" and is then cut
  • short by the flying cushion, which the visitor, to whom this singular
  • experiment appears to be a novelty, snatches from her face as it
  • crushes her in the usual manner.
  • "You're a brimstone idiot. You're a scorpion--a brimstone scorpion!
  • You're a sweltering toad. You're a chattering clattering broomstick
  • witch that ought to be burnt!" gasps the old man, prostrate in his
  • chair. "My dear friend, will you shake me up a little?"
  • Mr. George, who has been looking first at one of them and then at the
  • other, as if he were demented, takes his venerable acquaintance by
  • the throat on receiving this request, and dragging him upright in his
  • chair as easily as if he were a doll, appears in two minds whether or
  • no to shake all future power of cushioning out of him and shake him
  • into his grave. Resisting the temptation, but agitating him violently
  • enough to make his head roll like a harlequin's, he puts him smartly
  • down in his chair again and adjusts his skull-cap with such a rub
  • that the old man winks with both eyes for a minute afterwards.
  • "O Lord!" gasps Mr. Smallweed. "That'll do. Thank you, my dear
  • friend, that'll do. Oh, dear me, I'm out of breath. O Lord!" And Mr.
  • Smallweed says it not without evident apprehensions of his dear
  • friend, who still stands over him looming larger than ever.
  • The alarming presence, however, gradually subsides into its chair and
  • falls to smoking in long puffs, consoling itself with the
  • philosophical reflection, "The name of your friend in the city begins
  • with a D, comrade, and you're about right respecting the bond."
  • "Did you speak, Mr. George?" inquires the old man.
  • The trooper shakes his head, and leaning forward with his right elbow
  • on his right knee and his pipe supported in that hand, while his
  • other hand, resting on his left leg, squares his left elbow in a
  • martial manner, continues to smoke. Meanwhile he looks at Mr.
  • Smallweed with grave attention and now and then fans the cloud of
  • smoke away in order that he may see him the more clearly.
  • "I take it," he says, making just as much and as little change in his
  • position as will enable him to reach the glass to his lips with a
  • round, full action, "that I am the only man alive (or dead either)
  • that gets the value of a pipe out of YOU?"
  • "Well," returns the old man, "it's true that I don't see company, Mr.
  • George, and that I don't treat. I can't afford to it. But as you, in
  • your pleasant way, made your pipe a condition--"
  • "Why, it's not for the value of it; that's no great thing. It was a
  • fancy to get it out of you. To have something in for my money."
  • "Ha! You're prudent, prudent, sir!" cries Grandfather Smallweed,
  • rubbing his legs.
  • "Very. I always was." Puff. "It's a sure sign of my prudence that I
  • ever found the way here." Puff. "Also, that I am what I am." Puff. "I
  • am well known to be prudent," says Mr. George, composedly smoking. "I
  • rose in life that way."
  • "Don't be down-hearted, sir. You may rise yet."
  • Mr. George laughs and drinks.
  • "Ha'n't you no relations, now," asks Grandfather Smallweed with a
  • twinkle in his eyes, "who would pay off this little principal or who
  • would lend you a good name or two that I could persuade my friend in
  • the city to make you a further advance upon? Two good names would be
  • sufficient for my friend in the city. Ha'n't you no such relations,
  • Mr. George?"
  • Mr. George, still composedly smoking, replies, "If I had, I shouldn't
  • trouble them. I have been trouble enough to my belongings in my day.
  • It MAY be a very good sort of penitence in a vagabond, who has wasted
  • the best time of his life, to go back then to decent people that he
  • never was a credit to and live upon them, but it's not my sort. The
  • best kind of amends then for having gone away is to keep away, in my
  • opinion."
  • "But natural affection, Mr. George," hints Grandfather Smallweed.
  • "For two good names, hey?" says Mr. George, shaking his head and
  • still composedly smoking. "No. That's not my sort either."
  • Grandfather Smallweed has been gradually sliding down in his chair
  • since his last adjustment and is now a bundle of clothes with a voice
  • in it calling for Judy. That houri, appearing, shakes him up in the
  • usual manner and is charged by the old gentleman to remain near him.
  • For he seems chary of putting his visitor to the trouble of repeating
  • his late attentions.
  • "Ha!" he observes when he is in trim again. "If you could have traced
  • out the captain, Mr. George, it would have been the making of you. If
  • when you first came here, in consequence of our advertisement in the
  • newspapers--when I say 'our,' I'm alluding to the advertisements of
  • my friend in the city, and one or two others who embark their capital
  • in the same way, and are so friendly towards me as sometimes to give
  • me a lift with my little pittance--if at that time you could have
  • helped us, Mr. George, it would have been the making of you."
  • "I was willing enough to be 'made,' as you call it," says Mr. George,
  • smoking not quite so placidly as before, for since the entrance of
  • Judy he has been in some measure disturbed by a fascination, not of
  • the admiring kind, which obliges him to look at her as she stands by
  • her grandfather's chair, "but on the whole, I am glad I wasn't now."
  • "Why, Mr. George? In the name of--of brimstone, why?" says
  • Grandfather Smallweed with a plain appearance of exasperation.
  • (Brimstone apparently suggested by his eye lighting on Mrs. Smallweed
  • in her slumber.)
  • "For two reasons, comrade."
  • "And what two reasons, Mr. George? In the name of the--"
  • "Of our friend in the city?" suggests Mr. George, composedly
  • drinking.
  • "Aye, if you like. What two reasons?"
  • "In the first place," returns Mr. George, but still looking at Judy
  • as if she being so old and so like her grandfather it is indifferent
  • which of the two he addresses, "you gentlemen took me in. You
  • advertised that Mr. Hawdon (Captain Hawdon, if you hold to the saying
  • 'Once a captain, always a captain') was to hear of something to his
  • advantage."
  • "Well?" returns the old man shrilly and sharply.
  • "Well!" says Mr. George, smoking on. "It wouldn't have been much to
  • his advantage to have been clapped into prison by the whole bill and
  • judgment trade of London."
  • "How do you know that? Some of his rich relations might have paid his
  • debts or compounded for 'em. Besides, he had taken US in. He owed us
  • immense sums all round. I would sooner have strangled him than had no
  • return. If I sit here thinking of him," snarls the old man, holding
  • up his impotent ten fingers, "I want to strangle him now." And in a
  • sudden access of fury, he throws the cushion at the unoffending Mrs.
  • Smallweed, but it passes harmlessly on one side of her chair.
  • "I don't need to be told," returns the trooper, taking his pipe from
  • his lips for a moment and carrying his eyes back from following the
  • progress of the cushion to the pipe-bowl which is burning low, "that
  • he carried on heavily and went to ruin. I have been at his right hand
  • many a day when he was charging upon ruin full-gallop. I was with him
  • when he was sick and well, rich and poor. I laid this hand upon him
  • after he had run through everything and broken down everything
  • beneath him--when he held a pistol to his head."
  • "I wish he had let it off," says the benevolent old man, "and blown
  • his head into as many pieces as he owed pounds!"
  • "That would have been a smash indeed," returns the trooper coolly;
  • "any way, he had been young, hopeful, and handsome in the days gone
  • by, and I am glad I never found him, when he was neither, to lead to
  • a result so much to his advantage. That's reason number one."
  • "I hope number two's as good?" snarls the old man.
  • "Why, no. It's more of a selfish reason. If I had found him, I must
  • have gone to the other world to look. He was there."
  • "How do you know he was there?"
  • "He wasn't here."
  • "How do you know he wasn't here?"
  • "Don't lose your temper as well as your money," says Mr. George,
  • calmly knocking the ashes out of his pipe. "He was drowned long
  • before. I am convinced of it. He went over a ship's side. Whether
  • intentionally or accidentally, I don't know. Perhaps your friend in
  • the city does. Do you know what that tune is, Mr. Smallweed?" he adds
  • after breaking off to whistle one, accompanied on the table with the
  • empty pipe.
  • "Tune!" replied the old man. "No. We never have tunes here."
  • "That's the Dead March in Saul. They bury soldiers to it,
  • so it's the natural end of the subject. Now, if your pretty
  • granddaughter--excuse me, miss--will condescend to take care of this
  • pipe for two months, we shall save the cost of one next time. Good
  • evening, Mr. Smallweed!"
  • "My dear friend!" the old man gives him both his hands.
  • "So you think your friend in the city will be hard upon me if I fall
  • in a payment?" says the trooper, looking down upon him like a giant.
  • "My dear friend, I am afraid he will," returns the old man, looking
  • up at him like a pygmy.
  • Mr. George laughs, and with a glance at Mr. Smallweed and a parting
  • salutation to the scornful Judy, strides out of the parlour, clashing
  • imaginary sabres and other metallic appurtenances as he goes.
  • "You're a damned rogue," says the old gentleman, making a hideous
  • grimace at the door as he shuts it. "But I'll lime you, you dog, I'll
  • lime you!"
  • After this amiable remark, his spirit soars into those enchanting
  • regions of reflection which its education and pursuits have opened to
  • it, and again he and Mrs. Smallweed while away the rosy hours, two
  • unrelieved sentinels forgotten as aforesaid by the Black Serjeant.
  • While the twain are faithful to their post, Mr. George strides
  • through the streets with a massive kind of swagger and a grave-enough
  • face. It is eight o'clock now, and the day is fast drawing in. He
  • stops hard by Waterloo Bridge and reads a playbill, decides to go to
  • Astley's Theatre. Being there, is much delighted with the horses and
  • the feats of strength; looks at the weapons with a critical eye;
  • disapproves of the combats as giving evidences of unskilful
  • swordsmanship; but is touched home by the sentiments. In the last
  • scene, when the Emperor of Tartary gets up into a cart and
  • condescends to bless the united lovers by hovering over them with the
  • Union Jack, his eyelashes are moistened with emotion.
  • The theatre over, Mr. George comes across the water again and makes
  • his way to that curious region lying about the Haymarket and
  • Leicester Square which is a centre of attraction to indifferent
  • foreign hotels and indifferent foreigners, racket-courts,
  • fighting-men, swordsmen, footguards, old china, gaming-houses,
  • exhibitions, and a large medley of shabbiness and shrinking out of
  • sight. Penetrating to the heart of this region, he arrives by a court
  • and a long whitewashed passage at a great brick building composed of
  • bare walls, floors, roof-rafters, and skylights, on the front of
  • which, if it can be said to have any front, is painted GEORGE'S
  • SHOOTING GALLERY, &c.
  • Into George's Shooting Gallery, &c., he goes; and in it there are
  • gaslights (partly turned off now), and two whitened targets for
  • rifle-shooting, and archery accommodation, and fencing appliances,
  • and all necessaries for the British art of boxing. None of these
  • sports or exercises being pursued in George's Shooting Gallery
  • to-night, which is so devoid of company that a little grotesque man
  • with a large head has it all to himself and lies asleep upon the
  • floor.
  • The little man is dressed something like a gunsmith, in a green-baize
  • apron and cap; and his face and hands are dirty with gunpowder and
  • begrimed with the loading of guns. As he lies in the light before a
  • glaring white target, the black upon him shines again. Not far off is
  • the strong, rough, primitive table with a vice upon it at which he
  • has been working. He is a little man with a face all crushed
  • together, who appears, from a certain blue and speckled appearance
  • that one of his cheeks presents, to have been blown up, in the way of
  • business, at some odd time or times.
  • "Phil!" says the trooper in a quiet voice.
  • "All right!" cries Phil, scrambling to his feet.
  • "Anything been doing?"
  • "Flat as ever so much swipes," says Phil. "Five dozen rifle and a
  • dozen pistol. As to aim!" Phil gives a howl at the recollection.
  • "Shut up shop, Phil!"
  • As Phil moves about to execute this order, it appears that he is
  • lame, though able to move very quickly. On the speckled side of his
  • face he has no eyebrow, and on the other side he has a bushy black
  • one, which want of uniformity gives him a very singular and rather
  • sinister appearance. Everything seems to have happened to his hands
  • that could possibly take place consistently with the retention of all
  • the fingers, for they are notched, and seamed, and crumpled all over.
  • He appears to be very strong and lifts heavy benches about as if he
  • had no idea what weight was. He has a curious way of limping round
  • the gallery with his shoulder against the wall and tacking off at
  • objects he wants to lay hold of instead of going straight to them,
  • which has left a smear all round the four walls, conventionally
  • called "Phil's mark."
  • This custodian of George's Gallery in George's absence concludes his
  • proceedings, when he has locked the great doors and turned out all
  • the lights but one, which he leaves to glimmer, by dragging out from
  • a wooden cabin in a corner two mattresses and bedding. These being
  • drawn to opposite ends of the gallery, the trooper makes his own bed
  • and Phil makes his.
  • "Phil!" says the master, walking towards him without his coat and
  • waistcoat, and looking more soldierly than ever in his braces. "You
  • were found in a doorway, weren't you?"
  • "Gutter," says Phil. "Watchman tumbled over me."
  • "Then vagabondizing came natural to YOU from the beginning."
  • "As nat'ral as possible," says Phil.
  • "Good night!"
  • "Good night, guv'ner."
  • Phil cannot even go straight to bed, but finds it necessary to
  • shoulder round two sides of the gallery and then tack off at his
  • mattress. The trooper, after taking a turn or two in the
  • rifle-distance and looking up at the moon now shining through the
  • skylights, strides to his own mattress by a shorter route and goes to
  • bed too.
  • CHAPTER XXII
  • Mr. Bucket
  • Allegory looks pretty cool in Lincoln's Inn Fields, though the
  • evening is hot, for both Mr. Tulkinghorn's windows are wide open, and
  • the room is lofty, gusty, and gloomy. These may not be desirable
  • characteristics when November comes with fog and sleet or January
  • with ice and snow, but they have their merits in the sultry long
  • vacation weather. They enable Allegory, though it has cheeks like
  • peaches, and knees like bunches of blossoms, and rosy swellings for
  • calves to its legs and muscles to its arms, to look tolerably cool
  • to-night.
  • Plenty of dust comes in at Mr. Tulkinghorn's windows, and plenty more
  • has generated among his furniture and papers. It lies thick
  • everywhere. When a breeze from the country that has lost its way
  • takes fright and makes a blind hurry to rush out again, it flings as
  • much dust in the eyes of Allegory as the law--or Mr. Tulkinghorn, one
  • of its trustiest representatives--may scatter, on occasion, in the
  • eyes of the laity.
  • In his lowering magazine of dust, the universal article into which
  • his papers and himself, and all his clients, and all things of earth,
  • animate and inanimate, are resolving, Mr. Tulkinghorn sits at one of
  • the open windows enjoying a bottle of old port. Though a hard-grained
  • man, close, dry, and silent, he can enjoy old wine with the best. He
  • has a priceless bin of port in some artful cellar under the Fields,
  • which is one of his many secrets. When he dines alone in chambers, as
  • he has dined to-day, and has his bit of fish and his steak or chicken
  • brought in from the coffee-house, he descends with a candle to the
  • echoing regions below the deserted mansion, and heralded by a remote
  • reverberation of thundering doors, comes gravely back encircled by an
  • earthy atmosphere and carrying a bottle from which he pours a radiant
  • nectar, two score and ten years old, that blushes in the glass to
  • find itself so famous and fills the whole room with the fragrance of
  • southern grapes.
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn, sitting in the twilight by the open window, enjoys
  • his wine. As if it whispered to him of its fifty years of silence and
  • seclusion, it shuts him up the closer. More impenetrable than ever,
  • he sits, and drinks, and mellows as it were in secrecy, pondering at
  • that twilight hour on all the mysteries he knows, associated with
  • darkening woods in the country, and vast blank shut-up houses in
  • town, and perhaps sparing a thought or two for himself, and his
  • family history, and his money, and his will--all a mystery to every
  • one--and that one bachelor friend of his, a man of the same mould and
  • a lawyer too, who lived the same kind of life until he was
  • seventy-five years old, and then suddenly conceiving (as it is
  • supposed) an impression that it was too monotonous, gave his gold
  • watch to his hair-dresser one summer evening and walked leisurely
  • home to the Temple and hanged himself.
  • But Mr. Tulkinghorn is not alone to-night to ponder at his usual
  • length. Seated at the same table, though with his chair modestly and
  • uncomfortably drawn a little way from it, sits a bald, mild, shining
  • man who coughs respectfully behind his hand when the lawyer bids him
  • fill his glass.
  • "Now, Snagsby," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, "to go over this odd story
  • again."
  • "If you please, sir."
  • "You told me when you were so good as to step round here last
  • night--"
  • "For which I must ask you to excuse me if it was a liberty, sir; but
  • I remember that you had taken a sort of an interest in that person,
  • and I thought it possible that you might--just--wish--to--"
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn is not the man to help him to any conclusion or to
  • admit anything as to any possibility concerning himself. So Mr.
  • Snagsby trails off into saying, with an awkward cough, "I must ask
  • you to excuse the liberty, sir, I am sure."
  • "Not at all," says Mr. Tulkinghorn. "You told me, Snagsby, that you
  • put on your hat and came round without mentioning your intention to
  • your wife. That was prudent I think, because it's not a matter of
  • such importance that it requires to be mentioned."
  • "Well, sir," returns Mr. Snagsby, "you see, my little woman is--not
  • to put too fine a point upon it--inquisitive. She's inquisitive. Poor
  • little thing, she's liable to spasms, and it's good for her to have
  • her mind employed. In consequence of which she employs it--I should
  • say upon every individual thing she can lay hold of, whether it
  • concerns her or not--especially not. My little woman has a very
  • active mind, sir."
  • Mr. Snagsby drinks and murmurs with an admiring cough behind his
  • hand, "Dear me, very fine wine indeed!"
  • "Therefore you kept your visit to yourself last night?" says Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn. "And to-night too?"
  • "Yes, sir, and to-night, too. My little woman is at present in--not
  • to put too fine a point on it--in a pious state, or in what she
  • considers such, and attends the Evening Exertions (which is the name
  • they go by) of a reverend party of the name of Chadband. He has a
  • great deal of eloquence at his command, undoubtedly, but I am not
  • quite favourable to his style myself. That's neither here nor there.
  • My little woman being engaged in that way made it easier for me to
  • step round in a quiet manner."
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn assents. "Fill your glass, Snagsby."
  • "Thank you, sir, I am sure," returns the stationer with his cough of
  • deference. "This is wonderfully fine wine, sir!"
  • "It is a rare wine now," says Mr. Tulkinghorn. "It is fifty years
  • old."
  • "Is it indeed, sir? But I am not surprised to hear it, I am sure. It
  • might be--any age almost." After rendering this general tribute to
  • the port, Mr. Snagsby in his modesty coughs an apology behind his
  • hand for drinking anything so precious.
  • "Will you run over, once again, what the boy said?" asks Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn, putting his hands into the pockets of his rusty
  • smallclothes and leaning quietly back in his chair.
  • "With pleasure, sir."
  • Then, with fidelity, though with some prolixity, the law-stationer
  • repeats Jo's statement made to the assembled guests at his house. On
  • coming to the end of his narrative, he gives a great start and breaks
  • off with, "Dear me, sir, I wasn't aware there was any other gentleman
  • present!"
  • Mr. Snagsby is dismayed to see, standing with an attentive face
  • between himself and the lawyer at a little distance from the table, a
  • person with a hat and stick in his hand who was not there when he
  • himself came in and has not since entered by the door or by either of
  • the windows. There is a press in the room, but its hinges have not
  • creaked, nor has a step been audible upon the floor. Yet this third
  • person stands there with his attentive face, and his hat and stick in
  • his hands, and his hands behind him, a composed and quiet listener.
  • He is a stoutly built, steady-looking, sharp-eyed man in black, of
  • about the middle-age. Except that he looks at Mr. Snagsby as if he
  • were going to take his portrait, there is nothing remarkable about
  • him at first sight but his ghostly manner of appearing.
  • "Don't mind this gentleman," says Mr. Tulkinghorn in his quiet way.
  • "This is only Mr. Bucket."
  • "Oh, indeed, sir?" returns the stationer, expressing by a cough that
  • he is quite in the dark as to who Mr. Bucket may be.
  • "I wanted him to hear this story," says the lawyer, "because I have
  • half a mind (for a reason) to know more of it, and he is very
  • intelligent in such things. What do you say to this, Bucket?"
  • "It's very plain, sir. Since our people have moved this boy on, and
  • he's not to be found on his old lay, if Mr. Snagsby don't object to
  • go down with me to Tom-all-Alone's and point him out, we can have him
  • here in less than a couple of hours' time. I can do it without Mr.
  • Snagsby, of course, but this is the shortest way."
  • "Mr. Bucket is a detective officer, Snagsby," says the lawyer in
  • explanation.
  • "Is he indeed, sir?" says Mr. Snagsby with a strong tendency in his
  • clump of hair to stand on end.
  • "And if you have no real objection to accompany Mr. Bucket to the
  • place in question," pursues the lawyer, "I shall feel obliged to you
  • if you will do so."
  • In a moment's hesitation on the part of Mr. Snagsby, Bucket dips down
  • to the bottom of his mind.
  • "Don't you be afraid of hurting the boy," he says. "You won't do
  • that. It's all right as far as the boy's concerned. We shall only
  • bring him here to ask him a question or so I want to put to him, and
  • he'll be paid for his trouble and sent away again. It'll be a good
  • job for him. I promise you, as a man, that you shall see the boy sent
  • away all right. Don't you be afraid of hurting him; you an't going to
  • do that."
  • "Very well, Mr. Tulkinghorn!" cries Mr. Snagsby cheerfully. And
  • reassured, "Since that's the case--"
  • "Yes! And lookee here, Mr. Snagsby," resumes Bucket, taking him aside
  • by the arm, tapping him familiarly on the breast, and speaking in a
  • confidential tone. "You're a man of the world, you know, and a man of
  • business, and a man of sense. That's what YOU are."
  • "I am sure I am much obliged to you for your good opinion," returns
  • the stationer with his cough of modesty, "but--"
  • "That's what YOU are, you know," says Bucket. "Now, it an't necessary
  • to say to a man like you, engaged in your business, which is a
  • business of trust and requires a person to be wide awake and have his
  • senses about him and his head screwed on tight (I had an uncle in
  • your business once)--it an't necessary to say to a man like you that
  • it's the best and wisest way to keep little matters like this quiet.
  • Don't you see? Quiet!"
  • "Certainly, certainly," returns the other.
  • "I don't mind telling YOU," says Bucket with an engaging appearance
  • of frankness, "that as far as I can understand it, there seems to be
  • a doubt whether this dead person wasn't entitled to a little
  • property, and whether this female hasn't been up to some games
  • respecting that property, don't you see?"
  • "Oh!" says Mr. Snagsby, but not appearing to see quite distinctly.
  • "Now, what YOU want," pursues Bucket, again tapping Mr. Snagsby on
  • the breast in a comfortable and soothing manner, "is that every
  • person should have their rights according to justice. That's what YOU
  • want."
  • "To be sure," returns Mr. Snagsby with a nod.
  • "On account of which, and at the same time to oblige a--do you call
  • it, in your business, customer or client? I forget how my uncle used
  • to call it."
  • "Why, I generally say customer myself," replies Mr. Snagsby.
  • "You're right!" returns Mr. Bucket, shaking hands with him quite
  • affectionately. "--On account of which, and at the same time to
  • oblige a real good customer, you mean to go down with me, in
  • confidence, to Tom-all-Alone's and to keep the whole thing quiet ever
  • afterwards and never mention it to any one. That's about your
  • intentions, if I understand you?"
  • "You are right, sir. You are right," says Mr. Snagsby.
  • "Then here's your hat," returns his new friend, quite as intimate
  • with it as if he had made it; "and if you're ready, I am."
  • They leave Mr. Tulkinghorn, without a ruffle on the surface of his
  • unfathomable depths, drinking his old wine, and go down into the
  • streets.
  • "You don't happen to know a very good sort of person of the name of
  • Gridley, do you?" says Bucket in friendly converse as they descend
  • the stairs.
  • "No," says Mr. Snagsby, considering, "I don't know anybody of that
  • name. Why?"
  • "Nothing particular," says Bucket; "only having allowed his temper to
  • get a little the better of him and having been threatening some
  • respectable people, he is keeping out of the way of a warrant I have
  • got against him--which it's a pity that a man of sense should do."
  • As they walk along, Mr. Snagsby observes, as a novelty, that however
  • quick their pace may be, his companion still seems in some
  • undefinable manner to lurk and lounge; also, that whenever he is
  • going to turn to the right or left, he pretends to have a fixed
  • purpose in his mind of going straight ahead, and wheels off, sharply,
  • at the very last moment. Now and then, when they pass a
  • police-constable on his beat, Mr. Snagsby notices that both the
  • constable and his guide fall into a deep abstraction as they come
  • towards each other, and appear entirely to overlook each other, and
  • to gaze into space. In a few instances, Mr. Bucket, coming behind
  • some under-sized young man with a shining hat on, and his sleek hair
  • twisted into one flat curl on each side of his head, almost without
  • glancing at him touches him with his stick, upon which the young man,
  • looking round, instantly evaporates. For the most part Mr. Bucket
  • notices things in general, with a face as unchanging as the great
  • mourning ring on his little finger or the brooch, composed of not
  • much diamond and a good deal of setting, which he wears in his shirt.
  • When they come at last to Tom-all-Alone's, Mr. Bucket stops for a
  • moment at the corner and takes a lighted bull's-eye from the
  • constable on duty there, who then accompanies him with his own
  • particular bull's-eye at his waist. Between his two conductors, Mr.
  • Snagsby passes along the middle of a villainous street, undrained,
  • unventilated, deep in black mud and corrupt water--though the roads
  • are dry elsewhere--and reeking with such smells and sights that he,
  • who has lived in London all his life, can scarce believe his senses.
  • Branching from this street and its heaps of ruins are other streets
  • and courts so infamous that Mr. Snagsby sickens in body and mind and
  • feels as if he were going every moment deeper down into the infernal
  • gulf.
  • "Draw off a bit here, Mr. Snagsby," says Bucket as a kind of shabby
  • palanquin is borne towards them, surrounded by a noisy crowd. "Here's
  • the fever coming up the street!"
  • As the unseen wretch goes by, the crowd, leaving that object of
  • attraction, hovers round the three visitors like a dream of horrible
  • faces and fades away up alleys and into ruins and behind walls, and
  • with occasional cries and shrill whistles of warning, thenceforth
  • flits about them until they leave the place.
  • "Are those the fever-houses, Darby?" Mr. Bucket coolly asks as he
  • turns his bull's-eye on a line of stinking ruins.
  • Darby replies that "all them are," and further that in all, for
  • months and months, the people "have been down by dozens" and have
  • been carried out dead and dying "like sheep with the rot." Bucket
  • observing to Mr. Snagsby as they go on again that he looks a little
  • poorly, Mr. Snagsby answers that he feels as if he couldn't breathe
  • the dreadful air.
  • There is inquiry made at various houses for a boy named Jo. As few
  • people are known in Tom-all-Alone's by any Christian sign, there is
  • much reference to Mr. Snagsby whether he means Carrots, or the
  • Colonel, or Gallows, or Young Chisel, or Terrier Tip, or Lanky, or
  • the Brick. Mr. Snagsby describes over and over again. There are
  • conflicting opinions respecting the original of his picture. Some
  • think it must be Carrots, some say the Brick. The Colonel is
  • produced, but is not at all near the thing. Whenever Mr. Snagsby and
  • his conductors are stationary, the crowd flows round, and from its
  • squalid depths obsequious advice heaves up to Mr. Bucket. Whenever
  • they move, and the angry bull's-eyes glare, it fades away and flits
  • about them up the alleys, and in the ruins, and behind the walls, as
  • before.
  • At last there is a lair found out where Toughy, or the Tough Subject,
  • lays him down at night; and it is thought that the Tough Subject may
  • be Jo. Comparison of notes between Mr. Snagsby and the proprietress
  • of the house--a drunken face tied up in a black bundle, and flaring
  • out of a heap of rags on the floor of a dog-hutch which is her
  • private apartment--leads to the establishment of this conclusion.
  • Toughy has gone to the doctor's to get a bottle of stuff for a sick
  • woman but will be here anon.
  • "And who have we got here to-night?" says Mr. Bucket, opening another
  • door and glaring in with his bull's-eye. "Two drunken men, eh? And
  • two women? The men are sound enough," turning back each sleeper's arm
  • from his face to look at him. "Are these your good men, my dears?"
  • "Yes, sir," returns one of the women. "They are our husbands."
  • "Brickmakers, eh?"
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "What are you doing here? You don't belong to London."
  • "No, sir. We belong to Hertfordshire."
  • "Whereabouts in Hertfordshire?"
  • "Saint Albans."
  • "Come up on the tramp?"
  • "We walked up yesterday. There's no work down with us at present, but
  • we have done no good by coming here, and shall do none, I expect."
  • "That's not the way to do much good," says Mr. Bucket, turning his
  • head in the direction of the unconscious figures on the ground.
  • "It an't indeed," replies the woman with a sigh. "Jenny and me knows
  • it full well."
  • The room, though two or three feet higher than the door, is so low
  • that the head of the tallest of the visitors would touch the
  • blackened ceiling if he stood upright. It is offensive to every
  • sense; even the gross candle burns pale and sickly in the polluted
  • air. There are a couple of benches and a higher bench by way of
  • table. The men lie asleep where they stumbled down, but the women sit
  • by the candle. Lying in the arms of the woman who has spoken is a
  • very young child.
  • "Why, what age do you call that little creature?" says Bucket. "It
  • looks as if it was born yesterday." He is not at all rough about it;
  • and as he turns his light gently on the infant, Mr. Snagsby is
  • strangely reminded of another infant, encircled with light, that he
  • has seen in pictures.
  • "He is not three weeks old yet, sir," says the woman.
  • "Is he your child?"
  • "Mine."
  • The other woman, who was bending over it when they came in, stoops
  • down again and kisses it as it lies asleep.
  • "You seem as fond of it as if you were the mother yourself," says Mr.
  • Bucket.
  • "I was the mother of one like it, master, and it died."
  • "Ah, Jenny, Jenny!" says the other woman to her. "Better so. Much
  • better to think of dead than alive, Jenny! Much better!"
  • "Why, you an't such an unnatural woman, I hope," returns Bucket
  • sternly, "as to wish your own child dead?"
  • "God knows you are right, master," she returns. "I am not. I'd stand
  • between it and death with my own life if I could, as true as any
  • pretty lady."
  • "Then don't talk in that wrong manner," says Mr. Bucket, mollified
  • again. "Why do you do it?"
  • "It's brought into my head, master," returns the woman, her eyes
  • filling with tears, "when I look down at the child lying so. If it
  • was never to wake no more, you'd think me mad, I should take on so. I
  • know that very well. I was with Jenny when she lost hers--warn't I,
  • Jenny?--and I know how she grieved. But look around you at this
  • place. Look at them," glancing at the sleepers on the ground. "Look
  • at the boy you're waiting for, who's gone out to do me a good turn.
  • Think of the children that your business lays with often and often,
  • and that YOU see grow up!"
  • "Well, well," says Mr. Bucket, "you train him respectable, and he'll
  • be a comfort to you, and look after you in your old age, you know."
  • "I mean to try hard," she answers, wiping her eyes. "But I have been
  • a-thinking, being over-tired to-night and not well with the ague, of
  • all the many things that'll come in his way. My master will be
  • against it, and he'll be beat, and see me beat, and made to fear his
  • home, and perhaps to stray wild. If I work for him ever so much, and
  • ever so hard, there's no one to help me; and if he should be turned
  • bad 'spite of all I could do, and the time should come when I should
  • sit by him in his sleep, made hard and changed, an't it likely I
  • should think of him as he lies in my lap now and wish he had died as
  • Jenny's child died!"
  • "There, there!" says Jenny. "Liz, you're tired and ill. Let me take
  • him."
  • In doing so, she displaces the mother's dress, but quickly readjusts
  • it over the wounded and bruised bosom where the baby has been lying.
  • "It's my dead child," says Jenny, walking up and down as she nurses,
  • "that makes me love this child so dear, and it's my dead child that
  • makes her love it so dear too, as even to think of its being taken
  • away from her now. While she thinks that, I think what fortune would
  • I give to have my darling back. But we mean the same thing, if we
  • knew how to say it, us two mothers does in our poor hearts!"
  • As Mr. Snagsby blows his nose and coughs his cough of sympathy, a
  • step is heard without. Mr. Bucket throws his light into the doorway
  • and says to Mr. Snagsby, "Now, what do you say to Toughy? Will HE
  • do?"
  • "That's Jo," says Mr. Snagsby.
  • Jo stands amazed in the disk of light, like a ragged figure in a
  • magic-lantern, trembling to think that he has offended against the
  • law in not having moved on far enough. Mr. Snagsby, however, giving
  • him the consolatory assurance, "It's only a job you will be paid for,
  • Jo," he recovers; and on being taken outside by Mr. Bucket for a
  • little private confabulation, tells his tale satisfactorily, though
  • out of breath.
  • "I have squared it with the lad," says Mr. Bucket, returning, "and
  • it's all right. Now, Mr. Snagsby, we're ready for you."
  • First, Jo has to complete his errand of good nature by handing over
  • the physic he has been to get, which he delivers with the laconic
  • verbal direction that "it's to be all took d'rectly." Secondly, Mr.
  • Snagsby has to lay upon the table half a crown, his usual panacea for
  • an immense variety of afflictions. Thirdly, Mr. Bucket has to take Jo
  • by the arm a little above the elbow and walk him on before him,
  • without which observance neither the Tough Subject nor any other
  • Subject could be professionally conducted to Lincoln's Inn Fields.
  • These arrangements completed, they give the women good night and come
  • out once more into black and foul Tom-all-Alone's.
  • By the noisome ways through which they descended into that pit, they
  • gradually emerge from it, the crowd flitting, and whistling, and
  • skulking about them until they come to the verge, where restoration
  • of the bull's-eyes is made to Darby. Here the crowd, like a concourse
  • of imprisoned demons, turns back, yelling, and is seen no more.
  • Through the clearer and fresher streets, never so clear and fresh to
  • Mr. Snagsby's mind as now, they walk and ride until they come to Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn's gate.
  • As they ascend the dim stairs (Mr. Tulkinghorn's chambers being on
  • the first floor), Mr. Bucket mentions that he has the key of the
  • outer door in his pocket and that there is no need to ring. For a man
  • so expert in most things of that kind, Bucket takes time to open the
  • door and makes some noise too. It may be that he sounds a note of
  • preparation.
  • Howbeit, they come at last into the hall, where a lamp is burning,
  • and so into Mr. Tulkinghorn's usual room--the room where he drank his
  • old wine to-night. He is not there, but his two old-fashioned
  • candlesticks are, and the room is tolerably light.
  • Mr. Bucket, still having his professional hold of Jo and appearing to
  • Mr. Snagsby to possess an unlimited number of eyes, makes a little
  • way into this room, when Jo starts and stops.
  • "What's the matter?" says Bucket in a whisper.
  • "There she is!" cries Jo.
  • "Who!"
  • "The lady!"
  • A female figure, closely veiled, stands in the middle of the room,
  • where the light falls upon it. It is quite still and silent. The
  • front of the figure is towards them, but it takes no notice of their
  • entrance and remains like a statue.
  • "Now, tell me," says Bucket aloud, "how you know that to be the
  • lady."
  • "I know the wale," replies Jo, staring, "and the bonnet, and the
  • gownd."
  • "Be quite sure of what you say, Tough," returns Bucket, narrowly
  • observant of him. "Look again."
  • "I am a-looking as hard as ever I can look," says Jo with starting
  • eyes, "and that there's the wale, the bonnet, and the gownd."
  • "What about those rings you told me of?" asks Bucket.
  • "A-sparkling all over here," says Jo, rubbing the fingers of his left
  • hand on the knuckles of his right without taking his eyes from the
  • figure.
  • The figure removes the right-hand glove and shows the hand.
  • "Now, what do you say to that?" asks Bucket.
  • Jo shakes his head. "Not rings a bit like them. Not a hand like
  • that."
  • "What are you talking of?" says Bucket, evidently pleased though, and
  • well pleased too.
  • "Hand was a deal whiter, a deal delicater, and a deal smaller,"
  • returns Jo.
  • "Why, you'll tell me I'm my own mother next," says Mr. Bucket. "Do
  • you recollect the lady's voice?"
  • "I think I does," says Jo.
  • The figure speaks. "Was it at all like this? I will speak as long as
  • you like if you are not sure. Was it this voice, or at all like this
  • voice?"
  • Jo looks aghast at Mr. Bucket. "Not a bit!"
  • "Then, what," retorts that worthy, pointing to the figure, "did you
  • say it was the lady for?"
  • "Cos," says Jo with a perplexed stare but without being at all shaken
  • in his certainty, "cos that there's the wale, the bonnet, and the
  • gownd. It is her and it an't her. It an't her hand, nor yet her
  • rings, nor yet her woice. But that there's the wale, the bonnet, and
  • the gownd, and they're wore the same way wot she wore 'em, and it's
  • her height wot she wos, and she giv me a sov'ring and hooked it."
  • "Well!" says Mr. Bucket slightly, "we haven't got much good out of
  • YOU. But, however, here's five shillings for you. Take care how you
  • spend it, and don't get yourself into trouble." Bucket stealthily
  • tells the coins from one hand into the other like counters--which is
  • a way he has, his principal use of them being in these games of
  • skill--and then puts them, in a little pile, into the boy's hand and
  • takes him out to the door, leaving Mr. Snagsby, not by any means
  • comfortable under these mysterious circumstances, alone with the
  • veiled figure. But on Mr. Tulkinghorn's coming into the room, the
  • veil is raised and a sufficiently good-looking Frenchwoman is
  • revealed, though her expression is something of the intensest.
  • "Thank you, Mademoiselle Hortense," says Mr. Tulkinghorn with his
  • usual equanimity. "I will give you no further trouble about this
  • little wager."
  • "You will do me the kindness to remember, sir, that I am not at
  • present placed?" says mademoiselle.
  • "Certainly, certainly!"
  • "And to confer upon me the favour of your distinguished
  • recommendation?"
  • "By all means, Mademoiselle Hortense."
  • "A word from Mr. Tulkinghorn is so powerful."
  • "It shall not be wanting, mademoiselle."
  • "Receive the assurance of my devoted gratitude, dear sir."
  • "Good night."
  • Mademoiselle goes out with an air of native gentility; and Mr.
  • Bucket, to whom it is, on an emergency, as natural to be groom of the
  • ceremonies as it is to be anything else, shows her downstairs, not
  • without gallantry.
  • "Well, Bucket?" quoth Mr. Tulkinghorn on his return.
  • "It's all squared, you see, as I squared it myself, sir. There an't a
  • doubt that it was the other one with this one's dress on. The boy was
  • exact respecting colours and everything. Mr. Snagsby, I promised you
  • as a man that he should be sent away all right. Don't say it wasn't
  • done!"
  • "You have kept your word, sir," returns the stationer; "and if I can
  • be of no further use, Mr. Tulkinghorn, I think, as my little woman
  • will be getting anxious--"
  • "Thank you, Snagsby, no further use," says Mr. Tulkinghorn. "I am
  • quite indebted to you for the trouble you have taken already."
  • "Not at all, sir. I wish you good night."
  • "You see, Mr. Snagsby," says Mr. Bucket, accompanying him to the door
  • and shaking hands with him over and over again, "what I like in you
  • is that you're a man it's of no use pumping; that's what YOU are.
  • When you know you have done a right thing, you put it away, and it's
  • done with and gone, and there's an end of it. That's what YOU do."
  • "That is certainly what I endeavour to do, sir," returns Mr. Snagsby.
  • "No, you don't do yourself justice. It an't what you endeavour to
  • do," says Mr. Bucket, shaking hands with him and blessing him in the
  • tenderest manner, "it's what you DO. That's what I estimate in a man
  • in your way of business."
  • Mr. Snagsby makes a suitable response and goes homeward so confused
  • by the events of the evening that he is doubtful of his being awake
  • and out--doubtful of the reality of the streets through which he
  • goes--doubtful of the reality of the moon that shines above him. He
  • is presently reassured on these subjects by the unchallengeable
  • reality of Mrs. Snagsby, sitting up with her head in a perfect
  • beehive of curl-papers and night-cap, who has dispatched Guster to
  • the police-station with official intelligence of her husband's being
  • made away with, and who within the last two hours has passed through
  • every stage of swooning with the greatest decorum. But as the little
  • woman feelingly says, many thanks she gets for it!
  • CHAPTER XXIII
  • Esther's Narrative
  • We came home from Mr. Boythorn's after six pleasant weeks. We were
  • often in the park and in the woods and seldom passed the lodge where
  • we had taken shelter without looking in to speak to the keeper's
  • wife; but we saw no more of Lady Dedlock, except at church on
  • Sundays. There was company at Chesney Wold; and although several
  • beautiful faces surrounded her, her face retained the same influence
  • on me as at first. I do not quite know even now whether it was
  • painful or pleasurable, whether it drew me towards her or made me
  • shrink from her. I think I admired her with a kind of fear, and I
  • know that in her presence my thoughts always wandered back, as they
  • had done at first, to that old time of my life.
  • I had a fancy, on more than one of these Sundays, that what this lady
  • so curiously was to me, I was to her--I mean that I disturbed her
  • thoughts as she influenced mine, though in some different way. But
  • when I stole a glance at her and saw her so composed and distant and
  • unapproachable, I felt this to be a foolish weakness. Indeed, I felt
  • the whole state of my mind in reference to her to be weak and
  • unreasonable, and I remonstrated with myself about it as much as I
  • could.
  • One incident that occurred before we quitted Mr. Boythorn's house, I
  • had better mention in this place.
  • I was walking in the garden with Ada when I was told that some one
  • wished to see me. Going into the breakfast-room where this person was
  • waiting, I found it to be the French maid who had cast off her shoes
  • and walked through the wet grass on the day when it thundered and
  • lightened.
  • "Mademoiselle," she began, looking fixedly at me with her too-eager
  • eyes, though otherwise presenting an agreeable appearance and
  • speaking neither with boldness nor servility, "I have taken a great
  • liberty in coming here, but you know how to excuse it, being so
  • amiable, mademoiselle."
  • "No excuse is necessary," I returned, "if you wish to speak to me."
  • "That is my desire, mademoiselle. A thousand thanks for the
  • permission. I have your leave to speak. Is it not?" she said in a
  • quick, natural way.
  • "Certainly," said I.
  • "Mademoiselle, you are so amiable! Listen then, if you please. I have
  • left my Lady. We could not agree. My Lady is so high, so very high.
  • Pardon! Mademoiselle, you are right!" Her quickness anticipated what
  • I might have said presently but as yet had only thought. "It is not
  • for me to come here to complain of my Lady. But I say she is so high,
  • so very high. I will not say a word more. All the world knows that."
  • "Go on, if you please," said I.
  • "Assuredly; mademoiselle, I am thankful for your politeness.
  • Mademoiselle, I have an inexpressible desire to find service with a
  • young lady who is good, accomplished, beautiful. You are good,
  • accomplished, and beautiful as an angel. Ah, could I have the honour
  • of being your domestic!"
  • "I am sorry--" I began.
  • "Do not dismiss me so soon, mademoiselle!" she said with an
  • involuntary contraction of her fine black eyebrows. "Let me hope a
  • moment! Mademoiselle, I know this service would be more retired than
  • that which I have quitted. Well! I wish that. I know this service
  • would be less distinguished than that which I have quitted. Well! I
  • wish that, I know that I should win less, as to wages here. Good. I
  • am content."
  • "I assure you," said I, quite embarrassed by the mere idea of having
  • such an attendant, "that I keep no maid--"
  • "Ah, mademoiselle, but why not? Why not, when you can have one so
  • devoted to you! Who would be enchanted to serve you; who would be so
  • true, so zealous, and so faithful every day! Mademoiselle, I wish
  • with all my heart to serve you. Do not speak of money at present.
  • Take me as I am. For nothing!"
  • She was so singularly earnest that I drew back, almost afraid of her.
  • Without appearing to notice it, in her ardour she still pressed
  • herself upon me, speaking in a rapid subdued voice, though always
  • with a certain grace and propriety.
  • "Mademoiselle, I come from the South country where we are quick and
  • where we like and dislike very strong. My Lady was too high for me; I
  • was too high for her. It is done--past--finished! Receive me as your
  • domestic, and I will serve you well. I will do more for you than you
  • figure to yourself now. Chut! Mademoiselle, I will--no matter, I will
  • do my utmost possible in all things. If you accept my service, you
  • will not repent it. Mademoiselle, you will not repent it, and I will
  • serve you well. You don't know how well!"
  • There was a lowering energy in her face as she stood looking at me
  • while I explained the impossibility of my engaging her (without
  • thinking it necessary to say how very little I desired to do so),
  • which seemed to bring visibly before me some woman from the streets
  • of Paris in the reign of terror.
  • She heard me out without interruption and then said with her pretty
  • accent and in her mildest voice, "Hey, mademoiselle, I have received
  • my answer! I am sorry of it. But I must go elsewhere and seek what I
  • have not found here. Will you graciously let me kiss your hand?"
  • She looked at me more intently as she took it, and seemed to take
  • note, with her momentary touch, of every vein in it. "I fear I
  • surprised you, mademoiselle, on the day of the storm?" she said with
  • a parting curtsy.
  • I confessed that she had surprised us all.
  • "I took an oath, mademoiselle," she said, smiling, "and I wanted to
  • stamp it on my mind so that I might keep it faithfully. And I will!
  • Adieu, mademoiselle!"
  • So ended our conference, which I was very glad to bring to a close. I
  • supposed she went away from the village, for I saw her no more; and
  • nothing else occurred to disturb our tranquil summer pleasures until
  • six weeks were out and we returned home as I began just now by
  • saying.
  • At that time, and for a good many weeks after that time, Richard was
  • constant in his visits. Besides coming every Saturday or Sunday and
  • remaining with us until Monday morning, he sometimes rode out on
  • horseback unexpectedly and passed the evening with us and rode back
  • again early next day. He was as vivacious as ever and told us he was
  • very industrious, but I was not easy in my mind about him. It
  • appeared to me that his industry was all misdirected. I could not
  • find that it led to anything but the formation of delusive hopes in
  • connexion with the suit already the pernicious cause of so much
  • sorrow and ruin. He had got at the core of that mystery now, he told
  • us, and nothing could be plainer than that the will under which he
  • and Ada were to take I don't know how many thousands of pounds must
  • be finally established if there were any sense or justice in the
  • Court of Chancery--but oh, what a great IF that sounded in my
  • ears--and that this happy conclusion could not be much longer
  • delayed. He proved this to himself by all the weary arguments on that
  • side he had read, and every one of them sunk him deeper in the
  • infatuation. He had even begun to haunt the court. He told us how he
  • saw Miss Flite there daily, how they talked together, and how he did
  • her little kindnesses, and how, while he laughed at her, he pitied
  • her from his heart. But he never thought--never, my poor, dear,
  • sanguine Richard, capable of so much happiness then, and with such
  • better things before him--what a fatal link was riveting between his
  • fresh youth and her faded age, between his free hopes and her caged
  • birds, and her hungry garret, and her wandering mind.
  • Ada loved him too well to mistrust him much in anything he said or
  • did, and my guardian, though he frequently complained of the east
  • wind and read more than usual in the growlery, preserved a strict
  • silence on the subject. So I thought one day when I went to London to
  • meet Caddy Jellyby, at her solicitation, I would ask Richard to be in
  • waiting for me at the coach-office, that we might have a little talk
  • together. I found him there when I arrived, and we walked away arm in
  • arm.
  • "Well, Richard," said I as soon as I could begin to be grave with
  • him, "are you beginning to feel more settled now?"
  • "Oh, yes, my dear!" returned Richard. "I'm all right enough."
  • "But settled?" said I.
  • "How do you mean, settled?" returned Richard with his gay laugh.
  • "Settled in the law," said I.
  • "Oh, aye," replied Richard, "I'm all right enough."
  • "You said that before, my dear Richard."
  • "And you don't think it's an answer, eh? Well! Perhaps it's not.
  • Settled? You mean, do I feel as if I were settling down?"
  • "Yes."
  • "Why, no, I can't say I am settling down," said Richard, strongly
  • emphasizing "down," as if that expressed the difficulty, "because one
  • can't settle down while this business remains in such an unsettled
  • state. When I say this business, of course I mean the--forbidden
  • subject."
  • "Do you think it will ever be in a settled state?" said I.
  • "Not the least doubt of it," answered Richard.
  • We walked a little way without speaking, and presently Richard
  • addressed me in his frankest and most feeling manner, thus: "My dear
  • Esther, I understand you, and I wish to heaven I were a more constant
  • sort of fellow. I don't mean constant to Ada, for I love her
  • dearly--better and better every day--but constant to myself.
  • (Somehow, I mean something that I can't very well express, but you'll
  • make it out.) If I were a more constant sort of fellow, I should have
  • held on either to Badger or to Kenge and Carboy like grim death, and
  • should have begun to be steady and systematic by this time, and
  • shouldn't be in debt, and--"
  • "ARE you in debt, Richard?"
  • "Yes," said Richard, "I am a little so, my dear. Also, I have taken
  • rather too much to billiards and that sort of thing. Now the murder's
  • out; you despise me, Esther, don't you?"
  • "You know I don't," said I.
  • "You are kinder to me than I often am to myself," he returned. "My
  • dear Esther, I am a very unfortunate dog not to be more settled, but
  • how CAN I be more settled? If you lived in an unfinished house, you
  • couldn't settle down in it; if you were condemned to leave everything
  • you undertook unfinished, you would find it hard to apply yourself to
  • anything; and yet that's my unhappy case. I was born into this
  • unfinished contention with all its chances and changes, and it began
  • to unsettle me before I quite knew the difference between a suit at
  • law and a suit of clothes; and it has gone on unsettling me ever
  • since; and here I am now, conscious sometimes that I am but a
  • worthless fellow to love my confiding cousin Ada."
  • We were in a solitary place, and he put his hands before his eyes and
  • sobbed as he said the words.
  • "Oh, Richard!" said I. "Do not be so moved. You have a noble nature,
  • and Ada's love may make you worthier every day."
  • "I know, my dear," he replied, pressing my arm, "I know all that. You
  • mustn't mind my being a little soft now, for I have had all this upon
  • my mind for a long time, and have often meant to speak to you, and
  • have sometimes wanted opportunity and sometimes courage. I know what
  • the thought of Ada ought to do for me, but it doesn't do it. I am too
  • unsettled even for that. I love her most devotedly, and yet I do her
  • wrong, in doing myself wrong, every day and hour. But it can't last
  • for ever. We shall come on for a final hearing and get judgment in
  • our favour, and then you and Ada shall see what I can really be!"
  • It had given me a pang to hear him sob and see the tears start out
  • between his fingers, but that was infinitely less affecting to me
  • than the hopeful animation with which he said these words.
  • "I have looked well into the papers, Esther. I have been deep in them
  • for months," he continued, recovering his cheerfulness in a moment,
  • "and you may rely upon it that we shall come out triumphant. As to
  • years of delay, there has been no want of them, heaven knows! And
  • there is the greater probability of our bringing the matter to a
  • speedy close; in fact, it's on the paper now. It will be all right at
  • last, and then you shall see!"
  • Recalling how he had just now placed Messrs. Kenge and Carboy in the
  • same category with Mr. Badger, I asked him when he intended to be
  • articled in Lincoln's Inn.
  • "There again! I think not at all, Esther," he returned with an
  • effort. "I fancy I have had enough of it. Having worked at Jarndyce
  • and Jarndyce like a galley slave, I have slaked my thirst for the law
  • and satisfied myself that I shouldn't like it. Besides, I find it
  • unsettles me more and more to be so constantly upon the scene of
  • action. So what," continued Richard, confident again by this time,
  • "do I naturally turn my thoughts to?"
  • "I can't imagine," said I.
  • "Don't look so serious," returned Richard, "because it's the best
  • thing I can do, my dear Esther, I am certain. It's not as if I wanted
  • a profession for life. These proceedings will come to a termination,
  • and then I am provided for. No. I look upon it as a pursuit which is
  • in its nature more or less unsettled, and therefore suited to my
  • temporary condition--I may say, precisely suited. What is it that I
  • naturally turn my thoughts to?"
  • I looked at him and shook my head.
  • "What," said Richard, in a tone of perfect conviction, "but the
  • army!"
  • "The army?" said I.
  • "The army, of course. What I have to do is to get a commission;
  • and--there I am, you know!" said Richard.
  • And then he showed me, proved by elaborate calculations in his
  • pocket-book, that supposing he had contracted, say, two hundred
  • pounds of debt in six months out of the army; and that he contracted
  • no debt at all within a corresponding period in the army--as to which
  • he had quite made up his mind; this step must involve a saving of
  • four hundred pounds in a year, or two thousand pounds in five years,
  • which was a considerable sum. And then he spoke so ingenuously and
  • sincerely of the sacrifice he made in withdrawing himself for a time
  • from Ada, and of the earnestness with which he aspired--as in thought
  • he always did, I know full well--to repay her love, and to ensure her
  • happiness, and to conquer what was amiss in himself, and to acquire
  • the very soul of decision, that he made my heart ache keenly, sorely.
  • For, I thought, how would this end, how could this end, when so soon
  • and so surely all his manly qualities were touched by the fatal
  • blight that ruined everything it rested on!
  • I spoke to Richard with all the earnestness I felt, and all the hope
  • I could not quite feel then, and implored him for Ada's sake not to
  • put any trust in Chancery. To all I said, Richard readily assented,
  • riding over the court and everything else in his easy way and drawing
  • the brightest pictures of the character he was to settle into--alas,
  • when the grievous suit should loose its hold upon him! We had a long
  • talk, but it always came back to that, in substance.
  • At last we came to Soho Square, where Caddy Jellyby had appointed to
  • wait for me, as a quiet place in the neighbourhood of Newman Street.
  • Caddy was in the garden in the centre and hurried out as soon as I
  • appeared. After a few cheerful words, Richard left us together.
  • "Prince has a pupil over the way, Esther," said Caddy, "and got the
  • key for us. So if you will walk round and round here with me, we can
  • lock ourselves in and I can tell you comfortably what I wanted to see
  • your dear good face about."
  • "Very well, my dear," said I. "Nothing could be better." So Caddy,
  • after affectionately squeezing the dear good face as she called it,
  • locked the gate, and took my arm, and we began to walk round the
  • garden very cosily.
  • "You see, Esther," said Caddy, who thoroughly enjoyed a little
  • confidence, "after you spoke to me about its being wrong to marry
  • without Ma's knowledge, or even to keep Ma long in the dark
  • respecting our engagement--though I don't believe Ma cares much for
  • me, I must say--I thought it right to mention your opinions to
  • Prince. In the first place because I want to profit by everything you
  • tell me, and in the second place because I have no secrets from
  • Prince."
  • "I hope he approved, Caddy?"
  • "Oh, my dear! I assure you he would approve of anything you could
  • say. You have no idea what an opinion he has of you!"
  • "Indeed!"
  • "Esther, it's enough to make anybody but me jealous," said Caddy,
  • laughing and shaking her head; "but it only makes me joyful, for you
  • are the first friend I ever had, and the best friend I ever can have,
  • and nobody can respect and love you too much to please me."
  • "Upon my word, Caddy," said I, "you are in the general conspiracy to
  • keep me in a good humour. Well, my dear?"
  • "Well! I am going to tell you," replied Caddy, crossing her hands
  • confidentially upon my arm. "So we talked a good deal about it, and
  • so I said to Prince, 'Prince, as Miss Summerson--'"
  • "I hope you didn't say 'Miss Summerson'?"
  • "No. I didn't!" cried Caddy, greatly pleased and with the brightest
  • of faces. "I said, 'Esther.' I said to Prince, 'As Esther is
  • decidedly of that opinion, Prince, and has expressed it to me, and
  • always hints it when she writes those kind notes, which you are so
  • fond of hearing me read to you, I am prepared to disclose the truth
  • to Ma whenever you think proper. And I think, Prince,' said I, 'that
  • Esther thinks that I should be in a better, and truer, and more
  • honourable position altogether if you did the same to your papa.'"
  • "Yes, my dear," said I. "Esther certainly does think so."
  • "So I was right, you see!" exclaimed Caddy. "Well! This troubled
  • Prince a good deal, not because he had the least doubt about it, but
  • because he is so considerate of the feelings of old Mr. Turveydrop;
  • and he had his apprehensions that old Mr. Turveydrop might break his
  • heart, or faint away, or be very much overcome in some affecting
  • manner or other if he made such an announcement. He feared old Mr.
  • Turveydrop might consider it undutiful and might receive too great a
  • shock. For old Mr. Turveydrop's deportment is very beautiful, you
  • know, Esther," said Caddy, "and his feelings are extremely
  • sensitive."
  • "Are they, my dear?"
  • "Oh, extremely sensitive. Prince says so. Now, this has caused my
  • darling child--I didn't mean to use the expression to you, Esther,"
  • Caddy apologized, her face suffused with blushes, "but I generally
  • call Prince my darling child."
  • I laughed; and Caddy laughed and blushed, and went on.
  • "This has caused him, Esther--"
  • "Caused whom, my dear?"
  • "Oh, you tiresome thing!" said Caddy, laughing, with her pretty face
  • on fire. "My darling child, if you insist upon it! This has caused
  • him weeks of uneasiness and has made him delay, from day to day, in a
  • very anxious manner. At last he said to me, 'Caddy, if Miss
  • Summerson, who is a great favourite with my father, could be
  • prevailed upon to be present when I broke the subject, I think I
  • could do it.' So I promised I would ask you. And I made up my mind,
  • besides," said Caddy, looking at me hopefully but timidly, "that if
  • you consented, I would ask you afterwards to come with me to Ma. This
  • is what I meant when I said in my note that I had a great favour and
  • a great assistance to beg of you. And if you thought you could grant
  • it, Esther, we should both be very grateful."
  • "Let me see, Caddy," said I, pretending to consider. "Really, I think
  • I could do a greater thing than that if the need were pressing. I am
  • at your service and the darling child's, my dear, whenever you like."
  • Caddy was quite transported by this reply of mine, being, I believe,
  • as susceptible to the least kindness or encouragement as any tender
  • heart that ever beat in this world; and after another turn or two
  • round the garden, during which she put on an entirely new pair of
  • gloves and made herself as resplendent as possible that she might do
  • no avoidable discredit to the Master of Deportment, we went to Newman
  • Street direct.
  • Prince was teaching, of course. We found him engaged with a not very
  • hopeful pupil--a stubborn little girl with a sulky forehead, a deep
  • voice, and an inanimate, dissatisfied mama--whose case was certainly
  • not rendered more hopeful by the confusion into which we threw her
  • preceptor. The lesson at last came to an end, after proceeding as
  • discordantly as possible; and when the little girl had changed her
  • shoes and had had her white muslin extinguished in shawls, she was
  • taken away. After a few words of preparation, we then went in search
  • of Mr. Turveydrop, whom we found, grouped with his hat and gloves, as
  • a model of deportment, on the sofa in his private apartment--the only
  • comfortable room in the house. He appeared to have dressed at his
  • leisure in the intervals of a light collation, and his dressing-case,
  • brushes, and so forth, all of quite an elegant kind, lay about.
  • "Father, Miss Summerson; Miss Jellyby."
  • "Charmed! Enchanted!" said Mr. Turveydrop, rising with his
  • high-shouldered bow. "Permit me!" Handing chairs. "Be seated!"
  • Kissing the tips of his left fingers. "Overjoyed!" Shutting his eyes
  • and rolling. "My little retreat is made a paradise." Recomposing
  • himself on the sofa like the second gentleman in Europe.
  • "Again you find us, Miss Summerson," said he, "using our little arts
  • to polish, polish! Again the sex stimulates us and rewards us by the
  • condescension of its lovely presence. It is much in these times (and
  • we have made an awfully degenerating business of it since the days of
  • his Royal Highness the Prince Regent--my patron, if I may presume to
  • say so) to experience that deportment is not wholly trodden under
  • foot by mechanics. That it can yet bask in the smile of beauty, my
  • dear madam."
  • I said nothing, which I thought a suitable reply; and he took a pinch
  • of snuff.
  • "My dear son," said Mr. Turveydrop, "you have four schools this
  • afternoon. I would recommend a hasty sandwich."
  • "Thank you, father," returned Prince, "I will be sure to be punctual.
  • My dear father, may I beg you to prepare your mind for what I am
  • going to say?"
  • "Good heaven!" exclaimed the model, pale and aghast as Prince and
  • Caddy, hand in hand, bent down before him. "What is this? Is this
  • lunacy! Or what is this?"
  • "Father," returned Prince with great submission, "I love this young
  • lady, and we are engaged."
  • "Engaged!" cried Mr. Turveydrop, reclining on the sofa and shutting
  • out the sight with his hand. "An arrow launched at my brain by my own
  • child!"
  • "We have been engaged for some time, father," faltered Prince, "and
  • Miss Summerson, hearing of it, advised that we should declare the
  • fact to you and was so very kind as to attend on the present
  • occasion. Miss Jellyby is a young lady who deeply respects you,
  • father."
  • Mr. Turveydrop uttered a groan.
  • "No, pray don't! Pray don't, father," urged his son. "Miss Jellyby is
  • a young lady who deeply respects you, and our first desire is to
  • consider your comfort."
  • Mr. Turveydrop sobbed.
  • "No, pray don't, father!" cried his son.
  • "Boy," said Mr. Turveydrop, "it is well that your sainted mother is
  • spared this pang. Strike deep, and spare not. Strike home, sir,
  • strike home!"
  • "Pray don't say so, father," implored Prince, in tears. "It goes to
  • my heart. I do assure you, father, that our first wish and intention
  • is to consider your comfort. Caroline and I do not forget our
  • duty--what is my duty is Caroline's, as we have often said
  • together--and with your approval and consent, father, we will devote
  • ourselves to making your life agreeable."
  • "Strike home," murmured Mr. Turveydrop. "Strike home!" But he seemed
  • to listen, I thought, too.
  • "My dear father," returned Prince, "we well know what little comforts
  • you are accustomed to and have a right to, and it will always be our
  • study and our pride to provide those before anything. If you will
  • bless us with your approval and consent, father, we shall not think
  • of being married until it is quite agreeable to you; and when we ARE
  • married, we shall always make you--of course--our first
  • consideration. You must ever be the head and master here, father; and
  • we feel how truly unnatural it would be in us if we failed to know it
  • or if we failed to exert ourselves in every possible way to please
  • you."
  • Mr. Turveydrop underwent a severe internal struggle and came upright
  • on the sofa again with his cheeks puffing over his stiff cravat, a
  • perfect model of parental deportment.
  • "My son!" said Mr. Turveydrop. "My children! I cannot resist your
  • prayer. Be happy!"
  • His benignity as he raised his future daughter-in-law and stretched
  • out his hand to his son (who kissed it with affectionate respect and
  • gratitude) was the most confusing sight I ever saw.
  • "My children," said Mr. Turveydrop, paternally encircling Caddy with
  • his left arm as she sat beside him, and putting his right hand
  • gracefully on his hip. "My son and daughter, your happiness shall be
  • my care. I will watch over you. You shall always live with
  • me"--meaning, of course, I will always live with you--"this house is
  • henceforth as much yours as mine; consider it your home. May you long
  • live to share it with me!"
  • The power of his deportment was such that they really were as much
  • overcome with thankfulness as if, instead of quartering himself upon
  • them for the rest of his life, he were making some munificent
  • sacrifice in their favour.
  • "For myself, my children," said Mr. Turveydrop, "I am falling into
  • the sear and yellow leaf, and it is impossible to say how long the
  • last feeble traces of gentlemanly deportment may linger in this
  • weaving and spinning age. But, so long, I will do my duty to society
  • and will show myself, as usual, about town. My wants are few and
  • simple. My little apartment here, my few essentials for the toilet,
  • my frugal morning meal, and my little dinner will suffice. I charge
  • your dutiful affection with the supply of these requirements, and I
  • charge myself with all the rest."
  • They were overpowered afresh by his uncommon generosity.
  • "My son," said Mr. Turveydrop, "for those little points in which you
  • are deficient--points of deportment, which are born with a man, which
  • may be improved by cultivation, but can never be originated--you may
  • still rely on me. I have been faithful to my post since the days of
  • his Royal Highness the Prince Regent, and I will not desert it now.
  • No, my son. If you have ever contemplated your father's poor position
  • with a feeling of pride, you may rest assured that he will do nothing
  • to tarnish it. For yourself, Prince, whose character is different (we
  • cannot be all alike, nor is it advisable that we should), work, be
  • industrious, earn money, and extend the connexion as much as
  • possible."
  • "That you may depend I will do, dear father, with all my heart,"
  • replied Prince.
  • "I have no doubt of it," said Mr. Turveydrop. "Your qualities are not
  • shining, my dear child, but they are steady and useful. And to both
  • of you, my children, I would merely observe, in the spirit of a
  • sainted wooman on whose path I had the happiness of casting, I
  • believe, SOME ray of light, take care of the establishment, take care
  • of my simple wants, and bless you both!"
  • Old Mr. Turveydrop then became so very gallant, in honour of the
  • occasion, that I told Caddy we must really go to Thavies Inn at once
  • if we were to go at all that day. So we took our departure after a
  • very loving farewell between Caddy and her betrothed, and during our
  • walk she was so happy and so full of old Mr. Turveydrop's praises
  • that I would not have said a word in his disparagement for any
  • consideration.
  • The house in Thavies Inn had bills in the windows announcing that it
  • was to let, and it looked dirtier and gloomier and ghastlier than
  • ever. The name of poor Mr. Jellyby had appeared in the list of
  • bankrupts but a day or two before, and he was shut up in the
  • dining-room with two gentlemen and a heap of blue bags,
  • account-books, and papers, making the most desperate endeavours to
  • understand his affairs. They appeared to me to be quite beyond his
  • comprehension, for when Caddy took me into the dining-room by mistake
  • and we came upon Mr. Jellyby in his spectacles, forlornly fenced into
  • a corner by the great dining-table and the two gentlemen, he seemed
  • to have given up the whole thing and to be speechless and insensible.
  • Going upstairs to Mrs. Jellyby's room (the children were all
  • screaming in the kitchen, and there was no servant to be seen), we
  • found that lady in the midst of a voluminous correspondence, opening,
  • reading, and sorting letters, with a great accumulation of torn
  • covers on the floor. She was so preoccupied that at first she did not
  • know me, though she sat looking at me with that curious, bright-eyed,
  • far-off look of hers.
  • "Ah! Miss Summerson!" she said at last. "I was thinking of something
  • so different! I hope you are well. I am happy to see you. Mr.
  • Jarndyce and Miss Clare quite well?"
  • I hoped in return that Mr. Jellyby was quite well.
  • "Why, not quite, my dear," said Mrs. Jellyby in the calmest manner.
  • "He has been unfortunate in his affairs and is a little out of
  • spirits. Happily for me, I am so much engaged that I have no time to
  • think about it. We have, at the present moment, one hundred and
  • seventy families, Miss Summerson, averaging five persons in each,
  • either gone or going to the left bank of the Niger."
  • I thought of the one family so near us who were neither gone nor
  • going to the left bank of the Niger, and wondered how she could be so
  • placid.
  • "You have brought Caddy back, I see," observed Mrs. Jellyby with a
  • glance at her daughter. "It has become quite a novelty to see her
  • here. She has almost deserted her old employment and in fact obliges
  • me to employ a boy."
  • "I am sure, Ma--" began Caddy.
  • "Now you know, Caddy," her mother mildly interposed, "that I DO
  • employ a boy, who is now at his dinner. What is the use of your
  • contradicting?"
  • "I was not going to contradict, Ma," returned Caddy. "I was only
  • going to say that surely you wouldn't have me be a mere drudge all my
  • life."
  • "I believe, my dear," said Mrs. Jellyby, still opening her letters,
  • casting her bright eyes smilingly over them, and sorting them as she
  • spoke, "that you have a business example before you in your mother.
  • Besides. A mere drudge? If you had any sympathy with the destinies of
  • the human race, it would raise you high above any such idea. But you
  • have none. I have often told you, Caddy, you have no such sympathy."
  • "Not if it's Africa, Ma, I have not."
  • "Of course you have not. Now, if I were not happily so much engaged,
  • Miss Summerson," said Mrs. Jellyby, sweetly casting her eyes for a
  • moment on me and considering where to put the particular letter she
  • had just opened, "this would distress and disappoint me. But I have
  • so much to think of, in connexion with Borrioboola-Gha and it is so
  • necessary I should concentrate myself that there is my remedy, you
  • see."
  • As Caddy gave me a glance of entreaty, and as Mrs. Jellyby was
  • looking far away into Africa straight through my bonnet and head, I
  • thought it a good opportunity to come to the subject of my visit and
  • to attract Mrs. Jellyby's attention.
  • "Perhaps," I began, "you will wonder what has brought me here to
  • interrupt you."
  • "I am always delighted to see Miss Summerson," said Mrs. Jellyby,
  • pursuing her employment with a placid smile. "Though I wish," and she
  • shook her head, "she was more interested in the Borrioboolan
  • project."
  • "I have come with Caddy," said I, "because Caddy justly thinks she
  • ought not to have a secret from her mother and fancies I shall
  • encourage and aid her (though I am sure I don't know how) in
  • imparting one."
  • "Caddy," said Mrs. Jellyby, pausing for a moment in her occupation
  • and then serenely pursuing it after shaking her head, "you are going
  • to tell me some nonsense."
  • Caddy untied the strings of her bonnet, took her bonnet off, and
  • letting it dangle on the floor by the strings, and crying heartily,
  • said, "Ma, I am engaged."
  • "Oh, you ridiculous child!" observed Mrs. Jellyby with an abstracted
  • air as she looked over the dispatch last opened; "what a goose you
  • are!"
  • "I am engaged, Ma," sobbed Caddy, "to young Mr. Turveydrop, at the
  • academy; and old Mr. Turveydrop (who is a very gentlemanly man
  • indeed) has given his consent, and I beg and pray you'll give us
  • yours, Ma, because I never could be happy without it. I never, never
  • could!" sobbed Caddy, quite forgetful of her general complainings and
  • of everything but her natural affection.
  • "You see again, Miss Summerson," observed Mrs. Jellyby serenely,
  • "what a happiness it is to be so much occupied as I am and to have
  • this necessity for self-concentration that I have. Here is Caddy
  • engaged to a dancing-master's son--mixed up with people who have no
  • more sympathy with the destinies of the human race than she has
  • herself! This, too, when Mr. Quale, one of the first philanthropists
  • of our time, has mentioned to me that he was really disposed to be
  • interested in her!"
  • "Ma, I always hated and detested Mr. Quale!" sobbed Caddy.
  • "Caddy, Caddy!" returned Mrs. Jellyby, opening another letter with
  • the greatest complacency. "I have no doubt you did. How could you do
  • otherwise, being totally destitute of the sympathies with which he
  • overflows! Now, if my public duties were not a favourite child to me,
  • if I were not occupied with large measures on a vast scale, these
  • petty details might grieve me very much, Miss Summerson. But can I
  • permit the film of a silly proceeding on the part of Caddy (from whom
  • I expect nothing else) to interpose between me and the great African
  • continent? No. No," repeated Mrs. Jellyby in a calm clear voice, and
  • with an agreeable smile, as she opened more letters and sorted them.
  • "No, indeed."
  • I was so unprepared for the perfect coolness of this reception,
  • though I might have expected it, that I did not know what to say.
  • Caddy seemed equally at a loss. Mrs. Jellyby continued to open and
  • sort letters and to repeat occasionally in quite a charming tone of
  • voice and with a smile of perfect composure, "No, indeed."
  • "I hope, Ma," sobbed poor Caddy at last, "you are not angry?"
  • "Oh, Caddy, you really are an absurd girl," returned Mrs. Jellyby,
  • "to ask such questions after what I have said of the preoccupation of
  • my mind."
  • "And I hope, Ma, you give us your consent and wish us well?" said
  • Caddy.
  • "You are a nonsensical child to have done anything of this kind,"
  • said Mrs. Jellyby; "and a degenerate child, when you might have
  • devoted yourself to the great public measure. But the step is taken,
  • and I have engaged a boy, and there is no more to be said. Now, pray,
  • Caddy," said Mrs. Jellyby, for Caddy was kissing her, "don't delay me
  • in my work, but let me clear off this heavy batch of papers before
  • the afternoon post comes in!"
  • I thought I could not do better than take my leave; I was detained
  • for a moment by Caddy's saying, "You won't object to my bringing him
  • to see you, Ma?"
  • "Oh, dear me, Caddy," cried Mrs. Jellyby, who had relapsed into that
  • distant contemplation, "have you begun again? Bring whom?"
  • "Him, Ma."
  • "Caddy, Caddy!" said Mrs. Jellyby, quite weary of such little
  • matters. "Then you must bring him some evening which is not a Parent
  • Society night, or a Branch night, or a Ramification night. You must
  • accommodate the visit to the demands upon my time. My dear Miss
  • Summerson, it was very kind of you to come here to help out this
  • silly chit. Good-bye! When I tell you that I have fifty-eight new
  • letters from manufacturing families anxious to understand the details
  • of the native and coffee-cultivation question this morning, I need
  • not apologize for having very little leisure."
  • I was not surprised by Caddy's being in low spirits when we went
  • downstairs, or by her sobbing afresh on my neck, or by her saying she
  • would far rather have been scolded than treated with such
  • indifference, or by her confiding to me that she was so poor in
  • clothes that how she was ever to be married creditably she didn't
  • know. I gradually cheered her up by dwelling on the many things she
  • would do for her unfortunate father and for Peepy when she had a home
  • of her own; and finally we went downstairs into the damp dark
  • kitchen, where Peepy and his little brothers and sisters were
  • grovelling on the stone floor and where we had such a game of play
  • with them that to prevent myself from being quite torn to pieces I
  • was obliged to fall back on my fairy-tales. From time to time I heard
  • loud voices in the parlour overhead, and occasionally a violent
  • tumbling about of the furniture. The last effect I am afraid was
  • caused by poor Mr. Jellyby's breaking away from the dining-table and
  • making rushes at the window with the intention of throwing himself
  • into the area whenever he made any new attempt to understand his
  • affairs.
  • As I rode quietly home at night after the day's bustle, I thought a
  • good deal of Caddy's engagement and felt confirmed in my hopes (in
  • spite of the elder Mr. Turveydrop) that she would be the happier and
  • better for it. And if there seemed to be but a slender chance of her
  • and her husband ever finding out what the model of deportment really
  • was, why that was all for the best too, and who would wish them to be
  • wiser? I did not wish them to be any wiser and indeed was half
  • ashamed of not entirely believing in him myself. And I looked up at
  • the stars, and thought about travellers in distant countries and the
  • stars THEY saw, and hoped I might always be so blest and happy as to
  • be useful to some one in my small way.
  • They were so glad to see me when I got home, as they always were,
  • that I could have sat down and cried for joy if that had not been a
  • method of making myself disagreeable. Everybody in the house, from
  • the lowest to the highest, showed me such a bright face of welcome,
  • and spoke so cheerily, and was so happy to do anything for me, that I
  • suppose there never was such a fortunate little creature in the
  • world.
  • We got into such a chatty state that night, through Ada and my
  • guardian drawing me out to tell them all about Caddy, that I went on
  • prose, prose, prosing for a length of time. At last I got up to my
  • own room, quite red to think how I had been holding forth, and then I
  • heard a soft tap at my door. So I said, "Come in!" and there came in
  • a pretty little girl, neatly dressed in mourning, who dropped a
  • curtsy.
  • "If you please, miss," said the little girl in a soft voice, "I am
  • Charley."
  • "Why, so you are," said I, stooping down in astonishment and giving
  • her a kiss. "How glad am I to see you, Charley!"
  • "If you please, miss," pursued Charley in the same soft voice, "I'm
  • your maid."
  • "Charley?"
  • "If you please, miss, I'm a present to you, with Mr. Jarndyce's
  • love."
  • I sat down with my hand on Charley's neck and looked at Charley.
  • "And oh, miss," says Charley, clapping her hands, with the tears
  • starting down her dimpled cheeks, "Tom's at school, if you please,
  • and learning so good! And little Emma, she's with Mrs. Blinder, miss,
  • a-being took such care of! And Tom, he would have been at school--and
  • Emma, she would have been left with Mrs. Blinder--and me, I should
  • have been here--all a deal sooner, miss; only Mr. Jarndyce thought
  • that Tom and Emma and me had better get a little used to parting
  • first, we was so small. Don't cry, if you please, miss!"
  • "I can't help it, Charley."
  • "No, miss, nor I can't help it," says Charley. "And if you please,
  • miss, Mr. Jarndyce's love, and he thinks you'll like to teach me now
  • and then. And if you please, Tom and Emma and me is to see each other
  • once a month. And I'm so happy and so thankful, miss," cried Charley
  • with a heaving heart, "and I'll try to be such a good maid!"
  • "Oh, Charley dear, never forget who did all this!"
  • "No, miss, I never will. Nor Tom won't. Nor yet Emma. It was all you,
  • miss."
  • "I have known nothing of it. It was Mr. Jarndyce, Charley."
  • "Yes, miss, but it was all done for the love of you and that you
  • might be my mistress. If you please, miss, I am a little present with
  • his love, and it was all done for the love of you. Me and Tom was to
  • be sure to remember it."
  • Charley dried her eyes and entered on her functions, going in her
  • matronly little way about and about the room and folding up
  • everything she could lay her hands upon. Presently Charley came
  • creeping back to my side and said, "Oh, don't cry, if you please,
  • miss."
  • And I said again, "I can't help it, Charley."
  • And Charley said again, "No, miss, nor I can't help it." And so,
  • after all, I did cry for joy indeed, and so did she.
  • CHAPTER XXIV
  • An Appeal Case
  • As soon as Richard and I had held the conversation of which I have
  • given an account, Richard communicated the state of his mind to Mr.
  • Jarndyce. I doubt if my guardian were altogether taken by surprise
  • when he received the representation, though it caused him much
  • uneasiness and disappointment. He and Richard were often closeted
  • together, late at night and early in the morning, and passed whole
  • days in London, and had innumerable appointments with Mr. Kenge, and
  • laboured through a quantity of disagreeable business. While they were
  • thus employed, my guardian, though he underwent considerable
  • inconvenience from the state of the wind and rubbed his head so
  • constantly that not a single hair upon it ever rested in its right
  • place, was as genial with Ada and me as at any other time, but
  • maintained a steady reserve on these matters. And as our utmost
  • endeavours could only elicit from Richard himself sweeping assurances
  • that everything was going on capitally and that it really was all
  • right at last, our anxiety was not much relieved by him.
  • We learnt, however, as the time went on, that a new application was
  • made to the Lord Chancellor on Richard's behalf as an infant and a
  • ward, and I don't know what, and that there was a quantity of
  • talking, and that the Lord Chancellor described him in open court as
  • a vexatious and capricious infant, and that the matter was adjourned
  • and readjourned, and referred, and reported on, and petitioned about
  • until Richard began to doubt (as he told us) whether, if he entered
  • the army at all, it would not be as a veteran of seventy or eighty
  • years of age. At last an appointment was made for him to see the Lord
  • Chancellor again in his private room, and there the Lord Chancellor
  • very seriously reproved him for trifling with time and not knowing
  • his mind--"a pretty good joke, I think," said Richard, "from that
  • quarter!"--and at last it was settled that his application should be
  • granted. His name was entered at the Horse Guards as an applicant for
  • an ensign's commission; the purchase-money was deposited at an
  • agent's; and Richard, in his usual characteristic way, plunged into a
  • violent course of military study and got up at five o'clock every
  • morning to practise the broadsword exercise.
  • Thus, vacation succeeded term, and term succeeded vacation. We
  • sometimes heard of Jarndyce and Jarndyce as being in the paper or out
  • of the paper, or as being to be mentioned, or as being to be spoken
  • to; and it came on, and it went off. Richard, who was now in a
  • professor's house in London, was able to be with us less frequently
  • than before; my guardian still maintained the same reserve; and so
  • time passed until the commission was obtained and Richard received
  • directions with it to join a regiment in Ireland.
  • He arrived post-haste with the intelligence one evening, and had a
  • long conference with my guardian. Upwards of an hour elapsed before
  • my guardian put his head into the room where Ada and I were sitting
  • and said, "Come in, my dears!" We went in and found Richard, whom we
  • had last seen in high spirits, leaning on the chimney-piece looking
  • mortified and angry.
  • "Rick and I, Ada," said Mr. Jarndyce, "are not quite of one mind.
  • Come, come, Rick, put a brighter face upon it!"
  • "You are very hard with me, sir," said Richard. "The harder because
  • you have been so considerate to me in all other respects and have
  • done me kindnesses that I can never acknowledge. I never could have
  • been set right without you, sir."
  • "Well, well!" said Mr. Jarndyce. "I want to set you more right yet. I
  • want to set you more right with yourself."
  • "I hope you will excuse my saying, sir," returned Richard in a fiery
  • way, but yet respectfully, "that I think I am the best judge about
  • myself."
  • "I hope you will excuse my saying, my dear Rick," observed Mr.
  • Jarndyce with the sweetest cheerfulness and good humour, "that it's
  • quite natural in you to think so, but I don't think so. I must do my
  • duty, Rick, or you could never care for me in cool blood; and I hope
  • you will always care for me, cool and hot."
  • Ada had turned so pale that he made her sit down in his reading-chair
  • and sat beside her.
  • "It's nothing, my dear," he said, "it's nothing. Rick and I have only
  • had a friendly difference, which we must state to you, for you are
  • the theme. Now you are afraid of what's coming."
  • "I am not indeed, cousin John," replied Ada with a smile, "if it is
  • to come from you."
  • "Thank you, my dear. Do you give me a minute's calm attention,
  • without looking at Rick. And, little woman, do you likewise. My dear
  • girl," putting his hand on hers as it lay on the side of the
  • easy-chair, "you recollect the talk we had, we four when the little
  • woman told me of a little love affair?"
  • "It is not likely that either Richard or I can ever forget your
  • kindness that day, cousin John."
  • "I can never forget it," said Richard.
  • "And I can never forget it," said Ada.
  • "So much the easier what I have to say, and so much the easier for us
  • to agree," returned my guardian, his face irradiated by the
  • gentleness and honour of his heart. "Ada, my bird, you should know
  • that Rick has now chosen his profession for the last time. All that
  • he has of certainty will be expended when he is fully equipped. He
  • has exhausted his resources and is bound henceforward to the tree he
  • has planted."
  • "Quite true that I have exhausted my present resources, and I am
  • quite content to know it. But what I have of certainty, sir," said
  • Richard, "is not all I have."
  • "Rick, Rick!" cried my guardian with a sudden terror in his manner,
  • and in an altered voice, and putting up his hands as if he would have
  • stopped his ears. "For the love of God, don't found a hope or
  • expectation on the family curse! Whatever you do on this side the
  • grave, never give one lingering glance towards the horrible phantom
  • that has haunted us so many years. Better to borrow, better to beg,
  • better to die!"
  • We were all startled by the fervour of this warning. Richard bit his
  • lip and held his breath, and glanced at me as if he felt, and knew
  • that I felt too, how much he needed it.
  • "Ada, my dear," said Mr. Jarndyce, recovering his cheerfulness,
  • "these are strong words of advice, but I live in Bleak House and have
  • seen a sight here. Enough of that. All Richard had to start him in
  • the race of life is ventured. I recommend to him and you, for his
  • sake and your own, that he should depart from us with the
  • understanding that there is no sort of contract between you. I must
  • go further. I will be plain with you both. You were to confide freely
  • in me, and I will confide freely in you. I ask you wholly to
  • relinquish, for the present, any tie but your relationship."
  • "Better to say at once, sir," returned Richard, "that you renounce
  • all confidence in me and that you advise Ada to do the same."
  • "Better to say nothing of the sort, Rick, because I don't mean it."
  • "You think I have begun ill, sir," retorted Richard. "I HAVE, I
  • know."
  • "How I hoped you would begin, and how go on, I told you when we spoke
  • of these things last," said Mr. Jarndyce in a cordial and encouraging
  • manner. "You have not made that beginning yet, but there is a time
  • for all things, and yours is not gone by; rather, it is just now
  • fully come. Make a clear beginning altogether. You two (very young,
  • my dears) are cousins. As yet, you are nothing more. What more may
  • come must come of being worked out, Rick, and no sooner."
  • "You are very hard with me, sir," said Richard. "Harder than I could
  • have supposed you would be."
  • "My dear boy," said Mr. Jarndyce, "I am harder with myself when I do
  • anything that gives you pain. You have your remedy in your own hands.
  • Ada, it is better for him that he should be free and that there
  • should be no youthful engagement between you. Rick, it is better for
  • her, much better; you owe it to her. Come! Each of you will do what
  • is best for the other, if not what is best for yourselves."
  • "Why is it best, sir?" returned Richard hastily. "It was not when we
  • opened our hearts to you. You did not say so then."
  • "I have had experience since. I don't blame you, Rick, but I have had
  • experience since."
  • "You mean of me, sir."
  • "Well! Yes, of both of you," said Mr. Jarndyce kindly. "The time is
  • not come for your standing pledged to one another. It is not right,
  • and I must not recognize it. Come, come, my young cousins, begin
  • afresh! Bygones shall be bygones, and a new page turned for you to
  • write your lives in."
  • Richard gave an anxious glance at Ada but said nothing.
  • "I have avoided saying one word to either of you or to Esther," said
  • Mr. Jarndyce, "until now, in order that we might be open as the day,
  • and all on equal terms. I now affectionately advise, I now most
  • earnestly entreat, you two to part as you came here. Leave all else
  • to time, truth, and steadfastness. If you do otherwise, you will do
  • wrong, and you will have made me do wrong in ever bringing you
  • together."
  • A long silence succeeded.
  • "Cousin Richard," said Ada then, raising her blue eyes tenderly to
  • his face, "after what our cousin John has said, I think no choice is
  • left us. Your mind may be quite at ease about me, for you will leave
  • me here under his care and will be sure that I can have nothing to
  • wish for--quite sure if I guide myself by his advice. I--I don't
  • doubt, cousin Richard," said Ada, a little confused, "that you are
  • very fond of me, and I--I don't think you will fall in love with
  • anybody else. But I should like you to consider well about it too, as
  • I should like you to be in all things very happy. You may trust in
  • me, cousin Richard. I am not at all changeable; but I am not
  • unreasonable, and should never blame you. Even cousins may be sorry
  • to part; and in truth I am very, very sorry, Richard, though I know
  • it's for your welfare. I shall always think of you affectionately,
  • and often talk of you with Esther, and--and perhaps you will
  • sometimes think a little of me, cousin Richard. So now," said Ada,
  • going up to him and giving him her trembling hand, "we are only
  • cousins again, Richard--for the time perhaps--and I pray for a
  • blessing on my dear cousin, wherever he goes!"
  • It was strange to me that Richard should not be able to forgive my
  • guardian for entertaining the very same opinion of him which he
  • himself had expressed of himself in much stronger terms to me. But it
  • was certainly the case. I observed with great regret that from this
  • hour he never was as free and open with Mr. Jarndyce as he had been
  • before. He had every reason given him to be so, but he was not; and
  • solely on his side, an estrangement began to arise between them.
  • In the business of preparation and equipment he soon lost himself,
  • and even his grief at parting from Ada, who remained in Hertfordshire
  • while he, Mr. Jarndyce, and I went up to London for a week. He
  • remembered her by fits and starts, even with bursts of tears, and at
  • such times would confide to me the heaviest self-reproaches. But in a
  • few minutes he would recklessly conjure up some undefinable means by
  • which they were both to be made rich and happy for ever, and would
  • become as gay as possible.
  • It was a busy time, and I trotted about with him all day long, buying
  • a variety of things of which he stood in need. Of the things he would
  • have bought if he had been left to his own ways I say nothing. He was
  • perfectly confidential with me, and often talked so sensibly and
  • feelingly about his faults and his vigorous resolutions, and dwelt so
  • much upon the encouragement he derived from these conversations that
  • I could never have been tired if I had tried.
  • There used, in that week, to come backward and forward to our lodging
  • to fence with Richard a person who had formerly been a cavalry
  • soldier; he was a fine bluff-looking man, of a frank free bearing,
  • with whom Richard had practised for some months. I heard so much
  • about him, not only from Richard, but from my guardian too, that I
  • was purposely in the room with my work one morning after breakfast
  • when he came.
  • "Good morning, Mr. George," said my guardian, who happened to be
  • alone with me. "Mr. Carstone will be here directly. Meanwhile, Miss
  • Summerson is very happy to see you, I know. Sit down."
  • He sat down, a little disconcerted by my presence, I thought, and
  • without looking at me, drew his heavy sunburnt hand across and across
  • his upper lip.
  • "You are as punctual as the sun," said Mr. Jarndyce.
  • "Military time, sir," he replied. "Force of habit. A mere habit in
  • me, sir. I am not at all business-like."
  • "Yet you have a large establishment, too, I am told?" said Mr.
  • Jarndyce.
  • "Not much of a one, sir. I keep a shooting gallery, but not much of a
  • one."
  • "And what kind of a shot and what kind of a swordsman do you make of
  • Mr. Carstone?" said my guardian.
  • "Pretty good, sir," he replied, folding his arms upon his broad chest
  • and looking very large. "If Mr. Carstone was to give his full mind to
  • it, he would come out very good."
  • "But he don't, I suppose?" said my guardian.
  • "He did at first, sir, but not afterwards. Not his full mind. Perhaps
  • he has something else upon it--some young lady, perhaps." His bright
  • dark eyes glanced at me for the first time.
  • "He has not me upon his mind, I assure you, Mr. George," said I,
  • laughing, "though you seem to suspect me."
  • He reddened a little through his brown and made me a trooper's bow.
  • "No offence, I hope, miss. I am one of the roughs."
  • "Not at all," said I. "I take it as a compliment."
  • If he had not looked at me before, he looked at me now in three or
  • four quick successive glances. "I beg your pardon, sir," he said to
  • my guardian with a manly kind of diffidence, "but you did me the
  • honour to mention the young lady's name--"
  • "Miss Summerson."
  • "Miss Summerson," he repeated, and looked at me again.
  • "Do you know the name?" I asked.
  • "No, miss. To my knowledge I never heard it. I thought I had seen you
  • somewhere."
  • "I think not," I returned, raising my head from my work to look at
  • him; and there was something so genuine in his speech and manner that
  • I was glad of the opportunity. "I remember faces very well."
  • "So do I, miss!" he returned, meeting my look with the fullness of
  • his dark eyes and broad forehead. "Humph! What set me off, now, upon
  • that!"
  • His once more reddening through his brown and being disconcerted by
  • his efforts to remember the association brought my guardian to his
  • relief.
  • "Have you many pupils, Mr. George?"
  • "They vary in their number, sir. Mostly they're but a small lot to
  • live by."
  • "And what classes of chance people come to practise at your gallery?"
  • "All sorts, sir. Natives and foreigners. From gentlemen to
  • 'prentices. I have had Frenchwomen come, before now, and show
  • themselves dabs at pistol-shooting. Mad people out of number, of
  • course, but THEY go everywhere where the doors stand open."
  • "People don't come with grudges and schemes of finishing their
  • practice with live targets, I hope?" said my guardian, smiling.
  • "Not much of that, sir, though that HAS happened. Mostly they come
  • for skill--or idleness. Six of one, and half-a-dozen of the other. I
  • beg your pardon," said Mr. George, sitting stiffly upright and
  • squaring an elbow on each knee, "but I believe you're a Chancery
  • suitor, if I have heard correct?"
  • "I am sorry to say I am."
  • "I have had one of YOUR compatriots in my time, sir."
  • "A Chancery suitor?" returned my guardian. "How was that?"
  • "Why, the man was so badgered and worried and tortured by being
  • knocked about from post to pillar, and from pillar to post," said Mr.
  • George, "that he got out of sorts. I don't believe he had any idea of
  • taking aim at anybody, but he was in that condition of resentment and
  • violence that he would come and pay for fifty shots and fire away
  • till he was red hot. One day I said to him when there was nobody by
  • and he had been talking to me angrily about his wrongs, 'If this
  • practice is a safety-valve, comrade, well and good; but I don't
  • altogether like your being so bent upon it in your present state of
  • mind; I'd rather you took to something else.' I was on my guard for a
  • blow, he was that passionate; but he received it in very good part
  • and left off directly. We shook hands and struck up a sort of
  • friendship."
  • "What was that man?" asked my guardian in a new tone of interest.
  • "Why, he began by being a small Shropshire farmer before they made a
  • baited bull of him," said Mr. George.
  • "Was his name Gridley?"
  • "It was, sir."
  • Mr. George directed another succession of quick bright glances at me
  • as my guardian and I exchanged a word or two of surprise at the
  • coincidence, and I therefore explained to him how we knew the name.
  • He made me another of his soldierly bows in acknowledgment of what he
  • called my condescension.
  • "I don't know," he said as he looked at me, "what it is that sets me
  • off again--but--bosh! What's my head running against!" He passed one
  • of his heavy hands over his crisp dark hair as if to sweep the broken
  • thoughts out of his mind and sat a little forward, with one arm
  • akimbo and the other resting on his leg, looking in a brown study at
  • the ground.
  • "I am sorry to learn that the same state of mind has got this Gridley
  • into new troubles and that he is in hiding," said my guardian.
  • "So I am told, sir," returned Mr. George, still musing and looking on
  • the ground. "So I am told."
  • "You don't know where?"
  • "No, sir," returned the trooper, lifting up his eyes and coming out
  • of his reverie. "I can't say anything about him. He will be worn out
  • soon, I expect. You may file a strong man's heart away for a good
  • many years, but it will tell all of a sudden at last."
  • Richard's entrance stopped the conversation. Mr. George rose, made me
  • another of his soldierly bows, wished my guardian a good day, and
  • strode heavily out of the room.
  • This was the morning of the day appointed for Richard's departure. We
  • had no more purchases to make now; I had completed all his packing
  • early in the afternoon; and our time was disengaged until night, when
  • he was to go to Liverpool for Holyhead. Jarndyce and Jarndyce being
  • again expected to come on that day, Richard proposed to me that we
  • should go down to the court and hear what passed. As it was his last
  • day, and he was eager to go, and I had never been there, I gave my
  • consent and we walked down to Westminster, where the court was then
  • sitting. We beguiled the way with arrangements concerning the letters
  • that Richard was to write to me and the letters that I was to write
  • to him and with a great many hopeful projects. My guardian knew where
  • we were going and therefore was not with us.
  • When we came to the court, there was the Lord Chancellor--the same
  • whom I had seen in his private room in Lincoln's Inn--sitting in
  • great state and gravity on the bench, with the mace and seals on a
  • red table below him and an immense flat nosegay, like a little
  • garden, which scented the whole court. Below the table, again, was a
  • long row of solicitors, with bundles of papers on the matting at
  • their feet; and then there were the gentlemen of the bar in wigs and
  • gowns--some awake and some asleep, and one talking, and nobody paying
  • much attention to what he said. The Lord Chancellor leaned back in
  • his very easy chair with his elbow on the cushioned arm and his
  • forehead resting on his hand; some of those who were present dozed;
  • some read the newspapers; some walked about or whispered in groups:
  • all seemed perfectly at their ease, by no means in a hurry, very
  • unconcerned, and extremely comfortable.
  • To see everything going on so smoothly and to think of the roughness
  • of the suitors' lives and deaths; to see all that full dress and
  • ceremony and to think of the waste, and want, and beggared misery it
  • represented; to consider that while the sickness of hope deferred was
  • raging in so many hearts this polite show went calmly on from day to
  • day, and year to year, in such good order and composure; to behold
  • the Lord Chancellor and the whole array of practitioners under him
  • looking at one another and at the spectators as if nobody had ever
  • heard that all over England the name in which they were assembled was
  • a bitter jest, was held in universal horror, contempt, and
  • indignation, was known for something so flagrant and bad that little
  • short of a miracle could bring any good out of it to any one--this
  • was so curious and self-contradictory to me, who had no experience of
  • it, that it was at first incredible, and I could not comprehend it. I
  • sat where Richard put me, and tried to listen, and looked about me;
  • but there seemed to be no reality in the whole scene except poor
  • little Miss Flite, the madwoman, standing on a bench and nodding at
  • it.
  • Miss Flite soon espied us and came to where we sat. She gave me a
  • gracious welcome to her domain and indicated, with much gratification
  • and pride, its principal attractions. Mr. Kenge also came to speak to
  • us and did the honours of the place in much the same way, with the
  • bland modesty of a proprietor. It was not a very good day for a
  • visit, he said; he would have preferred the first day of term; but it
  • was imposing, it was imposing.
  • When we had been there half an hour or so, the case in progress--if I
  • may use a phrase so ridiculous in such a connexion--seemed to die out
  • of its own vapidity, without coming, or being by anybody expected to
  • come, to any result. The Lord Chancellor then threw down a bundle of
  • papers from his desk to the gentlemen below him, and somebody said,
  • "Jarndyce and Jarndyce." Upon this there was a buzz, and a laugh, and
  • a general withdrawal of the bystanders, and a bringing in of great
  • heaps, and piles, and bags and bags full of papers.
  • I think it came on "for further directions"--about some bill of
  • costs, to the best of my understanding, which was confused enough.
  • But I counted twenty-three gentlemen in wigs who said they were "in
  • it," and none of them appeared to understand it much better than I.
  • They chatted about it with the Lord Chancellor, and contradicted and
  • explained among themselves, and some of them said it was this way,
  • and some of them said it was that way, and some of them jocosely
  • proposed to read huge volumes of affidavits, and there was more
  • buzzing and laughing, and everybody concerned was in a state of idle
  • entertainment, and nothing could be made of it by anybody. After an
  • hour or so of this, and a good many speeches being begun and cut
  • short, it was "referred back for the present," as Mr. Kenge said, and
  • the papers were bundled up again before the clerks had finished
  • bringing them in.
  • I glanced at Richard on the termination of these hopeless proceedings
  • and was shocked to see the worn look of his handsome young face. "It
  • can't last for ever, Dame Durden. Better luck next time!" was all he
  • said.
  • I had seen Mr. Guppy bringing in papers and arranging them for Mr.
  • Kenge; and he had seen me and made me a forlorn bow, which rendered
  • me desirous to get out of the court. Richard had given me his arm and
  • was taking me away when Mr. Guppy came up.
  • "I beg your pardon, Mr. Carstone," said he in a whisper, "and Miss
  • Summerson's also, but there's a lady here, a friend of mine, who
  • knows her and wishes to have the pleasure of shaking hands." As he
  • spoke, I saw before me, as if she had started into bodily shape from
  • my remembrance, Mrs. Rachael of my godmother's house.
  • "How do you do, Esther?" said she. "Do you recollect me?"
  • I gave her my hand and told her yes and that she was very little
  • altered.
  • "I wonder you remember those times, Esther," she returned with her
  • old asperity. "They are changed now. Well! I am glad to see you, and
  • glad you are not too proud to know me." But indeed she seemed
  • disappointed that I was not.
  • "Proud, Mrs. Rachael!" I remonstrated.
  • "I am married, Esther," she returned, coldly correcting me, "and am
  • Mrs. Chadband. Well! I wish you good day, and I hope you'll do well."
  • Mr. Guppy, who had been attentive to this short dialogue, heaved a
  • sigh in my ear and elbowed his own and Mrs. Rachael's way through the
  • confused little crowd of people coming in and going out, which we
  • were in the midst of and which the change in the business had brought
  • together. Richard and I were making our way through it, and I was yet
  • in the first chill of the late unexpected recognition when I saw,
  • coming towards us, but not seeing us, no less a person than Mr.
  • George. He made nothing of the people about him as he tramped on,
  • staring over their heads into the body of the court.
  • "George!" said Richard as I called his attention to him.
  • "You are well met, sir," he returned. "And you, miss. Could you point
  • a person out for me, I want? I don't understand these places."
  • Turning as he spoke and making an easy way for us, he stopped when we
  • were out of the press in a corner behind a great red curtain.
  • "There's a little cracked old woman," he began, "that--"
  • I put up my finger, for Miss Flite was close by me, having kept
  • beside me all the time and having called the attention of several of
  • her legal acquaintance to me (as I had overheard to my confusion) by
  • whispering in their ears, "Hush! Fitz Jarndyce on my left!"
  • "Hem!" said Mr. George. "You remember, miss, that we passed some
  • conversation on a certain man this morning? Gridley," in a low
  • whisper behind his hand.
  • "Yes," said I.
  • "He is hiding at my place. I couldn't mention it. Hadn't his
  • authority. He is on his last march, miss, and has a whim to see her.
  • He says they can feel for one another, and she has been almost as
  • good as a friend to him here. I came down to look for her, for when I
  • sat by Gridley this afternoon, I seemed to hear the roll of the
  • muffled drums."
  • "Shall I tell her?" said I.
  • "Would you be so good?" he returned with a glance of something like
  • apprehension at Miss Flite. "It's a providence I met you, miss; I
  • doubt if I should have known how to get on with that lady." And he
  • put one hand in his breast and stood upright in a martial attitude as
  • I informed little Miss Flite, in her ear, of the purport of his kind
  • errand.
  • "My angry friend from Shropshire! Almost as celebrated as myself!"
  • she exclaimed. "Now really! My dear, I will wait upon him with the
  • greatest pleasure."
  • "He is living concealed at Mr. George's," said I. "Hush! This is Mr.
  • George."
  • "In--deed!" returned Miss Flite. "Very proud to have the honour! A
  • military man, my dear. You know, a perfect general!" she whispered to
  • me.
  • Poor Miss Flite deemed it necessary to be so courtly and polite, as a
  • mark of her respect for the army, and to curtsy so very often that it
  • was no easy matter to get her out of the court. When this was at last
  • done, and addressing Mr. George as "General," she gave him her arm,
  • to the great entertainment of some idlers who were looking on, he was
  • so discomposed and begged me so respectfully "not to desert him" that
  • I could not make up my mind to do it, especially as Miss Flite was
  • always tractable with me and as she too said, "Fitz Jarndyce, my
  • dear, you will accompany us, of course." As Richard seemed quite
  • willing, and even anxious, that we should see them safely to their
  • destination, we agreed to do so. And as Mr. George informed us that
  • Gridley's mind had run on Mr. Jarndyce all the afternoon after
  • hearing of their interview in the morning, I wrote a hasty note in
  • pencil to my guardian to say where we were gone and why. Mr. George
  • sealed it at a coffee-house, that it might lead to no discovery, and
  • we sent it off by a ticket-porter.
  • We then took a hackney-coach and drove away to the neighbourhood of
  • Leicester Square. We walked through some narrow courts, for which Mr.
  • George apologized, and soon came to the shooting gallery, the door of
  • which was closed. As he pulled a bell-handle which hung by a chain to
  • the door-post, a very respectable old gentleman with grey hair,
  • wearing spectacles, and dressed in a black spencer and gaiters and a
  • broad-brimmed hat, and carrying a large gold-beaded cane, addressed
  • him.
  • "I ask your pardon, my good friend," said he, "but is this George's
  • Shooting Gallery?"
  • "It is, sir," returned Mr. George, glancing up at the great letters
  • in which that inscription was painted on the whitewashed wall.
  • "Oh! To be sure!" said the old gentleman, following his eyes. "Thank
  • you. Have you rung the bell?"
  • "My name is George, sir, and I have rung the bell."
  • "Oh, indeed?" said the old gentleman. "Your name is George? Then I am
  • here as soon as you, you see. You came for me, no doubt?"
  • "No, sir. You have the advantage of me."
  • "Oh, indeed?" said the old gentleman. "Then it was your young man who
  • came for me. I am a physician and was requested--five minutes ago--to
  • come and visit a sick man at George's Shooting Gallery."
  • "The muffled drums," said Mr. George, turning to Richard and me and
  • gravely shaking his head. "It's quite correct, sir. Will you please
  • to walk in."
  • The door being at that moment opened by a very singular-looking
  • little man in a green-baize cap and apron, whose face and hands and
  • dress were blackened all over, we passed along a dreary passage into
  • a large building with bare brick walls where there were targets, and
  • guns, and swords, and other things of that kind. When we had all
  • arrived here, the physician stopped, and taking off his hat, appeared
  • to vanish by magic and to leave another and quite a different man in
  • his place.
  • "Now lookee here, George," said the man, turning quickly round upon
  • him and tapping him on the breast with a large forefinger. "You know
  • me, and I know you. You're a man of the world, and I'm a man of the
  • world. My name's Bucket, as you are aware, and I have got a
  • peace-warrant against Gridley. You have kept him out of the way a
  • long time, and you have been artful in it, and it does you credit."
  • Mr. George, looking hard at him, bit his lip and shook his head.
  • "Now, George," said the other, keeping close to him, "you're a
  • sensible man and a well-conducted man; that's what YOU are, beyond a
  • doubt. And mind you, I don't talk to you as a common character,
  • because you have served your country and you know that when duty
  • calls we must obey. Consequently you're very far from wanting to give
  • trouble. If I required assistance, you'd assist me; that's what YOU'D
  • do. Phil Squod, don't you go a-sidling round the gallery like
  • that"--the dirty little man was shuffling about with his shoulder
  • against the wall, and his eyes on the intruder, in a manner that
  • looked threatening--"because I know you and won't have it."
  • "Phil!" said Mr. George.
  • "Yes, guv'ner."
  • "Be quiet."
  • The little man, with a low growl, stood still.
  • "Ladies and gentlemen," said Mr. Bucket, "you'll excuse anything that
  • may appear to be disagreeable in this, for my name's Inspector Bucket
  • of the Detective, and I have a duty to perform. George, I know where
  • my man is because I was on the roof last night and saw him through
  • the skylight, and you along with him. He is in there, you know,"
  • pointing; "that's where HE is--on a sofy. Now I must see my man, and
  • I must tell my man to consider himself in custody; but you know me,
  • and you know I don't want to take any uncomfortable measures. You
  • give me your word, as from one man to another (and an old soldier,
  • mind you, likewise), that it's honourable between us two, and I'll
  • accommodate you to the utmost of my power."
  • "I give it," was the reply. "But it wasn't handsome in you, Mr.
  • Bucket."
  • "Gammon, George! Not handsome?" said Mr. Bucket, tapping him on his
  • broad breast again and shaking hands with him. "I don't say it wasn't
  • handsome in you to keep my man so close, do I? Be equally
  • good-tempered to me, old boy! Old William Tell, Old Shaw, the Life
  • Guardsman! Why, he's a model of the whole British army in himself,
  • ladies and gentlemen. I'd give a fifty-pun' note to be such a figure
  • of a man!"
  • The affair being brought to this head, Mr. George, after a little
  • consideration, proposed to go in first to his comrade (as he called
  • him), taking Miss Flite with him. Mr. Bucket agreeing, they went away
  • to the further end of the gallery, leaving us sitting and standing by
  • a table covered with guns. Mr. Bucket took this opportunity of
  • entering into a little light conversation, asking me if I were afraid
  • of fire-arms, as most young ladies were; asking Richard if he were a
  • good shot; asking Phil Squod which he considered the best of those
  • rifles and what it might be worth first-hand, telling him in return
  • that it was a pity he ever gave way to his temper, for he was
  • naturally so amiable that he might have been a young woman, and
  • making himself generally agreeable.
  • After a time he followed us to the further end of the gallery, and
  • Richard and I were going quietly away when Mr. George came after us.
  • He said that if we had no objection to see his comrade, he would take
  • a visit from us very kindly. The words had hardly passed his lips
  • when the bell was rung and my guardian appeared, "on the chance," he
  • slightly observed, "of being able to do any little thing for a poor
  • fellow involved in the same misfortune as himself." We all four went
  • back together and went into the place where Gridley was.
  • It was a bare room, partitioned off from the gallery with unpainted
  • wood. As the screening was not more than eight or ten feet high and
  • only enclosed the sides, not the top, the rafters of the high gallery
  • roof were overhead, and the skylight through which Mr. Bucket had
  • looked down. The sun was low--near setting--and its light came redly
  • in above, without descending to the ground. Upon a plain
  • canvas-covered sofa lay the man from Shropshire, dressed much as we
  • had seen him last, but so changed that at first I recognized no
  • likeness in his colourless face to what I recollected.
  • He had been still writing in his hiding-place, and still dwelling on
  • his grievances, hour after hour. A table and some shelves were
  • covered with manuscript papers and with worn pens and a medley of
  • such tokens. Touchingly and awfully drawn together, he and the little
  • mad woman were side by side and, as it were, alone. She sat on a
  • chair holding his hand, and none of us went close to them.
  • His voice had faded, with the old expression of his face, with his
  • strength, with his anger, with his resistance to the wrongs that had
  • at last subdued him. The faintest shadow of an object full of form
  • and colour is such a picture of it as he was of the man from
  • Shropshire whom we had spoken with before.
  • He inclined his head to Richard and me and spoke to my guardian.
  • "Mr. Jarndyce, it is very kind of you to come to see me. I am not
  • long to be seen, I think. I am very glad to take your hand, sir. You
  • are a good man, superior to injustice, and God knows I honour you."
  • They shook hands earnestly, and my guardian said some words of
  • comfort to him.
  • "It may seem strange to you, sir," returned Gridley; "I should not
  • have liked to see you if this had been the first time of our meeting.
  • But you know I made a fight for it, you know I stood up with my
  • single hand against them all, you know I told them the truth to the
  • last, and told them what they were, and what they had done to me; so
  • I don't mind your seeing me, this wreck."
  • "You have been courageous with them many and many a time," returned
  • my guardian.
  • "Sir, I have been," with a faint smile. "I told you what would come
  • of it when I ceased to be so, and see here! Look at us--look at us!"
  • He drew the hand Miss Flite held through her arm and brought her
  • something nearer to him.
  • "This ends it. Of all my old associations, of all my old pursuits and
  • hopes, of all the living and the dead world, this one poor soul alone
  • comes natural to me, and I am fit for. There is a tie of many
  • suffering years between us two, and it is the only tie I ever had on
  • earth that Chancery has not broken."
  • "Accept my blessing, Gridley," said Miss Flite in tears. "Accept my
  • blessing!"
  • "I thought, boastfully, that they never could break my heart, Mr.
  • Jarndyce. I was resolved that they should not. I did believe that I
  • could, and would, charge them with being the mockery they were until
  • I died of some bodily disorder. But I am worn out. How long I have
  • been wearing out, I don't know; I seemed to break down in an hour. I
  • hope they may never come to hear of it. I hope everybody here will
  • lead them to believe that I died defying them, consistently and
  • perseveringly, as I did through so many years."
  • Here Mr. Bucket, who was sitting in a corner by the door,
  • good-naturedly offered such consolation as he could administer.
  • "Come, come!" he said from his corner. "Don't go on in that way, Mr.
  • Gridley. You are only a little low. We are all of us a little low
  • sometimes. I am. Hold up, hold up! You'll lose your temper with the
  • whole round of 'em, again and again; and I shall take you on a score
  • of warrants yet, if I have luck."
  • He only shook his head.
  • "Don't shake your head," said Mr. Bucket. "Nod it; that's what I want
  • to see you do. Why, Lord bless your soul, what times we have had
  • together! Haven't I seen you in the Fleet over and over again for
  • contempt? Haven't I come into court, twenty afternoons for no other
  • purpose than to see you pin the Chancellor like a bull-dog? Don't you
  • remember when you first began to threaten the lawyers, and the peace
  • was sworn against you two or three times a week? Ask the little old
  • lady there; she has been always present. Hold up, Mr. Gridley, hold
  • up, sir!"
  • "What are you going to do about him?" asked George in a low voice.
  • "I don't know yet," said Bucket in the same tone. Then resuming his
  • encouragement, he pursued aloud: "Worn out, Mr. Gridley? After
  • dodging me for all these weeks and forcing me to climb the roof here
  • like a tom cat and to come to see you as a doctor? That ain't like
  • being worn out. I should think not! Now I tell you what you want. You
  • want excitement, you know, to keep YOU up; that's what YOU want.
  • You're used to it, and you can't do without it. I couldn't myself.
  • Very well, then; here's this warrant got by Mr. Tulkinghorn of
  • Lincoln's Inn Fields, and backed into half-a-dozen counties since.
  • What do you say to coming along with me, upon this warrant, and
  • having a good angry argument before the magistrates? It'll do you
  • good; it'll freshen you up and get you into training for another turn
  • at the Chancellor. Give in? Why, I am surprised to hear a man of your
  • energy talk of giving in. You mustn't do that. You're half the fun of
  • the fair in the Court of Chancery. George, you lend Mr. Gridley a
  • hand, and let's see now whether he won't be better up than down."
  • "He is very weak," said the trooper in a low voice.
  • "Is he?" returned Bucket anxiously. "I only want to rouse him. I
  • don't like to see an old acquaintance giving in like this. It would
  • cheer him up more than anything if I could make him a little waxy
  • with me. He's welcome to drop into me, right and left, if he likes. I
  • shall never take advantage of it."
  • The roof rang with a scream from Miss Flite, which still rings in my
  • ears.
  • "Oh, no, Gridley!" she cried as he fell heavily and calmly back from
  • before her. "Not without my blessing. After so many years!"
  • The sun was down, the light had gradually stolen from the roof, and
  • the shadow had crept upward. But to me the shadow of that pair, one
  • living and one dead, fell heavier on Richard's departure than the
  • darkness of the darkest night. And through Richard's farewell words I
  • heard it echoed: "Of all my old associations, of all my old pursuits
  • and hopes, of all the living and the dead world, this one poor soul
  • alone comes natural to me, and I am fit for. There is a tie of many
  • suffering years between us two, and it is the only tie I ever had on
  • earth that Chancery has not broken!"
  • CHAPTER XXV
  • Mrs. Snagsby Sees It All
  • There is disquietude in Cook's Court, Cursitor Street. Black
  • suspicion hides in that peaceful region. The mass of Cook's Courtiers
  • are in their usual state of mind, no better and no worse; but Mr.
  • Snagsby is changed, and his little woman knows it.
  • For Tom-all-Alone's and Lincoln's Inn Fields persist in harnessing
  • themselves, a pair of ungovernable coursers, to the chariot of Mr.
  • Snagsby's imagination; and Mr. Bucket drives; and the passengers are
  • Jo and Mr. Tulkinghorn; and the complete equipage whirls though the
  • law-stationery business at wild speed all round the clock. Even in
  • the little front kitchen where the family meals are taken, it rattles
  • away at a smoking pace from the dinner-table, when Mr. Snagsby pauses
  • in carving the first slice of the leg of mutton baked with potatoes
  • and stares at the kitchen wall.
  • Mr. Snagsby cannot make out what it is that he has had to do with.
  • Something is wrong somewhere, but what something, what may come of
  • it, to whom, when, and from which unthought of and unheard of quarter
  • is the puzzle of his life. His remote impressions of the robes and
  • coronets, the stars and garters, that sparkle through the
  • surface-dust of Mr. Tulkinghorn's chambers; his veneration for the
  • mysteries presided over by that best and closest of his customers,
  • whom all the Inns of Court, all Chancery Lane, and all the legal
  • neighbourhood agree to hold in awe; his remembrance of Detective Mr.
  • Bucket with his forefinger and his confidential manner, impossible to
  • be evaded or declined, persuade him that he is a party to some
  • dangerous secret without knowing what it is. And it is the fearful
  • peculiarity of this condition that, at any hour of his daily life, at
  • any opening of the shop-door, at any pull of the bell, at any
  • entrance of a messenger, or any delivery of a letter, the secret may
  • take air and fire, explode, and blow up--Mr. Bucket only knows whom.
  • For which reason, whenever a man unknown comes into the shop (as many
  • men unknown do) and says, "Is Mr. Snagsby in?" or words to that
  • innocent effect, Mr. Snagsby's heart knocks hard at his guilty
  • breast. He undergoes so much from such inquiries that when they are
  • made by boys he revenges himself by flipping at their ears over the
  • counter and asking the young dogs what they mean by it and why they
  • can't speak out at once? More impracticable men and boys persist in
  • walking into Mr. Snagsby's sleep and terrifying him with
  • unaccountable questions, so that often when the cock at the little
  • dairy in Cursitor Street breaks out in his usual absurd way about the
  • morning, Mr. Snagsby finds himself in a crisis of nightmare, with his
  • little woman shaking him and saying "What's the matter with the man!"
  • The little woman herself is not the least item in his difficulty. To
  • know that he is always keeping a secret from her, that he has under
  • all circumstances to conceal and hold fast a tender double tooth,
  • which her sharpness is ever ready to twist out of his head, gives Mr.
  • Snagsby, in her dentistical presence, much of the air of a dog who
  • has a reservation from his master and will look anywhere rather than
  • meet his eye.
  • These various signs and tokens, marked by the little woman, are not
  • lost upon her. They impel her to say, "Snagsby has something on his
  • mind!" And thus suspicion gets into Cook's Court, Cursitor Street.
  • From suspicion to jealousy, Mrs. Snagsby finds the road as natural
  • and short as from Cook's Court to Chancery Lane. And thus jealousy
  • gets into Cook's Court, Cursitor Street. Once there (and it was
  • always lurking thereabout), it is very active and nimble in Mrs.
  • Snagsby's breast, prompting her to nocturnal examinations of Mr.
  • Snagsby's pockets; to secret perusals of Mr. Snagsby's letters; to
  • private researches in the day book and ledger, till, cash-box, and
  • iron safe; to watchings at windows, listenings behind doors, and a
  • general putting of this and that together by the wrong end.
  • Mrs. Snagsby is so perpetually on the alert that the house becomes
  • ghostly with creaking boards and rustling garments. The 'prentices
  • think somebody may have been murdered there in bygone times. Guster
  • holds certain loose atoms of an idea (picked up at Tooting, where
  • they were found floating among the orphans) that there is buried
  • money underneath the cellar, guarded by an old man with a white
  • beard, who cannot get out for seven thousand years because he said
  • the Lord's Prayer backwards.
  • "Who was Nimrod?" Mrs. Snagsby repeatedly inquires of herself. "Who
  • was that lady--that creature? And who is that boy?" Now, Nimrod being
  • as dead as the mighty hunter whose name Mrs. Snagsby has
  • appropriated, and the lady being unproducible, she directs her mental
  • eye, for the present, with redoubled vigilance to the boy. "And who,"
  • quoth Mrs. Snagsby for the thousand and first time, "is that boy? Who
  • is that--!" And there Mrs. Snagsby is seized with an inspiration.
  • He has no respect for Mr. Chadband. No, to be sure, and he wouldn't
  • have, of course. Naturally he wouldn't, under those contagious
  • circumstances. He was invited and appointed by Mr. Chadband--why,
  • Mrs. Snagsby heard it herself with her own ears!--to come back, and
  • be told where he was to go, to be addressed by Mr. Chadband; and he
  • never came! Why did he never come? Because he was told not to come.
  • Who told him not to come? Who? Ha, ha! Mrs. Snagsby sees it all.
  • But happily (and Mrs. Snagsby tightly shakes her head and tightly
  • smiles) that boy was met by Mr. Chadband yesterday in the streets;
  • and that boy, as affording a subject which Mr. Chadband desires to
  • improve for the spiritual delight of a select congregation, was
  • seized by Mr. Chadband and threatened with being delivered over to
  • the police unless he showed the reverend gentleman where he lived and
  • unless he entered into, and fulfilled, an undertaking to appear in
  • Cook's Court to-morrow night, "to--mor--row--night," Mrs. Snagsby
  • repeats for mere emphasis with another tight smile and another tight
  • shake of her head; and to-morrow night that boy will be here, and
  • to-morrow night Mrs. Snagsby will have her eye upon him and upon some
  • one else; and oh, you may walk a long while in your secret ways (says
  • Mrs. Snagsby with haughtiness and scorn), but you can't blind ME!
  • Mrs. Snagsby sounds no timbrel in anybody's ears, but holds her
  • purpose quietly, and keeps her counsel. To-morrow comes, the savoury
  • preparations for the Oil Trade come, the evening comes. Comes Mr.
  • Snagsby in his black coat; come the Chadbands; come (when the gorging
  • vessel is replete) the 'prentices and Guster, to be edified; comes at
  • last, with his slouching head, and his shuffle backward, and his
  • shuffle forward, and his shuffle to the right, and his shuffle to the
  • left, and his bit of fur cap in his muddy hand, which he picks as if
  • it were some mangy bird he had caught and was plucking before eating
  • raw, Jo, the very, very tough subject Mr. Chadband is to improve.
  • Mrs. Snagsby screws a watchful glance on Jo as he is brought into the
  • little drawing-room by Guster. He looks at Mr. Snagsby the moment he
  • comes in. Aha! Why does he look at Mr. Snagsby? Mr. Snagsby looks at
  • him. Why should he do that, but that Mrs. Snagsby sees it all? Why
  • else should that look pass between them, why else should Mr. Snagsby
  • be confused and cough a signal cough behind his hand? It is as clear
  • as crystal that Mr. Snagsby is that boy's father.
  • "Peace, my friends," says Chadband, rising and wiping the oily
  • exudations from his reverend visage. "Peace be with us! My friends,
  • why with us? Because," with his fat smile, "it cannot be against us,
  • because it must be for us; because it is not hardening, because it is
  • softening; because it does not make war like the hawk, but comes home
  • unto us like the dove. Therefore, my friends, peace be with us! My
  • human boy, come forward!"
  • Stretching forth his flabby paw, Mr. Chadband lays the same on Jo's
  • arm and considers where to station him. Jo, very doubtful of his
  • reverend friend's intentions and not at all clear but that something
  • practical and painful is going to be done to him, mutters, "You let
  • me alone. I never said nothink to you. You let me alone."
  • "No, my young friend," says Chadband smoothly, "I will not let you
  • alone. And why? Because I am a harvest-labourer, because I am a
  • toiler and a moiler, because you are delivered over unto me and are
  • become as a precious instrument in my hands. My friends, may I so
  • employ this instrument as to use it to your advantage, to your
  • profit, to your gain, to your welfare, to your enrichment! My young
  • friend, sit upon this stool."
  • Jo, apparently possessed by an impression that the reverend gentleman
  • wants to cut his hair, shields his head with both arms and is got
  • into the required position with great difficulty and every possible
  • manifestation of reluctance.
  • When he is at last adjusted like a lay-figure, Mr. Chadband, retiring
  • behind the table, holds up his bear's-paw and says, "My friends!"
  • This is the signal for a general settlement of the audience. The
  • 'prentices giggle internally and nudge each other. Guster falls into
  • a staring and vacant state, compounded of a stunned admiration of Mr.
  • Chadband and pity for the friendless outcast whose condition touches
  • her nearly. Mrs. Snagsby silently lays trains of gunpowder. Mrs.
  • Chadband composes herself grimly by the fire and warms her knees,
  • finding that sensation favourable to the reception of eloquence.
  • It happens that Mr. Chadband has a pulpit habit of fixing some member
  • of his congregation with his eye and fatly arguing his points with
  • that particular person, who is understood to be expected to be moved
  • to an occasional grunt, groan, gasp, or other audible expression of
  • inward working, which expression of inward working, being echoed by
  • some elderly lady in the next pew and so communicated like a game of
  • forfeits through a circle of the more fermentable sinners present,
  • serves the purpose of parliamentary cheering and gets Mr. Chadband's
  • steam up. From mere force of habit, Mr. Chadband in saying "My
  • friends!" has rested his eye on Mr. Snagsby and proceeds to make that
  • ill-starred stationer, already sufficiently confused, the immediate
  • recipient of his discourse.
  • "We have here among us, my friends," says Chadband, "a Gentile and a
  • heathen, a dweller in the tents of Tom-all-Alone's and a mover-on
  • upon the surface of the earth. We have here among us, my friends,"
  • and Mr. Chadband, untwisting the point with his dirty thumb-nail,
  • bestows an oily smile on Mr. Snagsby, signifying that he will throw
  • him an argumentative back-fall presently if he be not already down,
  • "a brother and a boy. Devoid of parents, devoid of relations, devoid
  • of flocks and herds, devoid of gold and silver and of precious
  • stones. Now, my friends, why do I say he is devoid of these
  • possessions? Why? Why is he?" Mr. Chadband states the question as if
  • he were propounding an entirely new riddle of much ingenuity and
  • merit to Mr. Snagsby and entreating him not to give it up.
  • Mr. Snagsby, greatly perplexed by the mysterious look he received
  • just now from his little woman--at about the period when Mr. Chadband
  • mentioned the word parents--is tempted into modestly remarking, "I
  • don't know, I'm sure, sir." On which interruption Mrs. Chadband
  • glares and Mrs. Snagsby says, "For shame!"
  • "I hear a voice," says Chadband; "is it a still small voice, my
  • friends? I fear not, though I fain would hope so--"
  • "Ah--h!" from Mrs. Snagsby.
  • "Which says, 'I don't know.' Then I will tell you why. I say this
  • brother present here among us is devoid of parents, devoid of
  • relations, devoid of flocks and herds, devoid of gold, of silver, and
  • of precious stones because he is devoid of the light that shines in
  • upon some of us. What is that light? What is it? I ask you, what is
  • that light?"
  • Mr. Chadband draws back his head and pauses, but Mr. Snagsby is not
  • to be lured on to his destruction again. Mr. Chadband, leaning
  • forward over the table, pierces what he has got to follow directly
  • into Mr. Snagsby with the thumb-nail already mentioned.
  • "It is," says Chadband, "the ray of rays, the sun of suns, the moon
  • of moons, the star of stars. It is the light of Terewth."
  • Mr. Chadband draws himself up again and looks triumphantly at Mr.
  • Snagsby as if he would be glad to know how he feels after that.
  • "Of Terewth," says Mr. Chadband, hitting him again. "Say not to me
  • that it is NOT the lamp of lamps. I say to you it is. I say to you, a
  • million of times over, it is. It is! I say to you that I will
  • proclaim it to you, whether you like it or not; nay, that the less
  • you like it, the more I will proclaim it to you. With a
  • speaking-trumpet! I say to you that if you rear yourself against it,
  • you shall fall, you shall be bruised, you shall be battered, you
  • shall be flawed, you shall be smashed."
  • The present effect of this flight of oratory--much admired for its
  • general power by Mr. Chadband's followers--being not only to make Mr.
  • Chadband unpleasantly warm, but to represent the innocent Mr. Snagsby
  • in the light of a determined enemy to virtue, with a forehead of
  • brass and a heart of adamant, that unfortunate tradesman becomes yet
  • more disconcerted and is in a very advanced state of low spirits and
  • false position when Mr. Chadband accidentally finishes him.
  • "My friends," he resumes after dabbing his fat head for some
  • time--and it smokes to such an extent that he seems to light his
  • pocket-handkerchief at it, which smokes, too, after every dab--"to
  • pursue the subject we are endeavouring with our lowly gifts to
  • improve, let us in a spirit of love inquire what is that Terewth to
  • which I have alluded. For, my young friends," suddenly addressing the
  • 'prentices and Guster, to their consternation, "if I am told by the
  • doctor that calomel or castor-oil is good for me, I may naturally ask
  • what is calomel, and what is castor-oil. I may wish to be informed of
  • that before I dose myself with either or with both. Now, my young
  • friends, what is this Terewth then? Firstly (in a spirit of love),
  • what is the common sort of Terewth--the working clothes--the
  • every-day wear, my young friends? Is it deception?"
  • "Ah--h!" from Mrs. Snagsby.
  • "Is it suppression?"
  • A shiver in the negative from Mrs. Snagsby.
  • "Is it reservation?"
  • A shake of the head from Mrs. Snagsby--very long and very tight.
  • "No, my friends, it is neither of these. Neither of these names
  • belongs to it. When this young heathen now among us--who is now, my
  • friends, asleep, the seal of indifference and perdition being set
  • upon his eyelids; but do not wake him, for it is right that I should
  • have to wrestle, and to combat and to struggle, and to conquer, for
  • his sake--when this young hardened heathen told us a story of a cock,
  • and of a bull, and of a lady, and of a sovereign, was THAT the
  • Terewth? No. Or if it was partly, was it wholly and entirely? No, my
  • friends, no!"
  • If Mr. Snagsby could withstand his little woman's look as it enters
  • at his eyes, the windows of his soul, and searches the whole
  • tenement, he were other than the man he is. He cowers and droops.
  • "Or, my juvenile friends," says Chadband, descending to the level of
  • their comprehension with a very obtrusive demonstration in his
  • greasily meek smile of coming a long way downstairs for the purpose,
  • "if the master of this house was to go forth into the city and there
  • see an eel, and was to come back, and was to call unto him the
  • mistress of this house, and was to say, 'Sarah, rejoice with me, for
  • I have seen an elephant!' would THAT be Terewth?"
  • Mrs. Snagsby in tears.
  • "Or put it, my juvenile friends, that he saw an elephant, and
  • returning said 'Lo, the city is barren, I have seen but an eel,'
  • would THAT be Terewth?"
  • Mrs. Snagsby sobbing loudly.
  • "Or put it, my juvenile friends," said Chadband, stimulated by the
  • sound, "that the unnatural parents of this slumbering heathen--for
  • parents he had, my juvenile friends, beyond a doubt--after casting
  • him forth to the wolves and the vultures, and the wild dogs and the
  • young gazelles, and the serpents, went back to their dwellings and
  • had their pipes, and their pots, and their flutings and their
  • dancings, and their malt liquors, and their butcher's meat and
  • poultry, would THAT be Terewth?"
  • Mrs. Snagsby replies by delivering herself a prey to spasms, not an
  • unresisting prey, but a crying and a tearing one, so that Cook's
  • Court re-echoes with her shrieks. Finally, becoming cataleptic, she
  • has to be carried up the narrow staircase like a grand piano. After
  • unspeakable suffering, productive of the utmost consternation, she is
  • pronounced, by expresses from the bedroom, free from pain, though
  • much exhausted, in which state of affairs Mr. Snagsby, trampled and
  • crushed in the piano-forte removal, and extremely timid and feeble,
  • ventures to come out from behind the door in the drawing-room.
  • All this time Jo has been standing on the spot where he woke up, ever
  • picking his cap and putting bits of fur in his mouth. He spits them
  • out with a remorseful air, for he feels that it is in his nature to
  • be an unimprovable reprobate and that it's no good HIS trying to keep
  • awake, for HE won't never know nothink. Though it may be, Jo, that
  • there is a history so interesting and affecting even to minds as near
  • the brutes as thine, recording deeds done on this earth for common
  • men, that if the Chadbands, removing their own persons from the
  • light, would but show it thee in simple reverence, would but leave it
  • unimproved, would but regard it as being eloquent enough without
  • their modest aid--it might hold thee awake, and thou might learn from
  • it yet!
  • Jo never heard of any such book. Its compilers and the Reverend
  • Chadband are all one to him, except that he knows the Reverend
  • Chadband and would rather run away from him for an hour than hear him
  • talk for five minutes. "It an't no good my waiting here no longer,"
  • thinks Jo. "Mr. Snagsby an't a-going to say nothink to me to-night."
  • And downstairs he shuffles.
  • But downstairs is the charitable Guster, holding by the handrail of
  • the kitchen stairs and warding off a fit, as yet doubtfully, the same
  • having been induced by Mrs. Snagsby's screaming. She has her own
  • supper of bread and cheese to hand to Jo, with whom she ventures to
  • interchange a word or so for the first time.
  • "Here's something to eat, poor boy," says Guster.
  • "Thank'ee, mum," says Jo.
  • "Are you hungry?"
  • "Jist!" says Jo.
  • "What's gone of your father and your mother, eh?"
  • Jo stops in the middle of a bite and looks petrified. For this orphan
  • charge of the Christian saint whose shrine was at Tooting has patted
  • him on the shoulder, and it is the first time in his life that any
  • decent hand has been so laid upon him.
  • "I never know'd nothink about 'em," says Jo.
  • "No more didn't I of mine," cries Guster. She is repressing symptoms
  • favourable to the fit when she seems to take alarm at something and
  • vanishes down the stairs.
  • "Jo," whispers the law-stationer softly as the boy lingers on the
  • step.
  • "Here I am, Mr. Snagsby!"
  • "I didn't know you were gone--there's another half-crown, Jo. It was
  • quite right of you to say nothing about the lady the other night when
  • we were out together. It would breed trouble. You can't be too quiet,
  • Jo."
  • "I am fly, master!"
  • And so, good night.
  • A ghostly shade, frilled and night-capped, follows the law-stationer
  • to the room he came from and glides higher up. And henceforth he
  • begins, go where he will, to be attended by another shadow than his
  • own, hardly less constant than his own, hardly less quiet than his
  • own. And into whatsoever atmosphere of secrecy his own shadow may
  • pass, let all concerned in the secrecy beware! For the watchful Mrs.
  • Snagsby is there too--bone of his bone, flesh of his flesh, shadow of
  • his shadow.
  • CHAPTER XXVI
  • Sharpshooters
  • Wintry morning, looking with dull eyes and sallow face upon the
  • neighbourhood of Leicester Square, finds its inhabitants unwilling to
  • get out of bed. Many of them are not early risers at the brightest of
  • times, being birds of night who roost when the sun is high and are
  • wide awake and keen for prey when the stars shine out. Behind dingy
  • blind and curtain, in upper story and garret, skulking more or less
  • under false names, false hair, false titles, false jewellery, and
  • false histories, a colony of brigands lie in their first sleep.
  • Gentlemen of the green-baize road who could discourse from personal
  • experience of foreign galleys and home treadmills; spies of strong
  • governments that eternally quake with weakness and miserable fear,
  • broken traitors, cowards, bullies, gamesters, shufflers, swindlers,
  • and false witnesses; some not unmarked by the branding-iron beneath
  • their dirty braid; all with more cruelty in them than was in Nero,
  • and more crime than is in Newgate. For howsoever bad the devil can be
  • in fustian or smock-frock (and he can be very bad in both), he is a
  • more designing, callous, and intolerable devil when he sticks a pin
  • in his shirt-front, calls himself a gentleman, backs a card or
  • colour, plays a game or so of billiards, and knows a little about
  • bills and promissory notes than in any other form he wears. And in
  • such form Mr. Bucket shall find him, when he will, still pervading
  • the tributary channels of Leicester Square.
  • But the wintry morning wants him not and wakes him not. It wakes Mr.
  • George of the shooting gallery and his familiar. They arise, roll up
  • and stow away their mattresses. Mr. George, having shaved himself
  • before a looking-glass of minute proportions, then marches out,
  • bare-headed and bare-chested, to the pump in the little yard and anon
  • comes back shining with yellow soap, friction, drifting rain, and
  • exceedingly cold water. As he rubs himself upon a large jack-towel,
  • blowing like a military sort of diver just come up, his hair curling
  • tighter and tighter on his sunburnt temples the more he rubs it so
  • that it looks as if it never could be loosened by any less coercive
  • instrument than an iron rake or a curry-comb--as he rubs, and puffs,
  • and polishes, and blows, turning his head from side to side the more
  • conveniently to excoriate his throat, and standing with his body well
  • bent forward to keep the wet from his martial legs, Phil, on his
  • knees lighting a fire, looks round as if it were enough washing for
  • him to see all that done, and sufficient renovation for one day to
  • take in the superfluous health his master throws off.
  • When Mr. George is dry, he goes to work to brush his head with two
  • hard brushes at once, to that unmerciful degree that Phil,
  • shouldering his way round the gallery in the act of sweeping it,
  • winks with sympathy. This chafing over, the ornamental part of Mr.
  • George's toilet is soon performed. He fills his pipe, lights it, and
  • marches up and down smoking, as his custom is, while Phil, raising a
  • powerful odour of hot rolls and coffee, prepares breakfast. He smokes
  • gravely and marches in slow time. Perhaps this morning's pipe is
  • devoted to the memory of Gridley in his grave.
  • "And so, Phil," says George of the shooting gallery after several
  • turns in silence, "you were dreaming of the country last night?"
  • Phil, by the by, said as much in a tone of surprise as he scrambled
  • out of bed.
  • "Yes, guv'ner."
  • "What was it like?"
  • "I hardly know what it was like, guv'ner," said Phil, considering.
  • "How did you know it was the country?"
  • "On account of the grass, I think. And the swans upon it," says Phil
  • after further consideration.
  • "What were the swans doing on the grass?"
  • "They was a-eating of it, I expect," says Phil.
  • The master resumes his march, and the man resumes his preparation of
  • breakfast. It is not necessarily a lengthened preparation, being
  • limited to the setting forth of very simple breakfast requisites for
  • two and the broiling of a rasher of bacon at the fire in the rusty
  • grate; but as Phil has to sidle round a considerable part of the
  • gallery for every object he wants, and never brings two objects at
  • once, it takes time under the circumstances. At length the breakfast
  • is ready. Phil announcing it, Mr. George knocks the ashes out of his
  • pipe on the hob, stands his pipe itself in the chimney corner, and
  • sits down to the meal. When he has helped himself, Phil follows suit,
  • sitting at the extreme end of the little oblong table and taking his
  • plate on his knees. Either in humility, or to hide his blackened
  • hands, or because it is his natural manner of eating.
  • "The country," says Mr. George, plying his knife and fork; "why, I
  • suppose you never clapped your eyes on the country, Phil?"
  • "I see the marshes once," says Phil, contentedly eating his
  • breakfast.
  • "What marshes?"
  • "THE marshes, commander," returns Phil.
  • "Where are they?"
  • "I don't know where they are," says Phil; "but I see 'em, guv'ner.
  • They was flat. And miste."
  • Governor and commander are interchangeable terms with Phil,
  • expressive of the same respect and deference and applicable to nobody
  • but Mr. George.
  • "I was born in the country, Phil."
  • "Was you indeed, commander?"
  • "Yes. And bred there."
  • Phil elevates his one eyebrow, and after respectfully staring at his
  • master to express interest, swallows a great gulp of coffee, still
  • staring at him.
  • "There's not a bird's note that I don't know," says Mr. George. "Not
  • many an English leaf or berry that I couldn't name. Not many a tree
  • that I couldn't climb yet if I was put to it. I was a real country
  • boy, once. My good mother lived in the country."
  • "She must have been a fine old lady, guv'ner," Phil observes.
  • "Aye! And not so old either, five and thirty years ago," says Mr.
  • George. "But I'll wager that at ninety she would be near as upright
  • as me, and near as broad across the shoulders."
  • "Did she die at ninety, guv'ner?" inquires Phil.
  • "No. Bosh! Let her rest in peace, God bless her!" says the
  • trooper. "What set me on about country boys, and runaways, and
  • good-for-nothings? You, to be sure! So you never clapped your eyes
  • upon the country--marshes and dreams excepted. Eh?"
  • Phil shakes his head.
  • "Do you want to see it?"
  • "N-no, I don't know as I do, particular," says Phil.
  • "The town's enough for you, eh?"
  • "Why, you see, commander," says Phil, "I ain't acquainted with
  • anythink else, and I doubt if I ain't a-getting too old to take to
  • novelties."
  • "How old ARE you, Phil?" asks the trooper, pausing as he conveys his
  • smoking saucer to his lips.
  • "I'm something with a eight in it," says Phil. "It can't be eighty.
  • Nor yet eighteen. It's betwixt 'em, somewheres."
  • Mr. George, slowly putting down his saucer without tasting its
  • contents, is laughingly beginning, "Why, what the deuce, Phil--" when
  • he stops, seeing that Phil is counting on his dirty fingers.
  • "I was just eight," says Phil, "agreeable to the parish calculation,
  • when I went with the tinker. I was sent on a errand, and I see him
  • a-sittin under a old buildin with a fire all to himself wery
  • comfortable, and he says, 'Would you like to come along a me, my
  • man?' I says 'Yes,' and him and me and the fire goes home to
  • Clerkenwell together. That was April Fool Day. I was able to count up
  • to ten; and when April Fool Day come round again, I says to myself,
  • 'Now, old chap, you're one and a eight in it.' April Fool Day after
  • that, I says, 'Now, old chap, you're two and a eight in it.' In
  • course of time, I come to ten and a eight in it; two tens and a eight
  • in it. When it got so high, it got the upper hand of me, but this is
  • how I always know there's a eight in it."
  • "Ah!" says Mr. George, resuming his breakfast. "And where's the
  • tinker?"
  • "Drink put him in the hospital, guv'ner, and the hospital put him--in
  • a glass-case, I HAVE heerd," Phil replies mysteriously.
  • "By that means you got promotion? Took the business, Phil?"
  • "Yes, commander, I took the business. Such as it was. It wasn't much
  • of a beat--round Saffron Hill, Hatton Garden, Clerkenwell, Smiffeld,
  • and there--poor neighbourhood, where they uses up the kettles till
  • they're past mending. Most of the tramping tinkers used to come and
  • lodge at our place; that was the best part of my master's earnings.
  • But they didn't come to me. I warn't like him. He could sing 'em a
  • good song. I couldn't! He could play 'em a tune on any sort of pot
  • you please, so as it was iron or block tin. I never could do nothing
  • with a pot but mend it or bile it--never had a note of music in me.
  • Besides, I was too ill-looking, and their wives complained of me."
  • "They were mighty particular. You would pass muster in a crowd,
  • Phil!" says the trooper with a pleasant smile.
  • "No, guv'ner," returns Phil, shaking his head. "No, I shouldn't. I
  • was passable enough when I went with the tinker, though nothing to
  • boast of then; but what with blowing the fire with my mouth when I
  • was young, and spileing my complexion, and singeing my hair off, and
  • swallering the smoke, and what with being nat'rally unfort'nate in
  • the way of running against hot metal and marking myself by sich
  • means, and what with having turn-ups with the tinker as I got older,
  • almost whenever he was too far gone in drink--which was almost
  • always--my beauty was queer, wery queer, even at that time. As to
  • since, what with a dozen years in a dark forge where the men was
  • given to larking, and what with being scorched in a accident at a
  • gas-works, and what with being blowed out of winder case-filling at
  • the firework business, I am ugly enough to be made a show on!"
  • Resigning himself to which condition with a perfectly satisfied
  • manner, Phil begs the favour of another cup of coffee. While drinking
  • it, he says, "It was after the case-filling blow-up when I first see
  • you, commander. You remember?"
  • "I remember, Phil. You were walking along in the sun."
  • "Crawling, guv'ner, again a wall--"
  • "True, Phil--shouldering your way on--"
  • "In a night-cap!" exclaims Phil, excited.
  • "In a night-cap--"
  • "And hobbling with a couple of sticks!" cries Phil, still more
  • excited.
  • "With a couple of sticks. When--"
  • "When you stops, you know," cries Phil, putting down his cup and
  • saucer and hastily removing his plate from his knees, "and says to
  • me, 'What, comrade! You have been in the wars!' I didn't say much to
  • you, commander, then, for I was took by surprise that a person so
  • strong and healthy and bold as you was should stop to speak to such a
  • limping bag of bones as I was. But you says to me, says you,
  • delivering it out of your chest as hearty as possible, so that it was
  • like a glass of something hot, 'What accident have you met with? You
  • have been badly hurt. What's amiss, old boy? Cheer up, and tell us
  • about it!' Cheer up! I was cheered already! I says as much to you,
  • you says more to me, I says more to you, you says more to me, and
  • here I am, commander! Here I am, commander!" cries Phil, who has
  • started from his chair and unaccountably begun to sidle away. "If a
  • mark's wanted, or if it will improve the business, let the customers
  • take aim at me. They can't spoil MY beauty. I'M all right. Come on!
  • If they want a man to box at, let 'em box at me. Let 'em knock me
  • well about the head. I don't mind. If they want a light-weight to be
  • throwed for practice, Cornwall, Devonshire, or Lancashire, let 'em
  • throw me. They won't hurt ME. I have been throwed, all sorts of
  • styles, all my life!"
  • With this unexpected speech, energetically delivered and accompanied
  • by action illustrative of the various exercises referred to, Phil
  • Squod shoulders his way round three sides of the gallery, and
  • abruptly tacking off at his commander, makes a butt at him with his
  • head, intended to express devotion to his service. He then begins to
  • clear away the breakfast.
  • Mr. George, after laughing cheerfully and clapping him on the
  • shoulder, assists in these arrangements and helps to get the gallery
  • into business order. That done, he takes a turn at the dumb-bells,
  • and afterwards weighing himself and opining that he is getting "too
  • fleshy," engages with great gravity in solitary broadsword practice.
  • Meanwhile Phil has fallen to work at his usual table, where he screws
  • and unscrews, and cleans, and files, and whistles into small
  • apertures, and blackens himself more and more, and seems to do and
  • undo everything that can be done and undone about a gun.
  • Master and man are at length disturbed by footsteps in the passage,
  • where they make an unusual sound, denoting the arrival of unusual
  • company. These steps, advancing nearer and nearer to the gallery,
  • bring into it a group at first sight scarcely reconcilable with any
  • day in the year but the fifth of November.
  • It consists of a limp and ugly figure carried in a chair by two
  • bearers and attended by a lean female with a face like a pinched
  • mask, who might be expected immediately to recite the popular verses
  • commemorative of the time when they did contrive to blow Old England
  • up alive but for her keeping her lips tightly and defiantly closed as
  • the chair is put down. At which point the figure in it gasping, "O
  • Lord! Oh, dear me! I am shaken!" adds, "How de do, my dear friend,
  • how de do?" Mr. George then descries, in the procession, the
  • venerable Mr. Smallweed out for an airing, attended by his
  • granddaughter Judy as body-guard.
  • "Mr. George, my dear friend," says Grandfather Smallweed, removing
  • his right arm from the neck of one of his bearers, whom he has nearly
  • throttled coming along, "how de do? You're surprised to see me, my
  • dear friend."
  • "I should hardly have been more surprised to have seen your friend in
  • the city," returns Mr. George.
  • "I am very seldom out," pants Mr. Smallweed. "I haven't been out for
  • many months. It's inconvenient--and it comes expensive. But I longed
  • so much to see you, my dear Mr. George. How de do, sir?"
  • "I am well enough," says Mr. George. "I hope you are the same."
  • "You can't be too well, my dear friend." Mr. Smallweed takes him by
  • both hands. "I have brought my granddaughter Judy. I couldn't keep
  • her away. She longed so much to see you."
  • "Hum! She bears it calmly!" mutters Mr. George.
  • "So we got a hackney-cab, and put a chair in it, and just round the
  • corner they lifted me out of the cab and into the chair, and carried
  • me here that I might see my dear friend in his own establishment!
  • This," says Grandfather Smallweed, alluding to the bearer, who has
  • been in danger of strangulation and who withdraws adjusting his
  • windpipe, "is the driver of the cab. He has nothing extra. It is by
  • agreement included in his fare. This person," the other bearer, "we
  • engaged in the street outside for a pint of beer. Which is twopence.
  • Judy, give the person twopence. I was not sure you had a workman of
  • your own here, my dear friend, or we needn't have employed this
  • person."
  • Grandfather Smallweed refers to Phil with a glance of considerable
  • terror and a half-subdued "O Lord! Oh, dear me!" Nor in his
  • apprehension, on the surface of things, without some reason, for
  • Phil, who has never beheld the apparition in the black-velvet cap
  • before, has stopped short with a gun in his hand with much of the air
  • of a dead shot intent on picking Mr. Smallweed off as an ugly old
  • bird of the crow species.
  • "Judy, my child," says Grandfather Smallweed, "give the person his
  • twopence. It's a great deal for what he has done."
  • The person, who is one of those extraordinary specimens of human
  • fungus that spring up spontaneously in the western streets of London,
  • ready dressed in an old red jacket, with a "mission" for holding
  • horses and calling coaches, received his twopence with anything but
  • transport, tosses the money into the air, catches it over-handed, and
  • retires.
  • "My dear Mr. George," says Grandfather Smallweed, "would you be so
  • kind as help to carry me to the fire? I am accustomed to a fire, and
  • I am an old man, and I soon chill. Oh, dear me!"
  • His closing exclamation is jerked out of the venerable gentleman by
  • the suddenness with which Mr. Squod, like a genie, catches him up,
  • chair and all, and deposits him on the hearth-stone.
  • "O Lord!" says Mr. Smallweed, panting. "Oh, dear me! Oh, my stars! My
  • dear friend, your workman is very strong--and very prompt. O Lord, he
  • is very prompt! Judy, draw me back a little. I'm being scorched in
  • the legs," which indeed is testified to the noses of all present by
  • the smell of his worsted stockings.
  • The gentle Judy, having backed her grandfather a little way from the
  • fire, and having shaken him up as usual, and having released his
  • overshadowed eye from its black-velvet extinguisher, Mr. Smallweed
  • again says, "Oh, dear me! O Lord!" and looking about and meeting Mr.
  • George's glance, again stretches out both hands.
  • "My dear friend! So happy in this meeting! And this is your
  • establishment? It's a delightful place. It's a picture! You never
  • find that anything goes off here accidentally, do you, my dear
  • friend?" adds Grandfather Smallweed, very ill at ease.
  • "No, no. No fear of that."
  • "And your workman. He--Oh, dear me!--he never lets anything off
  • without meaning it, does he, my dear friend?"
  • "He has never hurt anybody but himself," says Mr. George, smiling.
  • "But he might, you know. He seems to have hurt himself a good deal,
  • and he might hurt somebody else," the old gentleman returns. "He
  • mightn't mean it--or he even might. Mr. George, will you order him to
  • leave his infernal fire-arms alone and go away?"
  • Obedient to a nod from the trooper, Phil retires, empty-handed, to
  • the other end of the gallery. Mr. Smallweed, reassured, falls to
  • rubbing his legs.
  • "And you're doing well, Mr. George?" he says to the trooper, squarely
  • standing faced about towards him with his broadsword in his hand.
  • "You are prospering, please the Powers?"
  • Mr. George answers with a cool nod, adding, "Go on. You have not come
  • to say that, I know."
  • "You are so sprightly, Mr. George," returns the venerable
  • grandfather. "You are such good company."
  • "Ha ha! Go on!" says Mr. George.
  • "My dear friend! But that sword looks awful gleaming and sharp. It
  • might cut somebody, by accident. It makes me shiver, Mr. George.
  • Curse him!" says the excellent old gentleman apart to Judy as the
  • trooper takes a step or two away to lay it aside. "He owes me money,
  • and might think of paying off old scores in this murdering place. I
  • wish your brimstone grandmother was here, and he'd shave her head
  • off."
  • Mr. George, returning, folds his arms, and looking down at the old
  • man, sliding every moment lower and lower in his chair, says quietly,
  • "Now for it!"
  • "Ho!" cries Mr. Smallweed, rubbing his hands with an artful chuckle.
  • "Yes. Now for it. Now for what, my dear friend?"
  • "For a pipe," says Mr. George, who with great composure sets his
  • chair in the chimney-corner, takes his pipe from the grate, fills it
  • and lights it, and falls to smoking peacefully.
  • This tends to the discomfiture of Mr. Smallweed, who finds it so
  • difficult to resume his object, whatever it may be, that he becomes
  • exasperated and secretly claws the air with an impotent
  • vindictiveness expressive of an intense desire to tear and rend the
  • visage of Mr. George. As the excellent old gentleman's nails are long
  • and leaden, and his hands lean and veinous, and his eyes green and
  • watery; and, over and above this, as he continues, while he claws, to
  • slide down in his chair and to collapse into a shapeless bundle, he
  • becomes such a ghastly spectacle, even in the accustomed eyes of
  • Judy, that that young virgin pounces at him with something more than
  • the ardour of affection and so shakes him up and pats and pokes him
  • in divers parts of his body, but particularly in that part which the
  • science of self-defence would call his wind, that in his grievous
  • distress he utters enforced sounds like a paviour's rammer.
  • When Judy has by these means set him up again in his chair, with a
  • white face and a frosty nose (but still clawing), she stretches out
  • her weazen forefinger and gives Mr. George one poke in the back. The
  • trooper raising his head, she makes another poke at her esteemed
  • grandfather, and having thus brought them together, stares rigidly at
  • the fire.
  • "Aye, aye! Ho, ho! U--u--u--ugh!" chatters Grandfather Smallweed,
  • swallowing his rage. "My dear friend!" (still clawing).
  • "I tell you what," says Mr. George. "If you want to converse with me,
  • you must speak out. I am one of the roughs, and I can't go about and
  • about. I haven't the art to do it. I am not clever enough. It don't
  • suit me. When you go winding round and round me," says the trooper,
  • putting his pipe between his lips again, "damme, if I don't feel as
  • if I was being smothered!"
  • And he inflates his broad chest to its utmost extent as if to assure
  • himself that he is not smothered yet.
  • "If you have come to give me a friendly call," continues Mr. George,
  • "I am obliged to you; how are you? If you have come to see whether
  • there's any property on the premises, look about you; you are
  • welcome. If you want to out with something, out with it!"
  • The blooming Judy, without removing her gaze from the fire, gives her
  • grandfather one ghostly poke.
  • "You see! It's her opinion too. And why the devil that young woman
  • won't sit down like a Christian," says Mr. George with his eyes
  • musingly fixed on Judy, "I can't comprehend."
  • "She keeps at my side to attend to me, sir," says Grandfather
  • Smallweed. "I am an old man, my dear Mr. George, and I need some
  • attention. I can carry my years; I am not a brimstone poll-parrot"
  • (snarling and looking unconsciously for the cushion), "but I need
  • attention, my dear friend."
  • "Well!" returns the trooper, wheeling his chair to face the old man.
  • "Now then?"
  • "My friend in the city, Mr. George, has done a little business with a
  • pupil of yours."
  • "Has he?" says Mr. George. "I am sorry to hear it."
  • "Yes, sir." Grandfather Smallweed rubs his legs. "He is a fine young
  • soldier now, Mr. George, by the name of Carstone. Friends came
  • forward and paid it all up, honourable."
  • "Did they?" returns Mr. George. "Do you think your friend in the city
  • would like a piece of advice?"
  • "I think he would, my dear friend. From you."
  • "I advise him, then, to do no more business in that quarter. There's
  • no more to be got by it. The young gentleman, to my knowledge, is
  • brought to a dead halt."
  • "No, no, my dear friend. No, no, Mr. George. No, no, no, sir,"
  • remonstrates Grandfather Smallweed, cunningly rubbing his spare legs.
  • "Not quite a dead halt, I think. He has good friends, and he is good
  • for his pay, and he is good for the selling price of his commission,
  • and he is good for his chance in a lawsuit, and he is good for his
  • chance in a wife, and--oh, do you know, Mr. George, I think my friend
  • would consider the young gentleman good for something yet?" says
  • Grandfather Smallweed, turning up his velvet cap and scratching his
  • ear like a monkey.
  • Mr. George, who has put aside his pipe and sits with an arm on his
  • chair-back, beats a tattoo on the ground with his right foot as if he
  • were not particularly pleased with the turn the conversation has
  • taken.
  • "But to pass from one subject to another," resumes Mr. Smallweed.
  • "'To promote the conversation,' as a joker might say. To pass, Mr.
  • George, from the ensign to the captain."
  • "What are you up to, now?" asks Mr. George, pausing with a frown in
  • stroking the recollection of his moustache. "What captain?"
  • "Our captain. The captain we know of. Captain Hawdon."
  • "Oh! That's it, is it?" says Mr. George with a low whistle as he sees
  • both grandfather and granddaughter looking hard at him. "You are
  • there! Well? What about it? Come, I won't be smothered any more.
  • Speak!"
  • "My dear friend," returns the old man, "I was applied--Judy, shake me
  • up a little!--I was applied to yesterday about the captain, and my
  • opinion still is that the captain is not dead."
  • "Bosh!" observes Mr. George.
  • "What was your remark, my dear friend?" inquires the old man with his
  • hand to his ear.
  • "Bosh!"
  • "Ho!" says Grandfather Smallweed. "Mr. George, of my opinion you can
  • judge for yourself according to the questions asked of me and the
  • reasons given for asking 'em. Now, what do you think the lawyer
  • making the inquiries wants?"
  • "A job," says Mr. George.
  • "Nothing of the kind!"
  • "Can't be a lawyer, then," says Mr. George, folding his arms with an
  • air of confirmed resolution.
  • "My dear friend, he is a lawyer, and a famous one. He wants to see
  • some fragment in Captain Hawdon's writing. He don't want to keep it.
  • He only wants to see it and compare it with a writing in his
  • possession."
  • "Well?"
  • "Well, Mr. George. Happening to remember the advertisement concerning
  • Captain Hawdon and any information that could be given respecting
  • him, he looked it up and came to me--just as you did, my dear friend.
  • WILL you shake hands? So glad you came that day! I should have missed
  • forming such a friendship if you hadn't come!"
  • "Well, Mr. Smallweed?" says Mr. George again after going through the
  • ceremony with some stiffness.
  • "I had no such thing. I have nothing but his signature. Plague
  • pestilence and famine, battle murder and sudden death upon him," says
  • the old man, making a curse out of one of his few remembrances of a
  • prayer and squeezing up his velvet cap between his angry hands, "I
  • have half a million of his signatures, I think! But you,"
  • breathlessly recovering his mildness of speech as Judy re-adjusts the
  • cap on his skittle-ball of a head, "you, my dear Mr. George, are
  • likely to have some letter or paper that would suit the purpose.
  • Anything would suit the purpose, written in the hand."
  • "Some writing in that hand," says the trooper, pondering; "may be, I
  • have."
  • "My dearest friend!"
  • "May be, I have not."
  • "Ho!" says Grandfather Smallweed, crest-fallen.
  • "But if I had bushels of it, I would not show as much as would make a
  • cartridge without knowing why."
  • "Sir, I have told you why. My dear Mr. George, I have told you why."
  • "Not enough," says the trooper, shaking his head. "I must know more,
  • and approve it."
  • "Then, will you come to the lawyer? My dear friend, will you come and
  • see the gentleman?" urges Grandfather Smallweed, pulling out a lean
  • old silver watch with hands like the leg of a skeleton. "I told him
  • it was probable I might call upon him between ten and eleven this
  • forenoon, and it's now half after ten. Will you come and see the
  • gentleman, Mr. George?"
  • "Hum!" says he gravely. "I don't mind that. Though why this should
  • concern you so much, I don't know."
  • "Everything concerns me that has a chance in it of bringing anything
  • to light about him. Didn't he take us all in? Didn't he owe us
  • immense sums, all round? Concern me? Who can anything about him
  • concern more than me? Not, my dear friend," says Grandfather
  • Smallweed, lowering his tone, "that I want YOU to betray anything.
  • Far from it. Are you ready to come, my dear friend?"
  • "Aye! I'll come in a moment. I promise nothing, you know."
  • "No, my dear Mr. George; no."
  • "And you mean to say you're going to give me a lift to this place,
  • wherever it is, without charging for it?" Mr. George inquires,
  • getting his hat and thick wash-leather gloves.
  • This pleasantry so tickles Mr. Smallweed that he laughs, long and
  • low, before the fire. But ever while he laughs, he glances over his
  • paralytic shoulder at Mr. George and eagerly watches him as he
  • unlocks the padlock of a homely cupboard at the distant end of the
  • gallery, looks here and there upon the higher shelves, and ultimately
  • takes something out with a rustling of paper, folds it, and puts it
  • in his breast. Then Judy pokes Mr. Smallweed once, and Mr. Smallweed
  • pokes Judy once.
  • "I am ready," says the trooper, coming back. "Phil, you can carry
  • this old gentleman to his coach, and make nothing of him."
  • "Oh, dear me! O Lord! Stop a moment!" says Mr. Smallweed. "He's so
  • very prompt! Are you sure you can do it carefully, my worthy man?"
  • Phil makes no reply, but seizing the chair and its load, sidles away,
  • tightly hugged by the now speechless Mr. Smallweed, and bolts along
  • the passage as if he had an acceptable commission to carry the old
  • gentleman to the nearest volcano. His shorter trust, however,
  • terminating at the cab, he deposits him there; and the fair Judy
  • takes her place beside him, and the chair embellishes the roof, and
  • Mr. George takes the vacant place upon the box.
  • Mr. George is quite confounded by the spectacle he beholds from time
  • to time as he peeps into the cab through the window behind him, where
  • the grim Judy is always motionless, and the old gentleman with his
  • cap over one eye is always sliding off the seat into the straw and
  • looking upward at him out of his other eye with a helpless expression
  • of being jolted in the back.
  • CHAPTER XXVII
  • More Old Soldiers Than One
  • Mr. George has not far to ride with folded arms upon the box, for
  • their destination is Lincoln's Inn Fields. When the driver stops his
  • horses, Mr. George alights, and looking in at the window, says,
  • "What, Mr. Tulkinghorn's your man, is he?"
  • "Yes, my dear friend. Do you know him, Mr. George?"
  • "Why, I have heard of him--seen him too, I think. But I don't know
  • him, and he don't know me."
  • There ensues the carrying of Mr. Smallweed upstairs, which is done to
  • perfection with the trooper's help. He is borne into Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn's great room and deposited on the Turkey rug before the
  • fire. Mr. Tulkinghorn is not within at the present moment but will be
  • back directly. The occupant of the pew in the hall, having said thus
  • much, stirs the fire and leaves the triumvirate to warm themselves.
  • Mr. George is mightily curious in respect of the room. He looks up at
  • the painted ceiling, looks round at the old law-books, contemplates
  • the portraits of the great clients, reads aloud the names on the
  • boxes.
  • "'Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet,'" Mr. George reads thoughtfully.
  • "Ha! 'Manor of Chesney Wold.' Humph!" Mr. George stands looking at
  • these boxes a long while--as if they were pictures--and comes back to
  • the fire repeating, "Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, and Manor of
  • Chesney Wold, hey?"
  • "Worth a mint of money, Mr. George!" whispers Grandfather Smallweed,
  • rubbing his legs. "Powerfully rich!"
  • "Who do you mean? This old gentleman, or the Baronet?"
  • "This gentleman, this gentleman."
  • "So I have heard; and knows a thing or two, I'll hold a wager. Not
  • bad quarters, either," says Mr. George, looking round again. "See the
  • strong-box yonder!"
  • This reply is cut short by Mr. Tulkinghorn's arrival. There is no
  • change in him, of course. Rustily drest, with his spectacles in his
  • hand, and their very case worn threadbare. In manner, close and dry.
  • In voice, husky and low. In face, watchful behind a blind; habitually
  • not uncensorious and contemptuous perhaps. The peerage may have
  • warmer worshippers and faithfuller believers than Mr. Tulkinghorn,
  • after all, if everything were known.
  • "Good morning, Mr. Smallweed, good morning!" he says as he comes in.
  • "You have brought the sergeant, I see. Sit down, sergeant."
  • As Mr. Tulkinghorn takes off his gloves and puts them in his hat, he
  • looks with half-closed eyes across the room to where the trooper
  • stands and says within himself perchance, "You'll do, my friend!"
  • "Sit down, sergeant," he repeats as he comes to his table, which is
  • set on one side of the fire, and takes his easy-chair. "Cold and raw
  • this morning, cold and raw!" Mr. Tulkinghorn warms before the bars,
  • alternately, the palms and knuckles of his hands and looks (from
  • behind that blind which is always down) at the trio sitting in a
  • little semicircle before him.
  • "Now, I can feel what I am about" (as perhaps he can in two senses),
  • "Mr. Smallweed." The old gentleman is newly shaken up by Judy to bear
  • his part in the conversation. "You have brought our good friend the
  • sergeant, I see."
  • "Yes, sir," returns Mr. Smallweed, very servile to the lawyer's
  • wealth and influence.
  • "And what does the sergeant say about this business?"
  • "Mr. George," says Grandfather Smallweed with a tremulous wave of his
  • shrivelled hand, "this is the gentleman, sir."
  • Mr. George salutes the gentleman but otherwise sits bolt upright and
  • profoundly silent--very forward in his chair, as if the full
  • complement of regulation appendages for a field-day hung about him.
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn proceeds, "Well, George--I believe your name is
  • George?"
  • "It is so, Sir."
  • "What do you say, George?"
  • "I ask your pardon, sir," returns the trooper, "but I should wish to
  • know what YOU say?"
  • "Do you mean in point of reward?"
  • "I mean in point of everything, sir."
  • This is so very trying to Mr. Smallweed's temper that he suddenly
  • breaks out with "You're a brimstone beast!" and as suddenly asks
  • pardon of Mr. Tulkinghorn, excusing himself for this slip of the
  • tongue by saying to Judy, "I was thinking of your grandmother, my
  • dear."
  • "I supposed, sergeant," Mr. Tulkinghorn resumes as he leans on one
  • side of his chair and crosses his legs, "that Mr. Smallweed might
  • have sufficiently explained the matter. It lies in the smallest
  • compass, however. You served under Captain Hawdon at one time, and
  • were his attendant in illness, and rendered him many little services,
  • and were rather in his confidence, I am told. That is so, is it not?"
  • "Yes, sir, that is so," says Mr. George with military brevity.
  • "Therefore you may happen to have in your possession
  • something--anything, no matter what; accounts, instructions, orders,
  • a letter, anything--in Captain Hawdon's writing. I wish to compare
  • his writing with some that I have. If you can give me the
  • opportunity, you shall be rewarded for your trouble. Three, four,
  • five, guineas, you would consider handsome, I dare say."
  • "Noble, my dear friend!" cries Grandfather Smallweed, screwing up his
  • eyes.
  • "If not, say how much more, in your conscience as a soldier, you can
  • demand. There is no need for you to part with the writing, against
  • your inclination--though I should prefer to have it."
  • Mr. George sits squared in exactly the same attitude, looks at the
  • painted ceiling, and says never a word. The irascible Mr. Smallweed
  • scratches the air.
  • "The question is," says Mr. Tulkinghorn in his methodical, subdued,
  • uninterested way, "first, whether you have any of Captain Hawdon's
  • writing?"
  • "First, whether I have any of Captain Hawdon's writing, sir," repeats
  • Mr. George.
  • "Secondly, what will satisfy you for the trouble of producing it?"
  • "Secondly, what will satisfy me for the trouble of producing it,
  • sir," repeats Mr. George.
  • "Thirdly, you can judge for yourself whether it is at all like that,"
  • says Mr. Tulkinghorn, suddenly handing him some sheets of written
  • paper tied together.
  • "Whether it is at all like that, sir. Just so," repeats Mr. George.
  • All three repetitions Mr. George pronounces in a mechanical manner,
  • looking straight at Mr. Tulkinghorn; nor does he so much as glance at
  • the affidavit in Jarndyce and Jarndyce, that has been given to him
  • for his inspection (though he still holds it in his hand), but
  • continues to look at the lawyer with an air of troubled meditation.
  • "Well?" says Mr. Tulkinghorn. "What do you say?"
  • "Well, sir," replies Mr. George, rising erect and looking immense, "I
  • would rather, if you'll excuse me, have nothing to do with this."
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn, outwardly quite undisturbed, demands, "Why not?"
  • "Why, sir," returns the trooper. "Except on military compulsion, I am
  • not a man of business. Among civilians I am what they call in
  • Scotland a ne'er-do-weel. I have no head for papers, sir. I can stand
  • any fire better than a fire of cross questions. I mentioned to Mr.
  • Smallweed, only an hour or so ago, that when I come into things of
  • this kind I feel as if I was being smothered. And that is my
  • sensation," says Mr. George, looking round upon the company, "at the
  • present moment."
  • With that, he takes three strides forward to replace the papers on
  • the lawyer's table and three strides backward to resume his former
  • station, where he stands perfectly upright, now looking at the ground
  • and now at the painted ceiling, with his hands behind him as if to
  • prevent himself from accepting any other document whatever.
  • Under this provocation, Mr. Smallweed's favourite adjective of
  • disparagement is so close to his tongue that he begins the words "my
  • dear friend" with the monosyllable "brim," thus converting the
  • possessive pronoun into brimmy and appearing to have an impediment in
  • his speech. Once past this difficulty, however, he exhorts his dear
  • friend in the tenderest manner not to be rash, but to do what so
  • eminent a gentleman requires, and to do it with a good grace,
  • confident that it must be unobjectionable as well as profitable. Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn merely utters an occasional sentence, as, "You are the
  • best judge of your own interest, sergeant." "Take care you do no harm
  • by this." "Please yourself, please yourself." "If you know what you
  • mean, that's quite enough." These he utters with an appearance of
  • perfect indifference as he looks over the papers on his table and
  • prepares to write a letter.
  • Mr. George looks distrustfully from the painted ceiling to the
  • ground, from the ground to Mr. Smallweed, from Mr. Smallweed to Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn, and from Mr. Tulkinghorn to the painted ceiling again,
  • often in his perplexity changing the leg on which he rests.
  • "I do assure you, sir," says Mr. George, "not to say it offensively,
  • that between you and Mr. Smallweed here, I really am being smothered
  • fifty times over. I really am, sir. I am not a match for you
  • gentlemen. Will you allow me to ask why you want to see the captain's
  • hand, in the case that I could find any specimen of it?"
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn quietly shakes his head. "No. If you were a man of
  • business, sergeant, you would not need to be informed that there are
  • confidential reasons, very harmless in themselves, for many such
  • wants in the profession to which I belong. But if you are afraid of
  • doing any injury to Captain Hawdon, you may set your mind at rest
  • about that."
  • "Aye! He is dead, sir."
  • "IS he?" Mr. Tulkinghorn quietly sits down to write.
  • "Well, sir," says the trooper, looking into his hat after another
  • disconcerted pause, "I am sorry not to have given you more
  • satisfaction. If it would be any satisfaction to any one that I
  • should be confirmed in my judgment that I would rather have nothing
  • to do with this by a friend of mine who has a better head for
  • business than I have, and who is an old soldier, I am willing to
  • consult with him. I--I really am so completely smothered myself at
  • present," says Mr. George, passing his hand hopelessly across his
  • brow, "that I don't know but what it might be a satisfaction to me."
  • Mr. Smallweed, hearing that this authority is an old soldier, so
  • strongly inculcates the expediency of the trooper's taking counsel
  • with him, and particularly informing him of its being a question of
  • five guineas or more, that Mr. George engages to go and see him. Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn says nothing either way.
  • "I'll consult my friend, then, by your leave, sir," says the trooper,
  • "and I'll take the liberty of looking in again with the final answer
  • in the course of the day. Mr. Smallweed, if you wish to be carried
  • downstairs--"
  • "In a moment, my dear friend, in a moment. Will you first let me
  • speak half a word with this gentleman in private?"
  • "Certainly, sir. Don't hurry yourself on my account." The trooper
  • retires to a distant part of the room and resumes his curious
  • inspection of the boxes, strong and otherwise.
  • "If I wasn't as weak as a brimstone baby, sir," whispers Grandfather
  • Smallweed, drawing the lawyer down to his level by the lapel of his
  • coat and flashing some half-quenched green fire out of his angry
  • eyes, "I'd tear the writing away from him. He's got it buttoned in
  • his breast. I saw him put it there. Judy saw him put it there. Speak
  • up, you crabbed image for the sign of a walking-stick shop, and say
  • you saw him put it there!"
  • This vehement conjuration the old gentleman accompanies with such a
  • thrust at his granddaughter that it is too much for his strength, and
  • he slips away out of his chair, drawing Mr. Tulkinghorn with him,
  • until he is arrested by Judy, and well shaken.
  • "Violence will not do for me, my friend," Mr. Tulkinghorn then
  • remarks coolly.
  • "No, no, I know, I know, sir. But it's chafing and
  • galling--it's--it's worse than your smattering chattering magpie of a
  • grandmother," to the imperturbable Judy, who only looks at the fire,
  • "to know he has got what's wanted and won't give it up. He, not to
  • give it up! HE! A vagabond! But never mind, sir, never mind. At the
  • most, he has only his own way for a little while. I have him
  • periodically in a vice. I'll twist him, sir. I'll screw him, sir. If
  • he won't do it with a good grace, I'll make him do it with a bad one,
  • sir! Now, my dear Mr. George," says Grandfather Smallweed, winking at
  • the lawyer hideously as he releases him, "I am ready for your kind
  • assistance, my excellent friend!"
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn, with some shadowy sign of amusement manifesting
  • itself through his self-possession, stands on the hearth-rug with his
  • back to the fire, watching the disappearance of Mr. Smallweed and
  • acknowledging the trooper's parting salute with one slight nod.
  • It is more difficult to get rid of the old gentleman, Mr. George
  • finds, than to bear a hand in carrying him downstairs, for when he is
  • replaced in his conveyance, he is so loquacious on the subject of the
  • guineas and retains such an affectionate hold of his button--having,
  • in truth, a secret longing to rip his coat open and rob him--that
  • some degree of force is necessary on the trooper's part to effect a
  • separation. It is accomplished at last, and he proceeds alone in
  • quest of his adviser.
  • By the cloisterly Temple, and by Whitefriars (there, not without a
  • glance at Hanging-Sword Alley, which would seem to be something in
  • his way), and by Blackfriars Bridge, and Blackfriars Road, Mr. George
  • sedately marches to a street of little shops lying somewhere in that
  • ganglion of roads from Kent and Surrey, and of streets from the
  • bridges of London, centring in the far-famed elephant who has lost
  • his castle formed of a thousand four-horse coaches to a stronger iron
  • monster than he, ready to chop him into mince-meat any day he dares.
  • To one of the little shops in this street, which is a musician's
  • shop, having a few fiddles in the window, and some Pan's pipes and a
  • tambourine, and a triangle, and certain elongated scraps of music,
  • Mr. George directs his massive tread. And halting at a few paces from
  • it, as he sees a soldierly looking woman, with her outer skirts
  • tucked up, come forth with a small wooden tub, and in that tub
  • commence a-whisking and a-splashing on the margin of the pavement,
  • Mr. George says to himself, "She's as usual, washing greens. I never
  • saw her, except upon a baggage-waggon, when she wasn't washing
  • greens!"
  • The subject of this reflection is at all events so occupied in
  • washing greens at present that she remains unsuspicious of Mr.
  • George's approach until, lifting up herself and her tub together when
  • she has poured the water off into the gutter, she finds him standing
  • near her. Her reception of him is not flattering.
  • "George, I never see you but I wish you was a hundred mile away!"
  • The trooper, without remarking on this welcome, follows into the
  • musical-instrument shop, where the lady places her tub of greens upon
  • the counter, and having shaken hands with him, rests her arms upon
  • it.
  • "I never," she says, "George, consider Matthew Bagnet safe a minute
  • when you're near him. You are that restless and that roving--"
  • "Yes! I know I am, Mrs. Bagnet. I know I am."
  • "You know you are!" says Mrs. Bagnet. "What's the use of that? WHY
  • are you?"
  • "The nature of the animal, I suppose," returns the trooper
  • good-humouredly.
  • "Ah!" cries Mrs. Bagnet, something shrilly. "But what satisfaction
  • will the nature of the animal be to me when the animal shall have
  • tempted my Mat away from the musical business to New Zealand or
  • Australey?"
  • Mrs. Bagnet is not at all an ill-looking woman. Rather large-boned, a
  • little coarse in the grain, and freckled by the sun and wind which
  • have tanned her hair upon the forehead, but healthy, wholesome, and
  • bright-eyed. A strong, busy, active, honest-faced woman of from
  • forty-five to fifty. Clean, hardy, and so economically dressed
  • (though substantially) that the only article of ornament of which she
  • stands possessed appear's to be her wedding-ring, around which her
  • finger has grown to be so large since it was put on that it will
  • never come off again until it shall mingle with Mrs. Bagnet's dust.
  • "Mrs. Bagnet," says the trooper, "I am on my parole with you. Mat
  • will get no harm from me. You may trust me so far."
  • "Well, I think I may. But the very looks of you are unsettling," Mrs.
  • Bagnet rejoins. "Ah, George, George! If you had only settled down and
  • married Joe Pouch's widow when he died in North America, SHE'D have
  • combed your hair for you."
  • "It was a chance for me, certainly," returns the trooper half
  • laughingly, half seriously, "but I shall never settle down into a
  • respectable man now. Joe Pouch's widow might have done me good--there
  • was something in her, and something of her--but I couldn't make up my
  • mind to it. If I had had the luck to meet with such a wife as Mat
  • found!"
  • Mrs. Bagnet, who seems in a virtuous way to be under little reserve
  • with a good sort of fellow, but to be another good sort of fellow
  • herself for that matter, receives this compliment by flicking Mr.
  • George in the face with a head of greens and taking her tub into the
  • little room behind the shop.
  • "Why, Quebec, my poppet," says George, following, on invitation, into
  • that department. "And little Malta, too! Come and kiss your Bluffy!"
  • These young ladies--not supposed to have been actually christened by
  • the names applied to them, though always so called in the family from
  • the places of their birth in barracks--are respectively employed on
  • three-legged stools, the younger (some five or six years old) in
  • learning her letters out of a penny primer, the elder (eight or nine
  • perhaps) in teaching her and sewing with great assiduity. Both hail
  • Mr. George with acclamations as an old friend and after some kissing
  • and romping plant their stools beside him.
  • "And how's young Woolwich?" says Mr. George.
  • "Ah! There now!" cries Mrs. Bagnet, turning about from her saucepans
  • (for she is cooking dinner) with a bright flush on her face. "Would
  • you believe it? Got an engagement at the theayter, with his father,
  • to play the fife in a military piece."
  • "Well done, my godson!" cries Mr. George, slapping his thigh.
  • "I believe you!" says Mrs. Bagnet. "He's a Briton. That's what
  • Woolwich is. A Briton!"
  • "And Mat blows away at his bassoon, and you're respectable civilians
  • one and all," says Mr. George. "Family people. Children growing up.
  • Mat's old mother in Scotland, and your old father somewhere else,
  • corresponded with, and helped a little, and--well, well! To be sure,
  • I don't know why I shouldn't be wished a hundred mile away, for I
  • have not much to do with all this!"
  • Mr. George is becoming thoughtful, sitting before the fire in the
  • whitewashed room, which has a sanded floor and a barrack smell and
  • contains nothing superfluous and has not a visible speck of dirt or
  • dust in it, from the faces of Quebec and Malta to the bright tin pots
  • and pannikins upon the dresser shelves--Mr. George is becoming
  • thoughtful, sitting here while Mrs. Bagnet is busy, when Mr. Bagnet
  • and young Woolwich opportunely come home. Mr. Bagnet is an
  • ex-artilleryman, tall and upright, with shaggy eyebrows and whiskers
  • like the fibres of a coco-nut, not a hair upon his head, and a torrid
  • complexion. His voice, short, deep, and resonant, is not at all
  • unlike the tones of the instrument to which he is devoted. Indeed
  • there may be generally observed in him an unbending, unyielding,
  • brass-bound air, as if he were himself the bassoon of the human
  • orchestra. Young Woolwich is the type and model of a young drummer.
  • Both father and son salute the trooper heartily. He saying, in due
  • season, that he has come to advise with Mr. Bagnet, Mr. Bagnet
  • hospitably declares that he will hear of no business until after
  • dinner and that his friend shall not partake of his counsel without
  • first partaking of boiled pork and greens. The trooper yielding to
  • this invitation, he and Mr. Bagnet, not to embarrass the domestic
  • preparations, go forth to take a turn up and down the little street,
  • which they promenade with measured tread and folded arms, as if it
  • were a rampart.
  • "George," says Mr. Bagnet. "You know me. It's my old girl that
  • advises. She has the head. But I never own to it before her.
  • Discipline must be maintained. Wait till the greens is off her mind.
  • Then we'll consult. Whatever the old girl says, do--do it!"
  • "I intend to, Mat," replies the other. "I would sooner take her
  • opinion than that of a college."
  • "College," returns Mr. Bagnet in short sentences, bassoon-like. "What
  • college could you leave--in another quarter of the world--with
  • nothing but a grey cloak and an umbrella--to make its way home to
  • Europe? The old girl would do it to-morrow. Did it once!"
  • "You are right," says Mr. George.
  • "What college," pursues Bagnet, "could you set up in life--with two
  • penn'orth of white lime--a penn'orth of fuller's earth--a ha'porth of
  • sand--and the rest of the change out of sixpence in money? That's
  • what the old girl started on. In the present business."
  • "I am rejoiced to hear it's thriving, Mat."
  • "The old girl," says Mr. Bagnet, acquiescing, "saves. Has a stocking
  • somewhere. With money in it. I never saw it. But I know she's got it.
  • Wait till the greens is off her mind. Then she'll set you up."
  • "She is a treasure!" exclaims Mr. George.
  • "She's more. But I never own to it before her. Discipline must be
  • maintained. It was the old girl that brought out my musical
  • abilities. I should have been in the artillery now but for the old
  • girl. Six years I hammered at the fiddle. Ten at the flute. The old
  • girl said it wouldn't do; intention good, but want of flexibility;
  • try the bassoon. The old girl borrowed a bassoon from the bandmaster
  • of the Rifle Regiment. I practised in the trenches. Got on, got
  • another, get a living by it!"
  • George remarks that she looks as fresh as a rose and as sound as an
  • apple.
  • "The old girl," says Mr. Bagnet in reply, "is a thoroughly fine
  • woman. Consequently she is like a thoroughly fine day. Gets finer as
  • she gets on. I never saw the old girl's equal. But I never own to it
  • before her. Discipline must be maintained!"
  • Proceeding to converse on indifferent matters, they walk up and down
  • the little street, keeping step and time, until summoned by Quebec
  • and Malta to do justice to the pork and greens, over which Mrs.
  • Bagnet, like a military chaplain, says a short grace. In the
  • distribution of these comestibles, as in every other household duty,
  • Mrs. Bagnet developes an exact system, sitting with every dish before
  • her, allotting to every portion of pork its own portion of
  • pot-liquor, greens, potatoes, and even mustard, and serving it out
  • complete. Having likewise served out the beer from a can and thus
  • supplied the mess with all things necessary, Mrs. Bagnet proceeds to
  • satisfy her own hunger, which is in a healthy state. The kit of the
  • mess, if the table furniture may be so denominated, is chiefly
  • composed of utensils of horn and tin that have done duty in several
  • parts of the world. Young Woolwich's knife, in particular, which is
  • of the oyster kind, with the additional feature of a strong
  • shutting-up movement which frequently balks the appetite of that
  • young musician, is mentioned as having gone in various hands the
  • complete round of foreign service.
  • The dinner done, Mrs. Bagnet, assisted by the younger branches (who
  • polish their own cups and platters, knives and forks), makes all the
  • dinner garniture shine as brightly as before and puts it all away,
  • first sweeping the hearth, to the end that Mr. Bagnet and the visitor
  • may not be retarded in the smoking of their pipes. These household
  • cares involve much pattening and counter-pattening in the backyard
  • and considerable use of a pail, which is finally so happy as to
  • assist in the ablutions of Mrs. Bagnet herself. That old girl
  • reappearing by and by, quite fresh, and sitting down to her
  • needlework, then and only then--the greens being only then to be
  • considered as entirely off her mind--Mr. Bagnet requests the trooper
  • to state his case.
  • This Mr. George does with great discretion, appearing to address
  • himself to Mr. Bagnet, but having an eye solely on the old girl all
  • the time, as Bagnet has himself. She, equally discreet, busies
  • herself with her needlework. The case fully stated, Mr. Bagnet
  • resorts to his standard artifice for the maintenance of discipline.
  • "That's the whole of it, is it, George?" says he.
  • "That's the whole of it."
  • "You act according to my opinion?"
  • "I shall be guided," replies George, "entirely by it."
  • "Old girl," says Mr. Bagnet, "give him my opinion. You know it. Tell
  • him what it is."
  • It is that he cannot have too little to do with people who are too
  • deep for him and cannot be too careful of interference with matters
  • he does not understand--that the plain rule is to do nothing in the
  • dark, to be a party to nothing underhanded or mysterious, and never
  • to put his foot where he cannot see the ground. This, in effect, is
  • Mr. Bagnet's opinion, as delivered through the old girl, and it so
  • relieves Mr. George's mind by confirming his own opinion and
  • banishing his doubts that he composes himself to smoke another pipe
  • on that exceptional occasion and to have a talk over old times with
  • the whole Bagnet family, according to their various ranges of
  • experience.
  • Through these means it comes to pass that Mr. George does not again
  • rise to his full height in that parlour until the time is drawing on
  • when the bassoon and fife are expected by a British public at the
  • theatre; and as it takes time even then for Mr. George, in his
  • domestic character of Bluffy, to take leave of Quebec and Malta and
  • insinuate a sponsorial shilling into the pocket of his godson with
  • felicitations on his success in life, it is dark when Mr. George
  • again turns his face towards Lincoln's Inn Fields.
  • "A family home," he ruminates as he marches along, "however small it
  • is, makes a man like me look lonely. But it's well I never made that
  • evolution of matrimony. I shouldn't have been fit for it. I am such a
  • vagabond still, even at my present time of life, that I couldn't hold
  • to the gallery a month together if it was a regular pursuit or if I
  • didn't camp there, gipsy fashion. Come! I disgrace nobody and cumber
  • nobody; that's something. I have not done that for many a long year!"
  • So he whistles it off and marches on.
  • Arrived in Lincoln's Inn Fields and mounting Mr. Tulkinghorn's stair,
  • he finds the outer door closed and the chambers shut, but the trooper
  • not knowing much about outer doors, and the staircase being dark
  • besides, he is yet fumbling and groping about, hoping to discover a
  • bell-handle or to open the door for himself, when Mr. Tulkinghorn
  • comes up the stairs (quietly, of course) and angrily asks, "Who is
  • that? What are you doing there?"
  • "I ask your pardon, sir. It's George. The sergeant."
  • "And couldn't George, the sergeant, see that my door was locked?"
  • "Why, no, sir, I couldn't. At any rate, I didn't," says the trooper,
  • rather nettled.
  • "Have you changed your mind? Or are you in the same mind?" Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn demands. But he knows well enough at a glance.
  • "In the same mind, sir."
  • "I thought so. That's sufficient. You can go. So you are the man,"
  • says Mr. Tulkinghorn, opening his door with the key, "in whose
  • hiding-place Mr. Gridley was found?"
  • "Yes, I AM the man," says the trooper, stopping two or three stairs
  • down. "What then, sir?"
  • "What then? I don't like your associates. You should not have seen
  • the inside of my door this morning if I had thought of your being
  • that man. Gridley? A threatening, murderous, dangerous fellow."
  • With these words, spoken in an unusually high tone for him, the
  • lawyer goes into his rooms and shuts the door with a thundering
  • noise.
  • Mr. George takes his dismissal in great dudgeon, the greater because
  • a clerk coming up the stairs has heard the last words of all and
  • evidently applies them to him. "A pretty character to bear," the
  • trooper growls with a hasty oath as he strides downstairs. "A
  • threatening, murderous, dangerous fellow!" And looking up, he sees
  • the clerk looking down at him and marking him as he passes a lamp.
  • This so intensifies his dudgeon that for five minutes he is in an ill
  • humour. But he whistles that off like the rest of it and marches home
  • to the shooting gallery.
  • CHAPTER XXVIII
  • The Ironmaster
  • Sir Leicester Dedlock has got the better, for the time being, of the
  • family gout and is once more, in a literal no less than in a
  • figurative point of view, upon his legs. He is at his place in
  • Lincolnshire; but the waters are out again on the low-lying grounds,
  • and the cold and damp steal into Chesney Wold, though well defended,
  • and eke into Sir Leicester's bones. The blazing fires of faggot and
  • coal--Dedlock timber and antediluvian forest--that blaze upon the
  • broad wide hearths and wink in the twilight on the frowning woods,
  • sullen to see how trees are sacrificed, do not exclude the enemy. The
  • hot-water pipes that trail themselves all over the house, the
  • cushioned doors and windows, and the screens and curtains fail to
  • supply the fires' deficiencies and to satisfy Sir Leicester's need.
  • Hence the fashionable intelligence proclaims one morning to the
  • listening earth that Lady Dedlock is expected shortly to return to
  • town for a few weeks.
  • It is a melancholy truth that even great men have their poor
  • relations. Indeed great men have often more than their fair share of
  • poor relations, inasmuch as very red blood of the superior quality,
  • like inferior blood unlawfully shed, WILL cry aloud and WILL be
  • heard. Sir Leicester's cousins, in the remotest degree, are so many
  • murders in the respect that they "will out." Among whom there are
  • cousins who are so poor that one might almost dare to think it would
  • have been the happier for them never to have been plated links upon
  • the Dedlock chain of gold, but to have been made of common iron at
  • first and done base service.
  • Service, however (with a few limited reservations, genteel but not
  • profitable), they may not do, being of the Dedlock dignity. So they
  • visit their richer cousins, and get into debt when they can, and live
  • but shabbily when they can't, and find--the women no husbands, and
  • the men no wives--and ride in borrowed carriages, and sit at feasts
  • that are never of their own making, and so go through high life. The
  • rich family sum has been divided by so many figures, and they are the
  • something over that nobody knows what to do with.
  • Everybody on Sir Leicester Dedlock's side of the question and of his
  • way of thinking would appear to be his cousin more or less. From my
  • Lord Boodle, through the Duke of Foodle, down to Noodle, Sir
  • Leicester, like a glorious spider, stretches his threads of
  • relationship. But while he is stately in the cousinship of the
  • Everybodys, he is a kind and generous man, according to his dignified
  • way, in the cousinship of the Nobodys; and at the present time, in
  • despite of the damp, he stays out the visit of several such cousins
  • at Chesney Wold with the constancy of a martyr.
  • Of these, foremost in the front rank stands Volumnia Dedlock, a young
  • lady (of sixty) who is doubly highly related, having the honour to be
  • a poor relation, by the mother's side, to another great family. Miss
  • Volumnia, displaying in early life a pretty talent for cutting
  • ornaments out of coloured paper, and also for singing to the guitar
  • in the Spanish tongue, and propounding French conundrums in country
  • houses, passed the twenty years of her existence between twenty and
  • forty in a sufficiently agreeable manner. Lapsing then out of date
  • and being considered to bore mankind by her vocal performances in the
  • Spanish language, she retired to Bath, where she lives slenderly on
  • an annual present from Sir Leicester and whence she makes occasional
  • resurrections in the country houses of her cousins. She has an
  • extensive acquaintance at Bath among appalling old gentlemen with
  • thin legs and nankeen trousers, and is of high standing in that
  • dreary city. But she is a little dreaded elsewhere in consequence of
  • an indiscreet profusion in the article of rouge and persistency in an
  • obsolete pearl necklace like a rosary of little bird's-eggs.
  • In any country in a wholesome state, Volumnia would be a clear case
  • for the pension list. Efforts have been made to get her on it, and
  • when William Buffy came in, it was fully expected that her name would
  • be put down for a couple of hundred a year. But William Buffy somehow
  • discovered, contrary to all expectation, that these were not the
  • times when it could be done, and this was the first clear indication
  • Sir Leicester Dedlock had conveyed to him that the country was going
  • to pieces.
  • There is likewise the Honourable Bob Stables, who can make warm
  • mashes with the skill of a veterinary surgeon and is a better shot
  • than most gamekeepers. He has been for some time particularly
  • desirous to serve his country in a post of good emoluments,
  • unaccompanied by any trouble or responsibility. In a well-regulated
  • body politic this natural desire on the part of a spirited young
  • gentleman so highly connected would be speedily recognized, but
  • somehow William Buffy found when he came in that these were not times
  • in which he could manage that little matter either, and this was the
  • second indication Sir Leicester Dedlock had conveyed to him that the
  • country was going to pieces.
  • The rest of the cousins are ladies and gentlemen of various ages and
  • capacities, the major part amiable and sensible and likely to have
  • done well enough in life if they could have overcome their
  • cousinship; as it is, they are almost all a little worsted by it, and
  • lounge in purposeless and listless paths, and seem to be quite as
  • much at a loss how to dispose of themselves as anybody else can be
  • how to dispose of them.
  • In this society, and where not, my Lady Dedlock reigns supreme.
  • Beautiful, elegant, accomplished, and powerful in her little world
  • (for the world of fashion does not stretch ALL the way from pole to
  • pole), her influence in Sir Leicester's house, however haughty and
  • indifferent her manner, is greatly to improve it and refine it. The
  • cousins, even those older cousins who were paralysed when Sir
  • Leicester married her, do her feudal homage; and the Honourable Bob
  • Stables daily repeats to some chosen person between breakfast and
  • lunch his favourite original remark, that she is the best-groomed
  • woman in the whole stud.
  • Such the guests in the long drawing-room at Chesney Wold this dismal
  • night when the step on the Ghost's Walk (inaudible here, however)
  • might be the step of a deceased cousin shut out in the cold. It is
  • near bed-time. Bedroom fires blaze brightly all over the house,
  • raising ghosts of grim furniture on wall and ceiling. Bedroom
  • candlesticks bristle on the distant table by the door, and cousins
  • yawn on ottomans. Cousins at the piano, cousins at the soda-water
  • tray, cousins rising from the card-table, cousins gathered round the
  • fire. Standing on one side of his own peculiar fire (for there are
  • two), Sir Leicester. On the opposite side of the broad hearth, my
  • Lady at her table. Volumnia, as one of the more privileged cousins,
  • in a luxurious chair between them. Sir Leicester glancing, with
  • magnificent displeasure, at the rouge and the pearl necklace.
  • "I occasionally meet on my staircase here," drawls Volumnia, whose
  • thoughts perhaps are already hopping up it to bed, after a long
  • evening of very desultory talk, "one of the prettiest girls, I think,
  • that I ever saw in my life."
  • "A PROTEGEE of my Lady's," observes Sir Leicester.
  • "I thought so. I felt sure that some uncommon eye must have picked
  • that girl out. She really is a marvel. A dolly sort of beauty
  • perhaps," says Miss Volumnia, reserving her own sort, "but in its
  • way, perfect; such bloom I never saw!"
  • Sir Leicester, with his magnificent glance of displeasure at the
  • rouge, appears to say so too.
  • "Indeed," remarks my Lady languidly, "if there is any uncommon eye in
  • the case, it is Mrs. Rouncewell's, and not mine. Rosa is her
  • discovery."
  • "Your maid, I suppose?"
  • "No. My anything; pet--secretary--messenger--I don't know what."
  • "You like to have her about you, as you would like to have a flower,
  • or a bird, or a picture, or a poodle--no, not a poodle, though--or
  • anything else that was equally pretty?" says Volumnia, sympathizing.
  • "Yes, how charming now! And how well that delightful old soul Mrs.
  • Rouncewell is looking. She must be an immense age, and yet she is as
  • active and handsome! She is the dearest friend I have, positively!"
  • Sir Leicester feels it to be right and fitting that the housekeeper
  • of Chesney Wold should be a remarkable person. Apart from that, he
  • has a real regard for Mrs. Rouncewell and likes to hear her praised.
  • So he says, "You are right, Volumnia," which Volumnia is extremely
  • glad to hear.
  • "She has no daughter of her own, has she?"
  • "Mrs. Rouncewell? No, Volumnia. She has a son. Indeed, she had two."
  • My Lady, whose chronic malady of boredom has been sadly aggravated by
  • Volumnia this evening, glances wearily towards the candlesticks and
  • heaves a noiseless sigh.
  • "And it is a remarkable example of the confusion into which the
  • present age has fallen; of the obliteration of landmarks, the opening
  • of floodgates, and the uprooting of distinctions," says Sir Leicester
  • with stately gloom, "that I have been informed by Mr. Tulkinghorn
  • that Mrs. Rouncewell's son has been invited to go into Parliament."
  • Miss Volumnia utters a little sharp scream.
  • "Yes, indeed," repeats Sir Leicester. "Into Parliament."
  • "I never heard of such a thing! Good gracious, what is the man?"
  • exclaims Volumnia.
  • "He is called, I believe--an--ironmaster." Sir Leicester says it
  • slowly and with gravity and doubt, as not being sure but that he is
  • called a lead-mistress or that the right word may be some other word
  • expressive of some other relationship to some other metal.
  • Volumnia utters another little scream.
  • "He has declined the proposal, if my information from Mr. Tulkinghorn
  • be correct, as I have no doubt it is. Mr. Tulkinghorn being always
  • correct and exact; still that does not," says Sir Leicester, "that
  • does not lessen the anomaly, which is fraught with strange
  • considerations--startling considerations, as it appears to me."
  • Miss Volumnia rising with a look candlestick-wards, Sir Leicester
  • politely performs the grand tour of the drawing-room, brings one, and
  • lights it at my Lady's shaded lamp.
  • "I must beg you, my Lady," he says while doing so, "to remain a few
  • moments, for this individual of whom I speak arrived this evening
  • shortly before dinner and requested in a very becoming note"--Sir
  • Leicester, with his habitual regard to truth, dwells upon it--"I am
  • bound to say, in a very becoming and well-expressed note, the favour
  • of a short interview with yourself and MYself on the subject of this
  • young girl. As it appeared that he wished to depart to-night, I
  • replied that we would see him before retiring."
  • Miss Volumnia with a third little scream takes flight, wishing her
  • hosts--O Lud!--well rid of the--what is it?--ironmaster!
  • The other cousins soon disperse, to the last cousin there. Sir
  • Leicester rings the bell, "Make my compliments to Mr. Rouncewell, in
  • the housekeeper's apartments, and say I can receive him now."
  • My Lady, who has heard all this with slight attention outwardly,
  • looks towards Mr. Rouncewell as he comes in. He is a little over
  • fifty perhaps, of a good figure, like his mother, and has a clear
  • voice, a broad forehead from which his dark hair has retired, and a
  • shrewd though open face. He is a responsible-looking gentleman
  • dressed in black, portly enough, but strong and active. Has a
  • perfectly natural and easy air and is not in the least embarrassed by
  • the great presence into which he comes.
  • "Sir Leicester and Lady Dedlock, as I have already apologized for
  • intruding on you, I cannot do better than be very brief. I thank you,
  • Sir Leicester."
  • The head of the Dedlocks has motioned towards a sofa between himself
  • and my Lady. Mr. Rouncewell quietly takes his seat there.
  • "In these busy times, when so many great undertakings are in
  • progress, people like myself have so many workmen in so many places
  • that we are always on the flight."
  • Sir Leicester is content enough that the ironmaster should feel that
  • there is no hurry there; there, in that ancient house, rooted in that
  • quiet park, where the ivy and the moss have had time to mature, and
  • the gnarled and warted elms and the umbrageous oaks stand deep in the
  • fern and leaves of a hundred years; and where the sun-dial on the
  • terrace has dumbly recorded for centuries that time which was as much
  • the property of every Dedlock--while he lasted--as the house and
  • lands. Sir Leicester sits down in an easy-chair, opposing his repose
  • and that of Chesney Wold to the restless flights of ironmasters.
  • "Lady Dedlock has been so kind," proceeds Mr. Rouncewell with a
  • respectful glance and a bow that way, "as to place near her a young
  • beauty of the name of Rosa. Now, my son has fallen in love with Rosa
  • and has asked my consent to his proposing marriage to her and to
  • their becoming engaged if she will take him--which I suppose she
  • will. I have never seen Rosa until to-day, but I have some confidence
  • in my son's good sense--even in love. I find her what he represents
  • her, to the best of my judgment; and my mother speaks of her with
  • great commendation."
  • "She in all respects deserves it," says my Lady.
  • "I am happy, Lady Dedlock, that you say so, and I need not comment on
  • the value to me of your kind opinion of her."
  • "That," observes Sir Leicester with unspeakable grandeur, for he
  • thinks the ironmaster a little too glib, "must be quite unnecessary."
  • "Quite unnecessary, Sir Leicester. Now, my son is a very young man,
  • and Rosa is a very young woman. As I made my way, so my son must make
  • his; and his being married at present is out of the question. But
  • supposing I gave my consent to his engaging himself to this pretty
  • girl, if this pretty girl will engage herself to him, I think it a
  • piece of candour to say at once--I am sure, Sir Leicester and Lady
  • Dedlock, you will understand and excuse me--I should make it a
  • condition that she did not remain at Chesney Wold. Therefore, before
  • communicating further with my son, I take the liberty of saying that
  • if her removal would be in any way inconvenient or objectionable, I
  • will hold the matter over with him for any reasonable time and leave
  • it precisely where it is."
  • Not remain at Chesney Wold! Make it a condition! All Sir Leicester's
  • old misgivings relative to Wat Tyler and the people in the iron
  • districts who do nothing but turn out by torchlight come in a shower
  • upon his head, the fine grey hair of which, as well as of his
  • whiskers, actually stirs with indignation.
  • "Am I to understand, sir," says Sir Leicester, "and is my Lady to
  • understand"--he brings her in thus specially, first as a point of
  • gallantry, and next as a point of prudence, having great reliance on
  • her sense--"am I to understand, Mr. Rouncewell, and is my Lady to
  • understand, sir, that you consider this young woman too good for
  • Chesney Wold or likely to be injured by remaining here?"
  • "Certainly not, Sir Leicester,"
  • "I am glad to hear it." Sir Leicester very lofty indeed.
  • "Pray, Mr. Rouncewell," says my Lady, warning Sir Leicester off with
  • the slightest gesture of her pretty hand, as if he were a fly,
  • "explain to me what you mean."
  • "Willingly, Lady Dedlock. There is nothing I could desire more."
  • Addressing her composed face, whose intelligence, however, is too
  • quick and active to be concealed by any studied impassiveness,
  • however habitual, to the strong Saxon face of the visitor, a picture
  • of resolution and perseverance, my Lady listens with attention,
  • occasionally slightly bending her head.
  • "I am the son of your housekeeper, Lady Dedlock, and passed my
  • childhood about this house. My mother has lived here half a
  • century and will die here I have no doubt. She is one of those
  • examples--perhaps as good a one as there is--of love, and attachment,
  • and fidelity in such a nation, which England may well be proud of,
  • but of which no order can appropriate the whole pride or the whole
  • merit, because such an instance bespeaks high worth on two sides--on
  • the great side assuredly, on the small one no less assuredly."
  • Sir Leicester snorts a little to hear the law laid down in this way,
  • but in his honour and his love of truth, he freely, though silently,
  • admits the justice of the ironmaster's proposition.
  • "Pardon me for saying what is so obvious, but I wouldn't have it
  • hastily supposed," with the least turn of his eyes towards Sir
  • Leicester, "that I am ashamed of my mother's position here, or
  • wanting in all just respect for Chesney Wold and the family.
  • I certainly may have desired--I certainly have desired, Lady
  • Dedlock--that my mother should retire after so many years and end
  • her days with me. But as I have found that to sever this strong bond
  • would be to break her heart, I have long abandoned that idea."
  • Sir Leicester very magnificent again at the notion of Mrs. Rouncewell
  • being spirited off from her natural home to end her days with an
  • ironmaster.
  • "I have been," proceeds the visitor in a modest, clear way, "an
  • apprentice and a workman. I have lived on workman's wages, years and
  • years, and beyond a certain point have had to educate myself. My wife
  • was a foreman's daughter, and plainly brought up. We have three
  • daughters besides this son of whom I have spoken, and being
  • fortunately able to give them greater advantages than we have had
  • ourselves, we have educated them well, very well. It has been one of
  • our great cares and pleasures to make them worthy of any station."
  • A little boastfulness in his fatherly tone here, as if he added in
  • his heart, "even of the Chesney Wold station." Not a little more
  • magnificence, therefore, on the part of Sir Leicester.
  • "All this is so frequent, Lady Dedlock, where I live, and among the
  • class to which I belong, that what would be generally called unequal
  • marriages are not of such rare occurrence with us as elsewhere. A son
  • will sometimes make it known to his father that he has fallen in
  • love, say, with a young woman in the factory. The father, who once
  • worked in a factory himself, will be a little disappointed at first
  • very possibly. It may be that he had other views for his son.
  • However, the chances are that having ascertained the young woman to
  • be of unblemished character, he will say to his son, 'I must be quite
  • sure you are in earnest here. This is a serious matter for both of
  • you. Therefore I shall have this girl educated for two years,' or it
  • may be, 'I shall place this girl at the same school with your sisters
  • for such a time, during which you will give me your word and honour
  • to see her only so often. If at the expiration of that time, when she
  • has so far profited by her advantages as that you may be upon a fair
  • equality, you are both in the same mind, I will do my part to make
  • you happy.' I know of several cases such as I describe, my Lady, and
  • I think they indicate to me my own course now."
  • Sir Leicester's magnificence explodes. Calmly, but terribly.
  • "Mr. Rouncewell," says Sir Leicester with his right hand in the
  • breast of his blue coat, the attitude of state in which he is painted
  • in the gallery, "do you draw a parallel between Chesney Wold and a--"
  • Here he resists a disposition to choke, "a factory?"
  • "I need not reply, Sir Leicester, that the two places are very
  • different; but for the purposes of this case, I think a parallel may
  • be justly drawn between them."
  • Sir Leicester directs his majestic glance down one side of the long
  • drawing-room and up the other before he can believe that he is awake.
  • "Are you aware, sir, that this young woman whom my Lady--my Lady--has
  • placed near her person was brought up at the village school outside
  • the gates?"
  • "Sir Leicester, I am quite aware of it. A very good school it is, and
  • handsomely supported by this family."
  • "Then, Mr. Rouncewell," returns Sir Leicester, "the application of
  • what you have said is, to me, incomprehensible."
  • "Will it be more comprehensible, Sir Leicester, if I say," the
  • ironmaster is reddening a little, "that I do not regard the village
  • school as teaching everything desirable to be known by my son's
  • wife?"
  • From the village school of Chesney Wold, intact as it is this minute,
  • to the whole framework of society; from the whole framework of
  • society, to the aforesaid framework receiving tremendous cracks in
  • consequence of people (iron-masters, lead-mistresses, and what not)
  • not minding their catechism, and getting out of the station unto
  • which they are called--necessarily and for ever, according to Sir
  • Leicester's rapid logic, the first station in which they happen to
  • find themselves; and from that, to their educating other people out
  • of THEIR stations, and so obliterating the landmarks, and opening the
  • floodgates, and all the rest of it; this is the swift progress of the
  • Dedlock mind.
  • "My Lady, I beg your pardon. Permit me, for one moment!" She has
  • given a faint indication of intending to speak. "Mr. Rouncewell, our
  • views of duty, and our views of station, and our views of education,
  • and our views of--in short, ALL our views--are so diametrically
  • opposed, that to prolong this discussion must be repellent to your
  • feelings and repellent to my own. This young woman is honoured with
  • my Lady's notice and favour. If she wishes to withdraw herself from
  • that notice and favour or if she chooses to place herself under the
  • influence of any one who may in his peculiar opinions--you will allow
  • me to say, in his peculiar opinions, though I readily admit that he
  • is not accountable for them to me--who may, in his peculiar opinions,
  • withdraw her from that notice and favour, she is at any time at
  • liberty to do so. We are obliged to you for the plainness with which
  • you have spoken. It will have no effect of itself, one way or other,
  • on the young woman's position here. Beyond this, we can make no
  • terms; and here we beg--if you will be so good--to leave the
  • subject."
  • The visitor pauses a moment to give my Lady an opportunity, but she
  • says nothing. He then rises and replies, "Sir Leicester and Lady
  • Dedlock, allow me to thank you for your attention and only to observe
  • that I shall very seriously recommend my son to conquer his present
  • inclinations. Good night!"
  • "Mr. Rouncewell," says Sir Leicester with all the nature of a
  • gentleman shining in him, "it is late, and the roads are dark. I hope
  • your time is not so precious but that you will allow my Lady and
  • myself to offer you the hospitality of Chesney Wold, for to-night at
  • least."
  • "I hope so," adds my Lady.
  • "I am much obliged to you, but I have to travel all night in order to
  • reach a distant part of the country punctually at an appointed time
  • in the morning."
  • Therewith the ironmaster takes his departure, Sir Leicester ringing
  • the bell and my Lady rising as he leaves the room.
  • When my Lady goes to her boudoir, she sits down thoughtfully by the
  • fire, and inattentive to the Ghost's Walk, looks at Rosa, writing in
  • an inner room. Presently my Lady calls her.
  • "Come to me, child. Tell me the truth. Are you in love?"
  • "Oh! My Lady!"
  • My Lady, looking at the downcast and blushing face, says smiling,
  • "Who is it? Is it Mrs. Rouncewell's grandson?"
  • "Yes, if you please, my Lady. But I don't know that I am in love with
  • him--yet."
  • "Yet, you silly little thing! Do you know that he loves YOU, yet?"
  • "I think he likes me a little, my Lady." And Rosa bursts into tears.
  • Is this Lady Dedlock standing beside the village beauty, smoothing
  • her dark hair with that motherly touch, and watching her with eyes so
  • full of musing interest? Aye, indeed it is!
  • "Listen to me, child. You are young and true, and I believe you are
  • attached to me."
  • "Indeed I am, my Lady. Indeed there is nothing in the world I
  • wouldn't do to show how much."
  • "And I don't think you would wish to leave me just yet, Rosa, even
  • for a lover?"
  • "No, my Lady! Oh, no!" Rosa looks up for the first time, quite
  • frightened at the thought.
  • "Confide in me, my child. Don't fear me. I wish you to be happy, and
  • will make you so--if I can make anybody happy on this earth."
  • Rosa, with fresh tears, kneels at her feet and kisses her hand. My
  • Lady takes the hand with which she has caught it, and standing with
  • her eyes fixed on the fire, puts it about and about between her own
  • two hands, and gradually lets it fall. Seeing her so absorbed, Rosa
  • softly withdraws; but still my Lady's eyes are on the fire.
  • In search of what? Of any hand that is no more, of any hand that
  • never was, of any touch that might have magically changed her life?
  • Or does she listen to the Ghost's Walk and think what step does it
  • most resemble? A man's? A woman's? The pattering of a little child's
  • feet, ever coming on--on--on? Some melancholy influence is upon her,
  • or why should so proud a lady close the doors and sit alone upon the
  • hearth so desolate?
  • Volumnia is away next day, and all the cousins are scattered before
  • dinner. Not a cousin of the batch but is amazed to hear from Sir
  • Leicester at breakfast-time of the obliteration of landmarks, and
  • opening of floodgates, and cracking of the framework of society,
  • manifested through Mrs. Rouncewell's son. Not a cousin of the batch
  • but is really indignant, and connects it with the feebleness of
  • William Buffy when in office, and really does feel deprived of a
  • stake in the country--or the pension list--or something--by fraud and
  • wrong. As to Volumnia, she is handed down the great staircase by Sir
  • Leicester, as eloquent upon the theme as if there were a general
  • rising in the north of England to obtain her rouge-pot and pearl
  • necklace. And thus, with a clatter of maids and valets--for it is one
  • appurtenance of their cousinship that however difficult they may find
  • it to keep themselves, they MUST keep maids and valets--the cousins
  • disperse to the four winds of heaven; and the one wintry wind that
  • blows to-day shakes a shower from the trees near the deserted house,
  • as if all the cousins had been changed into leaves.
  • CHAPTER XXIX
  • The Young Man
  • Chesney Wold is shut up, carpets are rolled into great scrolls in
  • corners of comfortless rooms, bright damask does penance in brown
  • holland, carving and gilding puts on mortification, and the Dedlock
  • ancestors retire from the light of day again. Around and around the
  • house the leaves fall thick, but never fast, for they come circling
  • down with a dead lightness that is sombre and slow. Let the gardener
  • sweep and sweep the turf as he will, and press the leaves into full
  • barrows, and wheel them off, still they lie ankle-deep. Howls the
  • shrill wind round Chesney Wold; the sharp rain beats, the windows
  • rattle, and the chimneys growl. Mists hide in the avenues, veil the
  • points of view, and move in funeral-wise across the rising grounds.
  • On all the house there is a cold, blank smell like the smell of a
  • little church, though something dryer, suggesting that the dead and
  • buried Dedlocks walk there in the long nights and leave the flavour
  • of their graves behind them.
  • But the house in town, which is rarely in the same mind as Chesney
  • Wold at the same time, seldom rejoicing when it rejoices or mourning
  • when it mourns, excepting when a Dedlock dies--the house in town
  • shines out awakened. As warm and bright as so much state may be, as
  • delicately redolent of pleasant scents that bear no trace of winter
  • as hothouse flowers can make it, soft and hushed so that the ticking
  • of the clocks and the crisp burning of the fires alone disturb the
  • stillness in the rooms, it seems to wrap those chilled bones of Sir
  • Leicester's in rainbow-coloured wool. And Sir Leicester is glad to
  • repose in dignified contentment before the great fire in the library,
  • condescendingly perusing the backs of his books or honouring the fine
  • arts with a glance of approbation. For he has his pictures, ancient
  • and modern. Some of the Fancy Ball School in which art occasionally
  • condescends to become a master, which would be best catalogued like
  • the miscellaneous articles in a sale. As "Three high-backed chairs, a
  • table and cover, long-necked bottle (containing wine), one flask, one
  • Spanish female's costume, three-quarter face portrait of Miss Jogg
  • the model, and a suit of armour containing Don Quixote." Or "One
  • stone terrace (cracked), one gondola in distance, one Venetian
  • senator's dress complete, richly embroidered white satin costume with
  • profile portrait of Miss Jogg the model, one Scimitar superbly
  • mounted in gold with jewelled handle, elaborate Moorish dress (very
  • rare), and Othello."
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn comes and goes pretty often, there being estate
  • business to do, leases to be renewed, and so on. He sees my Lady
  • pretty often, too; and he and she are as composed, and as
  • indifferent, and take as little heed of one another, as ever. Yet it
  • may be that my Lady fears this Mr. Tulkinghorn and that he knows it.
  • It may be that he pursues her doggedly and steadily, with no touch of
  • compunction, remorse, or pity. It may be that her beauty and all the
  • state and brilliancy surrounding her only gives him the greater zest
  • for what he is set upon and makes him the more inflexible in it.
  • Whether he be cold and cruel, whether immovable in what he has made
  • his duty, whether absorbed in love of power, whether determined
  • to have nothing hidden from him in ground where he has burrowed
  • among secrets all his life, whether he in his heart despises the
  • splendour of which he is a distant beam, whether he is always
  • treasuring up slights and offences in the affability of his gorgeous
  • clients--whether he be any of this, or all of this, it may be that my
  • Lady had better have five thousand pairs of fashionable eyes upon
  • her, in distrustful vigilance, than the two eyes of this rusty lawyer
  • with his wisp of neckcloth and his dull black breeches tied with
  • ribbons at the knees.
  • Sir Leicester sits in my Lady's room--that room in which Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn read the affidavit in Jarndyce and Jarndyce--particularly
  • complacent. My Lady, as on that day, sits before the fire with her
  • screen in her hand. Sir Leicester is particularly complacent because
  • he has found in his newspaper some congenial remarks bearing directly
  • on the floodgates and the framework of society. They apply so happily
  • to the late case that Sir Leicester has come from the library to my
  • Lady's room expressly to read them aloud. "The man who wrote this
  • article," he observes by way of preface, nodding at the fire as if he
  • were nodding down at the man from a mount, "has a well-balanced
  • mind."
  • The man's mind is not so well balanced but that he bores my Lady,
  • who, after a languid effort to listen, or rather a languid
  • resignation of herself to a show of listening, becomes distraught and
  • falls into a contemplation of the fire as if it were her fire at
  • Chesney Wold, and she had never left it. Sir Leicester, quite
  • unconscious, reads on through his double eye-glass, occasionally
  • stopping to remove his glass and express approval, as "Very true
  • indeed," "Very properly put," "I have frequently made the same remark
  • myself," invariably losing his place after each observation, and
  • going up and down the column to find it again.
  • Sir Leicester is reading with infinite gravity and state when the
  • door opens, and the Mercury in powder makes this strange
  • announcement, "The young man, my Lady, of the name of Guppy."
  • Sir Leicester pauses, stares, repeats in a killing voice, "The young
  • man of the name of Guppy?"
  • Looking round, he beholds the young man of the name of Guppy, much
  • discomfited and not presenting a very impressive letter of
  • introduction in his manner and appearance.
  • "Pray," says Sir Leicester to Mercury, "what do you mean by
  • announcing with this abruptness a young man of the name of Guppy?"
  • "I beg your pardon, Sir Leicester, but my Lady said she would see the
  • young man whenever he called. I was not aware that you were here, Sir
  • Leicester."
  • With this apology, Mercury directs a scornful and indignant look at
  • the young man of the name of Guppy which plainly says, "What do you
  • come calling here for and getting ME into a row?"
  • "It's quite right. I gave him those directions," says my Lady. "Let
  • the young man wait."
  • "By no means, my Lady. Since he has your orders to come, I will not
  • interrupt you." Sir Leicester in his gallantry retires, rather
  • declining to accept a bow from the young man as he goes out and
  • majestically supposing him to be some shoemaker of intrusive
  • appearance.
  • Lady Dedlock looks imperiously at her visitor when the servant has
  • left the room, casting her eyes over him from head to foot. She
  • suffers him to stand by the door and asks him what he wants.
  • "That your ladyship would have the kindness to oblige me with a
  • little conversation," returns Mr. Guppy, embarrassed.
  • "You are, of course, the person who has written me so many letters?"
  • "Several, your ladyship. Several before your ladyship condescended to
  • favour me with an answer."
  • "And could you not take the same means of rendering a Conversation
  • unnecessary? Can you not still?"
  • Mr. Guppy screws his mouth into a silent "No!" and shakes his head.
  • "You have been strangely importunate. If it should appear, after all,
  • that what you have to say does not concern me--and I don't know how
  • it can, and don't expect that it will--you will allow me to cut you
  • short with but little ceremony. Say what you have to say, if you
  • please."
  • My Lady, with a careless toss of her screen, turns herself towards
  • the fire again, sitting almost with her back to the young man of the
  • name of Guppy.
  • "With your ladyship's permission, then," says the young man, "I will
  • now enter on my business. Hem! I am, as I told your ladyship in my
  • first letter, in the law. Being in the law, I have learnt the habit
  • of not committing myself in writing, and therefore I did not mention
  • to your ladyship the name of the firm with which I am connected and
  • in which my standing--and I may add income--is tolerably good. I may
  • now state to your ladyship, in confidence, that the name of that firm
  • is Kenge and Carboy, of Lincoln's Inn, which may not be altogether
  • unknown to your ladyship in connexion with the case in Chancery of
  • Jarndyce and Jarndyce."
  • My Lady's figure begins to be expressive of some attention. She has
  • ceased to toss the screen and holds it as if she were listening.
  • "Now, I may say to your ladyship at once," says Mr. Guppy, a little
  • emboldened, "it is no matter arising out of Jarndyce and Jarndyce
  • that made me so desirous to speak to your ladyship, which conduct I
  • have no doubt did appear, and does appear, obtrusive--in fact, almost
  • blackguardly."
  • After waiting for a moment to receive some assurance to the contrary,
  • and not receiving any, Mr. Guppy proceeds, "If it had been Jarndyce
  • and Jarndyce, I should have gone at once to your ladyship's
  • solicitor, Mr. Tulkinghorn, of the Fields. I have the pleasure of
  • being acquainted with Mr. Tulkinghorn--at least we move when we meet
  • one another--and if it had been any business of that sort, I should
  • have gone to him."
  • My Lady turns a little round and says, "You had better sit down."
  • "Thank your ladyship." Mr. Guppy does so. "Now, your ladyship"--Mr.
  • Guppy refers to a little slip of paper on which he has made small
  • notes of his line of argument and which seems to involve him in the
  • densest obscurity whenever he looks at it--"I--Oh, yes!--I place
  • myself entirely in your ladyship's hands. If your ladyship was to
  • make any complaint to Kenge and Carboy or to Mr. Tulkinghorn of the
  • present visit, I should be placed in a very disagreeable situation.
  • That, I openly admit. Consequently, I rely upon your ladyship's
  • honour."
  • My Lady, with a disdainful gesture of the hand that holds the screen,
  • assures him of his being worth no complaint from her.
  • "Thank your ladyship," says Mr. Guppy; "quite satisfactory.
  • Now--I--dash it!--The fact is that I put down a head or two here of
  • the order of the points I thought of touching upon, and they're
  • written short, and I can't quite make out what they mean. If your
  • ladyship will excuse me taking it to the window half a moment, I--"
  • Mr. Guppy, going to the window, tumbles into a pair of love-birds, to
  • whom he says in his confusion, "I beg your pardon, I am sure." This
  • does not tend to the greater legibility of his notes. He murmurs,
  • growing warm and red and holding the slip of paper now close to his
  • eyes, now a long way off, "C.S. What's C.S. for? Oh! C.S.! Oh, I
  • know! Yes, to be sure!" And comes back enlightened.
  • "I am not aware," says Mr. Guppy, standing midway between my Lady and
  • his chair, "whether your ladyship ever happened to hear of, or to
  • see, a young lady of the name of Miss Esther Summerson."
  • My Lady's eyes look at him full. "I saw a young lady of that name not
  • long ago. This past autumn."
  • "Now, did it strike your ladyship that she was like anybody?" asks
  • Mr. Guppy, crossing his arms, holding his head on one side, and
  • scratching the corner of his mouth with his memoranda.
  • My Lady removes her eyes from him no more.
  • "No."
  • "Not like your ladyship's family?"
  • "No."
  • "I think your ladyship," says Mr. Guppy, "can hardly remember Miss
  • Summerson's face?"
  • "I remember the young lady very well. What has this to do with me?"
  • "Your ladyship, I do assure you that having Miss Summerson's image
  • imprinted on my 'eart--which I mention in confidence--I found, when I
  • had the honour of going over your ladyship's mansion of Chesney Wold
  • while on a short out in the county of Lincolnshire with a friend,
  • such a resemblance between Miss Esther Summerson and your ladyship's
  • own portrait that it completely knocked me over, so much so that I
  • didn't at the moment even know what it WAS that knocked me over. And
  • now I have the honour of beholding your ladyship near (I have often,
  • since that, taken the liberty of looking at your ladyship in your
  • carriage in the park, when I dare say you was not aware of me, but I
  • never saw your ladyship so near), it's really more surprising than I
  • thought it."
  • Young man of the name of Guppy! There have been times, when ladies
  • lived in strongholds and had unscrupulous attendants within call,
  • when that poor life of yours would NOT have been worth a minute's
  • purchase, with those beautiful eyes looking at you as they look at
  • this moment.
  • My Lady, slowly using her little hand-screen as a fan, asks him again
  • what he supposes that his taste for likenesses has to do with her.
  • "Your ladyship," replies Mr. Guppy, again referring to his paper, "I
  • am coming to that. Dash these notes! Oh! 'Mrs. Chadband.' Yes." Mr.
  • Guppy draws his chair a little forward and seats himself again. My
  • Lady reclines in her chair composedly, though with a trifle less of
  • graceful ease than usual perhaps, and never falters in her steady
  • gaze. "A--stop a minute, though!" Mr. Guppy refers again. "E.S.
  • twice? Oh, yes! Yes, I see my way now, right on."
  • Rolling up the slip of paper as an instrument to point his speech
  • with, Mr. Guppy proceeds.
  • "Your ladyship, there is a mystery about Miss Esther Summerson's
  • birth and bringing up. I am informed of that fact because--which I
  • mention in confidence--I know it in the way of my profession at Kenge
  • and Carboy's. Now, as I have already mentioned to your ladyship, Miss
  • Summerson's image is imprinted on my 'eart. If I could clear this
  • mystery for her, or prove her to be well related, or find that having
  • the honour to be a remote branch of your ladyship's family she had a
  • right to be made a party in Jarndyce and Jarndyce, why, I might make
  • a sort of a claim upon Miss Summerson to look with an eye of more
  • dedicated favour on my proposals than she has exactly done as yet. In
  • fact, as yet she hasn't favoured them at all."
  • A kind of angry smile just dawns upon my Lady's face.
  • "Now, it's a very singular circumstance, your ladyship," says Mr.
  • Guppy, "though one of those circumstances that do fall in the way of
  • us professional men--which I may call myself, for though not
  • admitted, yet I have had a present of my articles made to me by Kenge
  • and Carboy, on my mother's advancing from the principal of her little
  • income the money for the stamp, which comes heavy--that I have
  • encountered the person who lived as servant with the lady who brought
  • Miss Summerson up before Mr. Jarndyce took charge of her. That lady
  • was a Miss Barbary, your ladyship."
  • Is the dead colour on my Lady's face reflected from the screen which
  • has a green silk ground and which she holds in her raised hand as if
  • she had forgotten it, or is it a dreadful paleness that has fallen on
  • her?
  • "Did your ladyship," says Mr. Guppy, "ever happen to hear of Miss
  • Barbary?"
  • "I don't know. I think so. Yes."
  • "Was Miss Barbary at all connected with your ladyship's family?"
  • My Lady's lips move, but they utter nothing. She shakes her head.
  • "NOT connected?" says Mr. Guppy. "Oh! Not to your ladyship's
  • knowledge, perhaps? Ah! But might be? Yes." After each of these
  • interrogatories, she has inclined her head. "Very good! Now, this
  • Miss Barbary was extremely close--seems to have been extraordinarily
  • close for a female, females being generally (in common life at least)
  • rather given to conversation--and my witness never had an idea
  • whether she possessed a single relative. On one occasion, and only
  • one, she seems to have been confidential to my witness on a single
  • point, and she then told her that the little girl's real name was not
  • Esther Summerson, but Esther Hawdon."
  • "My God!"
  • Mr. Guppy stares. Lady Dedlock sits before him looking him through,
  • with the same dark shade upon her face, in the same attitude even to
  • the holding of the screen, with her lips a little apart, her brow a
  • little contracted, but for the moment dead. He sees her consciousness
  • return, sees a tremor pass across her frame like a ripple over water,
  • sees her lips shake, sees her compose them by a great effort, sees
  • her force herself back to the knowledge of his presence and of what
  • he has said. All this, so quickly, that her exclamation and her dead
  • condition seem to have passed away like the features of those
  • long-preserved dead bodies sometimes opened up in tombs, which,
  • struck by the air like lightning, vanish in a breath.
  • "Your ladyship is acquainted with the name of Hawdon?"
  • "I have heard it before."
  • "Name of any collateral or remote branch of your ladyship's family?"
  • "No."
  • "Now, your ladyship," says Mr. Guppy, "I come to the last point of
  • the case, so far as I have got it up. It's going on, and I shall
  • gather it up closer and closer as it goes on. Your ladyship must
  • know--if your ladyship don't happen, by any chance, to know
  • already--that there was found dead at the house of a person named
  • Krook, near Chancery Lane, some time ago, a law-writer in great
  • distress. Upon which law-writer there was an inquest, and which
  • law-writer was an anonymous character, his name being unknown. But,
  • your ladyship, I have discovered very lately that that law-writer's
  • name was Hawdon."
  • "And what is THAT to me?"
  • "Aye, your ladyship, that's the question! Now, your ladyship, a queer
  • thing happened after that man's death. A lady started up, a disguised
  • lady, your ladyship, who went to look at the scene of action and went
  • to look at his grave. She hired a crossing-sweeping boy to show it
  • her. If your ladyship would wish to have the boy produced in
  • corroboration of this statement, I can lay my hand upon him at any
  • time."
  • The wretched boy is nothing to my Lady, and she does NOT wish to have
  • him produced.
  • "Oh, I assure your ladyship it's a very queer start indeed," says Mr.
  • Guppy. "If you was to hear him tell about the rings that sparkled on
  • her fingers when she took her glove off, you'd think it quite
  • romantic."
  • There are diamonds glittering on the hand that holds the screen. My
  • Lady trifles with the screen and makes them glitter more, again with
  • that expression which in other times might have been so dangerous to
  • the young man of the name of Guppy.
  • "It was supposed, your ladyship, that he left no rag or scrap behind
  • him by which he could be possibly identified. But he did. He left a
  • bundle of old letters."
  • The screen still goes, as before. All this time her eyes never once
  • release him.
  • "They were taken and secreted. And to-morrow night, your ladyship,
  • they will come into my possession."
  • "Still I ask you, what is this to me?"
  • "Your ladyship, I conclude with that." Mr. Guppy rises. "If you think
  • there's enough in this chain of circumstances put together--in the
  • undoubted strong likeness of this young lady to your ladyship, which
  • is a positive fact for a jury; in her having been brought up by Miss
  • Barbary; in Miss Barbary stating Miss Summerson's real name to be
  • Hawdon; in your ladyship's knowing both these names VERY WELL; and in
  • Hawdon's dying as he did--to give your ladyship a family interest in
  • going further into the case, I will bring these papers here. I don't
  • know what they are, except that they are old letters: I have never
  • had them in my possession yet. I will bring those papers here as soon
  • as I get them and go over them for the first time with your ladyship.
  • I have told your ladyship my object. I have told your ladyship that I
  • should be placed in a very disagreeable situation if any complaint
  • was made, and all is in strict confidence."
  • Is this the full purpose of the young man of the name of Guppy, or
  • has he any other? Do his words disclose the length, breadth, depth,
  • of his object and suspicion in coming here; or if not, what do they
  • hide? He is a match for my Lady there. She may look at him, but he
  • can look at the table and keep that witness-box face of his from
  • telling anything.
  • "You may bring the letters," says my Lady, "if you choose."
  • "Your ladyship is not very encouraging, upon my word and honour,"
  • says Mr. Guppy, a little injured.
  • "You may bring the letters," she repeats in the same tone, "if
  • you--please."
  • "It shall be done. I wish your ladyship good day."
  • On a table near her is a rich bauble of a casket, barred and clasped
  • like an old strong-chest. She, looking at him still, takes it to her
  • and unlocks it.
  • "Oh! I assure your ladyship I am not actuated by any motives of that
  • sort," says Mr. Guppy, "and I couldn't accept anything of the kind. I
  • wish your ladyship good day, and am much obliged to you all the
  • same."
  • So the young man makes his bow and goes downstairs, where the
  • supercilious Mercury does not consider himself called upon to leave
  • his Olympus by the hall-fire to let the young man out.
  • As Sir Leicester basks in his library and dozes over his newspaper,
  • is there no influence in the house to startle him, not to say to make
  • the very trees at Chesney Wold fling up their knotted arms, the very
  • portraits frown, the very armour stir?
  • No. Words, sobs, and cries are but air, and air is so shut in and
  • shut out throughout the house in town that sounds need be uttered
  • trumpet-tongued indeed by my Lady in her chamber to carry any faint
  • vibration to Sir Leicester's ears; and yet this cry is in the house,
  • going upward from a wild figure on its knees.
  • "O my child, my child! Not dead in the first hours of her life, as my
  • cruel sister told me, but sternly nurtured by her, after she had
  • renounced me and my name! O my child, O my child!"
  • CHAPTER XXX
  • Esther's Narrative
  • Richard had been gone away some time when a visitor came to pass a
  • few days with us. It was an elderly lady. It was Mrs. Woodcourt, who,
  • having come from Wales to stay with Mrs. Bayham Badger and having
  • written to my guardian, "by her son Allan's desire," to report that
  • she had heard from him and that he was well "and sent his kind
  • remembrances to all of us," had been invited by my guardian to make a
  • visit to Bleak House. She stayed with us nearly three weeks. She took
  • very kindly to me and was extremely confidential, so much so that
  • sometimes she almost made me uncomfortable. I had no right, I knew
  • very well, to be uncomfortable because she confided in me, and I felt
  • it was unreasonable; still, with all I could do, I could not quite
  • help it.
  • She was such a sharp little lady and used to sit with her hands
  • folded in each other looking so very watchful while she talked to me
  • that perhaps I found that rather irksome. Or perhaps it was her being
  • so upright and trim, though I don't think it was that, because I
  • thought that quaintly pleasant. Nor can it have been the general
  • expression of her face, which was very sparkling and pretty for an
  • old lady. I don't know what it was. Or at least if I do now, I
  • thought I did not then. Or at least--but it don't matter.
  • Of a night when I was going upstairs to bed, she would invite me
  • into her room, where she sat before the fire in a great chair;
  • and, dear me, she would tell me about Morgan ap-Kerrig until I
  • was quite low-spirited! Sometimes she recited a few verses from
  • Crumlinwallinwer and the Mewlinnwillinwodd (if those are the right
  • names, which I dare say they are not), and would become quite fiery
  • with the sentiments they expressed. Though I never knew what they
  • were (being in Welsh), further than that they were highly eulogistic
  • of the lineage of Morgan ap-Kerrig.
  • "So, Miss Summerson," she would say to me with stately triumph,
  • "this, you see, is the fortune inherited by my son. Wherever my son
  • goes, he can claim kindred with Ap-Kerrig. He may not have money, but
  • he always has what is much better--family, my dear."
  • I had my doubts of their caring so very much for Morgan ap-Kerrig in
  • India and China, but of course I never expressed them. I used to say
  • it was a great thing to be so highly connected.
  • "It IS, my dear, a great thing," Mrs. Woodcourt would reply. "It has
  • its disadvantages; my son's choice of a wife, for instance, is
  • limited by it, but the matrimonial choice of the royal family is
  • limited in much the same manner."
  • Then she would pat me on the arm and smooth my dress, as much as to
  • assure me that she had a good opinion of me, the distance between us
  • notwithstanding.
  • "Poor Mr. Woodcourt, my dear," she would say, and always with some
  • emotion, for with her lofty pedigree she had a very affectionate
  • heart, "was descended from a great Highland family, the MacCoorts of
  • MacCoort. He served his king and country as an officer in the Royal
  • Highlanders, and he died on the field. My son is one of the last
  • representatives of two old families. With the blessing of heaven he
  • will set them up again and unite them with another old family."
  • It was in vain for me to try to change the subject, as I used to try,
  • only for the sake of novelty or perhaps because--but I need not be so
  • particular. Mrs. Woodcourt never would let me change it.
  • "My dear," she said one night, "you have so much sense and you look
  • at the world in a quiet manner so superior to your time of life that
  • it is a comfort to me to talk to you about these family matters of
  • mine. You don't know much of my son, my dear; but you know enough of
  • him, I dare say, to recollect him?"
  • "Yes, ma'am. I recollect him."
  • "Yes, my dear. Now, my dear, I think you are a judge of character,
  • and I should like to have your opinion of him."
  • "Oh, Mrs. Woodcourt," said I, "that is so difficult!"
  • "Why is it so difficult, my dear?" she returned. "I don't see it
  • myself."
  • "To give an opinion--"
  • "On so slight an acquaintance, my dear. THAT'S true."
  • I didn't mean that, because Mr. Woodcourt had been at our house a
  • good deal altogether and had become quite intimate with my guardian.
  • I said so, and added that he seemed to be very clever in his
  • profession--we thought--and that his kindness and gentleness to Miss
  • Flite were above all praise.
  • "You do him justice!" said Mrs. Woodcourt, pressing my hand. "You
  • define him exactly. Allan is a dear fellow, and in his profession
  • faultless. I say it, though I am his mother. Still, I must confess he
  • is not without faults, love."
  • "None of us are," said I.
  • "Ah! But his really are faults that he might correct, and ought to
  • correct," returned the sharp old lady, sharply shaking her head. "I
  • am so much attached to you that I may confide in you, my dear, as a
  • third party wholly disinterested, that he is fickleness itself."
  • I said I should have thought it hardly possible that he could have
  • been otherwise than constant to his profession and zealous in the
  • pursuit of it, judging from the reputation he had earned.
  • "You are right again, my dear," the old lady retorted, "but I don't
  • refer to his profession, look you."
  • "Oh!" said I.
  • "No," said she. "I refer, my dear, to his social conduct. He is
  • always paying trivial attentions to young ladies, and always has
  • been, ever since he was eighteen. Now, my dear, he has never really
  • cared for any one of them and has never meant in doing this to do any
  • harm or to express anything but politeness and good nature. Still,
  • it's not right, you know; is it?"
  • "No," said I, as she seemed to wait for me.
  • "And it might lead to mistaken notions, you see, my dear."
  • I supposed it might.
  • "Therefore, I have told him many times that he really should be more
  • careful, both in justice to himself and in justice to others. And he
  • has always said, 'Mother, I will be; but you know me better than
  • anybody else does, and you know I mean no harm--in short, mean
  • nothing.' All of which is very true, my dear, but is no
  • justification. However, as he is now gone so far away and for an
  • indefinite time, and as he will have good opportunities and
  • introductions, we may consider this past and gone. And you, my dear,"
  • said the old lady, who was now all nods and smiles, "regarding your
  • dear self, my love?"
  • "Me, Mrs. Woodcourt?"
  • "Not to be always selfish, talking of my son, who has gone to seek
  • his fortune and to find a wife--when do you mean to seek YOUR fortune
  • and to find a husband, Miss Summerson? Hey, look you! Now you blush!"
  • I don't think I did blush--at all events, it was not important if I
  • did--and I said my present fortune perfectly contented me and I had
  • no wish to change it.
  • "Shall I tell you what I always think of you and the fortune yet to
  • come for you, my love?" said Mrs. Woodcourt.
  • "If you believe you are a good prophet," said I.
  • "Why, then, it is that you will marry some one very rich and very
  • worthy, much older--five and twenty years, perhaps--than yourself.
  • And you will be an excellent wife, and much beloved, and very happy."
  • "That is a good fortune," said I. "But why is it to be mine?"
  • "My dear," she returned, "there's suitability in it--you are so busy,
  • and so neat, and so peculiarly situated altogether that there's
  • suitability in it, and it will come to pass. And nobody, my love,
  • will congratulate you more sincerely on such a marriage than I
  • shall."
  • It was curious that this should make me uncomfortable, but I think it
  • did. I know it did. It made me for some part of that night
  • uncomfortable. I was so ashamed of my folly that I did not like to
  • confess it even to Ada, and that made me more uncomfortable still. I
  • would have given anything not to have been so much in the bright old
  • lady's confidence if I could have possibly declined it. It gave me
  • the most inconsistent opinions of her. At one time I thought she was
  • a story-teller, and at another time that she was the pink of truth.
  • Now I suspected that she was very cunning, next moment I believed her
  • honest Welsh heart to be perfectly innocent and simple. And after
  • all, what did it matter to me, and why did it matter to me? Why could
  • not I, going up to bed with my basket of keys, stop to sit down by
  • her fire and accommodate myself for a little while to her, at least
  • as well as to anybody else, and not trouble myself about the harmless
  • things she said to me? Impelled towards her, as I certainly was, for
  • I was very anxious that she should like me and was very glad indeed
  • that she did, why should I harp afterwards, with actual distress and
  • pain, on every word she said and weigh it over and over again in
  • twenty scales? Why was it so worrying to me to have her in our house,
  • and confidential to me every night, when I yet felt that it was
  • better and safer somehow that she should be there than anywhere else?
  • These were perplexities and contradictions that I could not account
  • for. At least, if I could--but I shall come to all that by and by,
  • and it is mere idleness to go on about it now.
  • So when Mrs. Woodcourt went away, I was sorry to lose her but was
  • relieved too. And then Caddy Jellyby came down, and Caddy brought
  • such a packet of domestic news that it gave us abundant occupation.
  • First Caddy declared (and would at first declare nothing else) that I
  • was the best adviser that ever was known. This, my pet said, was no
  • news at all; and this, I said, of course, was nonsense. Then Caddy
  • told us that she was going to be married in a month and that if Ada
  • and I would be her bridesmaids, she was the happiest girl in the
  • world. To be sure, this was news indeed; and I thought we never
  • should have done talking about it, we had so much to say to Caddy,
  • and Caddy had so much to say to us.
  • It seemed that Caddy's unfortunate papa had got over his
  • bankruptcy--"gone through the Gazette," was the expression Caddy
  • used, as if it were a tunnel--with the general clemency and
  • commiseration of his creditors, and had got rid of his affairs in
  • some blessed manner without succeeding in understanding them, and had
  • given up everything he possessed (which was not worth much, I should
  • think, to judge from the state of the furniture), and had satisfied
  • every one concerned that he could do no more, poor man. So, he had
  • been honourably dismissed to "the office" to begin the world again.
  • What he did at the office, I never knew; Caddy said he was a
  • "custom-house and general agent," and the only thing I ever
  • understood about that business was that when he wanted money more
  • than usual he went to the docks to look for it, and hardly ever found
  • it.
  • As soon as her papa had tranquillized his mind by becoming this shorn
  • lamb, and they had removed to a furnished lodging in Hatton Garden
  • (where I found the children, when I afterwards went there, cutting
  • the horse hair out of the seats of the chairs and choking themselves
  • with it), Caddy had brought about a meeting between him and old Mr.
  • Turveydrop; and poor Mr. Jellyby, being very humble and meek, had
  • deferred to Mr. Turveydrop's deportment so submissively that they had
  • become excellent friends. By degrees, old Mr. Turveydrop, thus
  • familiarized with the idea of his son's marriage, had worked up his
  • parental feelings to the height of contemplating that event as being
  • near at hand and had given his gracious consent to the young couple
  • commencing housekeeping at the academy in Newman Street when they
  • would.
  • "And your papa, Caddy. What did he say?"
  • "Oh! Poor Pa," said Caddy, "only cried and said he hoped we might get
  • on better than he and Ma had got on. He didn't say so before Prince,
  • he only said so to me. And he said, 'My poor girl, you have not been
  • very well taught how to make a home for your husband, but unless you
  • mean with all your heart to strive to do it, you had better murder
  • him than marry him--if you really love him.'"
  • "And how did you reassure him, Caddy?"
  • "Why, it was very distressing, you know, to see poor Pa so low and
  • hear him say such terrible things, and I couldn't help crying myself.
  • But I told him that I DID mean it with all my heart and that I hoped
  • our house would be a place for him to come and find some comfort in
  • of an evening and that I hoped and thought I could be a better
  • daughter to him there than at home. Then I mentioned Peepy's coming
  • to stay with me, and then Pa began to cry again and said the children
  • were Indians."
  • "Indians, Caddy?"
  • "Yes," said Caddy, "wild Indians. And Pa said"--here she began to
  • sob, poor girl, not at all like the happiest girl in the world--"that
  • he was sensible the best thing that could happen to them was their
  • being all tomahawked together."
  • Ada suggested that it was comfortable to know that Mr. Jellyby did
  • not mean these destructive sentiments.
  • "No, of course I know Pa wouldn't like his family to be weltering in
  • their blood," said Caddy, "but he means that they are very
  • unfortunate in being Ma's children and that he is very unfortunate in
  • being Ma's husband; and I am sure that's true, though it seems
  • unnatural to say so."
  • I asked Caddy if Mrs. Jellyby knew that her wedding-day was fixed.
  • "Oh! You know what Ma is, Esther," she returned. "It's impossible to
  • say whether she knows it or not. She has been told it often enough;
  • and when she IS told it, she only gives me a placid look, as if I was
  • I don't know what--a steeple in the distance," said Caddy with a
  • sudden idea; "and then she shakes her head and says 'Oh, Caddy,
  • Caddy, what a tease you are!' and goes on with the Borrioboola
  • letters."
  • "And about your wardrobe, Caddy?" said I. For she was under no
  • restraint with us.
  • "Well, my dear Esther," she returned, drying her eyes, "I must do the
  • best I can and trust to my dear Prince never to have an unkind
  • remembrance of my coming so shabbily to him. If the question
  • concerned an outfit for Borrioboola, Ma would know all about it and
  • would be quite excited. Being what it is, she neither knows nor
  • cares."
  • Caddy was not at all deficient in natural affection for her mother,
  • but mentioned this with tears as an undeniable fact, which I am
  • afraid it was. We were sorry for the poor dear girl and found so much
  • to admire in the good disposition which had survived under such
  • discouragement that we both at once (I mean Ada and I) proposed a
  • little scheme that made her perfectly joyful. This was her staying
  • with us for three weeks, my staying with her for one, and our all
  • three contriving and cutting out, and repairing, and sewing, and
  • saving, and doing the very best we could think of to make the most of
  • her stock. My guardian being as pleased with the idea as Caddy was,
  • we took her home next day to arrange the matter and brought her out
  • again in triumph with her boxes and all the purchases that could be
  • squeezed out of a ten-pound note, which Mr. Jellyby had found in the
  • docks I suppose, but which he at all events gave her. What my
  • guardian would not have given her if we had encouraged him, it would
  • be difficult to say, but we thought it right to compound for no more
  • than her wedding-dress and bonnet. He agreed to this compromise, and
  • if Caddy had ever been happy in her life, she was happy when we sat
  • down to work.
  • She was clumsy enough with her needle, poor girl, and pricked her
  • fingers as much as she had been used to ink them. She could not help
  • reddening a little now and then, partly with the smart and partly
  • with vexation at being able to do no better, but she soon got over
  • that and began to improve rapidly. So day after day she, and my
  • darling, and my little maid Charley, and a milliner out of the town,
  • and I, sat hard at work, as pleasantly as possible.
  • Over and above this, Caddy was very anxious "to learn housekeeping,"
  • as she said. Now, mercy upon us! The idea of her learning
  • housekeeping of a person of my vast experience was such a joke that I
  • laughed, and coloured up, and fell into a comical confusion when she
  • proposed it. However, I said, "Caddy, I am sure you are very welcome
  • to learn anything that you can learn of ME, my dear," and I showed
  • her all my books and methods and all my fidgety ways. You would have
  • supposed that I was showing her some wonderful inventions, by her
  • study of them; and if you had seen her, whenever I jingled my
  • housekeeping keys, get up and attend me, certainly you might have
  • thought that there never was a greater imposter than I with a blinder
  • follower than Caddy Jellyby.
  • So what with working and housekeeping, and lessons to Charley, and
  • backgammon in the evening with my guardian, and duets with Ada, the
  • three weeks slipped fast away. Then I went home with Caddy to see
  • what could be done there, and Ada and Charley remained behind to take
  • care of my guardian.
  • When I say I went home with Caddy, I mean to the furnished lodging in
  • Hatton Garden. We went to Newman Street two or three times, where
  • preparations were in progress too--a good many, I observed, for
  • enhancing the comforts of old Mr. Turveydrop, and a few for putting
  • the newly married couple away cheaply at the top of the house--but
  • our great point was to make the furnished lodging decent for the
  • wedding-breakfast and to imbue Mrs. Jellyby beforehand with some
  • faint sense of the occasion.
  • The latter was the more difficult thing of the two because Mrs.
  • Jellyby and an unwholesome boy occupied the front sitting-room (the
  • back one was a mere closet), and it was littered down with
  • waste-paper and Borrioboolan documents, as an untidy stable might be
  • littered with straw. Mrs. Jellyby sat there all day drinking strong
  • coffee, dictating, and holding Borrioboolan interviews by
  • appointment. The unwholesome boy, who seemed to me to be going into a
  • decline, took his meals out of the house. When Mr. Jellyby came home,
  • he usually groaned and went down into the kitchen. There he got
  • something to eat if the servant would give him anything, and then,
  • feeling that he was in the way, went out and walked about Hatton
  • Garden in the wet. The poor children scrambled up and tumbled down
  • the house as they had always been accustomed to do.
  • The production of these devoted little sacrifices in any presentable
  • condition being quite out of the question at a week's notice, I
  • proposed to Caddy that we should make them as happy as we could on
  • her marriage morning in the attic where they all slept, and should
  • confine our greatest efforts to her mama and her mama's room, and a
  • clean breakfast. In truth Mrs. Jellyby required a good deal of
  • attention, the lattice-work up her back having widened considerably
  • since I first knew her and her hair looking like the mane of a
  • dustman's horse.
  • Thinking that the display of Caddy's wardrobe would be the best means
  • of approaching the subject, I invited Mrs. Jellyby to come and look
  • at it spread out on Caddy's bed in the evening after the unwholesome
  • boy was gone.
  • "My dear Miss Summerson," said she, rising from her desk with her
  • usual sweetness of temper, "these are really ridiculous preparations,
  • though your assisting them is a proof of your kindness. There is
  • something so inexpressibly absurd to me in the idea of Caddy being
  • married! Oh, Caddy, you silly, silly, silly puss!"
  • She came upstairs with us notwithstanding and looked at the clothes
  • in her customary far-off manner. They suggested one distinct idea to
  • her, for she said with her placid smile, and shaking her head, "My
  • good Miss Summerson, at half the cost, this weak child might have
  • been equipped for Africa!"
  • On our going downstairs again, Mrs. Jellyby asked me whether this
  • troublesome business was really to take place next Wednesday. And on
  • my replying yes, she said, "Will my room be required, my dear Miss
  • Summerson? For it's quite impossible that I can put my papers away."
  • I took the liberty of saying that the room would certainly be wanted
  • and that I thought we must put the papers away somewhere. "Well, my
  • dear Miss Summerson," said Mrs. Jellyby, "you know best, I dare say.
  • But by obliging me to employ a boy, Caddy has embarrassed me to that
  • extent, overwhelmed as I am with public business, that I don't know
  • which way to turn. We have a Ramification meeting, too, on Wednesday
  • afternoon, and the inconvenience is very serious."
  • "It is not likely to occur again," said I, smiling. "Caddy will be
  • married but once, probably."
  • "That's true," Mrs. Jellyby replied; "that's true, my dear. I suppose
  • we must make the best of it!"
  • The next question was how Mrs. Jellyby should be dressed on the
  • occasion. I thought it very curious to see her looking on serenely
  • from her writing-table while Caddy and I discussed it, occasionally
  • shaking her head at us with a half-reproachful smile like a superior
  • spirit who could just bear with our trifling.
  • The state in which her dresses were, and the extraordinary confusion
  • in which she kept them, added not a little to our difficulty; but at
  • length we devised something not very unlike what a common-place
  • mother might wear on such an occasion. The abstracted manner in which
  • Mrs. Jellyby would deliver herself up to having this attire tried on
  • by the dressmaker, and the sweetness with which she would then
  • observe to me how sorry she was that I had not turned my thoughts to
  • Africa, were consistent with the rest of her behaviour.
  • The lodging was rather confined as to space, but I fancied that if
  • Mrs. Jellyby's household had been the only lodgers in Saint Paul's or
  • Saint Peter's, the sole advantage they would have found in the size
  • of the building would have been its affording a great deal of room to
  • be dirty in. I believe that nothing belonging to the family which it
  • had been possible to break was unbroken at the time of those
  • preparations for Caddy's marriage, that nothing which it had been
  • possible to spoil in any way was unspoilt, and that no domestic
  • object which was capable of collecting dirt, from a dear child's knee
  • to the door-plate, was without as much dirt as could well accumulate
  • upon it.
  • Poor Mr. Jellyby, who very seldom spoke and almost always sat when he
  • was at home with his head against the wall, became interested when he
  • saw that Caddy and I were attempting to establish some order among
  • all this waste and ruin and took off his coat to help. But such
  • wonderful things came tumbling out of the closets when they were
  • opened--bits of mouldy pie, sour bottles, Mrs. Jellyby's caps,
  • letters, tea, forks, odd boots and shoes of children, firewood,
  • wafers, saucepan-lids, damp sugar in odds and ends of paper bags,
  • footstools, blacklead brushes, bread, Mrs. Jellyby's bonnets, books
  • with butter sticking to the binding, guttered candle ends put out
  • by being turned upside down in broken candlesticks, nutshells,
  • heads and tails of shrimps, dinner-mats, gloves, coffee-grounds,
  • umbrellas--that he looked frightened, and left off again. But he came
  • regularly every evening and sat without his coat, with his head
  • against the wall, as though he would have helped us if he had known
  • how.
  • "Poor Pa!" said Caddy to me on the night before the great day, when
  • we really had got things a little to rights. "It seems unkind to
  • leave him, Esther. But what could I do if I stayed! Since I first
  • knew you, I have tidied and tidied over and over again, but it's
  • useless. Ma and Africa, together, upset the whole house directly. We
  • never have a servant who don't drink. Ma's ruinous to everything."
  • Mr. Jellyby could not hear what she said, but he seemed very low
  • indeed and shed tears, I thought.
  • "My heart aches for him; that it does!" sobbed Caddy. "I can't help
  • thinking to-night, Esther, how dearly I hope to be happy with Prince,
  • and how dearly Pa hoped, I dare say, to be happy with Ma. What a
  • disappointed life!"
  • "My dear Caddy!" said Mr. Jellyby, looking slowly round from the
  • wail. It was the first time, I think, I ever heard him say three
  • words together.
  • "Yes, Pa!" cried Caddy, going to him and embracing him
  • affectionately.
  • "My dear Caddy," said Mr. Jellyby. "Never have--"
  • "Not Prince, Pa?" faltered Caddy. "Not have Prince?"
  • "Yes, my dear," said Mr. Jellyby. "Have him, certainly. But, never
  • have--"
  • I mentioned in my account of our first visit in Thavies Inn that
  • Richard described Mr. Jellyby as frequently opening his mouth after
  • dinner without saying anything. It was a habit of his. He opened his
  • mouth now a great many times and shook his head in a melancholy
  • manner.
  • "What do you wish me not to have? Don't have what, dear Pa?" asked
  • Caddy, coaxing him, with her arms round his neck.
  • "Never have a mission, my dear child."
  • Mr. Jellyby groaned and laid his head against the wall again, and
  • this was the only time I ever heard him make any approach to
  • expressing his sentiments on the Borrioboolan question. I suppose he
  • had been more talkative and lively once, but he seemed to have been
  • completely exhausted long before I knew him.
  • I thought Mrs. Jellyby never would have left off serenely looking
  • over her papers and drinking coffee that night. It was twelve o'clock
  • before we could obtain possession of the room, and the clearance it
  • required then was so discouraging that Caddy, who was almost tired
  • out, sat down in the middle of the dust and cried. But she soon
  • cheered up, and we did wonders with it before we went to bed.
  • In the morning it looked, by the aid of a few flowers and a quantity
  • of soap and water and a little arrangement, quite gay. The plain
  • breakfast made a cheerful show, and Caddy was perfectly charming. But
  • when my darling came, I thought--and I think now--that I never had
  • seen such a dear face as my beautiful pet's.
  • We made a little feast for the children upstairs, and we put Peepy at
  • the head of the table, and we showed them Caddy in her bridal dress,
  • and they clapped their hands and hurrahed, and Caddy cried to think
  • that she was going away from them and hugged them over and over again
  • until we brought Prince up to fetch her away--when, I am sorry to
  • say, Peepy bit him. Then there was old Mr. Turveydrop downstairs, in
  • a state of deportment not to be expressed, benignly blessing Caddy
  • and giving my guardian to understand that his son's happiness was his
  • own parental work and that he sacrificed personal considerations to
  • ensure it. "My dear sir," said Mr. Turveydrop, "these young people
  • will live with me; my house is large enough for their accommodation,
  • and they shall not want the shelter of my roof. I could have
  • wished--you will understand the allusion, Mr. Jarndyce, for you
  • remember my illustrious patron the Prince Regent--I could have
  • wished that my son had married into a family where there was more
  • deportment, but the will of heaven be done!"
  • Mr. and Mrs. Pardiggle were of the party--Mr. Pardiggle, an
  • obstinate-looking man with a large waistcoat and stubbly hair, who
  • was always talking in a loud bass voice about his mite, or Mrs.
  • Pardiggle's mite, or their five boys' mites. Mr. Quale, with his hair
  • brushed back as usual and his knobs of temples shining very much, was
  • also there, not in the character of a disappointed lover, but as the
  • accepted of a young--at least, an unmarried--lady, a Miss Wisk, who
  • was also there. Miss Wisk's mission, my guardian said, was to show
  • the world that woman's mission was man's mission and that the only
  • genuine mission of both man and woman was to be always moving
  • declaratory resolutions about things in general at public meetings.
  • The guests were few, but were, as one might expect at Mrs. Jellyby's,
  • all devoted to public objects only. Besides those I have mentioned,
  • there was an extremely dirty lady with her bonnet all awry and the
  • ticketed price of her dress still sticking on it, whose neglected
  • home, Caddy told me, was like a filthy wilderness, but whose church
  • was like a fancy fair. A very contentious gentleman, who said it was
  • his mission to be everybody's brother but who appeared to be on terms
  • of coolness with the whole of his large family, completed the party.
  • A party, having less in common with such an occasion, could hardly
  • have been got together by any ingenuity. Such a mean mission as the
  • domestic mission was the very last thing to be endured among them;
  • indeed, Miss Wisk informed us, with great indignation, before we sat
  • down to breakfast, that the idea of woman's mission lying chiefly in
  • the narrow sphere of home was an outrageous slander on the part of
  • her tyrant, man. One other singularity was that nobody with a
  • mission--except Mr. Quale, whose mission, as I think I have formerly
  • said, was to be in ecstasies with everybody's mission--cared at all
  • for anybody's mission. Mrs. Pardiggle being as clear that the only
  • one infallible course was her course of pouncing upon the poor and
  • applying benevolence to them like a strait-waistcoat; as Miss Wisk
  • was that the only practical thing for the world was the emancipation
  • of woman from the thraldom of her tyrant, man. Mrs. Jellyby, all the
  • while, sat smiling at the limited vision that could see anything but
  • Borrioboola-Gha.
  • But I am anticipating now the purport of our conversation on the ride
  • home instead of first marrying Caddy. We all went to church, and Mr.
  • Jellyby gave her away. Of the air with which old Mr. Turveydrop, with
  • his hat under his left arm (the inside presented at the clergyman
  • like a cannon) and his eyes creasing themselves up into his wig,
  • stood stiff and high-shouldered behind us bridesmaids during the
  • ceremony, and afterwards saluted us, I could never say enough to do
  • it justice. Miss Wisk, whom I cannot report as prepossessing in
  • appearance, and whose manner was grim, listened to the proceedings,
  • as part of woman's wrongs, with a disdainful face. Mrs. Jellyby, with
  • her calm smile and her bright eyes, looked the least concerned of all
  • the company.
  • We duly came back to breakfast, and Mrs. Jellyby sat at the head of
  • the table and Mr. Jellyby at the foot. Caddy had previously stolen
  • upstairs to hug the children again and tell them that her name was
  • Turveydrop. But this piece of information, instead of being an
  • agreeable surprise to Peepy, threw him on his back in such transports
  • of kicking grief that I could do nothing on being sent for but accede
  • to the proposal that he should be admitted to the breakfast table. So
  • he came down and sat in my lap; and Mrs. Jellyby, after saying, in
  • reference to the state of his pinafore, "Oh, you naughty Peepy, what
  • a shocking little pig you are!" was not at all discomposed. He was
  • very good except that he brought down Noah with him (out of an ark I
  • had given him before we went to church) and WOULD dip him head first
  • into the wine-glasses and then put him in his mouth.
  • My guardian, with his sweet temper and his quick perception and his
  • amiable face, made something agreeable even out of the ungenial
  • company. None of them seemed able to talk about anything but his, or
  • her, own one subject, and none of them seemed able to talk about even
  • that as part of a world in which there was anything else; but my
  • guardian turned it all to the merry encouragement of Caddy and the
  • honour of the occasion, and brought us through the breakfast nobly.
  • What we should have done without him, I am afraid to think, for all
  • the company despising the bride and bridegroom and old Mr.
  • Turveydrop--and old Mr. Thurveydrop, in virtue of his deportment,
  • considering himself vastly superior to all the company--it was a very
  • unpromising case.
  • At last the time came when poor Caddy was to go and when all her
  • property was packed on the hired coach and pair that was to take her
  • and her husband to Gravesend. It affected us to see Caddy clinging,
  • then, to her deplorable home and hanging on her mother's neck with
  • the greatest tenderness.
  • "I am very sorry I couldn't go on writing from dictation, Ma," sobbed
  • Caddy. "I hope you forgive me now."
  • "Oh, Caddy, Caddy!" said Mrs. Jellyby. "I have told you over and over
  • again that I have engaged a boy, and there's an end of it."
  • "You are sure you are not the least angry with me, Ma? Say you are
  • sure before I go away, Ma?"
  • "You foolish Caddy," returned Mrs. Jellyby, "do I look angry, or have
  • I inclination to be angry, or time to be angry? How CAN you?"
  • "Take a little care of Pa while I am gone, Mama!"
  • Mrs. Jellyby positively laughed at the fancy. "You romantic child,"
  • said she, lightly patting Caddy's back. "Go along. I am excellent
  • friends with you. Now, good-bye, Caddy, and be very happy!"
  • Then Caddy hung upon her father and nursed his cheek against hers as
  • if he were some poor dull child in pain. All this took place in the
  • hall. Her father released her, took out his pocket handkerchief, and
  • sat down on the stairs with his head against the wall. I hope he
  • found some consolation in walls. I almost think he did.
  • And then Prince took her arm in his and turned with great emotion and
  • respect to his father, whose deportment at that moment was
  • overwhelming.
  • "Thank you over and over again, father!" said Prince, kissing his
  • hand. "I am very grateful for all your kindness and consideration
  • regarding our marriage, and so, I can assure you, is Caddy."
  • "Very," sobbed Caddy. "Ve-ry!"
  • "My dear son," said Mr. Turveydrop, "and dear daughter, I have done
  • my duty. If the spirit of a sainted wooman hovers above us and looks
  • down on the occasion, that, and your constant affection, will be my
  • recompense. You will not fail in YOUR duty, my son and daughter, I
  • believe?"
  • "Dear father, never!" cried Prince.
  • "Never, never, dear Mr. Turveydrop!" said Caddy.
  • "This," returned Mr. Turveydrop, "is as it should be. My children, my
  • home is yours, my heart is yours, my all is yours. I will never leave
  • you; nothing but death shall part us. My dear son, you contemplate an
  • absence of a week, I think?"
  • "A week, dear father. We shall return home this day week."
  • "My dear child," said Mr. Turveydrop, "let me, even under the present
  • exceptional circumstances, recommend strict punctuality. It is highly
  • important to keep the connexion together; and schools, if at all
  • neglected, are apt to take offence."
  • "This day week, father, we shall be sure to be home to dinner."
  • "Good!" said Mr. Turveydrop. "You will find fires, my dear Caroline,
  • in your own room, and dinner prepared in my apartment. Yes, yes,
  • Prince!" anticipating some self-denying objection on his son's part
  • with a great air. "You and our Caroline will be strange in the upper
  • part of the premises and will, therefore, dine that day in my
  • apartment. Now, bless ye!"
  • They drove away, and whether I wondered most at Mrs. Jellyby or at
  • Mr. Turveydrop, I did not know. Ada and my guardian were in the same
  • condition when we came to talk it over. But before we drove away too,
  • I received a most unexpected and eloquent compliment from Mr.
  • Jellyby. He came up to me in the hall, took both my hands, pressed
  • them earnestly, and opened his mouth twice. I was so sure of his
  • meaning that I said, quite flurried, "You are very welcome, sir. Pray
  • don't mention it!"
  • "I hope this marriage is for the best, guardian," said I when we
  • three were on our road home.
  • "I hope it is, little woman. Patience. We shall see."
  • "Is the wind in the east to-day?" I ventured to ask him.
  • He laughed heartily and answered, "No."
  • "But it must have been this morning, I think," said I.
  • He answered "No" again, and this time my dear girl confidently
  • answered "No" too and shook the lovely head which, with its blooming
  • flowers against the golden hair, was like the very spring. "Much YOU
  • know of east winds, my ugly darling," said I, kissing her in my
  • admiration--I couldn't help it.
  • Well! It was only their love for me, I know very well, and it is a
  • long time ago. I must write it even if I rub it out again, because it
  • gives me so much pleasure. They said there could be no east wind
  • where Somebody was; they said that wherever Dame Durden went, there
  • was sunshine and summer air.
  • CHAPTER XXXI
  • Nurse and Patient
  • I had not been at home again many days when one evening I went
  • upstairs into my own room to take a peep over Charley's shoulder and
  • see how she was getting on with her copy-book. Writing was a trying
  • business to Charley, who seemed to have no natural power over a pen,
  • but in whose hand every pen appeared to become perversely animated,
  • and to go wrong and crooked, and to stop, and splash, and sidle into
  • corners like a saddle-donkey. It was very odd to see what old letters
  • Charley's young hand had made, they so wrinkled, and shrivelled, and
  • tottering, it so plump and round. Yet Charley was uncommonly expert
  • at other things and had as nimble little fingers as I ever watched.
  • "Well, Charley," said I, looking over a copy of the letter O in which
  • it was represented as square, triangular, pear-shaped, and collapsed
  • in all kinds of ways, "we are improving. If we only get to make it
  • round, we shall be perfect, Charley."
  • Then I made one, and Charley made one, and the pen wouldn't join
  • Charley's neatly, but twisted it up into a knot.
  • "Never mind, Charley. We shall do it in time."
  • Charley laid down her pen, the copy being finished, opened and shut
  • her cramped little hand, looked gravely at the page, half in pride
  • and half in doubt, and got up, and dropped me a curtsy.
  • "Thank you, miss. If you please, miss, did you know a poor person of
  • the name of Jenny?"
  • "A brickmaker's wife, Charley? Yes."
  • "She came and spoke to me when I was out a little while ago, and said
  • you knew her, miss. She asked me if I wasn't the young lady's little
  • maid--meaning you for the young lady, miss--and I said yes, miss."
  • "I thought she had left this neighbourhood altogether, Charley."
  • "So she had, miss, but she's come back again to where she used to
  • live--she and Liz. Did you know another poor person of the name of
  • Liz, miss?"
  • "I think I do, Charley, though not by name."
  • "That's what she said!" returned Charley. "They have both come back,
  • miss, and have been tramping high and low."
  • "Tramping high and low, have they, Charley?"
  • "Yes, miss." If Charley could only have made the letters in her copy
  • as round as the eyes with which she looked into my face, they would
  • have been excellent. "And this poor person came about the house three
  • or four days, hoping to get a glimpse of you, miss--all she wanted,
  • she said--but you were away. That was when she saw me. She saw me
  • a-going about, miss," said Charley with a short laugh of the greatest
  • delight and pride, "and she thought I looked like your maid!"
  • "Did she though, really, Charley?"
  • "Yes, miss!" said Charley. "Really and truly." And Charley, with
  • another short laugh of the purest glee, made her eyes very round
  • again and looked as serious as became my maid. I was never tired of
  • seeing Charley in the full enjoyment of that great dignity, standing
  • before me with her youthful face and figure, and her steady manner,
  • and her childish exultation breaking through it now and then in the
  • pleasantest way.
  • "And where did you see her, Charley?" said I.
  • My little maid's countenance fell as she replied, "By the doctor's
  • shop, miss." For Charley wore her black frock yet.
  • I asked if the brickmaker's wife were ill, but Charley said no. It
  • was some one else. Some one in her cottage who had tramped down to
  • Saint Albans and was tramping he didn't know where. A poor boy,
  • Charley said. No father, no mother, no any one. "Like as Tom might
  • have been, miss, if Emma and me had died after father," said Charley,
  • her round eyes filling with tears.
  • "And she was getting medicine for him, Charley?"
  • "She said, miss," returned Charley, "how that he had once done as
  • much for her."
  • My little maid's face was so eager and her quiet hands were folded so
  • closely in one another as she stood looking at me that I had no great
  • difficulty in reading her thoughts. "Well, Charley," said I, "it
  • appears to me that you and I can do no better than go round to
  • Jenny's and see what's the matter."
  • The alacrity with which Charley brought my bonnet and veil, and
  • having dressed me, quaintly pinned herself into her warm shawl and
  • made herself look like a little old woman, sufficiently expressed her
  • readiness. So Charley and I, without saying anything to any one, went
  • out.
  • It was a cold, wild night, and the trees shuddered in the wind. The
  • rain had been thick and heavy all day, and with little intermission
  • for many days. None was falling just then, however. The sky had
  • partly cleared, but was very gloomy--even above us, where a few stars
  • were shining. In the north and north-west, where the sun had set
  • three hours before, there was a pale dead light both beautiful and
  • awful; and into it long sullen lines of cloud waved up like a sea
  • stricken immovable as it was heaving. Towards London a lurid glare
  • overhung the whole dark waste, and the contrast between these two
  • lights, and the fancy which the redder light engendered of an
  • unearthly fire, gleaming on all the unseen buildings of the city and
  • on all the faces of its many thousands of wondering inhabitants, was
  • as solemn as might be.
  • I had no thought that night--none, I am quite sure--of what was soon
  • to happen to me. But I have always remembered since that when we had
  • stopped at the garden-gate to look up at the sky, and when we went
  • upon our way, I had for a moment an undefinable impression of myself
  • as being something different from what I then was. I know it was then
  • and there that I had it. I have ever since connected the feeling with
  • that spot and time and with everything associated with that spot and
  • time, to the distant voices in the town, the barking of a dog, and
  • the sound of wheels coming down the miry hill.
  • It was Saturday night, and most of the people belonging to the place
  • where we were going were drinking elsewhere. We found it quieter than
  • I had previously seen it, though quite as miserable. The kilns were
  • burning, and a stifling vapour set towards us with a pale-blue glare.
  • We came to the cottage, where there was a feeble candle in the
  • patched window. We tapped at the door and went in. The mother of the
  • little child who had died was sitting in a chair on one side of the
  • poor fire by the bed; and opposite to her, a wretched boy, supported
  • by the chimney-piece, was cowering on the floor. He held under his
  • arm, like a little bundle, a fragment of a fur cap; and as he tried
  • to warm himself, he shook until the crazy door and window shook. The
  • place was closer than before and had an unhealthy and a very peculiar
  • smell.
  • I had not lifted my veil when I first spoke to the woman, which was
  • at the moment of our going in. The boy staggered up instantly and
  • stared at me with a remarkable expression of surprise and terror.
  • His action was so quick and my being the cause of it was so evident
  • that I stood still instead of advancing nearer.
  • "I won't go no more to the berryin ground," muttered the boy; "I
  • ain't a-going there, so I tell you!"
  • I lifted my veil and spoke to the woman. She said to me in a low
  • voice, "Don't mind him, ma'am. He'll soon come back to his head," and
  • said to him, "Jo, Jo, what's the matter?"
  • "I know wot she's come for!" cried the boy.
  • "Who?"
  • "The lady there. She's come to get me to go along with her to the
  • berryin ground. I won't go to the berryin ground. I don't like the
  • name on it. She might go a-berryin ME." His shivering came on again,
  • and as he leaned against the wall, he shook the hovel.
  • "He has been talking off and on about such like all day, ma'am," said
  • Jenny softly. "Why, how you stare! This is MY lady, Jo."
  • "Is it?" returned the boy doubtfully, and surveying me with his arm
  • held out above his burning eyes. "She looks to me the t'other one. It
  • ain't the bonnet, nor yet it ain't the gownd, but she looks to me the
  • t'other one."
  • My little Charley, with her premature experience of illness and
  • trouble, had pulled off her bonnet and shawl and now went quietly up
  • to him with a chair and sat him down in it like an old sick nurse.
  • Except that no such attendant could have shown him Charley's youthful
  • face, which seemed to engage his confidence.
  • "I say!" said the boy. "YOU tell me. Ain't the lady the t'other
  • lady?"
  • Charley shook her head as she methodically drew his rags about him
  • and made him as warm as she could.
  • "Oh!" the boy muttered. "Then I s'pose she ain't."
  • "I came to see if I could do you any good," said I. "What is the
  • matter with you?"
  • "I'm a-being froze," returned the boy hoarsely, with his haggard gaze
  • wandering about me, "and then burnt up, and then froze, and then
  • burnt up, ever so many times in a hour. And my head's all sleepy, and
  • all a-going mad-like--and I'm so dry--and my bones isn't half so much
  • bones as pain.
  • "When did he come here?" I asked the woman.
  • "This morning, ma'am, I found him at the corner of the town. I had
  • known him up in London yonder. Hadn't I, Jo?"
  • "Tom-all-Alone's," the boy replied.
  • Whenever he fixed his attention or his eyes, it was only for a very
  • little while. He soon began to droop his head again, and roll it
  • heavily, and speak as if he were half awake.
  • "When did he come from London?" I asked.
  • "I come from London yes'day," said the boy himself, now flushed and
  • hot. "I'm a-going somewheres."
  • "Where is he going?" I asked.
  • "Somewheres," repeated the boy in a louder tone. "I have been moved
  • on, and moved on, more nor ever I was afore, since the t'other one
  • give me the sov'ring. Mrs. Snagsby, she's always a-watching, and
  • a-driving of me--what have I done to her?--and they're all a-watching
  • and a-driving of me. Every one of 'em's doing of it, from the time
  • when I don't get up, to the time when I don't go to bed. And I'm
  • a-going somewheres. That's where I'm a-going. She told me, down in
  • Tom-all-Alone's, as she came from Stolbuns, and so I took the
  • Stolbuns Road. It's as good as another."
  • He always concluded by addressing Charley.
  • "What is to be done with him?" said I, taking the woman aside. "He
  • could not travel in this state even if he had a purpose and knew
  • where he was going!"
  • "I know no more, ma'am, than the dead," she replied, glancing
  • compassionately at him. "Perhaps the dead know better, if they could
  • only tell us. I've kept him here all day for pity's sake, and I've
  • given him broth and physic, and Liz has gone to try if any one will
  • take him in (here's my pretty in the bed--her child, but I call it
  • mine); but I can't keep him long, for if my husband was to come home
  • and find him here, he'd be rough in putting him out and might do him
  • a hurt. Hark! Here comes Liz back!"
  • The other woman came hurriedly in as she spoke, and the boy got up
  • with a half-obscured sense that he was expected to be going. When the
  • little child awoke, and when and how Charley got at it, took it out
  • of bed, and began to walk about hushing it, I don't know. There she
  • was, doing all this in a quiet motherly manner as if she were living
  • in Mrs. Blinder's attic with Tom and Emma again.
  • The friend had been here and there, and had been played about from
  • hand to hand, and had come back as she went. At first it was too
  • early for the boy to be received into the proper refuge, and at last
  • it was too late. One official sent her to another, and the other sent
  • her back again to the first, and so backward and forward, until it
  • appeared to me as if both must have been appointed for their skill in
  • evading their duties instead of performing them. And now, after all,
  • she said, breathing quickly, for she had been running and was
  • frightened too, "Jenny, your master's on the road home, and mine's
  • not far behind, and the Lord help the boy, for we can do no more for
  • him!" They put a few halfpence together and hurried them into his
  • hand, and so, in an oblivious, half-thankful, half-insensible way, he
  • shuffled out of the house.
  • "Give me the child, my dear," said its mother to Charley, "and thank
  • you kindly too! Jenny, woman dear, good night! Young lady, if my
  • master don't fall out with me, I'll look down by the kiln by and by,
  • where the boy will be most like, and again in the morning!" She
  • hurried off, and presently we passed her hushing and singing to her
  • child at her own door and looking anxiously along the road for her
  • drunken husband.
  • I was afraid of staying then to speak to either woman, lest I should
  • bring her into trouble. But I said to Charley that we must not leave
  • the boy to die. Charley, who knew what to do much better than I did,
  • and whose quickness equalled her presence of mind, glided on before
  • me, and presently we came up with Jo, just short of the brick-kiln.
  • I think he must have begun his journey with some small bundle under
  • his arm and must have had it stolen or lost it. For he still carried
  • his wretched fragment of fur cap like a bundle, though he went
  • bare-headed through the rain, which now fell fast. He stopped when we
  • called to him and again showed a dread of me when I came up, standing
  • with his lustrous eyes fixed upon me, and even arrested in his
  • shivering fit.
  • I asked him to come with us, and we would take care that he had some
  • shelter for the night.
  • "I don't want no shelter," he said; "I can lay amongst the warm
  • bricks."
  • "But don't you know that people die there?" replied Charley.
  • "They dies everywheres," said the boy. "They dies in their
  • lodgings--she knows where; I showed her--and they dies down in
  • Tom-all-Alone's in heaps. They dies more than they lives, according
  • to what I see." Then he hoarsely whispered Charley, "If she ain't the
  • t'other one, she ain't the forrenner. Is there THREE of 'em then?"
  • Charley looked at me a little frightened. I felt half frightened at
  • myself when the boy glared on me so.
  • But he turned and followed when I beckoned to him, and finding that
  • he acknowledged that influence in me, I led the way straight home. It
  • was not far, only at the summit of the hill. We passed but one man. I
  • doubted if we should have got home without assistance, the boy's
  • steps were so uncertain and tremulous. He made no complaint, however,
  • and was strangely unconcerned about himself, if I may say so strange
  • a thing.
  • Leaving him in the hall for a moment, shrunk into the corner of the
  • window-seat and staring with an indifference that scarcely could be
  • called wonder at the comfort and brightness about him, I went into
  • the drawing-room to speak to my guardian. There I found Mr. Skimpole,
  • who had come down by the coach, as he frequently did without notice,
  • and never bringing any clothes with him, but always borrowing
  • everything he wanted.
  • They came out with me directly to look at the boy. The servants had
  • gathered in the hall too, and he shivered in the window-seat with
  • Charley standing by him, like some wounded animal that had been found
  • in a ditch.
  • "This is a sorrowful case," said my guardian after asking him a
  • question or two and touching him and examining his eyes. "What do you
  • say, Harold?"
  • "You had better turn him out," said Mr. Skimpole.
  • "What do you mean?" inquired my guardian, almost sternly.
  • "My dear Jarndyce," said Mr. Skimpole, "you know what I am: I am a
  • child. Be cross to me if I deserve it. But I have a constitutional
  • objection to this sort of thing. I always had, when I was a medical
  • man. He's not safe, you know. There's a very bad sort of fever about
  • him."
  • Mr. Skimpole had retreated from the hall to the drawing-room again
  • and said this in his airy way, seated on the music-stool as we stood
  • by.
  • "You'll say it's childish," observed Mr. Skimpole, looking gaily at
  • us. "Well, I dare say it may be; but I AM a child, and I never
  • pretend to be anything else. If you put him out in the road, you only
  • put him where he was before. He will be no worse off than he was, you
  • know. Even make him better off, if you like. Give him sixpence, or
  • five shillings, or five pound ten--you are arithmeticians, and I am
  • not--and get rid of him!"
  • "And what is he to do then?" asked my guardian.
  • "Upon my life," said Mr. Skimpole, shrugging his shoulders with his
  • engaging smile, "I have not the least idea what he is to do then. But
  • I have no doubt he'll do it."
  • "Now, is it not a horrible reflection," said my guardian, to whom I
  • had hastily explained the unavailing efforts of the two women, "is it
  • not a horrible reflection," walking up and down and rumpling his
  • hair, "that if this wretched creature were a convicted prisoner, his
  • hospital would be wide open to him, and he would be as well taken
  • care of as any sick boy in the kingdom?"
  • "My dear Jarndyce," returned Mr. Skimpole, "you'll pardon the
  • simplicity of the question, coming as it does from a creature who is
  • perfectly simple in worldly matters, but why ISN'T he a prisoner
  • then?"
  • My guardian stopped and looked at him with a whimsical mixture of
  • amusement and indignation in his face.
  • "Our young friend is not to be suspected of any delicacy, I should
  • imagine," said Mr. Skimpole, unabashed and candid. "It seems to me
  • that it would be wiser, as well as in a certain kind of way more
  • respectable, if he showed some misdirected energy that got him into
  • prison. There would be more of an adventurous spirit in it, and
  • consequently more of a certain sort of poetry."
  • "I believe," returned my guardian, resuming his uneasy walk, "that
  • there is not such another child on earth as yourself."
  • "Do you really?" said Mr. Skimpole. "I dare say! But I confess I
  • don't see why our young friend, in his degree, should not seek to
  • invest himself with such poetry as is open to him. He is no doubt
  • born with an appetite--probably, when he is in a safer state of
  • health, he has an excellent appetite. Very well. At our young
  • friend's natural dinner hour, most likely about noon, our young
  • friend says in effect to society, 'I am hungry; will you have the
  • goodness to produce your spoon and feed me?' Society, which has taken
  • upon itself the general arrangement of the whole system of spoons and
  • professes to have a spoon for our young friend, does NOT produce that
  • spoon; and our young friend, therefore, says 'You really must excuse
  • me if I seize it.' Now, this appears to me a case of misdirected
  • energy, which has a certain amount of reason in it and a certain
  • amount of romance; and I don't know but what I should be more
  • interested in our young friend, as an illustration of such a case,
  • than merely as a poor vagabond--which any one can be."
  • "In the meantime," I ventured to observe, "he is getting worse."
  • "In the meantime," said Mr. Skimpole cheerfully, "as Miss Summerson,
  • with her practical good sense, observes, he is getting worse.
  • Therefore I recommend your turning him out before he gets still
  • worse."
  • The amiable face with which he said it, I think I shall never forget.
  • "Of course, little woman," observed my guardian, turning to me, "I
  • can ensure his admission into the proper place by merely going there
  • to enforce it, though it's a bad state of things when, in his
  • condition, that is necessary. But it's growing late, and is a very
  • bad night, and the boy is worn out already. There is a bed in the
  • wholesome loft-room by the stable; we had better keep him there till
  • morning, when he can be wrapped up and removed. We'll do that."
  • "Oh!" said Mr. Skimpole, with his hands upon the keys of the piano as
  • we moved away. "Are you going back to our young friend?"
  • "Yes," said my guardian.
  • "How I envy you your constitution, Jarndyce!" returned Mr. Skimpole
  • with playful admiration. "You don't mind these things; neither does
  • Miss Summerson. You are ready at all times to go anywhere, and do
  • anything. Such is will! I have no will at all--and no won't--simply
  • can't."
  • "You can't recommend anything for the boy, I suppose?" said my
  • guardian, looking back over his shoulder half angrily; only half
  • angrily, for he never seemed to consider Mr. Skimpole an accountable
  • being.
  • "My dear Jarndyce, I observed a bottle of cooling medicine in his
  • pocket, and it's impossible for him to do better than take it. You
  • can tell them to sprinkle a little vinegar about the place where he
  • sleeps and to keep it moderately cool and him moderately warm. But it
  • is mere impertinence in me to offer any recommendation. Miss
  • Summerson has such a knowledge of detail and such a capacity for the
  • administration of detail that she knows all about it."
  • We went back into the hall and explained to Jo what we proposed to
  • do, which Charley explained to him again and which he received with
  • the languid unconcern I had already noticed, wearily looking on at
  • what was done as if it were for somebody else. The servants
  • compassionating his miserable state and being very anxious to help,
  • we soon got the loft-room ready; and some of the men about the house
  • carried him across the wet yard, well wrapped up. It was pleasant to
  • observe how kind they were to him and how there appeared to be a
  • general impression among them that frequently calling him "Old Chap"
  • was likely to revive his spirits. Charley directed the operations and
  • went to and fro between the loft-room and the house with such little
  • stimulants and comforts as we thought it safe to give him. My
  • guardian himself saw him before he was left for the night and
  • reported to me when he returned to the growlery to write a letter on
  • the boy's behalf, which a messenger was charged to deliver at
  • day-light in the morning, that he seemed easier and inclined to
  • sleep. They had fastened his door on the outside, he said, in case of
  • his being delirious, but had so arranged that he could not make any
  • noise without being heard.
  • Ada being in our room with a cold, Mr. Skimpole was left alone all
  • this time and entertained himself by playing snatches of pathetic
  • airs and sometimes singing to them (as we heard at a distance) with
  • great expression and feeling. When we rejoined him in the
  • drawing-room he said he would give us a little ballad which had come
  • into his head "apropos of our young friend," and he sang one about a
  • peasant boy,
  • "Thrown on the wide world, doomed to wander and roam,
  • Bereft of his parents, bereft of a home."
  • quite exquisitely. It was a song that always made him cry, he told
  • us.
  • He was extremely gay all the rest of the evening, for he absolutely
  • chirped--those were his delighted words--when he thought by what a
  • happy talent for business he was surrounded. He gave us, in his glass
  • of negus, "Better health to our young friend!" and supposed and gaily
  • pursued the case of his being reserved like Whittington to become
  • Lord Mayor of London. In that event, no doubt, he would establish the
  • Jarndyce Institution and the Summerson Almshouses, and a little
  • annual Corporation Pilgrimage to St. Albans. He had no doubt, he
  • said, that our young friend was an excellent boy in his way, but his
  • way was not the Harold Skimpole way; what Harold Skimpole was, Harold
  • Skimpole had found himself, to his considerable surprise, when he
  • first made his own acquaintance; he had accepted himself with all his
  • failings and had thought it sound philosophy to make the best of the
  • bargain; and he hoped we would do the same.
  • Charley's last report was that the boy was quiet. I could see, from
  • my window, the lantern they had left him burning quietly; and I went
  • to bed very happy to think that he was sheltered.
  • There was more movement and more talking than usual a little before
  • daybreak, and it awoke me. As I was dressing, I looked out of my
  • window and asked one of our men who had been among the active
  • sympathizers last night whether there was anything wrong about the
  • house. The lantern was still burning in the loft-window.
  • "It's the boy, miss," said he.
  • "Is he worse?" I inquired.
  • "Gone, miss.
  • "Dead!"
  • "Dead, miss? No. Gone clean off."
  • At what time of the night he had gone, or how, or why, it seemed
  • hopeless ever to divine. The door remaining as it had been left, and
  • the lantern standing in the window, it could only be supposed that he
  • had got out by a trap in the floor which communicated with an empty
  • cart-house below. But he had shut it down again, if that were so; and
  • it looked as if it had not been raised. Nothing of any kind was
  • missing. On this fact being clearly ascertained, we all yielded to
  • the painful belief that delirium had come upon him in the night and
  • that, allured by some imaginary object or pursued by some imaginary
  • horror, he had strayed away in that worse than helpless state; all of
  • us, that is to say, but Mr. Skimpole, who repeatedly suggested, in
  • his usual easy light style, that it had occurred to our young friend
  • that he was not a safe inmate, having a bad kind of fever upon him,
  • and that he had with great natural politeness taken himself off.
  • Every possible inquiry was made, and every place was searched. The
  • brick-kilns were examined, the cottages were visited, the two women
  • were particularly questioned, but they knew nothing of him, and
  • nobody could doubt that their wonder was genuine. The weather had for
  • some time been too wet and the night itself had been too wet to admit
  • of any tracing by footsteps. Hedge and ditch, and wall, and rick and
  • stack, were examined by our men for a long distance round, lest the
  • boy should be lying in such a place insensible or dead; but nothing
  • was seen to indicate that he had ever been near. From the time when
  • he was left in the loft-room, he vanished.
  • The search continued for five days. I do not mean that it ceased even
  • then, but that my attention was then diverted into a current very
  • memorable to me.
  • As Charley was at her writing again in my room in the evening, and as
  • I sat opposite to her at work, I felt the table tremble. Looking up,
  • I saw my little maid shivering from head to foot.
  • "Charley," said I, "are you so cold?"
  • "I think I am, miss," she replied. "I don't know what it is. I can't
  • hold myself still. I felt so yesterday at about this same time, miss.
  • Don't be uneasy, I think I'm ill."
  • I heard Ada's voice outside, and I hurried to the door of
  • communication between my room and our pretty sitting-room, and locked
  • it. Just in time, for she tapped at it while my hand was yet upon the
  • key.
  • Ada called to me to let her in, but I said, "Not now, my dearest. Go
  • away. There's nothing the matter; I will come to you presently." Ah!
  • It was a long, long time before my darling girl and I were companions
  • again.
  • Charley fell ill. In twelve hours she was very ill. I moved her to my
  • room, and laid her in my bed, and sat down quietly to nurse her. I
  • told my guardian all about it, and why I felt it was necessary that I
  • should seclude myself, and my reason for not seeing my darling above
  • all. At first she came very often to the door, and called to me, and
  • even reproached me with sobs and tears; but I wrote her a long letter
  • saying that she made me anxious and unhappy and imploring her, as she
  • loved me and wished my mind to be at peace, to come no nearer than
  • the garden. After that she came beneath the window even oftener than
  • she had come to the door, and if I had learnt to love her dear sweet
  • voice before when we were hardly ever apart, how did I learn to love
  • it then, when I stood behind the window-curtain listening and
  • replying, but not so much as looking out! How did I learn to love it
  • afterwards, when the harder time came!
  • They put a bed for me in our sitting-room; and by keeping the door
  • wide open, I turned the two rooms into one, now that Ada had vacated
  • that part of the house, and kept them always fresh and airy. There
  • was not a servant in or about the house but was so good that they
  • would all most gladly have come to me at any hour of the day or night
  • without the least fear or unwillingness, but I thought it best to
  • choose one worthy woman who was never to see Ada and whom I could
  • trust to come and go with all precaution. Through her means I got out
  • to take the air with my guardian when there was no fear of meeting
  • Ada, and wanted for nothing in the way of attendance, any more than
  • in any other respect.
  • And thus poor Charley sickened and grew worse, and fell into heavy
  • danger of death, and lay severely ill for many a long round of day
  • and night. So patient she was, so uncomplaining, and inspired by such
  • a gentle fortitude that very often as I sat by Charley holding her
  • head in my arms--repose would come to her, so, when it would come to
  • her in no other attitude--I silently prayed to our Father in heaven
  • that I might not forget the lesson which this little sister taught
  • me.
  • I was very sorrowful to think that Charley's pretty looks would
  • change and be disfigured, even if she recovered--she was such a child
  • with her dimpled face--but that thought was, for the greater part,
  • lost in her greater peril. When she was at the worst, and her mind
  • rambled again to the cares of her father's sick bed and the little
  • children, she still knew me so far as that she would be quiet in my
  • arms when she could lie quiet nowhere else, and murmur out the
  • wanderings of her mind less restlessly. At those times I used to
  • think, how should I ever tell the two remaining babies that the baby
  • who had learned of her faithful heart to be a mother to them in their
  • need was dead!
  • There were other times when Charley knew me well and talked to me,
  • telling me that she sent her love to Tom and Emma and that she was
  • sure Tom would grow up to be a good man. At those times Charley would
  • speak to me of what she had read to her father as well as she could
  • to comfort him, of that young man carried out to be buried who was
  • the only son of his mother and she was a widow, of the ruler's
  • daughter raised up by the gracious hand upon her bed of death. And
  • Charley told me that when her father died she had kneeled down and
  • prayed in her first sorrow that he likewise might be raised up and
  • given back to his poor children, and that if she should never get
  • better and should die too, she thought it likely that it might come
  • into Tom's mind to offer the same prayer for her. Then would I show
  • Tom how these people of old days had been brought back to life on
  • earth, only that we might know our hope to be restored to heaven!
  • But of all the various times there were in Charley's illness, there
  • was not one when she lost the gentle qualities I have spoken of. And
  • there were many, many when I thought in the night of the last high
  • belief in the watching angel, and the last higher trust in God, on
  • the part of her poor despised father.
  • And Charley did not die. She flutteringly and slowly turned the
  • dangerous point, after long lingering there, and then began to mend.
  • The hope that never had been given, from the first, of Charley being
  • in outward appearance Charley any more soon began to be encouraged;
  • and even that prospered, and I saw her growing into her old childish
  • likeness again.
  • It was a great morning when I could tell Ada all this as she stood
  • out in the garden; and it was a great evening when Charley and I at
  • last took tea together in the next room. But on that same evening, I
  • felt that I was stricken cold.
  • Happily for both of us, it was not until Charley was safe in bed
  • again and placidly asleep that I began to think the contagion of her
  • illness was upon me. I had been able easily to hide what I felt at
  • tea-time, but I was past that already now, and I knew that I was
  • rapidly following in Charley's steps.
  • I was well enough, however, to be up early in the morning, and to
  • return my darling's cheerful blessing from the garden, and to talk
  • with her as long as usual. But I was not free from an impression that
  • I had been walking about the two rooms in the night, a little beside
  • myself, though knowing where I was; and I felt confused at
  • times--with a curious sense of fullness, as if I were becoming too
  • large altogether.
  • In the evening I was so much worse that I resolved to prepare
  • Charley, with which view I said, "You're getting quite strong,
  • Charley, are you not?'
  • "Oh, quite!" said Charley.
  • "Strong enough to be told a secret, I think, Charley?"
  • "Quite strong enough for that, miss!" cried Charley. But Charley's
  • face fell in the height of her delight, for she saw the secret in MY
  • face; and she came out of the great chair, and fell upon my bosom,
  • and said "Oh, miss, it's my doing! It's my doing!" and a great deal
  • more out of the fullness of her grateful heart.
  • "Now, Charley," said I after letting her go on for a little while,
  • "if I am to be ill, my great trust, humanly speaking, is in you. And
  • unless you are as quiet and composed for me as you always were for
  • yourself, you can never fulfil it, Charley."
  • "If you'll let me cry a little longer, miss," said Charley. "Oh, my
  • dear, my dear! If you'll only let me cry a little longer. Oh, my
  • dear!"--how affectionately and devotedly she poured this out as she
  • clung to my neck, I never can remember without tears--"I'll be good."
  • So I let Charley cry a little longer, and it did us both good.
  • "Trust in me now, if you please, miss," said Charley quietly. "I am
  • listening to everything you say."
  • "It's very little at present, Charley. I shall tell your doctor
  • to-night that I don't think I am well and that you are going to nurse
  • me."
  • For that the poor child thanked me with her whole heart. "And in the
  • morning, when you hear Miss Ada in the garden, if I should not be
  • quite able to go to the window-curtain as usual, do you go, Charley,
  • and say I am asleep--that I have rather tired myself, and am asleep.
  • At all times keep the room as I have kept it, Charley, and let no one
  • come."
  • Charley promised, and I lay down, for I was very heavy. I saw the
  • doctor that night and asked the favour of him that I wished to ask
  • relative to his saying nothing of my illness in the house as yet. I
  • have a very indistinct remembrance of that night melting into day,
  • and of day melting into night again; but I was just able on the first
  • morning to get to the window and speak to my darling.
  • On the second morning I heard her dear voice--Oh, how dear
  • now!--outside; and I asked Charley, with some difficulty (speech
  • being painful to me), to go and say I was asleep. I heard her answer
  • softly, "Don't disturb her, Charley, for the world!"
  • "How does my own Pride look, Charley?" I inquired.
  • "Disappointed, miss," said Charley, peeping through the curtain.
  • "But I know she is very beautiful this morning."
  • "She is indeed, miss," answered Charley, peeping. "Still looking up
  • at the window."
  • With her blue clear eyes, God bless them, always loveliest when
  • raised like that!
  • I called Charley to me and gave her her last charge.
  • "Now, Charley, when she knows I am ill, she will try to make her way
  • into the room. Keep her out, Charley, if you love me truly, to the
  • last! Charley, if you let her in but once, only to look upon me for
  • one moment as I lie here, I shall die."
  • "I never will! I never will!" she promised me.
  • "I believe it, my dear Charley. And now come and sit beside me for a
  • little while, and touch me with your hand. For I cannot see you,
  • Charley; I am blind."
  • CHAPTER XXXII
  • The Appointed Time
  • It is night in Lincoln's Inn--perplexed and troublous valley of the
  • shadow of the law, where suitors generally find but little day--and
  • fat candles are snuffed out in offices, and clerks have rattled down
  • the crazy wooden stairs and dispersed. The bell that rings at nine
  • o'clock has ceased its doleful clangour about nothing; the gates are
  • shut; and the night-porter, a solemn warder with a mighty power of
  • sleep, keeps guard in his lodge. From tiers of staircase windows
  • clogged lamps like the eyes of Equity, bleared Argus with a
  • fathomless pocket for every eye and an eye upon it, dimly blink at
  • the stars. In dirty upper casements, here and there, hazy little
  • patches of candlelight reveal where some wise draughtsman and
  • conveyancer yet toils for the entanglement of real estate in meshes
  • of sheep-skin, in the average ratio of about a dozen of sheep to an
  • acre of land. Over which bee-like industry these benefactors of their
  • species linger yet, though office-hours be past, that they may give,
  • for every day, some good account at last.
  • In the neighbouring court, where the Lord Chancellor of the rag and
  • bottle shop dwells, there is a general tendency towards beer and
  • supper. Mrs. Piper and Mrs. Perkins, whose respective sons, engaged
  • with a circle of acquaintance in the game of hide and seek, have been
  • lying in ambush about the by-ways of Chancery Lane for some hours and
  • scouring the plain of the same thoroughfare to the confusion of
  • passengers--Mrs. Piper and Mrs. Perkins have but now exchanged
  • congratulations on the children being abed, and they still linger on
  • a door-step over a few parting words. Mr. Krook and his lodger, and
  • the fact of Mr. Krook's being "continually in liquor," and the
  • testamentary prospects of the young man are, as usual, the staple of
  • their conversation. But they have something to say, likewise, of the
  • Harmonic Meeting at the Sol's Arms, where the sound of the piano
  • through the partly opened windows jingles out into the court, and
  • where Little Swills, after keeping the lovers of harmony in a roar
  • like a very Yorick, may now be heard taking the gruff line in a
  • concerted piece and sentimentally adjuring his friends and patrons to
  • "Listen, listen, listen, tew the wa-ter fall!" Mrs. Perkins and Mrs.
  • Piper compare opinions on the subject of the young lady of
  • professional celebrity who assists at the Harmonic Meetings and who
  • has a space to herself in the manuscript announcement in the window,
  • Mrs. Perkins possessing information that she has been married a year
  • and a half, though announced as Miss M. Melvilleson, the noted siren,
  • and that her baby is clandestinely conveyed to the Sol's Arms every
  • night to receive its natural nourishment during the entertainments.
  • "Sooner than which, myself," says Mrs. Perkins, "I would get my
  • living by selling lucifers." Mrs. Piper, as in duty bound, is of the
  • same opinion, holding that a private station is better than public
  • applause, and thanking heaven for her own (and, by implication, Mrs.
  • Perkins') respectability. By this time the pot-boy of the Sol's Arms
  • appearing with her supper-pint well frothed, Mrs. Piper accepts that
  • tankard and retires indoors, first giving a fair good night to Mrs.
  • Perkins, who has had her own pint in her hand ever since it was
  • fetched from the same hostelry by young Perkins before he was sent to
  • bed. Now there is a sound of putting up shop-shutters in the court
  • and a smell as of the smoking of pipes; and shooting stars are seen
  • in upper windows, further indicating retirement to rest. Now, too,
  • the policeman begins to push at doors; to try fastenings; to be
  • suspicious of bundles; and to administer his beat, on the hypothesis
  • that every one is either robbing or being robbed.
  • It is a close night, though the damp cold is searching too, and there
  • is a laggard mist a little way up in the air. It is a fine steaming
  • night to turn the slaughter-houses, the unwholesome trades, the
  • sewerage, bad water, and burial-grounds to account, and give the
  • registrar of deaths some extra business. It may be something in the
  • air--there is plenty in it--or it may be something in himself that is
  • in fault; but Mr. Weevle, otherwise Jobling, is very ill at ease. He
  • comes and goes between his own room and the open street door twenty
  • times an hour. He has been doing so ever since it fell dark. Since
  • the Chancellor shut up his shop, which he did very early to-night,
  • Mr. Weevle has been down and up, and down and up (with a cheap tight
  • velvet skull-cap on his head, making his whiskers look out of all
  • proportion), oftener than before.
  • It is no phenomenon that Mr. Snagsby should be ill at ease too, for
  • he always is so, more or less, under the oppressive influence of the
  • secret that is upon him. Impelled by the mystery of which he is a
  • partaker and yet in which he is not a sharer, Mr. Snagsby haunts what
  • seems to be its fountain-head--the rag and bottle shop in the court.
  • It has an irresistible attraction for him. Even now, coming round by
  • the Sol's Arms with the intention of passing down the court, and out
  • at the Chancery Lane end, and so terminating his unpremeditated
  • after-supper stroll of ten minutes' long from his own door and back
  • again, Mr. Snagsby approaches.
  • "What, Mr. Weevle?" says the stationer, stopping to speak. "Are YOU
  • there?"
  • "Aye!" says Weevle, "Here I am, Mr. Snagsby."
  • "Airing yourself, as I am doing, before you go to bed?" the stationer
  • inquires.
  • "Why, there's not much air to be got here; and what there is, is not
  • very freshening," Weevle answers, glancing up and down the court.
  • "Very true, sir. Don't you observe," says Mr. Snagsby, pausing to
  • sniff and taste the air a little, "don't you observe, Mr. Weevle,
  • that you're--not to put too fine a point upon it--that you're rather
  • greasy here, sir?"
  • "Why, I have noticed myself that there is a queer kind of flavour in
  • the place to-night," Mr. Weevle rejoins. "I suppose it's chops at the
  • Sol's Arms."
  • "Chops, do you think? Oh! Chops, eh?" Mr. Snagsby sniffs and tastes
  • again. "Well, sir, I suppose it is. But I should say their cook at
  • the Sol wanted a little looking after. She has been burning 'em, sir!
  • And I don't think"--Mr. Snagsby sniffs and tastes again and then
  • spits and wipes his mouth--"I don't think--not to put too fine a
  • point upon it--that they were quite fresh when they were shown the
  • gridiron."
  • "That's very likely. It's a tainting sort of weather."
  • "It IS a tainting sort of weather," says Mr. Snagsby, "and I find it
  • sinking to the spirits."
  • "By George! I find it gives me the horrors," returns Mr. Weevle.
  • "Then, you see, you live in a lonesome way, and in a lonesome room,
  • with a black circumstance hanging over it," says Mr. Snagsby, looking
  • in past the other's shoulder along the dark passage and then falling
  • back a step to look up at the house. "I couldn't live in that room
  • alone, as you do, sir. I should get so fidgety and worried of an
  • evening, sometimes, that I should be driven to come to the door and
  • stand here sooner than sit there. But then it's very true that you
  • didn't see, in your room, what I saw there. That makes a difference."
  • "I know quite enough about it," returns Tony.
  • "It's not agreeable, is it?" pursues Mr. Snagsby, coughing his cough
  • of mild persuasion behind his hand. "Mr. Krook ought to consider it
  • in the rent. I hope he does, I am sure."
  • "I hope he does," says Tony. "But I doubt it."
  • "You find the rent too high, do you, sir?" returns the stationer.
  • "Rents ARE high about here. I don't know how it is exactly, but the
  • law seems to put things up in price. Not," adds Mr. Snagsby with his
  • apologetic cough, "that I mean to say a word against the profession I
  • get my living by."
  • Mr. Weevle again glances up and down the court and then looks at the
  • stationer. Mr. Snagsby, blankly catching his eye, looks upward for a
  • star or so and coughs a cough expressive of not exactly seeing his
  • way out of this conversation.
  • "It's a curious fact, sir," he observes, slowly rubbing his hands,
  • "that he should have been--"
  • "Who's he?" interrupts Mr. Weevle.
  • "The deceased, you know," says Mr. Snagsby, twitching his head and
  • right eyebrow towards the staircase and tapping his acquaintance on
  • the button.
  • "Ah, to be sure!" returns the other as if he were not over-fond of
  • the subject. "I thought we had done with him."
  • "I was only going to say it's a curious fact, sir, that he should
  • have come and lived here, and been one of my writers, and then that
  • you should come and live here, and be one of my writers too. Which
  • there is nothing derogatory, but far from it in the appellation,"
  • says Mr. Snagsby, breaking off with a mistrust that he may have
  • unpolitely asserted a kind of proprietorship in Mr. Weevle, "because
  • I have known writers that have gone into brewers' houses and done
  • really very respectable indeed. Eminently respectable, sir," adds Mr.
  • Snagsby with a misgiving that he has not improved the matter.
  • "It's a curious coincidence, as you say," answers Weevle, once more
  • glancing up and down the court.
  • "Seems a fate in it, don't there?" suggests the stationer.
  • "There does."
  • "Just so," observes the stationer with his confirmatory cough. "Quite
  • a fate in it. Quite a fate. Well, Mr. Weevle, I am afraid I must bid
  • you good night"--Mr. Snagsby speaks as if it made him desolate to go,
  • though he has been casting about for any means of escape ever since
  • he stopped to speak--"my little woman will be looking for me else.
  • Good night, sir!"
  • If Mr. Snagsby hastens home to save his little woman the trouble of
  • looking for him, he might set his mind at rest on that score. His
  • little woman has had her eye upon him round the Sol's Arms all this
  • time and now glides after him with a pocket handkerchief wrapped over
  • her head, honouring Mr. Weevle and his doorway with a searching
  • glance as she goes past.
  • "You'll know me again, ma'am, at all events," says Mr. Weevle to
  • himself; "and I can't compliment you on your appearance, whoever you
  • are, with your head tied up in a bundle. Is this fellow NEVER
  • coming!"
  • This fellow approaches as he speaks. Mr. Weevle softly holds up his
  • finger, and draws him into the passage, and closes the street door.
  • Then they go upstairs, Mr. Weevle heavily, and Mr. Guppy (for it is
  • he) very lightly indeed. When they are shut into the back room, they
  • speak low.
  • "I thought you had gone to Jericho at least instead of coming here,"
  • says Tony.
  • "Why, I said about ten."
  • "You said about ten," Tony repeats. "Yes, so you did say about ten.
  • But according to my count, it's ten times ten--it's a hundred
  • o'clock. I never had such a night in my life!"
  • "What has been the matter?"
  • "That's it!" says Tony. "Nothing has been the matter. But here have I
  • been stewing and fuming in this jolly old crib till I have had the
  • horrors falling on me as thick as hail. THERE'S a blessed-looking
  • candle!" says Tony, pointing to the heavily burning taper on his
  • table with a great cabbage head and a long winding-sheet.
  • "That's easily improved," Mr. Guppy observes as he takes the snuffers
  • in hand.
  • "IS it?" returns his friend. "Not so easily as you think. It has been
  • smouldering like that ever since it was lighted."
  • "Why, what's the matter with you, Tony?" inquires Mr. Guppy, looking
  • at him, snuffers in hand, as he sits down with his elbow on the
  • table.
  • "William Guppy," replies the other, "I am in the downs. It's this
  • unbearably dull, suicidal room--and old Boguey downstairs, I
  • suppose." Mr. Weevle moodily pushes the snuffers-tray from him with
  • his elbow, leans his head on his hand, puts his feet on the fender,
  • and looks at the fire. Mr. Guppy, observing him, slightly tosses his
  • head and sits down on the other side of the table in an easy
  • attitude.
  • "Wasn't that Snagsby talking to you, Tony?"
  • "Yes, and he--yes, it was Snagsby," said Mr. Weevle, altering the
  • construction of his sentence.
  • "On business?"
  • "No. No business. He was only sauntering by and stopped to prose."
  • "I thought it was Snagsby," says Mr. Guppy, "and thought it as well
  • that he shouldn't see me, so I waited till he was gone."
  • "There we go again, William G.!" cried Tony, looking up for an
  • instant. "So mysterious and secret! By George, if we were going to
  • commit a murder, we couldn't have more mystery about it!"
  • Mr. Guppy affects to smile, and with the view of changing the
  • conversation, looks with an admiration, real or pretended, round the
  • room at the Galaxy Gallery of British Beauty, terminating his survey
  • with the portrait of Lady Dedlock over the mantelshelf, in which she
  • is represented on a terrace, with a pedestal upon the terrace, and a
  • vase upon the pedestal, and her shawl upon the vase, and a prodigious
  • piece of fur upon the shawl, and her arm on the prodigious piece of
  • fur, and a bracelet on her arm.
  • "That's very like Lady Dedlock," says Mr. Guppy. "It's a speaking
  • likeness."
  • "I wish it was," growls Tony, without changing his position. "I
  • should have some fashionable conversation, here, then."
  • Finding by this time that his friend is not to be wheedled into a
  • more sociable humour, Mr. Guppy puts about upon the ill-used tack and
  • remonstrates with him.
  • "Tony," says he, "I can make allowances for lowness of spirits, for
  • no man knows what it is when it does come upon a man better than I
  • do, and no man perhaps has a better right to know it than a man who
  • has an unrequited image imprinted on his 'eart. But there are bounds
  • to these things when an unoffending party is in question, and I will
  • acknowledge to you, Tony, that I don't think your manner on the
  • present occasion is hospitable or quite gentlemanly."
  • "This is strong language, William Guppy," returns Mr. Weevle.
  • "Sir, it may be," retorts Mr. William Guppy, "but I feel strongly
  • when I use it."
  • Mr. Weevle admits that he has been wrong and begs Mr. William Guppy
  • to think no more about it. Mr. William Guppy, however, having got the
  • advantage, cannot quite release it without a little more injured
  • remonstrance.
  • "No! Dash it, Tony," says that gentleman, "you really ought to be
  • careful how you wound the feelings of a man who has an unrequited
  • image imprinted on his 'eart and who is NOT altogether happy in those
  • chords which vibrate to the tenderest emotions. You, Tony, possess in
  • yourself all that is calculated to charm the eye and allure the
  • taste. It is not--happily for you, perhaps, and I may wish that I
  • could say the same--it is not your character to hover around one
  • flower. The ole garden is open to you, and your airy pinions carry
  • you through it. Still, Tony, far be it from me, I am sure, to wound
  • even your feelings without a cause!"
  • Tony again entreats that the subject may be no longer pursued, saying
  • emphatically, "William Guppy, drop it!" Mr. Guppy acquiesces, with
  • the reply, "I never should have taken it up, Tony, of my own accord."
  • "And now," says Tony, stirring the fire, "touching this same bundle
  • of letters. Isn't it an extraordinary thing of Krook to have
  • appointed twelve o'clock to-night to hand 'em over to me?"
  • "Very. What did he do it for?"
  • "What does he do anything for? HE don't know. Said to-day was his
  • birthday and he'd hand 'em over to-night at twelve o'clock. He'll
  • have drunk himself blind by that time. He has been at it all day."
  • "He hasn't forgotten the appointment, I hope?"
  • "Forgotten? Trust him for that. He never forgets anything. I saw him
  • to-night, about eight--helped him to shut up his shop--and he had got
  • the letters then in his hairy cap. He pulled it off and showed 'em
  • me. When the shop was closed, he took them out of his cap, hung his
  • cap on the chair-back, and stood turning them over before the fire. I
  • heard him a little while afterwards, through the floor here, humming
  • like the wind, the only song he knows--about Bibo, and old Charon,
  • and Bibo being drunk when he died, or something or other. He has been
  • as quiet since as an old rat asleep in his hole."
  • "And you are to go down at twelve?"
  • "At twelve. And as I tell you, when you came it seemed to me a
  • hundred."
  • "Tony," says Mr. Guppy after considering a little with his legs
  • crossed, "he can't read yet, can he?"
  • "Read! He'll never read. He can make all the letters separately, and
  • he knows most of them separately when he sees them; he has got on
  • that much, under me; but he can't put them together. He's too old to
  • acquire the knack of it now--and too drunk."
  • "Tony," says Mr. Guppy, uncrossing and recrossing his legs, "how do
  • you suppose he spelt out that name of Hawdon?"
  • "He never spelt it out. You know what a curious power of eye he has
  • and how he has been used to employ himself in copying things by eye
  • alone. He imitated it, evidently from the direction of a letter, and
  • asked me what it meant."
  • "Tony," says Mr. Guppy, uncrossing and recrossing his legs again,
  • "should you say that the original was a man's writing or a woman's?"
  • "A woman's. Fifty to one a lady's--slopes a good deal, and the end of
  • the letter 'n,' long and hasty."
  • Mr. Guppy has been biting his thumb-nail during this dialogue,
  • generally changing the thumb when he has changed the cross leg. As he
  • is going to do so again, he happens to look at his coat-sleeve. It
  • takes his attention. He stares at it, aghast.
  • "Why, Tony, what on earth is going on in this house to-night? Is
  • there a chimney on fire?"
  • "Chimney on fire!"
  • "Ah!" returns Mr. Guppy. "See how the soot's falling. See here, on my
  • arm! See again, on the table here! Confound the stuff, it won't blow
  • off--smears like black fat!"
  • They look at one another, and Tony goes listening to the door, and a
  • little way upstairs, and a little way downstairs. Comes back and says
  • it's all right and all quiet, and quotes the remark he lately made to
  • Mr. Snagsby about their cooking chops at the Sol's Arms.
  • "And it was then," resumes Mr. Guppy, still glancing with remarkable
  • aversion at the coat-sleeve, as they pursue their conversation before
  • the fire, leaning on opposite sides of the table, with their heads
  • very near together, "that he told you of his having taken the bundle
  • of letters from his lodger's portmanteau?"
  • "That was the time, sir," answers Tony, faintly adjusting his
  • whiskers. "Whereupon I wrote a line to my dear boy, the Honourable
  • William Guppy, informing him of the appointment for to-night and
  • advising him not to call before, Boguey being a slyboots."
  • The light vivacious tone of fashionable life which is usually assumed
  • by Mr. Weevle sits so ill upon him to-night that he abandons that and
  • his whiskers together, and after looking over his shoulder, appears
  • to yield himself up a prey to the horrors again.
  • "You are to bring the letters to your room to read and compare, and
  • to get yourself into a position to tell him all about them. That's
  • the arrangement, isn't it, Tony?" asks Mr. Guppy, anxiously biting
  • his thumb-nail.
  • "You can't speak too low. Yes. That's what he and I agreed."
  • "I tell you what, Tony--"
  • "You can't speak too low," says Tony once more. Mr. Guppy nods his
  • sagacious head, advances it yet closer, and drops into a whisper.
  • "I tell you what. The first thing to be done is to make another
  • packet like the real one so that if he should ask to see the real one
  • while it's in my possession, you can show him the dummy."
  • "And suppose he detects the dummy as soon as he sees it, which with
  • his biting screw of an eye is about five hundred times more likely
  • than not," suggests Tony.
  • "Then we'll face it out. They don't belong to him, and they never
  • did. You found that, and you placed them in my hands--a legal friend
  • of yours--for security. If he forces us to it, they'll be producible,
  • won't they?"
  • "Ye-es," is Mr. Weevle's reluctant admission.
  • "Why, Tony," remonstrates his friend, "how you look! You don't doubt
  • William Guppy? You don't suspect any harm?"
  • "I don't suspect anything more than I know, William," returns the
  • other gravely.
  • "And what do you know?" urges Mr. Guppy, raising his voice a little;
  • but on his friend's once more warning him, "I tell you, you can't
  • speak too low," he repeats his question without any sound at all,
  • forming with his lips only the words, "What do you know?"
  • "I know three things. First, I know that here we are whispering in
  • secrecy, a pair of conspirators."
  • "Well!" says Mr. Guppy. "And we had better be that than a pair of
  • noodles, which we should be if we were doing anything else, for it's
  • the only way of doing what we want to do. Secondly?"
  • "Secondly, it's not made out to me how it's likely to be profitable,
  • after all."
  • Mr. Guppy casts up his eyes at the portrait of Lady Dedlock over the
  • mantelshelf and replies, "Tony, you are asked to leave that to the
  • honour of your friend. Besides its being calculated to serve that
  • friend in those chords of the human mind which--which need not be
  • called into agonizing vibration on the present occasion--your friend
  • is no fool. What's that?"
  • "It's eleven o'clock striking by the bell of Saint Paul's. Listen and
  • you'll hear all the bells in the city jangling."
  • Both sit silent, listening to the metal voices, near and distant,
  • resounding from towers of various heights, in tones more various than
  • their situations. When these at length cease, all seems more
  • mysterious and quiet than before. One disagreeable result of
  • whispering is that it seems to evoke an atmosphere of silence,
  • haunted by the ghosts of sound--strange cracks and tickings, the
  • rustling of garments that have no substance in them, and the tread of
  • dreadful feet that would leave no mark on the sea-sand or the winter
  • snow. So sensitive the two friends happen to be that the air is full
  • of these phantoms, and the two look over their shoulders by one
  • consent to see that the door is shut.
  • "Yes, Tony?" says Mr. Guppy, drawing nearer to the fire and biting
  • his unsteady thumb-nail. "You were going to say, thirdly?"
  • "It's far from a pleasant thing to be plotting about a dead man in
  • the room where he died, especially when you happen to live in it."
  • "But we are plotting nothing against him, Tony."
  • "May be not, still I don't like it. Live here by yourself and see how
  • YOU like it."
  • "As to dead men, Tony," proceeds Mr. Guppy, evading this proposal,
  • "there have been dead men in most rooms."
  • "I know there have, but in most rooms you let them alone, and--and
  • they let you alone," Tony answers.
  • The two look at each other again. Mr. Guppy makes a hurried remark to
  • the effect that they may be doing the deceased a service, that he
  • hopes so. There is an oppressive blank until Mr. Weevle, by stirring
  • the fire suddenly, makes Mr. Guppy start as if his heart had been
  • stirred instead.
  • "Fah! Here's more of this hateful soot hanging about," says he. "Let
  • us open the window a bit and get a mouthful of air. It's too close."
  • He raises the sash, and they both rest on the window-sill, half in
  • and half out of the room. The neighbouring houses are too near to
  • admit of their seeing any sky without craning their necks and looking
  • up, but lights in frowsy windows here and there, and the rolling of
  • distant carriages, and the new expression that there is of the stir
  • of men, they find to be comfortable. Mr. Guppy, noiselessly tapping
  • on the window-sill, resumes his whispering in quite a light-comedy
  • tone.
  • "By the by, Tony, don't forget old Smallweed," meaning the younger of
  • that name. "I have not let him into this, you know. That grandfather
  • of his is too keen by half. It runs in the family."
  • "I remember," says Tony. "I am up to all that."
  • "And as to Krook," resumes Mr. Guppy. "Now, do you suppose he really
  • has got hold of any other papers of importance, as he has boasted to
  • you, since you have been such allies?"
  • Tony shakes his head. "I don't know. Can't Imagine. If we get through
  • this business without rousing his suspicions, I shall be better
  • informed, no doubt. How can I know without seeing them, when he don't
  • know himself? He is always spelling out words from them, and chalking
  • them over the table and the shop-wall, and asking what this is and
  • what that is; but his whole stock from beginning to end may easily be
  • the waste-paper he bought it as, for anything I can say. It's a
  • monomania with him to think he is possessed of documents. He has been
  • going to learn to read them this last quarter of a century, I should
  • judge, from what he tells me."
  • "How did he first come by that idea, though? That's the question,"
  • Mr. Guppy suggests with one eye shut, after a little forensic
  • meditation. "He may have found papers in something he bought, where
  • papers were not supposed to be, and may have got it into his shrewd
  • head from the manner and place of their concealment that they are
  • worth something."
  • "Or he may have been taken in, in some pretended bargain. Or he may
  • have been muddled altogether by long staring at whatever he HAS got,
  • and by drink, and by hanging about the Lord Chancellor's Court and
  • hearing of documents for ever," returns Mr. Weevle.
  • Mr. Guppy sitting on the window-sill, nodding his head and balancing
  • all these possibilities in his mind, continues thoughtfully to tap
  • it, and clasp it, and measure it with his hand, until he hastily
  • draws his hand away.
  • "What, in the devil's name," he says, "is this! Look at my fingers!"
  • A thick, yellow liquor defiles them, which is offensive to the touch
  • and sight and more offensive to the smell. A stagnant, sickening oil
  • with some natural repulsion in it that makes them both shudder.
  • "What have you been doing here? What have you been pouring out of
  • window?"
  • "I pouring out of window! Nothing, I swear! Never, since I have been
  • here!" cries the lodger.
  • And yet look here--and look here! When he brings the candle here,
  • from the corner of the window-sill, it slowly drips and creeps away
  • down the bricks, here lies in a little thick nauseous pool.
  • "This is a horrible house," says Mr. Guppy, shutting down the window.
  • "Give me some water or I shall cut my hand off."
  • He so washes, and rubs, and scrubs, and smells, and washes, that he
  • has not long restored himself with a glass of brandy and stood
  • silently before the fire when Saint Paul's bell strikes twelve and
  • all those other bells strike twelve from their towers of various
  • heights in the dark air, and in their many tones. When all is quiet
  • again, the lodger says, "It's the appointed time at last. Shall I
  • go?"
  • Mr. Guppy nods and gives him a "lucky touch" on the back, but not
  • with the washed hand, though it is his right hand.
  • He goes downstairs, and Mr. Guppy tries to compose himself before the
  • fire for waiting a long time. But in no more than a minute or two the
  • stairs creak and Tony comes swiftly back.
  • "Have you got them?"
  • "Got them! No. The old man's not there."
  • He has been so horribly frightened in the short interval that his
  • terror seizes the other, who makes a rush at him and asks loudly,
  • "What's the matter?"
  • "I couldn't make him hear, and I softly opened the door and looked
  • in. And the burning smell is there--and the soot is there, and the
  • oil is there--and he is not there!" Tony ends this with a groan.
  • Mr. Guppy takes the light. They go down, more dead than alive, and
  • holding one another, push open the door of the back shop. The cat has
  • retreated close to it and stands snarling, not at them, at something
  • on the ground before the fire. There is a very little fire left in
  • the grate, but there is a smouldering, suffocating vapour in the room
  • and a dark, greasy coating on the walls and ceiling. The chairs and
  • table, and the bottle so rarely absent from the table, all stand as
  • usual. On one chair-back hang the old man's hairy cap and coat.
  • "Look!" whispers the lodger, pointing his friend's attention to these
  • objects with a trembling finger. "I told you so. When I saw him last,
  • he took his cap off, took out the little bundle of old letters, hung
  • his cap on the back of the chair--his coat was there already, for he
  • had pulled that off before he went to put the shutters up--and I left
  • him turning the letters over in his hand, standing just where that
  • crumbled black thing is upon the floor."
  • Is he hanging somewhere? They look up. No.
  • "See!" whispers Tony. "At the foot of the same chair there lies a
  • dirty bit of thin red cord that they tie up pens with. That went
  • round the letters. He undid it slowly, leering and laughing at me,
  • before he began to turn them over, and threw it there. I saw it
  • fall."
  • "What's the matter with the cat?" says Mr. Guppy. "Look at her!"
  • "Mad, I think. And no wonder in this evil place."
  • They advance slowly, looking at all these things. The cat remains
  • where they found her, still snarling at the something on the ground
  • before the fire and between the two chairs. What is it? Hold up the
  • light.
  • Here is a small burnt patch of flooring; here is the tinder from a
  • little bundle of burnt paper, but not so light as usual, seeming to
  • be steeped in something; and here is--is it the cinder of a small
  • charred and broken log of wood sprinkled with white ashes, or is it
  • coal? Oh, horror, he IS here! And this from which we run away,
  • striking out the light and overturning one another into the street,
  • is all that represents him.
  • Help, help, help! Come into this house for heaven's sake! Plenty will
  • come in, but none can help. The Lord Chancellor of that court, true
  • to his title in his last act, has died the death of all lord
  • chancellors in all courts and of all authorities in all places under
  • all names soever, where false pretences are made, and where injustice
  • is done. Call the death by any name your Highness will, attribute
  • it to whom you will, or say it might have been prevented how you
  • will, it is the same death eternally--inborn, inbred, engendered
  • in the corrupted humours of the vicious body itself, and that
  • only--spontaneous combustion, and none other of all the deaths that
  • can be died.
  • CHAPTER XXXIII
  • Interlopers
  • Now do those two gentlemen not very neat about the cuffs and buttons
  • who attended the last coroner's inquest at the Sol's Arms reappear in
  • the precincts with surprising swiftness (being, in fact, breathlessly
  • fetched by the active and intelligent beadle), and institute
  • perquisitions through the court, and dive into the Sol's parlour, and
  • write with ravenous little pens on tissue-paper. Now do they note
  • down, in the watches of the night, how the neighbourhood of Chancery
  • Lane was yesterday, at about midnight, thrown into a state of the
  • most intense agitation and excitement by the following alarming and
  • horrible discovery. Now do they set forth how it will doubtless be
  • remembered that some time back a painful sensation was created in the
  • public mind by a case of mysterious death from opium occurring in the
  • first floor of the house occupied as a rag, bottle, and general
  • marine store shop, by an eccentric individual of intemperate habits,
  • far advanced in life, named Krook; and how, by a remarkable
  • coincidence, Krook was examined at the inquest, which it may be
  • recollected was held on that occasion at the Sol's Arms, a
  • well-conducted tavern immediately adjoining the premises in question
  • on the west side and licensed to a highly respectable landlord, Mr.
  • James George Bogsby. Now do they show (in as many words as possible)
  • how during some hours of yesterday evening a very peculiar smell was
  • observed by the inhabitants of the court, in which the tragical
  • occurrence which forms the subject of that present account
  • transpired; and which odour was at one time so powerful that Mr.
  • Swills, a comic vocalist professionally engaged by Mr. J. G. Bogsby,
  • has himself stated to our reporter that he mentioned to Miss M.
  • Melvilleson, a lady of some pretensions to musical ability, likewise
  • engaged by Mr. J. G. Bogsby to sing at a series of concerts called
  • Harmonic Assemblies, or Meetings, which it would appear are held at
  • the Sol's Arms under Mr. Bogsby's direction pursuant to the Act of
  • George the Second, that he (Mr. Swills) found his voice seriously
  • affected by the impure state of the atmosphere, his jocose expression
  • at the time being that he was like an empty post-office, for he
  • hadn't a single note in him. How this account of Mr. Swills is
  • entirely corroborated by two intelligent married females residing in
  • the same court and known respectively by the names of Mrs. Piper and
  • Mrs. Perkins, both of whom observed the foetid effluvia and regarded
  • them as being emitted from the premises in the occupation of Krook,
  • the unfortunate deceased. All this and a great deal more the two
  • gentlemen who have formed an amicable partnership in the melancholy
  • catastrophe write down on the spot; and the boy population of the
  • court (out of bed in a moment) swarm up the shutters of the Sol's
  • Arms parlour, to behold the tops of their heads while they are about
  • it.
  • The whole court, adult as well as boy, is sleepless for that night,
  • and can do nothing but wrap up its many heads, and talk of the
  • ill-fated house, and look at it. Miss Flite has been bravely rescued
  • from her chamber, as if it were in flames, and accommodated with a
  • bed at the Sol's Arms. The Sol neither turns off its gas nor shuts
  • its door all night, for any kind of public excitement makes good for
  • the Sol and causes the court to stand in need of comfort. The house
  • has not done so much in the stomachic article of cloves or in
  • brandy-and-water warm since the inquest. The moment the pot-boy heard
  • what had happened, he rolled up his shirt-sleeves tight to his
  • shoulders and said, "There'll be a run upon us!" In the first outcry,
  • young Piper dashed off for the fire-engines and returned in triumph
  • at a jolting gallop perched up aloft on the Phoenix and holding on to
  • that fabulous creature with all his might in the midst of helmets and
  • torches. One helmet remains behind after careful investigation of all
  • chinks and crannies and slowly paces up and down before the house in
  • company with one of the two policemen who have likewise been left in
  • charge thereof. To this trio everybody in the court possessed of
  • sixpence has an insatiate desire to exhibit hospitality in a liquid
  • form.
  • Mr. Weevle and his friend Mr. Guppy are within the bar at the Sol and
  • are worth anything to the Sol that the bar contains if they will only
  • stay there. "This is not a time," says Mr. Bogsby, "to haggle about
  • money," though he looks something sharply after it, over the counter;
  • "give your orders, you two gentlemen, and you're welcome to whatever
  • you put a name to."
  • Thus entreated, the two gentlemen (Mr. Weevle especially) put names
  • to so many things that in course of time they find it difficult to
  • put a name to anything quite distinctly, though they still relate to
  • all new-comers some version of the night they have had of it, and of
  • what they said, and what they thought, and what they saw. Meanwhile,
  • one or other of the policemen often flits about the door, and pushing
  • it open a little way at the full length of his arm, looks in from
  • outer gloom. Not that he has any suspicions, but that he may as well
  • know what they are up to in there.
  • Thus night pursues its leaden course, finding the court still out of
  • bed through the unwonted hours, still treating and being treated,
  • still conducting itself similarly to a court that has had a little
  • money left it unexpectedly. Thus night at length with slow-retreating
  • steps departs, and the lamp-lighter going his rounds, like an
  • executioner to a despotic king, strikes off the little heads of fire
  • that have aspired to lessen the darkness. Thus the day cometh,
  • whether or no.
  • And the day may discern, even with its dim London eye, that the court
  • has been up all night. Over and above the faces that have fallen
  • drowsily on tables and the heels that lie prone on hard floors
  • instead of beds, the brick and mortar physiognomy of the very court
  • itself looks worn and jaded. And now the neighbourhood, waking up and
  • beginning to hear of what has happened, comes streaming in, half
  • dressed, to ask questions; and the two policemen and the helmet (who
  • are far less impressible externally than the court) have enough to do
  • to keep the door.
  • "Good gracious, gentlemen!" says Mr. Snagsby, coming up. "What's this
  • I hear!"
  • "Why, it's true," returns one of the policemen. "That's what it is.
  • Now move on here, come!"
  • "Why, good gracious, gentlemen," says Mr. Snagsby, somewhat promptly
  • backed away, "I was at this door last night betwixt ten and eleven
  • o'clock in conversation with the young man who lodges here."
  • "Indeed?" returns the policeman. "You will find the young man next
  • door then. Now move on here, some of you."
  • "Not hurt, I hope?" says Mr. Snagsby.
  • "Hurt? No. What's to hurt him!"
  • Mr. Snagsby, wholly unable to answer this or any question in his
  • troubled mind, repairs to the Sol's Arms and finds Mr. Weevle
  • languishing over tea and toast with a considerable expression on him
  • of exhausted excitement and exhausted tobacco-smoke.
  • "And Mr. Guppy likewise!" quoth Mr. Snagsby. "Dear, dear, dear! What
  • a fate there seems in all this! And my lit--"
  • Mr. Snagsby's power of speech deserts him in the formation of the
  • words "my little woman." For to see that injured female walk into the
  • Sol's Arms at that hour of the morning and stand before the
  • beer-engine, with her eyes fixed upon him like an accusing spirit,
  • strikes him dumb.
  • "My dear," says Mr. Snagsby when his tongue is loosened, "will you
  • take anything? A little--not to put too fine a point upon it--drop of
  • shrub?"
  • "No," says Mrs. Snagsby.
  • "My love, you know these two gentlemen?"
  • "Yes!" says Mrs. Snagsby, and in a rigid manner acknowledges their
  • presence, still fixing Mr. Snagsby with her eye.
  • The devoted Mr. Snagsby cannot bear this treatment. He takes Mrs.
  • Snagsby by the hand and leads her aside to an adjacent cask.
  • "My little woman, why do you look at me in that way? Pray don't do
  • it."
  • "I can't help my looks," says Mrs. Snagsby, "and if I could I
  • wouldn't."
  • Mr. Snagsby, with his cough of meekness, rejoins, "Wouldn't you
  • really, my dear?" and meditates. Then coughs his cough of trouble and
  • says, "This is a dreadful mystery, my love!" still fearfully
  • disconcerted by Mrs. Snagsby's eye.
  • "It IS," returns Mrs. Snagsby, shaking her head, "a dreadful
  • mystery."
  • "My little woman," urges Mr. Snagsby in a piteous manner, "don't for
  • goodness' sake speak to me with that bitter expression and look at me
  • in that searching way! I beg and entreat of you not to do it. Good
  • Lord, you don't suppose that I would go spontaneously combusting any
  • person, my dear?"
  • "I can't say," returns Mrs. Snagsby.
  • On a hasty review of his unfortunate position, Mr. Snagsby "can't
  • say" either. He is not prepared positively to deny that he may have
  • had something to do with it. He has had something--he don't know
  • what--to do with so much in this connexion that is mysterious that it
  • is possible he may even be implicated, without knowing it, in the
  • present transaction. He faintly wipes his forehead with his
  • handkerchief and gasps.
  • "My life," says the unhappy stationer, "would you have any objections
  • to mention why, being in general so delicately circumspect in your
  • conduct, you come into a wine-vaults before breakfast?"
  • "Why do YOU come here?" inquires Mrs. Snagsby.
  • "My dear, merely to know the rights of the fatal accident which has
  • happened to the venerable party who has been--combusted." Mr. Snagsby
  • has made a pause to suppress a groan. "I should then have related
  • them to you, my love, over your French roll."
  • "I dare say you would! You relate everything to me, Mr. Snagsby."
  • "Every--my lit--"
  • "I should be glad," says Mrs. Snagsby after contemplating his
  • increased confusion with a severe and sinister smile, "if you would
  • come home with me; I think you may be safer there, Mr. Snagsby, than
  • anywhere else."
  • "My love, I don't know but what I may be, I am sure. I am ready to
  • go."
  • Mr. Snagsby casts his eye forlornly round the bar, gives Messrs.
  • Weevle and Guppy good morning, assures them of the satisfaction with
  • which he sees them uninjured, and accompanies Mrs. Snagsby from the
  • Sol's Arms. Before night his doubt whether he may not be responsible
  • for some inconceivable part in the catastrophe which is the talk of
  • the whole neighbourhood is almost resolved into certainty by Mrs.
  • Snagsby's pertinacity in that fixed gaze. His mental sufferings are
  • so great that he entertains wandering ideas of delivering himself up
  • to justice and requiring to be cleared if innocent and punished with
  • the utmost rigour of the law if guilty.
  • Mr. Weevle and Mr. Guppy, having taken their breakfast, step into
  • Lincoln's Inn to take a little walk about the square and clear as
  • many of the dark cobwebs out of their brains as a little walk may.
  • "There can be no more favourable time than the present, Tony," says
  • Mr. Guppy after they have broodingly made out the four sides of the
  • square, "for a word or two between us upon a point on which we must,
  • with very little delay, come to an understanding."
  • "Now, I tell you what, William G.!" returns the other, eyeing his
  • companion with a bloodshot eye. "If it's a point of conspiracy, you
  • needn't take the trouble to mention it. I have had enough of that,
  • and I ain't going to have any more. We shall have YOU taking fire
  • next or blowing up with a bang."
  • This supposititious phenomenon is so very disagreeable to Mr. Guppy
  • that his voice quakes as he says in a moral way, "Tony, I should have
  • thought that what we went through last night would have been a lesson
  • to you never to be personal any more as long as you lived." To which
  • Mr. Weevle returns, "William, I should have thought it would have
  • been a lesson to YOU never to conspire any more as long as you
  • lived." To which Mr. Guppy says, "Who's conspiring?" To which Mr.
  • Jobling replies, "Why, YOU are!" To which Mr. Guppy retorts, "No, I
  • am not." To which Mr. Jobling retorts again, "Yes, you are!" To which
  • Mr. Guppy retorts, "Who says so?" To which Mr. Jobling retorts, "I
  • say so!" To which Mr. Guppy retorts, "Oh, indeed?" To which Mr.
  • Jobling retorts, "Yes, indeed!" And both being now in a heated state,
  • they walk on silently for a while to cool down again.
  • "Tony," says Mr. Guppy then, "if you heard your friend out instead of
  • flying at him, you wouldn't fall into mistakes. But your temper is
  • hasty and you are not considerate. Possessing in yourself, Tony, all
  • that is calculated to charm the eye--"
  • "Oh! Blow the eye!" cries Mr. Weevle, cutting him short. "Say what
  • you have got to say!"
  • Finding his friend in this morose and material condition, Mr. Guppy
  • only expresses the finer feelings of his soul through the tone of
  • injury in which he recommences, "Tony, when I say there is a point on
  • which we must come to an understanding pretty soon, I say so quite
  • apart from any kind of conspiring, however innocent. You know it is
  • professionally arranged beforehand in all cases that are tried what
  • facts the witnesses are to prove. Is it or is it not desirable that
  • we should know what facts we are to prove on the inquiry into the
  • death of this unfortunate old mo--gentleman?" (Mr. Guppy was going to
  • say "mogul," but thinks "gentleman" better suited to the
  • circumstances.)
  • "What facts? THE facts."
  • "The facts bearing on that inquiry. Those are"--Mr. Guppy tells them
  • off on his fingers--"what we knew of his habits, when you saw him
  • last, what his condition was then, the discovery that we made, and
  • how we made it."
  • "Yes," says Mr. Weevle. "Those are about the facts."
  • "We made the discovery in consequence of his having, in his eccentric
  • way, an appointment with you at twelve o'clock at night, when you
  • were to explain some writing to him as you had often done before on
  • account of his not being able to read. I, spending the evening with
  • you, was called down--and so forth. The inquiry being only into the
  • circumstances touching the death of the deceased, it's not necessary
  • to go beyond these facts, I suppose you'll agree?"
  • "No!" returns Mr. Weevle. "I suppose not."
  • "And this is not a conspiracy, perhaps?" says the injured Guppy.
  • "No," returns his friend; "if it's nothing worse than this, I
  • withdraw the observation."
  • "Now, Tony," says Mr. Guppy, taking his arm again and walking him
  • slowly on, "I should like to know, in a friendly way, whether you
  • have yet thought over the many advantages of your continuing to live
  • at that place?"
  • "What do you mean?" says Tony, stopping.
  • "Whether you have yet thought over the many advantages of your
  • continuing to live at that place?" repeats Mr. Guppy, walking him on
  • again.
  • "At what place? THAT place?" pointing in the direction of the rag and
  • bottle shop.
  • Mr. Guppy nods.
  • "Why, I wouldn't pass another night there for any consideration that
  • you could offer me," says Mr. Weevle, haggardly staring.
  • "Do you mean it though, Tony?"
  • "Mean it! Do I look as if I mean it? I feel as if I do; I know that,"
  • says Mr. Weevle with a very genuine shudder.
  • "Then the possibility or probability--for such it must be
  • considered--of your never being disturbed in possession of those
  • effects lately belonging to a lone old man who seemed to have no
  • relation in the world, and the certainty of your being able to find
  • out what he really had got stored up there, don't weigh with you at
  • all against last night, Tony, if I understand you?" says Mr. Guppy,
  • biting his thumb with the appetite of vexation.
  • "Certainly not. Talk in that cool way of a fellow's living there?"
  • cries Mr. Weevle indignantly. "Go and live there yourself."
  • "Oh! I, Tony!" says Mr. Guppy, soothing him. "I have never lived
  • there and couldn't get a lodging there now, whereas you have got
  • one."
  • "You are welcome to it," rejoins his friend, "and--ugh!--you may make
  • yourself at home in it."
  • "Then you really and truly at this point," says Mr. Guppy, "give up
  • the whole thing, if I understand you, Tony?"
  • "You never," returns Tony with a most convincing steadfastness, "said
  • a truer word in all your life. I do!"
  • While they are so conversing, a hackney-coach drives into the square,
  • on the box of which vehicle a very tall hat makes itself manifest to
  • the public. Inside the coach, and consequently not so manifest to the
  • multitude, though sufficiently so to the two friends, for the coach
  • stops almost at their feet, are the venerable Mr. Smallweed and Mrs.
  • Smallweed, accompanied by their granddaughter Judy.
  • An air of haste and excitement pervades the party, and as the tall
  • hat (surmounting Mr. Smallweed the younger) alights, Mr. Smallweed
  • the elder pokes his head out of window and bawls to Mr. Guppy, "How
  • de do, sir! How de do!"
  • "What do Chick and his family want here at this time of the morning,
  • I wonder!" says Mr. Guppy, nodding to his familiar.
  • "My dear sir," cries Grandfather Smallweed, "would you do me a
  • favour? Would you and your friend be so very obleeging as to carry me
  • into the public-house in the court, while Bart and his sister bring
  • their grandmother along? Would you do an old man that good turn,
  • sir?"
  • Mr. Guppy looks at his friend, repeating inquiringly, "The
  • public-house in the court?" And they prepare to bear the venerable
  • burden to the Sol's Arms.
  • "There's your fare!" says the patriarch to the coachman with a fierce
  • grin and shaking his incapable fist at him. "Ask me for a penny more,
  • and I'll have my lawful revenge upon you. My dear young men, be easy
  • with me, if you please. Allow me to catch you round the neck. I won't
  • squeeze you tighter than I can help. Oh, Lord! Oh, dear me! Oh, my
  • bones!"
  • It is well that the Sol is not far off, for Mr. Weevle presents an
  • apoplectic appearance before half the distance is accomplished. With
  • no worse aggravation of his symptoms, however, than the utterance of
  • divers croaking sounds expressive of obstructed respiration, he
  • fulfils his share of the porterage and the benevolent old gentleman
  • is deposited by his own desire in the parlour of the Sol's Arms.
  • "Oh, Lord!" gasps Mr. Smallweed, looking about him, breathless, from
  • an arm-chair. "Oh, dear me! Oh, my bones and back! Oh, my aches and
  • pains! Sit down, you dancing, prancing, shambling, scrambling
  • poll-parrot! Sit down!"
  • This little apostrophe to Mrs. Smallweed is occasioned by a
  • propensity on the part of that unlucky old lady whenever she finds
  • herself on her feet to amble about and "set" to inanimate objects,
  • accompanying herself with a chattering noise, as in a witch dance. A
  • nervous affection has probably as much to do with these
  • demonstrations as any imbecile intention in the poor old woman, but
  • on the present occasion they are so particularly lively in connexion
  • with the Windsor arm-chair, fellow to that in which Mr. Smallweed is
  • seated, that she only quite desists when her grandchildren have held
  • her down in it, her lord in the meanwhile bestowing upon her, with
  • great volubility, the endearing epithet of "a pig-headed jackdaw,"
  • repeated a surprising number of times.
  • "My dear sir," Grandfather Smallweed then proceeds, addressing Mr.
  • Guppy, "there has been a calamity here. Have you heard of it, either
  • of you?"
  • "Heard of it, sir! Why, we discovered it."
  • "You discovered it. You two discovered it! Bart, THEY discovered it!"
  • The two discoverers stare at the Smallweeds, who return the
  • compliment.
  • "My dear friends," whines Grandfather Smallweed, putting out both his
  • hands, "I owe you a thousand thanks for discharging the melancholy
  • office of discovering the ashes of Mrs. Smallweed's brother."
  • "Eh?" says Mr. Guppy.
  • "Mrs. Smallweed's brother, my dear friend--her only relation. We were
  • not on terms, which is to be deplored now, but he never WOULD be on
  • terms. He was not fond of us. He was eccentric--he was very
  • eccentric. Unless he has left a will (which is not at all likely) I
  • shall take out letters of administration. I have come down to look
  • after the property; it must be sealed up, it must be protected. I
  • have come down," repeats Grandfather Smallweed, hooking the air
  • towards him with all his ten fingers at once, "to look after the
  • property."
  • "I think, Small," says the disconsolate Mr. Guppy, "you might have
  • mentioned that the old man was your uncle."
  • "You two were so close about him that I thought you would like me to
  • be the same," returns that old bird with a secretly glistening eye.
  • "Besides, I wasn't proud of him."
  • "Besides which, it was nothing to you, you know, whether he was or
  • not," says Judy. Also with a secretly glistening eye.
  • "He never saw me in his life to know me," observed Small; "I don't
  • know why I should introduce HIM, I am sure!"
  • "No, he never communicated with us, which is to be deplored," the old
  • gentleman strikes in, "but I have come to look after the property--to
  • look over the papers, and to look after the property. We shall make
  • good our title. It is in the hands of my solicitor. Mr. Tulkinghorn,
  • of Lincoln's Inn Fields, over the way there, is so good as to act as
  • my solicitor; and grass don't grow under HIS feet, I can tell ye.
  • Krook was Mrs. Smallweed's only brother; she had no relation but
  • Krook, and Krook had no relation but Mrs. Smallweed. I am speaking of
  • your brother, you brimstone black-beetle, that was seventy-six years
  • of age."
  • Mrs. Smallweed instantly begins to shake her head and pipe up,
  • "Seventy-six pound seven and sevenpence! Seventy-six thousand bags of
  • money! Seventy-six hundred thousand million of parcels of
  • bank-notes!"
  • "Will somebody give me a quart pot?" exclaims her exasperated
  • husband, looking helplessly about him and finding no missile within
  • his reach. "Will somebody obleege me with a spittoon? Will somebody
  • hand me anything hard and bruising to pelt at her? You hag, you cat,
  • you dog, you brimstone barker!" Here Mr. Smallweed, wrought up to the
  • highest pitch by his own eloquence, actually throws Judy at her
  • grandmother in default of anything else, by butting that young virgin
  • at the old lady with such force as he can muster and then dropping
  • into his chair in a heap.
  • "Shake me up, somebody, if you'll be so good," says the voice from
  • within the faintly struggling bundle into which he has collapsed. "I
  • have come to look after the property. Shake me up, and call in the
  • police on duty at the next house to be explained to about the
  • property. My solicitor will be here presently to protect the
  • property. Transportation or the gallows for anybody who shall touch
  • the property!" As his dutiful grandchildren set him up, panting, and
  • putting him through the usual restorative process of shaking and
  • punching, he still repeats like an echo, "The--the property! The
  • property! Property!"
  • Mr. Weevle and Mr. Guppy look at each other, the former as having
  • relinquished the whole affair, the latter with a discomfited
  • countenance as having entertained some lingering expectations yet.
  • But there is nothing to be done in opposition to the Smallweed
  • interest. Mr. Tulkinghorn's clerk comes down from his official pew in
  • the chambers to mention to the police that Mr. Tulkinghorn is
  • answerable for its being all correct about the next of kin and that
  • the papers and effects will be formally taken possession of in due
  • time and course. Mr. Smallweed is at once permitted so far to assert
  • his supremacy as to be carried on a visit of sentiment into the next
  • house and upstairs into Miss Flite's deserted room, where he looks
  • like a hideous bird of prey newly added to her aviary.
  • The arrival of this unexpected heir soon taking wind in the court
  • still makes good for the Sol and keeps the court upon its mettle.
  • Mrs. Piper and Mrs. Perkins think it hard upon the young man if there
  • really is no will, and consider that a handsome present ought to be
  • made him out of the estate. Young Piper and young Perkins, as members
  • of that restless juvenile circle which is the terror of the
  • foot-passengers in Chancery Lane, crumble into ashes behind the pump
  • and under the archway all day long, where wild yells and hootings
  • take place over their remains. Little Swills and Miss M. Melvilleson
  • enter into affable conversation with their patrons, feeling that
  • these unusual occurrences level the barriers between professionals
  • and non-professionals. Mr. Bogsby puts up "The popular song of King
  • Death, with chorus by the whole strength of the company," as the
  • great Harmonic feature of the week and announces in the bill that "J.
  • G. B. is induced to do so at a considerable extra expense in
  • consequence of a wish which has been very generally expressed at the
  • bar by a large body of respectable individuals and in homage to a
  • late melancholy event which has aroused so much sensation." There is
  • one point connected with the deceased upon which the court is
  • particularly anxious, namely, that the fiction of a full-sized coffin
  • should be preserved, though there is so little to put in it. Upon the
  • undertaker's stating in the Sol's bar in the course of the day that
  • he has received orders to construct "a six-footer," the general
  • solicitude is much relieved, and it is considered that Mr.
  • Smallweed's conduct does him great honour.
  • Out of the court, and a long way out of it, there is considerable
  • excitement too, for men of science and philosophy come to look, and
  • carriages set down doctors at the corner who arrive with the same
  • intent, and there is more learned talk about inflammable gases and
  • phosphuretted hydrogen than the court has ever imagined. Some of
  • these authorities (of course the wisest) hold with indignation that
  • the deceased had no business to die in the alleged manner; and being
  • reminded by other authorities of a certain inquiry into the evidence
  • for such deaths reprinted in the sixth volume of the Philosophical
  • Transactions; and also of a book not quite unknown on English medical
  • jurisprudence; and likewise of the Italian case of the Countess
  • Cornelia Baudi as set forth in detail by one Bianchini, prebendary of
  • Verona, who wrote a scholarly work or so and was occasionally heard
  • of in his time as having gleams of reason in him; and also of the
  • testimony of Messrs. Fodere and Mere, two pestilent Frenchmen who
  • WOULD investigate the subject; and further, of the corroborative
  • testimony of Monsieur Le Cat, a rather celebrated French surgeon once
  • upon a time, who had the unpoliteness to live in a house where such a
  • case occurred and even to write an account of it--still they regard
  • the late Mr. Krook's obstinacy in going out of the world by any such
  • by-way as wholly unjustifiable and personally offensive. The less the
  • court understands of all this, the more the court likes it, and the
  • greater enjoyment it has in the stock in trade of the Sol's Arms.
  • Then there comes the artist of a picture newspaper, with a foreground
  • and figures ready drawn for anything from a wreck on the Cornish
  • coast to a review in Hyde Park or a meeting in Manchester, and in
  • Mrs. Perkins' own room, memorable evermore, he then and there throws
  • in upon the block Mr. Krook's house, as large as life; in fact,
  • considerably larger, making a very temple of it. Similarly, being
  • permitted to look in at the door of the fatal chamber, he depicts
  • that apartment as three-quarters of a mile long by fifty yards high,
  • at which the court is particularly charmed. All this time the two
  • gentlemen before mentioned pop in and out of every house and assist
  • at the philosophical disputations--go everywhere and listen to
  • everybody--and yet are always diving into the Sol's parlour and
  • writing with the ravenous little pens on the tissue-paper.
  • At last come the coroner and his inquiry, like as before, except that
  • the coroner cherishes this case as being out of the common way and
  • tells the gentlemen of the jury, in his private capacity, that "that
  • would seem to be an unlucky house next door, gentlemen, a destined
  • house; but so we sometimes find it, and these are mysteries we can't
  • account for!" After which the six-footer comes into action and is
  • much admired.
  • In all these proceedings Mr. Guppy has so slight a part, except when
  • he gives his evidence, that he is moved on like a private individual
  • and can only haunt the secret house on the outside, where he has the
  • mortification of seeing Mr. Smallweed padlocking the door, and of
  • bitterly knowing himself to be shut out. But before these proceedings
  • draw to a close, that is to say, on the night next after the
  • catastrophe, Mr. Guppy has a thing to say that must be said to Lady
  • Dedlock.
  • For which reason, with a sinking heart and with that hang-dog sense
  • of guilt upon him which dread and watching enfolded in the Sol's Arms
  • have produced, the young man of the name of Guppy presents himself at
  • the town mansion at about seven o'clock in the evening and requests
  • to see her ladyship. Mercury replies that she is going out to dinner;
  • don't he see the carriage at the door? Yes, he does see the carriage
  • at the door; but he wants to see my Lady too.
  • Mercury is disposed, as he will presently declare to a
  • fellow-gentleman in waiting, "to pitch into the young man"; but his
  • instructions are positive. Therefore he sulkily supposes that the
  • young man must come up into the library. There he leaves the young
  • man in a large room, not over-light, while he makes report of him.
  • Mr. Guppy looks into the shade in all directions, discovering
  • everywhere a certain charred and whitened little heap of coal or
  • wood. Presently he hears a rustling. Is it--? No, it's no ghost, but
  • fair flesh and blood, most brilliantly dressed.
  • "I have to beg your ladyship's pardon," Mr. Guppy stammers, very
  • downcast. "This is an inconvenient time--"
  • "I told you, you could come at any time." She takes a chair, looking
  • straight at him as on the last occasion.
  • "Thank your ladyship. Your ladyship is very affable."
  • "You can sit down." There is not much affability in her tone.
  • "I don't know, your ladyship, that it's worth while my sitting down
  • and detaining you, for I--I have not got the letters that I mentioned
  • when I had the honour of waiting on your ladyship."
  • "Have you come merely to say so?"
  • "Merely to say so, your ladyship." Mr. Guppy besides being depressed,
  • disappointed, and uneasy, is put at a further disadvantage by the
  • splendour and beauty of her appearance.
  • She knows its influence perfectly, has studied it too well to miss a
  • grain of its effect on any one. As she looks at him so steadily and
  • coldly, he not only feels conscious that he has no guide in the least
  • perception of what is really the complexion of her thoughts, but also
  • that he is being every moment, as it were, removed further and
  • further from her.
  • She will not speak, it is plain. So he must.
  • "In short, your ladyship," says Mr. Guppy like a meanly penitent
  • thief, "the person I was to have had the letters of, has come to a
  • sudden end, and--" He stops. Lady Dedlock calmly finishes the
  • sentence.
  • "And the letters are destroyed with the person?"
  • Mr. Guppy would say no if he could--as he is unable to hide.
  • "I believe so, your ladyship."
  • If he could see the least sparkle of relief in her face now? No, he
  • could see no such thing, even if that brave outside did not utterly
  • put him away, and he were not looking beyond it and about it.
  • He falters an awkward excuse or two for his failure.
  • "Is this all you have to say?" inquires Lady Dedlock, having heard
  • him out--or as nearly out as he can stumble.
  • Mr. Guppy thinks that's all.
  • "You had better be sure that you wish to say nothing more to me, this
  • being the last time you will have the opportunity."
  • Mr. Guppy is quite sure. And indeed he has no such wish at present,
  • by any means.
  • "That is enough. I will dispense with excuses. Good evening to you!"
  • And she rings for Mercury to show the young man of the name of Guppy
  • out.
  • But in that house, in that same moment, there happens to be an old
  • man of the name of Tulkinghorn. And that old man, coming with his
  • quiet footstep to the library, has his hand at that moment on the
  • handle of the door--comes in--and comes face to face with the young
  • man as he is leaving the room.
  • One glance between the old man and the lady, and for an instant the
  • blind that is always down flies up. Suspicion, eager and sharp, looks
  • out. Another instant, close again.
  • "I beg your pardon, Lady Dedlock. I beg your pardon a thousand times.
  • It is so very unusual to find you here at this hour. I supposed the
  • room was empty. I beg your pardon!"
  • "Stay!" She negligently calls him back. "Remain here, I beg. I am
  • going out to dinner. I have nothing more to say to this young man!"
  • The disconcerted young man bows, as he goes out, and cringingly hopes
  • that Mr. Tulkinghorn of the Fields is well.
  • "Aye, aye?" says the lawyer, looking at him from under his bent
  • brows, though he has no need to look again--not he. "From Kenge and
  • Carboy's, surely?"
  • "Kenge and Carboy's, Mr. Tulkinghorn. Name of Guppy, sir."
  • "To be sure. Why, thank you, Mr. Guppy, I am very well!"
  • "Happy to hear it, sir. You can't be too well, sir, for the credit of
  • the profession."
  • "Thank you, Mr. Guppy!"
  • Mr. Guppy sneaks away. Mr. Tulkinghorn, such a foil in his
  • old-fashioned rusty black to Lady Dedlock's brightness, hands her
  • down the staircase to her carriage. He returns rubbing his chin, and
  • rubs it a good deal in the course of the evening.
  • CHAPTER XXXIV
  • A Turn of the Screw
  • "Now, what," says Mr. George, "may this be? Is it blank cartridge or
  • ball? A flash in the pan or a shot?"
  • An open letter is the subject of the trooper's speculations, and it
  • seems to perplex him mightily. He looks at it at arm's length, brings
  • it close to him, holds it in his right hand, holds it in his left
  • hand, reads it with his head on this side, with his head on that
  • side, contracts his eyebrows, elevates them, still cannot satisfy
  • himself. He smooths it out upon the table with his heavy palm, and
  • thoughtfully walking up and down the gallery, makes a halt before it
  • every now and then to come upon it with a fresh eye. Even that won't
  • do. "Is it," Mr. George still muses, "blank cartridge or ball?"
  • Phil Squod, with the aid of a brush and paint-pot, is employed in the
  • distance whitening the targets, softly whistling in quick-march time
  • and in drum-and-fife manner that he must and will go back again to
  • the girl he left behind him.
  • "Phil!" The trooper beckons as he calls him.
  • Phil approaches in his usual way, sidling off at first as if he were
  • going anywhere else and then bearing down upon his commander like a
  • bayonet-charge. Certain splashes of white show in high relief upon
  • his dirty face, and he scrapes his one eyebrow with the handle of the
  • brush.
  • "Attention, Phil! Listen to this."
  • "Steady, commander, steady."
  • "'Sir. Allow me to remind you (though there is no legal necessity for
  • my doing so, as you are aware) that the bill at two months' date
  • drawn on yourself by Mr. Matthew Bagnet, and by you accepted, for the
  • sum of ninety-seven pounds four shillings and ninepence, will become
  • due to-morrow, when you will please be prepared to take up the same
  • on presentation. Yours, Joshua Smallweed.' What do you make of that,
  • Phil?"
  • "Mischief, guv'ner."
  • "Why?"
  • "I think," replies Phil after pensively tracing out a cross-wrinkle
  • in his forehead with the brush-handle, "that mischeevious
  • consequences is always meant when money's asked for."
  • "Lookye, Phil," says the trooper, sitting on the table. "First and
  • last, I have paid, I may say, half as much again as this principal in
  • interest and one thing and another."
  • Phil intimates by sidling back a pace or two, with a very
  • unaccountable wrench of his wry face, that he does not regard the
  • transaction as being made more promising by this incident.
  • "And lookye further, Phil," says the trooper, staying his premature
  • conclusions with a wave of his hand. "There has always been an
  • understanding that this bill was to be what they call renewed. And it
  • has been renewed no end of times. What do you say now?"
  • "I say that I think the times is come to a end at last."
  • "You do? Humph! I am much of the same mind myself."
  • "Joshua Smallweed is him that was brought here in a chair?"
  • "The same."
  • "Guv'ner," says Phil with exceeding gravity, "he's a leech in his
  • dispositions, he's a screw and a wice in his actions, a snake in his
  • twistings, and a lobster in his claws."
  • Having thus expressively uttered his sentiments, Mr. Squod, after
  • waiting a little to ascertain if any further remark be expected of
  • him, gets back by his usual series of movements to the target he has
  • in hand and vigorously signifies through his former musical medium
  • that he must and he will return to that ideal young lady. George,
  • having folded the letter, walks in that direction.
  • "There IS a way, commander," says Phil, looking cunningly at him, "of
  • settling this."
  • "Paying the money, I suppose? I wish I could."
  • Phil shakes his head. "No, guv'ner, no; not so bad as that. There IS
  • a way," says Phil with a highly artistic turn of his brush; "what I'm
  • a-doing at present."
  • "Whitewashing."
  • Phil nods.
  • "A pretty way that would be! Do you know what would become of the
  • Bagnets in that case? Do you know they would be ruined to pay off my
  • old scores? YOU'RE a moral character," says the trooper, eyeing him
  • in his large way with no small indignation; "upon my life you are,
  • Phil!"
  • Phil, on one knee at the target, is in course of protesting
  • earnestly, though not without many allegorical scoops of his brush
  • and smoothings of the white surface round the rim with his thumb,
  • that he had forgotten the Bagnet responsibility and would not so much
  • as injure a hair of the head of any member of that worthy family when
  • steps are audible in the long passage without, and a cheerful voice
  • is heard to wonder whether George is at home. Phil, with a look at
  • his master, hobbles up, saying, "Here's the guv'ner, Mrs. Bagnet!
  • Here he is!" and the old girl herself, accompanied by Mr. Bagnet,
  • appears.
  • The old girl never appears in walking trim, in any season of the
  • year, without a grey cloth cloak, coarse and much worn but very
  • clean, which is, undoubtedly, the identical garment rendered so
  • interesting to Mr. Bagnet by having made its way home to Europe from
  • another quarter of the globe in company with Mrs. Bagnet and an
  • umbrella. The latter faithful appendage is also invariably a part of
  • the old girl's presence out of doors. It is of no colour known in
  • this life and has a corrugated wooden crook for a handle, with a
  • metallic object let into its prow, or beak, resembling a little model
  • of a fanlight over a street door or one of the oval glasses out of a
  • pair of spectacles, which ornamental object has not that tenacious
  • capacity of sticking to its post that might be desired in an article
  • long associated with the British army. The old girl's umbrella is of
  • a flabby habit of waist and seems to be in need of stays--an
  • appearance that is possibly referable to its having served through a
  • series of years at home as a cupboard and on journeys as a carpet
  • bag. She never puts it up, having the greatest reliance on her
  • well-proved cloak with its capacious hood, but generally uses the
  • instrument as a wand with which to point out joints of meat or
  • bunches of greens in marketing or to arrest the attention of
  • tradesmen by a friendly poke. Without her market-basket, which is a
  • sort of wicker well with two flapping lids, she never stirs abroad.
  • Attended by these her trusty companions, therefore, her honest
  • sunburnt face looking cheerily out of a rough straw bonnet, Mrs.
  • Bagnet now arrives, fresh-coloured and bright, in George's Shooting
  • Gallery.
  • "Well, George, old fellow," says she, "and how do YOU do, this
  • sunshiny morning?"
  • Giving him a friendly shake of the hand, Mrs. Bagnet draws a long
  • breath after her walk and sits down to enjoy a rest. Having a
  • faculty, matured on the tops of baggage-waggons and in other such
  • positions, of resting easily anywhere, she perches on a rough bench,
  • unties her bonnet-strings, pushes back her bonnet, crosses her arms,
  • and looks perfectly comfortable.
  • Mr. Bagnet in the meantime has shaken hands with his old comrade and
  • with Phil, on whom Mrs. Bagnet likewise bestows a good-humoured nod
  • and smile.
  • "Now, George," said Mrs. Bagnet briskly, "here we are, Lignum and
  • myself"--she often speaks of her husband by this appellation, on
  • account, as it is supposed, of Lignum Vitae having been his old
  • regimental nickname when they first became acquainted, in compliment
  • to the extreme hardness and toughness of his physiognomy--"just
  • looked in, we have, to make it all correct as usual about that
  • security. Give him the new bill to sign, George, and he'll sign it
  • like a man."
  • "I was coming to you this morning," observes the trooper reluctantly.
  • "Yes, we thought you'd come to us this morning, but we turned out
  • early and left Woolwich, the best of boys, to mind his sisters and
  • came to you instead--as you see! For Lignum, he's tied so close now,
  • and gets so little exercise, that a walk does him good. But what's
  • the matter, George?" asks Mrs. Bagnet, stopping in her cheerful talk.
  • "You don't look yourself."
  • "I am not quite myself," returns the trooper; "I have been a little
  • put out, Mrs. Bagnet."
  • Her bright quick eye catches the truth directly. "George!" holding up
  • her forefinger. "Don't tell me there's anything wrong about that
  • security of Lignum's! Don't do it, George, on account of the
  • children!"
  • The trooper looks at her with a troubled visage.
  • "George," says Mrs. Bagnet, using both her arms for emphasis and
  • occasionally bringing down her open hands upon her knees. "If you
  • have allowed anything wrong to come to that security of Lignum's, and
  • if you have let him in for it, and if you have put us in danger of
  • being sold up--and I see sold up in your face, George, as plain as
  • print--you have done a shameful action and have deceived us cruelly.
  • I tell you, cruelly, George. There!"
  • Mr. Bagnet, otherwise as immovable as a pump or a lamp-post, puts his
  • large right hand on the top of his bald head as if to defend it from
  • a shower-bath and looks with great uneasiness at Mrs. Bagnet.
  • "George," says that old girl, "I wonder at you! George, I am ashamed
  • of you! George, I couldn't have believed you would have done it! I
  • always knew you to be a rolling stone that gathered no moss, but I
  • never thought you would have taken away what little moss there was
  • for Bagnet and the children to lie upon. You know what a
  • hard-working, steady-going chap he is. You know what Quebec and Malta
  • and Woolwich are, and I never did think you would, or could, have had
  • the heart to serve us so. Oh, George!" Mrs. Bagnet gathers up her
  • cloak to wipe her eyes on in a very genuine manner, "How could you do
  • it?"
  • Mrs. Bagnet ceasing, Mr. Bagnet removes his hand from his head as if
  • the shower-bath were over and looks disconsolately at Mr. George, who
  • has turned quite white and looks distressfully at the grey cloak and
  • straw bonnet.
  • "Mat," says the trooper in a subdued voice, addressing him but still
  • looking at his wife, "I am sorry you take it so much to heart,
  • because I do hope it's not so bad as that comes to. I certainly have,
  • this morning, received this letter"--which he reads aloud--"but I
  • hope it may be set right yet. As to a rolling stone, why, what you
  • say is true. I AM a rolling stone, and I never rolled in anybody's
  • way, I fully believe, that I rolled the least good to. But it's
  • impossible for an old vagabond comrade to like your wife and family
  • better than I like 'em, Mat, and I trust you'll look upon me as
  • forgivingly as you can. Don't think I've kept anything from you. I
  • haven't had the letter more than a quarter of an hour."
  • "Old girl," murmurs Mr. Bagnet after a short silence, "will you tell
  • him my opinion?"
  • "Oh! Why didn't he marry," Mrs. Bagnet answers, half laughing and
  • half crying, "Joe Pouch's widder in North America? Then he wouldn't
  • have got himself into these troubles."
  • "The old girl," says Mr. Bagnet, "puts it correct--why didn't you?"
  • "Well, she has a better husband by this time, I hope," returns the
  • trooper. "Anyhow, here I stand, this present day, NOT married to Joe
  • Pouch's widder. What shall I do? You see all I have got about me.
  • It's not mine; it's yours. Give the word, and I'll sell off every
  • morsel. If I could have hoped it would have brought in nearly the sum
  • wanted, I'd have sold all long ago. Don't believe that I'll leave you
  • or yours in the lurch, Mat. I'd sell myself first. I only wish," says
  • the trooper, giving himself a disparaging blow in the chest, "that I
  • knew of any one who'd buy such a second-hand piece of old stores."
  • "Old girl," murmurs Mr. Bagnet, "give him another bit of my mind."
  • "George," says the old girl, "you are not so much to be blamed, on
  • full consideration, except for ever taking this business without the
  • means."
  • "And that was like me!" observes the penitent trooper, shaking his
  • head. "Like me, I know."
  • "Silence! The old girl," says Mr. Bagnet, "is correct--in her way of
  • giving my opinions--hear me out!"
  • "That was when you never ought to have asked for the security,
  • George, and when you never ought to have got it, all things
  • considered. But what's done can't be undone. You are always an
  • honourable and straightforward fellow, as far as lays in your power,
  • though a little flighty. On the other hand, you can't admit but what
  • it's natural in us to be anxious with such a thing hanging over our
  • heads. So forget and forgive all round, George. Come! Forget and
  • forgive all round!"
  • Mrs. Bagnet, giving him one of her honest hands and giving her
  • husband the other, Mr. George gives each of them one of his and holds
  • them while he speaks.
  • "I do assure you both, there's nothing I wouldn't do to discharge
  • this obligation. But whatever I have been able to scrape together has
  • gone every two months in keeping it up. We have lived plainly enough
  • here, Phil and I. But the gallery don't quite do what was expected of
  • it, and it's not--in short, it's not the mint. It was wrong in me to
  • take it? Well, so it was. But I was in a manner drawn into that step,
  • and I thought it might steady me, and set me up, and you'll try to
  • overlook my having such expectations, and upon my soul, I am very
  • much obliged to you, and very much ashamed of myself." With these
  • concluding words, Mr. George gives a shake to each of the hands he
  • holds, and relinquishing them, backs a pace or two in a
  • broad-chested, upright attitude, as if he had made a final confession
  • and were immediately going to be shot with all military honours.
  • "George, hear me out!" says Mr. Bagnet, glancing at his wife. "Old
  • girl, go on!"
  • Mr. Bagnet, being in this singular manner heard out, has merely to
  • observe that the letter must be attended to without any delay, that
  • it is advisable that George and he should immediately wait on Mr.
  • Smallweed in person, and that the primary object is to save and hold
  • harmless Mr. Bagnet, who had none of the money. Mr. George, entirely
  • assenting, puts on his hat and prepares to march with Mr. Bagnet to
  • the enemy's camp.
  • "Don't you mind a woman's hasty word, George," says Mrs. Bagnet,
  • patting him on the shoulder. "I trust my old Lignum to you, and I am
  • sure you'll bring him through it."
  • The trooper returns that this is kindly said and that he WILL bring
  • Lignum through it somehow. Upon which Mrs. Bagnet, with her cloak,
  • basket, and umbrella, goes home, bright-eyed again, to the rest of
  • her family, and the comrades sally forth on the hopeful errand of
  • mollifying Mr. Smallweed.
  • Whether there are two people in England less likely to come
  • satisfactorily out of any negotiation with Mr. Smallweed than Mr.
  • George and Mr. Matthew Bagnet may be very reasonably questioned.
  • Also, notwithstanding their martial appearance, broad square
  • shoulders, and heavy tread, whether there are within the same limits
  • two more simple and unaccustomed children in all the Smallweedy
  • affairs of life. As they proceed with great gravity through the
  • streets towards the region of Mount Pleasant, Mr. Bagnet, observing
  • his companion to be thoughtful, considers it a friendly part to refer
  • to Mrs. Bagnet's late sally.
  • "George, you know the old girl--she's as sweet and as mild as milk.
  • But touch her on the children--or myself--and she's off like
  • gunpowder."
  • "It does her credit, Mat!"
  • "George," says Mr. Bagnet, looking straight before him, "the old
  • girl--can't do anything--that don't do her credit. More or less. I
  • never say so. Discipline must be maintained."
  • "She's worth her weight in gold," says the trooper.
  • "In gold?" says Mr. Bagnet. "I'll tell you what. The old girl's
  • weight--is twelve stone six. Would I take that weight--in any
  • metal--for the old girl? No. Why not? Because the old girl's metal is
  • far more precious--than the preciousest metal. And she's ALL metal!"
  • "You are right, Mat!"
  • "When she took me--and accepted of the ring--she 'listed under me and
  • the children--heart and head, for life. She's that earnest," says Mr.
  • Bagnet, "and true to her colours--that, touch us with a finger--and
  • she turns out--and stands to her arms. If the old girl fires
  • wide--once in a way--at the call of duty--look over it, George. For
  • she's loyal!"
  • "Why, bless her, Mat," returns the trooper, "I think the higher of
  • her for it!"
  • "You are right!" says Mr. Bagnet with the warmest enthusiasm, though
  • without relaxing the rigidity of a single muscle. "Think as high of
  • the old girl--as the rock of Gibraltar--and still you'll be thinking
  • low--of such merits. But I never own to it before her. Discipline
  • must be maintained."
  • These encomiums bring them to Mount Pleasant and to Grandfather
  • Smallweed's house. The door is opened by the perennial Judy, who,
  • having surveyed them from top to toe with no particular favour, but
  • indeed with a malignant sneer, leaves them standing there while she
  • consults the oracle as to their admission. The oracle may be inferred
  • to give consent from the circumstance of her returning with the words
  • on her honey lips that they can come in if they want to it. Thus
  • privileged, they come in and find Mr. Smallweed with his feet in the
  • drawer of his chair as if it were a paper foot-bath and Mrs.
  • Smallweed obscured with the cushion like a bird that is not to sing.
  • "My dear friend," says Grandfather Smallweed with those two lean
  • affectionate arms of his stretched forth. "How de do? How de do? Who
  • is our friend, my dear friend?"
  • "Why this," returns George, not able to be very conciliatory at
  • first, "is Matthew Bagnet, who has obliged me in that matter of ours,
  • you know."
  • "Oh! Mr. Bagnet? Surely!" The old man looks at him under his hand.
  • "Hope you're well, Mr. Bagnet? Fine man, Mr. George! Military air,
  • sir!"
  • No chairs being offered, Mr. George brings one forward for Bagnet and
  • one for himself. They sit down, Mr. Bagnet as if he had no power of
  • bending himself, except at the hips, for that purpose.
  • "Judy," says Mr. Smallweed, "bring the pipe."
  • "Why, I don't know," Mr. George interposes, "that the young woman
  • need give herself that trouble, for to tell you the truth, I am not
  • inclined to smoke it to-day."
  • "Ain't you?" returns the old man. "Judy, bring the pipe."
  • "The fact is, Mr. Smallweed," proceeds George, "that I find myself in
  • rather an unpleasant state of mind. It appears to me, sir, that your
  • friend in the city has been playing tricks."
  • "Oh, dear no!" says Grandfather Smallweed. "He never does that!"
  • "Don't he? Well, I am glad to hear it, because I thought it might be
  • HIS doing. This, you know, I am speaking of. This letter."
  • Grandfather Smallweed smiles in a very ugly way in recognition of the
  • letter.
  • "What does it mean?" asks Mr. George.
  • "Judy," says the old man. "Have you got the pipe? Give it to me. Did
  • you say what does it mean, my good friend?"
  • "Aye! Now, come, come, you know, Mr. Smallweed," urges the trooper,
  • constraining himself to speak as smoothly and confidentially as he
  • can, holding the open letter in one hand and resting the broad
  • knuckles of the other on his thigh, "a good lot of money has passed
  • between us, and we are face to face at the present moment, and are
  • both well aware of the understanding there has always been. I am
  • prepared to do the usual thing which I have done regularly and to
  • keep this matter going. I never got a letter like this from you
  • before, and I have been a little put about by it this morning,
  • because here's my friend Matthew Bagnet, who, you know, had none of
  • the money--"
  • "I DON'T know it, you know," says the old man quietly.
  • "Why, con-found you--it, I mean--I tell you so, don't I?"
  • "Oh, yes, you tell me so," returns Grandfather Smallweed. "But I
  • don't know it."
  • "Well!" says the trooper, swallowing his fire. "I know it."
  • Mr. Smallweed replies with excellent temper, "Ah! That's quite
  • another thing!" And adds, "But it don't matter. Mr. Bagnet's
  • situation is all one, whether or no."
  • The unfortunate George makes a great effort to arrange the affair
  • comfortably and to propitiate Mr. Smallweed by taking him upon his
  • own terms.
  • "That's just what I mean. As you say, Mr. Smallweed, here's Matthew
  • Bagnet liable to be fixed whether or no. Now, you see, that makes his
  • good lady very uneasy in her mind, and me too, for whereas I'm a
  • harum-scarum sort of a good-for-nought that more kicks than halfpence
  • come natural to, why he's a steady family man, don't you see? Now,
  • Mr. Smallweed," says the trooper, gaining confidence as he proceeds
  • in his soldierly mode of doing business, "although you and I are good
  • friends enough in a certain sort of a way, I am well aware that I
  • can't ask you to let my friend Bagnet off entirely."
  • "Oh, dear, you are too modest. You can ASK me anything, Mr. George."
  • (There is an ogreish kind of jocularity in Grandfather Smallweed
  • to-day.)
  • "And you can refuse, you mean, eh? Or not you so much, perhaps, as
  • your friend in the city? Ha ha ha!"
  • "Ha ha ha!" echoes Grandfather Smallweed. In such a very hard manner
  • and with eyes so particularly green that Mr. Bagnet's natural gravity
  • is much deepened by the contemplation of that venerable man.
  • "Come!" says the sanguine George. "I am glad to find we can be
  • pleasant, because I want to arrange this pleasantly. Here's my friend
  • Bagnet, and here am I. We'll settle the matter on the spot, if you
  • please, Mr. Smallweed, in the usual way. And you'll ease my friend
  • Bagnet's mind, and his family's mind, a good deal if you'll just
  • mention to him what our understanding is."
  • Here some shrill spectre cries out in a mocking manner, "Oh, good
  • gracious! Oh!" Unless, indeed, it be the sportive Judy, who is found
  • to be silent when the startled visitors look round, but whose chin
  • has received a recent toss, expressive of derision and contempt. Mr.
  • Bagnet's gravity becomes yet more profound.
  • "But I think you asked me, Mr. George"--old Smallweed, who all this
  • time has had the pipe in his hand, is the speaker now--"I think you
  • asked me, what did the letter mean?"
  • "Why, yes, I did," returns the trooper in his off-hand way, "but I
  • don't care to know particularly, if it's all correct and pleasant."
  • Mr. Smallweed, purposely balking himself in an aim at the trooper's
  • head, throws the pipe on the ground and breaks it to pieces.
  • "That's what it means, my dear friend. I'll smash you. I'll crumble
  • you. I'll powder you. Go to the devil!"
  • The two friends rise and look at one another. Mr. Bagnet's gravity
  • has now attained its profoundest point.
  • "Go to the devil!" repeats the old man. "I'll have no more of your
  • pipe-smokings and swaggerings. What? You're an independent dragoon,
  • too! Go to my lawyer (you remember where; you have been there before)
  • and show your independence now, will you? Come, my dear friend,
  • there's a chance for you. Open the street door, Judy; put these
  • blusterers out! Call in help if they don't go. Put 'em out!"
  • He vociferates this so loudly that Mr. Bagnet, laying his hands on
  • the shoulders of his comrade before the latter can recover from his
  • amazement, gets him on the outside of the street door, which is
  • instantly slammed by the triumphant Judy. Utterly confounded, Mr.
  • George awhile stands looking at the knocker. Mr. Bagnet, in a perfect
  • abyss of gravity, walks up and down before the little parlour window
  • like a sentry and looks in every time he passes, apparently revolving
  • something in his mind.
  • "Come, Mat," says Mr. George when he has recovered himself, "we must
  • try the lawyer. Now, what do you think of this rascal?"
  • Mr. Bagnet, stopping to take a farewell look into the parlour,
  • replies with one shake of his head directed at the interior, "If my
  • old girl had been here--I'd have told him!" Having so discharged
  • himself of the subject of his cogitations, he falls into step and
  • marches off with the trooper, shoulder to shoulder.
  • When they present themselves in Lincoln's Inn Fields, Mr. Tulkinghorn
  • is engaged and not to be seen. He is not at all willing to see them,
  • for when they have waited a full hour, and the clerk, on his bell
  • being rung, takes the opportunity of mentioning as much, he brings
  • forth no more encouraging message than that Mr. Tulkinghorn has
  • nothing to say to them and they had better not wait. They do wait,
  • however, with the perseverance of military tactics, and at last the
  • bell rings again and the client in possession comes out of Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn's room.
  • The client is a handsome old lady, no other than Mrs. Rouncewell,
  • housekeeper at Chesney Wold. She comes out of the sanctuary with a
  • fair old-fashioned curtsy and softly shuts the door. She is treated
  • with some distinction there, for the clerk steps out of his pew to
  • show her through the outer office and to let her out. The old lady is
  • thanking him for his attention when she observes the comrades in
  • waiting.
  • "I beg your pardon, sir, but I think those gentlemen are military?"
  • The clerk referring the question to them with his eye, and Mr. George
  • not turning round from the almanac over the fire-place. Mr. Bagnet
  • takes upon himself to reply, "Yes, ma'am. Formerly."
  • "I thought so. I was sure of it. My heart warms, gentlemen, at the
  • sight of you. It always does at the sight of such. God bless you,
  • gentlemen! You'll excuse an old woman, but I had a son once who went
  • for a soldier. A fine handsome youth he was, and good in his bold
  • way, though some people did disparage him to his poor mother. I ask
  • your pardon for troubling you, sir. God bless you, gentlemen!"
  • "Same to you, ma'am!" returns Mr. Bagnet with right good will.
  • There is something very touching in the earnestness of the old lady's
  • voice and in the tremble that goes through her quaint old figure. But
  • Mr. George is so occupied with the almanac over the fire-place
  • (calculating the coming months by it perhaps) that he does not look
  • round until she has gone away and the door is closed upon her.
  • "George," Mr. Bagnet gruffly whispers when he does turn from the
  • almanac at last. "Don't be cast down! 'Why, soldiers, why--should we
  • be melancholy, boys?' Cheer up, my hearty!"
  • The clerk having now again gone in to say that they are still there
  • and Mr. Tulkinghorn being heard to return with some irascibility,
  • "Let 'em come in then!" they pass into the great room with the
  • painted ceiling and find him standing before the fire.
  • "Now, you men, what do you want? Sergeant, I told you the last time I
  • saw you that I don't desire your company here."
  • Sergeant replies--dashed within the last few minutes as to his usual
  • manner of speech, and even as to his usual carriage--that he has
  • received this letter, has been to Mr. Smallweed about it, and has
  • been referred there.
  • "I have nothing to say to you," rejoins Mr. Tulkinghorn. "If you get
  • into debt, you must pay your debts or take the consequences. You have
  • no occasion to come here to learn that, I suppose?"
  • Sergeant is sorry to say that he is not prepared with the money.
  • "Very well! Then the other man--this man, if this is he--must pay it
  • for you."
  • Sergeant is sorry to add that the other man is not prepared with the
  • money either.
  • "Very well! Then you must pay it between you or you must both be sued
  • for it and both suffer. You have had the money and must refund it.
  • You are not to pocket other people's pounds, shillings, and pence and
  • escape scot-free."
  • The lawyer sits down in his easy-chair and stirs the fire. Mr. George
  • hopes he will have the goodness to--"I tell you, sergeant, I have
  • nothing to say to you. I don't like your associates and don't want
  • you here. This matter is not at all in my course of practice and is
  • not in my office. Mr. Smallweed is good enough to offer these affairs
  • to me, but they are not in my way. You must go to Melchisedech's in
  • Clifford's Inn."
  • "I must make an apology to you, sir," says Mr. George, "for pressing
  • myself upon you with so little encouragement--which is almost as
  • unpleasant to me as it can be to you--but would you let me say a
  • private word to you?"
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn rises with his hands in his pockets and walks into
  • one of the window recesses. "Now! I have no time to waste." In the
  • midst of his perfect assumption of indifference, he directs a sharp
  • look at the trooper, taking care to stand with his own back to the
  • light and to have the other with his face towards it.
  • "Well, sir," says Mr. George, "this man with me is the other party
  • implicated in this unfortunate affair--nominally, only nominally--and
  • my sole object is to prevent his getting into trouble on my account.
  • He is a most respectable man with a wife and family, formerly in the
  • Royal Artillery--"
  • "My friend, I don't care a pinch of snuff for the whole Royal
  • Artillery establishment--officers, men, tumbrils, waggons, horses,
  • guns, and ammunition."
  • "'Tis likely, sir. But I care a good deal for Bagnet and his wife and
  • family being injured on my account. And if I could bring them through
  • this matter, I should have no help for it but to give up without any
  • other consideration what you wanted of me the other day."
  • "Have you got it here?"
  • "I have got it here, sir."
  • "Sergeant," the lawyer proceeds in his dry passionless manner, far
  • more hopeless in the dealing with than any amount of vehemence, "make
  • up your mind while I speak to you, for this is final. After I have
  • finished speaking I have closed the subject, and I won't re-open it.
  • Understand that. You can leave here, for a few days, what you say you
  • have brought here if you choose; you can take it away at once if you
  • choose. In case you choose to leave it here, I can do this for you--I
  • can replace this matter on its old footing, and I can go so far
  • besides as to give you a written undertaking that this man Bagnet
  • shall never be troubled in any way until you have been proceeded
  • against to the utmost, that your means shall be exhausted before the
  • creditor looks to his. This is in fact all but freeing him. Have you
  • decided?"
  • The trooper puts his hand into his breast and answers with a long
  • breath, "I must do it, sir."
  • So Mr. Tulkinghorn, putting on his spectacles, sits down and writes
  • the undertaking, which he slowly reads and explains to Bagnet, who
  • has all this time been staring at the ceiling and who puts his hand
  • on his bald head again, under this new verbal shower-bath, and seems
  • exceedingly in need of the old girl through whom to express his
  • sentiments. The trooper then takes from his breast-pocket a folded
  • paper, which he lays with an unwilling hand at the lawyer's elbow.
  • "'Tis only a letter of instructions, sir. The last I ever had from
  • him."
  • Look at a millstone, Mr. George, for some change in its expression,
  • and you will find it quite as soon as in the face of Mr. Tulkinghorn
  • when he opens and reads the letter! He refolds it and lays it in his
  • desk with a countenance as unperturbable as death.
  • Nor has he anything more to say or do but to nod once in the same
  • frigid and discourteous manner and to say briefly, "You can go. Show
  • these men out, there!" Being shown out, they repair to Mr. Bagnet's
  • residence to dine.
  • Boiled beef and greens constitute the day's variety on the former
  • repast of boiled pork and greens, and Mrs. Bagnet serves out the meal
  • in the same way and seasons it with the best of temper, being that
  • rare sort of old girl that she receives Good to her arms without a
  • hint that it might be Better and catches light from any little spot
  • of darkness near her. The spot on this occasion is the darkened brow
  • of Mr. George; he is unusually thoughtful and depressed. At first
  • Mrs. Bagnet trusts to the combined endearments of Quebec and Malta to
  • restore him, but finding those young ladies sensible that their
  • existing Bluffy is not the Bluffy of their usual frolicsome
  • acquaintance, she winks off the light infantry and leaves him to
  • deploy at leisure on the open ground of the domestic hearth.
  • But he does not. He remains in close order, clouded and depressed.
  • During the lengthy cleaning up and pattening process, when he and Mr.
  • Bagnet are supplied with their pipes, he is no better than he was at
  • dinner. He forgets to smoke, looks at the fire and ponders, lets his
  • pipe out, fills the breast of Mr. Bagnet with perturbation and dismay
  • by showing that he has no enjoyment of tobacco.
  • Therefore when Mrs. Bagnet at last appears, rosy from the
  • invigorating pail, and sits down to her work, Mr. Bagnet growls, "Old
  • girl!" and winks monitions to her to find out what's the matter.
  • "Why, George!" says Mrs. Bagnet, quietly threading her needle. "How
  • low you are!"
  • "Am I? Not good company? Well, I am afraid I am not."
  • "He ain't at all like Bluffy, mother!" cries little Malta.
  • "Because he ain't well, I think, mother," adds Quebec.
  • "Sure that's a bad sign not to be like Bluffy, too!" returns the
  • trooper, kissing the young damsels. "But it's true," with a sigh,
  • "true, I am afraid. These little ones are always right!"
  • "George," says Mrs. Bagnet, working busily, "if I thought you cross
  • enough to think of anything that a shrill old soldier's wife--who
  • could have bitten her tongue off afterwards and ought to have done it
  • almost--said this morning, I don't know what I shouldn't say to you
  • now."
  • "My kind soul of a darling," returns the trooper. "Not a morsel of
  • it."
  • "Because really and truly, George, what I said and meant to say was
  • that I trusted Lignum to you and was sure you'd bring him through it.
  • And you HAVE brought him through it, noble!"
  • "Thankee, my dear!" says George. "I am glad of your good opinion."
  • In giving Mrs. Bagnet's hand, with her work in it, a friendly
  • shake--for she took her seat beside him--the trooper's attention is
  • attracted to her face. After looking at it for a little while as she
  • plies her needle, he looks to young Woolwich, sitting on his stool in
  • the corner, and beckons that fifer to him.
  • "See there, my boy," says George, very gently smoothing the mother's
  • hair with his hand, "there's a good loving forehead for you! All
  • bright with love of you, my boy. A little touched by the sun and the
  • weather through following your father about and taking care of you,
  • but as fresh and wholesome as a ripe apple on a tree."
  • Mr. Bagnet's face expresses, so far as in its wooden material lies,
  • the highest approbation and acquiescence.
  • "The time will come, my boy," pursues the trooper, "when this hair of
  • your mother's will be grey, and this forehead all crossed and
  • re-crossed with wrinkles, and a fine old lady she'll be then. Take
  • care, while you are young, that you can think in those days, 'I never
  • whitened a hair of her dear head--I never marked a sorrowful line in
  • her face!' For of all the many things that you can think of when you
  • are a man, you had better have THAT by you, Woolwich!"
  • Mr. George concludes by rising from his chair, seating the boy beside
  • his mother in it, and saying, with something of a hurry about him,
  • that he'll smoke his pipe in the street a bit.
  • CHAPTER XXXV
  • Esther's Narrative
  • I lay ill through several weeks, and the usual tenor of my life
  • became like an old remembrance. But this was not the effect of time
  • so much as of the change in all my habits made by the helplessness
  • and inaction of a sick-room. Before I had been confined to it many
  • days, everything else seemed to have retired into a remote distance
  • where there was little or no separation between the various stages of
  • my life which had been really divided by years. In falling ill, I
  • seemed to have crossed a dark lake and to have left all my
  • experiences, mingled together by the great distance, on the healthy
  • shore.
  • My housekeeping duties, though at first it caused me great anxiety to
  • think that they were unperformed, were soon as far off as the oldest
  • of the old duties at Greenleaf or the summer afternoons when I went
  • home from school with my portfolio under my arm, and my childish
  • shadow at my side, to my godmother's house. I had never known before
  • how short life really was and into how small a space the mind could
  • put it.
  • While I was very ill, the way in which these divisions of time became
  • confused with one another distressed my mind exceedingly. At once a
  • child, an elder girl, and the little woman I had been so happy as, I
  • was not only oppressed by cares and difficulties adapted to each
  • station, but by the great perplexity of endlessly trying to reconcile
  • them. I suppose that few who have not been in such a condition can
  • quite understand what I mean or what painful unrest arose from this
  • source.
  • For the same reason I am almost afraid to hint at that time in my
  • disorder--it seemed one long night, but I believe there were both
  • nights and days in it--when I laboured up colossal staircases, ever
  • striving to reach the top, and ever turned, as I have seen a worm in
  • a garden path, by some obstruction, and labouring again. I knew
  • perfectly at intervals, and I think vaguely at most times, that I was
  • in my bed; and I talked with Charley, and felt her touch, and knew
  • her very well; yet I would find myself complaining, "Oh, more of
  • these never-ending stairs, Charley--more and more--piled up to the
  • sky', I think!" and labouring on again.
  • Dare I hint at that worse time when, strung together somewhere in
  • great black space, there was a flaming necklace, or ring, or starry
  • circle of some kind, of which I was one of the beads! And when my
  • only prayer was to be taken off from the rest and when it was such
  • inexplicable agony and misery to be a part of the dreadful thing?
  • Perhaps the less I say of these sick experiences, the less tedious
  • and the more intelligible I shall be. I do not recall them to make
  • others unhappy or because I am now the least unhappy in remembering
  • them. It may be that if we knew more of such strange afflictions we
  • might be the better able to alleviate their intensity.
  • The repose that succeeded, the long delicious sleep, the blissful
  • rest, when in my weakness I was too calm to have any care for myself
  • and could have heard (or so I think now) that I was dying, with no
  • other emotion than with a pitying love for those I left behind--this
  • state can be perhaps more widely understood. I was in this state when
  • I first shrunk from the light as it twinkled on me once more, and
  • knew with a boundless joy for which no words are rapturous enough
  • that I should see again.
  • I had heard my Ada crying at the door, day and night; I had heard her
  • calling to me that I was cruel and did not love her; I had heard her
  • praying and imploring to be let in to nurse and comfort me and to
  • leave my bedside no more; but I had only said, when I could speak,
  • "Never, my sweet girl, never!" and I had over and over again reminded
  • Charley that she was to keep my darling from the room whether I lived
  • or died. Charley had been true to me in that time of need, and with
  • her little hand and her great heart had kept the door fast.
  • But now, my sight strengthening and the glorious light coming every
  • day more fully and brightly on me, I could read the letters that my
  • dear wrote to me every morning and evening and could put them to my
  • lips and lay my cheek upon them with no fear of hurting her. I could
  • see my little maid, so tender and so careful, going about the two
  • rooms setting everything in order and speaking cheerfully to Ada from
  • the open window again. I could understand the stillness in the house
  • and the thoughtfulness it expressed on the part of all those who had
  • always been so good to me. I could weep in the exquisite felicity of
  • my heart and be as happy in my weakness as ever I had been in my
  • strength.
  • By and by my strength began to be restored. Instead of lying, with so
  • strange a calmness, watching what was done for me, as if it were done
  • for some one else whom I was quietly sorry for, I helped it a little,
  • and so on to a little more and much more, until I became useful to
  • myself, and interested, and attached to life again.
  • How well I remember the pleasant afternoon when I was raised in bed
  • with pillows for the first time to enjoy a great tea-drinking with
  • Charley! The little creature--sent into the world, surely, to
  • minister to the weak and sick--was so happy, and so busy, and stopped
  • so often in her preparations to lay her head upon my bosom, and
  • fondle me, and cry with joyful tears she was so glad, she was so
  • glad, that I was obliged to say, "Charley, if you go on in this way,
  • I must lie down again, my darling, for I am weaker than I thought I
  • was!" So Charley became as quiet as a mouse and took her bright face
  • here and there across and across the two rooms, out of the shade into
  • the divine sunshine, and out of the sunshine into the shade, while I
  • watched her peacefully. When all her preparations were concluded and
  • the pretty tea-table with its little delicacies to tempt me, and its
  • white cloth, and its flowers, and everything so lovingly and
  • beautifully arranged for me by Ada downstairs, was ready at the
  • bedside, I felt sure I was steady enough to say something to Charley
  • that was not new to my thoughts.
  • First I complimented Charley on the room, and indeed it was so fresh
  • and airy, so spotless and neat, that I could scarce believe I had
  • been lying there so long. This delighted Charley, and her face was
  • brighter than before.
  • "Yet, Charley," said I, looking round, "I miss something, surely,
  • that I am accustomed to?"
  • Poor little Charley looked round too and pretended to shake her head
  • as if there were nothing absent.
  • "Are the pictures all as they used to be?" I asked her.
  • "Every one of them, miss," said Charley.
  • "And the furniture, Charley?"
  • "Except where I have moved it about to make more room, miss."
  • "And yet," said I, "I miss some familiar object. Ah, I know what it
  • is, Charley! It's the looking-glass."
  • Charley got up from the table, making as if she had forgotten
  • something, and went into the next room; and I heard her sob there.
  • I had thought of this very often. I was now certain of it. I could
  • thank God that it was not a shock to me now. I called Charley back,
  • and when she came--at first pretending to smile, but as she drew
  • nearer to me, looking grieved--I took her in my arms and said, "It
  • matters very little, Charley. I hope I can do without my old face
  • very well."
  • I was presently so far advanced as to be able to sit up in a great
  • chair and even giddily to walk into the adjoining room, leaning on
  • Charley. The mirror was gone from its usual place in that room too,
  • but what I had to bear was none the harder to bear for that.
  • My guardian had throughout been earnest to visit me, and there was
  • now no good reason why I should deny myself that happiness. He came
  • one morning, and when he first came in, could only hold me in his
  • embrace and say, "My dear, dear girl!" I had long known--who could
  • know better?--what a deep fountain of affection and generosity his
  • heart was; and was it not worth my trivial suffering and change to
  • fill such a place in it? "Oh, yes!" I thought. "He has seen me, and
  • he loves me better than he did; he has seen me and is even fonder of
  • me than he was before; and what have I to mourn for!"
  • He sat down by me on the sofa, supporting me with his arm. For a
  • little while he sat with his hand over his face, but when he removed
  • it, fell into his usual manner. There never can have been, there
  • never can be, a pleasanter manner.
  • "My little woman," said he, "what a sad time this has been. Such an
  • inflexible little woman, too, through all!"
  • "Only for the best, guardian," said I.
  • "For the best?" he repeated tenderly. "Of course, for the best. But
  • here have Ada and I been perfectly forlorn and miserable; here has
  • your friend Caddy been coming and going late and early; here has
  • every one about the house been utterly lost and dejected; here has
  • even poor Rick been writing--to ME too--in his anxiety for you!"
  • I had read of Caddy in Ada's letters, but not of Richard. I told him
  • so.
  • "Why, no, my dear," he replied. "I have thought it better not to
  • mention it to her."
  • "And you speak of his writing to YOU," said I, repeating his
  • emphasis. "As if it were not natural for him to do so, guardian; as
  • if he could write to a better friend!"
  • "He thinks he could, my love," returned my guardian, "and to many a
  • better. The truth is, he wrote to me under a sort of protest while
  • unable to write to you with any hope of an answer--wrote coldly,
  • haughtily, distantly, resentfully. Well, dearest little woman, we
  • must look forbearingly on it. He is not to blame. Jarndyce and
  • Jarndyce has warped him out of himself and perverted me in his eyes.
  • I have known it do as bad deeds, and worse, many a time. If two
  • angels could be concerned in it, I believe it would change their
  • nature."
  • "It has not changed yours, guardian."
  • "Oh, yes, it has, my dear," he said laughingly. "It has made the
  • south wind easterly, I don't know how often. Rick mistrusts and
  • suspects me--goes to lawyers, and is taught to mistrust and suspect
  • me. Hears I have conflicting interests, claims clashing against his
  • and what not. Whereas, heaven knows that if I could get out of the
  • mountains of wiglomeration on which my unfortunate name has been so
  • long bestowed (which I can't) or could level them by the extinction
  • of my own original right (which I can't either, and no human power
  • ever can, anyhow, I believe, to such a pass have we got), I would do
  • it this hour. I would rather restore to poor Rick his proper nature
  • than be endowed with all the money that dead suitors, broken, heart
  • and soul, upon the wheel of Chancery, have left unclaimed with the
  • Accountant-General--and that's money enough, my dear, to be cast into
  • a pyramid, in memory of Chancery's transcendent wickedness."
  • "IS it possible, guardian," I asked, amazed, "that Richard can be
  • suspicious of you?"
  • "Ah, my love, my love," he said, "it is in the subtle poison of such
  • abuses to breed such diseases. His blood is infected, and objects
  • lose their natural aspects in his sight. It is not HIS fault."
  • "But it is a terrible misfortune, guardian."
  • "It is a terrible misfortune, little woman, to be ever drawn within
  • the influences of Jarndyce and Jarndyce. I know none greater. By
  • little and little he has been induced to trust in that rotten reed,
  • and it communicates some portion of its rottenness to everything
  • around him. But again I say with all my soul, we must be patient with
  • poor Rick and not blame him. What a troop of fine fresh hearts like
  • his have I seen in my time turned by the same means!"
  • I could not help expressing something of my wonder and regret that
  • his benevolent, disinterested intentions had prospered so little.
  • "We must not say so, Dame Durden," he cheerfully replied; "Ada is the
  • happier, I hope, and that is much. I did think that I and both these
  • young creatures might be friends instead of distrustful foes and that
  • we might so far counter-act the suit and prove too strong for it. But
  • it was too much to expect. Jarndyce and Jarndyce was the curtain of
  • Rick's cradle."
  • "But, guardian, may we not hope that a little experience will teach
  • him what a false and wretched thing it is?"
  • "We WILL hope so, my Esther," said Mr. Jarndyce, "and that it may not
  • teach him so too late. In any case we must not be hard on him. There
  • are not many grown and matured men living while we speak, good men
  • too, who if they were thrown into this same court as suitors would
  • not be vitally changed and depreciated within three years--within
  • two--within one. How can we stand amazed at poor Rick? A young man so
  • unfortunate," here he fell into a lower tone, as if he were thinking
  • aloud, "cannot at first believe (who could?) that Chancery is what it
  • is. He looks to it, flushed and fitfully, to do something with his
  • interests and bring them to some settlement. It procrastinates,
  • disappoints, tries, tortures him; wears out his sanguine hopes and
  • patience, thread by thread; but he still looks to it, and hankers
  • after it, and finds his whole world treacherous and hollow. Well,
  • well, well! Enough of this, my dear!"
  • He had supported me, as at first, all this time, and his tenderness
  • was so precious to me that I leaned my head upon his shoulder and
  • loved him as if he had been my father. I resolved in my own mind in
  • this little pause, by some means, to see Richard when I grew strong
  • and try to set him right.
  • "There are better subjects than these," said my guardian, "for such a
  • joyful time as the time of our dear girl's recovery. And I had a
  • commission to broach one of them as soon as I should begin to talk.
  • When shall Ada come to see you, my love?"
  • I had been thinking of that too. A little in connexion with the
  • absent mirrors, but not much, for I knew my loving girl would be
  • changed by no change in my looks.
  • "Dear guardian," said I, "as I have shut her out so long--though
  • indeed, indeed, she is like the light to me--"
  • "I know it well, Dame Durden, well."
  • He was so good, his touch expressed such endearing compassion and
  • affection, and the tone of his voice carried such comfort into my
  • heart that I stopped for a little while, quite unable to go on. "Yes,
  • yes, you are tired," said he. "Rest a little."
  • "As I have kept Ada out so long," I began afresh after a short while,
  • "I think I should like to have my own way a little longer, guardian.
  • It would be best to be away from here before I see her. If Charley
  • and I were to go to some country lodging as soon as I can move, and
  • if I had a week there in which to grow stronger and to be revived by
  • the sweet air and to look forward to the happiness of having Ada with
  • me again, I think it would be better for us."
  • I hope it was not a poor thing in me to wish to be a little more used
  • to my altered self before I met the eyes of the dear girl I longed so
  • ardently to see, but it is the truth. I did. He understood me, I was
  • sure; but I was not afraid of that. If it were a poor thing, I knew
  • he would pass it over.
  • "Our spoilt little woman," said my guardian, "shall have her own way
  • even in her inflexibility, though at the price, I know, of tears
  • downstairs. And see here! Here is Boythorn, heart of chivalry,
  • breathing such ferocious vows as never were breathed on paper before,
  • that if you don't go and occupy his whole house, he having already
  • turned out of it expressly for that purpose, by heaven and by earth
  • he'll pull it down and not leave one brick standing on another!"
  • And my guardian put a letter in my hand, without any ordinary
  • beginning such as "My dear Jarndyce," but rushing at once into the
  • words, "I swear if Miss Summerson do not come down and take
  • possession of my house, which I vacate for her this day at one
  • o'clock, P.M.," and then with the utmost seriousness, and in the most
  • emphatic terms, going on to make the extraordinary declaration he had
  • quoted. We did not appreciate the writer the less for laughing
  • heartily over it, and we settled that I should send him a letter of
  • thanks on the morrow and accept his offer. It was a most agreeable
  • one to me, for all the places I could have thought of, I should have
  • liked to go to none so well as Chesney Wold.
  • "Now, little housewife," said my guardian, looking at his watch, "I
  • was strictly timed before I came upstairs, for you must not be tired
  • too soon; and my time has waned away to the last minute. I have one
  • other petition. Little Miss Flite, hearing a rumour that you were
  • ill, made nothing of walking down here--twenty miles, poor soul, in a
  • pair of dancing shoes--to inquire. It was heaven's mercy we were at
  • home, or she would have walked back again."
  • The old conspiracy to make me happy! Everybody seemed to be in it!
  • "Now, pet," said my guardian, "if it would not be irksome to you to
  • admit the harmless little creature one afternoon before you save
  • Boythorn's otherwise devoted house from demolition, I believe you
  • would make her prouder and better pleased with herself than I--though
  • my eminent name is Jarndyce--could do in a lifetime."
  • I have no doubt he knew there would be something in the simple image
  • of the poor afflicted creature that would fall like a gentle lesson
  • on my mind at that time. I felt it as he spoke to me. I could not
  • tell him heartily enough how ready I was to receive her. I had always
  • pitied her, never so much as now. I had always been glad of my little
  • power to soothe her under her calamity, but never, never, half so
  • glad before.
  • We arranged a time for Miss Flite to come out by the coach and share
  • my early dinner. When my guardian left me, I turned my face away upon
  • my couch and prayed to be forgiven if I, surrounded by such
  • blessings, had magnified to myself the little trial that I had to
  • undergo. The childish prayer of that old birthday when I had aspired
  • to be industrious, contented, and true-hearted and to do good to some
  • one and win some love to myself if I could came back into my mind
  • with a reproachful sense of all the happiness I had since enjoyed and
  • all the affectionate hearts that had been turned towards me. If I
  • were weak now, what had I profited by those mercies? I repeated the
  • old childish prayer in its old childish words and found that its old
  • peace had not departed from it.
  • My guardian now came every day. In a week or so more I could walk
  • about our rooms and hold long talks with Ada from behind the
  • window-curtain. Yet I never saw her, for I had not as yet the courage
  • to look at the dear face, though I could have done so easily without
  • her seeing me.
  • On the appointed day Miss Flite arrived. The poor little creature ran
  • into my room quite forgetful of her usual dignity, and crying from
  • her very heart of hearts, "My dear Fitz Jarndyce!" fell upon my neck
  • and kissed me twenty times.
  • "Dear me!" said she, putting her hand into her reticule, "I have
  • nothing here but documents, my dear Fitz Jarndyce; I must borrow a
  • pocket handkerchief."
  • Charley gave her one, and the good creature certainly made use of it,
  • for she held it to her eyes with both hands and sat so, shedding
  • tears for the next ten minutes.
  • "With pleasure, my dear Fitz Jarndyce," she was careful to explain.
  • "Not the least pain. Pleasure to see you well again. Pleasure at
  • having the honour of being admitted to see you. I am so much fonder
  • of you, my love, than of the Chancellor. Though I DO attend court
  • regularly. By the by, my dear, mentioning pocket handkerchiefs--"
  • Miss Flite here looked at Charley, who had been to meet her at the
  • place where the coach stopped. Charley glanced at me and looked
  • unwilling to pursue the suggestion.
  • "Ve-ry right!" said Miss Flite, "Ve-ry correct. Truly! Highly
  • indiscreet of me to mention it; but my dear Miss Fitz Jarndyce, I am
  • afraid I am at times (between ourselves, you wouldn't think it) a
  • little--rambling you know," said Miss Flite, touching her forehead.
  • "Nothing more."
  • "What were you going to tell me?" said I, smiling, for I saw she
  • wanted to go on. "You have roused my curiosity, and now you must
  • gratify it."
  • Miss Flite looked at Charley for advice in this important crisis, who
  • said, "If you please, ma'am, you had better tell then," and therein
  • gratified Miss Flite beyond measure.
  • "So sagacious, our young friend," said she to me in her mysterious
  • way. "Diminutive. But ve-ry sagacious! Well, my dear, it's a pretty
  • anecdote. Nothing more. Still I think it charming. Who should follow
  • us down the road from the coach, my dear, but a poor person in a very
  • ungenteel bonnet--"
  • "Jenny, if you please, miss," said Charley.
  • "Just so!" Miss Flite acquiesced with the greatest suavity. "Jenny.
  • Ye-es! And what does she tell our young friend but that there has
  • been a lady with a veil inquiring at her cottage after my dear Fitz
  • Jarndyce's health and taking a handkerchief away with her as a little
  • keepsake merely because it was my amiable Fitz Jarndyce's! Now, you
  • know, so very prepossessing in the lady with the veil!"
  • "If you please, miss," said Charley, to whom I looked in some
  • astonishment, "Jenny says that when her baby died, you left a
  • handkerchief there, and that she put it away and kept it with the
  • baby's little things. I think, if you please, partly because it was
  • yours, miss, and partly because it had covered the baby."
  • "Diminutive," whispered Miss Flite, making a variety of motions about
  • her own forehead to express intellect in Charley. "But exceedingly
  • sagacious! And so dear! My love, she's clearer than any counsel I
  • ever heard!"
  • "Yes, Charley," I returned. "I remember it. Well?"
  • "Well, miss," said Charley, "and that's the handkerchief the lady
  • took. And Jenny wants you to know that she wouldn't have made away
  • with it herself for a heap of money but that the lady took it and
  • left some money instead. Jenny don't know her at all, if you please,
  • miss!"
  • "Why, who can she be?" said I.
  • "My love," Miss Flite suggested, advancing her lips to my ear with
  • her most mysterious look, "in MY opinion--don't mention this to our
  • diminutive friend--she's the Lord Chancellor's wife. He's married,
  • you know. And I understand she leads him a terrible life. Throws his
  • lordship's papers into the fire, my dear, if he won't pay the
  • jeweller!"
  • I did not think very much about this lady then, for I had an
  • impression that it might be Caddy. Besides, my attention was diverted
  • by my visitor, who was cold after her ride and looked hungry and who,
  • our dinner being brought in, required some little assistance in
  • arraying herself with great satisfaction in a pitiable old scarf and
  • a much-worn and often-mended pair of gloves, which she had brought
  • down in a paper parcel. I had to preside, too, over the
  • entertainment, consisting of a dish of fish, a roast fowl, a
  • sweetbread, vegetables, pudding, and Madeira; and it was so pleasant
  • to see how she enjoyed it, and with what state and ceremony she did
  • honour to it, that I was soon thinking of nothing else.
  • When we had finished and had our little dessert before us,
  • embellished by the hands of my dear, who would yield the
  • superintendence of everything prepared for me to no one, Miss Flite
  • was so very chatty and happy that I thought I would lead her to her
  • own history, as she was always pleased to talk about herself. I began
  • by saying "You have attended on the Lord Chancellor many years, Miss
  • Flite?"
  • "Oh, many, many, many years, my dear. But I expect a judgment.
  • Shortly."
  • There was an anxiety even in her hopefulness that made me doubtful if
  • I had done right in approaching the subject. I thought I would say no
  • more about it.
  • "My father expected a judgment," said Miss Flite. "My brother. My
  • sister. They all expected a judgment. The same that I expect."
  • "They are all--"
  • "Ye-es. Dead of course, my dear," said she.
  • As I saw she would go on, I thought it best to try to be serviceable
  • to her by meeting the theme rather than avoiding it.
  • "Would it not be wiser," said I, "to expect this judgment no more?"
  • "Why, my dear," she answered promptly, "of course it would!"
  • "And to attend the court no more?"
  • "Equally of course," said she. "Very wearing to be always in
  • expectation of what never comes, my dear Fitz Jarndyce! Wearing, I
  • assure you, to the bone!"
  • She slightly showed me her arm, and it was fearfully thin indeed.
  • "But, my dear," she went on in her mysterious way, "there's a
  • dreadful attraction in the place. Hush! Don't mention it to our
  • diminutive friend when she comes in. Or it may frighten her. With
  • good reason. There's a cruel attraction in the place. You CAN'T leave
  • it. And you MUST expect."
  • I tried to assure her that this was not so. She heard me patiently
  • and smilingly, but was ready with her own answer.
  • "Aye, aye, aye! You think so because I am a little rambling. Ve-ry
  • absurd, to be a little rambling, is it not? Ve-ry confusing, too. To
  • the head. I find it so. But, my dear, I have been there many years,
  • and I have noticed. It's the mace and seal upon the table."
  • What could they do, did she think? I mildly asked her.
  • "Draw," returned Miss Flite. "Draw people on, my dear. Draw peace out
  • of them. Sense out of them. Good looks out of them. Good qualities
  • out of them. I have felt them even drawing my rest away in the night.
  • Cold and glittering devils!"
  • She tapped me several times upon the arm and nodded good-humouredly
  • as if she were anxious I should understand that I had no cause to
  • fear her, though she spoke so gloomily, and confided these awful
  • secrets to me.
  • "Let me see," said she. "I'll tell you my own case. Before they ever
  • drew me--before I had ever seen them--what was it I used to do?
  • Tambourine playing? No. Tambour work. I and my sister worked at
  • tambour work. Our father and our brother had a builder's business.
  • We all lived together. Ve-ry respectably, my dear! First, our father
  • was drawn--slowly. Home was drawn with him. In a few years he
  • was a fierce, sour, angry bankrupt without a kind word or a kind
  • look for any one. He had been so different, Fitz Jarndyce. He was
  • drawn to a debtors' prison. There he died. Then our brother was
  • drawn--swiftly--to drunkenness. And rags. And death. Then my sister
  • was drawn. Hush! Never ask to what! Then I was ill and in misery, and
  • heard, as I had often heard before, that this was all the work of
  • Chancery. When I got better, I went to look at the monster. And then
  • I found out how it was, and I was drawn to stay there."
  • Having got over her own short narrative, in the delivery of which she
  • had spoken in a low, strained voice, as if the shock were fresh upon
  • her, she gradually resumed her usual air of amiable importance.
  • "You don't quite credit me, my dear! Well, well! You will, some day.
  • I am a little rambling. But I have noticed. I have seen many new
  • faces come, unsuspicious, within the influence of the mace and seal
  • in these many years. As my father's came there. As my brother's. As
  • my sister's. As my own. I hear Conversation Kenge and the rest of
  • them say to the new faces, 'Here's little Miss Flite. Oh, you are new
  • here; and you must come and be presented to little Miss Flite!' Ve-ry
  • good. Proud I am sure to have the honour! And we all laugh. But, Fitz
  • Jarndyce, I know what will happen. I know, far better than they do,
  • when the attraction has begun. I know the signs, my dear. I saw them
  • begin in Gridley. And I saw them end. Fitz Jarndyce, my love,"
  • speaking low again, "I saw them beginning in our friend the ward in
  • Jarndyce. Let some one hold him back. Or he'll be drawn to ruin."
  • She looked at me in silence for some moments, with her face gradually
  • softening into a smile. Seeming to fear that she had been too gloomy,
  • and seeming also to lose the connexion in her mind, she said politely
  • as she sipped her glass of wine, "Yes, my dear, as I was saying, I
  • expect a judgment shortly. Then I shall release my birds, you know,
  • and confer estates."
  • I was much impressed by her allusion to Richard and by the sad
  • meaning, so sadly illustrated in her poor pinched form, that made its
  • way through all her incoherence. But happily for her, she was quite
  • complacent again now and beamed with nods and smiles.
  • "But, my dear," she said, gaily, reaching another hand to put it upon
  • mine. "You have not congratulated me on my physician. Positively not
  • once, yet!"
  • I was obliged to confess that I did not quite know what she meant.
  • "My physician, Mr. Woodcourt, my dear, who was so exceedingly
  • attentive to me. Though his services were rendered quite
  • gratuitously. Until the Day of Judgment. I mean THE judgment that
  • will dissolve the spell upon me of the mace and seal."
  • "Mr. Woodcourt is so far away, now," said I, "that I thought the time
  • for such congratulation was past, Miss Flite."
  • "But, my child," she returned, "is it possible that you don't know
  • what has happened?"
  • "No," said I.
  • "Not what everybody has been talking of, my beloved Fitz Jarndyce!"
  • "No," said I. "You forget how long I have been here."
  • "True! My dear, for the moment--true. I blame myself. But my memory
  • has been drawn out of me, with everything else, by what I mentioned.
  • Ve-ry strong influence, is it not? Well, my dear, there has been a
  • terrible shipwreck over in those East Indian seas."
  • "Mr. Woodcourt shipwrecked!"
  • "Don't be agitated, my dear. He is safe. An awful scene. Death in all
  • shapes. Hundreds of dead and dying. Fire, storm, and darkness.
  • Numbers of the drowning thrown upon a rock. There, and through it
  • all, my dear physician was a hero. Calm and brave through everything.
  • Saved many lives, never complained in hunger and thirst, wrapped
  • naked people in his spare clothes, took the lead, showed them what to
  • do, governed them, tended the sick, buried the dead, and brought the
  • poor survivors safely off at last! My dear, the poor emaciated
  • creatures all but worshipped him. They fell down at his feet when
  • they got to the land and blessed him. The whole country rings with
  • it. Stay! Where's my bag of documents? I have got it there, and you
  • shall read it, you shall read it!"
  • And I DID read all the noble history, though very slowly and
  • imperfectly then, for my eyes were so dimmed that I could not see the
  • words, and I cried so much that I was many times obliged to lay down
  • the long account she had cut out of the newspaper. I felt so
  • triumphant ever to have known the man who had done such generous and
  • gallant deeds, I felt such glowing exultation in his renown, I so
  • admired and loved what he had done, that I envied the storm-worn
  • people who had fallen at his feet and blessed him as their preserver.
  • I could myself have kneeled down then, so far away, and blessed him
  • in my rapture that he should be so truly good and brave. I felt that
  • no one--mother, sister, wife--could honour him more than I. I did,
  • indeed!
  • My poor little visitor made me a present of the account, and when as
  • the evening began to close in she rose to take her leave, lest she
  • should miss the coach by which she was to return, she was still full
  • of the shipwreck, which I had not yet sufficiently composed myself to
  • understand in all its details.
  • "My dear," said she as she carefully folded up her scarf and gloves,
  • "my brave physician ought to have a title bestowed upon him. And no
  • doubt he will. You are of that opinion?"
  • That he well deserved one, yes. That he would ever have one, no.
  • "Why not, Fitz Jarndyce?" she asked rather sharply.
  • I said it was not the custom in England to confer titles on men
  • distinguished by peaceful services, however good and great, unless
  • occasionally when they consisted of the accumulation of some very
  • large amount of money.
  • "Why, good gracious," said Miss Flite, "how can you say that? Surely
  • you know, my dear, that all the greatest ornaments of England in
  • knowledge, imagination, active humanity, and improvement of every
  • sort are added to its nobility! Look round you, my dear, and
  • consider. YOU must be rambling a little now, I think, if you don't
  • know that this is the great reason why titles will always last in the
  • land!"
  • I am afraid she believed what she said, for there were moments when
  • she was very mad indeed.
  • And now I must part with the little secret I have thus far tried to
  • keep. I had thought, sometimes, that Mr. Woodcourt loved me and that
  • if he had been richer he would perhaps have told me that he loved me
  • before he went away. I had thought, sometimes, that if he had done
  • so, I should have been glad of it. But how much better it was now
  • that this had never happened! What should I have suffered if I had
  • had to write to him and tell him that the poor face he had known as
  • mine was quite gone from me and that I freely released him from his
  • bondage to one whom he had never seen!
  • Oh, it was so much better as it was! With a great pang mercifully
  • spared me, I could take back to my heart my childish prayer to be all
  • he had so brightly shown himself; and there was nothing to be undone:
  • no chain for me to break or for him to drag; and I could go, please
  • God, my lowly way along the path of duty, and he could go his nobler
  • way upon its broader road; and though we were apart upon the journey,
  • I might aspire to meet him, unselfishly, innocently, better far than
  • he had thought me when I found some favour in his eyes, at the
  • journey's end.
  • CHAPTER XXXVI
  • Chesney Wold
  • Charley and I did not set off alone upon our expedition into
  • Lincolnshire. My guardian had made up his mind not to lose sight of
  • me until I was safe in Mr. Boythorn's house, so he accompanied us,
  • and we were two days upon the road. I found every breath of air, and
  • every scent, and every flower and leaf and blade of grass, and every
  • passing cloud, and everything in nature, more beautiful and wonderful
  • to me than I had ever found it yet. This was my first gain from my
  • illness. How little I had lost, when the wide world was so full of
  • delight for me.
  • My guardian intending to go back immediately, we appointed, on our
  • way down, a day when my dear girl should come. I wrote her a letter,
  • of which he took charge, and he left us within half an hour of our
  • arrival at our destination, on a delightful evening in the early
  • summer-time.
  • If a good fairy had built the house for me with a wave of her wand,
  • and I had been a princess and her favoured god-child, I could not
  • have been more considered in it. So many preparations were made for
  • me and such an endearing remembrance was shown of all my little
  • tastes and likings that I could have sat down, overcome, a dozen
  • times before I had revisited half the rooms. I did better than that,
  • however, by showing them all to Charley instead. Charley's delight
  • calmed mine; and after we had had a walk in the garden, and Charley
  • had exhausted her whole vocabulary of admiring expressions, I was as
  • tranquilly happy as I ought to have been. It was a great comfort to
  • be able to say to myself after tea, "Esther, my dear, I think you are
  • quite sensible enough to sit down now and write a note of thanks to
  • your host." He had left a note of welcome for me, as sunny as his own
  • face, and had confided his bird to my care, which I knew to be his
  • highest mark of confidence. Accordingly I wrote a little note to him
  • in London, telling him how all his favourite plants and trees were
  • looking, and how the most astonishing of birds had chirped the
  • honours of the house to me in the most hospitable manner, and how,
  • after singing on my shoulder, to the inconceivable rapture of my
  • little maid, he was then at roost in the usual corner of his cage,
  • but whether dreaming or no I could not report. My note finished and
  • sent off to the post, I made myself very busy in unpacking and
  • arranging; and I sent Charley to bed in good time and told her I
  • should want her no more that night.
  • For I had not yet looked in the glass and had never asked to have my
  • own restored to me. I knew this to be a weakness which must be
  • overcome, but I had always said to myself that I would begin afresh
  • when I got to where I now was. Therefore I had wanted to be alone,
  • and therefore I said, now alone, in my own room, "Esther, if you are
  • to be happy, if you are to have any right to pray to be true-hearted,
  • you must keep your word, my dear." I was quite resolved to keep it,
  • but I sat down for a little while first to reflect upon all my
  • blessings. And then I said my prayers and thought a little more.
  • My hair had not been cut off, though it had been in danger more than
  • once. It was long and thick. I let it down, and shook it out, and
  • went up to the glass upon the dressing-table. There was a little
  • muslin curtain drawn across it. I drew it back and stood for a moment
  • looking through such a veil of my own hair that I could see nothing
  • else. Then I put my hair aside and looked at the reflection in the
  • mirror, encouraged by seeing how placidly it looked at me. I was very
  • much changed--oh, very, very much. At first my face was so strange to
  • me that I think I should have put my hands before it and started back
  • but for the encouragement I have mentioned. Very soon it became more
  • familiar, and then I knew the extent of the alteration in it better
  • than I had done at first. It was not like what I had expected, but I
  • had expected nothing definite, and I dare say anything definite would
  • have surprised me.
  • I had never been a beauty and had never thought myself one, but I had
  • been very different from this. It was all gone now. Heaven was so
  • good to me that I could let it go with a few not bitter tears and
  • could stand there arranging my hair for the night quite thankfully.
  • One thing troubled me, and I considered it for a long time before I
  • went to sleep. I had kept Mr. Woodcourt's flowers. When they were
  • withered I had dried them and put them in a book that I was fond of.
  • Nobody knew this, not even Ada. I was doubtful whether I had a right
  • to preserve what he had sent to one so different--whether it was
  • generous towards him to do it. I wished to be generous to him, even
  • in the secret depths of my heart, which he would never know, because
  • I could have loved him--could have been devoted to him. At last I
  • came to the conclusion that I might keep them if I treasured them
  • only as a remembrance of what was irrevocably past and gone, never to
  • be looked back on any more, in any other light. I hope this may not
  • seem trivial. I was very much in earnest.
  • I took care to be up early in the morning and to be before the glass
  • when Charley came in on tiptoe.
  • "Dear, dear, miss!" cried Charley, starting. "Is that you?"
  • "Yes, Charley," said I, quietly putting up my hair. "And I am very
  • well indeed, and very happy."
  • I saw it was a weight off Charley's mind, but it was a greater weight
  • off mine. I knew the worst now and was composed to it. I shall not
  • conceal, as I go on, the weaknesses I could not quite conquer, but
  • they always passed from me soon and the happier frame of mind stayed
  • by me faithfully.
  • Wishing to be fully re-established in my strength and my good spirits
  • before Ada came, I now laid down a little series of plans with
  • Charley for being in the fresh air all day long. We were to be out
  • before breakfast, and were to dine early, and were to be out again
  • before and after dinner, and were to talk in the garden after tea,
  • and were to go to rest betimes, and were to climb every hill and
  • explore every road, lane, and field in the neighbourhood. As to
  • restoratives and strengthening delicacies, Mr. Boythorn's good
  • housekeeper was for ever trotting about with something to eat or
  • drink in her hand; I could not even be heard of as resting in the
  • park but she would come trotting after me with a basket, her cheerful
  • face shining with a lecture on the importance of frequent
  • nourishment. Then there was a pony expressly for my riding, a chubby
  • pony with a short neck and a mane all over his eyes who could
  • canter--when he would--so easily and quietly that he was a treasure.
  • In a very few days he would come to me in the paddock when I called
  • him, and eat out of my hand, and follow me about. We arrived at such
  • a capital understanding that when he was jogging with me lazily, and
  • rather obstinately, down some shady lane, if I patted his neck and
  • said, "Stubbs, I am surprised you don't canter when you know how much
  • I like it; and I think you might oblige me, for you are only getting
  • stupid and going to sleep," he would give his head a comical shake or
  • two and set off directly, while Charley would stand still and laugh
  • with such enjoyment that her laughter was like music. I don't know
  • who had given Stubbs his name, but it seemed to belong to him as
  • naturally as his rough coat. Once we put him in a little chaise and
  • drove him triumphantly through the green lanes for five miles; but
  • all at once, as we were extolling him to the skies, he seemed to take
  • it ill that he should have been accompanied so far by the circle of
  • tantalizing little gnats that had been hovering round and round his
  • ears the whole way without appearing to advance an inch, and stopped
  • to think about it. I suppose he came to the decision that it was not
  • to be borne, for he steadily refused to move until I gave the reins
  • to Charley and got out and walked, when he followed me with a sturdy
  • sort of good humour, putting his head under my arm and rubbing his
  • ear against my sleeve. It was in vain for me to say, "Now, Stubbs, I
  • feel quite sure from what I know of you that you will go on if I ride
  • a little while," for the moment I left him, he stood stock still
  • again. Consequently I was obliged to lead the way, as before; and in
  • this order we returned home, to the great delight of the village.
  • Charley and I had reason to call it the most friendly of villages, I
  • am sure, for in a week's time the people were so glad to see us go
  • by, though ever so frequently in the course of a day, that there were
  • faces of greeting in every cottage. I had known many of the grown
  • people before and almost all the children, but now the very steeple
  • began to wear a familiar and affectionate look. Among my new friends
  • was an old old woman who lived in such a little thatched and
  • whitewashed dwelling that when the outside shutter was turned up on
  • its hinges, it shut up the whole house-front. This old lady had a
  • grandson who was a sailor, and I wrote a letter to him for her and
  • drew at the top of it the chimney-corner in which she had brought him
  • up and where his old stool yet occupied its old place. This was
  • considered by the whole village the most wonderful achievement in the
  • world, but when an answer came back all the way from Plymouth, in
  • which he mentioned that he was going to take the picture all the way
  • to America, and from America would write again, I got all the credit
  • that ought to have been given to the post-office and was invested
  • with the merit of the whole system.
  • Thus, what with being so much in the air, playing with so many
  • children, gossiping with so many people, sitting on invitation in so
  • many cottages, going on with Charley's education, and writing long
  • letters to Ada every day, I had scarcely any time to think about that
  • little loss of mine and was almost always cheerful. If I did think of
  • it at odd moments now and then, I had only to be busy and forget it.
  • I felt it more than I had hoped I should once when a child said,
  • "Mother, why is the lady not a pretty lady now like she used to be?"
  • But when I found the child was not less fond of me, and drew its soft
  • hand over my face with a kind of pitying protection in its touch,
  • that soon set me up again. There were many little occurrences which
  • suggested to me, with great consolation, how natural it is to gentle
  • hearts to be considerate and delicate towards any inferiority. One of
  • these particularly touched me. I happened to stroll into the little
  • church when a marriage was just concluded, and the young couple had
  • to sign the register.
  • The bridegroom, to whom the pen was handed first, made a rude cross
  • for his mark; the bride, who came next, did the same. Now, I had
  • known the bride when I was last there, not only as the prettiest girl
  • in the place, but as having quite distinguished herself in the
  • school, and I could not help looking at her with some surprise. She
  • came aside and whispered to me, while tears of honest love and
  • admiration stood in her bright eyes, "He's a dear good fellow, miss;
  • but he can't write yet--he's going to learn of me--and I wouldn't
  • shame him for the world!" Why, what had I to fear, I thought, when
  • there was this nobility in the soul of a labouring man's daughter!
  • The air blew as freshly and revivingly upon me as it had ever blown,
  • and the healthy colour came into my new face as it had come into my
  • old one. Charley was wonderful to see, she was so radiant and so
  • rosy; and we both enjoyed the whole day and slept soundly the whole
  • night.
  • There was a favourite spot of mine in the park-woods of Chesney Wold
  • where a seat had been erected commanding a lovely view. The wood had
  • been cleared and opened to improve this point of sight, and the
  • bright sunny landscape beyond was so beautiful that I rested there at
  • least once every day. A picturesque part of the Hall, called the
  • Ghost's Walk, was seen to advantage from this higher ground; and the
  • startling name, and the old legend in the Dedlock family which I had
  • heard from Mr. Boythorn accounting for it, mingled with the view and
  • gave it something of a mysterious interest in addition to its real
  • charms. There was a bank here, too, which was a famous one for
  • violets; and as it was a daily delight of Charley's to gather wild
  • flowers, she took as much to the spot as I did.
  • It would be idle to inquire now why I never went close to the house
  • or never went inside it. The family were not there, I had heard on my
  • arrival, and were not expected. I was far from being incurious or
  • uninterested about the building; on the contrary, I often sat in this
  • place wondering how the rooms ranged and whether any echo like a
  • footstep really did resound at times, as the story said, upon the
  • lonely Ghost's Walk. The indefinable feeling with which Lady Dedlock
  • had impressed me may have had some influence in keeping me from the
  • house even when she was absent. I am not sure. Her face and figure
  • were associated with it, naturally; but I cannot say that they
  • repelled me from it, though something did. For whatever reason or no
  • reason, I had never once gone near it, down to the day at which my
  • story now arrives.
  • I was resting at my favourite point after a long ramble, and Charley
  • was gathering violets at a little distance from me. I had been
  • looking at the Ghost's Walk lying in a deep shade of masonry afar off
  • and picturing to myself the female shape that was said to haunt it
  • when I became aware of a figure approaching through the wood. The
  • perspective was so long and so darkened by leaves, and the shadows of
  • the branches on the ground made it so much more intricate to the eye,
  • that at first I could not discern what figure it was. By little and
  • little it revealed itself to be a woman's--a lady's--Lady Dedlock's.
  • She was alone and coming to where I sat with a much quicker step, I
  • observed to my surprise, than was usual with her.
  • I was fluttered by her being unexpectedly so near (she was almost
  • within speaking distance before I knew her) and would have risen to
  • continue my walk. But I could not. I was rendered motionless. Not so
  • much by her hurried gesture of entreaty, not so much by her quick
  • advance and outstretched hands, not so much by the great change in
  • her manner and the absence of her haughty self-restraint, as by a
  • something in her face that I had pined for and dreamed of when I was
  • a little child, something I had never seen in any face, something I
  • had never seen in hers before.
  • A dread and faintness fell upon me, and I called to Charley. Lady
  • Dedlock stopped upon the instant and changed back almost to what I
  • had known her.
  • "Miss Summerson, I am afraid I have startled you," she said, now
  • advancing slowly. "You can scarcely be strong yet. You have been very
  • ill, I know. I have been much concerned to hear it."
  • I could no more have removed my eyes from her pale face than I could
  • have stirred from the bench on which I sat. She gave me her hand, and
  • its deadly coldness, so at variance with the enforced composure of
  • her features, deepened the fascination that overpowered me. I cannot
  • say what was in my whirling thoughts.
  • "You are recovering again?" she asked kindly.
  • "I was quite well but a moment ago, Lady Dedlock."
  • "Is this your young attendant?"
  • "Yes."
  • "Will you send her on before and walk towards your house with me?"
  • "Charley," said I, "take your flowers home, and I will follow you
  • directly."
  • Charley, with her best curtsy, blushingly tied on her bonnet and went
  • her way. When she was gone, Lady Dedlock sat down on the seat beside
  • me.
  • I cannot tell in any words what the state of my mind was when I saw
  • in her hand my handkerchief with which I had covered the dead baby.
  • I looked at her, but I could not see her, I could not hear her, I
  • could not draw my breath. The beating of my heart was so violent and
  • wild that I felt as if my life were breaking from me. But when she
  • caught me to her breast, kissed me, wept over me, compassionated me,
  • and called me back to myself; when she fell down on her knees and
  • cried to me, "Oh, my child, my child, I am your wicked and unhappy
  • mother! Oh, try to forgive me!"--when I saw her at my feet on the
  • bare earth in her great agony of mind, I felt, through all my tumult
  • of emotion, a burst of gratitude to the providence of God that I was
  • so changed as that I never could disgrace her by any trace of
  • likeness, as that nobody could ever now look at me and look at her
  • and remotely think of any near tie between us.
  • I raised my mother up, praying and beseeching her not to stoop before
  • me in such affliction and humiliation. I did so in broken, incoherent
  • words, for besides the trouble I was in, it frightened me to see her
  • at MY feet. I told her--or I tried to tell her--that if it were for
  • me, her child, under any circumstances to take upon me to forgive
  • her, I did it, and had done it, many, many years. I told her that my
  • heart overflowed with love for her, that it was natural love which
  • nothing in the past had changed or could change. That it was not for
  • me, then resting for the first time on my mother's bosom, to take her
  • to account for having given me life, but that my duty was to bless
  • her and receive her, though the whole world turned from her, and that
  • I only asked her leave to do it. I held my mother in my embrace, and
  • she held me in hers, and among the still woods in the silence of the
  • summer day there seemed to be nothing but our two troubled minds that
  • was not at peace.
  • "To bless and receive me," groaned my mother, "it is far too late. I
  • must travel my dark road alone, and it will lead me where it will.
  • From day to day, sometimes from hour to hour, I do not see the way
  • before my guilty feet. This is the earthly punishment I have brought
  • upon myself. I bear it, and I hide it."
  • Even in the thinking of her endurance, she drew her habitual air of
  • proud indifference about her like a veil, though she soon cast it off
  • again.
  • "I must keep this secret, if by any means it can be kept, not wholly
  • for myself. I have a husband, wretched and dishonouring creature that
  • I am!"
  • These words she uttered with a suppressed cry of despair, more
  • terrible in its sound than any shriek. Covering her face with her
  • hands, she shrank down in my embrace as if she were unwilling that I
  • should touch her; nor could I, by my utmost persuasions or by any
  • endearments I could use, prevail upon her to rise. She said, no, no,
  • no, she could only speak to me so; she must be proud and disdainful
  • everywhere else; she would be humbled and ashamed there, in the only
  • natural moments of her life.
  • My unhappy mother told me that in my illness she had been nearly
  • frantic. She had but then known that her child was living. She could
  • not have suspected me to be that child before. She had followed me
  • down here to speak to me but once in all her life. We never could
  • associate, never could communicate, never probably from that time
  • forth could interchange another word on earth. She put into my hands
  • a letter she had written for my reading only and said when I had read
  • it and destroyed it--but not so much for her sake, since she asked
  • nothing, as for her husband's and my own--I must evermore consider
  • her as dead. If I could believe that she loved me, in this agony in
  • which I saw her, with a mother's love, she asked me to do that, for
  • then I might think of her with a greater pity, imagining what she
  • suffered. She had put herself beyond all hope and beyond all help.
  • Whether she preserved her secret until death or it came to be
  • discovered and she brought dishonour and disgrace upon the name she
  • had taken, it was her solitary struggle always; and no affection
  • could come near her, and no human creature could render her any aid.
  • "But is the secret safe so far?" I asked. "Is it safe now, dearest
  • mother?"
  • "No," replied my mother. "It has been very near discovery. It was
  • saved by an accident. It may be lost by another accident--to-morrow,
  • any day."
  • "Do you dread a particular person?"
  • "Hush! Do not tremble and cry so much for me. I am not worthy of
  • these tears," said my mother, kissing my hands. "I dread one person
  • very much."
  • "An enemy?"
  • "Not a friend. One who is too passionless to be either. He is Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock's lawyer, mechanically faithful without attachment,
  • and very jealous of the profit, privilege, and reputation of being
  • master of the mysteries of great houses."
  • "Has he any suspicions?"
  • "Many."
  • "Not of you?" I said alarmed.
  • "Yes! He is always vigilant and always near me. I may keep him at a
  • standstill, but I can never shake him off."
  • "Has he so little pity or compunction?"
  • "He has none, and no anger. He is indifferent to everything but his
  • calling. His calling is the acquisition of secrets and the holding
  • possession of such power as they give him, with no sharer or opponent
  • in it."
  • "Could you trust in him?"
  • "I shall never try. The dark road I have trodden for so many years
  • will end where it will. I follow it alone to the end, whatever the
  • end be. It may be near, it may be distant; while the road lasts,
  • nothing turns me."
  • "Dear mother, are you so resolved?"
  • "I AM resolved. I have long outbidden folly with folly, pride with
  • pride, scorn with scorn, insolence with insolence, and have outlived
  • many vanities with many more. I will outlive this danger, and outdie
  • it, if I can. It has closed around me almost as awfully as if these
  • woods of Chesney Wold had closed around the house, but my course
  • through it is the same. I have but one; I can have but one."
  • "Mr. Jarndyce--" I was beginning when my mother hurriedly inquired,
  • "Does HE suspect?"
  • "No," said I. "No, indeed! Be assured that he does not!" And I told
  • her what he had related to me as his knowledge of my story. "But he
  • is so good and sensible," said I, "that perhaps if he knew--"
  • My mother, who until this time had made no change in her position,
  • raised her hand up to my lips and stopped me.
  • "Confide fully in him," she said after a little while. "You have my
  • free consent--a small gift from such a mother to her injured
  • child!--but do not tell me of it. Some pride is left in me even yet."
  • I explained, as nearly as I could then, or can recall now--for my
  • agitation and distress throughout were so great that I scarcely
  • understood myself, though every word that was uttered in the mother's
  • voice, so unfamiliar and so melancholy to me, which in my childhood I
  • had never learned to love and recognize, had never been sung to sleep
  • with, had never heard a blessing from, had never had a hope inspired
  • by, made an enduring impression on my memory--I say I explained, or
  • tried to do it, how I had only hoped that Mr. Jarndyce, who had been
  • the best of fathers to me, might be able to afford some counsel and
  • support to her. But my mother answered no, it was impossible; no one
  • could help her. Through the desert that lay before her, she must go
  • alone.
  • "My child, my child!" she said. "For the last time! These kisses for
  • the last time! These arms upon my neck for the last time! We shall
  • meet no more. To hope to do what I seek to do, I must be what I have
  • been so long. Such is my reward and doom. If you hear of Lady
  • Dedlock, brilliant, prosperous, and flattered, think of your wretched
  • mother, conscience-stricken, underneath that mask! Think that the
  • reality is in her suffering, in her useless remorse, in her murdering
  • within her breast the only love and truth of which it is capable! And
  • then forgive her if you can, and cry to heaven to forgive her, which
  • it never can!"
  • We held one another for a little space yet, but she was so firm that
  • she took my hands away, and put them back against my breast, and with
  • a last kiss as she held them there, released them, and went from me
  • into the wood. I was alone, and calm and quiet below me in the sun
  • and shade lay the old house, with its terraces and turrets, on which
  • there had seemed to me to be such complete repose when I first saw
  • it, but which now looked like the obdurate and unpitying watcher of
  • my mother's misery.
  • Stunned as I was, as weak and helpless at first as I had ever been in
  • my sick chamber, the necessity of guarding against the danger of
  • discovery, or even of the remotest suspicion, did me service. I took
  • such precautions as I could to hide from Charley that I had been
  • crying, and I constrained myself to think of every sacred obligation
  • that there was upon me to be careful and collected. It was not a
  • little while before I could succeed or could even restrain bursts of
  • grief, but after an hour or so I was better and felt that I might
  • return. I went home very slowly and told Charley, whom I found at the
  • gate looking for me, that I had been tempted to extend my walk after
  • Lady Dedlock had left me and that I was over-tired and would lie
  • down. Safe in my own room, I read the letter. I clearly derived from
  • it--and that was much then--that I had not been abandoned by my
  • mother. Her elder and only sister, the godmother of my childhood,
  • discovering signs of life in me when I had been laid aside as dead,
  • had in her stern sense of duty, with no desire or willingness that I
  • should live, reared me in rigid secrecy and had never again beheld my
  • mother's face from within a few hours of my birth. So strangely did I
  • hold my place in this world that until within a short time back I had
  • never, to my own mother's knowledge, breathed--had been buried--had
  • never been endowed with life--had never borne a name. When she had
  • first seen me in the church she had been startled and had thought of
  • what would have been like me if it had ever lived, and had lived on,
  • but that was all then.
  • What more the letter told me needs not to be repeated here. It has
  • its own times and places in my story.
  • My first care was to burn what my mother had written and to consume
  • even its ashes. I hope it may not appear very unnatural or bad in me
  • that I then became heavily sorrowful to think I had ever been reared.
  • That I felt as if I knew it would have been better and happier for
  • many people if indeed I had never breathed. That I had a terror of
  • myself as the danger and the possible disgrace of my own mother and
  • of a proud family name. That I was so confused and shaken as to be
  • possessed by a belief that it was right and had been intended that I
  • should die in my birth, and that it was wrong and not intended that I
  • should be then alive.
  • These are the real feelings that I had. I fell asleep worn out, and
  • when I awoke I cried afresh to think that I was back in the world
  • with my load of trouble for others. I was more than ever frightened
  • of myself, thinking anew of her against whom I was a witness, of the
  • owner of Chesney Wold, of the new and terrible meaning of the old
  • words now moaning in my ear like a surge upon the shore, "Your
  • mother, Esther, was your disgrace, and you are hers. The time will
  • come--and soon enough--when you will understand this better, and will
  • feel it too, as no one save a woman can." With them, those other
  • words returned, "Pray daily that the sins of others be not visited
  • upon your head." I could not disentangle all that was about me, and I
  • felt as if the blame and the shame were all in me, and the visitation
  • had come down.
  • The day waned into a gloomy evening, overcast and sad, and I still
  • contended with the same distress. I went out alone, and after walking
  • a little in the park, watching the dark shades falling on the trees
  • and the fitful flight of the bats, which sometimes almost touched me,
  • was attracted to the house for the first time. Perhaps I might not
  • have gone near it if I had been in a stronger frame of mind. As it
  • was, I took the path that led close by it.
  • I did not dare to linger or to look up, but I passed before the
  • terrace garden with its fragrant odours, and its broad walks, and its
  • well-kept beds and smooth turf; and I saw how beautiful and grave it
  • was, and how the old stone balustrades and parapets, and wide flights
  • of shallow steps, were seamed by time and weather; and how the
  • trained moss and ivy grew about them, and around the old stone
  • pedestal of the sun-dial; and I heard the fountain falling. Then the
  • way went by long lines of dark windows diversified by turreted towers
  • and porches of eccentric shapes, where old stone lions and grotesque
  • monsters bristled outside dens of shadow and snarled at the evening
  • gloom over the escutcheons they held in their grip. Thence the path
  • wound underneath a gateway, and through a court-yard where the
  • principal entrance was (I hurried quickly on), and by the stables
  • where none but deep voices seemed to be, whether in the murmuring of
  • the wind through the strong mass of ivy holding to a high red wall,
  • or in the low complaining of the weathercock, or in the barking of
  • the dogs, or in the slow striking of a clock. So, encountering
  • presently a sweet smell of limes, whose rustling I could hear, I
  • turned with the turning of the path to the south front, and there
  • above me were the balustrades of the Ghost's Walk and one lighted
  • window that might be my mother's.
  • The way was paved here, like the terrace overhead, and my footsteps
  • from being noiseless made an echoing sound upon the flags. Stopping
  • to look at nothing, but seeing all I did see as I went, I was passing
  • quickly on, and in a few moments should have passed the lighted
  • window, when my echoing footsteps brought it suddenly into my mind
  • that there was a dreadful truth in the legend of the Ghost's Walk,
  • that it was I who was to bring calamity upon the stately house and
  • that my warning feet were haunting it even then. Seized with an
  • augmented terror of myself which turned me cold, I ran from myself
  • and everything, retraced the way by which I had come, and never
  • paused until I had gained the lodge-gate, and the park lay sullen and
  • black behind me.
  • Not before I was alone in my own room for the night and had again
  • been dejected and unhappy there did I begin to know how wrong and
  • thankless this state was. But from my darling who was coming on the
  • morrow, I found a joyful letter, full of such loving anticipation
  • that I must have been of marble if it had not moved me; from my
  • guardian, too, I found another letter, asking me to tell Dame Durden,
  • if I should see that little woman anywhere, that they had moped most
  • pitiably without her, that the housekeeping was going to rack and
  • ruin, that nobody else could manage the keys, and that everybody in
  • and about the house declared it was not the same house and was
  • becoming rebellious for her return. Two such letters together made me
  • think how far beyond my deserts I was beloved and how happy I ought
  • to be. That made me think of all my past life; and that brought me,
  • as it ought to have done before, into a better condition.
  • For I saw very well that I could not have been intended to die, or I
  • should never have lived; not to say should never have been reserved
  • for such a happy life. I saw very well how many things had worked
  • together for my welfare, and that if the sins of the fathers were
  • sometimes visited upon the children, the phrase did not mean what I
  • had in the morning feared it meant. I knew I was as innocent of my
  • birth as a queen of hers and that before my Heavenly Father I should
  • not be punished for birth nor a queen rewarded for it. I had had
  • experience, in the shock of that very day, that I could, even thus
  • soon, find comforting reconcilements to the change that had fallen on
  • me. I renewed my resolutions and prayed to be strengthened in them,
  • pouring out my heart for myself and for my unhappy mother and feeling
  • that the darkness of the morning was passing away. It was not upon my
  • sleep; and when the next day's light awoke me, it was gone.
  • My dear girl was to arrive at five o'clock in the afternoon. How to
  • help myself through the intermediate time better than by taking a
  • long walk along the road by which she was to come, I did not know; so
  • Charley and I and Stubbs--Stubbs saddled, for we never drove him
  • after the one great occasion--made a long expedition along that road
  • and back. On our return, we held a great review of the house and
  • garden and saw that everything was in its prettiest condition, and
  • had the bird out ready as an important part of the establishment.
  • There were more than two full hours yet to elapse before she could
  • come, and in that interval, which seemed a long one, I must confess I
  • was nervously anxious about my altered looks. I loved my darling so
  • well that I was more concerned for their effect on her than on any
  • one. I was not in this slight distress because I at all repined--I am
  • quite certain I did not, that day--but, I thought, would she be
  • wholly prepared? When she first saw me, might she not be a little
  • shocked and disappointed? Might it not prove a little worse than she
  • expected? Might she not look for her old Esther and not find her?
  • Might she not have to grow used to me and to begin all over again?
  • I knew the various expressions of my sweet girl's face so well, and
  • it was such an honest face in its loveliness, that I was sure
  • beforehand she could not hide that first look from me. And I
  • considered whether, if it should signify any one of these meanings,
  • which was so very likely, could I quite answer for myself?
  • Well, I thought I could. After last night, I thought I could. But to
  • wait and wait, and expect and expect, and think and think, was such
  • bad preparation that I resolved to go along the road again and meet
  • her.
  • So I said to Charley, "Charley, I will go by myself and walk along
  • the road until she comes." Charley highly approving of anything that
  • pleased me, I went and left her at home.
  • But before I got to the second milestone, I had been in so many
  • palpitations from seeing dust in the distance (though I knew it was
  • not, and could not, be the coach yet) that I resolved to turn back
  • and go home again. And when I had turned, I was in such fear of the
  • coach coming up behind me (though I still knew that it neither would,
  • nor could, do any such thing) that I ran the greater part of the way
  • to avoid being overtaken.
  • Then, I considered, when I had got safe back again, this was a nice
  • thing to have done! Now I was hot and had made the worst of it
  • instead of the best.
  • At last, when I believed there was at least a quarter of an hour more
  • yet, Charley all at once cried out to me as I was trembling in the
  • garden, "Here she comes, miss! Here she is!"
  • I did not mean to do it, but I ran upstairs into my room and hid
  • myself behind the door. There I stood trembling, even when I heard my
  • darling calling as she came upstairs, "Esther, my dear, my love,
  • where are you? Little woman, dear Dame Durden!"
  • She ran in, and was running out again when she saw me. Ah, my angel
  • girl! The old dear look, all love, all fondness, all affection.
  • Nothing else in it--no, nothing, nothing!
  • Oh, how happy I was, down upon the floor, with my sweet beautiful
  • girl down upon the floor too, holding my scarred face to her lovely
  • cheek, bathing it with tears and kisses, rocking me to and fro like a
  • child, calling me by every tender name that she could think of, and
  • pressing me to her faithful heart.
  • CHAPTER XXXVII
  • Jarndyce and Jarndyce
  • If the secret I had to keep had been mine, I must have confided it to
  • Ada before we had been long together. But it was not mine, and I did
  • not feel that I had a right to tell it, even to my guardian, unless
  • some great emergency arose. It was a weight to bear alone; still my
  • present duty appeared to be plain, and blest in the attachment of my
  • dear, I did not want an impulse and encouragement to do it. Though
  • often when she was asleep and all was quiet, the remembrance of my
  • mother kept me waking and made the night sorrowful, I did not yield
  • to it at another time; and Ada found me what I used to be--except, of
  • course, in that particular of which I have said enough and which I
  • have no intention of mentioning any more just now, if I can help it.
  • The difficulty that I felt in being quite composed that first evening
  • when Ada asked me, over our work, if the family were at the house,
  • and when I was obliged to answer yes, I believed so, for Lady Dedlock
  • had spoken to me in the woods the day before yesterday, was great.
  • Greater still when Ada asked me what she had said, and when I replied
  • that she had been kind and interested, and when Ada, while admitting
  • her beauty and elegance, remarked upon her proud manner and her
  • imperious chilling air. But Charley helped me through, unconsciously,
  • by telling us that Lady Dedlock had only stayed at the house two
  • nights on her way from London to visit at some other great house in
  • the next county and that she had left early on the morning after we
  • had seen her at our view, as we called it. Charley verified the adage
  • about little pitchers, I am sure, for she heard of more sayings and
  • doings in a day than would have come to my ears in a month.
  • We were to stay a month at Mr. Boythorn's. My pet had scarcely been
  • there a bright week, as I recollect the time, when one evening after
  • we had finished helping the gardener in watering his flowers, and
  • just as the candles were lighted, Charley, appearing with a very
  • important air behind Ada's chair, beckoned me mysteriously out of the
  • room.
  • "Oh! If you please, miss," said Charley in a whisper, with her eyes
  • at their roundest and largest. "You're wanted at the Dedlock Arms."
  • "Why, Charley," said I, "who can possibly want me at the
  • public-house?"
  • "I don't know, miss," returned Charley, putting her head forward and
  • folding her hands tight upon the band of her little apron, which she
  • always did in the enjoyment of anything mysterious or confidential,
  • "but it's a gentleman, miss, and his compliments, and will you please
  • to come without saying anything about it."
  • "Whose compliments, Charley?"
  • "His'n, miss," returned Charley, whose grammatical education was
  • advancing, but not very rapidly.
  • "And how do you come to be the messenger, Charley?"
  • "I am not the messenger, if you please, miss," returned my little
  • maid. "It was W. Grubble, miss."
  • "And who is W. Grubble, Charley?"
  • "Mister Grubble, miss," returned Charley. "Don't you know, miss? The
  • Dedlock Arms, by W. Grubble," which Charley delivered as if she were
  • slowly spelling out the sign.
  • "Aye? The landlord, Charley?"
  • "Yes, miss. If you please, miss, his wife is a beautiful woman, but
  • she broke her ankle, and it never joined. And her brother's the
  • sawyer that was put in the cage, miss, and they expect he'll drink
  • himself to death entirely on beer," said Charley.
  • Not knowing what might be the matter, and being easily apprehensive
  • now, I thought it best to go to this place by myself. I bade Charley
  • be quick with my bonnet and veil and my shawl, and having put them
  • on, went away down the little hilly street, where I was as much at
  • home as in Mr. Boythorn's garden.
  • Mr. Grubble was standing in his shirt-sleeves at the door of his very
  • clean little tavern waiting for me. He lifted off his hat with both
  • hands when he saw me coming, and carrying it so, as if it were an
  • iron vessel (it looked as heavy), preceded me along the sanded
  • passage to his best parlour, a neat carpeted room with more plants in
  • it than were quite convenient, a coloured print of Queen Caroline,
  • several shells, a good many tea-trays, two stuffed and dried fish in
  • glass cases, and either a curious egg or a curious pumpkin (but I
  • don't know which, and I doubt if many people did) hanging from his
  • ceiling. I knew Mr. Grubble very well by sight, from his often
  • standing at his door. A pleasant-looking, stoutish, middle-aged man
  • who never seemed to consider himself cozily dressed for his own
  • fire-side without his hat and top-boots, but who never wore a coat
  • except at church.
  • He snuffed the candle, and backing away a little to see how it
  • looked, backed out of the room--unexpectedly to me, for I was going
  • to ask him by whom he had been sent. The door of the opposite parlour
  • being then opened, I heard some voices, familiar in my ears I
  • thought, which stopped. A quick light step approached the room in
  • which I was, and who should stand before me but Richard!
  • "My dear Esther!" he said. "My best friend!" And he really was so
  • warm-hearted and earnest that in the first surprise and pleasure of
  • his brotherly greeting I could scarcely find breath to tell him that
  • Ada was well.
  • "Answering my very thoughts--always the same dear girl!" said
  • Richard, leading me to a chair and seating himself beside me.
  • I put my veil up, but not quite.
  • "Always the same dear girl!" said Richard just as heartily as before.
  • I put up my veil altogether, and laying my hand on Richard's sleeve
  • and looking in his face, told him how much I thanked him for his kind
  • welcome and how greatly I rejoiced to see him, the more so because of
  • the determination I had made in my illness, which I now conveyed to
  • him.
  • "My love," said Richard, "there is no one with whom I have a greater
  • wish to talk than you, for I want you to understand me."
  • "And I want you, Richard," said I, shaking my head, "to understand
  • some one else."
  • "Since you refer so immediately to John Jarndyce," said Richard, "--I
  • suppose you mean him?"
  • "Of course I do."
  • "Then I may say at once that I am glad of it, because it is on that
  • subject that I am anxious to be understood. By you, mind--you, my
  • dear! I am not accountable to Mr. Jarndyce or Mr. Anybody."
  • I was pained to find him taking this tone, and he observed it.
  • "Well, well, my dear," said Richard, "we won't go into that now. I
  • want to appear quietly in your country-house here, with you under my
  • arm, and give my charming cousin a surprise. I suppose your loyalty
  • to John Jarndyce will allow that?"
  • "My dear Richard," I returned, "you know you would be heartily
  • welcome at his house--your home, if you will but consider it so; and
  • you are as heartily welcome here!"
  • "Spoken like the best of little women!" cried Richard gaily.
  • I asked him how he liked his profession.
  • "Oh, I like it well enough!" said Richard. "It's all right. It does
  • as well as anything else, for a time. I don't know that I shall care
  • about it when I come to be settled, but I can sell out then
  • and--however, never mind all that botheration at present."
  • So young and handsome, and in all respects so perfectly the opposite
  • of Miss Flite! And yet, in the clouded, eager, seeking look that
  • passed over him, so dreadfully like her!
  • "I am in town on leave just now," said Richard.
  • "Indeed?"
  • "Yes. I have run over to look after my--my Chancery interests before
  • the long vacation," said Richard, forcing a careless laugh. "We are
  • beginning to spin along with that old suit at last, I promise you."
  • No wonder that I shook my head!
  • "As you say, it's not a pleasant subject." Richard spoke with the
  • same shade crossing his face as before. "Let it go to the four winds
  • for to-night. Puff! Gone! Who do you suppose is with me?"
  • "Was it Mr. Skimpole's voice I heard?"
  • "That's the man! He does me more good than anybody. What a
  • fascinating child it is!"
  • I asked Richard if any one knew of their coming down together. He
  • answered, no, nobody. He had been to call upon the dear old
  • infant--so he called Mr. Skimpole--and the dear old infant had told
  • him where we were, and he had told the dear old infant he was bent on
  • coming to see us, and the dear old infant had directly wanted to come
  • too; and so he had brought him. "And he is worth--not to say his
  • sordid expenses--but thrice his weight in gold," said Richard. "He is
  • such a cheery fellow. No worldliness about him. Fresh and
  • green-hearted!"
  • I certainly did not see the proof of Mr. Skimpole's worldliness in
  • his having his expenses paid by Richard, but I made no remark about
  • that. Indeed, he came in and turned our conversation. He was charmed
  • to see me, said he had been shedding delicious tears of joy and
  • sympathy at intervals for six weeks on my account, had never been so
  • happy as in hearing of my progress, began to understand the mixture
  • of good and evil in the world now, felt that he appreciated health
  • the more when somebody else was ill, didn't know but what it might be
  • in the scheme of things that A should squint to make B happier in
  • looking straight or that C should carry a wooden leg to make D better
  • satisfied with his flesh and blood in a silk stocking.
  • "My dear Miss Summerson, here is our friend Richard," said Mr.
  • Skimpole, "full of the brightest visions of the future, which he
  • evokes out of the darkness of Chancery. Now that's delightful, that's
  • inspiriting, that's full of poetry! In old times the woods and
  • solitudes were made joyous to the shepherd by the imaginary piping
  • and dancing of Pan and the nymphs. This present shepherd, our
  • pastoral Richard, brightens the dull Inns of Court by making Fortune
  • and her train sport through them to the melodious notes of a judgment
  • from the bench. That's very pleasant, you know! Some ill-conditioned
  • growling fellow may say to me, 'What's the use of these legal and
  • equitable abuses? How do you defend them?' I reply, 'My growling
  • friend, I DON'T defend them, but they are very agreeable to me. There
  • is a shepherd--youth, a friend of mine, who transmutes them into
  • something highly fascinating to my simplicity. I don't say it is for
  • this that they exist--for I am a child among you worldly grumblers,
  • and not called upon to account to you or myself for anything--but it
  • may be so.'"
  • I began seriously to think that Richard could scarcely have found a
  • worse friend than this. It made me uneasy that at such a time when he
  • most required some right principle and purpose he should have this
  • captivating looseness and putting-off of everything, this airy
  • dispensing with all principle and purpose, at his elbow. I thought I
  • could understand how such a nature as my guardian's, experienced in
  • the world and forced to contemplate the miserable evasions and
  • contentions of the family misfortune, found an immense relief in Mr.
  • Skimpole's avowal of his weaknesses and display of guileless candour;
  • but I could not satisfy myself that it was as artless as it seemed or
  • that it did not serve Mr. Skimpole's idle turn quite as well as any
  • other part, and with less trouble.
  • They both walked back with me, and Mr. Skimpole leaving us at the
  • gate, I walked softly in with Richard and said, "Ada, my love, I have
  • brought a gentleman to visit you." It was not difficult to read the
  • blushing, startled face. She loved him dearly, and he knew it, and I
  • knew it. It was a very transparent business, that meeting as cousins
  • only.
  • I almost mistrusted myself as growing quite wicked in my suspicions,
  • but I was not so sure that Richard loved her dearly. He admired her
  • very much--any one must have done that--and I dare say would have
  • renewed their youthful engagement with great pride and ardour but
  • that he knew how she would respect her promise to my guardian. Still
  • I had a tormenting idea that the influence upon him extended even
  • here, that he was postponing his best truth and earnestness in this
  • as in all things until Jarndyce and Jarndyce should be off his mind.
  • Ah me! What Richard would have been without that blight, I never
  • shall know now!
  • He told Ada, in his most ingenuous way, that he had not come to make
  • any secret inroad on the terms she had accepted (rather too
  • implicitly and confidingly, he thought) from Mr. Jarndyce, that he
  • had come openly to see her and to see me and to justify himself for
  • the present terms on which he stood with Mr. Jarndyce. As the dear
  • old infant would be with us directly, he begged that I would make an
  • appointment for the morning, when he might set himself right through
  • the means of an unreserved conversation with me. I proposed to walk
  • with him in the park at seven o'clock, and this was arranged. Mr.
  • Skimpole soon afterwards appeared and made us merry for an hour. He
  • particularly requested to see little Coavinses (meaning Charley) and
  • told her, with a patriarchal air, that he had given her late father
  • all the business in his power and that if one of her little brothers
  • would make haste to get set up in the same profession, he hoped he
  • should still be able to put a good deal of employment in his way.
  • "For I am constantly being taken in these nets," said Mr. Skimpole,
  • looking beamingly at us over a glass of wine-and-water, "and am
  • constantly being bailed out--like a boat. Or paid off--like a ship's
  • company. Somebody always does it for me. I can't do it, you know, for
  • I never have any money. But somebody does it. I get out by somebody's
  • means; I am not like the starling; I get out. If you were to ask me
  • who somebody is, upon my word I couldn't tell you. Let us drink to
  • somebody. God bless him!"
  • Richard was a little late in the morning, but I had not to wait for
  • him long, and we turned into the park. The air was bright and dewy
  • and the sky without a cloud. The birds sang delightfully; the
  • sparkles in the fern, the grass, and trees, were exquisite to see;
  • the richness of the woods seemed to have increased twenty-fold since
  • yesterday, as if, in the still night when they had looked so
  • massively hushed in sleep, Nature, through all the minute details of
  • every wonderful leaf, had been more wakeful than usual for the glory
  • of that day.
  • "This is a lovely place," said Richard, looking round. "None of the
  • jar and discord of law-suits here!"
  • But there was other trouble.
  • "I tell you what, my dear girl," said Richard, "when I get affairs in
  • general settled, I shall come down here, I think, and rest."
  • "Would it not be better to rest now?" I asked.
  • "Oh, as to resting NOW," said Richard, "or as to doing anything very
  • definite NOW, that's not easy. In short, it can't be done; I can't do
  • it at least."
  • "Why not?" said I.
  • "You know why not, Esther. If you were living in an unfinished house,
  • liable to have the roof put on or taken off--to be from top to bottom
  • pulled down or built up--to-morrow, next day, next week, next month,
  • next year--you would find it hard to rest or settle. So do I. Now?
  • There's no now for us suitors."
  • I could almost have believed in the attraction on which my poor
  • little wandering friend had expatiated when I saw again the darkened
  • look of last night. Terrible to think it had in it also a shade of
  • that unfortunate man who had died.
  • "My dear Richard," said I, "this is a bad beginning of our
  • conversation."
  • "I knew you would tell me so, Dame Durden."
  • "And not I alone, dear Richard. It was not I who cautioned you once
  • never to found a hope or expectation on the family curse."
  • "There you come back to John Jarndyce!" said Richard impatiently.
  • "Well! We must approach him sooner or later, for he is the staple of
  • what I have to say, and it's as well at once. My dear Esther, how can
  • you be so blind? Don't you see that he is an interested party and
  • that it may be very well for him to wish me to know nothing of the
  • suit, and care nothing about it, but that it may not be quite so well
  • for me?"
  • "Oh, Richard," I remonstrated, "is it possible that you can ever have
  • seen him and heard him, that you can ever have lived under his roof
  • and known him, and can yet breathe, even to me in this solitary place
  • where there is no one to hear us, such unworthy suspicions?"
  • He reddened deeply, as if his natural generosity felt a pang of
  • reproach. He was silent for a little while before he replied in a
  • subdued voice, "Esther, I am sure you know that I am not a mean
  • fellow and that I have some sense of suspicion and distrust being
  • poor qualities in one of my years."
  • "I know it very well," said I. "I am not more sure of anything."
  • "That's a dear girl," retorted Richard, "and like you, because it
  • gives me comfort. I had need to get some scrap of comfort out of all
  • this business, for it's a bad one at the best, as I have no occasion
  • to tell you."
  • "I know perfectly," said I. "I know as well, Richard--what shall I
  • say? as well as you do--that such misconstructions are foreign to
  • your nature. And I know, as well as you know, what so changes it."
  • "Come, sister, come," said Richard a little more gaily, "you will be
  • fair with me at all events. If I have the misfortune to be under that
  • influence, so has he. If it has a little twisted me, it may have a
  • little twisted him too. I don't say that he is not an honourable man,
  • out of all this complication and uncertainty; I am sure he is. But it
  • taints everybody. You know it taints everybody. You have heard him
  • say so fifty times. Then why should HE escape?"
  • "Because," said I, "his is an uncommon character, and he has
  • resolutely kept himself outside the circle, Richard."
  • "Oh, because and because!" replied Richard in his vivacious way. "I
  • am not sure, my dear girl, but that it may be wise and specious to
  • preserve that outward indifference. It may cause other parties
  • interested to become lax about their interests; and people may die
  • off, and points may drag themselves out of memory, and many things
  • may smoothly happen that are convenient enough."
  • I was so touched with pity for Richard that I could not reproach him
  • any more, even by a look. I remembered my guardian's gentleness
  • towards his errors and with what perfect freedom from resentment he
  • had spoken of them.
  • "Esther," Richard resumed, "you are not to suppose that I have come
  • here to make underhanded charges against John Jarndyce. I have only
  • come to justify myself. What I say is, it was all very well and we
  • got on very well while I was a boy, utterly regardless of this same
  • suit; but as soon as I began to take an interest in it and to look
  • into it, then it was quite another thing. Then John Jarndyce
  • discovers that Ada and I must break off and that if I don't amend
  • that very objectionable course, I am not fit for her. Now, Esther, I
  • don't mean to amend that very objectionable course: I will not hold
  • John Jarndyce's favour on those unfair terms of compromise, which he
  • has no right to dictate. Whether it pleases him or displeases him, I
  • must maintain my rights and Ada's. I have been thinking about it a
  • good deal, and this is the conclusion I have come to."
  • Poor dear Richard! He had indeed been thinking about it a good deal.
  • His face, his voice, his manner, all showed that too plainly.
  • "So I tell him honourably (you are to know I have written to him
  • about all this) that we are at issue and that we had better be at
  • issue openly than covertly. I thank him for his goodwill and his
  • protection, and he goes his road, and I go mine. The fact is, our
  • roads are not the same. Under one of the wills in dispute, I should
  • take much more than he. I don't mean to say that it is the one to be
  • established, but there it is, and it has its chance."
  • "I have not to learn from you, my dear Richard," said I, "of your
  • letter. I had heard of it already without an offended or angry word."
  • "Indeed?" replied Richard, softening. "I am glad I said he was an
  • honourable man, out of all this wretched affair. But I always say
  • that and have never doubted it. Now, my dear Esther, I know these
  • views of mine appear extremely harsh to you, and will to Ada when you
  • tell her what has passed between us. But if you had gone into the
  • case as I have, if you had only applied yourself to the papers as I
  • did when I was at Kenge's, if you only knew what an accumulation of
  • charges and counter-charges, and suspicions and cross-suspicions,
  • they involve, you would think me moderate in comparison."
  • "Perhaps so," said I. "But do you think that, among those many
  • papers, there is much truth and justice, Richard?"
  • "There is truth and justice somewhere in the case, Esther--"
  • "Or was once, long ago," said I.
  • "Is--is--must be somewhere," pursued Richard impetuously, "and must
  • be brought out. To allow Ada to be made a bribe and hush-money of is
  • not the way to bring it out. You say the suit is changing me; John
  • Jarndyce says it changes, has changed, and will change everybody who
  • has any share in it. Then the greater right I have on my side when I
  • resolve to do all I can to bring it to an end."
  • "All you can, Richard! Do you think that in these many years no
  • others have done all they could? Has the difficulty grown easier
  • because of so many failures?"
  • "It can't last for ever," returned Richard with a fierceness kindling
  • in him which again presented to me that last sad reminder. "I am
  • young and earnest, and energy and determination have done wonders
  • many a time. Others have only half thrown themselves into it. I
  • devote myself to it. I make it the object of my life."
  • "Oh, Richard, my dear, so much the worse, so much the worse!"
  • "No, no, no, don't you be afraid for me," he returned affectionately.
  • "You're a dear, good, wise, quiet, blessed girl; but you have your
  • prepossessions. So I come round to John Jarndyce. I tell you, my good
  • Esther, when he and I were on those terms which he found so
  • convenient, we were not on natural terms."
  • "Are division and animosity your natural terms, Richard?"
  • "No, I don't say that. I mean that all this business puts us on
  • unnatural terms, with which natural relations are incompatible. See
  • another reason for urging it on! I may find out when it's over that I
  • have been mistaken in John Jarndyce. My head may be clearer when I am
  • free of it, and I may then agree with what you say to-day. Very well.
  • Then I shall acknowledge it and make him reparation."
  • Everything postponed to that imaginary time! Everything held in
  • confusion and indecision until then!
  • "Now, my best of confidantes," said Richard, "I want my cousin Ada to
  • understand that I am not captious, fickle, and wilful about John
  • Jarndyce, but that I have this purpose and reason at my back. I wish
  • to represent myself to her through you, because she has a great
  • esteem and respect for her cousin John; and I know you will soften
  • the course I take, even though you disapprove of it; and--and in
  • short," said Richard, who had been hesitating through these words,
  • "I--I don't like to represent myself in this litigious, contentious,
  • doubting character to a confiding girl like Ada."
  • I told him that he was more like himself in those latter words than
  • in anything he had said yet.
  • "Why," acknowledged Richard, "that may be true enough, my love. I
  • rather feel it to be so. But I shall be able to give myself fair-play
  • by and by. I shall come all right again, then, don't you be afraid."
  • I asked him if this were all he wished me to tell Ada.
  • "Not quite," said Richard. "I am bound not to withhold from her that
  • John Jarndyce answered my letter in his usual manner, addressing me
  • as 'My dear Rick,' trying to argue me out of my opinions, and telling
  • me that they should make no difference in him. (All very well of
  • course, but not altering the case.) I also want Ada to know that if I
  • see her seldom just now, I am looking after her interests as well as
  • my own--we two being in the same boat exactly--and that I hope she
  • will not suppose from any flying rumours she may hear that I am at
  • all light-headed or imprudent; on the contrary, I am always looking
  • forward to the termination of the suit, and always planning in that
  • direction. Being of age now and having taken the step I have taken, I
  • consider myself free from any accountability to John Jarndyce; but
  • Ada being still a ward of the court, I don't yet ask her to renew our
  • engagement. When she is free to act for herself, I shall be myself
  • once more and we shall both be in very different worldly
  • circumstances, I believe. If you tell her all this with the advantage
  • of your considerate way, you will do me a very great and a very kind
  • service, my dear Esther; and I shall knock Jarndyce and Jarndyce on
  • the head with greater vigour. Of course I ask for no secrecy at Bleak
  • House."
  • "Richard," said I, "you place great confidence in me, but I fear you
  • will not take advice from me?"
  • "It's impossible that I can on this subject, my dear girl. On any
  • other, readily."
  • As if there were any other in his life! As if his whole career and
  • character were not being dyed one colour!
  • "But I may ask you a question, Richard?"
  • "I think so," said he, laughing. "I don't know who may not, if you
  • may not."
  • "You say, yourself, you are not leading a very settled life."
  • "How can I, my dear Esther, with nothing settled!"
  • "Are you in debt again?"
  • "Why, of course I am," said Richard, astonished at my simplicity.
  • "Is it of course?"
  • "My dear child, certainly. I can't throw myself into an object so
  • completely without expense. You forget, or perhaps you don't know,
  • that under either of the wills Ada and I take something. It's only a
  • question between the larger sum and the smaller. I shall be within
  • the mark any way. Bless your heart, my excellent girl," said Richard,
  • quite amused with me, "I shall be all right! I shall pull through, my
  • dear!"
  • I felt so deeply sensible of the danger in which he stood that I
  • tried, in Ada's name, in my guardian's, in my own, by every fervent
  • means that I could think of, to warn him of it and to show him some
  • of his mistakes. He received everything I said with patience and
  • gentleness, but it all rebounded from him without taking the least
  • effect. I could not wonder at this after the reception his
  • preoccupied mind had given to my guardian's letter, but I determined
  • to try Ada's influence yet.
  • So when our walk brought us round to the village again, and I went
  • home to breakfast, I prepared Ada for the account I was going to give
  • her and told her exactly what reason we had to dread that Richard was
  • losing himself and scattering his whole life to the winds. It made
  • her very unhappy, of course, though she had a far, far greater
  • reliance on his correcting his errors than I could have--which was so
  • natural and loving in my dear!--and she presently wrote him this
  • little letter:
  • My dearest cousin,
  • Esther has told me all you said to her this morning. I
  • write this to repeat most earnestly for myself all that
  • she said to you and to let you know how sure I am that
  • you will sooner or later find our cousin John a pattern
  • of truth, sincerity, and goodness, when you will deeply,
  • deeply grieve to have done him (without intending it) so
  • much wrong.
  • I do not quite know how to write what I wish to say next,
  • but I trust you will understand it as I mean it. I have
  • some fears, my dearest cousin, that it may be partly for
  • my sake you are now laying up so much unhappiness for
  • yourself--and if for yourself, for me. In case this should
  • be so, or in case you should entertain much thought of me
  • in what you are doing, I most earnestly entreat and beg
  • you to desist. You can do nothing for my sake that will
  • make me half so happy as for ever turning your back upon
  • the shadow in which we both were born. Do not be angry
  • with me for saying this. Pray, pray, dear Richard, for my
  • sake, and for your own, and in a natural repugnance for
  • that source of trouble which had its share in making us
  • both orphans when we were very young, pray, pray, let it
  • go for ever. We have reason to know by this time that
  • there is no good in it and no hope, that there is nothing
  • to be got from it but sorrow.
  • My dearest cousin, it is needless for me to say that you
  • are quite free and that it is very likely you may find
  • some one whom you will love much better than your first
  • fancy. I am quite sure, if you will let me say so, that
  • the object of your choice would greatly prefer to follow
  • your fortunes far and wide, however moderate or poor, and
  • see you happy, doing your duty and pursuing your chosen
  • way, than to have the hope of being, or even to be, very
  • rich with you (if such a thing were possible) at the cost
  • of dragging years of procrastination and anxiety and of
  • your indifference to other aims. You may wonder at my
  • saying this so confidently with so little knowledge or
  • experience, but I know it for a certainty from my own
  • heart.
  • Ever, my dearest cousin, your most affectionate
  • Ada
  • This note brought Richard to us very soon, but it made little change
  • in him if any. We would fairly try, he said, who was right and who
  • was wrong--he would show us--we should see! He was animated and
  • glowing, as if Ada's tenderness had gratified him; but I could only
  • hope, with a sigh, that the letter might have some stronger effect
  • upon his mind on re-perusal than it assuredly had then.
  • As they were to remain with us that day and had taken their places to
  • return by the coach next morning, I sought an opportunity of speaking
  • to Mr. Skimpole. Our out-of-door life easily threw one in my way, and
  • I delicately said that there was a responsibility in encouraging
  • Richard.
  • "Responsibility, my dear Miss Summerson?" he repeated, catching at
  • the word with the pleasantest smile. "I am the last man in the world
  • for such a thing. I never was responsible in my life--I can't be."
  • "I am afraid everybody is obliged to be," said I timidly enough, he
  • being so much older and more clever than I.
  • "No, really?" said Mr. Skimpole, receiving this new light with a most
  • agreeable jocularity of surprise. "But every man's not obliged to be
  • solvent? I am not. I never was. See, my dear Miss Summerson," he took
  • a handful of loose silver and halfpence from his pocket, "there's so
  • much money. I have not an idea how much. I have not the power of
  • counting. Call it four and ninepence--call it four pound nine. They
  • tell me I owe more than that. I dare say I do. I dare say I owe as
  • much as good-natured people will let me owe. If they don't stop, why
  • should I? There you have Harold Skimpole in little. If that's
  • responsibility, I am responsible."
  • The perfect ease of manner with which he put the money up again and
  • looked at me with a smile on his refined face, as if he had been
  • mentioning a curious little fact about somebody else, almost made me
  • feel as if he really had nothing to do with it.
  • "Now, when you mention responsibility," he resumed, "I am disposed to
  • say that I never had the happiness of knowing any one whom I should
  • consider so refreshingly responsible as yourself. You appear to me
  • to be the very touchstone of responsibility. When I see you, my
  • dear Miss Summerson, intent upon the perfect working of the whole
  • little orderly system of which you are the centre, I feel inclined
  • to say to myself--in fact I do say to myself very often--THAT'S
  • responsibility!"
  • It was difficult, after this, to explain what I meant; but I
  • persisted so far as to say that we all hoped he would check and not
  • confirm Richard in the sanguine views he entertained just then.
  • "Most willingly," he retorted, "if I could. But, my dear Miss
  • Summerson, I have no art, no disguise. If he takes me by the hand and
  • leads me through Westminster Hall in an airy procession after
  • fortune, I must go. If he says, 'Skimpole, join the dance!' I must
  • join it. Common sense wouldn't, I know, but I have NO common sense."
  • It was very unfortunate for Richard, I said.
  • "Do you think so!" returned Mr. Skimpole. "Don't say that, don't say
  • that. Let us suppose him keeping company with Common Sense--an
  • excellent man--a good deal wrinkled--dreadfully practical--change for
  • a ten-pound note in every pocket--ruled account-book in his
  • hand--say, upon the whole, resembling a tax-gatherer. Our dear
  • Richard, sanguine, ardent, overleaping obstacles, bursting with
  • poetry like a young bud, says to this highly respectable companion,
  • 'I see a golden prospect before me; it's very bright, it's very
  • beautiful, it's very joyous; here I go, bounding over the landscape
  • to come at it!' The respectable companion instantly knocks him down
  • with the ruled account-book; tells him in a literal, prosaic way that
  • he sees no such thing; shows him it's nothing but fees, fraud,
  • horsehair wigs, and black gowns. Now you know that's a painful
  • change--sensible in the last degree, I have no doubt, but
  • disagreeable. I can't do it. I haven't got the ruled account-book, I
  • have none of the tax-gathering elements in my composition, I am not
  • at all respectable, and I don't want to be. Odd perhaps, but so it
  • is!"
  • It was idle to say more, so I proposed that we should join Ada and
  • Richard, who were a little in advance, and I gave up Mr. Skimpole in
  • despair. He had been over the Hall in the course of the morning and
  • whimsically described the family pictures as we walked. There were
  • such portentous shepherdesses among the Ladies Dedlock dead and gone,
  • he told us, that peaceful crooks became weapons of assault in their
  • hands. They tended their flocks severely in buckram and powder and
  • put their sticking-plaster patches on to terrify commoners as the
  • chiefs of some other tribes put on their war-paint. There was a Sir
  • Somebody Dedlock, with a battle, a sprung-mine, volumes of smoke,
  • flashes of lightning, a town on fire, and a stormed fort, all in full
  • action between his horse's two hind legs, showing, he supposed, how
  • little a Dedlock made of such trifles. The whole race he represented
  • as having evidently been, in life, what he called "stuffed people"--a
  • large collection, glassy eyed, set up in the most approved manner on
  • their various twigs and perches, very correct, perfectly free from
  • animation, and always in glass cases.
  • I was not so easy now during any reference to the name but that I
  • felt it a relief when Richard, with an exclamation of surprise,
  • hurried away to meet a stranger whom he first descried coming slowly
  • towards us.
  • "Dear me!" said Mr. Skimpole. "Vholes!"
  • We asked if that were a friend of Richard's.
  • "Friend and legal adviser," said Mr. Skimpole. "Now, my dear Miss
  • Summerson, if you want common sense, responsibility, and
  • respectability, all united--if you want an exemplary man--Vholes is
  • THE man."
  • We had not known, we said, that Richard was assisted by any gentleman
  • of that name.
  • "When he emerged from legal infancy," returned Mr. Skimpole, "he
  • parted from our conversational friend Kenge and took up, I believe,
  • with Vholes. Indeed, I know he did, because I introduced him to
  • Vholes."
  • "Had you known him long?" asked Ada.
  • "Vholes? My dear Miss Clare, I had had that kind of acquaintance with
  • him which I have had with several gentlemen of his profession. He had
  • done something or other in a very agreeable, civil manner--taken
  • proceedings, I think, is the expression--which ended in the
  • proceeding of his taking ME. Somebody was so good as to step in and
  • pay the money--something and fourpence was the amount; I forget the
  • pounds and shillings, but I know it ended with fourpence, because it
  • struck me at the time as being so odd that I could owe anybody
  • fourpence--and after that I brought them together. Vholes asked me
  • for the introduction, and I gave it. Now I come to think of it," he
  • looked inquiringly at us with his frankest smile as he made the
  • discovery, "Vholes bribed me, perhaps? He gave me something and
  • called it commission. Was it a five-pound note? Do you know, I think
  • it MUST have been a five-pound note!"
  • His further consideration of the point was prevented by Richard's
  • coming back to us in an excited state and hastily representing Mr.
  • Vholes--a sallow man with pinched lips that looked as if they were
  • cold, a red eruption here and there upon his face, tall and thin,
  • about fifty years of age, high-shouldered, and stooping. Dressed in
  • black, black-gloved, and buttoned to the chin, there was nothing so
  • remarkable in him as a lifeless manner and a slow, fixed way he had
  • of looking at Richard.
  • "I hope I don't disturb you, ladies," said Mr. Vholes, and now I
  • observed that he was further remarkable for an inward manner of
  • speaking. "I arranged with Mr. Carstone that he should always know
  • when his cause was in the Chancellor's paper, and being informed by
  • one of my clerks last night after post time that it stood, rather
  • unexpectedly, in the paper for to-morrow, I put myself into the coach
  • early this morning and came down to confer with him."
  • "Yes," said Richard, flushed, and looking triumphantly at Ada and me,
  • "we don't do these things in the old slow way now. We spin along now!
  • Mr. Vholes, we must hire something to get over to the post town in,
  • and catch the mail to-night, and go up by it!"
  • "Anything you please, sir," returned Mr. Vholes. "I am quite at your
  • service."
  • "Let me see," said Richard, looking at his watch. "If I run down to
  • the Dedlock, and get my portmanteau fastened up, and order a gig, or
  • a chaise, or whatever's to be got, we shall have an hour then before
  • starting. I'll come back to tea. Cousin Ada, will you and Esther take
  • care of Mr. Vholes when I am gone?"
  • He was away directly, in his heat and hurry, and was soon lost in the
  • dusk of evening. We who were left walked on towards the house.
  • "Is Mr. Carstone's presence necessary to-morrow, Sir?" said I. "Can
  • it do any good?"
  • "No, miss," Mr. Vholes replied. "I am not aware that it can."
  • Both Ada and I expressed our regret that he should go, then, only to
  • be disappointed.
  • "Mr. Carstone has laid down the principle of watching his own
  • interests," said Mr. Vholes, "and when a client lays down his own
  • principle, and it is not immoral, it devolves upon me to carry it
  • out. I wish in business to be exact and open. I am a widower with
  • three daughters--Emma, Jane, and Caroline--and my desire is so to
  • discharge the duties of life as to leave them a good name. This
  • appears to be a pleasant spot, miss."
  • The remark being made to me in consequence of my being next him as we
  • walked, I assented and enumerated its chief attractions.
  • "Indeed?" said Mr. Vholes. "I have the privilege of supporting an
  • aged father in the Vale of Taunton--his native place--and I admire
  • that country very much. I had no idea there was anything so
  • attractive here."
  • To keep up the conversation, I asked Mr. Vholes if he would like to
  • live altogether in the country.
  • "There, miss," said he, "you touch me on a tender string. My health
  • is not good (my digestion being much impaired), and if I had only
  • myself to consider, I should take refuge in rural habits, especially
  • as the cares of business have prevented me from ever coming much into
  • contact with general society, and particularly with ladies' society,
  • which I have most wished to mix in. But with my three daughters,
  • Emma, Jane, and Caroline--and my aged father--I cannot afford to be
  • selfish. It is true I have no longer to maintain a dear grandmother
  • who died in her hundred and second year, but enough remains to render
  • it indispensable that the mill should be always going."
  • It required some attention to hear him on account of his inward
  • speaking and his lifeless manner.
  • "You will excuse my having mentioned my daughters," he said. "They
  • are my weak point. I wish to leave the poor girls some little
  • independence, as well as a good name."
  • We now arrived at Mr. Boythorn's house, where the tea-table, all
  • prepared, was awaiting us. Richard came in restless and hurried
  • shortly afterwards, and leaning over Mr. Vholes's chair, whispered
  • something in his ear. Mr. Vholes replied aloud--or as nearly aloud I
  • suppose as he had ever replied to anything--"You will drive me, will
  • you, sir? It is all the same to me, sir. Anything you please. I am
  • quite at your service."
  • We understood from what followed that Mr. Skimpole was to be left
  • until the morning to occupy the two places which had been already
  • paid for. As Ada and I were both in low spirits concerning Richard
  • and very sorry so to part with him, we made it as plain as we
  • politely could that we should leave Mr. Skimpole to the Dedlock Arms
  • and retire when the night-travellers were gone.
  • Richard's high spirits carrying everything before them, we all went
  • out together to the top of the hill above the village, where he had
  • ordered a gig to wait and where we found a man with a lantern
  • standing at the head of the gaunt pale horse that had been harnessed
  • to it.
  • I never shall forget those two seated side by side in the lantern's
  • light, Richard all flush and fire and laughter, with the reins in his
  • hand; Mr. Vholes quite still, black-gloved, and buttoned up, looking
  • at him as if he were looking at his prey and charming it. I have
  • before me the whole picture of the warm dark night, the summer
  • lightning, the dusty track of road closed in by hedgerows and high
  • trees, the gaunt pale horse with his ears pricked up, and the driving
  • away at speed to Jarndyce and Jarndyce.
  • My dear girl told me that night how Richard's being thereafter
  • prosperous or ruined, befriended or deserted, could only make this
  • difference to her, that the more he needed love from one unchanging
  • heart, the more love that unchanging heart would have to give him;
  • how he thought of her through his present errors, and she would think
  • of him at all times--never of herself if she could devote herself to
  • him, never of her own delights if she could minister to his.
  • And she kept her word?
  • I look along the road before me, where the distance already shortens
  • and the journey's end is growing visible; and true and good above the
  • dead sea of the Chancery suit and all the ashy fruit it cast ashore,
  • I think I see my darling.
  • CHAPTER XXXVIII
  • A Struggle
  • When our time came for returning to Bleak House again, we were
  • punctual to the day and were received with an overpowering welcome. I
  • was perfectly restored to health and strength, and finding my
  • housekeeping keys laid ready for me in my room, rang myself in as if
  • I had been a new year, with a merry little peal. "Once more, duty,
  • duty, Esther," said I; "and if you are not overjoyed to do it, more
  • than cheerfully and contentedly, through anything and everything, you
  • ought to be. That's all I have to say to you, my dear!"
  • The first few mornings were mornings of so much bustle and business,
  • devoted to such settlements of accounts, such repeated journeys to
  • and fro between the growlery and all other parts of the house, so
  • many rearrangements of drawers and presses, and such a general new
  • beginning altogether, that I had not a moment's leisure. But when
  • these arrangements were completed and everything was in order, I paid
  • a visit of a few hours to London, which something in the letter I had
  • destroyed at Chesney Wold had induced me to decide upon in my own
  • mind.
  • I made Caddy Jellyby--her maiden name was so natural to me that I
  • always called her by it--the pretext for this visit and wrote her a
  • note previously asking the favour of her company on a little business
  • expedition. Leaving home very early in the morning, I got to London
  • by stage-coach in such good time that I got to Newman Street with the
  • day before me.
  • Caddy, who had not seen me since her wedding-day, was so glad and so
  • affectionate that I was half inclined to fear I should make her
  • husband jealous. But he was, in his way, just as bad--I mean as good;
  • and in short it was the old story, and nobody would leave me any
  • possibility of doing anything meritorious.
  • The elder Mr. Turveydrop was in bed, I found, and Caddy was
  • milling his chocolate, which a melancholy little boy who was an
  • apprentice--it seemed such a curious thing to be apprenticed to the
  • trade of dancing--was waiting to carry upstairs. Her father-in-law
  • was extremely kind and considerate, Caddy told me, and they lived
  • most happily together. (When she spoke of their living together, she
  • meant that the old gentleman had all the good things and all the good
  • lodging, while she and her husband had what they could get, and were
  • poked into two corner rooms over the Mews.)
  • "And how is your mama, Caddy?" said I.
  • "Why, I hear of her, Esther," replied Caddy, "through Pa, but I see
  • very little of her. We are good friends, I am glad to say, but Ma
  • thinks there is something absurd in my having married a
  • dancing-master, and she is rather afraid of its extending to her."
  • It struck me that if Mrs. Jellyby had discharged her own natural
  • duties and obligations before she swept the horizon with a telescope
  • in search of others, she would have taken the best precautions
  • against becoming absurd, but I need scarcely observe that I kept this
  • to myself.
  • "And your papa, Caddy?"
  • "He comes here every evening," returned Caddy, "and is so fond of
  • sitting in the corner there that it's a treat to see him."
  • Looking at the corner, I plainly perceived the mark of Mr. Jellyby's
  • head against the wall. It was consolatory to know that he had found
  • such a resting-place for it.
  • "And you, Caddy," said I, "you are always busy, I'll be bound?"
  • "Well, my dear," returned Caddy, "I am indeed, for to tell you a
  • grand secret, I am qualifying myself to give lessons. Prince's health
  • is not strong, and I want to be able to assist him. What with
  • schools, and classes here, and private pupils, AND the apprentices,
  • he really has too much to do, poor fellow!"
  • The notion of the apprentices was still so odd to me that I asked
  • Caddy if there were many of them.
  • "Four," said Caddy. "One in-door, and three out. They are
  • very good children; only when they get together they WILL
  • play--children-like--instead of attending to their work. So the
  • little boy you saw just now waltzes by himself in the empty kitchen,
  • and we distribute the others over the house as well as we can."
  • "That is only for their steps, of course?" said I.
  • "Only for their steps," said Caddy. "In that way they practise, so
  • many hours at a time, whatever steps they happen to be upon. They
  • dance in the academy, and at this time of year we do figures at five
  • every morning."
  • "Why, what a laborious life!" I exclaimed.
  • "I assure you, my dear," returned Caddy, smiling, "when the out-door
  • apprentices ring us up in the morning (the bell rings into our room,
  • not to disturb old Mr. Turveydrop), and when I put up the window and
  • see them standing on the door-step with their little pumps under
  • their arms, I am actually reminded of the Sweeps."
  • All this presented the art to me in a singular light, to be sure.
  • Caddy enjoyed the effect of her communication and cheerfully
  • recounted the particulars of her own studies.
  • "You see, my dear, to save expense I ought to know something of the
  • piano, and I ought to know something of the kit too, and consequently
  • I have to practise those two instruments as well as the details of
  • our profession. If Ma had been like anybody else, I might have had
  • some little musical knowledge to begin upon. However, I hadn't any;
  • and that part of the work is, at first, a little discouraging, I must
  • allow. But I have a very good ear, and I am used to drudgery--I have
  • to thank Ma for that, at all events--and where there's a will there's
  • a way, you know, Esther, the world over." Saying these words, Caddy
  • laughingly sat down at a little jingling square piano and really
  • rattled off a quadrille with great spirit. Then she good-humouredly
  • and blushingly got up again, and while she still laughed herself,
  • said, "Don't laugh at me, please; that's a dear girl!"
  • I would sooner have cried, but I did neither. I encouraged her and
  • praised her with all my heart. For I conscientiously believed,
  • dancing-master's wife though she was, and dancing-mistress though in
  • her limited ambition she aspired to be, she had struck out a natural,
  • wholesome, loving course of industry and perseverance that was quite
  • as good as a mission.
  • "My dear," said Caddy, delighted, "you can't think how you cheer me.
  • I shall owe you, you don't know how much. What changes, Esther, even
  • in my small world! You recollect that first night, when I was so
  • unpolite and inky? Who would have thought, then, of my ever teaching
  • people to dance, of all other possibilities and impossibilities!"
  • Her husband, who had left us while we had this chat, now coming back,
  • preparatory to exercising the apprentices in the ball-room, Caddy
  • informed me she was quite at my disposal. But it was not my time yet,
  • I was glad to tell her, for I should have been vexed to take her away
  • then. Therefore we three adjourned to the apprentices together, and I
  • made one in the dance.
  • The apprentices were the queerest little people. Besides the
  • melancholy boy, who, I hoped, had not been made so by waltzing alone
  • in the empty kitchen, there were two other boys and one dirty little
  • limp girl in a gauzy dress. Such a precocious little girl, with such
  • a dowdy bonnet on (that, too, of a gauzy texture), who brought her
  • sandalled shoes in an old threadbare velvet reticule. Such mean
  • little boys, when they were not dancing, with string, and marbles,
  • and cramp-bones in their pockets, and the most untidy legs and
  • feet--and heels particularly.
  • I asked Caddy what had made their parents choose this profession for
  • them. Caddy said she didn't know; perhaps they were designed for
  • teachers, perhaps for the stage. They were all people in humble
  • circumstances, and the melancholy boy's mother kept a ginger-beer
  • shop.
  • We danced for an hour with great gravity, the melancholy child doing
  • wonders with his lower extremities, in which there appeared to be
  • some sense of enjoyment though it never rose above his waist. Caddy,
  • while she was observant of her husband and was evidently founded upon
  • him, had acquired a grace and self-possession of her own, which,
  • united to her pretty face and figure, was uncommonly agreeable. She
  • already relieved him of much of the instruction of these young
  • people, and he seldom interfered except to walk his part in the
  • figure if he had anything to do in it. He always played the tune. The
  • affectation of the gauzy child, and her condescension to the boys,
  • was a sight. And thus we danced an hour by the clock.
  • When the practice was concluded, Caddy's husband made himself ready
  • to go out of town to a school, and Caddy ran away to get ready to go
  • out with me. I sat in the ball-room in the interval, contemplating
  • the apprentices. The two out-door boys went upon the staircase to put
  • on their half-boots and pull the in-door boy's hair, as I judged from
  • the nature of his objections. Returning with their jackets buttoned
  • and their pumps stuck in them, they then produced packets of cold
  • bread and meat and bivouacked under a painted lyre on the wall. The
  • little gauzy child, having whisked her sandals into the reticule and
  • put on a trodden-down pair of shoes, shook her head into the dowdy
  • bonnet at one shake, and answering my inquiry whether she liked
  • dancing by replying, "Not with boys," tied it across her chin, and
  • went home contemptuous.
  • "Old Mr. Turveydrop is so sorry," said Caddy, "that he has not
  • finished dressing yet and cannot have the pleasure of seeing you
  • before you go. You are such a favourite of his, Esther."
  • I expressed myself much obliged to him, but did not think it
  • necessary to add that I readily dispensed with this attention.
  • "It takes him a long time to dress," said Caddy, "because he is very
  • much looked up to in such things, you know, and has a reputation to
  • support. You can't think how kind he is to Pa. He talks to Pa of an
  • evening about the Prince Regent, and I never saw Pa so interested."
  • There was something in the picture of Mr. Turveydrop bestowing his
  • deportment on Mr. Jellyby that quite took my fancy. I asked Caddy if
  • he brought her papa out much.
  • "No," said Caddy, "I don't know that he does that, but he talks to
  • Pa, and Pa greatly admires him, and listens, and likes it. Of course
  • I am aware that Pa has hardly any claims to deportment, but they get
  • on together delightfully. You can't think what good companions they
  • make. I never saw Pa take snuff before in my life, but he takes one
  • pinch out of Mr. Turveydrop's box regularly and keeps putting it to
  • his nose and taking it away again all the evening."
  • That old Mr. Turveydrop should ever, in the chances and changes of
  • life, have come to the rescue of Mr. Jellyby from Borrioboola-Gha
  • appeared to me to be one of the pleasantest of oddities.
  • "As to Peepy," said Caddy with a little hesitation, "whom I was most
  • afraid of--next to having any family of my own, Esther--as an
  • inconvenience to Mr. Turveydrop, the kindness of the old gentleman to
  • that child is beyond everything. He asks to see him, my dear! He lets
  • him take the newspaper up to him in bed; he gives him the crusts of
  • his toast to eat; he sends him on little errands about the house; he
  • tells him to come to me for sixpences. In short," said Caddy
  • cheerily, "and not to prose, I am a very fortunate girl and ought to
  • be very grateful. Where are we going, Esther?"
  • "To the Old Street Road," said I, "where I have a few words to say to
  • the solicitor's clerk who was sent to meet me at the coach-office on
  • the very day when I came to London and first saw you, my dear. Now I
  • think of it, the gentleman who brought us to your house."
  • "Then, indeed, I seem to be naturally the person to go with you,"
  • returned Caddy.
  • To the Old Street Road we went and there inquired at Mrs. Guppy's
  • residence for Mrs. Guppy. Mrs. Guppy, occupying the parlours and
  • having indeed been visibly in danger of cracking herself like a nut
  • in the front-parlour door by peeping out before she was asked for,
  • immediately presented herself and requested us to walk in. She was an
  • old lady in a large cap, with rather a red nose and rather an
  • unsteady eye, but smiling all over. Her close little sitting-room was
  • prepared for a visit, and there was a portrait of her son in it
  • which, I had almost written here, was more like than life: it
  • insisted upon him with such obstinacy, and was so determined not to
  • let him off.
  • Not only was the portrait there, but we found the original there too.
  • He was dressed in a great many colours and was discovered at a table
  • reading law-papers with his forefinger to his forehead.
  • "Miss Summerson," said Mr. Guppy, rising, "this is indeed an oasis.
  • Mother, will you be so good as to put a chair for the other lady and
  • get out of the gangway."
  • Mrs. Guppy, whose incessant smiling gave her quite a waggish
  • appearance, did as her son requested and then sat down in a corner,
  • holding her pocket handkerchief to her chest, like a fomentation,
  • with both hands.
  • I presented Caddy, and Mr. Guppy said that any friend of mine was
  • more than welcome. I then proceeded to the object of my visit.
  • "I took the liberty of sending you a note, sir," said I.
  • Mr. Guppy acknowledged the receipt by taking it out of his
  • breast-pocket, putting it to his lips, and returning it to his pocket
  • with a bow. Mr. Guppy's mother was so diverted that she rolled her
  • head as she smiled and made a silent appeal to Caddy with her elbow.
  • "Could I speak to you alone for a moment?" said I.
  • Anything like the jocoseness of Mr. Guppy's mother just now, I think
  • I never saw. She made no sound of laughter, but she rolled her head,
  • and shook it, and put her handkerchief to her mouth, and appealed to
  • Caddy with her elbow, and her hand, and her shoulder, and was so
  • unspeakably entertained altogether that it was with some difficulty
  • she could marshal Caddy through the little folding-door into her
  • bedroom adjoining.
  • "Miss Summerson," said Mr. Guppy, "you will excuse the waywardness of
  • a parent ever mindful of a son's appiness. My mother, though highly
  • exasperating to the feelings, is actuated by maternal dictates."
  • I could hardly have believed that anybody could in a moment have
  • turned so red or changed so much as Mr. Guppy did when I now put up
  • my veil.
  • "I asked the favour of seeing you for a few moments here," said I,
  • "in preference to calling at Mr. Kenge's because, remembering what
  • you said on an occasion when you spoke to me in confidence, I feared
  • I might otherwise cause you some embarrassment, Mr. Guppy."
  • I caused him embarrassment enough as it was, I am sure. I never saw
  • such faltering, such confusion, such amazement and apprehension.
  • "Miss Summerson," stammered Mr. Guppy, "I--I--beg your pardon, but in
  • our profession--we--we--find it necessary to be explicit. You have
  • referred to an occasion, miss, when I--when I did myself the honour
  • of making a declaration which--"
  • Something seemed to rise in his throat that he could not possibly
  • swallow. He put his hand there, coughed, made faces, tried again to
  • swallow it, coughed again, made faces again, looked all round the
  • room, and fluttered his papers.
  • "A kind of giddy sensation has come upon me, miss," he explained,
  • "which rather knocks me over. I--er--a little subject to this sort of
  • thing--er--by George!"
  • I gave him a little time to recover. He consumed it in putting his
  • hand to his forehead and taking it away again, and in backing his
  • chair into the corner behind him.
  • "My intention was to remark, miss," said Mr. Guppy, "dear
  • me--something bronchial, I think--hem!--to remark that you was so
  • good on that occasion as to repel and repudiate that declaration.
  • You--you wouldn't perhaps object to admit that? Though no witnesses
  • are present, it might be a satisfaction to--to your mind--if you was
  • to put in that admission."
  • "There can be no doubt," said I, "that I declined your proposal
  • without any reservation or qualification whatever, Mr. Guppy."
  • "Thank you, miss," he returned, measuring the table with his troubled
  • hands. "So far that's satisfactory, and it does you credit. Er--this
  • is certainly bronchial!--must be in the tubes--er--you wouldn't
  • perhaps be offended if I was to mention--not that it's necessary, for
  • your own good sense or any person's sense must show 'em that--if I
  • was to mention that such declaration on my part was final, and there
  • terminated?"
  • "I quite understand that," said I.
  • "Perhaps--er--it may not be worth the form, but it might be a
  • satisfaction to your mind--perhaps you wouldn't object to admit that,
  • miss?" said Mr. Guppy.
  • "I admit it most fully and freely," said I.
  • "Thank you," returned Mr. Guppy. "Very honourable, I am sure. I
  • regret that my arrangements in life, combined with circumstances over
  • which I have no control, will put it out of my power ever to fall
  • back upon that offer or to renew it in any shape or form whatever,
  • but it will ever be a retrospect entwined--er--with friendship's
  • bowers." Mr. Guppy's bronchitis came to his relief and stopped his
  • measurement of the table.
  • "I may now perhaps mention what I wished to say to you?" I began.
  • "I shall be honoured, I am sure," said Mr. Guppy. "I am so persuaded
  • that your own good sense and right feeling, miss, will--will keep you
  • as square as possible--that I can have nothing but pleasure, I am
  • sure, in hearing any observations you may wish to offer."
  • "You were so good as to imply, on that occasion--"
  • "Excuse me, miss," said Mr. Guppy, "but we had better not travel out
  • of the record into implication. I cannot admit that I implied
  • anything."
  • "You said on that occasion," I recommenced, "that you might possibly
  • have the means of advancing my interests and promoting my fortunes by
  • making discoveries of which I should be the subject. I presume that
  • you founded that belief upon your general knowledge of my being an
  • orphan girl, indebted for everything to the benevolence of Mr.
  • Jarndyce. Now, the beginning and the end of what I have come to beg
  • of you is, Mr. Guppy, that you will have the kindness to relinquish
  • all idea of so serving me. I have thought of this sometimes, and I
  • have thought of it most lately--since I have been ill. At length I
  • have decided, in case you should at any time recall that purpose and
  • act upon it in any way, to come to you and assure you that you are
  • altogether mistaken. You could make no discovery in reference to me
  • that would do me the least service or give me the least pleasure. I
  • am acquainted with my personal history, and I have it in my power to
  • assure you that you never can advance my welfare by such means. You
  • may, perhaps, have abandoned this project a long time. If so, excuse
  • my giving you unnecessary trouble. If not, I entreat you, on the
  • assurance I have given you, henceforth to lay it aside. I beg you to
  • do this, for my peace."
  • "I am bound to confess," said Mr. Guppy, "that you express yourself,
  • miss, with that good sense and right feeling for which I gave you
  • credit. Nothing can be more satisfactory than such right feeling, and
  • if I mistook any intentions on your part just now, I am prepared to
  • tender a full apology. I should wish to be understood, miss, as
  • hereby offering that apology--limiting it, as your own good sense and
  • right feeling will point out the necessity of, to the present
  • proceedings."
  • I must say for Mr. Guppy that the snuffling manner he had had upon
  • him improved very much. He seemed truly glad to be able to do
  • something I asked, and he looked ashamed.
  • "If you will allow me to finish what I have to say at once so that I
  • may have no occasion to resume," I went on, seeing him about to
  • speak, "you will do me a kindness, sir. I come to you as privately as
  • possible because you announced this impression of yours to me in a
  • confidence which I have really wished to respect--and which I always
  • have respected, as you remember. I have mentioned my illness. There
  • really is no reason why I should hesitate to say that I know very
  • well that any little delicacy I might have had in making a request to
  • you is quite removed. Therefore I make the entreaty I have now
  • preferred, and I hope you will have sufficient consideration for me
  • to accede to it."
  • I must do Mr. Guppy the further justice of saying that he had looked
  • more and more ashamed and that he looked most ashamed and very
  • earnest when he now replied with a burning face, "Upon my word and
  • honour, upon my life, upon my soul, Miss Summerson, as I am a living
  • man, I'll act according to your wish! I'll never go another step in
  • opposition to it. I'll take my oath to it if it will be any
  • satisfaction to you. In what I promise at this present time touching
  • the matters now in question," continued Mr. Guppy rapidly, as if he
  • were repeating a familiar form of words, "I speak the truth, the
  • whole truth, and nothing but the truth, so--"
  • "I am quite satisfied," said I, rising at this point, "and I thank
  • you very much. Caddy, my dear, I am ready!"
  • Mr. Guppy's mother returned with Caddy (now making me the recipient
  • of her silent laughter and her nudges), and we took our leave. Mr.
  • Guppy saw us to the door with the air of one who was either
  • imperfectly awake or walking in his sleep; and we left him there,
  • staring.
  • But in a minute he came after us down the street without any hat, and
  • with his long hair all blown about, and stopped us, saying fervently,
  • "Miss Summerson, upon my honour and soul, you may depend upon me!"
  • "I do," said I, "quite confidently."
  • "I beg your pardon, miss," said Mr. Guppy, going with one leg and
  • staying with the other, "but this lady being present--your own
  • witness--it might be a satisfaction to your mind (which I should wish
  • to set at rest) if you was to repeat those admissions."
  • "Well, Caddy," said I, turning to her, "perhaps you will not be
  • surprised when I tell you, my dear, that there never has been any
  • engagement--"
  • "No proposal or promise of marriage whatsoever," suggested Mr. Guppy.
  • "No proposal or promise of marriage whatsoever," said I, "between
  • this gentleman--"
  • "William Guppy, of Penton Place, Pentonville, in the county of
  • Middlesex," he murmured.
  • "Between this gentleman, Mr. William Guppy, of Penton Place,
  • Pentonville, in the county of Middlesex, and myself."
  • "Thank you, miss," said Mr. Guppy. "Very full--er--excuse me--lady's
  • name, Christian and surname both?"
  • I gave them.
  • "Married woman, I believe?" said Mr. Guppy. "Married woman. Thank
  • you. Formerly Caroline Jellyby, spinster, then of Thavies Inn, within
  • the city of London, but extra-parochial; now of Newman Street, Oxford
  • Street. Much obliged."
  • He ran home and came running back again.
  • "Touching that matter, you know, I really and truly am very sorry
  • that my arrangements in life, combined with circumstances over which
  • I have no control, should prevent a renewal of what was wholly
  • terminated some time back," said Mr. Guppy to me forlornly and
  • despondently, "but it couldn't be. Now COULD it, you know! I only put
  • it to you."
  • I replied it certainly could not. The subject did not admit of a
  • doubt. He thanked me and ran to his mother's again--and back again.
  • "It's very honourable of you, miss, I am sure," said Mr. Guppy. "If
  • an altar could be erected in the bowers of friendship--but, upon my
  • soul, you may rely upon me in every respect save and except the
  • tender passion only!"
  • The struggle in Mr. Guppy's breast and the numerous oscillations it
  • occasioned him between his mother's door and us were sufficiently
  • conspicuous in the windy street (particularly as his hair wanted
  • cutting) to make us hurry away. I did so with a lightened heart; but
  • when we last looked back, Mr. Guppy was still oscillating in the same
  • troubled state of mind.
  • CHAPTER XXXIX
  • Attorney and Client
  • The name of Mr. Vholes, preceded by the legend Ground-Floor, is
  • inscribed upon a door-post in Symond's Inn, Chancery Lane--a little,
  • pale, wall-eyed, woebegone inn like a large dust-binn of two
  • compartments and a sifter. It looks as if Symond were a sparing man
  • in his way and constructed his inn of old building materials which
  • took kindly to the dry rot and to dirt and all things decaying and
  • dismal, and perpetuated Symond's memory with congenial shabbiness.
  • Quartered in this dingy hatchment commemorative of Symond are the
  • legal bearings of Mr. Vholes.
  • Mr. Vholes's office, in disposition retiring and in situation
  • retired, is squeezed up in a corner and blinks at a dead wall. Three
  • feet of knotty-floored dark passage bring the client to Mr. Vholes's
  • jet-black door, in an angle profoundly dark on the brightest
  • midsummer morning and encumbered by a black bulk-head of cellarage
  • staircase against which belated civilians generally strike their
  • brows. Mr. Vholes's chambers are on so small a scale that one clerk
  • can open the door without getting off his stool, while the other who
  • elbows him at the same desk has equal facilities for poking the fire.
  • A smell as of unwholesome sheep blending with the smell of must and
  • dust is referable to the nightly (and often daily) consumption of
  • mutton fat in candles and to the fretting of parchment forms and
  • skins in greasy drawers. The atmosphere is otherwise stale and close.
  • The place was last painted or whitewashed beyond the memory of man,
  • and the two chimneys smoke, and there is a loose outer surface of
  • soot everywhere, and the dull cracked windows in their heavy frames
  • have but one piece of character in them, which is a determination to
  • be always dirty and always shut unless coerced. This accounts for the
  • phenomenon of the weaker of the two usually having a bundle of
  • firewood thrust between its jaws in hot weather.
  • Mr. Vholes is a very respectable man. He has not a large business,
  • but he is a very respectable man. He is allowed by the greater
  • attorneys who have made good fortunes or are making them to be a most
  • respectable man. He never misses a chance in his practice, which is a
  • mark of respectability. He never takes any pleasure, which is another
  • mark of respectability. He is reserved and serious, which is another
  • mark of respectability. His digestion is impaired, which is highly
  • respectable. And he is making hay of the grass which is flesh, for
  • his three daughters. And his father is dependent on him in the Vale
  • of Taunton.
  • The one great principle of the English law is to make business for
  • itself. There is no other principle distinctly, certainly, and
  • consistently maintained through all its narrow turnings. Viewed by
  • this light it becomes a coherent scheme and not the monstrous maze
  • the laity are apt to think it. Let them but once clearly perceive
  • that its grand principle is to make business for itself at their
  • expense, and surely they will cease to grumble.
  • But not perceiving this quite plainly--only seeing it by halves in a
  • confused way--the laity sometimes suffer in peace and pocket, with a
  • bad grace, and DO grumble very much. Then this respectability of Mr.
  • Vholes is brought into powerful play against them. "Repeal this
  • statute, my good sir?" says Mr. Kenge to a smarting client. "Repeal
  • it, my dear sir? Never, with my consent. Alter this law, sir, and
  • what will be the effect of your rash proceeding on a class of
  • practitioners very worthily represented, allow me to say to you, by
  • the opposite attorney in the case, Mr. Vholes? Sir, that class of
  • practitioners would be swept from the face of the earth. Now you
  • cannot afford--I will say, the social system cannot afford--to lose
  • an order of men like Mr. Vholes. Diligent, persevering, steady, acute
  • in business. My dear sir, I understand your present feelings against
  • the existing state of things, which I grant to be a little hard in
  • your case; but I can never raise my voice for the demolition of a
  • class of men like Mr. Vholes." The respectability of Mr. Vholes has
  • even been cited with crushing effect before Parliamentary committees,
  • as in the following blue minutes of a distinguished attorney's
  • evidence. "Question (number five hundred and seventeen thousand eight
  • hundred and sixty-nine): If I understand you, these forms of practice
  • indisputably occasion delay? Answer: Yes, some delay. Question: And
  • great expense? Answer: Most assuredly they cannot be gone through for
  • nothing. Question: And unspeakable vexation? Answer: I am not
  • prepared to say that. They have never given ME any vexation; quite
  • the contrary. Question: But you think that their abolition would
  • damage a class of practitioners? Answer: I have no doubt of it.
  • Question: Can you instance any type of that class? Answer: Yes. I
  • would unhesitatingly mention Mr. Vholes. He would be ruined.
  • Question: Mr. Vholes is considered, in the profession, a respectable
  • man? Answer:"--which proved fatal to the inquiry for ten years--"Mr.
  • Vholes is considered, in the profession, a MOST respectable man."
  • So in familiar conversation, private authorities no less
  • disinterested will remark that they don't know what this age is
  • coming to, that we are plunging down precipices, that now here is
  • something else gone, that these changes are death to people like
  • Vholes--a man of undoubted respectability, with a father in the Vale
  • of Taunton, and three daughters at home. Take a few steps more in
  • this direction, say they, and what is to become of Vholes's father?
  • Is he to perish? And of Vholes's daughters? Are they to be
  • shirt-makers, or governesses? As though, Mr. Vholes and his relations
  • being minor cannibal chiefs and it being proposed to abolish
  • cannibalism, indignant champions were to put the case thus: Make
  • man-eating unlawful, and you starve the Vholeses!
  • In a word, Mr. Vholes, with his three daughters and his father in the
  • Vale of Taunton, is continually doing duty, like a piece of timber,
  • to shore up some decayed foundation that has become a pitfall and a
  • nuisance. And with a great many people in a great many instances, the
  • question is never one of a change from wrong to right (which is quite
  • an extraneous consideration), but is always one of injury or
  • advantage to that eminently respectable legion, Vholes.
  • The Chancellor is, within these ten minutes, "up" for the long
  • vacation. Mr. Vholes, and his young client, and several blue bags
  • hastily stuffed out of all regularity of form, as the larger sort of
  • serpents are in their first gorged state, have returned to the
  • official den. Mr. Vholes, quiet and unmoved, as a man of so much
  • respectability ought to be, takes off his close black gloves as if he
  • were skinning his hands, lifts off his tight hat as if he were
  • scalping himself, and sits down at his desk. The client throws his
  • hat and gloves upon the ground--tosses them anywhere, without looking
  • after them or caring where they go; flings himself into a chair, half
  • sighing and half groaning; rests his aching head upon his hand and
  • looks the portrait of young despair.
  • "Again nothing done!" says Richard. "Nothing, nothing done!"
  • "Don't say nothing done, sir," returns the placid Vholes. "That is
  • scarcely fair, sir, scarcely fair!"
  • "Why, what IS done?" says Richard, turning gloomily upon him.
  • "That may not be the whole question," returns Vholes, "The question
  • may branch off into what is doing, what is doing?"
  • "And what is doing?" asks the moody client.
  • Vholes, sitting with his arms on the desk, quietly bringing the tips
  • of his five right fingers to meet the tips of his five left fingers,
  • and quietly separating them again, and fixedly and slowly looking at
  • his client, replies, "A good deal is doing, sir. We have put our
  • shoulders to the wheel, Mr. Carstone, and the wheel is going round."
  • "Yes, with Ixion on it. How am I to get through the next four or five
  • accursed months?" exclaims the young man, rising from his chair and
  • walking about the room.
  • "Mr. C.," returns Vholes, following him close with his eyes wherever
  • he goes, "your spirits are hasty, and I am sorry for it on your
  • account. Excuse me if I recommend you not to chafe so much, not to be
  • so impetuous, not to wear yourself out so. You should have more
  • patience. You should sustain yourself better."
  • "I ought to imitate you, in fact, Mr. Vholes?" says Richard, sitting
  • down again with an impatient laugh and beating the devil's tattoo
  • with his boot on the patternless carpet.
  • "Sir," returns Vholes, always looking at the client as if he were
  • making a lingering meal of him with his eyes as well as with his
  • professional appetite. "Sir," returns Vholes with his inward manner
  • of speech and his bloodless quietude, "I should not have had the
  • presumption to propose myself as a model for your imitation or any
  • man's. Let me but leave the good name to my three daughters, and that
  • is enough for me; I am not a self-seeker. But since you mention me so
  • pointedly, I will acknowledge that I should like to impart to you a
  • little of my--come, sir, you are disposed to call it insensibility,
  • and I am sure I have no objection--say insensibility--a little of my
  • insensibility."
  • "Mr. Vholes," explains the client, somewhat abashed, "I had no
  • intention to accuse you of insensibility."
  • "I think you had, sir, without knowing it," returns the equable
  • Vholes. "Very naturally. It is my duty to attend to your interests
  • with a cool head, and I can quite understand that to your excited
  • feelings I may appear, at such times as the present, insensible. My
  • daughters may know me better; my aged father may know me better. But
  • they have known me much longer than you have, and the confiding eye
  • of affection is not the distrustful eye of business. Not that I
  • complain, sir, of the eye of business being distrustful; quite the
  • contrary. In attending to your interests, I wish to have all possible
  • checks upon me; it is right that I should have them; I court inquiry.
  • But your interests demand that I should be cool and methodical, Mr.
  • Carstone; and I cannot be otherwise--no, sir, not even to please
  • you."
  • Mr. Vholes, after glancing at the official cat who is patiently
  • watching a mouse's hole, fixes his charmed gaze again on his young
  • client and proceeds in his buttoned-up, half-audible voice as if
  • there were an unclean spirit in him that will neither come out nor
  • speak out, "What are you to do, sir, you inquire, during the
  • vacation. I should hope you gentlemen of the army may find many means
  • of amusing yourselves if you give your minds to it. If you had asked
  • me what I was to do during the vacation, I could have answered you
  • more readily. I am to attend to your interests. I am to be found
  • here, day by day, attending to your interests. That is my duty, Mr.
  • C., and term-time or vacation makes no difference to me. If you wish
  • to consult me as to your interests, you will find me here at all
  • times alike. Other professional men go out of town. I don't. Not that
  • I blame them for going; I merely say I don't go. This desk is your
  • rock, sir!"
  • Mr. Vholes gives it a rap, and it sounds as hollow as a coffin. Not
  • to Richard, though. There is encouragement in the sound to him.
  • Perhaps Mr. Vholes knows there is.
  • "I am perfectly aware, Mr. Vholes," says Richard, more familiarly and
  • good-humouredly, "that you are the most reliable fellow in the world
  • and that to have to do with you is to have to do with a man of
  • business who is not to be hoodwinked. But put yourself in my case,
  • dragging on this dislocated life, sinking deeper and deeper into
  • difficulty every day, continually hoping and continually
  • disappointed, conscious of change upon change for the worse in
  • myself, and of no change for the better in anything else, and you
  • will find it a dark-looking case sometimes, as I do."
  • "You know," says Mr. Vholes, "that I never give hopes, sir. I told
  • you from the first, Mr. C., that I never give hopes. Particularly in
  • a case like this, where the greater part of the costs comes out of
  • the estate, I should not be considerate of my good name if I gave
  • hopes. It might seem as if costs were my object. Still, when you say
  • there is no change for the better, I must, as a bare matter of fact,
  • deny that."
  • "Aye?" returns Richard, brightening. "But how do you make it out?"
  • "Mr. Carstone, you are represented by--"
  • "You said just now--a rock."
  • "Yes, sir," says Mr. Vholes, gently shaking his head and rapping the
  • hollow desk, with a sound as if ashes were falling on ashes, and dust
  • on dust, "a rock. That's something. You are separately represented,
  • and no longer hidden and lost in the interests of others. THAT'S
  • something. The suit does not sleep; we wake it up, we air it, we walk
  • it about. THAT'S something. It's not all Jarndyce, in fact as well as
  • in name. THAT'S something. Nobody has it all his own way now, sir.
  • And THAT'S something, surely."
  • Richard, his face flushing suddenly, strikes the desk with his
  • clenched hand.
  • "Mr. Vholes! If any man had told me when I first went to John
  • Jarndyce's house that he was anything but the disinterested friend he
  • seemed--that he was what he has gradually turned out to be--I could
  • have found no words strong enough to repel the slander; I could not
  • have defended him too ardently. So little did I know of the world!
  • Whereas now I do declare to you that he becomes to me the embodiment
  • of the suit; that in place of its being an abstraction, it is John
  • Jarndyce; that the more I suffer, the more indignant I am with him;
  • that every new delay and every new disappointment is only a new
  • injury from John Jarndyce's hand."
  • "No, no," says Vholes. "Don't say so. We ought to have patience, all
  • of us. Besides, I never disparage, sir. I never disparage."
  • "Mr. Vholes," returns the angry client. "You know as well as I that
  • he would have strangled the suit if he could."
  • "He was not active in it," Mr. Vholes admits with an appearance of
  • reluctance. "He certainly was not active in it. But however, but
  • however, he might have had amiable intentions. Who can read the
  • heart, Mr. C.!"
  • "You can," returns Richard.
  • "I, Mr. C.?"
  • "Well enough to know what his intentions were. Are or are not our
  • interests conflicting? Tell--me--that!" says Richard, accompanying
  • his last three words with three raps on his rock of trust.
  • "Mr. C.," returns Vholes, immovable in attitude and never winking his
  • hungry eyes, "I should be wanting in my duty as your professional
  • adviser, I should be departing from my fidelity to your interests, if
  • I represented those interests as identical with the interests of Mr.
  • Jarndyce. They are no such thing, sir. I never impute motives; I both
  • have and am a father, and I never impute motives. But I must not
  • shrink from a professional duty, even if it sows dissensions in
  • families. I understand you to be now consulting me professionally as
  • to your interests? You are so? I reply, then, they are not identical
  • with those of Mr. Jarndyce."
  • "Of course they are not!" cries Richard. "You found that out long
  • ago."
  • "Mr. C.," returns Vholes, "I wish to say no more of any third party
  • than is necessary. I wish to leave my good name unsullied, together
  • with any little property of which I may become possessed through
  • industry and perseverance, to my daughters Emma, Jane, and Caroline.
  • I also desire to live in amity with my professional brethren. When
  • Mr. Skimpole did me the honour, sir--I will not say the very high
  • honour, for I never stoop to flattery--of bringing us together in
  • this room, I mentioned to you that I could offer no opinion or advice
  • as to your interests while those interests were entrusted to another
  • member of the profession. And I spoke in such terms as I was bound to
  • speak of Kenge and Carboy's office, which stands high. You, sir,
  • thought fit to withdraw your interests from that keeping nevertheless
  • and to offer them to me. You brought them with clean hands, sir, and
  • I accepted them with clean hands. Those interests are now paramount
  • in this office. My digestive functions, as you may have heard me
  • mention, are not in a good state, and rest might improve them; but I
  • shall not rest, sir, while I am your representative. Whenever you
  • want me, you will find me here. Summon me anywhere, and I will come.
  • During the long vacation, sir, I shall devote my leisure to studying
  • your interests more and more closely and to making arrangements for
  • moving heaven and earth (including, of course, the Chancellor) after
  • Michaelmas term; and when I ultimately congratulate you, sir," says
  • Mr. Vholes with the severity of a determined man, "when I ultimately
  • congratulate you, sir, with all my heart, on your accession to
  • fortune--which, but that I never give hopes, I might say something
  • further about--you will owe me nothing beyond whatever little balance
  • may be then outstanding of the costs as between solicitor and client
  • not included in the taxed costs allowed out of the estate. I pretend
  • to no claim upon you, Mr. C., but for the zealous and active
  • discharge--not the languid and routine discharge, sir: that much
  • credit I stipulate for--of my professional duty. My duty prosperously
  • ended, all between us is ended."
  • Vholes finally adds, by way of rider to this declaration of his
  • principles, that as Mr. Carstone is about to rejoin his regiment,
  • perhaps Mr. C. will favour him with an order on his agent for twenty
  • pounds on account.
  • "For there have been many little consultations and attendances of
  • late, sir," observes Vholes, turning over the leaves of his diary,
  • "and these things mount up, and I don't profess to be a man of
  • capital. When we first entered on our present relations I stated to
  • you openly--it is a principle of mine that there never can be too
  • much openness between solicitor and client--that I was not a man of
  • capital and that if capital was your object you had better leave your
  • papers in Kenge's office. No, Mr. C., you will find none of the
  • advantages or disadvantages of capital here, sir. This," Vholes gives
  • the desk one hollow blow again, "is your rock; it pretends to be
  • nothing more."
  • The client, with his dejection insensibly relieved and his vague
  • hopes rekindled, takes pen and ink and writes the draft, not without
  • perplexed consideration and calculation of the date it may bear,
  • implying scant effects in the agent's hands. All the while, Vholes,
  • buttoned up in body and mind, looks at him attentively. All the
  • while, Vholes's official cat watches the mouse's hole.
  • Lastly, the client, shaking hands, beseeches Mr. Vholes, for heaven's
  • sake and earth's sake, to do his utmost to "pull him through" the
  • Court of Chancery. Mr. Vholes, who never gives hopes, lays his palm
  • upon the client's shoulder and answers with a smile, "Always here,
  • sir. Personally, or by letter, you will always find me here, sir,
  • with my shoulder to the wheel." Thus they part, and Vholes, left
  • alone, employs himself in carrying sundry little matters out of his
  • diary into his draft bill book for the ultimate behoof of his three
  • daughters. So might an industrious fox or bear make up his account of
  • chickens or stray travellers with an eye to his cubs, not to
  • disparage by that word the three raw-visaged, lank, and buttoned-up
  • maidens who dwell with the parent Vholes in an earthy cottage
  • situated in a damp garden at Kennington.
  • Richard, emerging from the heavy shade of Symond's Inn into the
  • sunshine of Chancery Lane--for there happens to be sunshine there
  • to-day--walks thoughtfully on, and turns into Lincoln's Inn, and
  • passes under the shadow of the Lincoln's Inn trees. On many such
  • loungers have the speckled shadows of those trees often fallen; on
  • the like bent head, the bitten nail, the lowering eye, the lingering
  • step, the purposeless and dreamy air, the good consuming and
  • consumed, the life turned sour. This lounger is not shabby yet, but
  • that may come. Chancery, which knows no wisdom but in precedent, is
  • very rich in such precedents; and why should one be different from
  • ten thousand?
  • Yet the time is so short since his depreciation began that as he
  • saunters away, reluctant to leave the spot for some long months
  • together, though he hates it, Richard himself may feel his own case
  • as if it were a startling one. While his heart is heavy with
  • corroding care, suspense, distrust, and doubt, it may have room for
  • some sorrowful wonder when he recalls how different his first visit
  • there, how different he, how different all the colours of his mind.
  • But injustice breeds injustice; the fighting with shadows and being
  • defeated by them necessitates the setting up of substances to combat;
  • from the impalpable suit which no man alive can understand, the time
  • for that being long gone by, it has become a gloomy relief to turn to
  • the palpable figure of the friend who would have saved him from this
  • ruin and make HIM his enemy. Richard has told Vholes the truth. Is he
  • in a hardened or a softened mood, he still lays his injuries equally
  • at that door; he was thwarted, in that quarter, of a set purpose, and
  • that purpose could only originate in the one subject that is
  • resolving his existence into itself; besides, it is a justification
  • to him in his own eyes to have an embodied antagonist and oppressor.
  • Is Richard a monster in all this, or would Chancery be found rich in
  • such precedents too if they could be got for citation from the
  • Recording Angel?
  • Two pairs of eyes not unused to such people look after him, as,
  • biting his nails and brooding, he crosses the square and is swallowed
  • up by the shadow of the southern gateway. Mr. Guppy and Mr. Weevle
  • are the possessors of those eyes, and they have been leaning in
  • conversation against the low stone parapet under the trees. He passes
  • close by them, seeing nothing but the ground.
  • "William," says Mr. Weevle, adjusting his whiskers, "there's
  • combustion going on there! It's not a case of spontaneous, but it's
  • smouldering combustion it is."
  • "Ah!" says Mr. Guppy. "He wouldn't keep out of Jarndyce, and I
  • suppose he's over head and ears in debt. I never knew much of him. He
  • was as high as the monument when he was on trial at our place. A good
  • riddance to me, whether as clerk or client! Well, Tony, that as I was
  • mentioning is what they're up to."
  • Mr. Guppy, refolding his arms, resettles himself against the parapet,
  • as resuming a conversation of interest.
  • "They are still up to it, sir," says Mr. Guppy, "still taking stock,
  • still examining papers, still going over the heaps and heaps of
  • rubbish. At this rate they'll be at it these seven years."
  • "And Small is helping?"
  • "Small left us at a week's notice. Told Kenge his grandfather's
  • business was too much for the old gentleman and he could better
  • himself by undertaking it. There had been a coolness between myself
  • and Small on account of his being so close. But he said you and I
  • began it, and as he had me there--for we did--I put our acquaintance
  • on the old footing. That's how I come to know what they're up to."
  • "You haven't looked in at all?"
  • "Tony," says Mr. Guppy, a little disconcerted, "to be unreserved with
  • you, I don't greatly relish the house, except in your company, and
  • therefore I have not; and therefore I proposed this little
  • appointment for our fetching away your things. There goes the hour by
  • the clock! Tony"--Mr. Guppy becomes mysteriously and tenderly
  • eloquent--"it is necessary that I should impress upon your mind once
  • more that circumstances over which I have no control have made a
  • melancholy alteration in my most cherished plans and in that
  • unrequited image which I formerly mentioned to you as a friend. That
  • image is shattered, and that idol is laid low. My only wish now in
  • connexion with the objects which I had an idea of carrying out in the
  • court with your aid as a friend is to let 'em alone and bury 'em in
  • oblivion. Do you think it possible, do you think it at all likely (I
  • put it to you, Tony, as a friend), from your knowledge of that
  • capricious and deep old character who fell a prey to the--spontaneous
  • element, do you, Tony, think it at all likely that on second thoughts
  • he put those letters away anywhere, after you saw him alive, and that
  • they were not destroyed that night?"
  • Mr. Weevle reflects for some time. Shakes his head. Decidedly thinks
  • not.
  • "Tony," says Mr. Guppy as they walk towards the court, "once again
  • understand me, as a friend. Without entering into further
  • explanations, I may repeat that the idol is down. I have no purpose
  • to serve now but burial in oblivion. To that I have pledged myself. I
  • owe it to myself, and I owe it to the shattered image, as also to the
  • circumstances over which I have no control. If you was to express to
  • me by a gesture, by a wink, that you saw lying anywhere in your late
  • lodgings any papers that so much as looked like the papers in
  • question, I would pitch them into the fire, sir, on my own
  • responsibility."
  • Mr. Weevle nods. Mr. Guppy, much elevated in his own opinion by
  • having delivered these observations, with an air in part forensic and
  • in part romantic--this gentleman having a passion for conducting
  • anything in the form of an examination, or delivering anything in the
  • form of a summing up or a speech--accompanies his friend with dignity
  • to the court.
  • Never since it has been a court has it had such a Fortunatus' purse
  • of gossip as in the proceedings at the rag and bottle shop.
  • Regularly, every morning at eight, is the elder Mr. Smallweed brought
  • down to the corner and carried in, accompanied by Mrs. Smallweed,
  • Judy, and Bart; and regularly, all day, do they all remain there
  • until nine at night, solaced by gipsy dinners, not abundant in
  • quantity, from the cook's shop, rummaging and searching, digging,
  • delving, and diving among the treasures of the late lamented. What
  • those treasures are they keep so secret that the court is maddened.
  • In its delirium it imagines guineas pouring out of tea-pots,
  • crown-pieces overflowing punch-bowls, old chairs and mattresses
  • stuffed with Bank of England notes. It possesses itself of the
  • sixpenny history (with highly coloured folding frontispiece) of Mr.
  • Daniel Dancer and his sister, and also of Mr. Elwes, of Suffolk, and
  • transfers all the facts from those authentic narratives to Mr. Krook.
  • Twice when the dustman is called in to carry off a cartload of old
  • paper, ashes, and broken bottles, the whole court assembles and pries
  • into the baskets as they come forth. Many times the two gentlemen who
  • write with the ravenous little pens on the tissue-paper are seen
  • prowling in the neighbourhood--shy of each other, their late
  • partnership being dissolved. The Sol skilfully carries a vein of the
  • prevailing interest through the Harmonic nights. Little Swills, in
  • what are professionally known as "patter" allusions to the subject,
  • is received with loud applause; and the same vocalist "gags" in the
  • regular business like a man inspired. Even Miss M. Melvilleson, in
  • the revived Caledonian melody of "We're a-Nodding," points the
  • sentiment that "the dogs love broo" (whatever the nature of that
  • refreshment may be) with such archness and such a turn of the head
  • towards next door that she is immediately understood to mean Mr.
  • Smallweed loves to find money, and is nightly honoured with a double
  • encore. For all this, the court discovers nothing; and as Mrs. Piper
  • and Mrs. Perkins now communicate to the late lodger whose appearance
  • is the signal for a general rally, it is in one continual ferment to
  • discover everything, and more.
  • Mr. Weevle and Mr. Guppy, with every eye in the court's head upon
  • them, knock at the closed door of the late lamented's house, in a
  • high state of popularity. But being contrary to the court's
  • expectation admitted, they immediately become unpopular and are
  • considered to mean no good.
  • The shutters are more or less closed all over the house, and the
  • ground-floor is sufficiently dark to require candles. Introduced into
  • the back shop by Mr. Smallweed the younger, they, fresh from the
  • sunlight, can at first see nothing save darkness and shadows; but
  • they gradually discern the elder Mr. Smallweed seated in his chair
  • upon the brink of a well or grave of waste-paper, the virtuous Judy
  • groping therein like a female sexton, and Mrs. Smallweed on the level
  • ground in the vicinity snowed up in a heap of paper fragments, print,
  • and manuscript which would appear to be the accumulated compliments
  • that have been sent flying at her in the course of the day. The whole
  • party, Small included, are blackened with dust and dirt and present a
  • fiendish appearance not relieved by the general aspect of the room.
  • There is more litter and lumber in it than of old, and it is dirtier
  • if possible; likewise, it is ghostly with traces of its dead
  • inhabitant and even with his chalked writing on the wall.
  • On the entrance of visitors, Mr. Smallweed and Judy simultaneously
  • fold their arms and stop in their researches.
  • "Aha!" croaks the old gentleman. "How de do, gentlemen, how de do!
  • Come to fetch your property, Mr. Weevle? That's well, that's well.
  • Ha! Ha! We should have been forced to sell you up, sir, to pay your
  • warehouse room if you had left it here much longer. You feel quite at
  • home here again, I dare say? Glad to see you, glad to see you!"
  • Mr. Weevle, thanking him, casts an eye about. Mr. Guppy's eye follows
  • Mr. Weevle's eye. Mr. Weevle's eye comes back without any new
  • intelligence in it. Mr. Guppy's eye comes back and meets Mr.
  • Smallweed's eye. That engaging old gentleman is still murmuring, like
  • some wound-up instrument running down, "How de do, sir--how
  • de--how--" And then having run down, he lapses into grinning silence,
  • as Mr. Guppy starts at seeing Mr. Tulkinghorn standing in the
  • darkness opposite with his hands behind him.
  • "Gentleman so kind as to act as my solicitor," says Grandfather
  • Smallweed. "I am not the sort of client for a gentleman of such note,
  • but he is so good!"
  • Mr. Guppy, slightly nudging his friend to take another look, makes a
  • shuffling bow to Mr. Tulkinghorn, who returns it with an easy nod.
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn is looking on as if he had nothing else to do and
  • were rather amused by the novelty.
  • "A good deal of property here, sir, I should say," Mr. Guppy observes
  • to Mr. Smallweed.
  • "Principally rags and rubbish, my dear friend! Rags and rubbish! Me
  • and Bart and my granddaughter Judy are endeavouring to make out an
  • inventory of what's worth anything to sell. But we haven't come to
  • much as yet; we--haven't--come--to--hah!"
  • Mr. Smallweed has run down again, while Mr. Weevle's eye, attended by
  • Mr. Guppy's eye, has again gone round the room and come back.
  • "Well, sir," says Mr. Weevle. "We won't intrude any longer if you'll
  • allow us to go upstairs."
  • "Anywhere, my dear sir, anywhere! You're at home. Make yourself so,
  • pray!"
  • As they go upstairs, Mr. Guppy lifts his eyebrows inquiringly and
  • looks at Tony. Tony shakes his head. They find the old room very dull
  • and dismal, with the ashes of the fire that was burning on that
  • memorable night yet in the discoloured grate. They have a great
  • disinclination to touch any object, and carefully blow the dust from
  • it first. Nor are they desirous to prolong their visit, packing the
  • few movables with all possible speed and never speaking above a
  • whisper.
  • "Look here," says Tony, recoiling. "Here's that horrible cat coming
  • in!"
  • Mr. Guppy retreats behind a chair. "Small told me of her. She went
  • leaping and bounding and tearing about that night like a dragon, and
  • got out on the house-top, and roamed about up there for a fortnight,
  • and then came tumbling down the chimney very thin. Did you ever see
  • such a brute? Looks as if she knew all about it, don't she? Almost
  • looks as if she was Krook. Shoohoo! Get out, you goblin!"
  • Lady Jane, in the doorway, with her tiger snarl from ear to ear and
  • her club of a tail, shows no intention of obeying; but Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn stumbling over her, she spits at his rusty legs, and
  • swearing wrathfully, takes her arched back upstairs. Possibly to roam
  • the house-tops again and return by the chimney.
  • "Mr. Guppy," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, "could I have a word with you?"
  • Mr. Guppy is engaged in collecting the Galaxy Gallery of British
  • Beauty from the wall and depositing those works of art in their old
  • ignoble band-box. "Sir," he returns, reddening, "I wish to act with
  • courtesy towards every member of the profession, and especially, I am
  • sure, towards a member of it so well known as yourself--I will truly
  • add, sir, so distinguished as yourself. Still, Mr. Tulkinghorn, sir,
  • I must stipulate that if you have any word with me, that word is
  • spoken in the presence of my friend."
  • "Oh, indeed?" says Mr. Tulkinghorn.
  • "Yes, sir. My reasons are not of a personal nature at all, but they
  • are amply sufficient for myself."
  • "No doubt, no doubt." Mr. Tulkinghorn is as imperturbable as the
  • hearthstone to which he has quietly walked. "The matter is not of
  • that consequence that I need put you to the trouble of making any
  • conditions, Mr. Guppy." He pauses here to smile, and his smile is as
  • dull and rusty as his pantaloons. "You are to be congratulated, Mr.
  • Guppy; you are a fortunate young man, sir."
  • "Pretty well so, Mr. Tulkinghorn; I don't complain."
  • "Complain? High friends, free admission to great houses, and access
  • to elegant ladies! Why, Mr. Guppy, there are people in London who
  • would give their ears to be you."
  • Mr. Guppy, looking as if he would give his own reddening and still
  • reddening ears to be one of those people at present instead of
  • himself, replies, "Sir, if I attend to my profession and do what is
  • right by Kenge and Carboy, my friends and acquaintances are of no
  • consequence to them nor to any member of the profession, not
  • excepting Mr. Tulkinghorn of the Fields. I am not under any
  • obligation to explain myself further; and with all respect for you,
  • sir, and without offence--I repeat, without offence--"
  • "Oh, certainly!"
  • "--I don't intend to do it."
  • "Quite so," says Mr. Tulkinghorn with a calm nod. "Very good; I see
  • by these portraits that you take a strong interest in the fashionable
  • great, sir?"
  • He addresses this to the astounded Tony, who admits the soft
  • impeachment.
  • "A virtue in which few Englishmen are deficient," observes Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn. He has been standing on the hearthstone with his back to
  • the smoked chimney-piece, and now turns round with his glasses to his
  • eyes. "Who is this? 'Lady Dedlock.' Ha! A very good likeness in its
  • way, but it wants force of character. Good day to you, gentlemen;
  • good day!"
  • When he has walked out, Mr. Guppy, in a great perspiration, nerves
  • himself to the hasty completion of the taking down of the Galaxy
  • Gallery, concluding with Lady Dedlock.
  • "Tony," he says hurriedly to his astonished companion, "let us be
  • quick in putting the things together and in getting out of this
  • place. It were in vain longer to conceal from you, Tony, that between
  • myself and one of the members of a swan-like aristocracy whom I now
  • hold in my hand, there has been undivulged communication and
  • association. The time might have been when I might have revealed it
  • to you. It never will be more. It is due alike to the oath I have
  • taken, alike to the shattered idol, and alike to circumstances over
  • which I have no control, that the whole should be buried in oblivion.
  • I charge you as a friend, by the interest you have ever testified in
  • the fashionable intelligence, and by any little advances with which I
  • may have been able to accommodate you, so to bury it without a word
  • of inquiry!"
  • This charge Mr. Guppy delivers in a state little short of forensic
  • lunacy, while his friend shows a dazed mind in his whole head of hair
  • and even in his cultivated whiskers.
  • CHAPTER XL
  • National and Domestic
  • England has been in a dreadful state for some weeks. Lord Coodle
  • would go out, Sir Thomas Doodle wouldn't come in, and there being
  • nobody in Great Britain (to speak of) except Coodle and Doodle, there
  • has been no government. It is a mercy that the hostile meeting
  • between those two great men, which at one time seemed inevitable, did
  • not come off, because if both pistols had taken effect, and Coodle
  • and Doodle had killed each other, it is to be presumed that England
  • must have waited to be governed until young Coodle and young Doodle,
  • now in frocks and long stockings, were grown up. This stupendous
  • national calamity, however, was averted by Lord Coodle's making the
  • timely discovery that if in the heat of debate he had said that he
  • scorned and despised the whole ignoble career of Sir Thomas Doodle,
  • he had merely meant to say that party differences should never induce
  • him to withhold from it the tribute of his warmest admiration; while
  • it as opportunely turned out, on the other hand, that Sir Thomas
  • Doodle had in his own bosom expressly booked Lord Coodle to go down
  • to posterity as the mirror of virtue and honour. Still England has
  • been some weeks in the dismal strait of having no pilot (as was well
  • observed by Sir Leicester Dedlock) to weather the storm; and the
  • marvellous part of the matter is that England has not appeared to
  • care very much about it, but has gone on eating and drinking and
  • marrying and giving in marriage as the old world did in the days
  • before the flood. But Coodle knew the danger, and Doodle knew the
  • danger, and all their followers and hangers-on had the clearest
  • possible perception of the danger. At last Sir Thomas Doodle has not
  • only condescended to come in, but has done it handsomely, bringing in
  • with him all his nephews, all his male cousins, and all his
  • brothers-in-law. So there is hope for the old ship yet.
  • Doodle has found that he must throw himself upon the country, chiefly
  • in the form of sovereigns and beer. In this metamorphosed state he is
  • available in a good many places simultaneously and can throw himself
  • upon a considerable portion of the country at one time. Britannia
  • being much occupied in pocketing Doodle in the form of sovereigns,
  • and swallowing Doodle in the form of beer, and in swearing herself
  • black in the face that she does neither--plainly to the advancement
  • of her glory and morality--the London season comes to a sudden end,
  • through all the Doodleites and Coodleites dispersing to assist
  • Britannia in those religious exercises.
  • Hence Mrs. Rouncewell, housekeeper at Chesney Wold, foresees, though
  • no instructions have yet come down, that the family may shortly be
  • expected, together with a pretty large accession of cousins and
  • others who can in any way assist the great Constitutional work. And
  • hence the stately old dame, taking Time by the forelock, leads him up
  • and down the staircases, and along the galleries and passages, and
  • through the rooms, to witness before he grows any older that
  • everything is ready, that floors are rubbed bright, carpets spread,
  • curtains shaken out, beds puffed and patted, still-room and kitchen
  • cleared for action--all things prepared as beseems the Dedlock
  • dignity.
  • This present summer evening, as the sun goes down, the preparations
  • are complete. Dreary and solemn the old house looks, with so many
  • appliances of habitation and with no inhabitants except the pictured
  • forms upon the walls. So did these come and go, a Dedlock in
  • possession might have ruminated passing along; so did they see this
  • gallery hushed and quiet, as I see it now; so think, as I think, of
  • the gap that they would make in this domain when they were gone; so
  • find it, as I find it, difficult to believe that it could be without
  • them; so pass from my world, as I pass from theirs, now closing the
  • reverberating door; so leave no blank to miss them, and so die.
  • Through some of the fiery windows beautiful from without, and set, at
  • this sunset hour, not in dull-grey stone but in a glorious house of
  • gold, the light excluded at other windows pours in rich, lavish,
  • overflowing like the summer plenty in the land. Then do the frozen
  • Dedlocks thaw. Strange movements come upon their features as the
  • shadows of leaves play there. A dense justice in a corner is beguiled
  • into a wink. A staring baronet, with a truncheon, gets a dimple in
  • his chin. Down into the bosom of a stony shepherdess there steals a
  • fleck of light and warmth that would have done it good a hundred
  • years ago. One ancestress of Volumnia, in high-heeled shoes, very
  • like her--casting the shadow of that virgin event before her full two
  • centuries--shoots out into a halo and becomes a saint. A maid of
  • honour of the court of Charles the Second, with large round eyes (and
  • other charms to correspond), seems to bathe in glowing water, and it
  • ripples as it glows.
  • But the fire of the sun is dying. Even now the floor is dusky, and
  • shadow slowly mounts the walls, bringing the Dedlocks down like age
  • and death. And now, upon my Lady's picture over the great
  • chimney-piece, a weird shade falls from some old tree, that turns it
  • pale, and flutters it, and looks as if a great arm held a veil or
  • hood, watching an opportunity to draw it over her. Higher and darker
  • rises shadow on the wall--now a red gloom on the ceiling--now the
  • fire is out.
  • All that prospect, which from the terrace looked so near, has moved
  • solemnly away and changed--not the first nor the last of beautiful
  • things that look so near and will so change--into a distant phantom.
  • Light mists arise, and the dew falls, and all the sweet scents in the
  • garden are heavy in the air. Now the woods settle into great masses
  • as if they were each one profound tree. And now the moon rises to
  • separate them, and to glimmer here and there in horizontal lines
  • behind their stems, and to make the avenue a pavement of light among
  • high cathedral arches fantastically broken.
  • Now the moon is high; and the great house, needing habitation more
  • than ever, is like a body without life. Now it is even awful,
  • stealing through it, to think of the live people who have slept in
  • the solitary bedrooms, to say nothing of the dead. Now is the time
  • for shadow, when every corner is a cavern and every downward step a
  • pit, when the stained glass is reflected in pale and faded hues upon
  • the floors, when anything and everything can be made of the heavy
  • staircase beams excepting their own proper shapes, when the armour
  • has dull lights upon it not easily to be distinguished from stealthy
  • movement, and when barred helmets are frightfully suggestive of heads
  • inside. But of all the shadows in Chesney Wold, the shadow in the
  • long drawing-room upon my Lady's picture is the first to come, the
  • last to be disturbed. At this hour and by this light it changes into
  • threatening hands raised up and menacing the handsome face with every
  • breath that stirs.
  • "She is not well, ma'am," says a groom in Mrs. Rouncewell's
  • audience-chamber.
  • "My Lady not well! What's the matter?"
  • "Why, my Lady has been but poorly, ma'am, since she was last here--I
  • don't mean with the family, ma'am, but when she was here as a bird of
  • passage like. My Lady has not been out much, for her, and has kept
  • her room a good deal."
  • "Chesney Wold, Thomas," rejoins the housekeeper with proud
  • complacency, "will set my Lady up! There is no finer air and no
  • healthier soil in the world!"
  • Thomas may have his own personal opinions on this subject, probably
  • hints them in his manner of smoothing his sleek head from the nape of
  • his neck to his temples, but he forbears to express them further and
  • retires to the servants' hall to regale on cold meat-pie and ale.
  • This groom is the pilot-fish before the nobler shark. Next evening,
  • down come Sir Leicester and my Lady with their largest retinue, and
  • down come the cousins and others from all the points of the compass.
  • Thenceforth for some weeks backward and forward rush mysterious men
  • with no names, who fly about all those particular parts of the
  • country on which Doodle is at present throwing himself in an
  • auriferous and malty shower, but who are merely persons of a restless
  • disposition and never do anything anywhere.
  • On these national occasions Sir Leicester finds the cousins useful. A
  • better man than the Honourable Bob Stables to meet the Hunt at
  • dinner, there could not possibly be. Better got up gentlemen than the
  • other cousins to ride over to polling-booths and hustings here and
  • there, and show themselves on the side of England, it would be hard
  • to find. Volumnia is a little dim, but she is of the true descent;
  • and there are many who appreciate her sprightly conversation, her
  • French conundrums so old as to have become in the cycles of time
  • almost new again, the honour of taking the fair Dedlock in to dinner,
  • or even the privilege of her hand in the dance. On these national
  • occasions dancing may be a patriotic service, and Volumnia is
  • constantly seen hopping about for the good of an ungrateful and
  • unpensioning country.
  • My Lady takes no great pains to entertain the numerous guests, and
  • being still unwell, rarely appears until late in the day. But at all
  • the dismal dinners, leaden lunches, basilisk balls, and other
  • melancholy pageants, her mere appearance is a relief. As to Sir
  • Leicester, he conceives it utterly impossible that anything can be
  • wanting, in any direction, by any one who has the good fortune to be
  • received under that roof; and in a state of sublime satisfaction, he
  • moves among the company, a magnificent refrigerator.
  • Daily the cousins trot through dust and canter over roadside turf,
  • away to hustings and polling-booths (with leather gloves and
  • hunting-whips for the counties and kid gloves and riding-canes for
  • the boroughs), and daily bring back reports on which Sir Leicester
  • holds forth after dinner. Daily the restless men who have no
  • occupation in life present the appearance of being rather busy. Daily
  • Volumnia has a little cousinly talk with Sir Leicester on the state
  • of the nation, from which Sir Leicester is disposed to conclude that
  • Volumnia is a more reflecting woman than he had thought her.
  • "How are we getting on?" says Miss Volumnia, clasping her hands. "ARE
  • we safe?"
  • The mighty business is nearly over by this time, and Doodle will
  • throw himself off the country in a few days more. Sir Leicester has
  • just appeared in the long drawing-room after dinner, a bright
  • particular star surrounded by clouds of cousins.
  • "Volumnia," replies Sir Leicester, who has a list in his hand, "we
  • are doing tolerably."
  • "Only tolerably!"
  • Although it is summer weather, Sir Leicester always has his own
  • particular fire in the evening. He takes his usual screened seat near
  • it and repeats with much firmness and a little displeasure, as who
  • should say, I am not a common man, and when I say tolerably, it must
  • not be understood as a common expression, "Volumnia, we are doing
  • tolerably."
  • "At least there is no opposition to YOU," Volumnia asserts with
  • confidence.
  • "No, Volumnia. This distracted country has lost its senses in many
  • respects, I grieve to say, but--"
  • "It is not so mad as that. I am glad to hear it!"
  • Volumnia's finishing the sentence restores her to favour. Sir
  • Leicester, with a gracious inclination of his head, seems to say to
  • himself, "A sensible woman this, on the whole, though occasionally
  • precipitate."
  • In fact, as to this question of opposition, the fair Dedlock's
  • observation was superfluous, Sir Leicester on these occasions always
  • delivering in his own candidateship, as a kind of handsome wholesale
  • order to be promptly executed. Two other little seats that belong to
  • him he treats as retail orders of less importance, merely sending
  • down the men and signifying to the tradespeople, "You will have the
  • goodness to make these materials into two members of Parliament and
  • to send them home when done."
  • "I regret to say, Volumnia, that in many places the people have shown
  • a bad spirit, and that this opposition to the government has been of
  • a most determined and most implacable description."
  • "W-r-retches!" says Volumnia.
  • "Even," proceeds Sir Leicester, glancing at the circumjacent cousins
  • on sofas and ottomans, "even in many--in fact, in most--of those
  • places in which the government has carried it against a faction--"
  • (Note, by the way, that the Coodleites are always a faction with the
  • Doodleites, and that the Doodleites occupy exactly the same position
  • towards the Coodleites.)
  • "--Even in them I am shocked, for the credit of Englishmen, to be
  • constrained to inform you that the party has not triumphed without
  • being put to an enormous expense. Hundreds," says Sir Leicester,
  • eyeing the cousins with increasing dignity and swelling indignation,
  • "hundreds of thousands of pounds!"
  • If Volumnia have a fault, it is the fault of being a trifle too
  • innocent, seeing that the innocence which would go extremely well
  • with a sash and tucker is a little out of keeping with the rouge and
  • pearl necklace. Howbeit, impelled by innocence, she asks, "What for?"
  • "Volumnia," remonstrates Sir Leicester with his utmost severity.
  • "Volumnia!"
  • "No, no, I don't mean what for," cries Volumnia with her favourite
  • little scream. "How stupid I am! I mean what a pity!"
  • "I am glad," returns Sir Leicester, "that you do mean what a pity."
  • Volumnia hastens to express her opinion that the shocking people
  • ought to be tried as traitors and made to support the party.
  • "I am glad, Volumnia," repeats Sir Leicester, unmindful of these
  • mollifying sentiments, "that you do mean what a pity. It is
  • disgraceful to the electors. But as you, though inadvertently and
  • without intending so unreasonable a question, asked me 'what for?'
  • let me reply to you. For necessary expenses. And I trust to your good
  • sense, Volumnia, not to pursue the subject, here or elsewhere."
  • Sir Leicester feels it incumbent on him to observe a crushing aspect
  • towards Volumnia because it is whispered abroad that these necessary
  • expenses will, in some two hundred election petitions, be
  • unpleasantly connected with the word bribery, and because some
  • graceless jokers have consequently suggested the omission from the
  • Church service of the ordinary supplication in behalf of the High
  • Court of Parliament and have recommended instead that the prayers of
  • the congregation be requested for six hundred and fifty-eight
  • gentlemen in a very unhealthy state.
  • "I suppose," observes Volumnia, having taken a little time to recover
  • her spirits after her late castigation, "I suppose Mr. Tulkinghorn
  • has been worked to death."
  • "I don't know," says Sir Leicester, opening his eyes, "why Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn should be worked to death. I don't know what Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn's engagements may be. He is not a candidate."
  • Volumnia had thought he might have been employed. Sir Leicester could
  • desire to know by whom, and what for. Volumnia, abashed again,
  • suggests, by somebody--to advise and make arrangements. Sir Leicester
  • is not aware that any client of Mr. Tulkinghorn has been in need of
  • his assistance.
  • Lady Dedlock, seated at an open window with her arm upon its
  • cushioned ledge and looking out at the evening shadows falling on the
  • park, has seemed to attend since the lawyer's name was mentioned.
  • A languid cousin with a moustache in a state of extreme debility now
  • observes from his couch that man told him ya'as'dy that Tulkinghorn
  • had gone down t' that iron place t' give legal 'pinion 'bout
  • something, and that contest being over t' day, 'twould be highly
  • jawlly thing if Tulkinghorn should 'pear with news that Coodle man
  • was floored.
  • Mercury in attendance with coffee informs Sir Leicester, hereupon,
  • that Mr. Tulkinghorn has arrived and is taking dinner. My Lady turns
  • her head inward for the moment, then looks out again as before.
  • Volumnia is charmed to hear that her delight is come. He is so
  • original, such a stolid creature, such an immense being for knowing
  • all sorts of things and never telling them! Volumnia is persuaded
  • that he must be a Freemason. Is sure he is at the head of a lodge,
  • and wears short aprons, and is made a perfect idol of with
  • candlesticks and trowels. These lively remarks the fair Dedlock
  • delivers in her youthful manner, while making a purse.
  • "He has not been here once," she adds, "since I came. I really had
  • some thoughts of breaking my heart for the inconstant creature. I had
  • almost made up my mind that he was dead."
  • It may be the gathering gloom of evening, or it may be the darker
  • gloom within herself, but a shade is on my Lady's face, as if she
  • thought, "I would he were!"
  • "Mr. Tulkinghorn," says Sir Leicester, "is always welcome here and
  • always discreet wheresoever he is. A very valuable person, and
  • deservedly respected."
  • The debilitated cousin supposes he is "'normously rich fler."
  • "He has a stake in the country," says Sir Leicester, "I have no
  • doubt. He is, of course, handsomely paid, and he associates almost on
  • a footing of equality with the highest society."
  • Everybody starts. For a gun is fired close by.
  • "Good gracious, what's that?" cries Volumnia with her little withered
  • scream.
  • "A rat," says my Lady. "And they have shot him."
  • Enter Mr. Tulkinghorn, followed by Mercuries with lamps and candles.
  • "No, no," says Sir Leicester, "I think not. My Lady, do you object to
  • the twilight?"
  • On the contrary, my Lady prefers it.
  • "Volumnia?"
  • Oh! Nothing is so delicious to Volumnia as to sit and talk in the
  • dark.
  • "Then take them away," says Sir Leicester. "Tulkinghorn, I beg your
  • pardon. How do you do?"
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn with his usual leisurely ease advances, renders his
  • passing homage to my Lady, shakes Sir Leicester's hand, and subsides
  • into the chair proper to him when he has anything to communicate, on
  • the opposite side of the Baronet's little newspaper-table. Sir
  • Leicester is apprehensive that my Lady, not being very well, will
  • take cold at that open window. My Lady is obliged to him, but would
  • rather sit there for the air. Sir Leicester rises, adjusts her scarf
  • about her, and returns to his seat. Mr. Tulkinghorn in the meanwhile
  • takes a pinch of snuff.
  • "Now," says Sir Leicester. "How has that contest gone?"
  • "Oh, hollow from the beginning. Not a chance. They have brought in
  • both their people. You are beaten out of all reason. Three to one."
  • It is a part of Mr. Tulkinghorn's policy and mastery to have no
  • political opinions; indeed, NO opinions. Therefore he says "you" are
  • beaten, and not "we."
  • Sir Leicester is majestically wroth. Volumnia never heard of such a
  • thing. 'The debilitated cousin holds that it's sort of thing that's
  • sure tapn slongs votes--giv'n--Mob.
  • "It's the place, you know," Mr. Tulkinghorn goes on to say in the
  • fast-increasing darkness when there is silence again, "where they
  • wanted to put up Mrs. Rouncewell's son."
  • "A proposal which, as you correctly informed me at the time, he had
  • the becoming taste and perception," observes Sir Leicester, "to
  • decline. I cannot say that I by any means approve of the sentiments
  • expressed by Mr. Rouncewell when he was here for some half-hour in
  • this room, but there was a sense of propriety in his decision which I
  • am glad to acknowledge."
  • "Ha!" says Mr. Tulkinghorn. "It did not prevent him from being very
  • active in this election, though."
  • Sir Leicester is distinctly heard to gasp before speaking. "Did I
  • understand you? Did you say that Mr. Rouncewell had been very active
  • in this election?"
  • "Uncommonly active."
  • "Against--"
  • "Oh, dear yes, against you. He is a very good speaker. Plain and
  • emphatic. He made a damaging effect, and has great influence. In the
  • business part of the proceedings he carried all before him."
  • It is evident to the whole company, though nobody can see him, that
  • Sir Leicester is staring majestically.
  • "And he was much assisted," says Mr. Tulkinghorn as a wind-up, "by
  • his son."
  • "By his son, sir?" repeats Sir Leicester with awful politeness.
  • "By his son."
  • "The son who wished to marry the young woman in my Lady's service?"
  • "That son. He has but one."
  • "Then upon my honour," says Sir Leicester after a terrific pause
  • during which he has been heard to snort and felt to stare, "then
  • upon my honour, upon my life, upon my reputation and principles,
  • the floodgates of society are burst open, and the waters
  • have--a--obliterated the landmarks of the framework of the cohesion
  • by which things are held together!"
  • General burst of cousinly indignation. Volumnia thinks it is
  • really high time, you know, for somebody in power to step in
  • and do something strong. Debilitated cousin thinks--country's
  • going--Dayvle--steeple-chase pace.
  • "I beg," says Sir Leicester in a breathless condition, "that we may
  • not comment further on this circumstance. Comment is superfluous. My
  • Lady, let me suggest in reference to that young woman--"
  • "I have no intention," observes my Lady from her window in a low but
  • decided tone, "of parting with her."
  • "That was not my meaning," returns Sir Leicester. "I am glad to hear
  • you say so. I would suggest that as you think her worthy of your
  • patronage, you should exert your influence to keep her from these
  • dangerous hands. You might show her what violence would be done in
  • such association to her duties and principles, and you might preserve
  • her for a better fate. You might point out to her that she probably
  • would, in good time, find a husband at Chesney Wold by whom she would
  • not be--" Sir Leicester adds, after a moment's consideration,
  • "dragged from the altars of her forefathers."
  • These remarks he offers with his unvarying politeness and deference
  • when he addresses himself to his wife. She merely moves her head in
  • reply. The moon is rising, and where she sits there is a little
  • stream of cold pale light, in which her head is seen.
  • "It is worthy of remark," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, "however, that these
  • people are, in their way, very proud."
  • "Proud?" Sir Leicester doubts his hearing.
  • "I should not be surprised if they all voluntarily abandoned the
  • girl--yes, lover and all--instead of her abandoning them, supposing
  • she remained at Chesney Wold under such circumstances."
  • "Well!" says Sir Leicester tremulously. "Well! You should know, Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn. You have been among them."
  • "Really, Sir Leicester," returns the lawyer, "I state the fact. Why,
  • I could tell you a story--with Lady Dedlock's permission."
  • Her head concedes it, and Volumnia is enchanted. A story! Oh, he is
  • going to tell something at last! A ghost in it, Volumnia hopes?
  • "No. Real flesh and blood." Mr. Tulkinghorn stops for an instant and
  • repeats with some little emphasis grafted upon his usual monotony,
  • "Real flesh and blood, Miss Dedlock. Sir Leicester, these particulars
  • have only lately become known to me. They are very brief. They
  • exemplify what I have said. I suppress names for the present. Lady
  • Dedlock will not think me ill-bred, I hope?"
  • By the light of the fire, which is low, he can be seen looking
  • towards the moonlight. By the light of the moon Lady Dedlock can be
  • seen, perfectly still.
  • "A townsman of this Mrs. Rouncewell, a man in exactly parallel
  • circumstances as I am told, had the good fortune to have a daughter
  • who attracted the notice of a great lady. I speak of really a great
  • lady, not merely great to him, but married to a gentleman of your
  • condition, Sir Leicester."
  • Sir Leicester condescendingly says, "Yes, Mr. Tulkinghorn," implying
  • that then she must have appeared of very considerable moral
  • dimensions indeed in the eyes of an iron-master.
  • "The lady was wealthy and beautiful, and had a liking for the girl,
  • and treated her with great kindness, and kept her always near her.
  • Now this lady preserved a secret under all her greatness, which she
  • had preserved for many years. In fact, she had in early life been
  • engaged to marry a young rake--he was a captain in the army--nothing
  • connected with whom came to any good. She never did marry him, but
  • she gave birth to a child of which he was the father."
  • By the light of the fire he can be seen looking towards the
  • moonlight. By the moonlight, Lady Dedlock can be seen in profile,
  • perfectly still.
  • "The captain in the army being dead, she believed herself safe; but a
  • train of circumstances with which I need not trouble you led to
  • discovery. As I received the story, they began in an imprudence on
  • her own part one day when she was taken by surprise, which shows how
  • difficult it is for the firmest of us (she was very firm) to be
  • always guarded. There was great domestic trouble and amazement, you
  • may suppose; I leave you to imagine, Sir Leicester, the husband's
  • grief. But that is not the present point. When Mr. Rouncewell's
  • townsman heard of the disclosure, he no more allowed the girl to be
  • patronized and honoured than he would have suffered her to be trodden
  • underfoot before his eyes. Such was his pride, that he indignantly
  • took her away, as if from reproach and disgrace. He had no sense of
  • the honour done him and his daughter by the lady's condescension; not
  • the least. He resented the girl's position, as if the lady had been
  • the commonest of commoners. That is the story. I hope Lady Dedlock
  • will excuse its painful nature."
  • There are various opinions on the merits, more or less conflicting
  • with Volumnia's. That fair young creature cannot believe there ever
  • was any such lady and rejects the whole history on the threshold. The
  • majority incline to the debilitated cousin's sentiment, which is in
  • few words--"no business--Rouncewell's fernal townsman." Sir Leicester
  • generally refers back in his mind to Wat Tyler and arranges a
  • sequence of events on a plan of his own.
  • There is not much conversation in all, for late hours have been kept
  • at Chesney Wold since the necessary expenses elsewhere began, and
  • this is the first night in many on which the family have been alone.
  • It is past ten when Sir Leicester begs Mr. Tulkinghorn to ring for
  • candles. Then the stream of moonlight has swelled into a lake, and
  • then Lady Dedlock for the first time moves, and rises, and comes
  • forward to a table for a glass of water. Winking cousins, bat-like in
  • the candle glare, crowd round to give it; Volumnia (always ready for
  • something better if procurable) takes another, a very mild sip of
  • which contents her; Lady Dedlock, graceful, self-possessed, looked
  • after by admiring eyes, passes away slowly down the long perspective
  • by the side of that nymph, not at all improving her as a question of
  • contrast.
  • CHAPTER XLI
  • In Mr. Tulkinghorn's Room
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn arrives in his turret-room a little breathed by the
  • journey up, though leisurely performed. There is an expression on his
  • face as if he had discharged his mind of some grave matter and were,
  • in his close way, satisfied. To say of a man so severely and strictly
  • self-repressed that he is triumphant would be to do him as great an
  • injustice as to suppose him troubled with love or sentiment or any
  • romantic weakness. He is sedately satisfied. Perhaps there is a
  • rather increased sense of power upon him as he loosely grasps one of
  • his veinous wrists with his other hand and holding it behind his back
  • walks noiselessly up and down.
  • There is a capacious writing-table in the room on which is a pretty
  • large accumulation of papers. The green lamp is lighted, his
  • reading-glasses lie upon the desk, the easy-chair is wheeled up to
  • it, and it would seem as though he had intended to bestow an hour or
  • so upon these claims on his attention before going to bed. But he
  • happens not to be in a business mind. After a glance at the documents
  • awaiting his notice--with his head bent low over the table, the old
  • man's sight for print or writing being defective at night--he opens
  • the French window and steps out upon the leads. There he again walks
  • slowly up and down in the same attitude, subsiding, if a man so cool
  • may have any need to subside, from the story he has related
  • downstairs.
  • The time was once when men as knowing as Mr. Tulkinghorn would walk
  • on turret-tops in the starlight and look up into the sky to read
  • their fortunes there. Hosts of stars are visible to-night, though
  • their brilliancy is eclipsed by the splendour of the moon. If he be
  • seeking his own star as he methodically turns and turns upon the
  • leads, it should be but a pale one to be so rustily represented
  • below. If he be tracing out his destiny, that may be written in other
  • characters nearer to his hand.
  • As he paces the leads with his eyes most probably as high above his
  • thoughts as they are high above the earth, he is suddenly stopped in
  • passing the window by two eyes that meet his own. The ceiling of his
  • room is rather low; and the upper part of the door, which is opposite
  • the window, is of glass. There is an inner baize door, too, but the
  • night being warm he did not close it when he came upstairs. These
  • eyes that meet his own are looking in through the glass from the
  • corridor outside. He knows them well. The blood has not flushed into
  • his face so suddenly and redly for many a long year as when he
  • recognizes Lady Dedlock.
  • He steps into the room, and she comes in too, closing both the doors
  • behind her. There is a wild disturbance--is it fear or anger?--in her
  • eyes. In her carriage and all else she looks as she looked downstairs
  • two hours ago.
  • Is it fear or is it anger now? He cannot be sure. Both might be as
  • pale, both as intent.
  • "Lady Dedlock?"
  • She does not speak at first, nor even when she has slowly dropped
  • into the easy-chair by the table. They look at each other, like two
  • pictures.
  • "Why have you told my story to so many persons?"
  • "Lady Dedlock, it was necessary for me to inform you that I knew it."
  • "How long have you known it?"
  • "I have suspected it a long while--fully known it a little while."
  • "Months?"
  • "Days."
  • He stands before her with one hand on a chair-back and the other in
  • his old-fashioned waistcoat and shirt-frill, exactly as he has stood
  • before her at any time since her marriage. The same formal
  • politeness, the same composed deference that might as well be
  • defiance; the whole man the same dark, cold object, at the same
  • distance, which nothing has ever diminished.
  • "Is this true concerning the poor girl?"
  • He slightly inclines and advances his head as not quite understanding
  • the question.
  • "You know what you related. Is it true? Do her friends know my story
  • also? Is it the town-talk yet? Is it chalked upon the walls and cried
  • in the streets?"
  • So! Anger, and fear, and shame. All three contending. What power this
  • woman has to keep these raging passions down! Mr. Tulkinghorn's
  • thoughts take such form as he looks at her, with his ragged grey
  • eyebrows a hair's breadth more contracted than usual under her gaze.
  • "No, Lady Dedlock. That was a hypothetical case, arising out of Sir
  • Leicester's unconsciously carrying the matter with so high a hand.
  • But it would be a real case if they knew--what we know."
  • "Then they do not know it yet?"
  • "No."
  • "Can I save the poor girl from injury before they know it?"
  • "Really, Lady Dedlock," Mr. Tulkinghorn replies, "I cannot give a
  • satisfactory opinion on that point."
  • And he thinks, with the interest of attentive curiosity, as he
  • watches the struggle in her breast, "The power and force of this
  • woman are astonishing!"
  • "Sir," she says, for the moment obliged to set her lips with all the
  • energy she has, that she may speak distinctly, "I will make it
  • plainer. I do not dispute your hypothetical case. I anticipated it,
  • and felt its truth as strongly as you can do, when I saw Mr.
  • Rouncewell here. I knew very well that if he could have had the power
  • of seeing me as I was, he would consider the poor girl tarnished by
  • having for a moment been, although most innocently, the subject of my
  • great and distinguished patronage. But I have an interest in her, or
  • I should rather say--no longer belonging to this place--I had, and if
  • you can find so much consideration for the woman under your foot as
  • to remember that, she will be very sensible of your mercy."
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn, profoundly attentive, throws this off with a shrug
  • of self-depreciation and contracts his eyebrows a little more.
  • "You have prepared me for my exposure, and I thank you for that too.
  • Is there anything that you require of me? Is there any claim that I
  • can release or any charge or trouble that I can spare my husband in
  • obtaining HIS release by certifying to the exactness of your
  • discovery? I will write anything, here and now, that you will
  • dictate. I am ready to do it."
  • And she would do it, thinks the lawyer, watchful of the firm hand
  • with which she takes the pen!
  • "I will not trouble you, Lady Dedlock. Pray spare yourself."
  • "I have long expected this, as you know. I neither wish to spare
  • myself nor to be spared. You can do nothing worse to me than you have
  • done. Do what remains now."
  • "Lady Dedlock, there is nothing to be done. I will take leave to say
  • a few words when you have finished."
  • Their need for watching one another should be over now, but they do
  • it all this time, and the stars watch them both through the opened
  • window. Away in the moonlight lie the woodland fields at rest, and
  • the wide house is as quiet as the narrow one. The narrow one! Where
  • are the digger and the spade, this peaceful night, destined to add
  • the last great secret to the many secrets of the Tulkinghorn
  • existence? Is the man born yet, is the spade wrought yet? Curious
  • questions to consider, more curious perhaps not to consider, under
  • the watching stars upon a summer night.
  • "Of repentance or remorse or any feeling of mine," Lady Dedlock
  • presently proceeds, "I say not a word. If I were not dumb, you would
  • be deaf. Let that go by. It is not for your ears."
  • He makes a feint of offering a protest, but she sweeps it away with
  • her disdainful hand.
  • "Of other and very different things I come to speak to you. My jewels
  • are all in their proper places of keeping. They will be found there.
  • So, my dresses. So, all the valuables I have. Some ready money I had
  • with me, please to say, but no large amount. I did not wear my own
  • dress, in order that I might avoid observation. I went to be
  • henceforward lost. Make this known. I leave no other charge with
  • you."
  • "Excuse me, Lady Dedlock," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, quite unmoved. "I am
  • not sure that I understand you. You want--"
  • "To be lost to all here. I leave Chesney Wold to-night. I go this
  • hour."
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn shakes his head. She rises, but he, without moving
  • hand from chair-back or from old-fashioned waistcoat and shirt-frill,
  • shakes his head.
  • "What? Not go as I have said?"
  • "No, Lady Dedlock," he very calmly replies.
  • "Do you know the relief that my disappearance will be? Have you
  • forgotten the stain and blot upon this place, and where it is, and
  • who it is?"
  • "No, Lady Dedlock, not by any means."
  • Without deigning to rejoin, she moves to the inner door and has it in
  • her hand when he says to her, without himself stirring hand or foot
  • or raising his voice, "Lady Dedlock, have the goodness to stop and
  • hear me, or before you reach the staircase I shall ring the
  • alarm-bell and rouse the house. And then I must speak out before
  • every guest and servant, every man and woman, in it."
  • He has conquered her. She falters, trembles, and puts her hand
  • confusedly to her head. Slight tokens these in any one else, but when
  • so practised an eye as Mr. Tulkinghorn's sees indecision for a moment
  • in such a subject, he thoroughly knows its value.
  • He promptly says again, "Have the goodness to hear me, Lady Dedlock,"
  • and motions to the chair from which she has risen. She hesitates, but
  • he motions again, and she sits down.
  • "The relations between us are of an unfortunate description, Lady
  • Dedlock; but as they are not of my making, I will not apologize for
  • them. The position I hold in reference to Sir Leicester is so well
  • known to you that I can hardly imagine but that I must long have
  • appeared in your eyes the natural person to make this discovery."
  • "Sir," she returns without looking up from the ground on which her
  • eyes are now fixed, "I had better have gone. It would have been far
  • better not to have detained me. I have no more to say."
  • "Excuse me, Lady Dedlock, if I add a little more to hear."
  • "I wish to hear it at the window, then. I can't breathe where I am."
  • His jealous glance as she walks that way betrays an instant's
  • misgiving that she may have it in her thoughts to leap over, and
  • dashing against ledge and cornice, strike her life out upon the
  • terrace below. But a moment's observation of her figure as she stands
  • in the window without any support, looking out at the stars--not
  • up--gloomily out at those stars which are low in the heavens,
  • reassures him. By facing round as she has moved, he stands a little
  • behind her.
  • "Lady Dedlock, I have not yet been able to come to a decision
  • satisfactory to myself on the course before me. I am not clear what
  • to do or how to act next. I must request you, in the meantime, to
  • keep your secret as you have kept it so long and not to wonder that I
  • keep it too."
  • He pauses, but she makes no reply.
  • "Pardon me, Lady Dedlock. This is an important subject. You are
  • honouring me with your attention?"
  • "I am."
  • "Thank you. I might have known it from what I have seen of your
  • strength of character. I ought not to have asked the question, but I
  • have the habit of making sure of my ground, step by step, as I go on.
  • The sole consideration in this unhappy case is Sir Leicester."
  • "Then why," she asks in a low voice and without removing her gloomy
  • look from those distant stars, "do you detain me in his house?"
  • "Because he IS the consideration. Lady Dedlock, I have no occasion to
  • tell you that Sir Leicester is a very proud man, that his reliance
  • upon you is implicit, that the fall of that moon out of the sky would
  • not amaze him more than your fall from your high position as his
  • wife."
  • She breathes quickly and heavily, but she stands as unflinchingly as
  • ever he has seen her in the midst of her grandest company.
  • "I declare to you, Lady Dedlock, that with anything short of this
  • case that I have, I would as soon have hoped to root up by means of
  • my own strength and my own hands the oldest tree on this estate as to
  • shake your hold upon Sir Leicester and Sir Leicester's trust and
  • confidence in you. And even now, with this case, I hesitate. Not that
  • he could doubt (that, even with him, is impossible), but that nothing
  • can prepare him for the blow."
  • "Not my flight?" she returned. "Think of it again."
  • "Your flight, Lady Dedlock, would spread the whole truth, and a
  • hundred times the whole truth, far and wide. It would be impossible
  • to save the family credit for a day. It is not to be thought of."
  • There is a quiet decision in his reply which admits of no
  • remonstrance.
  • "When I speak of Sir Leicester being the sole consideration, he and
  • the family credit are one. Sir Leicester and the baronetcy, Sir
  • Leicester and Chesney Wold, Sir Leicester and his ancestors and his
  • patrimony"--Mr. Tulkinghorn very dry here--"are, I need not say to
  • you, Lady Dedlock, inseparable."
  • "Go on!"
  • "Therefore," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, pursuing his case in his jog-trot
  • style, "I have much to consider. This is to be hushed up if it can
  • be. How can it be, if Sir Leicester is driven out of his wits or laid
  • upon a death-bed? If I inflicted this shock upon him to-morrow
  • morning, how could the immediate change in him be accounted for? What
  • could have caused it? What could have divided you? Lady Dedlock, the
  • wall-chalking and the street-crying would come on directly, and you
  • are to remember that it would not affect you merely (whom I cannot at
  • all consider in this business) but your husband, Lady Dedlock, your
  • husband."
  • He gets plainer as he gets on, but not an atom more emphatic or
  • animated.
  • "There is another point of view," he continues, "in which the case
  • presents itself. Sir Leicester is devoted to you almost to
  • infatuation. He might not be able to overcome that infatuation, even
  • knowing what we know. I am putting an extreme case, but it might be
  • so. If so, it were better that he knew nothing. Better for common
  • sense, better for him, better for me. I must take all this into
  • account, and it combines to render a decision very difficult."
  • She stands looking out at the same stars without a word. They are
  • beginning to pale, and she looks as if their coldness froze her.
  • "My experience teaches me," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, who has by this
  • time got his hands in his pockets and is going on in his business
  • consideration of the matter like a machine. "My experience teaches
  • me, Lady Dedlock, that most of the people I know would do far better
  • to leave marriage alone. It is at the bottom of three fourths of
  • their troubles. So I thought when Sir Leicester married, and so I
  • always have thought since. No more about that. I must now be guided
  • by circumstances. In the meanwhile I must beg you to keep your own
  • counsel, and I will keep mine."
  • "I am to drag my present life on, holding its pains at your pleasure,
  • day by day?" she asks, still looking at the distant sky.
  • "Yes, I am afraid so, Lady Dedlock."
  • "It is necessary, you think, that I should be so tied to the stake?"
  • "I am sure that what I recommend is necessary."
  • "I am to remain on this gaudy platform on which my miserable
  • deception has been so long acted, and it is to fall beneath me when
  • you give the signal?" she said slowly.
  • "Not without notice, Lady Dedlock. I shall take no step without
  • forewarning you."
  • She asks all her questions as if she were repeating them from memory
  • or calling them over in her sleep.
  • "We are to meet as usual?"
  • "Precisely as usual, if you please."
  • "And I am to hide my guilt, as I have done so many years?"
  • "As you have done so many years. I should not have made that
  • reference myself, Lady Dedlock, but I may now remind you that your
  • secret can be no heavier to you than it was, and is no worse and no
  • better than it was. I know it certainly, but I believe we have never
  • wholly trusted each other."
  • She stands absorbed in the same frozen way for some little time
  • before asking, "Is there anything more to be said to-night?"
  • "Why," Mr. Tulkinghorn returns methodically as he softly rubs his
  • hands, "I should like to be assured of your acquiescence in my
  • arrangements, Lady Dedlock."
  • "You may be assured of it."
  • "Good. And I would wish in conclusion to remind you, as a business
  • precaution, in case it should be necessary to recall the fact in any
  • communication with Sir Leicester, that throughout our interview I
  • have expressly stated my sole consideration to be Sir Leicester's
  • feelings and honour and the family reputation. I should have been
  • happy to have made Lady Dedlock a prominent consideration, too, if
  • the case had admitted of it; but unfortunately it does not."
  • "I can attest your fidelity, sir."
  • Both before and after saying it she remains absorbed, but at length
  • moves, and turns, unshaken in her natural and acquired presence,
  • towards the door. Mr. Tulkinghorn opens both the doors exactly as he
  • would have done yesterday, or as he would have done ten years ago,
  • and makes his old-fashioned bow as she passes out. It is not an
  • ordinary look that he receives from the handsome face as it goes into
  • the darkness, and it is not an ordinary movement, though a very
  • slight one, that acknowledges his courtesy. But as he reflects when
  • he is left alone, the woman has been putting no common constraint
  • upon herself.
  • He would know it all the better if he saw the woman pacing her own
  • rooms with her hair wildly thrown from her flung-back face, her hands
  • clasped behind her head, her figure twisted as if by pain. He would
  • think so all the more if he saw the woman thus hurrying up and down
  • for hours, without fatigue, without intermission, followed by the
  • faithful step upon the Ghost's Walk. But he shuts out the now chilled
  • air, draws the window-curtain, goes to bed, and falls asleep. And
  • truly when the stars go out and the wan day peeps into the
  • turret-chamber, finding him at his oldest, he looks as if the digger
  • and the spade were both commissioned and would soon be digging.
  • The same wan day peeps in at Sir Leicester pardoning the repentant
  • country in a majestically condescending dream; and at the cousins
  • entering on various public employments, principally receipt of
  • salary; and at the chaste Volumnia, bestowing a dower of fifty
  • thousand pounds upon a hideous old general with a mouth of false
  • teeth like a pianoforte too full of keys, long the admiration of Bath
  • and the terror of every other community. Also into rooms high in the
  • roof, and into offices in court-yards, and over stables, where
  • humbler ambition dreams of bliss, in keepers' lodges, and in holy
  • matrimony with Will or Sally. Up comes the bright sun, drawing
  • everything up with it--the Wills and Sallys, the latent vapour in the
  • earth, the drooping leaves and flowers, the birds and beasts and
  • creeping things, the gardeners to sweep the dewy turf and unfold
  • emerald velvet where the roller passes, the smoke of the great
  • kitchen fire wreathing itself straight and high into the lightsome
  • air. Lastly, up comes the flag over Mr. Tulkinghorn's unconscious
  • head cheerfully proclaiming that Sir Leicester and Lady Dedlock are
  • in their happy home and that there is hospitality at the place in
  • Lincolnshire.
  • CHAPTER XLII
  • In Mr. Tulkinghorn's Chambers
  • From the verdant undulations and the spreading oaks of the Dedlock
  • property, Mr. Tulkinghorn transfers himself to the stale heat and
  • dust of London. His manner of coming and going between the two places
  • is one of his impenetrabilities. He walks into Chesney Wold as if it
  • were next door to his chambers and returns to his chambers as if he
  • had never been out of Lincoln's Inn Fields. He neither changes his
  • dress before the journey nor talks of it afterwards. He melted out of
  • his turret-room this morning, just as now, in the late twilight, he
  • melts into his own square.
  • Like a dingy London bird among the birds at roost in these pleasant
  • fields, where the sheep are all made into parchment, the goats into
  • wigs, and the pasture into chaff, the lawyer, smoke-dried and faded,
  • dwelling among mankind but not consorting with them, aged without
  • experience of genial youth, and so long used to make his cramped nest
  • in holes and corners of human nature that he has forgotten its
  • broader and better range, comes sauntering home. In the oven made by
  • the hot pavements and hot buildings, he has baked himself dryer than
  • usual; and he has in his thirsty mind his mellowed port-wine half a
  • century old.
  • The lamplighter is skipping up and down his ladder on Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn's side of the Fields when that high-priest of noble
  • mysteries arrives at his own dull court-yard. He ascends the
  • door-steps and is gliding into the dusky hall when he encounters, on
  • the top step, a bowing and propitiatory little man.
  • "Is that Snagsby?"
  • "Yes, sir. I hope you are well, sir. I was just giving you up, sir,
  • and going home."
  • "Aye? What is it? What do you want with me?"
  • "Well, sir," says Mr. Snagsby, holding his hat at the side of his
  • head in his deference towards his best customer, "I was wishful to
  • say a word to you, sir."
  • "Can you say it here?"
  • "Perfectly, sir."
  • "Say it then." The lawyer turns, leans his arms on the iron railing
  • at the top of the steps, and looks at the lamplighter lighting the
  • court-yard.
  • "It is relating," says Mr. Snagsby in a mysterious low voice, "it is
  • relating--not to put too fine a point upon it--to the foreigner,
  • sir!"
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn eyes him with some surprise. "What foreigner?"
  • "The foreign female, sir. French, if I don't mistake? I am not
  • acquainted with that language myself, but I should judge from her
  • manners and appearance that she was French; anyways, certainly
  • foreign. Her that was upstairs, sir, when Mr. Bucket and me had the
  • honour of waiting upon you with the sweeping-boy that night."
  • "Oh! Yes, yes. Mademoiselle Hortense."
  • "Indeed, sir?" Mr. Snagsby coughs his cough of submission behind his
  • hat. "I am not acquainted myself with the names of foreigners in
  • general, but I have no doubt it WOULD be that." Mr. Snagsby appears
  • to have set out in this reply with some desperate design of repeating
  • the name, but on reflection coughs again to excuse himself.
  • "And what can you have to say, Snagsby," demands Mr. Tulkinghorn,
  • "about her?"
  • "Well, sir," returns the stationer, shading his communication with
  • his hat, "it falls a little hard upon me. My domestic happiness is
  • very great--at least, it's as great as can be expected, I'm sure--but
  • my little woman is rather given to jealousy. Not to put too fine a
  • point upon it, she is very much given to jealousy. And you see, a
  • foreign female of that genteel appearance coming into the shop, and
  • hovering--I should be the last to make use of a strong expression if
  • I could avoid it, but hovering, sir--in the court--you know it
  • is--now ain't it? I only put it to yourself, sir."
  • Mr. Snagsby, having said this in a very plaintive manner, throws in a
  • cough of general application to fill up all the blanks.
  • "Why, what do you mean?" asks Mr. Tulkinghorn.
  • "Just so, sir," returns Mr. Snagsby; "I was sure you would feel it
  • yourself and would excuse the reasonableness of MY feelings when
  • coupled with the known excitableness of my little woman. You see, the
  • foreign female--which you mentioned her name just now, with quite a
  • native sound I am sure--caught up the word Snagsby that night, being
  • uncommon quick, and made inquiry, and got the direction and come at
  • dinner-time. Now Guster, our young woman, is timid and has fits, and
  • she, taking fright at the foreigner's looks--which are fierce--and at
  • a grinding manner that she has of speaking--which is calculated to
  • alarm a weak mind--gave way to it, instead of bearing up against it,
  • and tumbled down the kitchen stairs out of one into another, such
  • fits as I do sometimes think are never gone into, or come out of, in
  • any house but ours. Consequently there was by good fortune ample
  • occupation for my little woman, and only me to answer the shop. When
  • she DID say that Mr. Tulkinghorn, being always denied to her by his
  • employer (which I had no doubt at the time was a foreign mode of
  • viewing a clerk), she would do herself the pleasure of continually
  • calling at my place until she was let in here. Since then she has
  • been, as I began by saying, hovering, hovering, sir"--Mr. Snagsby
  • repeats the word with pathetic emphasis--"in the court. The effects
  • of which movement it is impossible to calculate. I shouldn't wonder
  • if it might have already given rise to the painfullest mistakes even
  • in the neighbours' minds, not mentioning (if such a thing was
  • possible) my little woman. Whereas, goodness knows," says Mr.
  • Snagsby, shaking his head, "I never had an idea of a foreign female,
  • except as being formerly connected with a bunch of brooms and a baby,
  • or at the present time with a tambourine and earrings. I never had, I
  • do assure you, sir!"
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn had listened gravely to this complaint and inquires
  • when the stationer has finished, "And that's all, is it, Snagsby?"
  • "Why yes, sir, that's all," says Mr. Snagsby, ending with a cough
  • that plainly adds, "and it's enough too--for me."
  • "I don't know what Mademoiselle Hortense may want or mean, unless she
  • is mad," says the lawyer.
  • "Even if she was, you know, sir," Mr. Snagsby pleads, "it wouldn't be
  • a consolation to have some weapon or another in the form of a foreign
  • dagger planted in the family."
  • "No," says the other. "Well, well! This shall be stopped. I am sorry
  • you have been inconvenienced. If she comes again, send her here."
  • Mr. Snagsby, with much bowing and short apologetic coughing, takes
  • his leave, lightened in heart. Mr. Tulkinghorn goes upstairs, saying
  • to himself, "These women were created to give trouble the whole earth
  • over. The mistress not being enough to deal with, here's the maid
  • now! But I will be short with THIS jade at least!"
  • So saying, he unlocks his door, gropes his way into his murky rooms,
  • lights his candles, and looks about him. It is too dark to see much
  • of the Allegory overhead there, but that importunate Roman, who is
  • for ever toppling out of the clouds and pointing, is at his old work
  • pretty distinctly. Not honouring him with much attention, Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn takes a small key from his pocket, unlocks a drawer in
  • which there is another key, which unlocks a chest in which there is
  • another, and so comes to the cellar-key, with which he prepares to
  • descend to the regions of old wine. He is going towards the door with
  • a candle in his hand when a knock comes.
  • "Who's this? Aye, aye, mistress, it's you, is it? You appear at a
  • good time. I have just been hearing of you. Now! What do you want?"
  • He stands the candle on the chimney-piece in the clerk's hall and
  • taps his dry cheek with the key as he addresses these words of
  • welcome to Mademoiselle Hortense. That feline personage, with her
  • lips tightly shut and her eyes looking out at him sideways, softly
  • closes the door before replying.
  • "I have had great deal of trouble to find you, sir."
  • "HAVE you!"
  • "I have been here very often, sir. It has always been said to me, he
  • is not at home, he is engage, he is this and that, he is not for
  • you."
  • "Quite right, and quite true."
  • "Not true. Lies!"
  • At times there is a suddenness in the manner of Mademoiselle Hortense
  • so like a bodily spring upon the subject of it that such subject
  • involuntarily starts and fails back. It is Mr. Tulkinghorn's case at
  • present, though Mademoiselle Hortense, with her eyes almost shut up
  • (but still looking out sideways), is only smiling contemptuously and
  • shaking her head.
  • "Now, mistress," says the lawyer, tapping the key hastily upon the
  • chimney-piece. "If you have anything to say, say it, say it."
  • "Sir, you have not use me well. You have been mean and shabby."
  • "Mean and shabby, eh?" returns the lawyer, rubbing his nose with the
  • key.
  • "Yes. What is it that I tell you? You know you have. You have
  • attrapped me--catched me--to give you information; you have asked me
  • to show you the dress of mine my Lady must have wore that night, you
  • have prayed me to come in it here to meet that boy. Say! Is it not?"
  • Mademoiselle Hortense makes another spring.
  • "You are a vixen, a vixen!" Mr. Tulkinghorn seems to meditate as he
  • looks distrustfully at her, then he replies, "Well, wench, well. I
  • paid you."
  • "You paid me!" she repeats with fierce disdain. "Two sovereign! I
  • have not change them, I re-fuse them, I des-pise them, I throw them
  • from me!" Which she literally does, taking them out of her bosom as
  • she speaks and flinging them with such violence on the floor that
  • they jerk up again into the light before they roll away into corners
  • and slowly settle down there after spinning vehemently.
  • "Now!" says Mademoiselle Hortense, darkening her large eyes again.
  • "You have paid me? Eh, my God, oh yes!"
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn rubs his head with the key while she entertains
  • herself with a sarcastic laugh.
  • "You must be rich, my fair friend," he composedly observes, "to throw
  • money about in that way!"
  • "I AM rich," she returns. "I am very rich in hate. I hate my Lady, of
  • all my heart. You know that."
  • "Know it? How should I know it?"
  • "Because you have known it perfectly before you prayed me to give you
  • that information. Because you have known perfectly that I was
  • en-r-r-r-raged!" It appears impossible for mademoiselle to roll the
  • letter "r" sufficiently in this word, notwithstanding that she
  • assists her energetic delivery by clenching both her hands and
  • setting all her teeth.
  • "Oh! I knew that, did I?" says Mr. Tulkinghorn, examining the wards
  • of the key.
  • "Yes, without doubt. I am not blind. You have made sure of me because
  • you knew that. You had reason! I det-est her." Mademoiselle Hortense folds her
  • arms and throws this last remark at him over one of her shoulders.
  • "Having said this, have you anything else to say, mademoiselle?"
  • "I am not yet placed. Place me well. Find me a good condition! If you
  • cannot, or do not choose to do that, employ me to pursue her, to
  • chase her, to disgrace and to dishonour her. I will help you well,
  • and with a good will. It is what YOU do. Do I not know that?"
  • "You appear to know a good deal," Mr. Tulkinghorn retorts.
  • "Do I not? Is it that I am so weak as to believe, like a child, that
  • I come here in that dress to rec-eive that boy only to decide a
  • little bet, a wager? Eh, my God, oh yes!" In this reply, down to the
  • word "wager" inclusive, mademoiselle has been ironically polite and
  • tender, then as suddenly dashed into the bitterest and most defiant
  • scorn, with her black eyes in one and the same moment very nearly
  • shut and staringly wide open.
  • "Now, let us see," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, tapping his chin with the
  • key and looking imperturbably at her, "how this matter stands."
  • "Ah! Let us see," mademoiselle assents, with many angry and tight
  • nods of her head.
  • "You come here to make a remarkably modest demand, which you have
  • just stated, and it not being conceded, you will come again."
  • "And again," says mademoiselle with more tight and angry nods. "And
  • yet again. And yet again. And many times again. In effect, for ever!"
  • "And not only here, but you will go to Mr. Snagsby's too, perhaps?
  • That visit not succeeding either, you will go again perhaps?"
  • "And again," repeats mademoiselle, cataleptic with determination.
  • "And yet again. And yet again. And many times again. In effect, for
  • ever!"
  • "Very well. Now, Mademoiselle Hortense, let me recommend you to take
  • the candle and pick up that money of yours. I think you will find it
  • behind the clerk's partition in the corner yonder."
  • She merely throws a laugh over her shoulder and stands her ground
  • with folded arms.
  • "You will not, eh?"
  • "No, I will not!"
  • "So much the poorer you; so much the richer I! Look, mistress, this
  • is the key of my wine-cellar. It is a large key, but the keys of
  • prisons are larger. In this city there are houses of correction
  • (where the treadmills are, for women), the gates of which are very
  • strong and heavy, and no doubt the keys too. I am afraid a lady of
  • your spirit and activity would find it an inconvenience to have one
  • of those keys turned upon her for any length of time. What do you
  • think?"
  • "I think," mademoiselle replies without any action and in a clear,
  • obliging voice, "that you are a miserable wretch."
  • "Probably," returns Mr. Tulkinghorn, quietly blowing his nose. "But I
  • don't ask what you think of myself; I ask what you think of the
  • prison."
  • "Nothing. What does it matter to me?"
  • "Why, it matters this much, mistress," says the lawyer, deliberately
  • putting away his handkerchief and adjusting his frill; "the law is so
  • despotic here that it interferes to prevent any of our good English
  • citizens from being troubled, even by a lady's visits against his
  • desire. And on his complaining that he is so troubled, it takes hold
  • of the troublesome lady and shuts her up in prison under hard
  • discipline. Turns the key upon her, mistress." Illustrating with the
  • cellar-key.
  • "Truly?" returns mademoiselle in the same pleasant voice. "That is
  • droll! But--my faith!--still what does it matter to me?"
  • "My fair friend," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, "make another visit here, or
  • at Mr. Snagsby's, and you shall learn."
  • "In that case you will send me to the prison, perhaps?"
  • "Perhaps."
  • It would be contradictory for one in mademoiselle's state of
  • agreeable jocularity to foam at the mouth, otherwise a tigerish
  • expansion thereabouts might look as if a very little more would make
  • her do it.
  • "In a word, mistress," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, "I am sorry to be
  • unpolite, but if you ever present yourself uninvited here--or
  • there--again, I will give you over to the police. Their gallantry is
  • great, but they carry troublesome people through the streets in an
  • ignominious manner, strapped down on a board, my good wench."
  • "I will prove you," whispers mademoiselle, stretching out her hand,
  • "I will try if you dare to do it!"
  • "And if," pursues the lawyer without minding her, "I place you in
  • that good condition of being locked up in jail, it will be some time
  • before you find yourself at liberty again."
  • "I will prove you," repeats mademoiselle in her former whisper.
  • "And now," proceeds the lawyer, still without minding her, "you had
  • better go. Think twice before you come here again."
  • "Think you," she answers, "twice two hundred times!"
  • "You were dismissed by your lady, you know," Mr. Tulkinghorn
  • observes, following her out upon the staircase, "as the most
  • implacable and unmanageable of women. Now turn over a new leaf and
  • take warning by what I say to you. For what I say, I mean; and what I
  • threaten, I will do, mistress."
  • She goes down without answering or looking behind her. When she is
  • gone, he goes down too, and returning with his cobweb-covered bottle,
  • devotes himself to a leisurely enjoyment of its contents, now and
  • then, as he throws his head back in his chair, catching sight of the
  • pertinacious Roman pointing from the ceiling.
  • CHAPTER XLIII
  • Esther's Narrative
  • It matters little now how much I thought of my living mother who had
  • told me evermore to consider her dead. I could not venture to
  • approach her or to communicate with her in writing, for my sense of
  • the peril in which her life was passed was only to be equalled by my
  • fears of increasing it. Knowing that my mere existence as a living
  • creature was an unforeseen danger in her way, I could not always
  • conquer that terror of myself which had seized me when I first knew
  • the secret. At no time did I dare to utter her name. I felt as if I
  • did not even dare to hear it. If the conversation anywhere, when I
  • was present, took that direction, as it sometimes naturally did, I
  • tried not to hear: I mentally counted, repeated something that I
  • knew, or went out of the room. I am conscious now that I often did
  • these things when there can have been no danger of her being spoken
  • of, but I did them in the dread I had of hearing anything that might
  • lead to her betrayal, and to her betrayal through me.
  • It matters little now how often I recalled the tones of my mother's
  • voice, wondered whether I should ever hear it again as I so longed to
  • do, and thought how strange and desolate it was that it should be so
  • new to me. It matters little that I watched for every public mention
  • of my mother's name; that I passed and repassed the door of her house
  • in town, loving it, but afraid to look at it; that I once sat in the
  • theatre when my mother was there and saw me, and when we were so wide
  • asunder before the great company of all degrees that any link or
  • confidence between us seemed a dream. It is all, all over. My lot has
  • been so blest that I can relate little of myself which is not a story
  • of goodness and generosity in others. I may well pass that little and
  • go on.
  • When we were settled at home again, Ada and I had many conversations
  • with my guardian of which Richard was the theme. My dear girl was
  • deeply grieved that he should do their kind cousin so much wrong, but
  • she was so faithful to Richard that she could not bear to blame him
  • even for that. My guardian was assured of it, and never coupled his
  • name with a word of reproof. "Rick is mistaken, my dear," he would
  • say to her. "Well, well! We have all been mistaken over and over
  • again. We must trust to you and time to set him right."
  • We knew afterwards what we suspected then, that he did not trust to
  • time until he had often tried to open Richard's eyes. That he had
  • written to him, gone to him, talked with him, tried every gentle and
  • persuasive art his kindness could devise. Our poor devoted Richard
  • was deaf and blind to all. If he were wrong, he would make amends
  • when the Chancery suit was over. If he were groping in the dark,
  • he could not do better than do his utmost to clear away those
  • clouds in which so much was confused and obscured. Suspicion and
  • misunderstanding were the fault of the suit? Then let him work the
  • suit out and come through it to his right mind. This was his
  • unvarying reply. Jarndyce and Jarndyce had obtained such possession
  • of his whole nature that it was impossible to place any consideration
  • before him which he did not, with a distorted kind of reason, make a
  • new argument in favour of his doing what he did. "So that it is even
  • more mischievous," said my guardian once to me, "to remonstrate with
  • the poor dear fellow than to leave him alone."
  • I took one of these opportunities of mentioning my doubts of Mr.
  • Skimpole as a good adviser for Richard.
  • "Adviser!" returned my guardian, laughing, "My dear, who would advise
  • with Skimpole?"
  • "Encourager would perhaps have been a better word," said I.
  • "Encourager!" returned my guardian again. "Who could be encouraged by
  • Skimpole?"
  • "Not Richard?" I asked.
  • "No," he replied. "Such an unworldly, uncalculating, gossamer
  • creature is a relief to him and an amusement. But as to advising or
  • encouraging or occupying a serious station towards anybody or
  • anything, it is simply not to be thought of in such a child as
  • Skimpole."
  • "Pray, cousin John," said Ada, who had just joined us and now looked
  • over my shoulder, "what made him such a child?"
  • "What made him such a child?" inquired my guardian, rubbing his head,
  • a little at a loss.
  • "Yes, cousin John."
  • "Why," he slowly replied, roughening his head more and more, "he is
  • all sentiment, and--and susceptibility, and--and sensibility,
  • and--and imagination. And these qualities are not regulated in him,
  • somehow. I suppose the people who admired him for them in his youth
  • attached too much importance to them and too little to any training
  • that would have balanced and adjusted them, and so he became what he
  • is. Hey?" said my guardian, stopping short and looking at us
  • hopefully. "What do you think, you two?"
  • Ada, glancing at me, said she thought it was a pity he should be an
  • expense to Richard.
  • "So it is, so it is," returned my guardian hurriedly. "That must not
  • be. We must arrange that. I must prevent it. That will never do."
  • And I said I thought it was to be regretted that he had ever
  • introduced Richard to Mr. Vholes for a present of five pounds.
  • "Did he?" said my guardian with a passing shade of vexation on his
  • face. "But there you have the man. There you have the man! There is
  • nothing mercenary in that with him. He has no idea of the value of
  • money. He introduces Rick, and then he is good friends with Mr.
  • Vholes and borrows five pounds of him. He means nothing by it and
  • thinks nothing of it. He told you himself, I'll be bound, my dear?"
  • "Oh, yes!" said I.
  • "Exactly!" cried my guardian, quite triumphant. "There you have the
  • man! If he had meant any harm by it or was conscious of any harm in
  • it, he wouldn't tell it. He tells it as he does it in mere
  • simplicity. But you shall see him in his own home, and then you'll
  • understand him better. We must pay a visit to Harold Skimpole and
  • caution him on these points. Lord bless you, my dears, an infant, an
  • infant!"
  • In pursuance of this plan, we went into London on an early day and
  • presented ourselves at Mr. Skimpole's door.
  • He lived in a place called the Polygon, in Somers Town, where there
  • were at that time a number of poor Spanish refugees walking about in
  • cloaks, smoking little paper cigars. Whether he was a better tenant
  • than one might have supposed, in consequence of his friend Somebody
  • always paying his rent at last, or whether his inaptitude for
  • business rendered it particularly difficult to turn him out, I don't
  • know; but he had occupied the same house some years. It was in a
  • state of dilapidation quite equal to our expectation. Two or three of
  • the area railings were gone, the water-butt was broken, the knocker
  • was loose, the bell-handle had been pulled off a long time to judge
  • from the rusty state of the wire, and dirty footprints on the steps
  • were the only signs of its being inhabited.
  • A slatternly full-blown girl who seemed to be bursting out at the
  • rents in her gown and the cracks in her shoes like an over-ripe berry
  • answered our knock by opening the door a very little way and stopping
  • up the gap with her figure. As she knew Mr. Jarndyce (indeed Ada and
  • I both thought that she evidently associated him with the receipt of
  • her wages), she immediately relented and allowed us to pass in. The
  • lock of the door being in a disabled condition, she then applied
  • herself to securing it with the chain, which was not in good action
  • either, and said would we go upstairs?
  • We went upstairs to the first floor, still seeing no other furniture
  • than the dirty footprints. Mr. Jarndyce without further ceremony
  • entered a room there, and we followed. It was dingy enough and not at
  • all clean, but furnished with an odd kind of shabby luxury, with a
  • large footstool, a sofa, and plenty of cushions, an easy-chair, and
  • plenty of pillows, a piano, books, drawing materials, music,
  • newspapers, and a few sketches and pictures. A broken pane of glass
  • in one of the dirty windows was papered and wafered over, but there
  • was a little plate of hothouse nectarines on the table, and there was
  • another of grapes, and another of sponge-cakes, and there was a
  • bottle of light wine. Mr. Skimpole himself reclined upon the sofa in
  • a dressing-gown, drinking some fragrant coffee from an old china
  • cup--it was then about mid-day--and looking at a collection of
  • wallflowers in the balcony.
  • He was not in the least disconcerted by our appearance, but rose and
  • received us in his usual airy manner.
  • "Here I am, you see!" he said when we were seated, not without some
  • little difficulty, the greater part of the chairs being broken. "Here
  • I am! This is my frugal breakfast. Some men want legs of beef and
  • mutton for breakfast; I don't. Give me my peach, my cup of coffee,
  • and my claret; I am content. I don't want them for themselves, but
  • they remind me of the sun. There's nothing solar about legs of beef
  • and mutton. Mere animal satisfaction!"
  • "This is our friend's consulting-room (or would be, if he ever
  • prescribed), his sanctum, his studio," said my guardian to us.
  • "Yes," said Mr. Skimpole, turning his bright face about, "this is the
  • bird's cage. This is where the bird lives and sings. They pluck his
  • feathers now and then and clip his wings, but he sings, he sings!"
  • He handed us the grapes, repeating in his radiant way, "He sings! Not
  • an ambitious note, but still he sings."
  • "These are very fine," said my guardian. "A present?"
  • "No," he answered. "No! Some amiable gardener sells them. His man
  • wanted to know, when he brought them last evening, whether he should
  • wait for the money. 'Really, my friend,' I said, 'I think not--if
  • your time is of any value to you.' I suppose it was, for he went
  • away."
  • My guardian looked at us with a smile, as though he asked us, "Is it
  • possible to be worldly with this baby?"
  • "This is a day," said Mr. Skimpole, gaily taking a little claret in a
  • tumbler, "that will ever be remembered here. We shall call it Saint
  • Clare and Saint Summerson day. You must see my daughters. I have a
  • blue-eyed daughter who is my Beauty daughter, I have a Sentiment
  • daughter, and I have a Comedy daughter. You must see them all.
  • They'll be enchanted."
  • He was going to summon them when my guardian interposed and asked him
  • to pause a moment, as he wished to say a word to him first. "My dear
  • Jarndyce," he cheerfully replied, going back to his sofa, "as many
  • moments as you please. Time is no object here. We never know what
  • o'clock it is, and we never care. Not the way to get on in life,
  • you'll tell me? Certainly. But we DON'T get on in life. We don't
  • pretend to do it."
  • My guardian looked at us again, plainly saying, "You hear him?"
  • "Now, Harold," he began, "the word I have to say relates to Rick."
  • "The dearest friend I have!" returned Mr. Skimpole cordially. "I
  • suppose he ought not to be my dearest friend, as he is not on terms
  • with you. But he is, I can't help it; he is full of youthful poetry,
  • and I love him. If you don't like it, I can't help it. I love him."
  • The engaging frankness with which he made this declaration really had
  • a disinterested appearance and captivated my guardian, if not, for
  • the moment, Ada too.
  • "You are welcome to love him as much as you like," returned Mr.
  • Jarndyce, "but we must save his pocket, Harold."
  • "Oh!" said Mr. Skimpole. "His pocket? Now you are coming to what I
  • don't understand." Taking a little more claret and dipping one of the
  • cakes in it, he shook his head and smiled at Ada and me with an
  • ingenuous foreboding that he never could be made to understand.
  • "If you go with him here or there," said my guardian plainly, "you
  • must not let him pay for both."
  • "My dear Jarndyce," returned Mr. Skimpole, his genial face irradiated
  • by the comicality of this idea, "what am I to do? If he takes me
  • anywhere, I must go. And how can I pay? I never have any money. If I
  • had any money, I don't know anything about it. Suppose I say to a
  • man, how much? Suppose the man says to me seven and sixpence? I know
  • nothing about seven and sixpence. It is impossible for me to pursue
  • the subject with any consideration for the man. I don't go about
  • asking busy people what seven and sixpence is in Moorish--which I
  • don't understand. Why should I go about asking them what seven and
  • sixpence is in Money--which I don't understand?"
  • "Well," said my guardian, by no means displeased with this artless
  • reply, "if you come to any kind of journeying with Rick, you must
  • borrow the money of me (never breathing the least allusion to that
  • circumstance), and leave the calculation to him."
  • "My dear Jarndyce," returned Mr. Skimpole, "I will do anything to
  • give you pleasure, but it seems an idle form--a superstition.
  • Besides, I give you my word, Miss Clare and my dear Miss Summerson, I
  • thought Mr. Carstone was immensely rich. I thought he had only to
  • make over something, or to sign a bond, or a draft, or a cheque, or a
  • bill, or to put something on a file somewhere, to bring down a shower
  • of money."
  • "Indeed it is not so, sir," said Ada. "He is poor."
  • "No, really?" returned Mr. Skimpole with his bright smile. "You
  • surprise me.
  • "And not being the richer for trusting in a rotten reed," said my
  • guardian, laying his hand emphatically on the sleeve of Mr.
  • Skimpole's dressing-gown, "be you very careful not to encourage him
  • in that reliance, Harold."
  • "My dear good friend," returned Mr. Skimpole, "and my dear Miss
  • Simmerson, and my dear Miss Clare, how can I do that? It's business,
  • and I don't know business. It is he who encourages me. He emerges
  • from great feats of business, presents the brightest prospects before
  • me as their result, and calls upon me to admire them. I do admire
  • them--as bright prospects. But I know no more about them, and I tell
  • him so."
  • The helpless kind of candour with which he presented this before us,
  • the light-hearted manner in which he was amused by his innocence, the
  • fantastic way in which he took himself under his own protection and
  • argued about that curious person, combined with the delightful ease
  • of everything he said exactly to make out my guardian's case. The
  • more I saw of him, the more unlikely it seemed to me, when he was
  • present, that he could design, conceal, or influence anything; and
  • yet the less likely that appeared when he was not present, and the
  • less agreeable it was to think of his having anything to do with any
  • one for whom I cared.
  • Hearing that his examination (as he called it) was now over, Mr.
  • Skimpole left the room with a radiant face to fetch his daughters
  • (his sons had run away at various times), leaving my guardian quite
  • delighted by the manner in which he had vindicated his childish
  • character. He soon came back, bringing with him the three young
  • ladies and Mrs. Skimpole, who had once been a beauty but was now a
  • delicate high-nosed invalid suffering under a complication of
  • disorders.
  • "This," said Mr. Skimpole, "is my Beauty daughter, Arethusa--plays
  • and sings odds and ends like her father. This is my Sentiment
  • daughter, Laura--plays a little but don't sing. This is my Comedy
  • daughter, Kitty--sings a little but don't play. We all draw a little
  • and compose a little, and none of us have any idea of time or money."
  • Mrs. Skimpole sighed, I thought, as if she would have been glad to
  • strike out this item in the family attainments. I also thought that
  • she rather impressed her sigh upon my guardian and that she took
  • every opportunity of throwing in another.
  • "It is pleasant," said Mr. Skimpole, turning his sprightly eyes from
  • one to the other of us, "and it is whimsically interesting to trace
  • peculiarities in families. In this family we are all children, and I
  • am the youngest."
  • The daughters, who appeared to be very fond of him, were amused by
  • this droll fact, particularly the Comedy daughter.
  • "My dears, it is true," said Mr. Skimpole, "is it not? So it is, and
  • so it must be, because like the dogs in the hymn, 'it is our nature
  • to.' Now, here is Miss Summerson with a fine administrative capacity
  • and a knowledge of details perfectly surprising. It will sound very
  • strange in Miss Summerson's ears, I dare say, that we know nothing
  • about chops in this house. But we don't, not the least. We can't cook
  • anything whatever. A needle and thread we don't know how to use. We
  • admire the people who possess the practical wisdom we want, but we
  • don't quarrel with them. Then why should they quarrel with us? Live
  • and let live, we say to them. Live upon your practical wisdom, and
  • let us live upon you!"
  • He laughed, but as usual seemed quite candid and really to mean what
  • he said.
  • "We have sympathy, my roses," said Mr. Skimpole, "sympathy for
  • everything. Have we not?"
  • "Oh, yes, papa!" cried the three daughters.
  • "In fact, that is our family department," said Mr. Skimpole, "in this
  • hurly-burly of life. We are capable of looking on and of being
  • interested, and we DO look on, and we ARE interested. What more can
  • we do? Here is my Beauty daughter, married these three years. Now I
  • dare say her marrying another child, and having two more, was all
  • wrong in point of political economy, but it was very agreeable. We
  • had our little festivities on those occasions and exchanged social
  • ideas. She brought her young husband home one day, and they and their
  • young fledglings have their nest upstairs. I dare say at some time or
  • other Sentiment and Comedy will bring THEIR husbands home and have
  • THEIR nests upstairs too. So we get on, we don't know how, but
  • somehow."
  • She looked very young indeed to be the mother of two children, and I
  • could not help pitying both her and them. It was evident that the
  • three daughters had grown up as they could and had had just as little
  • haphazard instruction as qualified them to be their father's
  • playthings in his idlest hours. His pictorial tastes were consulted,
  • I observed, in their respective styles of wearing their hair, the
  • Beauty daughter being in the classic manner, the Sentiment daughter
  • luxuriant and flowing, and the Comedy daughter in the arch style,
  • with a good deal of sprightly forehead, and vivacious little curls
  • dotted about the corners of her eyes. They were dressed to
  • correspond, though in a most untidy and negligent way.
  • Ada and I conversed with these young ladies and found them
  • wonderfully like their father. In the meanwhile Mr. Jarndyce (who had
  • been rubbing his head to a great extent, and hinted at a change in
  • the wind) talked with Mrs. Skimpole in a corner, where we could not
  • help hearing the chink of money. Mr. Skimpole had previously
  • volunteered to go home with us and had withdrawn to dress himself for
  • the purpose.
  • "My roses," he said when he came back, "take care of mama. She is
  • poorly to-day. By going home with Mr. Jarndyce for a day or two, I
  • shall hear the larks sing and preserve my amiability. It has been
  • tried, you know, and would be tried again if I remained at home."
  • "That bad man!" said the Comedy daughter.
  • "At the very time when he knew papa was lying ill by his wallflowers,
  • looking at the blue sky," Laura complained.
  • "And when the smell of hay was in the air!" said Arethusa.
  • "It showed a want of poetry in the man," Mr. Skimpole assented, but
  • with perfect good humour. "It was coarse. There was an absence of the
  • finer touches of humanity in it! My daughters have taken great
  • offence," he explained to us, "at an honest man--"
  • "Not honest, papa. Impossible!" they all three protested.
  • "At a rough kind of fellow--a sort of human hedgehog rolled up," said
  • Mr. Skimpole, "who is a baker in this neighbourhood and from whom we
  • borrowed a couple of arm-chairs. We wanted a couple of arm-chairs,
  • and we hadn't got them, and therefore of course we looked to a man
  • who HAD got them, to lend them. Well! This morose person lent them,
  • and we wore them out. When they were worn out, he wanted them back.
  • He had them back. He was contented, you will say. Not at all. He
  • objected to their being worn. I reasoned with him, and pointed out
  • his mistake. I said, 'Can you, at your time of life, be so
  • headstrong, my friend, as to persist that an arm-chair is a thing to
  • put upon a shelf and look at? That it is an object to contemplate, to
  • survey from a distance, to consider from a point of sight? Don't you
  • KNOW that these arm-chairs were borrowed to be sat upon?' He was
  • unreasonable and unpersuadable and used intemperate language. Being
  • as patient as I am at this minute, I addressed another appeal to him.
  • I said, 'Now, my good man, however our business capacities may vary,
  • we are all children of one great mother, Nature. On this blooming
  • summer morning here you see me' (I was on the sofa) 'with flowers
  • before me, fruit upon the table, the cloudless sky above me, the air
  • full of fragrance, contemplating Nature. I entreat you, by our common
  • brotherhood, not to interpose between me and a subject so sublime,
  • the absurd figure of an angry baker!' But he did," said Mr. Skimpole,
  • raising his laughing eyes in playful astonishment; "he did interpose
  • that ridiculous figure, and he does, and he will again. And therefore
  • I am very glad to get out of his way and to go home with my friend
  • Jarndyce."
  • It seemed to escape his consideration that Mrs. Skimpole and the
  • daughters remained behind to encounter the baker, but this was so old
  • a story to all of them that it had become a matter of course. He took
  • leave of his family with a tenderness as airy and graceful as any
  • other aspect in which he showed himself and rode away with us in
  • perfect harmony of mind. We had an opportunity of seeing through some
  • open doors, as we went downstairs, that his own apartment was a
  • palace to the rest of the house.
  • I could have no anticipation, and I had none, that something very
  • startling to me at the moment, and ever memorable to me in what
  • ensued from it, was to happen before this day was out. Our guest was
  • in such spirits on the way home that I could do nothing but listen to
  • him and wonder at him; nor was I alone in this, for Ada yielded to
  • the same fascination. As to my guardian, the wind, which had
  • threatened to become fixed in the east when we left Somers Town,
  • veered completely round before we were a couple of miles from it.
  • Whether of questionable childishness or not in any other matters, Mr.
  • Skimpole had a child's enjoyment of change and bright weather. In no
  • way wearied by his sallies on the road, he was in the drawing-room
  • before any of us; and I heard him at the piano while I was yet
  • looking after my housekeeping, singing refrains of barcaroles and
  • drinking songs, Italian and German, by the score.
  • We were all assembled shortly before dinner, and he was still at the
  • piano idly picking out in his luxurious way little strains of music,
  • and talking between whiles of finishing some sketches of the ruined
  • old Verulam wall to-morrow, which he had begun a year or two ago and
  • had got tired of, when a card was brought in and my guardian read
  • aloud in a surprised voice, "Sir Leicester Dedlock!"
  • The visitor was in the room while it was yet turning round with me
  • and before I had the power to stir. If I had had it, I should have
  • hurried away. I had not even the presence of mind, in my giddiness,
  • to retire to Ada in the window, or to see the window, or to know
  • where it was. I heard my name and found that my guardian was
  • presenting me before I could move to a chair.
  • "Pray be seated, Sir Leicester."
  • "Mr. Jarndyce," said Sir Leicester in reply as he bowed and seated
  • himself, "I do myself the honour of calling here--"
  • "You do ME the honour, Sir Leicester."
  • "Thank you--of calling here on my road from Lincolnshire to express
  • my regret that any cause of complaint, however strong, that I may
  • have against a gentleman who--who is known to you and has been your
  • host, and to whom therefore I will make no farther reference, should
  • have prevented you, still more ladies under your escort and charge,
  • from seeing whatever little there may be to gratify a polite and
  • refined taste at my house, Chesney Wold."
  • "You are exceedingly obliging, Sir Leicester, and on behalf of those
  • ladies (who are present) and for myself, I thank you very much."
  • "It is possible, Mr. Jarndyce, that the gentleman to whom, for the
  • reasons I have mentioned, I refrain from making further allusion--it
  • is possible, Mr. Jarndyce, that that gentleman may have done me the
  • honour so far to misapprehend my character as to induce you to
  • believe that you would not have been received by my local
  • establishment in Lincolnshire with that urbanity, that courtesy,
  • which its members are instructed to show to all ladies and gentlemen
  • who present themselves at that house. I merely beg to observe, sir,
  • that the fact is the reverse."
  • My guardian delicately dismissed this remark without making any
  • verbal answer.
  • "It has given me pain, Mr. Jarndyce," Sir Leicester weightily
  • proceeded. "I assure you, sir, it has given--me--pain--to learn from
  • the housekeeper at Chesney Wold that a gentleman who was in your
  • company in that part of the county, and who would appear to possess a
  • cultivated taste for the fine arts, was likewise deterred by some
  • such cause from examining the family pictures with that leisure, that
  • attention, that care, which he might have desired to bestow upon them
  • and which some of them might possibly have repaid." Here he produced
  • a card and read, with much gravity and a little trouble, through his
  • eye-glass, "Mr. Hirrold--Herald--Harold--Skampling--Skumpling--I beg
  • your pardon--Skimpole."
  • "This is Mr. Harold Skimpole," said my guardian, evidently surprised.
  • "Oh!" exclaimed Sir Leicester, "I am happy to meet Mr. Skimpole and
  • to have the opportunity of tendering my personal regrets. I hope,
  • sir, that when you again find yourself in my part of the county, you
  • will be under no similar sense of restraint."
  • "You are very obliging, Sir Leicester Dedlock. So encouraged, I shall
  • certainly give myself the pleasure and advantage of another visit to
  • your beautiful house. The owners of such places as Chesney Wold,"
  • said Mr. Skimpole with his usual happy and easy air, "are public
  • benefactors. They are good enough to maintain a number of delightful
  • objects for the admiration and pleasure of us poor men; and not to
  • reap all the admiration and pleasure that they yield is to be
  • ungrateful to our benefactors."
  • Sir Leicester seemed to approve of this sentiment highly. "An artist,
  • sir?"
  • "No," returned Mr. Skimpole. "A perfectly idle man. A mere amateur."
  • Sir Leicester seemed to approve of this even more. He hoped he might
  • have the good fortune to be at Chesney Wold when Mr. Skimpole next
  • came down into Lincolnshire. Mr. Skimpole professed himself much
  • flattered and honoured.
  • "Mr. Skimpole mentioned," pursued Sir Leicester, addressing himself
  • again to my guardian, "mentioned to the housekeeper, who, as he may
  • have observed, is an old and attached retainer of the family--"
  • ("That is, when I walked through the house the other day, on the
  • occasion of my going down to visit Miss Summerson and Miss Clare,"
  • Mr. Skimpole airily explained to us.)
  • "--That the friend with whom he had formerly been staying there was
  • Mr. Jarndyce." Sir Leicester bowed to the bearer of that name. "And
  • hence I became aware of the circumstance for which I have professed
  • my regret. That this should have occurred to any gentleman, Mr.
  • Jarndyce, but especially a gentleman formerly known to Lady Dedlock,
  • and indeed claiming some distant connexion with her, and for whom (as
  • I learn from my Lady herself) she entertains a high respect, does, I
  • assure you, give--me--pain."
  • "Pray say no more about it, Sir Leicester," returned my guardian. "I
  • am very sensible, as I am sure we all are, of your consideration.
  • Indeed the mistake was mine, and I ought to apologize for it."
  • I had not once looked up. I had not seen the visitor and had not even
  • appeared to myself to hear the conversation. It surprises me to find
  • that I can recall it, for it seemed to make no impression on me as it
  • passed. I heard them speaking, but my mind was so confused and my
  • instinctive avoidance of this gentleman made his presence so
  • distressing to me that I thought I understood nothing, through the
  • rushing in my head and the beating of my heart.
  • "I mentioned the subject to Lady Dedlock," said Sir Leicester,
  • rising, "and my Lady informed me that she had had the pleasure of
  • exchanging a few words with Mr. Jarndyce and his wards on the
  • occasion of an accidental meeting during their sojourn in the
  • vicinity. Permit me, Mr. Jarndyce, to repeat to yourself, and to
  • these ladies, the assurance I have already tendered to Mr. Skimpole.
  • Circumstances undoubtedly prevent my saying that it would afford me
  • any gratification to hear that Mr. Boythorn had favoured my house
  • with his presence, but those circumstances are confined to that
  • gentleman himself and do not extend beyond him."
  • "You know my old opinion of him," said Mr. Skimpole, lightly
  • appealing to us. "An amiable bull who is determined to make every
  • colour scarlet!"
  • Sir Leicester Dedlock coughed as if he could not possibly hear
  • another word in reference to such an individual and took his leave
  • with great ceremony and politeness. I got to my own room with all
  • possible speed and remained there until I had recovered my
  • self-command. It had been very much disturbed, but I was thankful to
  • find when I went downstairs again that they only rallied me for
  • having been shy and mute before the great Lincolnshire baronet.
  • By that time I had made up my mind that the period was come when I
  • must tell my guardian what I knew. The possibility of my being
  • brought into contact with my mother, of my being taken to her house,
  • even of Mr. Skimpole's, however distantly associated with me,
  • receiving kindnesses and obligations from her husband, was so painful
  • that I felt I could no longer guide myself without his assistance.
  • When we had retired for the night, and Ada and I had had our usual
  • talk in our pretty room, I went out at my door again and sought my
  • guardian among his books. I knew he always read at that hour, and as
  • I drew near I saw the light shining out into the passage from his
  • reading-lamp.
  • "May I come in, guardian?"
  • "Surely, little woman. What's the matter?"
  • "Nothing is the matter. I thought I would like to take this quiet
  • time of saying a word to you about myself."
  • He put a chair for me, shut his book, and put it by, and turned his
  • kind attentive face towards me. I could not help observing that it
  • wore that curious expression I had observed in it once before--on
  • that night when he had said that he was in no trouble which I could
  • readily understand.
  • "What concerns you, my dear Esther," said he, "concerns us all. You
  • cannot be more ready to speak than I am to hear."
  • "I know that, guardian. But I have such need of your advice and
  • support. Oh! You don't know how much need I have to-night."
  • He looked unprepared for my being so earnest, and even a little
  • alarmed.
  • "Or how anxious I have been to speak to you," said I, "ever since the
  • visitor was here to-day."
  • "The visitor, my dear! Sir Leicester Dedlock?"
  • "Yes."
  • He folded his arms and sat looking at me with an air of the
  • profoundest astonishment, awaiting what I should say next. I did not
  • know how to prepare him.
  • "Why, Esther," said he, breaking into a smile, "our visitor and you
  • are the two last persons on earth I should have thought of connecting
  • together!"
  • "Oh, yes, guardian, I know it. And I too, but a little while ago."
  • The smile passed from his face, and he became graver than before. He
  • crossed to the door to see that it was shut (but I had seen to that)
  • and resumed his seat before me.
  • "Guardian," said I, "do you remember, when we were overtaken by the
  • thunder-storm, Lady Dedlock's speaking to you of her sister?"
  • "Of course. Of course I do."
  • "And reminding you that she and her sister had differed, had gone
  • their several ways?"
  • "Of course."
  • "Why did they separate, guardian?"
  • His face quite altered as he looked at me. "My child, what questions
  • are these! I never knew. No one but themselves ever did know, I
  • believe. Who could tell what the secrets of those two handsome and
  • proud women were! You have seen Lady Dedlock. If you had ever seen
  • her sister, you would know her to have been as resolute and haughty
  • as she."
  • "Oh, guardian, I have seen her many and many a time!"
  • "Seen her?"
  • He paused a little, biting his lip. "Then, Esther, when you spoke to
  • me long ago of Boythorn, and when I told you that he was all but
  • married once, and that the lady did not die, but died to him, and
  • that that time had had its influence on his later life--did you know
  • it all, and know who the lady was?"
  • "No, guardian," I returned, fearful of the light that dimly broke
  • upon me. "Nor do I know yet."
  • "Lady Dedlock's sister."
  • "And why," I could scarcely ask him, "why, guardian, pray tell me why
  • were THEY parted?"
  • "It was her act, and she kept its motives in her inflexible heart. He
  • afterwards did conjecture (but it was mere conjecture) that some
  • injury which her haughty spirit had received in her cause of quarrel
  • with her sister had wounded her beyond all reason, but she wrote him
  • that from the date of that letter she died to him--as in literal
  • truth she did--and that the resolution was exacted from her by her
  • knowledge of his proud temper and his strained sense of honour, which
  • were both her nature too. In consideration for those master points in
  • him, and even in consideration for them in herself, she made the
  • sacrifice, she said, and would live in it and die in it. She did
  • both, I fear; certainly he never saw her, never heard of her from
  • that hour. Nor did any one."
  • "Oh, guardian, what have I done!" I cried, giving way to my grief;
  • "what sorrow have I innocently caused!"
  • "You caused, Esther?"
  • "Yes, guardian. Innocently, but most surely. That secluded sister is
  • my first remembrance."
  • "No, no!" he cried, starting.
  • "Yes, guardian, yes! And HER sister is my mother!"
  • I would have told him all my mother's letter, but he would not hear
  • it then. He spoke so tenderly and wisely to me, and he put so plainly
  • before me all I had myself imperfectly thought and hoped in my better
  • state of mind, that, penetrated as I had been with fervent gratitude
  • towards him through so many years, I believed I had never loved him
  • so dearly, never thanked him in my heart so fully, as I did that
  • night. And when he had taken me to my room and kissed me at the door,
  • and when at last I lay down to sleep, my thought was how could I ever
  • be busy enough, how could I ever be good enough, how in my little way
  • could I ever hope to be forgetful enough of myself, devoted enough to
  • him, and useful enough to others, to show him how I blessed and
  • honoured him.
  • CHAPTER XLIV
  • The Letter and the Answer
  • My guardian called me into his room next morning, and then I told him
  • what had been left untold on the previous night. There was nothing to
  • be done, he said, but to keep the secret and to avoid another such
  • encounter as that of yesterday. He understood my feeling and entirely
  • shared it. He charged himself even with restraining Mr. Skimpole from
  • improving his opportunity. One person whom he need not name to me, it
  • was not now possible for him to advise or help. He wished it were,
  • but no such thing could be. If her mistrust of the lawyer whom she
  • had mentioned were well-founded, which he scarcely doubted, he
  • dreaded discovery. He knew something of him, both by sight and by
  • reputation, and it was certain that he was a dangerous man. Whatever
  • happened, he repeatedly impressed upon me with anxious affection and
  • kindness, I was as innocent of as himself and as unable to influence.
  • "Nor do I understand," said he, "that any doubts tend towards you, my
  • dear. Much suspicion may exist without that connexion."
  • "With the lawyer," I returned. "But two other persons have come into
  • my mind since I have been anxious. Then I told him all about Mr.
  • Guppy, who I feared might have had his vague surmises when I little
  • understood his meaning, but in whose silence after our last interview
  • I expressed perfect confidence.
  • "Well," said my guardian. "Then we may dismiss him for the present.
  • Who is the other?"
  • I called to his recollection the French maid and the eager offer of
  • herself she had made to me.
  • "Ha!" he returned thoughtfully. "That is a more alarming person than
  • the clerk. But after all, my dear, it was but seeking for a new
  • service. She had seen you and Ada a little while before, and it was
  • natural that you should come into her head. She merely proposed
  • herself for your maid, you know. She did nothing more."
  • "Her manner was strange," said I.
  • "Yes, and her manner was strange when she took her shoes off and
  • showed that cool relish for a walk that might have ended in her
  • death-bed," said my guardian. "It would be useless self-distress and
  • torment to reckon up such chances and possibilities. There are very
  • few harmless circumstances that would not seem full of perilous
  • meaning, so considered. Be hopeful, little woman. You can be nothing
  • better than yourself; be that, through this knowledge, as you were
  • before you had it. It is the best you can do for everybody's sake. I,
  • sharing the secret with you--"
  • "And lightening it, guardian, so much," said I.
  • "--will be attentive to what passes in that family, so far as I can
  • observe it from my distance. And if the time should come when I can
  • stretch out a hand to render the least service to one whom it is
  • better not to name even here, I will not fail to do it for her dear
  • daughter's sake."
  • I thanked him with my whole heart. What could I ever do but thank
  • him! I was going out at the door when he asked me to stay a moment.
  • Quickly turning round, I saw that same expression on his face again;
  • and all at once, I don't know how, it flashed upon me as a new and
  • far-off possibility that I understood it.
  • "My dear Esther," said my guardian, "I have long had something in my
  • thoughts that I have wished to say to you."
  • "Indeed?"
  • "I have had some difficulty in approaching it, and I still have. I
  • should wish it to be so deliberately said, and so deliberately
  • considered. Would you object to my writing it?"
  • "Dear guardian, how could I object to your writing anything for ME to
  • read?"
  • "Then see, my love," said he with his cheery smile, "am I at this
  • moment quite as plain and easy--do I seem as open, as honest and
  • old-fashioned--as I am at any time?"
  • I answered in all earnestness, "Quite." With the strictest truth, for
  • his momentary hesitation was gone (it had not lasted a minute), and
  • his fine, sensible, cordial, sterling manner was restored.
  • "Do I look as if I suppressed anything, meant anything but what I
  • said, had any reservation at all, no matter what?" said he with his
  • bright clear eyes on mine.
  • I answered, most assuredly he did not.
  • "Can you fully trust me, and thoroughly rely on what I profess,
  • Esther?"
  • "Most thoroughly," said I with my whole heart.
  • "My dear girl," returned my guardian, "give me your hand."
  • He took it in his, holding me lightly with his arm, and looking down
  • into my face with the same genuine freshness and faithfulness of
  • manner--the old protecting manner which had made that house my home
  • in a moment--said, "You have wrought changes in me, little woman,
  • since the winter day in the stage-coach. First and last you have done
  • me a world of good since that time."
  • "Ah, guardian, what have you done for me since that time!"
  • "But," said he, "that is not to be remembered now."
  • "It never can be forgotten."
  • "Yes, Esther," said he with a gentle seriousness, "it is to be
  • forgotten now, to be forgotten for a while. You are only to remember
  • now that nothing can change me as you know me. Can you feel quite
  • assured of that, my dear?"
  • "I can, and I do," I said.
  • "That's much," he answered. "That's everything. But I must not take
  • that at a word. I will not write this something in my thoughts until
  • you have quite resolved within yourself that nothing can change me as
  • you know me. If you doubt that in the least degree, I will never
  • write it. If you are sure of that, on good consideration, send
  • Charley to me this night week--'for the letter.' But if you are not
  • quite certain, never send. Mind, I trust to your truth, in this thing
  • as in everything. If you are not quite certain on that one point,
  • never send!"
  • "Guardian," said I, "I am already certain, I can no more be changed
  • in that conviction than you can be changed towards me. I shall send
  • Charley for the letter."
  • He shook my hand and said no more. Nor was any more said in reference
  • to this conversation, either by him or me, through the whole week.
  • When the appointed night came, I said to Charley as soon as I was
  • alone, "Go and knock at Mr. Jarndyce's door, Charley, and say you
  • have come from me--'for the letter.'" Charley went up the stairs, and
  • down the stairs, and along the passages--the zig-zag way about the
  • old-fashioned house seemed very long in my listening ears that
  • night--and so came back, along the passages, and down the stairs, and
  • up the stairs, and brought the letter. "Lay it on the table,
  • Charley," said I. So Charley laid it on the table and went to bed,
  • and I sat looking at it without taking it up, thinking of many
  • things.
  • I began with my overshadowed childhood, and passed through those
  • timid days to the heavy time when my aunt lay dead, with her resolute
  • face so cold and set, and when I was more solitary with Mrs. Rachael
  • than if I had had no one in the world to speak to or to look at. I
  • passed to the altered days when I was so blest as to find friends in
  • all around me, and to be beloved. I came to the time when I first saw
  • my dear girl and was received into that sisterly affection which was
  • the grace and beauty of my life. I recalled the first bright gleam of
  • welcome which had shone out of those very windows upon our expectant
  • faces on that cold bright night, and which had never paled. I lived
  • my happy life there over again, I went through my illness and
  • recovery, I thought of myself so altered and of those around me so
  • unchanged; and all this happiness shone like a light from one central
  • figure, represented before me by the letter on the table.
  • I opened it and read it. It was so impressive in its love for me, and
  • in the unselfish caution it gave me, and the consideration it showed
  • for me in every word, that my eyes were too often blinded to read
  • much at a time. But I read it through three times before I laid it
  • down. I had thought beforehand that I knew its purport, and I did. It
  • asked me, would I be the mistress of Bleak House.
  • It was not a love letter, though it expressed so much love, but was
  • written just as he would at any time have spoken to me. I saw his
  • face, and heard his voice, and felt the influence of his kind
  • protecting manner in every line. It addressed me as if our places
  • were reversed, as if all the good deeds had been mine and all the
  • feelings they had awakened his. It dwelt on my being young, and he
  • past the prime of life; on his having attained a ripe age, while I
  • was a child; on his writing to me with a silvered head, and knowing
  • all this so well as to set it in full before me for mature
  • deliberation. It told me that I would gain nothing by such a marriage
  • and lose nothing by rejecting it, for no new relation could enhance
  • the tenderness in which he held me, and whatever my decision was, he
  • was certain it would be right. But he had considered this step anew
  • since our late confidence and had decided on taking it, if it only
  • served to show me through one poor instance that the whole world
  • would readily unite to falsify the stern prediction of my childhood.
  • I was the last to know what happiness I could bestow upon him, but of
  • that he said no more, for I was always to remember that I owed him
  • nothing and that he was my debtor, and for very much. He had often
  • thought of our future, and foreseeing that the time must come, and
  • fearing that it might come soon, when Ada (now very nearly of age)
  • would leave us, and when our present mode of life must be broken up,
  • had become accustomed to reflect on this proposal. Thus he made it.
  • If I felt that I could ever give him the best right he could have to
  • be my protector, and if I felt that I could happily and justly become
  • the dear companion of his remaining life, superior to all lighter
  • chances and changes than death, even then he could not have me bind
  • myself irrevocably while this letter was yet so new to me, but even
  • then I must have ample time for reconsideration. In that case, or in
  • the opposite case, let him be unchanged in his old relation, in his
  • old manner, in the old name by which I called him. And as to his
  • bright Dame Durden and little housekeeper, she would ever be the
  • same, he knew.
  • This was the substance of the letter, written throughout with a
  • justice and a dignity as if he were indeed my responsible guardian
  • impartially representing the proposal of a friend against whom in his
  • integrity he stated the full case.
  • But he did not hint to me that when I had been better looking he had
  • had this same proceeding in his thoughts and had refrained from it.
  • That when my old face was gone from me, and I had no attractions, he
  • could love me just as well as in my fairer days. That the discovery
  • of my birth gave him no shock. That his generosity rose above my
  • disfigurement and my inheritance of shame. That the more I stood in
  • need of such fidelity, the more firmly I might trust in him to the
  • last.
  • But I knew it, I knew it well now. It came upon me as the close of
  • the benignant history I had been pursuing, and I felt that I had but
  • one thing to do. To devote my life to his happiness was to thank him
  • poorly, and what had I wished for the other night but some new means
  • of thanking him?
  • Still I cried very much, not only in the fullness of my heart after
  • reading the letter, not only in the strangeness of the prospect--for
  • it was strange though I had expected the contents--but as if
  • something for which there was no name or distinct idea were
  • indefinitely lost to me. I was very happy, very thankful, very
  • hopeful; but I cried very much.
  • By and by I went to my old glass. My eyes were red and swollen, and I
  • said, "Oh, Esther, Esther, can that be you!" I am afraid the face in
  • the glass was going to cry again at this reproach, but I held up my
  • finger at it, and it stopped.
  • "That is more like the composed look you comforted me with, my dear,
  • when you showed me such a change!" said I, beginning to let down my
  • hair. "When you are mistress of Bleak House, you are to be as
  • cheerful as a bird. In fact, you are always to be cheerful; so let us
  • begin for once and for all."
  • I went on with my hair now, quite comfortably. I sobbed a little
  • still, but that was because I had been crying, not because I was
  • crying then.
  • "And so Esther, my dear, you are happy for life. Happy with your best
  • friends, happy in your old home, happy in the power of doing a great
  • deal of good, and happy in the undeserved love of the best of men."
  • I thought, all at once, if my guardian had married some one else, how
  • should I have felt, and what should I have done! That would have been
  • a change indeed. It presented my life in such a new and blank form
  • that I rang my housekeeping keys and gave them a kiss before I laid
  • them down in their basket again.
  • Then I went on to think, as I dressed my hair before the glass, how
  • often had I considered within myself that the deep traces of my
  • illness and the circumstances of my birth were only new reasons why I
  • should be busy, busy, busy--useful, amiable, serviceable, in all
  • honest, unpretending ways. This was a good time, to be sure, to sit
  • down morbidly and cry! As to its seeming at all strange to me at
  • first (if that were any excuse for crying, which it was not) that I
  • was one day to be the mistress of Bleak House, why should it seem
  • strange? Other people had thought of such things, if I had not.
  • "Don't you remember, my plain dear," I asked myself, looking at the
  • glass, "what Mrs. Woodcourt said before those scars were there about
  • your marrying--"
  • Perhaps the name brought them to my remembrance. The dried remains of
  • the flowers. It would be better not to keep them now. They had only
  • been preserved in memory of something wholly past and gone, but it
  • would be better not to keep them now.
  • They were in a book, and it happened to be in the next room--our
  • sitting-room, dividing Ada's chamber from mine. I took a candle and
  • went softly in to fetch it from its shelf. After I had it in my hand,
  • I saw my beautiful darling, through the open door, lying asleep, and
  • I stole in to kiss her.
  • It was weak in me, I know, and I could have no reason for crying; but
  • I dropped a tear upon her dear face, and another, and another. Weaker
  • than that, I took the withered flowers out and put them for a moment
  • to her lips. I thought about her love for Richard, though, indeed,
  • the flowers had nothing to do with that. Then I took them into my own
  • room and burned them at the candle, and they were dust in an instant.
  • On entering the breakfast-room next morning, I found my guardian just
  • as usual, quite as frank, as open, and free. There being not the
  • least constraint in his manner, there was none (or I think there was
  • none) in mine. I was with him several times in the course of the
  • morning, in and out, when there was no one there, and I thought it
  • not unlikely that he might speak to me about the letter, but he did
  • not say a word.
  • So, on the next morning, and the next, and for at least a week, over
  • which time Mr. Skimpole prolonged his stay. I expected, every day,
  • that my guardian might speak to me about the letter, but he never
  • did.
  • I thought then, growing uneasy, that I ought to write an answer. I
  • tried over and over again in my own room at night, but I could not
  • write an answer that at all began like a good answer, so I thought
  • each night I would wait one more day. And I waited seven more days,
  • and he never said a word.
  • At last, Mr. Skimpole having departed, we three were one afternoon
  • going out for a ride; and I, being dressed before Ada and going down,
  • came upon my guardian, with his back towards me, standing at the
  • drawing-room window looking out.
  • He turned on my coming in and said, smiling, "Aye, it's you, little
  • woman, is it?" and looked out again.
  • I had made up my mind to speak to him now. In short, I had come down
  • on purpose. "Guardian," I said, rather hesitating and trembling,
  • "when would you like to have the answer to the letter Charley came
  • for?"
  • "When it's ready, my dear," he replied.
  • "I think it is ready," said I.
  • "Is Charley to bring it?" he asked pleasantly.
  • "No. I have brought it myself, guardian," I returned.
  • I put my two arms round his neck and kissed him, and he said was this
  • the mistress of Bleak House, and I said yes; and it made no
  • difference presently, and we all went out together, and I said
  • nothing to my precious pet about it.
  • CHAPTER XLV
  • In Trust
  • One morning when I had done jingling about with my baskets of keys,
  • as my beauty and I were walking round and round the garden I happened
  • to turn my eyes towards the house and saw a long thin shadow going in
  • which looked like Mr. Vholes. Ada had been telling me only that
  • morning of her hopes that Richard might exhaust his ardour in the
  • Chancery suit by being so very earnest in it; and therefore, not to
  • damp my dear girl's spirits, I said nothing about Mr. Vholes's
  • shadow.
  • Presently came Charley, lightly winding among the bushes and tripping
  • along the paths, as rosy and pretty as one of Flora's attendants
  • instead of my maid, saying, "Oh, if you please, miss, would you step
  • and speak to Mr. Jarndyce!"
  • It was one of Charley's peculiarities that whenever she was charged
  • with a message she always began to deliver it as soon as she beheld,
  • at any distance, the person for whom it was intended. Therefore I saw
  • Charley asking me in her usual form of words to "step and speak" to
  • Mr. Jarndyce long before I heard her. And when I did hear her, she
  • had said it so often that she was out of breath.
  • I told Ada I would make haste back and inquired of Charley as we went
  • in whether there was not a gentleman with Mr. Jarndyce. To which
  • Charley, whose grammar, I confess to my shame, never did any credit
  • to my educational powers, replied, "Yes, miss. Him as come down in
  • the country with Mr. Richard."
  • A more complete contrast than my guardian and Mr. Vholes I suppose
  • there could not be. I found them looking at one another across a
  • table, the one so open and the other so close, the one so broad and
  • upright and the other so narrow and stooping, the one giving out what
  • he had to say in such a rich ringing voice and the other keeping it
  • in in such a cold-blooded, gasping, fish-like manner that I thought I
  • never had seen two people so unmatched.
  • "You know Mr. Vholes, my dear," said my guardian. Not with the
  • greatest urbanity, I must say.
  • Mr. Vholes rose, gloved and buttoned up as usual, and seated himself
  • again, just as he had seated himself beside Richard in the gig. Not
  • having Richard to look at, he looked straight before him.
  • "Mr. Vholes," said my guardian, eyeing his black figure as if he were
  • a bird of ill omen, "has brought an ugly report of our most
  • unfortunate Rick." Laying a marked emphasis on "most unfortunate" as
  • if the words were rather descriptive of his connexion with Mr.
  • Vholes.
  • I sat down between them; Mr. Vholes remained immovable, except that
  • he secretly picked at one of the red pimples on his yellow face with
  • his black glove.
  • "And as Rick and you are happily good friends, I should like to
  • know," said my guardian, "what you think, my dear. Would you be so
  • good as to--as to speak up, Mr. Vholes?"
  • Doing anything but that, Mr. Vholes observed, "I have been saying
  • that I have reason to know, Miss Summerson, as Mr. C.'s professional
  • adviser, that Mr. C.'s circumstances are at the present moment in an
  • embarrassed state. Not so much in point of amount as owing to the
  • peculiar and pressing nature of liabilities Mr. C. has incurred and
  • the means he has of liquidating or meeting the same. I have staved
  • off many little matters for Mr. C., but there is a limit to staving
  • off, and we have reached it. I have made some advances out of pocket
  • to accommodate these unpleasantnesses, but I necessarily look to
  • being repaid, for I do not pretend to be a man of capital, and I have
  • a father to support in the Vale of Taunton, besides striving to
  • realize some little independence for three dear girls at home. My
  • apprehension is, Mr. C.'s circumstances being such, lest it should
  • end in his obtaining leave to part with his commission, which at all
  • events is desirable to be made known to his connexions."
  • Mr. Vholes, who had looked at me while speaking, here emerged into
  • the silence he could hardly be said to have broken, so stifled was
  • his tone, and looked before him again.
  • "Imagine the poor fellow without even his present resource," said my
  • guardian to me. "Yet what can I do? You know him, Esther. He would
  • never accept of help from me now. To offer it or hint at it would be
  • to drive him to an extremity, if nothing else did."
  • Mr. Vholes hereupon addressed me again.
  • "What Mr. Jarndyce remarks, miss, is no doubt the case, and is the
  • difficulty. I do not see that anything is to be done. I do not say
  • that anything is to be done. Far from it. I merely come down here
  • under the seal of confidence and mention it in order that everything
  • may be openly carried on and that it may not be said afterwards that
  • everything was not openly carried on. My wish is that everything
  • should be openly carried on. I desire to leave a good name behind me.
  • If I consulted merely my own interests with Mr. C., I should not be
  • here. So insurmountable, as you must well know, would be his
  • objections. This is not a professional attendance. This can he
  • charged to nobody. I have no interest in it except as a member of
  • society and a father--AND a son," said Mr. Vholes, who had nearly
  • forgotten that point.
  • It appeared to us that Mr. Vholes said neither more nor less than the
  • truth in intimating that he sought to divide the responsibility, such
  • as it was, of knowing Richard's situation. I could only suggest that
  • I should go down to Deal, where Richard was then stationed, and see
  • him, and try if it were possible to avert the worst. Without
  • consulting Mr. Vholes on this point, I took my guardian aside to
  • propose it, while Mr. Vholes gauntly stalked to the fire and warmed
  • his funeral gloves.
  • The fatigue of the journey formed an immediate objection on my
  • guardian's part, but as I saw he had no other, and as I was only too
  • happy to go, I got his consent. We had then merely to dispose of Mr.
  • Vholes.
  • "Well, sir," said Mr. Jarndyce, "Miss Summerson will communicate with
  • Mr. Carstone, and you can only hope that his position may be yet
  • retrievable. You will allow me to order you lunch after your journey,
  • sir."
  • "I thank you, Mr. Jarndyce," said Mr. Vholes, putting out his long
  • black sleeve to check the ringing of the bell, "not any. I thank you,
  • no, not a morsel. My digestion is much impaired, and I am but a poor
  • knife and fork at any time. If I was to partake of solid food at this
  • period of the day, I don't know what the consequences might be.
  • Everything having been openly carried on, sir, I will now with your
  • permission take my leave."
  • "And I would that you could take your leave, and we could all take
  • our leave, Mr. Vholes," returned my guardian bitterly, "of a cause
  • you know of."
  • Mr. Vholes, whose black dye was so deep from head to foot that it had
  • quite steamed before the fire, diffusing a very unpleasant perfume,
  • made a short one-sided inclination of his head from the neck and
  • slowly shook it.
  • "We whose ambition it is to be looked upon in the light of
  • respectable practitioners, sir, can but put our shoulders to the
  • wheel. We do it, sir. At least, I do it myself; and I wish to think
  • well of my professional brethren, one and all. You are sensible of an
  • obligation not to refer to me, miss, in communicating with Mr. C.?"
  • I said I would be careful not to do it.
  • "Just so, miss. Good morning. Mr. Jarndyce, good morning, sir." Mr.
  • Vholes put his dead glove, which scarcely seemed to have any hand in
  • it, on my fingers, and then on my guardian's fingers, and took his
  • long thin shadow away. I thought of it on the outside of the coach,
  • passing over all the sunny landscape between us and London, chilling
  • the seed in the ground as it glided along.
  • Of course it became necessary to tell Ada where I was going and why I
  • was going, and of course she was anxious and distressed. But she was
  • too true to Richard to say anything but words of pity and words of
  • excuse, and in a more loving spirit still--my dear devoted girl!--she
  • wrote him a long letter, of which I took charge.
  • Charley was to be my travelling companion, though I am sure I wanted
  • none and would willingly have left her at home. We all went to London
  • that afternoon, and finding two places in the mail, secured them. At
  • our usual bed-time, Charley and I were rolling away seaward with the
  • Kentish letters.
  • It was a night's journey in those coach times, but we had the mail to
  • ourselves and did not find the night very tedious. It passed with me
  • as I suppose it would with most people under such circumstances. At
  • one while my journey looked hopeful, and at another hopeless. Now I
  • thought I should do some good, and now I wondered how I could ever
  • have supposed so. Now it seemed one of the most reasonable things in
  • the world that I should have come, and now one of the most
  • unreasonable. In what state I should find Richard, what I should say
  • to him, and what he would say to me occupied my mind by turns with
  • these two states of feeling; and the wheels seemed to play one tune
  • (to which the burden of my guardian's letter set itself) over and
  • over again all night.
  • At last we came into the narrow streets of Deal, and very gloomy they
  • were upon a raw misty morning. The long flat beach, with its little
  • irregular houses, wooden and brick, and its litter of capstans, and
  • great boats, and sheds, and bare upright poles with tackle and
  • blocks, and loose gravelly waste places overgrown with grass and
  • weeds, wore as dull an appearance as any place I ever saw. The sea
  • was heaving under a thick white fog; and nothing else was moving but
  • a few early ropemakers, who, with the yarn twisted round their
  • bodies, looked as if, tired of their present state of existence, they
  • were spinning themselves into cordage.
  • But when we got into a warm room in an excellent hotel and sat down,
  • comfortably washed and dressed, to an early breakfast (for it was too
  • late to think of going to bed), Deal began to look more cheerful. Our
  • little room was like a ship's cabin, and that delighted Charley very
  • much. Then the fog began to rise like a curtain, and numbers of ships
  • that we had had no idea were near appeared. I don't know how many
  • sail the waiter told us were then lying in the downs. Some of these
  • vessels were of grand size--one was a large Indiaman just come home;
  • and when the sun shone through the clouds, making silvery pools in
  • the dark sea, the way in which these ships brightened, and shadowed,
  • and changed, amid a bustle of boats pulling off from the shore to
  • them and from them to the shore, and a general life and motion in
  • themselves and everything around them, was most beautiful.
  • The large Indiaman was our great attraction because she had come into
  • the downs in the night. She was surrounded by boats, and we said how
  • glad the people on board of her must be to come ashore. Charley was
  • curious, too, about the voyage, and about the heat in India, and the
  • serpents and the tigers; and as she picked up such information much
  • faster than grammar, I told her what I knew on those points. I told
  • her, too, how people in such voyages were sometimes wrecked and cast
  • on rocks, where they were saved by the intrepidity and humanity of
  • one man. And Charley asking how that could be, I told her how we knew
  • at home of such a case.
  • I had thought of sending Richard a note saying I was there, but it
  • seemed so much better to go to him without preparation. As he lived
  • in barracks I was a little doubtful whether this was feasible, but we
  • went out to reconnoitre. Peeping in at the gate of the barrack-yard,
  • we found everything very quiet at that time in the morning, and I
  • asked a sergeant standing on the guardhouse-steps where he lived. He
  • sent a man before to show me, who went up some bare stairs, and
  • knocked with his knuckles at a door, and left us.
  • "Now then!" cried Richard from within. So I left Charley in the
  • little passage, and going on to the half-open door, said, "Can I come
  • in, Richard? It's only Dame Durden."
  • He was writing at a table, with a great confusion of clothes, tin
  • cases, books, boots, brushes, and portmanteaus strewn all about the
  • floor. He was only half dressed--in plain clothes, I observed, not in
  • uniform--and his hair was unbrushed, and he looked as wild as his
  • room. All this I saw after he had heartily welcomed me and I was
  • seated near him, for he started upon hearing my voice and caught me
  • in his arms in a moment. Dear Richard! He was ever the same to me.
  • Down to--ah, poor poor fellow!--to the end, he never received me but
  • with something of his old merry boyish manner.
  • "Good heaven, my dear little woman," said he, "how do you come here?
  • Who could have thought of seeing you! Nothing the matter? Ada is
  • well?"
  • "Quite well. Lovelier than ever, Richard!"
  • "Ah!" he said, leaning back in his chair. "My poor cousin! I was
  • writing to you, Esther."
  • So worn and haggard as he looked, even in the fullness of his
  • handsome youth, leaning back in his chair and crushing the closely
  • written sheet of paper in his hand!
  • "Have you been at the trouble of writing all that, and am I not to
  • read it after all?" I asked.
  • "Oh, my dear," he returned with a hopeless gesture. "You may read it
  • in the whole room. It is all over here."
  • I mildly entreated him not to be despondent. I told him that I had
  • heard by chance of his being in difficulty and had come to consult
  • with him what could best be done.
  • "Like you, Esther, but useless, and so NOT like you!" said he with a
  • melancholy smile. "I am away on leave this day--should have been gone
  • in another hour--and that is to smooth it over, for my selling out.
  • Well! Let bygones be bygones. So this calling follows the rest. I
  • only want to have been in the church to have made the round of all
  • the professions."
  • "Richard," I urged, "it is not so hopeless as that?"
  • "Esther," he returned, "it is indeed. I am just so near disgrace as
  • that those who are put in authority over me (as the catechism goes)
  • would far rather be without me than with me. And they are right.
  • Apart from debts and duns and all such drawbacks, I am not fit even
  • for this employment. I have no care, no mind, no heart, no soul, but
  • for one thing. Why, if this bubble hadn't broken now," he said,
  • tearing the letter he had written into fragments and moodily casting
  • them away, by driblets, "how could I have gone abroad? I must have
  • been ordered abroad, but how could I have gone? How could I, with my
  • experience of that thing, trust even Vholes unless I was at his
  • back!"
  • I suppose he knew by my face what I was about to say, but he caught
  • the hand I had laid upon his arm and touched my own lips with it to
  • prevent me from going on.
  • "No, Dame Durden! Two subjects I forbid--must forbid. The first is
  • John Jarndyce. The second, you know what. Call it madness, and I tell
  • you I can't help it now, and can't be sane. But it is no such thing;
  • it is the one object I have to pursue. It is a pity I ever was
  • prevailed upon to turn out of my road for any other. It would be
  • wisdom to abandon it now, after all the time, anxiety, and pains I
  • have bestowed upon it! Oh, yes, true wisdom. It would be very
  • agreeable, too, to some people; but I never will."
  • He was in that mood in which I thought it best not to increase his
  • determination (if anything could increase it) by opposing him. I took
  • out Ada's letter and put it in his hand.
  • "Am I to read it now?" he asked.
  • As I told him yes, he laid it on the table, and resting his head upon
  • his hand, began. He had not read far when he rested his head upon his
  • two hands--to hide his face from me. In a little while he rose as if
  • the light were bad and went to the window. He finished reading it
  • there, with his back towards me, and after he had finished and had
  • folded it up, stood there for some minutes with the letter in his
  • hand. When he came back to his chair, I saw tears in his eyes.
  • "Of course, Esther, you know what she says here?" He spoke in a
  • softened voice and kissed the letter as he asked me.
  • "Yes, Richard."
  • "Offers me," he went on, tapping his foot upon the floor, "the little
  • inheritance she is certain of so soon--just as little and as much as
  • I have wasted--and begs and prays me to take it, set myself right
  • with it, and remain in the service."
  • "I know your welfare to be the dearest wish of her heart," said I.
  • "And, oh, my dear Richard, Ada's is a noble heart."
  • "I am sure it is. I--I wish I was dead!"
  • He went back to the window, and laying his arm across it, leaned his
  • head down on his arm. It greatly affected me to see him so, but I
  • hoped he might become more yielding, and I remained silent. My
  • experience was very limited; I was not at all prepared for his
  • rousing himself out of this emotion to a new sense of injury.
  • "And this is the heart that the same John Jarndyce, who is not
  • otherwise to be mentioned between us, stepped in to estrange from
  • me," said he indignantly. "And the dear girl makes me this generous
  • offer from under the same John Jarndyce's roof, and with the same
  • John Jarndyce's gracious consent and connivance, I dare say, as a new
  • means of buying me off."
  • "Richard!" I cried out, rising hastily. "I will not hear you say such
  • shameful words!" I was very angry with him indeed, for the first time
  • in my life, but it only lasted a moment. When I saw his worn young
  • face looking at me as if he were sorry, I put my hand on his shoulder
  • and said, "If you please, my dear Richard, do not speak in such a
  • tone to me. Consider!"
  • He blamed himself exceedingly and told me in the most generous manner
  • that he had been very wrong and that he begged my pardon a thousand
  • times. At that I laughed, but trembled a little too, for I was rather
  • fluttered after being so fiery.
  • "To accept this offer, my dear Esther," said he, sitting down beside
  • me and resuming our conversation, "--once more, pray, pray forgive
  • me; I am deeply grieved--to accept my dearest cousin's offer is, I
  • need not say, impossible. Besides, I have letters and papers that I
  • could show you which would convince you it is all over here. I have
  • done with the red coat, believe me. But it is some satisfaction, in
  • the midst of my troubles and perplexities, to know that I am pressing
  • Ada's interests in pressing my own. Vholes has his shoulder to the
  • wheel, and he cannot help urging it on as much for her as for me,
  • thank God!"
  • His sanguine hopes were rising within him and lighting up his
  • features, but they made his face more sad to me than it had been
  • before.
  • "No, no!" cried Richard exultingly. "If every farthing of Ada's
  • little fortune were mine, no part of it should be spent in retaining
  • me in what I am not fit for, can take no interest in, and am weary
  • of. It should be devoted to what promises a better return, and should
  • be used where she has a larger stake. Don't be uneasy for me! I shall
  • now have only one thing on my mind, and Vholes and I will work it. I
  • shall not be without means. Free of my commission, I shall be able to
  • compound with some small usurers who will hear of nothing but their
  • bond now--Vholes says so. I should have a balance in my favour
  • anyway, but that would swell it. Come, come! You shall carry a letter
  • to Ada from me, Esther, and you must both of you be more hopeful of
  • me and not believe that I am quite cast away just yet, my dear."
  • I will not repeat what I said to Richard. I know it was tiresome, and
  • nobody is to suppose for a moment that it was at all wise. It only
  • came from my heart. He heard it patiently and feelingly, but I saw
  • that on the two subjects he had reserved it was at present hopeless
  • to make any representation to him. I saw too, and had experienced in
  • this very interview, the sense of my guardian's remark that it was
  • even more mischievous to use persuasion with him than to leave him as
  • he was.
  • Therefore I was driven at last to asking Richard if he would mind
  • convincing me that it really was all over there, as he had said, and
  • that it was not his mere impression. He showed me without hesitation
  • a correspondence making it quite plain that his retirement was
  • arranged. I found, from what he told me, that Mr. Vholes had copies
  • of these papers and had been in consultation with him throughout.
  • Beyond ascertaining this, and having been the bearer of Ada's letter,
  • and being (as I was going to be) Richard's companion back to London,
  • I had done no good by coming down. Admitting this to myself with a
  • reluctant heart, I said I would return to the hotel and wait until he
  • joined me there, so he threw a cloak over his shoulders and saw me to
  • the gate, and Charley and I went back along the beach.
  • There was a concourse of people in one spot, surrounding some naval
  • officers who were landing from a boat, and pressing about them with
  • unusual interest. I said to Charley this would be one of the great
  • Indiaman's boats now, and we stopped to look.
  • The gentlemen came slowly up from the waterside, speaking
  • good-humouredly to each other and to the people around and glancing
  • about them as if they were glad to be in England again. "Charley,
  • Charley," said I, "come away!" And I hurried on so swiftly that my
  • little maid was surprised.
  • It was not until we were shut up in our cabin-room and I had had time
  • to take breath that I began to think why I had made such haste. In
  • one of the sunburnt faces I had recognized Mr. Allan Woodcourt, and I
  • had been afraid of his recognizing me. I had been unwilling that he
  • should see my altered looks. I had been taken by surprise, and my
  • courage had quite failed me.
  • But I knew this would not do, and I now said to myself, "My dear,
  • there is no reason--there is and there can be no reason at all--why
  • it should be worse for you now than it ever has been. What you were
  • last month, you are to-day; you are no worse, you are no better. This
  • is not your resolution; call it up, Esther, call it up!" I was in a
  • great tremble--with running--and at first was quite unable to calm
  • myself; but I got better, and I was very glad to know it.
  • The party came to the hotel. I heard them speaking on the staircase.
  • I was sure it was the same gentlemen because I knew their voices
  • again--I mean I knew Mr. Woodcourt's. It would still have been a
  • great relief to me to have gone away without making myself known, but
  • I was determined not to do so. "No, my dear, no. No, no, no!"
  • I untied my bonnet and put my veil half up--I think I mean half down,
  • but it matters very little--and wrote on one of my cards that I
  • happened to be there with Mr. Richard Carstone, and I sent it in to
  • Mr. Woodcourt. He came immediately. I told him I was rejoiced to be
  • by chance among the first to welcome him home to England. And I saw
  • that he was very sorry for me.
  • "You have been in shipwreck and peril since you left us, Mr.
  • Woodcourt," said I, "but we can hardly call that a misfortune which
  • enabled you to be so useful and so brave. We read of it with the
  • truest interest. It first came to my knowledge through your old
  • patient, poor Miss Flite, when I was recovering from my severe
  • illness."
  • "Ah! Little Miss Flite!" he said. "She lives the same life yet?"
  • "Just the same."
  • I was so comfortable with myself now as not to mind the veil and to
  • be able to put it aside.
  • "Her gratitude to you, Mr. Woodcourt, is delightful. She is a most
  • affectionate creature, as I have reason to say."
  • "You--you have found her so?" he returned. "I--I am glad of that." He
  • was so very sorry for me that he could scarcely speak.
  • "I assure you," said I, "that I was deeply touched by her sympathy
  • and pleasure at the time I have referred to."
  • "I was grieved to hear that you had been very ill."
  • "I was very ill."
  • "But you have quite recovered?"
  • "I have quite recovered my health and my cheerfulness," said I. "You
  • know how good my guardian is and what a happy life we lead, and I
  • have everything to be thankful for and nothing in the world to
  • desire."
  • I felt as if he had greater commiseration for me than I had ever had
  • for myself. It inspired me with new fortitude and new calmness to
  • find that it was I who was under the necessity of reassuring him. I
  • spoke to him of his voyage out and home, and of his future plans, and
  • of his probable return to India. He said that was very doubtful. He
  • had not found himself more favoured by fortune there than here. He
  • had gone out a poor ship's surgeon and had come home nothing better.
  • While we were talking, and when I was glad to believe that I had
  • alleviated (if I may use such a term) the shock he had had in seeing
  • me, Richard came in. He had heard downstairs who was with me, and
  • they met with cordial pleasure.
  • I saw that after their first greetings were over, and when they spoke
  • of Richard's career, Mr. Woodcourt had a perception that all was not
  • going well with him. He frequently glanced at his face as if there
  • were something in it that gave him pain, and more than once he looked
  • towards me as though he sought to ascertain whether I knew what the
  • truth was. Yet Richard was in one of his sanguine states and in good
  • spirits and was thoroughly pleased to see Mr. Woodcourt again, whom
  • he had always liked.
  • Richard proposed that we all should go to London together; but Mr.
  • Woodcourt, having to remain by his ship a little longer, could not
  • join us. He dined with us, however, at an early hour, and became so
  • much more like what he used to be that I was still more at peace to
  • think I had been able to soften his regrets. Yet his mind was not
  • relieved of Richard. When the coach was almost ready and Richard ran
  • down to look after his luggage, he spoke to me about him.
  • I was not sure that I had a right to lay his whole story open, but I
  • referred in a few words to his estrangement from Mr Jarndyce and to
  • his being entangled in the ill-fated Chancery suit. Mr. Woodcourt
  • listened with interest and expressed his regret.
  • "I saw you observe him rather closely," said I, "Do you think him so
  • changed?"
  • "He is changed," he returned, shaking his head.
  • I felt the blood rush into my face for the first time, but it was
  • only an instantaneous emotion. I turned my head aside, and it was
  • gone.
  • "It is not," said Mr. Woodcourt, "his being so much younger or older,
  • or thinner or fatter, or paler or ruddier, as there being upon his
  • face such a singular expression. I never saw so remarkable a look in
  • a young person. One cannot say that it is all anxiety or all
  • weariness; yet it is both, and like ungrown despair."
  • "You do not think he is ill?" said I.
  • No. He looked robust in body.
  • "That he cannot be at peace in mind, we have too much reason to
  • know," I proceeded. "Mr. Woodcourt, you are going to London?"
  • "To-morrow or the next day."
  • "There is nothing Richard wants so much as a friend. He always liked
  • you. Pray see him when you get there. Pray help him sometimes with
  • your companionship if you can. You do not know of what service it
  • might be. You cannot think how Ada, and Mr. Jarndyce, and even I--how
  • we should all thank you, Mr. Woodcourt!"
  • "Miss Summerson," he said, more moved than he had been from the
  • first, "before heaven, I will be a true friend to him! I will accept
  • him as a trust, and it shall be a sacred one!"
  • "God bless you!" said I, with my eyes filling fast; but I thought
  • they might, when it was not for myself. "Ada loves him--we all love
  • him, but Ada loves him as we cannot. I will tell her what you say.
  • Thank you, and God bless you, in her name!"
  • Richard came back as we finished exchanging these hurried words and
  • gave me his arm to take me to the coach.
  • "Woodcourt," he said, unconscious with what application, "pray let us
  • meet in London!"
  • "Meet?" returned the other. "I have scarcely a friend there now but
  • you. Where shall I find you?"
  • "Why, I must get a lodging of some sort," said Richard, pondering.
  • "Say at Vholes's, Symond's Inn."
  • "Good! Without loss of time."
  • They shook hands heartily. When I was seated in the coach and Richard
  • was yet standing in the street, Mr. Woodcourt laid his friendly hand
  • on Richard's shoulder and looked at me. I understood him and waved
  • mine in thanks.
  • And in his last look as we drove away, I saw that he was very sorry
  • for me. I was glad to see it. I felt for my old self as the dead may
  • feel if they ever revisit these scenes. I was glad to be tenderly
  • remembered, to be gently pitied, not to be quite forgotten.
  • CHAPTER XLVI
  • Stop Him!
  • Darkness rests upon Tom-All-Alone's. Dilating and dilating since the
  • sun went down last night, it has gradually swelled until it fills
  • every void in the place. For a time there were some dungeon lights
  • burning, as the lamp of life hums in Tom-all-Alone's, heavily,
  • heavily, in the nauseous air, and winking--as that lamp, too, winks
  • in Tom-all-Alone's--at many horrible things. But they are blotted
  • out. The moon has eyed Tom with a dull cold stare, as admitting some
  • puny emulation of herself in his desert region unfit for life and
  • blasted by volcanic fires; but she has passed on and is gone. The
  • blackest nightmare in the infernal stables grazes on Tom-all-Alone's,
  • and Tom is fast asleep.
  • Much mighty speech-making there has been, both in and out of
  • Parliament, concerning Tom, and much wrathful disputation how Tom
  • shall be got right. Whether he shall be put into the main road by
  • constables, or by beadles, or by bell-ringing, or by force of
  • figures, or by correct principles of taste, or by high church, or by
  • low church, or by no church; whether he shall be set to splitting
  • trusses of polemical straws with the crooked knife of his mind or
  • whether he shall be put to stone-breaking instead. In the midst of
  • which dust and noise there is but one thing perfectly clear, to wit,
  • that Tom only may and can, or shall and will, be reclaimed according
  • to somebody's theory but nobody's practice. And in the hopeful
  • meantime, Tom goes to perdition head foremost in his old determined
  • spirit.
  • But he has his revenge. Even the winds are his messengers, and they
  • serve him in these hours of darkness. There is not a drop of Tom's
  • corrupted blood but propagates infection and contagion somewhere. It
  • shall pollute, this very night, the choice stream (in which chemists
  • on analysis would find the genuine nobility) of a Norman house, and
  • his Grace shall not be able to say nay to the infamous alliance.
  • There is not an atom of Tom's slime, not a cubic inch of any
  • pestilential gas in which he lives, not one obscenity or degradation
  • about him, not an ignorance, not a wickedness, not a brutality of his
  • committing, but shall work its retribution through every order of
  • society up to the proudest of the proud and to the highest of the
  • high. Verily, what with tainting, plundering, and spoiling, Tom has
  • his revenge.
  • It is a moot point whether Tom-all-Alone's be uglier by day or by
  • night, but on the argument that the more that is seen of it the more
  • shocking it must be, and that no part of it left to the imagination
  • is at all likely to be made so bad as the reality, day carries it.
  • The day begins to break now; and in truth it might be better for the
  • national glory even that the sun should sometimes set upon the
  • British dominions than that it should ever rise upon so vile a wonder
  • as Tom.
  • A brown sunburnt gentleman, who appears in some inaptitude for sleep
  • to be wandering abroad rather than counting the hours on a restless
  • pillow, strolls hitherward at this quiet time. Attracted by
  • curiosity, he often pauses and looks about him, up and down the
  • miserable by-ways. Nor is he merely curious, for in his bright dark
  • eye there is compassionate interest; and as he looks here and there,
  • he seems to understand such wretchedness and to have studied it
  • before.
  • On the banks of the stagnant channel of mud which is the main street
  • of Tom-all-Alone's, nothing is to be seen but the crazy houses, shut
  • up and silent. No waking creature save himself appears except in one
  • direction, where he sees the solitary figure of a woman sitting on a
  • door-step. He walks that way. Approaching, he observes that she has
  • journeyed a long distance and is footsore and travel-stained. She
  • sits on the door-step in the manner of one who is waiting, with her
  • elbow on her knee and her head upon her hand. Beside her is a canvas
  • bag, or bundle, she has carried. She is dozing probably, for she
  • gives no heed to his steps as he comes toward her.
  • The broken footway is so narrow that when Allan Woodcourt comes to
  • where the woman sits, he has to turn into the road to pass her.
  • Looking down at her face, his eye meets hers, and he stops.
  • "What is the matter?"
  • "Nothing, sir."
  • "Can't you make them hear? Do you want to be let in?"
  • "I'm waiting till they get up at another house--a lodging-house--not
  • here," the woman patiently returns. "I'm waiting here because there
  • will be sun here presently to warm me."
  • "I am afraid you are tired. I am sorry to see you sitting in the
  • street."
  • "Thank you, sir. It don't matter."
  • A habit in him of speaking to the poor and of avoiding patronage or
  • condescension or childishness (which is the favourite device, many
  • people deeming it quite a subtlety to talk to them like little
  • spelling books) has put him on good terms with the woman easily.
  • "Let me look at your forehead," he says, bending down. "I am a
  • doctor. Don't be afraid. I wouldn't hurt you for the world."
  • He knows that by touching her with his skilful and accustomed hand he
  • can soothe her yet more readily. She makes a slight objection,
  • saying, "It's nothing"; but he has scarcely laid his fingers on the
  • wounded place when she lifts it up to the light.
  • "Aye! A bad bruise, and the skin sadly broken. This must be very
  • sore."
  • "It do ache a little, sir," returns the woman with a started tear
  • upon her cheek.
  • "Let me try to make it more comfortable. My handkerchief won't hurt
  • you."
  • "Oh, dear no, sir, I'm sure of that!"
  • He cleanses the injured place and dries it, and having carefully
  • examined it and gently pressed it with the palm of his hand, takes a
  • small case from his pocket, dresses it, and binds it up. While he is
  • thus employed, he says, after laughing at his establishing a surgery
  • in the street, "And so your husband is a brickmaker?"
  • "How do you know that, sir?" asks the woman, astonished.
  • "Why, I suppose so from the colour of the clay upon your bag and on
  • your dress. And I know brickmakers go about working at piecework in
  • different places. And I am sorry to say I have known them cruel to
  • their wives too."
  • The woman hastily lifts up her eyes as if she would deny that her
  • injury is referable to such a cause. But feeling the hand upon her
  • forehead, and seeing his busy and composed face, she quietly drops
  • them again.
  • "Where is he now?" asks the surgeon.
  • "He got into trouble last night, sir; but he'll look for me at the
  • lodging-house."
  • "He will get into worse trouble if he often misuses his large and
  • heavy hand as he has misused it here. But you forgive him, brutal as
  • he is, and I say no more of him, except that I wish he deserved it.
  • You have no young child?"
  • The woman shakes her head. "One as I calls mine, sir, but it's
  • Liz's."
  • "Your own is dead. I see! Poor little thing!"
  • By this time he has finished and is putting up his case. "I suppose
  • you have some settled home. Is it far from here?" he asks,
  • good-humouredly making light of what he has done as she gets up and
  • curtsys.
  • "It's a good two or three and twenty mile from here, sir. At Saint
  • Albans. You know Saint Albans, sir? I thought you gave a start like,
  • as if you did."
  • "Yes, I know something of it. And now I will ask you a question in
  • return. Have you money for your lodging?"
  • "Yes, sir," she says, "really and truly." And she shows it. He tells
  • her, in acknowledgment of her many subdued thanks, that she is very
  • welcome, gives her good day, and walks away. Tom-all-Alone's is still
  • asleep, and nothing is astir.
  • Yes, something is! As he retraces his way to the point from which he
  • descried the woman at a distance sitting on the step, he sees a
  • ragged figure coming very cautiously along, crouching close to the
  • soiled walls--which the wretchedest figure might as well avoid--and
  • furtively thrusting a hand before it. It is the figure of a youth
  • whose face is hollow and whose eyes have an emaciated glare. He is so
  • intent on getting along unseen that even the apparition of a stranger
  • in whole garments does not tempt him to look back. He shades his face
  • with his ragged elbow as he passes on the other side of the way, and
  • goes shrinking and creeping on with his anxious hand before him and
  • his shapeless clothes hanging in shreds. Clothes made for what
  • purpose, or of what material, it would be impossible to say. They
  • look, in colour and in substance, like a bundle of rank leaves of
  • swampy growth that rotted long ago.
  • Allan Woodcourt pauses to look after him and note all this, with a
  • shadowy belief that he has seen the boy before. He cannot recall how
  • or where, but there is some association in his mind with such a form.
  • He imagines that he must have seen it in some hospital or refuge,
  • still, cannot make out why it comes with any special force on his
  • remembrance.
  • He is gradually emerging from Tom-all-Alone's in the morning light,
  • thinking about it, when he hears running feet behind him, and looking
  • round, sees the boy scouring towards him at great speed, followed by
  • the woman.
  • "Stop him, stop him!" cries the woman, almost breathless. "Stop him,
  • sir!"
  • He darts across the road into the boy's path, but the boy is quicker
  • than he, makes a curve, ducks, dives under his hands, comes up
  • half-a-dozen yards beyond him, and scours away again. Still the woman
  • follows, crying, "Stop him, sir, pray stop him!" Allan, not knowing
  • but that he has just robbed her of her money, follows in chase and
  • runs so hard that he runs the boy down a dozen times, but each time
  • he repeats the curve, the duck, the dive, and scours away again. To
  • strike at him on any of these occasions would be to fell and disable
  • him, but the pursuer cannot resolve to do that, and so the grimly
  • ridiculous pursuit continues. At last the fugitive, hard-pressed,
  • takes to a narrow passage and a court which has no thoroughfare.
  • Here, against a hoarding of decaying timber, he is brought to bay and
  • tumbles down, lying gasping at his pursuer, who stands and gasps at
  • him until the woman comes up.
  • "Oh, you, Jo!" cries the woman. "What? I have found you at last!"
  • "Jo," repeats Allan, looking at him with attention, "Jo! Stay. To be
  • sure! I recollect this lad some time ago being brought before the
  • coroner."
  • "Yes, I see you once afore at the inkwhich," whimpers Jo. "What of
  • that? Can't you never let such an unfortnet as me alone? An't I
  • unfortnet enough for you yet? How unfortnet do you want me fur to be?
  • I've been a-chivied and a-chivied, fust by one on you and nixt by
  • another on you, till I'm worritted to skins and bones. The inkwhich
  • warn't MY fault. I done nothink. He wos wery good to me, he wos; he
  • wos the only one I knowed to speak to, as ever come across my
  • crossing. It ain't wery likely I should want him to be inkwhiched. I
  • only wish I wos, myself. I don't know why I don't go and make a hole
  • in the water, I'm sure I don't."
  • He says it with such a pitiable air, and his grimy tears appear so
  • real, and he lies in the corner up against the hoarding so like a
  • growth of fungus or any unwholesome excrescence produced there in
  • neglect and impurity, that Allan Woodcourt is softened towards him.
  • He says to the woman, "Miserable creature, what has he done?"
  • To which she only replies, shaking her head at the prostrate figure
  • more amazedly than angrily, "Oh, you Jo, you Jo. I have found you at
  • last!"
  • "What has he done?" says Allan. "Has he robbed you?"
  • "No, sir, no. Robbed me? He did nothing but what was kind-hearted by
  • me, and that's the wonder of it."
  • Allan looks from Jo to the woman, and from the woman to Jo, waiting
  • for one of them to unravel the riddle.
  • "But he was along with me, sir," says the woman. "Oh, you Jo! He was
  • along with me, sir, down at Saint Albans, ill, and a young lady, Lord
  • bless her for a good friend to me, took pity on him when I durstn't,
  • and took him home--"
  • Allan shrinks back from him with a sudden horror.
  • "Yes, sir, yes. Took him home, and made him comfortable, and like a
  • thankless monster he ran away in the night and never has been seen or
  • heard of since till I set eyes on him just now. And that young lady
  • that was such a pretty dear caught his illness, lost her beautiful
  • looks, and wouldn't hardly be known for the same young lady now if it
  • wasn't for her angel temper, and her pretty shape, and her sweet
  • voice. Do you know it? You ungrateful wretch, do you know that this
  • is all along of you and of her goodness to you?" demands the woman,
  • beginning to rage at him as she recalls it and breaking into
  • passionate tears.
  • The boy, in rough sort stunned by what he hears, falls to smearing
  • his dirty forehead with his dirty palm, and to staring at the ground,
  • and to shaking from head to foot until the crazy hoarding against
  • which he leans rattles.
  • Allan restrains the woman, merely by a quiet gesture, but
  • effectually.
  • "Richard told me--" He falters. "I mean, I have heard of this--don't
  • mind me for a moment, I will speak presently."
  • He turns away and stands for a while looking out at the covered
  • passage. When he comes back, he has recovered his composure, except
  • that he contends against an avoidance of the boy, which is so very
  • remarkable that it absorbs the woman's attention.
  • "You hear what she says. But get up, get up!"
  • Jo, shaking and chattering, slowly rises and stands, after the manner
  • of his tribe in a difficulty, sideways against the hoarding, resting
  • one of his high shoulders against it and covertly rubbing his right
  • hand over his left and his left foot over his right.
  • "You hear what she says, and I know it's true. Have you been here
  • ever since?"
  • "Wishermaydie if I seen Tom-all-Alone's till this blessed morning,"
  • replies Jo hoarsely.
  • "Why have you come here now?"
  • Jo looks all round the confined court, looks at his questioner no
  • higher than the knees, and finally answers, "I don't know how to do
  • nothink, and I can't get nothink to do. I'm wery poor and ill, and I
  • thought I'd come back here when there warn't nobody about, and lay
  • down and hide somewheres as I knows on till arter dark, and then go
  • and beg a trifle of Mr. Snagsby. He wos allus willin fur to give me
  • somethink he wos, though Mrs. Snagsby she was allus a-chivying on
  • me--like everybody everywheres."
  • "Where have you come from?"
  • Jo looks all round the court again, looks at his questioner's knees
  • again, and concludes by laying his profile against the hoarding in a
  • sort of resignation.
  • "Did you hear me ask you where you have come from?"
  • "Tramp then," says Jo.
  • "Now tell me," proceeds Allan, making a strong effort to overcome his
  • repugnance, going very near to him, and leaning over him with an
  • expression of confidence, "tell me how it came about that you left
  • that house when the good young lady had been so unfortunate as to
  • pity you and take you home."
  • Jo suddenly comes out of his resignation and excitedly declares,
  • addressing the woman, that he never known about the young lady, that
  • he never heern about it, that he never went fur to hurt her, that he
  • would sooner have hurt his own self, that he'd sooner have had his
  • unfortnet ed chopped off than ever gone a-nigh her, and that she wos
  • wery good to him, she wos. Conducting himself throughout as if in his
  • poor fashion he really meant it, and winding up with some very
  • miserable sobs.
  • Allan Woodcourt sees that this is not a sham. He constrains himself
  • to touch him. "Come, Jo. Tell me."
  • "No. I dustn't," says Jo, relapsing into the profile state. "I
  • dustn't, or I would."
  • "But I must know," returns the other, "all the same. Come, Jo."
  • After two or three such adjurations, Jo lifts up his head again,
  • looks round the court again, and says in a low voice, "Well, I'll
  • tell you something. I was took away. There!"
  • "Took away? In the night?"
  • "Ah!" Very apprehensive of being overheard, Jo looks about him and
  • even glances up some ten feet at the top of the hoarding and through
  • the cracks in it lest the object of his distrust should be looking
  • over or hidden on the other side.
  • "Who took you away?"
  • "I dustn't name him," says Jo. "I dustn't do it, sir.
  • "But I want, in the young lady's name, to know. You may trust me. No
  • one else shall hear."
  • "Ah, but I don't know," replies Jo, shaking his head fearfully, "as
  • he DON'T hear."
  • "Why, he is not in this place."
  • "Oh, ain't he though?" says Jo. "He's in all manner of places, all at
  • wanst."
  • Allan looks at him in perplexity, but discovers some real meaning and
  • good faith at the bottom of this bewildering reply. He patiently
  • awaits an explicit answer; and Jo, more baffled by his patience than
  • by anything else, at last desperately whispers a name in his ear.
  • "Aye!" says Allan. "Why, what had you been doing?"
  • "Nothink, sir. Never done nothink to get myself into no trouble,
  • 'sept in not moving on and the inkwhich. But I'm a-moving on now. I'm
  • a-moving on to the berryin ground--that's the move as I'm up to."
  • "No, no, we will try to prevent that. But what did he do with you?"
  • "Put me in a horsepittle," replied Jo, whispering, "till I was
  • discharged, then giv me a little money--four half-bulls, wot you may
  • call half-crowns--and ses 'Hook it! Nobody wants you here,' he ses.
  • 'You hook it. You go and tramp,' he ses. 'You move on,' he ses.
  • 'Don't let me ever see you nowheres within forty mile of London, or
  • you'll repent it.' So I shall, if ever he doos see me, and he'll see
  • me if I'm above ground," concludes Jo, nervously repeating all his
  • former precautions and investigations.
  • Allan considers a little, then remarks, turning to the woman but
  • keeping an encouraging eye on Jo, "He is not so ungrateful as you
  • supposed. He had a reason for going away, though it was an
  • insufficient one."
  • "Thankee, sir, thankee!" exclaims Jo. "There now! See how hard you
  • wos upon me. But ony you tell the young lady wot the genlmn ses, and
  • it's all right. For YOU wos wery good to me too, and I knows it."
  • "Now, Jo," says Allan, keeping his eye upon him, "come with me and I
  • will find you a better place than this to lie down and hide in. If I
  • take one side of the way and you the other to avoid observation, you
  • will not run away, I know very well, if you make me a promise."
  • "I won't, not unless I wos to see HIM a-coming, sir."
  • "Very well. I take your word. Half the town is getting up by this
  • time, and the whole town will be broad awake in another hour. Come
  • along. Good day again, my good woman."
  • "Good day again, sir, and I thank you kindly many times again."
  • She has been sitting on her bag, deeply attentive, and now rises and
  • takes it up. Jo, repeating, "Ony you tell the young lady as I never
  • went fur to hurt her and wot the genlmn ses!" nods and shambles and
  • shivers, and smears and blinks, and half laughs and half cries, a
  • farewell to her, and takes his creeping way along after Allan
  • Woodcourt, close to the houses on the opposite side of the street. In
  • this order, the two come up out of Tom-all-Alone's into the broad
  • rays of the sunlight and the purer air.
  • CHAPTER XLVII
  • Jo's Will
  • As Allan Woodcourt and Jo proceed along the streets where the high
  • church spires and the distances are so near and clear in the morning
  • light that the city itself seems renewed by rest, Allan revolves in
  • his mind how and where he shall bestow his companion. "It surely is a
  • strange fact," he considers, "that in the heart of a civilized world
  • this creature in human form should be more difficult to dispose of
  • than an unowned dog." But it is none the less a fact because of its
  • strangeness, and the difficulty remains.
  • At first he looks behind him often to assure himself that Jo is still
  • really following. But look where he will, he still beholds him close
  • to the opposite houses, making his way with his wary hand from brick
  • to brick and from door to door, and often, as he creeps along,
  • glancing over at him watchfully. Soon satisfied that the last thing
  • in his thoughts is to give him the slip, Allan goes on, considering
  • with a less divided attention what he shall do.
  • A breakfast-stall at a street-corner suggests the first thing to be
  • done. He stops there, looks round, and beckons Jo. Jo crosses and
  • comes halting and shuffling up, slowly scooping the knuckles of his
  • right hand round and round in the hollowed palm of his left, kneading
  • dirt with a natural pestle and mortar. What is a dainty repast to Jo
  • is then set before him, and he begins to gulp the coffee and to gnaw
  • the bread and butter, looking anxiously about him in all directions
  • as he eats and drinks, like a scared animal.
  • But he is so sick and miserable that even hunger has abandoned him.
  • "I thought I was amost a-starvin, sir," says Jo, soon putting down
  • his food, "but I don't know nothink--not even that. I don't care for
  • eating wittles nor yet for drinking on 'em." And Jo stands shivering
  • and looking at the breakfast wonderingly.
  • Allan Woodcourt lays his hand upon his pulse and on his chest. "Draw
  • breath, Jo!" "It draws," says Jo, "as heavy as a cart." He might add,
  • "And rattles like it," but he only mutters, "I'm a-moving on, sir."
  • Allan looks about for an apothecary's shop. There is none at hand,
  • but a tavern does as well or better. He obtains a little measure of
  • wine and gives the lad a portion of it very carefully. He begins to
  • revive almost as soon as it passes his lips. "We may repeat that
  • dose, Jo," observes Allan after watching him with his attentive face.
  • "So! Now we will take five minutes' rest, and then go on again."
  • Leaving the boy sitting on the bench of the breakfast-stall, with his
  • back against an iron railing, Allan Woodcourt paces up and down in
  • the early sunshine, casting an occasional look towards him without
  • appearing to watch him. It requires no discernment to perceive that
  • he is warmed and refreshed. If a face so shaded can brighten, his
  • face brightens somewhat; and by little and little he eats the slice
  • of bread he had so hopelessly laid down. Observant of these signs of
  • improvement, Allan engages him in conversation and elicits to his no
  • small wonder the adventure of the lady in the veil, with all its
  • consequences. Jo slowly munches as he slowly tells it. When he has
  • finished his story and his bread, they go on again.
  • Intending to refer his difficulty in finding a temporary place of
  • refuge for the boy to his old patient, zealous little Miss Flite,
  • Allan leads the way to the court where he and Jo first foregathered.
  • But all is changed at the rag and bottle shop; Miss Flite no longer
  • lodges there; it is shut up; and a hard-featured female, much
  • obscured by dust, whose age is a problem, but who is indeed no other
  • than the interesting Judy, is tart and spare in her replies. These
  • sufficing, however, to inform the visitor that Miss Flite and her
  • birds are domiciled with a Mrs. Blinder, in Bell Yard, he repairs to
  • that neighbouring place, where Miss Flite (who rises early that she
  • may be punctual at the divan of justice held by her excellent friend
  • the Chancellor) comes running downstairs with tears of welcome and
  • with open arms.
  • "My dear physician!" cries Miss Flite. "My meritorious,
  • distinguished, honourable officer!" She uses some odd expressions,
  • but is as cordial and full of heart as sanity itself can be--more so
  • than it often is. Allan, very patient with her, waits until she has
  • no more raptures to express, then points out Jo, trembling in a
  • doorway, and tells her how he comes there.
  • "Where can I lodge him hereabouts for the present? Now, you have a
  • fund of knowledge and good sense and can advise me."
  • Miss Flite, mighty proud of the compliment, sets herself to consider;
  • but it is long before a bright thought occurs to her. Mrs. Blinder is
  • entirely let, and she herself occupies poor Gridley's room.
  • "Gridley!" exclaims Miss Flite, clapping her hands after a twentieth
  • repetition of this remark. "Gridley! To be sure! Of course! My dear
  • physician! General George will help us out."
  • It is hopeless to ask for any information about General George, and
  • would be, though Miss Flite had not already run upstairs to put on
  • her pinched bonnet and her poor little shawl and to arm herself with
  • her reticule of documents. But as she informs her physician in her
  • disjointed manner on coming down in full array that General George,
  • whom she often calls upon, knows her dear Fitz Jarndyce and takes a
  • great interest in all connected with her, Allan is induced to think
  • that they may be in the right way. So he tells Jo, for his
  • encouragement, that this walking about will soon be over now; and
  • they repair to the general's. Fortunately it is not far.
  • From the exterior of George's Shooting Gallery, and the long entry,
  • and the bare perspective beyond it, Allan Woodcourt augurs well. He
  • also descries promise in the figure of Mr. George himself, striding
  • towards them in his morning exercise with his pipe in his mouth, no
  • stock on, and his muscular arms, developed by broadsword and
  • dumbbell, weightily asserting themselves through his light
  • shirt-sleeves.
  • "Your servant, sir," says Mr. George with a military salute.
  • Good-humouredly smiling all over his broad forehead up into his crisp
  • hair, he then defers to Miss Flite, as, with great stateliness, and
  • at some length, she performs the courtly ceremony of presentation. He
  • winds it up with another "Your servant, sir!" and another salute.
  • "Excuse me, sir. A sailor, I believe?" says Mr. George.
  • "I am proud to find I have the air of one," returns Allan; "but I am
  • only a sea-going doctor."
  • "Indeed, sir! I should have thought you was a regular blue-jacket
  • myself."
  • Allan hopes Mr. George will forgive his intrusion the more readily on
  • that account, and particularly that he will not lay aside his pipe,
  • which, in his politeness, he has testified some intention of doing.
  • "You are very good, sir," returns the trooper. "As I know by
  • experience that it's not disagreeable to Miss Flite, and since it's
  • equally agreeable to yourself--" and finishes the sentence by putting
  • it between his lips again. Allan proceeds to tell him all he knows
  • about Jo, unto which the trooper listens with a grave face.
  • "And that's the lad, sir, is it?" he inquires, looking along the
  • entry to where Jo stands staring up at the great letters on the
  • whitewashed front, which have no meaning in his eyes.
  • "That's he," says Allan. "And, Mr. George, I am in this difficulty
  • about him. I am unwilling to place him in a hospital, even if I could
  • procure him immediate admission, because I foresee that he would not
  • stay there many hours if he could be so much as got there. The same
  • objection applies to a workhouse, supposing I had the patience to be
  • evaded and shirked, and handed about from post to pillar in trying to
  • get him into one, which is a system that I don't take kindly to."
  • "No man does, sir," returns Mr. George.
  • "I am convinced that he would not remain in either place, because he
  • is possessed by an extraordinary terror of this person who ordered
  • him to keep out of the way; in his ignorance, he believes this person
  • to be everywhere, and cognizant of everything."
  • "I ask your pardon, sir," says Mr. George. "But you have not
  • mentioned that party's name. Is it a secret, sir?"
  • "The boy makes it one. But his name is Bucket."
  • "Bucket the detective, sir?"
  • "The same man."
  • "The man is known to me, sir," returns the trooper after blowing out
  • a cloud of smoke and squaring his chest, "and the boy is so far
  • correct that he undoubtedly is a--rum customer." Mr. George smokes
  • with a profound meaning after this and surveys Miss Flite in silence.
  • "Now, I wish Mr. Jarndyce and Miss Summerson at least to know that
  • this Jo, who tells so strange a story, has reappeared, and to have it
  • in their power to speak with him if they should desire to do so.
  • Therefore I want to get him, for the present moment, into any poor
  • lodging kept by decent people where he would be admitted. Decent
  • people and Jo, Mr. George," says Allan, following the direction of
  • the trooper's eyes along the entry, "have not been much acquainted,
  • as you see. Hence the difficulty. Do you happen to know any one in
  • this neighbourhood who would receive him for a while on my paying for
  • him beforehand?"
  • As he puts the question, he becomes aware of a dirty-faced little man
  • standing at the trooper's elbow and looking up, with an oddly twisted
  • figure and countenance, into the trooper's face. After a few more
  • puffs at his pipe, the trooper looks down askant at the little man,
  • and the little man winks up at the trooper.
  • "Well, sir," says Mr. George, "I can assure you that I would
  • willingly be knocked on the head at any time if it would be at all
  • agreeable to Miss Summerson, and consequently I esteem it a privilege
  • to do that young lady any service, however small. We are naturally in
  • the vagabond way here, sir, both myself and Phil. You see what the
  • place is. You are welcome to a quiet corner of it for the boy if the
  • same would meet your views. No charge made, except for rations. We
  • are not in a flourishing state of circumstances here, sir. We are
  • liable to be tumbled out neck and crop at a moment's notice. However,
  • sir, such as the place is, and so long as it lasts, here it is at
  • your service."
  • With a comprehensive wave of his pipe, Mr. George places the whole
  • building at his visitor's disposal.
  • "I take it for granted, sir," he adds, "you being one of the medical
  • staff, that there is no present infection about this unfortunate
  • subject?"
  • Allan is quite sure of it.
  • "Because, sir," says Mr. George, shaking his head sorrowfully, "we
  • have had enough of that."
  • His tone is no less sorrowfully echoed by his new acquaintance.
  • "Still I am bound to tell you," observes Allan after repeating his
  • former assurance, "that the boy is deplorably low and reduced and
  • that he may be--I do not say that he is--too far gone to recover."
  • "Do you consider him in present danger, sir?" inquires the trooper.
  • "Yes, I fear so."
  • "Then, sir," returns the trooper in a decisive manner, "it appears to
  • me--being naturally in the vagabond way myself--that the sooner he
  • comes out of the street, the better. You, Phil! Bring him in!"
  • Mr. Squod tacks out, all on one side, to execute the word of command;
  • and the trooper, having smoked his pipe, lays it by. Jo is brought
  • in. He is not one of Mrs. Pardiggle's Tockahoopo Indians; he is not
  • one of Mrs. Jellyby's lambs, being wholly unconnected with
  • Borrioboola-Gha; he is not softened by distance and unfamiliarity; he
  • is not a genuine foreign-grown savage; he is the ordinary home-made
  • article. Dirty, ugly, disagreeable to all the senses, in body a
  • common creature of the common streets, only in soul a heathen. Homely
  • filth begrimes him, homely parasites devour him, homely sores are in
  • him, homely rags are on him; native ignorance, the growth of English
  • soil and climate, sinks his immortal nature lower than the beasts
  • that perish. Stand forth, Jo, in uncompromising colours! From the
  • sole of thy foot to the crown of thy head, there is nothing
  • interesting about thee.
  • He shuffles slowly into Mr. George's gallery and stands huddled
  • together in a bundle, looking all about the floor. He seems to know
  • that they have an inclination to shrink from him, partly for what he
  • is and partly for what he has caused. He, too, shrinks from them. He
  • is not of the same order of things, not of the same place in
  • creation. He is of no order and no place, neither of the beasts nor
  • of humanity.
  • "Look here, Jo!" says Allan. "This is Mr. George."
  • Jo searches the floor for some time longer, then looks up for a
  • moment, and then down again.
  • "He is a kind friend to you, for he is going to give you lodging room
  • here."
  • Jo makes a scoop with one hand, which is supposed to be a bow. After
  • a little more consideration and some backing and changing of the foot
  • on which he rests, he mutters that he is "wery thankful."
  • "You are quite safe here. All you have to do at present is to be
  • obedient and to get strong. And mind you tell us the truth here,
  • whatever you do, Jo."
  • "Wishermaydie if I don't, sir," says Jo, reverting to his favourite
  • declaration. "I never done nothink yit, but wot you knows on, to get
  • myself into no trouble. I never was in no other trouble at all, sir,
  • 'sept not knowin' nothink and starwation."
  • "I believe it, now attend to Mr. George. I see he is going to speak
  • to you."
  • "My intention merely was, sir," observes Mr. George, amazingly broad
  • and upright, "to point out to him where he can lie down and get a
  • thorough good dose of sleep. Now, look here." As the trooper speaks,
  • he conducts them to the other end of the gallery and opens one of the
  • little cabins. "There you are, you see! Here is a mattress, and here
  • you may rest, on good behaviour, as long as Mr., I ask your pardon,
  • sir"--he refers apologetically to the card Allan has given him--"Mr.
  • Woodcourt pleases. Don't you be alarmed if you hear shots; they'll be
  • aimed at the target, and not you. Now, there's another thing I would
  • recommend, sir," says the trooper, turning to his visitor. "Phil,
  • come here!"
  • Phil bears down upon them according to his usual tactics. "Here is a
  • man, sir, who was found, when a baby, in the gutter. Consequently, it
  • is to be expected that he takes a natural interest in this poor
  • creature. You do, don't you, Phil?"
  • "Certainly and surely I do, guv'ner," is Phil's reply.
  • "Now I was thinking, sir," says Mr. George in a martial sort of
  • confidence, as if he were giving his opinion in a council of war at a
  • drum-head, "that if this man was to take him to a bath and was to lay
  • out a few shillings in getting him one or two coarse articles--"
  • "Mr. George, my considerate friend," returns Allan, taking out his
  • purse, "it is the very favour I would have asked."
  • Phil Squod and Jo are sent out immediately on this work of
  • improvement. Miss Flite, quite enraptured by her success, makes the
  • best of her way to court, having great fears that otherwise her
  • friend the Chancellor may be uneasy about her or may give the
  • judgment she has so long expected in her absence, and observing
  • "which you know, my dear physician, and general, after so many years,
  • would be too absurdly unfortunate!" Allan takes the opportunity of
  • going out to procure some restorative medicines, and obtaining them
  • near at hand, soon returns to find the trooper walking up and down
  • the gallery, and to fall into step and walk with him.
  • "I take it, sir," says Mr. George, "that you know Miss Summerson
  • pretty well?"
  • Yes, it appears.
  • "Not related to her, sir?"
  • No, it appears.
  • "Excuse the apparent curiosity," says Mr. George. "It seemed to me
  • probable that you might take more than a common interest in this poor
  • creature because Miss Summerson had taken that unfortunate interest
  • in him. 'Tis MY case, sir, I assure you."
  • "And mine, Mr. George."
  • The trooper looks sideways at Allan's sunburnt cheek and bright dark
  • eye, rapidly measures his height and build, and seems to approve of
  • him.
  • "Since you have been out, sir, I have been thinking that I
  • unquestionably know the rooms in Lincoln's Inn Fields, where Bucket
  • took the lad, according to his account. Though he is not acquainted
  • with the name, I can help you to it. It's Tulkinghorn. That's what it
  • is."
  • Allan looks at him inquiringly, repeating the name.
  • "Tulkinghorn. That's the name, sir. I know the man, and know him to
  • have been in communication with Bucket before, respecting a deceased
  • person who had given him offence. I know the man, sir. To my sorrow."
  • Allan naturally asks what kind of man he is.
  • "What kind of man! Do you mean to look at?"
  • "I think I know that much of him. I mean to deal with. Generally,
  • what kind of man?"
  • "Why, then I'll tell you, sir," returns the trooper, stopping short
  • and folding his arms on his square chest so angrily that his face
  • fires and flushes all over; "he is a confoundedly bad kind of man. He
  • is a slow-torturing kind of man. He is no more like flesh and blood
  • than a rusty old carbine is. He is a kind of man--by George!--that
  • has caused me more restlessness, and more uneasiness, and more
  • dissatisfaction with myself than all other men put together. That's
  • the kind of man Mr. Tulkinghorn is!"
  • "I am sorry," says Allan, "to have touched so sore a place."
  • "Sore?" The trooper plants his legs wider apart, wets the palm of his
  • broad right hand, and lays it on the imaginary moustache. "It's no
  • fault of yours, sir; but you shall judge. He has got a power over me.
  • He is the man I spoke of just now as being able to tumble me out of
  • this place neck and crop. He keeps me on a constant see-saw. He won't
  • hold off, and he won't come on. If I have a payment to make him, or
  • time to ask him for, or anything to go to him about, he don't see me,
  • don't hear me--passes me on to Melchisedech's in Clifford's Inn,
  • Melchisedech's in Clifford's Inn passes me back again to him--he
  • keeps me prowling and dangling about him as if I was made of the same
  • stone as himself. Why, I spend half my life now, pretty well,
  • loitering and dodging about his door. What does he care? Nothing.
  • Just as much as the rusty old carbine I have compared him to. He
  • chafes and goads me till--Bah! Nonsense! I am forgetting myself. Mr.
  • Woodcourt," the trooper resumes his march, "all I say is, he is an
  • old man; but I am glad I shall never have the chance of setting spurs
  • to my horse and riding at him in a fair field. For if I had that
  • chance, in one of the humours he drives me into--he'd go down, sir!"
  • Mr. George has been so excited that he finds it necessary to wipe his
  • forehead on his shirt-sleeve. Even while he whistles his impetuosity
  • away with the national anthem, some involuntary shakings of his head
  • and heavings of his chest still linger behind, not to mention an
  • occasional hasty adjustment with both hands of his open shirt-collar,
  • as if it were scarcely open enough to prevent his being troubled by a
  • choking sensation. In short, Allan Woodcourt has not much doubt about
  • the going down of Mr. Tulkinghorn on the field referred to.
  • Jo and his conductor presently return, and Jo is assisted to his
  • mattress by the careful Phil, to whom, after due administration of
  • medicine by his own hands, Allan confides all needful means and
  • instructions. The morning is by this time getting on apace. He
  • repairs to his lodgings to dress and breakfast, and then, without
  • seeking rest, goes away to Mr. Jarndyce to communicate his discovery.
  • With him Mr. Jarndyce returns alone, confidentially telling him that
  • there are reasons for keeping this matter very quiet indeed and
  • showing a serious interest in it. To Mr. Jarndyce, Jo repeats in
  • substance what he said in the morning, without any material
  • variation. Only that cart of his is heavier to draw, and draws with a
  • hollower sound.
  • "Let me lay here quiet and not be chivied no more," falters Jo, "and
  • be so kind any person as is a-passin nigh where I used fur to sleep,
  • as jist to say to Mr. Sangsby that Jo, wot he known once, is a-moving
  • on right forards with his duty, and I'll be wery thankful. I'd be
  • more thankful than I am aready if it wos any ways possible for an
  • unfortnet to be it."
  • He makes so many of these references to the law-stationer in the
  • course of a day or two that Allan, after conferring with Mr.
  • Jarndyce, good-naturedly resolves to call in Cook's Court, the
  • rather, as the cart seems to be breaking down.
  • To Cook's Court, therefore, he repairs. Mr. Snagsby is behind his
  • counter in his grey coat and sleeves, inspecting an indenture of
  • several skins which has just come in from the engrosser's, an immense
  • desert of law-hand and parchment, with here and there a resting-place
  • of a few large letters to break the awful monotony and save the
  • traveller from despair. Mr Snagsby puts up at one of these inky wells
  • and greets the stranger with his cough of general preparation for
  • business.
  • "You don't remember me, Mr. Snagsby?"
  • The stationer's heart begins to thump heavily, for his old
  • apprehensions have never abated. It is as much as he can do to
  • answer, "No, sir, I can't say I do. I should have considered--not to
  • put too fine a point upon it--that I never saw you before, sir."
  • "Twice before," says Allan Woodcourt. "Once at a poor bedside, and
  • once--"
  • "It's come at last!" thinks the afflicted stationer, as recollection
  • breaks upon him. "It's got to a head now and is going to burst!" But
  • he has sufficient presence of mind to conduct his visitor into the
  • little counting-house and to shut the door.
  • "Are you a married man, sir?"
  • "No, I am not."
  • "Would you make the attempt, though single," says Mr. Snagsby in a
  • melancholy whisper, "to speak as low as you can? For my little woman
  • is a-listening somewheres, or I'll forfeit the business and five
  • hundred pound!"
  • In deep dejection Mr. Snagsby sits down on his stool, with his back
  • against his desk, protesting, "I never had a secret of my own, sir. I
  • can't charge my memory with ever having once attempted to deceive my
  • little woman on my own account since she named the day. I wouldn't
  • have done it, sir. Not to put too fine a point upon it, I couldn't
  • have done it, I dursn't have done it. Whereas, and nevertheless, I
  • find myself wrapped round with secrecy and mystery, till my life is a
  • burden to me."
  • His visitor professes his regret to hear it and asks him does he
  • remember Jo. Mr. Snagsby answers with a suppressed groan, oh, don't
  • he!
  • "You couldn't name an individual human being--except myself--that my
  • little woman is more set and determined against than Jo," says Mr.
  • Snagsby.
  • Allan asks why.
  • "Why?" repeats Mr. Snagsby, in his desperation clutching at the clump
  • of hair at the back of his bald head. "How should I know why? But you
  • are a single person, sir, and may you long be spared to ask a married
  • person such a question!"
  • With this beneficent wish, Mr. Snagsby coughs a cough of dismal
  • resignation and submits himself to hear what the visitor has to
  • communicate.
  • "There again!" says Mr. Snagsby, who, between the earnestness of his
  • feelings and the suppressed tones of his voice is discoloured in the
  • face. "At it again, in a new direction! A certain person charges me,
  • in the solemnest way, not to talk of Jo to any one, even my little
  • woman. Then comes another certain person, in the person of yourself,
  • and charges me, in an equally solemn way, not to mention Jo to that
  • other certain person above all other persons. Why, this is a private
  • asylum! Why, not to put too fine a point upon it, this is Bedlam,
  • sir!" says Mr. Snagsby.
  • But it is better than he expected after all, being no explosion of
  • the mine below him or deepening of the pit into which he has fallen.
  • And being tender-hearted and affected by the account he hears of Jo's
  • condition, he readily engages to "look round" as early in the evening
  • as he can manage it quietly. He looks round very quietly when the
  • evening comes, but it may turn out that Mrs. Snagsby is as quiet a
  • manager as he.
  • Jo is very glad to see his old friend and says, when they are left
  • alone, that he takes it uncommon kind as Mr. Sangsby should come so
  • far out of his way on accounts of sich as him. Mr. Snagsby, touched
  • by the spectacle before him, immediately lays upon the table half a
  • crown, that magic balsam of his for all kinds of wounds.
  • "And how do you find yourself, my poor lad?" inquires the stationer
  • with his cough of sympathy.
  • "I am in luck, Mr. Sangsby, I am," returns Jo, "and don't want for
  • nothink. I'm more cumfbler nor you can't think. Mr. Sangsby! I'm wery
  • sorry that I done it, but I didn't go fur to do it, sir."
  • The stationer softly lays down another half-crown and asks him what
  • it is that he is sorry for having done.
  • "Mr. Sangsby," says Jo, "I went and giv a illness to the lady as wos
  • and yit as warn't the t'other lady, and none of 'em never says
  • nothink to me for having done it, on accounts of their being ser good
  • and my having been s'unfortnet. The lady come herself and see me
  • yesday, and she ses, 'Ah, Jo!' she ses. 'We thought we'd lost you,
  • Jo!' she ses. And she sits down a-smilin so quiet, and don't pass a
  • word nor yit a look upon me for having done it, she don't, and I
  • turns agin the wall, I doos, Mr. Sangsby. And Mr. Jarnders, I see him
  • a-forced to turn away his own self. And Mr. Woodcot, he come fur to
  • giv me somethink fur to ease me, wot he's allus a-doin' on day and
  • night, and wen he come a-bending over me and a-speakin up so bold, I
  • see his tears a-fallin, Mr. Sangsby."
  • The softened stationer deposits another half-crown on the table.
  • Nothing less than a repetition of that infallible remedy will relieve
  • his feelings.
  • "Wot I was a-thinkin on, Mr. Sangsby," proceeds Jo, "wos, as you wos
  • able to write wery large, p'raps?"
  • "Yes, Jo, please God," returns the stationer.
  • "Uncommon precious large, p'raps?" says Jo with eagerness.
  • "Yes, my poor boy."
  • Jo laughs with pleasure. "Wot I wos a-thinking on then, Mr. Sangsby,
  • wos, that when I wos moved on as fur as ever I could go and couldn't
  • be moved no furder, whether you might be so good p'raps as to write
  • out, wery large so that any one could see it anywheres, as that I wos
  • wery truly hearty sorry that I done it and that I never went fur to
  • do it, and that though I didn't know nothink at all, I knowd as Mr.
  • Woodcot once cried over it and wos allus grieved over it, and that I
  • hoped as he'd be able to forgive me in his mind. If the writin could
  • be made to say it wery large, he might."
  • "It shall say it, Jo. Very large."
  • Jo laughs again. "Thankee, Mr. Sangsby. It's wery kind of you, sir,
  • and it makes me more cumfbler nor I was afore."
  • The meek little stationer, with a broken and unfinished cough, slips
  • down his fourth half-crown--he has never been so close to a case
  • requiring so many--and is fain to depart. And Jo and he, upon this
  • little earth, shall meet no more. No more.
  • For the cart so hard to draw is near its journey's end and drags over
  • stony ground. All round the clock it labours up the broken steps,
  • shattered and worn. Not many times can the sun rise and behold it
  • still upon its weary road.
  • Phil Squod, with his smoky gunpowder visage, at once acts as nurse
  • and works as armourer at his little table in a corner, often looking
  • round and saying with a nod of his green-baize cap and an encouraging
  • elevation of his one eyebrow, "Hold up, my boy! Hold up!" There, too,
  • is Mr. Jarndyce many a time, and Allan Woodcourt almost always, both
  • thinking, much, how strangely fate has entangled this rough outcast
  • in the web of very different lives. There, too, the trooper is a
  • frequent visitor, filling the doorway with his athletic figure and,
  • from his superfluity of life and strength, seeming to shed down
  • temporary vigour upon Jo, who never fails to speak more robustly in
  • answer to his cheerful words.
  • Jo is in a sleep or in a stupor to-day, and Allan Woodcourt, newly
  • arrived, stands by him, looking down upon his wasted form. After a
  • while he softly seats himself upon the bedside with his face towards
  • him--just as he sat in the law-writer's room--and touches his chest
  • and heart. The cart had very nearly given up, but labours on a little
  • more.
  • The trooper stands in the doorway, still and silent. Phil has stopped
  • in a low clinking noise, with his little hammer in his hand. Mr.
  • Woodcourt looks round with that grave professional interest and
  • attention on his face, and glancing significantly at the trooper,
  • signs to Phil to carry his table out. When the little hammer is next
  • used, there will be a speck of rust upon it.
  • "Well, Jo! What is the matter? Don't be frightened."
  • "I thought," says Jo, who has started and is looking round, "I
  • thought I was in Tom-all-Alone's agin. Ain't there nobody here but
  • you, Mr. Woodcot?"
  • "Nobody."
  • "And I ain't took back to Tom-all-Alone's. Am I, sir?"
  • "No." Jo closes his eyes, muttering, "I'm wery thankful."
  • After watching him closely a little while, Allan puts his mouth very
  • near his ear and says to him in a low, distinct voice, "Jo! Did you
  • ever know a prayer?"
  • "Never knowd nothink, sir."
  • "Not so much as one short prayer?"
  • "No, sir. Nothink at all. Mr. Chadbands he wos a-prayin wunst at Mr.
  • Sangsby's and I heerd him, but he sounded as if he wos a-speakin to
  • hisself, and not to me. He prayed a lot, but I couldn't make out
  • nothink on it. Different times there was other genlmen come down
  • Tom-all-Alone's a-prayin, but they all mostly sed as the t'other
  • 'wuns prayed wrong, and all mostly sounded to be a-talking to
  • theirselves, or a-passing blame on the t'others, and not a-talkin to
  • us. WE never knowd nothink. I never knowd what it wos all about."
  • It takes him a long time to say this, and few but an experienced and
  • attentive listener could hear, or, hearing, understand him. After a
  • short relapse into sleep or stupor, he makes, of a sudden, a strong
  • effort to get out of bed.
  • "Stay, Jo! What now?"
  • "It's time for me to go to that there berryin ground, sir," he
  • returns with a wild look.
  • "Lie down, and tell me. What burying ground, Jo?"
  • "Where they laid him as wos wery good to me, wery good to me indeed,
  • he wos. It's time fur me to go down to that there berryin ground,
  • sir, and ask to be put along with him. I wants to go there and be
  • berried. He used fur to say to me, 'I am as poor as you to-day, Jo,'
  • he ses. I wants to tell him that I am as poor as him now and have
  • come there to be laid along with him."
  • "By and by, Jo. By and by."
  • "Ah! P'raps they wouldn't do it if I wos to go myself. But will you
  • promise to have me took there, sir, and laid along with him?"
  • "I will, indeed."
  • "Thankee, sir. Thankee, sir. They'll have to get the key of the gate
  • afore they can take me in, for it's allus locked. And there's a step
  • there, as I used for to clean with my broom. It's turned wery dark,
  • sir. Is there any light a-comin?"
  • "It is coming fast, Jo."
  • Fast. The cart is shaken all to pieces, and the rugged road is very
  • near its end.
  • "Jo, my poor fellow!"
  • "I hear you, sir, in the dark, but I'm a-gropin--a-gropin--let me
  • catch hold of your hand."
  • "Jo, can you say what I say?"
  • "I'll say anythink as you say, sir, for I knows it's good."
  • "Our Father."
  • "Our Father! Yes, that's wery good, sir."
  • "Which art in heaven."
  • "Art in heaven--is the light a-comin, sir?"
  • "It is close at hand. Hallowed be thy name!"
  • "Hallowed be--thy--"
  • The light is come upon the dark benighted way. Dead!
  • Dead, your Majesty. Dead, my lords and gentlemen. Dead, right
  • reverends and wrong reverends of every order. Dead, men and women,
  • born with heavenly compassion in your hearts. And dying thus around
  • us every day.
  • CHAPTER XLVIII
  • Closing In
  • The place in Lincolnshire has shut its many eyes again, and the house
  • in town is awake. In Lincolnshire the Dedlocks of the past doze in
  • their picture-frames, and the low wind murmurs through the long
  • drawing-room as if they were breathing pretty regularly. In town the
  • Dedlocks of the present rattle in their fire-eyed carriages through
  • the darkness of the night, and the Dedlock Mercuries, with ashes (or
  • hair-powder) on their heads, symptomatic of their great humility,
  • loll away the drowsy mornings in the little windows of the hall. The
  • fashionable world--tremendous orb, nearly five miles round--is in
  • full swing, and the solar system works respectfully at its appointed
  • distances.
  • Where the throng is thickest, where the lights are brightest, where
  • all the senses are ministered to with the greatest delicacy and
  • refinement, Lady Dedlock is. From the shining heights she has scaled
  • and taken, she is never absent. Though the belief she of old reposed
  • in herself as one able to reserve whatsoever she would under
  • her mantle of pride is beaten down, though she has no assurance
  • that what she is to those around her she will remain another day,
  • it is not in her nature when envious eyes are looking on to
  • yield or to droop. They say of her that she has lately grown
  • more handsome and more haughty. The debilitated cousin says of
  • her that she's beauty nough--tsetup shopofwomen--but rather
  • larming kind--remindingmanfact--inconvenient woman--who WILL
  • getoutofbedandbawthstahlishment--Shakespeare.
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn says nothing, looks nothing. Now, as heretofore, he
  • is to be found in doorways of rooms, with his limp white cravat
  • loosely twisted into its old-fashioned tie, receiving patronage from
  • the peerage and making no sign. Of all men he is still the last who
  • might be supposed to have any influence upon my Lady. Of all women
  • she is still the last who might be supposed to have any dread of him.
  • One thing has been much on her mind since their late interview in his
  • turret-room at Chesney Wold. She is now decided, and prepared to
  • throw it off.
  • It is morning in the great world, afternoon according to the little
  • sun. The Mercuries, exhausted by looking out of window, are reposing
  • in the hall and hang their heavy heads, the gorgeous creatures, like
  • overblown sunflowers. Like them, too, they seem to run to a deal of
  • seed in their tags and trimmings. Sir Leicester, in the library, has
  • fallen asleep for the good of the country over the report of a
  • Parliamentary committee. My Lady sits in the room in which she gave
  • audience to the young man of the name of Guppy. Rosa is with her and
  • has been writing for her and reading to her. Rosa is now at work upon
  • embroidery or some such pretty thing, and as she bends her head over
  • it, my Lady watches her in silence. Not for the first time to-day.
  • "Rosa."
  • The pretty village face looks brightly up. Then, seeing how serious
  • my Lady is, looks puzzled and surprised.
  • "See to the door. Is it shut?"
  • Yes. She goes to it and returns, and looks yet more surprised.
  • "I am about to place confidence in you, child, for I know I may trust
  • your attachment, if not your judgment. In what I am going to do, I
  • will not disguise myself to you at least. But I confide in you. Say
  • nothing to any one of what passes between us."
  • The timid little beauty promises in all earnestness to be
  • trustworthy.
  • "Do you know," Lady Dedlock asks her, signing to her to bring her
  • chair nearer, "do you know, Rosa, that I am different to you from
  • what I am to any one?"
  • "Yes, my Lady. Much kinder. But then I often think I know you as you
  • really are."
  • "You often think you know me as I really am? Poor child, poor child!"
  • She says it with a kind of scorn--though not of Rosa--and sits
  • brooding, looking dreamily at her.
  • "Do you think, Rosa, you are any relief or comfort to me? Do you
  • suppose your being young and natural, and fond of me and grateful to
  • me, makes it any pleasure to me to have you near me?"
  • "I don't know, my Lady; I can scarcely hope so. But with all my
  • heart, I wish it was so."
  • "It is so, little one."
  • The pretty face is checked in its flush of pleasure by the dark
  • expression on the handsome face before it. It looks timidly for an
  • explanation.
  • "And if I were to say to-day, 'Go! Leave me!' I should say what would
  • give me great pain and disquiet, child, and what would leave me very
  • solitary."
  • "My Lady! Have I offended you?"
  • "In nothing. Come here."
  • Rosa bends down on the footstool at my Lady's feet. My Lady, with
  • that motherly touch of the famous ironmaster night, lays her hand
  • upon her dark hair and gently keeps it there.
  • "I told you, Rosa, that I wished you to be happy and that I would
  • make you so if I could make anybody happy on this earth. I cannot.
  • There are reasons now known to me, reasons in which you have no part,
  • rendering it far better for you that you should not remain here. You
  • must not remain here. I have determined that you shall not. I have
  • written to the father of your lover, and he will be here to-day. All
  • this I have done for your sake."
  • The weeping girl covers her hand with kisses and says what shall she
  • do, what shall she do, when they are separated! Her mistress kisses
  • her on the cheek and makes no other answer.
  • "Now, be happy, child, under better circumstances. Be beloved and
  • happy!"
  • "Ah, my Lady, I have sometimes thought--forgive my being so
  • free--that YOU are not happy."
  • "I!"
  • "Will you be more so when you have sent me away? Pray, pray, think
  • again. Let me stay a little while!"
  • "I have said, my child, that what I do, I do for your sake, not my
  • own. It is done. What I am towards you, Rosa, is what I am now--not
  • what I shall be a little while hence. Remember this, and keep my
  • confidence. Do so much for my sake, and thus all ends between us!"
  • She detaches herself from her simple-hearted companion and leaves the
  • room. Late in the afternoon, when she next appears upon the
  • staircase, she is in her haughtiest and coldest state. As indifferent
  • as if all passion, feeling, and interest had been worn out in the
  • earlier ages of the world and had perished from its surface with its
  • other departed monsters.
  • Mercury has announced Mr. Rouncewell, which is the cause of her
  • appearance. Mr. Rouncewell is not in the library, but she repairs to
  • the library. Sir Leicester is there, and she wishes to speak to him
  • first.
  • "Sir Leicester, I am desirous--but you are engaged."
  • Oh, dear no! Not at all. Only Mr. Tulkinghorn.
  • Always at hand. Haunting every place. No relief or security from him
  • for a moment.
  • "I beg your pardon, Lady Dedlock. Will you allow me to retire?"
  • With a look that plainly says, "You know you have the power to remain
  • if you will," she tells him it is not necessary and moves towards a
  • chair. Mr. Tulkinghorn brings it a little forward for her with his
  • clumsy bow and retires into a window opposite. Interposed between her
  • and the fading light of day in the now quiet street, his shadow falls
  • upon her, and he darkens all before her. Even so does he darken her
  • life.
  • It is a dull street under the best conditions, where the two long
  • rows of houses stare at each other with that severity that
  • half-a-dozen of its greatest mansions seem to have been slowly stared
  • into stone rather than originally built in that material. It is a
  • street of such dismal grandeur, so determined not to condescend to
  • liveliness, that the doors and windows hold a gloomy state of their
  • own in black paint and dust, and the echoing mews behind have a dry
  • and massive appearance, as if they were reserved to stable the stone
  • chargers of noble statues. Complicated garnish of iron-work entwines
  • itself over the flights of steps in this awful street, and from these
  • petrified bowers, extinguishers for obsolete flambeaux gasp at the
  • upstart gas. Here and there a weak little iron hoop, through which
  • bold boys aspire to throw their friends' caps (its only present use),
  • retains its place among the rusty foliage, sacred to the memory of
  • departed oil. Nay, even oil itself, yet lingering at long intervals
  • in a little absurd glass pot, with a knob in the bottom like an
  • oyster, blinks and sulks at newer lights every night, like its high
  • and dry master in the House of Lords.
  • Therefore there is not much that Lady Dedlock, seated in her chair,
  • could wish to see through the window in which Mr. Tulkinghorn stands.
  • And yet--and yet--she sends a look in that direction as if it were
  • her heart's desire to have that figure moved out of the way.
  • Sir Leicester begs his Lady's pardon. She was about to say?
  • "Only that Mr. Rouncewell is here (he has called by my appointment)
  • and that we had better make an end of the question of that girl. I am
  • tired to death of the matter."
  • "What can I do--to--assist?" demands Sir Leicester in some
  • considerable doubt.
  • "Let us see him here and have done with it. Will you tell them to
  • send him up?"
  • "Mr. Tulkinghorn, be so good as to ring. Thank you. Request," says
  • Sir Leicester to Mercury, not immediately remembering the business
  • term, "request the iron gentleman to walk this way."
  • Mercury departs in search of the iron gentleman, finds, and produces
  • him. Sir Leicester receives that ferruginous person graciously.
  • "I hope you are well, Mr. Rouncewell. Be seated. (My solicitor, Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn.) My Lady was desirous, Mr. Rouncewell," Sir Leicester
  • skilfully transfers him with a solemn wave of his hand, "was desirous
  • to speak with you. Hem!"
  • "I shall be very happy," returns the iron gentleman, "to give my best
  • attention to anything Lady Dedlock does me the honour to say."
  • As he turns towards her, he finds that the impression she makes upon
  • him is less agreeable than on the former occasion. A distant
  • supercilious air makes a cold atmosphere about her, and there is
  • nothing in her bearing, as there was before, to encourage openness.
  • "Pray, sir," says Lady Dedlock listlessly, "may I be allowed to
  • inquire whether anything has passed between you and your son
  • respecting your son's fancy?"
  • It is almost too troublesome to her languid eyes to bestow a look
  • upon him as she asks this question.
  • "If my memory serves me, Lady Dedlock, I said, when I had the
  • pleasure of seeing you before, that I should seriously advise my son
  • to conquer that--fancy." The ironmaster repeats her expression with a
  • little emphasis.
  • "And did you?"
  • "Oh! Of course I did."
  • Sir Leicester gives a nod, approving and confirmatory. Very proper.
  • The iron gentleman, having said that he would do it, was bound to do
  • it. No difference in this respect between the base metals and the
  • precious. Highly proper.
  • "And pray has he done so?"
  • "Really, Lady Dedlock, I cannot make you a definite reply. I fear
  • not. Probably not yet. In our condition of life, we sometimes couple
  • an intention with our--our fancies which renders them not altogether
  • easy to throw off. I think it is rather our way to be in earnest."
  • Sir Leicester has a misgiving that there may be a hidden Wat Tylerish
  • meaning in this expression, and fumes a little. Mr. Rouncewell is
  • perfectly good-humoured and polite, but within such limits, evidently
  • adapts his tone to his reception.
  • "Because," proceeds my Lady, "I have been thinking of the subject,
  • which is tiresome to me."
  • "I am very sorry, I am sure."
  • "And also of what Sir Leicester said upon it, in which I quite
  • concur"--Sir Leicester flattered--"and if you cannot give us the
  • assurance that this fancy is at an end, I have come to the conclusion
  • that the girl had better leave me."
  • "I can give no such assurance, Lady Dedlock. Nothing of the kind."
  • "Then she had better go."
  • "Excuse me, my Lady," Sir Leicester considerately interposes, "but
  • perhaps this may be doing an injury to the young woman which she has
  • not merited. Here is a young woman," says Sir Leicester,
  • magnificently laying out the matter with his right hand like a
  • service of plate, "whose good fortune it is to have attracted the
  • notice and favour of an eminent lady and to live, under the
  • protection of that eminent lady, surrounded by the various advantages
  • which such a position confers, and which are unquestionably very
  • great--I believe unquestionably very great, sir--for a young woman in
  • that station of life. The question then arises, should that young
  • woman be deprived of these many advantages and that good fortune
  • simply because she has"--Sir Leicester, with an apologetic but
  • dignified inclination of his head towards the ironmaster, winds up
  • his sentence--"has attracted the notice of Mr Rouncewell's son? Now,
  • has she deserved this punishment? Is this just towards her? Is this
  • our previous understanding?"
  • "I beg your pardon," interposes Mr. Rouncewell's son's father. "Sir
  • Leicester, will you allow me? I think I may shorten the subject. Pray
  • dismiss that from your consideration. If you remember anything so
  • unimportant--which is not to be expected--you would recollect that my
  • first thought in the affair was directly opposed to her remaining
  • here."
  • Dismiss the Dedlock patronage from consideration? Oh! Sir Leicester
  • is bound to believe a pair of ears that have been handed down to him
  • through such a family, or he really might have mistrusted their
  • report of the iron gentleman's observations.
  • "It is not necessary," observes my Lady in her coldest manner before
  • he can do anything but breathe amazedly, "to enter into these matters
  • on either side. The girl is a very good girl; I have nothing whatever
  • to say against her, but she is so far insensible to her many
  • advantages and her good fortune that she is in love--or supposes she
  • is, poor little fool--and unable to appreciate them."
  • Sir Leicester begs to observe that wholly alters the case. He might
  • have been sure that my Lady had the best grounds and reasons in
  • support of her view. He entirely agrees with my Lady. The young woman
  • had better go.
  • "As Sir Leicester observed, Mr. Rouncewell, on the last occasion when
  • we were fatigued by this business," Lady Dedlock languidly proceeds,
  • "we cannot make conditions with you. Without conditions, and under
  • present circumstances, the girl is quite misplaced here and had
  • better go. I have told her so. Would you wish to have her sent back
  • to the village, or would you like to take her with you, or what would
  • you prefer?"
  • "Lady Dedlock, if I may speak plainly--"
  • "By all means."
  • "--I should prefer the course which will the soonest relieve you of
  • the incumbrance and remove her from her present position."
  • "And to speak as plainly," she returns with the same studied
  • carelessness, "so should I. Do I understand that you will take her
  • with you?"
  • The iron gentleman makes an iron bow.
  • "Sir Leicester, will you ring?" Mr. Tulkinghorn steps forward from
  • his window and pulls the bell. "I had forgotten you. Thank you." He
  • makes his usual bow and goes quietly back again. Mercury,
  • swift-responsive, appears, receives instructions whom to produce,
  • skims away, produces the aforesaid, and departs.
  • Rosa has been crying and is yet in distress. On her coming in, the
  • ironmaster leaves his chair, takes her arm in his, and remains with
  • her near the door ready to depart.
  • "You are taken charge of, you see," says my Lady in her weary manner,
  • "and are going away well protected. I have mentioned that you are a
  • very good girl, and you have nothing to cry for."
  • "She seems after all," observes Mr. Tulkinghorn, loitering a little
  • forward with his hands behind him, "as if she were crying at going
  • away."
  • "Why, she is not well-bred, you see," returns Mr. Rouncewell with
  • some quickness in his manner, as if he were glad to have the lawyer
  • to retort upon, "and she is an inexperienced little thing and knows
  • no better. If she had remained here, sir, she would have improved, no
  • doubt."
  • "No doubt," is Mr. Tulkinghorn's composed reply.
  • Rosa sobs out that she is very sorry to leave my Lady, and that she
  • was happy at Chesney Wold, and has been happy with my Lady, and that
  • she thanks my Lady over and over again. "Out, you silly little puss!"
  • says the ironmaster, checking her in a low voice, though not angrily.
  • "Have a spirit, if you're fond of Watt!" My Lady merely waves her off
  • with indifference, saying, "There, there, child! You are a good girl.
  • Go away!" Sir Leicester has magnificently disengaged himself from the
  • subject and retired into the sanctuary of his blue coat. Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn, an indistinct form against the dark street now dotted
  • with lamps, looms in my Lady's view, bigger and blacker than before.
  • "Sir Leicester and Lady Dedlock," says Mr. Rouncewell after a pause
  • of a few moments, "I beg to take my leave, with an apology for having
  • again troubled you, though not of my own act, on this tiresome
  • subject. I can very well understand, I assure you, how tiresome so
  • small a matter must have become to Lady Dedlock. If I am doubtful of
  • my dealing with it, it is only because I did not at first quietly
  • exert my influence to take my young friend here away without
  • troubling you at all. But it appeared to me--I dare say magnifying
  • the importance of the thing--that it was respectful to explain to you
  • how the matter stood and candid to consult your wishes and
  • convenience. I hope you will excuse my want of acquaintance with the
  • polite world."
  • Sir Leicester considers himself evoked out of the sanctuary by these
  • remarks. "Mr. Rouncewell," he returns, "do not mention it.
  • Justifications are unnecessary, I hope, on either side."
  • "I am glad to hear it, Sir Leicester; and if I may, by way of a last
  • word, revert to what I said before of my mother's long connexion with
  • the family and the worth it bespeaks on both sides, I would point out
  • this little instance here on my arm who shows herself so affectionate
  • and faithful in parting and in whom my mother, I dare say, has done
  • something to awaken such feelings--though of course Lady Dedlock, by
  • her heartfelt interest and her genial condescension, has done much
  • more."
  • If he mean this ironically, it may be truer than he thinks. He points
  • it, however, by no deviation from his straightforward manner of
  • speech, though in saying it he turns towards that part of the dim
  • room where my Lady sits. Sir Leicester stands to return his parting
  • salutation, Mr. Tulkinghorn again rings, Mercury takes another
  • flight, and Mr. Rouncewell and Rosa leave the house.
  • Then lights are brought in, discovering Mr. Tulkinghorn still
  • standing in his window with his hands behind him and my Lady still
  • sitting with his figure before her, closing up her view of the night
  • as well as of the day. She is very pale. Mr. Tulkinghorn, observing
  • it as she rises to retire, thinks, "Well she may be! The power of
  • this woman is astonishing. She has been acting a part the whole
  • time." But he can act a part too--his one unchanging character--and
  • as he holds the door open for this woman, fifty pairs of eyes, each
  • fifty times sharper than Sir Leicester's pair, should find no flaw in
  • him.
  • Lady Dedlock dines alone in her own room to-day. Sir Leicester is
  • whipped in to the rescue of the Doodle Party and the discomfiture of
  • the Coodle Faction. Lady Dedlock asks on sitting down to dinner,
  • still deadly pale (and quite an illustration of the debilitated
  • cousin's text), whether he is gone out? Yes. Whether Mr. Tulkinghorn
  • is gone yet? No. Presently she asks again, is he gone YET? No. What
  • is he doing? Mercury thinks he is writing letters in the library.
  • Would my Lady wish to see him? Anything but that.
  • But he wishes to see my Lady. Within a few more minutes he is
  • reported as sending his respects, and could my Lady please to receive
  • him for a word or two after her dinner? My Lady will receive him now.
  • He comes now, apologizing for intruding, even by her permission,
  • while she is at table. When they are alone, my Lady waves her hand to
  • dispense with such mockeries.
  • "What do you want, sir?"
  • "Why, Lady Dedlock," says the lawyer, taking a chair at a little
  • distance from her and slowly rubbing his rusty legs up and down, up
  • and down, up and down, "I am rather surprised by the course you have
  • taken."
  • "Indeed?"
  • "Yes, decidedly. I was not prepared for it. I consider it a departure
  • from our agreement and your promise. It puts us in a new position,
  • Lady Dedlock. I feel myself under the necessity of saying that I
  • don't approve of it."
  • He stops in his rubbing and looks at her, with his hands on his
  • knees. Imperturbable and unchangeable as he is, there is still an
  • indefinable freedom in his manner which is new and which does not
  • escape this woman's observation.
  • "I do not quite understand you."
  • "Oh, yes you do, I think. I think you do. Come, come, Lady Dedlock,
  • we must not fence and parry now. You know you like this girl."
  • "Well, sir?"
  • "And you know--and I know--that you have not sent her away for the
  • reasons you have assigned, but for the purpose of separating her as
  • much as possible from--excuse my mentioning it as a matter of
  • business--any reproach and exposure that impend over yourself."
  • "Well, sir?"
  • "Well, Lady Dedlock," returns the lawyer, crossing his legs and
  • nursing the uppermost knee. "I object to that. I consider that a
  • dangerous proceeding. I know it to be unnecessary and calculated to
  • awaken speculation, doubt, rumour, I don't know what, in the house.
  • Besides, it is a violation of our agreement. You were to be exactly
  • what you were before. Whereas, it must be evident to yourself, as it
  • is to me, that you have been this evening very different from what
  • you were before. Why, bless my soul, Lady Dedlock, transparently so!"
  • "If, sir," she begins, "in my knowledge of my secret--" But he
  • interrupts her.
  • "Now, Lady Dedlock, this is a matter of business, and in a matter of
  • business the ground cannot be kept too clear. It is no longer your
  • secret. Excuse me. That is just the mistake. It is my secret, in
  • trust for Sir Leicester and the family. If it were your secret, Lady
  • Dedlock, we should not be here holding this conversation."
  • "That is very true. If in my knowledge of THE secret I do what I can
  • to spare an innocent girl (especially, remembering your own reference
  • to her when you told my story to the assembled guests at Chesney
  • Wold) from the taint of my impending shame, I act upon a resolution I
  • have taken. Nothing in the world, and no one in the world, could
  • shake it or could move me." This she says with great deliberation and
  • distinctness and with no more outward passion than himself. As for
  • him, he methodically discusses his matter of business as if she were
  • any insensible instrument used in business.
  • "Really? Then you see, Lady Dedlock," he returns, "you are not to be
  • trusted. You have put the case in a perfectly plain way, and
  • according to the literal fact; and that being the case, you are not
  • to be trusted."
  • "Perhaps you may remember that I expressed some anxiety on this same
  • point when we spoke at night at Chesney Wold?"
  • "Yes," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, coolly getting up and standing on the
  • hearth. "Yes. I recollect, Lady Dedlock, that you certainly referred
  • to the girl, but that was before we came to our arrangement, and both
  • the letter and the spirit of our arrangement altogether precluded any
  • action on your part founded upon my discovery. There can be no doubt
  • about that. As to sparing the girl, of what importance or value is
  • she? Spare! Lady Dedlock, here is a family name compromised. One
  • might have supposed that the course was straight on--over everything,
  • neither to the right nor to the left, regardless of all
  • considerations in the way, sparing nothing, treading everything under
  • foot."
  • She has been looking at the table. She lifts up her eyes and looks at
  • him. There is a stern expression on her face and a part of her lower
  • lip is compressed under her teeth. "This woman understands me," Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn thinks as she lets her glance fall again. "SHE cannot be
  • spared. Why should she spare others?"
  • For a little while they are silent. Lady Dedlock has eaten no dinner,
  • but has twice or thrice poured out water with a steady hand and drunk
  • it. She rises from table, takes a lounging-chair, and reclines in it,
  • shading her face. There is nothing in her manner to express weakness
  • or excite compassion. It is thoughtful, gloomy, concentrated. "This
  • woman," thinks Mr. Tulkinghorn, standing on the hearth, again a dark
  • object closing up her view, "is a study."
  • He studies her at his leisure, not speaking for a time. She too
  • studies something at her leisure. She is not the first to speak,
  • appearing indeed so unlikely to be so, though he stood there until
  • midnight, that even he is driven upon breaking silence.
  • "Lady Dedlock, the most disagreeable part of this business interview
  • remains, but it is business. Our agreement is broken. A lady of your
  • sense and strength of character will be prepared for my now declaring
  • it void and taking my own course."
  • "I am quite prepared."
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn inclines his head. "That is all I have to trouble you
  • with, Lady Dedlock."
  • She stops him as he is moving out of the room by asking, "This is the
  • notice I was to receive? I wish not to misapprehend you."
  • "Not exactly the notice you were to receive, Lady Dedlock, because
  • the contemplated notice supposed the agreement to have been observed.
  • But virtually the same, virtually the same. The difference is merely
  • in a lawyer's mind."
  • "You intend to give me no other notice?"
  • "You are right. No."
  • "Do you contemplate undeceiving Sir Leicester to-night?"
  • "A home question!" says Mr. Tulkinghorn with a slight smile and
  • cautiously shaking his head at the shaded face. "No, not to-night."
  • "To-morrow?"
  • "All things considered, I had better decline answering that question,
  • Lady Dedlock. If I were to say I don't know when, exactly, you would
  • not believe me, and it would answer no purpose. It may be to-morrow.
  • I would rather say no more. You are prepared, and I hold out no
  • expectations which circumstances might fail to justify. I wish you
  • good evening."
  • She removes her hand, turns her pale face towards him as he walks
  • silently to the door, and stops him once again as he is about to open
  • it.
  • "Do you intend to remain in the house any time? I heard you were
  • writing in the library. Are you going to return there?"
  • "Only for my hat. I am going home."
  • She bows her eyes rather than her head, the movement is so slight and
  • curious, and he withdraws. Clear of the room he looks at his watch
  • but is inclined to doubt it by a minute or thereabouts. There is a
  • splendid clock upon the staircase, famous, as splendid clocks not
  • often are, for its accuracy. "And what do YOU say," Mr. Tulkinghorn
  • inquires, referring to it. "What do you say?"
  • If it said now, "Don't go home!" What a famous clock, hereafter, if
  • it said to-night of all the nights that it has counted off, to this
  • old man of all the young and old men who have ever stood before it,
  • "Don't go home!" With its sharp clear bell it strikes three quarters
  • after seven and ticks on again. "Why, you are worse than I thought
  • you," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, muttering reproof to his watch. "Two
  • minutes wrong? At this rate you won't last my time." What a watch to
  • return good for evil if it ticked in answer, "Don't go home!"
  • He passes out into the streets and walks on, with his hands behind
  • him, under the shadow of the lofty houses, many of whose mysteries,
  • difficulties, mortgages, delicate affairs of all kinds, are treasured
  • up within his old black satin waistcoat. He is in the confidence of
  • the very bricks and mortar. The high chimney-stacks telegraph family
  • secrets to him. Yet there is not a voice in a mile of them to
  • whisper, "Don't go home!"
  • Through the stir and motion of the commoner streets; through the roar
  • and jar of many vehicles, many feet, many voices; with the blazing
  • shop-lights lighting him on, the west wind blowing him on, and the
  • crowd pressing him on, he is pitilessly urged upon his way, and
  • nothing meets him murmuring, "Don't go home!" Arrived at last in his
  • dull room to light his candles, and look round and up, and see the
  • Roman pointing from the ceiling, there is no new significance in the
  • Roman's hand to-night or in the flutter of the attendant groups to
  • give him the late warning, "Don't come here!"
  • It is a moonlight night, but the moon, being past the full, is only
  • now rising over the great wilderness of London. The stars are shining
  • as they shone above the turret-leads at Chesney Wold. This woman, as
  • he has of late been so accustomed to call her, looks out upon them.
  • Her soul is turbulent within her; she is sick at heart and restless.
  • The large rooms are too cramped and close. She cannot endure their
  • restraint and will walk alone in a neighbouring garden.
  • Too capricious and imperious in all she does to be the cause of much
  • surprise in those about her as to anything she does, this woman,
  • loosely muffled, goes out into the moonlight. Mercury attends with
  • the key. Having opened the garden-gate, he delivers the key into his
  • Lady's hands at her request and is bidden to go back. She will walk
  • there some time to ease her aching head. She may be an hour, she may
  • be more. She needs no further escort. The gate shuts upon its spring
  • with a clash, and he leaves her passing on into the dark shade of
  • some trees.
  • A fine night, and a bright large moon, and multitudes of stars. Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn, in repairing to his cellar and in opening and shutting
  • those resounding doors, has to cross a little prison-like yard. He
  • looks up casually, thinking what a fine night, what a bright large
  • moon, what multitudes of stars! A quiet night, too.
  • A very quiet night. When the moon shines very brilliantly, a solitude
  • and stillness seem to proceed from her that influence even crowded
  • places full of life. Not only is it a still night on dusty high roads
  • and on hill-summits, whence a wide expanse of country may be seen in
  • repose, quieter and quieter as it spreads away into a fringe of trees
  • against the sky with the grey ghost of a bloom upon them; not only is
  • it a still night in gardens and in woods, and on the river where the
  • water-meadows are fresh and green, and the stream sparkles on among
  • pleasant islands, murmuring weirs, and whispering rushes; not only
  • does the stillness attend it as it flows where houses cluster thick,
  • where many bridges are reflected in it, where wharves and shipping
  • make it black and awful, where it winds from these disfigurements
  • through marshes whose grim beacons stand like skeletons washed
  • ashore, where it expands through the bolder region of rising grounds,
  • rich in cornfield wind-mill and steeple, and where it mingles with
  • the ever-heaving sea; not only is it a still night on the deep, and
  • on the shore where the watcher stands to see the ship with her spread
  • wings cross the path of light that appears to be presented to only
  • him; but even on this stranger's wilderness of London there is some
  • rest. Its steeples and towers and its one great dome grow more
  • ethereal; its smoky house-tops lose their grossness in the pale
  • effulgence; the noises that arise from the streets are fewer and are
  • softened, and the footsteps on the pavements pass more tranquilly
  • away. In these fields of Mr. Tulkinghorn's inhabiting, where the
  • shepherds play on Chancery pipes that have no stop, and keep their
  • sheep in the fold by hook and by crook until they have shorn them
  • exceeding close, every noise is merged, this moonlight night, into a
  • distant ringing hum, as if the city were a vast glass, vibrating.
  • What's that? Who fired a gun or pistol? Where was it?
  • The few foot-passengers start, stop, and stare about them. Some
  • windows and doors are opened, and people come out to look. It was a
  • loud report and echoed and rattled heavily. It shook one house, or so
  • a man says who was passing. It has aroused all the dogs in the
  • neighbourhood, who bark vehemently. Terrified cats scamper across the
  • road. While the dogs are yet barking and howling--there is one dog
  • howling like a demon--the church-clocks, as if they were startled
  • too, begin to strike. The hum from the streets, likewise, seems to
  • swell into a shout. But it is soon over. Before the last clock begins
  • to strike ten, there is a lull. When it has ceased, the fine night,
  • the bright large moon, and multitudes of stars, are left at peace
  • again.
  • Has Mr. Tulkinghorn been disturbed? His windows are dark and quiet,
  • and his door is shut. It must be something unusual indeed to bring
  • him out of his shell. Nothing is heard of him, nothing is seen of
  • him. What power of cannon might it take to shake that rusty old man
  • out of his immovable composure?
  • For many years the persistent Roman has been pointing, with no
  • particular meaning, from that ceiling. It is not likely that he has
  • any new meaning in him to-night. Once pointing, always pointing--like
  • any Roman, or even Briton, with a single idea. There he is, no doubt,
  • in his impossible attitude, pointing, unavailingly, all night long.
  • Moonlight, darkness, dawn, sunrise, day. There he is still, eagerly
  • pointing, and no one minds him.
  • But a little after the coming of the day come people to clean the
  • rooms. And either the Roman has some new meaning in him, not
  • expressed before, or the foremost of them goes wild, for looking up
  • at his outstretched hand and looking down at what is below it, that
  • person shrieks and flies. The others, looking in as the first one
  • looked, shriek and fly too, and there is an alarm in the street.
  • What does it mean? No light is admitted into the darkened chamber,
  • and people unaccustomed to it enter, and treading softly but heavily,
  • carry a weight into the bedroom and lay it down. There is whispering
  • and wondering all day, strict search of every corner, careful tracing
  • of steps, and careful noting of the disposition of every article of
  • furniture. All eyes look up at the Roman, and all voices murmur, "If
  • he could only tell what he saw!"
  • He is pointing at a table with a bottle (nearly full of wine) and a
  • glass upon it and two candles that were blown out suddenly soon after
  • being lighted. He is pointing at an empty chair and at a stain upon
  • the ground before it that might be almost covered with a hand. These
  • objects lie directly within his range. An excited imagination might
  • suppose that there was something in them so terrific as to drive the
  • rest of the composition, not only the attendant big-legged boys, but
  • the clouds and flowers and pillars too--in short, the very body and
  • soul of Allegory, and all the brains it has--stark mad. It happens
  • surely that every one who comes into the darkened room and looks at
  • these things looks up at the Roman and that he is invested in all
  • eyes with mystery and awe, as if he were a paralysed dumb witness.
  • So it shall happen surely, through many years to come, that ghostly
  • stories shall be told of the stain upon the floor, so easy to be
  • covered, so hard to be got out, and that the Roman, pointing from the
  • ceiling shall point, so long as dust and damp and spiders spare him,
  • with far greater significance than he ever had in Mr. Tulkinghorn's
  • time, and with a deadly meaning. For Mr. Tulkinghorn's time is over
  • for evermore, and the Roman pointed at the murderous hand uplifted
  • against his life, and pointed helplessly at him, from night to
  • morning, lying face downward on the floor, shot through the heart.
  • CHAPTER XLIX
  • Dutiful Friendship
  • A great annual occasion has come round in the establishment of Mr.
  • Matthew Bagnet, otherwise Lignum Vitae, ex-artilleryman and present
  • bassoon-player. An occasion of feasting and festival. The celebration
  • of a birthday in the family.
  • It is not Mr. Bagnet's birthday. Mr. Bagnet merely distinguishes that
  • epoch in the musical instrument business by kissing the children with
  • an extra smack before breakfast, smoking an additional pipe after
  • dinner, and wondering towards evening what his poor old mother is
  • thinking about it--a subject of infinite speculation, and rendered so
  • by his mother having departed this life twenty years. Some men rarely
  • revert to their father, but seem, in the bank-books of their
  • remembrance, to have transferred all the stock of filial affection
  • into their mother's name. Mr. Bagnet is one of these. Perhaps his
  • exalted appreciation of the merits of the old girl causes him usually
  • to make the noun-substantive "goodness" of the feminine gender.
  • It is not the birthday of one of the three children. Those occasions
  • are kept with some marks of distinction, but they rarely overleap the
  • bounds of happy returns and a pudding. On young Woolwich's last
  • birthday, Mr. Bagnet certainly did, after observing on his growth and
  • general advancement, proceed, in a moment of profound reflection on
  • the changes wrought by time, to examine him in the catechism,
  • accomplishing with extreme accuracy the questions number one and two,
  • "What is your name?" and "Who gave you that name?" but there failing
  • in the exact precision of his memory and substituting for number
  • three the question "And how do you like that name?" which he
  • propounded with a sense of its importance, in itself so edifying and
  • improving as to give it quite an orthodox air. This, however, was a
  • speciality on that particular birthday, and not a general solemnity.
  • It is the old girl's birthday, and that is the greatest holiday and
  • reddest-letter day in Mr. Bagnet's calendar. The auspicious event is
  • always commemorated according to certain forms settled and prescribed
  • by Mr. Bagnet some years since. Mr. Bagnet, being deeply convinced
  • that to have a pair of fowls for dinner is to attain the highest
  • pitch of imperial luxury, invariably goes forth himself very early in
  • the morning of this day to buy a pair; he is, as invariably, taken in
  • by the vendor and installed in the possession of the oldest
  • inhabitants of any coop in Europe. Returning with these triumphs of
  • toughness tied up in a clean blue and white cotton handkerchief
  • (essential to the arrangements), he in a casual manner invites Mrs.
  • Bagnet to declare at breakfast what she would like for dinner. Mrs.
  • Bagnet, by a coincidence never known to fail, replying fowls, Mr.
  • Bagnet instantly produces his bundle from a place of concealment
  • amidst general amazement and rejoicing. He further requires that the
  • old girl shall do nothing all day long but sit in her very best gown
  • and be served by himself and the young people. As he is not
  • illustrious for his cookery, this may be supposed to be a matter of
  • state rather than enjoyment on the old girl's part, but she keeps her
  • state with all imaginable cheerfulness.
  • On this present birthday, Mr. Bagnet has accomplished the usual
  • preliminaries. He has bought two specimens of poultry, which, if
  • there be any truth in adages, were certainly not caught with chaff,
  • to be prepared for the spit; he has amazed and rejoiced the family by
  • their unlooked-for production; he is himself directing the roasting
  • of the poultry; and Mrs. Bagnet, with her wholesome brown fingers
  • itching to prevent what she sees going wrong, sits in her gown of
  • ceremony, an honoured guest.
  • Quebec and Malta lay the cloth for dinner, while Woolwich, serving,
  • as beseems him, under his father, keeps the fowls revolving. To these
  • young scullions Mrs. Bagnet occasionally imparts a wink, or a shake
  • of the head, or a crooked face, as they made mistakes.
  • "At half after one." Says Mr. Bagnet. "To the minute. They'll be
  • done."
  • Mrs. Bagnet, with anguish, beholds one of them at a standstill before
  • the fire and beginning to burn.
  • "You shall have a dinner, old girl," says Mr. Bagnet. "Fit for a
  • queen."
  • Mrs. Bagnet shows her white teeth cheerfully, but to the perception
  • of her son, betrays so much uneasiness of spirit that he is impelled
  • by the dictates of affection to ask her, with his eyes, what is the
  • matter, thus standing, with his eyes wide open, more oblivious of the
  • fowls than before, and not affording the least hope of a return to
  • consciousness. Fortunately his elder sister perceives the cause of
  • the agitation in Mrs. Bagnet's breast and with an admonitory poke
  • recalls him. The stopped fowls going round again, Mrs. Bagnet closes
  • her eyes in the intensity of her relief.
  • "George will look us up," says Mr. Bagnet. "At half after four. To
  • the moment. How many years, old girl. Has George looked us up. This
  • afternoon?"
  • "Ah, Lignum, Lignum, as many as make an old woman of a young one, I
  • begin to think. Just about that, and no less," returns Mrs. Bagnet,
  • laughing and shaking her head.
  • "Old girl," says Mr. Bagnet, "never mind. You'd be as young as ever
  • you was. If you wasn't younger. Which you are. As everybody knows."
  • Quebec and Malta here exclaim, with clapping of hands, that Bluffy is
  • sure to bring mother something, and begin to speculate on what it
  • will be.
  • "Do you know, Lignum," says Mrs. Bagnet, casting a glance on the
  • table-cloth, and winking "salt!" at Malta with her right eye, and
  • shaking the pepper away from Quebec with her head, "I begin to think
  • George is in the roving way again.
  • "George," returns Mr. Bagnet, "will never desert. And leave his old
  • comrade. In the lurch. Don't be afraid of it."
  • "No, Lignum. No. I don't say he will. I don't think he will. But if
  • he could get over this money trouble of his, I believe he would be
  • off."
  • Mr. Bagnet asks why.
  • "Well," returns his wife, considering, "George seems to me to be
  • getting not a little impatient and restless. I don't say but what
  • he's as free as ever. Of course he must be free or he wouldn't be
  • George, but he smarts and seems put out."
  • "He's extra-drilled," says Mr. Bagnet. "By a lawyer. Who would put
  • the devil out."
  • "There's something in that," his wife assents; "but so it is,
  • Lignum."
  • Further conversation is prevented, for the time, by the necessity
  • under which Mr. Bagnet finds himself of directing the whole force of
  • his mind to the dinner, which is a little endangered by the dry
  • humour of the fowls in not yielding any gravy, and also by the made
  • gravy acquiring no flavour and turning out of a flaxen complexion.
  • With a similar perverseness, the potatoes crumble off forks in the
  • process of peeling, upheaving from their centres in every direction,
  • as if they were subject to earthquakes. The legs of the fowls, too,
  • are longer than could be desired, and extremely scaly. Overcoming
  • these disadvantages to the best of his ability, Mr. Bagnet at last
  • dishes and they sit down at table, Mrs. Bagnet occupying the guest's
  • place at his right hand.
  • It is well for the old girl that she has but one birthday in a year,
  • for two such indulgences in poultry might be injurious. Every kind of
  • finer tendon and ligament that is in the nature of poultry to possess
  • is developed in these specimens in the singular form of
  • guitar-strings. Their limbs appear to have struck roots into their
  • breasts and bodies, as aged trees strike roots into the earth. Their
  • legs are so hard as to encourage the idea that they must have devoted
  • the greater part of their long and arduous lives to pedestrian
  • exercises and the walking of matches. But Mr. Bagnet, unconscious of
  • these little defects, sets his heart on Mrs. Bagnet eating a most
  • severe quantity of the delicacies before her; and as that good old
  • girl would not cause him a moment's disappointment on any day, least
  • of all on such a day, for any consideration, she imperils her
  • digestion fearfully. How young Woolwich cleans the drum-sticks
  • without being of ostrich descent, his anxious mother is at a loss to
  • understand.
  • The old girl has another trial to undergo after the conclusion of the
  • repast in sitting in state to see the room cleared, the hearth swept,
  • and the dinner-service washed up and polished in the backyard. The
  • great delight and energy with which the two young ladies apply
  • themselves to these duties, turning up their skirts in imitation of
  • their mother and skating in and out on little scaffolds of pattens,
  • inspire the highest hopes for the future, but some anxiety for the
  • present. The same causes lead to confusion of tongues, a clattering
  • of crockery, a rattling of tin mugs, a whisking of brooms, and an
  • expenditure of water, all in excess, while the saturation of the
  • young ladies themselves is almost too moving a spectacle for Mrs.
  • Bagnet to look upon with the calmness proper to her position. At last
  • the various cleansing processes are triumphantly completed; Quebec
  • and Malta appear in fresh attire, smiling and dry; pipes, tobacco,
  • and something to drink are placed upon the table; and the old girl
  • enjoys the first peace of mind she ever knows on the day of this
  • delightful entertainment.
  • When Mr. Bagnet takes his usual seat, the hands of the clock are very
  • near to half-past four; as they mark it accurately, Mr. Bagnet
  • announces, "George! Military time."
  • It is George, and he has hearty congratulations for the old girl
  • (whom he kisses on the great occasion), and for the children, and for
  • Mr. Bagnet. "Happy returns to all!" says Mr. George.
  • "But, George, old man!" cries Mrs. Bagnet, looking at him curiously.
  • "What's come to you?"
  • "Come to me?"
  • "Ah! You are so white, George--for you--and look so shocked. Now
  • don't he, Lignum?"
  • "George," says Mr. Bagnet, "tell the old girl. What's the matter."
  • "I didn't know I looked white," says the trooper, passing his hand
  • over his brow, "and I didn't know I looked shocked, and I'm sorry I
  • do. But the truth is, that boy who was taken in at my place died
  • yesterday afternoon, and it has rather knocked me over."
  • "Poor creetur!" says Mrs. Bagnet with a mother's pity. "Is he gone?
  • Dear, dear!"
  • "I didn't mean to say anything about it, for it's not birthday talk,
  • but you have got it out of me, you see, before I sit down. I should
  • have roused up in a minute," says the trooper, making himself speak
  • more gaily, "but you're so quick, Mrs. Bagnet."
  • "You're right. The old girl," says Mr. Bagnet. "Is as quick. As
  • powder."
  • "And what's more, she's the subject of the day, and we'll stick to
  • her," cries Mr. George. "See here, I have brought a little brooch
  • along with me. It's a poor thing, you know, but it's a keepsake.
  • That's all the good it is, Mrs. Bagnet."
  • Mr. George produces his present, which is greeted with admiring
  • leapings and clappings by the young family, and with a species of
  • reverential admiration by Mr. Bagnet. "Old girl," says Mr. Bagnet.
  • "Tell him my opinion of it."
  • "Why, it's a wonder, George!" Mrs. Bagnet exclaims. "It's the
  • beautifullest thing that ever was seen!"
  • "Good!" says Mr. Bagnet. "My opinion."
  • "It's so pretty, George," cries Mrs. Bagnet, turning it on all sides
  • and holding it out at arm's length, "that it seems too choice for
  • me."
  • "Bad!" says Mr. Bagnet. "Not my opinion."
  • "But whatever it is, a hundred thousand thanks, old fellow," says
  • Mrs. Bagnet, her eyes sparkling with pleasure and her hand stretched
  • out to him; "and though I have been a crossgrained soldier's wife to
  • you sometimes, George, we are as strong friends, I am sure, in
  • reality, as ever can be. Now you shall fasten it on yourself, for
  • good luck, if you will, George."
  • The children close up to see it done, and Mr. Bagnet looks over young
  • Woolwich's head to see it done with an interest so maturely wooden,
  • yet pleasantly childish, that Mrs. Bagnet cannot help laughing in her
  • airy way and saying, "Oh, Lignum, Lignum, what a precious old chap
  • you are!" But the trooper fails to fasten the brooch. His hand
  • shakes, he is nervous, and it falls off. "Would any one believe
  • this?" says he, catching it as it drops and looking round. "I am so
  • out of sorts that I bungle at an easy job like this!"
  • Mrs. Bagnet concludes that for such a case there is no remedy like a
  • pipe, and fastening the brooch herself in a twinkling, causes the
  • trooper to be inducted into his usual snug place and the pipes to be
  • got into action. "If that don't bring you round, George," says she,
  • "just throw your eye across here at your present now and then, and
  • the two together MUST do it."
  • "You ought to do it of yourself," George answers; "I know that very
  • well, Mrs. Bagnet. I'll tell you how, one way and another, the blues
  • have got to be too many for me. Here was this poor lad. 'Twas dull
  • work to see him dying as he did, and not be able to help him."
  • "What do you mean, George? You did help him. You took him under your
  • roof."
  • "I helped him so far, but that's little. I mean, Mrs. Bagnet, there
  • he was, dying without ever having been taught much more than to know
  • his right hand from his left. And he was too far gone to be helped
  • out of that."
  • "Ah, poor creetur!" says Mrs. Bagnet.
  • "Then," says the trooper, not yet lighting his pipe, and passing his
  • heavy hand over his hair, "that brought up Gridley in a man's mind.
  • His was a bad case too, in a different way. Then the two got mixed up
  • in a man's mind with a flinty old rascal who had to do with both. And
  • to think of that rusty carbine, stock and barrel, standing up on end
  • in his corner, hard, indifferent, taking everything so evenly--it
  • made flesh and blood tingle, I do assure you."
  • "My advice to you," returns Mrs. Bagnet, "is to light your pipe and
  • tingle that way. It's wholesomer and comfortabler, and better for the
  • health altogether."
  • "You're right," says the trooper, "and I'll do it."
  • So he does it, though still with an indignant gravity that impresses
  • the young Bagnets, and even causes Mr. Bagnet to defer the ceremony
  • of drinking Mrs. Bagnet's health, always given by himself on these
  • occasions in a speech of exemplary terseness. But the young ladies
  • having composed what Mr. Bagnet is in the habit of calling "the
  • mixtur," and George's pipe being now in a glow, Mr. Bagnet considers
  • it his duty to proceed to the toast of the evening. He addresses the
  • assembled company in the following terms.
  • "George. Woolwich. Quebec. Malta. This is her birthday. Take a day's
  • march. And you won't find such another. Here's towards her!"
  • The toast having been drunk with enthusiasm, Mrs. Bagnet returns
  • thanks in a neat address of corresponding brevity. This model
  • composition is limited to the three words "And wishing yours!" which
  • the old girl follows up with a nod at everybody in succession and a
  • well-regulated swig of the mixture. This she again follows up, on the
  • present occasion, by the wholly unexpected exclamation, "Here's a
  • man!"
  • Here IS a man, much to the astonishment of the little company,
  • looking in at the parlour-door. He is a sharp-eyed man--a quick keen
  • man--and he takes in everybody's look at him, all at once,
  • individually and collectively, in a manner that stamps him a
  • remarkable man.
  • "George," says the man, nodding, "how do you find yourself?"
  • "Why, it's Bucket!" cries Mr. George.
  • "Yes," says the man, coming in and closing the door. "I was going
  • down the street here when I happened to stop and look in at the
  • musical instruments in the shop-window--a friend of mine is in want
  • of a second-hand wiolinceller of a good tone--and I saw a party
  • enjoying themselves, and I thought it was you in the corner; I
  • thought I couldn't be mistaken. How goes the world with you, George,
  • at the present moment? Pretty smooth? And with you, ma'am? And with
  • you, governor? And Lord," says Mr. Bucket, opening his arms, "here's
  • children too! You may do anything with me if you only show me
  • children. Give us a kiss, my pets. No occasion to inquire who YOUR
  • father and mother is. Never saw such a likeness in my life!"
  • Mr. Bucket, not unwelcome, has sat himself down next to Mr. George
  • and taken Quebec and Malta on his knees. "You pretty dears," says Mr.
  • Bucket, "give us another kiss; it's the only thing I'm greedy in.
  • Lord bless you, how healthy you look! And what may be the ages of
  • these two, ma'am? I should put 'em down at the figures of about eight
  • and ten."
  • "You're very near, sir," says Mrs. Bagnet.
  • "I generally am near," returns Mr. Bucket, "being so fond of
  • children. A friend of mine has had nineteen of 'em, ma'am, all by one
  • mother, and she's still as fresh and rosy as the morning. Not so much
  • so as yourself, but, upon my soul, she comes near you! And what do
  • you call these, my darling?" pursues Mr. Bucket, pinching Malta's
  • cheeks. "These are peaches, these are. Bless your heart! And what do
  • you think about father? Do you think father could recommend a
  • second-hand wiolinceller of a good tone for Mr. Bucket's friend, my
  • dear? My name's Bucket. Ain't that a funny name?"
  • These blandishments have entirely won the family heart. Mrs. Bagnet
  • forgets the day to the extent of filling a pipe and a glass for Mr.
  • Bucket and waiting upon him hospitably. She would be glad to receive
  • so pleasant a character under any circumstances, but she tells him
  • that as a friend of George's she is particularly glad to see him this
  • evening, for George has not been in his usual spirits.
  • "Not in his usual spirits?" exclaims Mr. Bucket. "Why, I never heard
  • of such a thing! What's the matter, George? You don't intend to tell
  • me you've been out of spirits. What should you be out of spirits for?
  • You haven't got anything on your mind, you know."
  • "Nothing particular," returns the trooper.
  • "I should think not," rejoins Mr. Bucket. "What could you have on
  • your mind, you know! And have these pets got anything on THEIR minds,
  • eh? Not they, but they'll be upon the minds of some of the young
  • fellows, some of these days, and make 'em precious low-spirited. I
  • ain't much of a prophet, but I can tell you that, ma'am."
  • Mrs. Bagnet, quite charmed, hopes Mr. Bucket has a family of his own.
  • "There, ma'am!" says Mr. Bucket. "Would you believe it? No, I
  • haven't. My wife and a lodger constitute my family. Mrs. Bucket is as
  • fond of children as myself and as wishful to have 'em, but no. So it
  • is. Worldly goods are divided unequally, and man must not repine.
  • What a very nice backyard, ma'am! Any way out of that yard, now?"
  • There is no way out of that yard.
  • "Ain't there really?" says Mr. Bucket. "I should have thought there
  • might have been. Well, I don't know as I ever saw a backyard that
  • took my fancy more. Would you allow me to look at it? Thank you. No,
  • I see there's no way out. But what a very good-proportioned yard it
  • is!"
  • Having cast his sharp eye all about it, Mr. Bucket returns to his
  • chair next his friend Mr. George and pats Mr. George affectionately
  • on the shoulder.
  • "How are your spirits now, George?"
  • "All right now," returns the trooper.
  • "That's your sort!" says Mr. Bucket. "Why should you ever have been
  • otherwise? A man of your fine figure and constitution has no right to
  • be out of spirits. That ain't a chest to be out of spirits, is it,
  • ma'am? And you haven't got anything on your mind, you know, George;
  • what could you have on your mind!"
  • Somewhat harping on this phrase, considering the extent and variety
  • of his conversational powers, Mr. Bucket twice or thrice repeats it
  • to the pipe he lights, and with a listening face that is particularly
  • his own. But the sun of his sociality soon recovers from this brief
  • eclipse and shines again.
  • "And this is brother, is it, my dears?" says Mr. Bucket, referring to
  • Quebec and Malta for information on the subject of young Woolwich.
  • "And a nice brother he is--half-brother I mean to say. For he's too
  • old to be your boy, ma'am."
  • "I can certify at all events that he is not anybody else's," returns
  • Mrs. Bagnet, laughing.
  • "Well, you do surprise me! Yet he's like you, there's no denying.
  • Lord, he's wonderfully like you! But about what you may call the
  • brow, you know, THERE his father comes out!" Mr. Bucket compares the
  • faces with one eye shut up, while Mr. Bagnet smokes in stolid
  • satisfaction.
  • This is an opportunity for Mrs. Bagnet to inform him that the boy is
  • George's godson.
  • "George's godson, is he?" rejoins Mr. Bucket with extreme cordiality.
  • "I must shake hands over again with George's godson. Godfather and
  • godson do credit to one another. And what do you intend to make of
  • him, ma'am? Does he show any turn for any musical instrument?"
  • Mr. Bagnet suddenly interposes, "Plays the fife. Beautiful."
  • "Would you believe it, governor," says Mr. Bucket, struck by the
  • coincidence, "that when I was a boy I played the fife myself? Not in
  • a scientific way, as I expect he does, but by ear. Lord bless you!
  • 'British Grenadiers'--there's a tune to warm an Englishman up! COULD
  • you give us 'British Grenadiers,' my fine fellow?"
  • Nothing could be more acceptable to the little circle than this call
  • upon young Woolwich, who immediately fetches his fife and performs
  • the stirring melody, during which performance Mr. Bucket, much
  • enlivened, beats time and never fails to come in sharp with the
  • burden, "British Gra-a-anadeers!" In short, he shows so much musical
  • taste that Mr. Bagnet actually takes his pipe from his lips to
  • express his conviction that he is a singer. Mr. Bucket receives the
  • harmonious impeachment so modestly, confessing how that he did once
  • chaunt a little, for the expression of the feelings of his own bosom,
  • and with no presumptuous idea of entertaining his friends, that he is
  • asked to sing. Not to be behindhand in the sociality of the evening,
  • he complies and gives them "Believe Me, if All Those Endearing Young
  • Charms." This ballad, he informs Mrs. Bagnet, he considers to have
  • been his most powerful ally in moving the heart of Mrs. Bucket when a
  • maiden, and inducing her to approach the altar--Mr. Bucket's own
  • words are "to come up to the scratch."
  • This sparkling stranger is such a new and agreeable feature in the
  • evening that Mr. George, who testified no great emotions of pleasure
  • on his entrance, begins, in spite of himself, to be rather proud of
  • him. He is so friendly, is a man of so many resources, and so easy to
  • get on with, that it is something to have made him known there. Mr.
  • Bagnet becomes, after another pipe, so sensible of the value of his
  • acquaintance that he solicits the honour of his company on the old
  • girl's next birthday. If anything can more closely cement and
  • consolidate the esteem which Mr. Bucket has formed for the family, it
  • is the discovery of the nature of the occasion. He drinks to Mrs.
  • Bagnet with a warmth approaching to rapture, engages himself for that
  • day twelvemonth more than thankfully, makes a memorandum of the day
  • in a large black pocket-book with a girdle to it, and breathes a hope
  • that Mrs. Bucket and Mrs. Bagnet may before then become, in a manner,
  • sisters. As he says himself, what is public life without private
  • ties? He is in his humble way a public man, but it is not in that
  • sphere that he finds happiness. No, it must be sought within the
  • confines of domestic bliss.
  • It is natural, under these circumstances, that he, in his turn,
  • should remember the friend to whom he is indebted for so promising an
  • acquaintance. And he does. He keeps very close to him. Whatever the
  • subject of the conversation, he keeps a tender eye upon him. He waits
  • to walk home with him. He is interested in his very boots and
  • observes even them attentively as Mr. George sits smoking
  • cross-legged in the chimney-corner.
  • At length Mr. George rises to depart. At the same moment Mr. Bucket,
  • with the secret sympathy of friendship, also rises. He dotes upon the
  • children to the last and remembers the commission he has undertaken
  • for an absent friend.
  • "Respecting that second-hand wiolinceller, governor--could you
  • recommend me such a thing?"
  • "Scores," says Mr. Bagnet.
  • "I am obliged to you," returns Mr. Bucket, squeezing his hand.
  • "You're a friend in need. A good tone, mind you! My friend is a
  • regular dab at it. Ecod, he saws away at Mozart and Handel and the
  • rest of the big-wigs like a thorough workman. And you needn't," says
  • Mr. Bucket in a considerate and private voice, "you needn't commit
  • yourself to too low a figure, governor. I don't want to pay too large
  • a price for my friend, but I want you to have your proper percentage
  • and be remunerated for your loss of time. That is but fair. Every man
  • must live, and ought to it."
  • Mr. Bagnet shakes his head at the old girl to the effect that they
  • have found a jewel of price.
  • "Suppose I was to give you a look in, say, at half arter ten
  • to-morrow morning. Perhaps you could name the figures of a few
  • wiolincellers of a good tone?" says Mr. Bucket.
  • Nothing easier. Mr. and Mrs. Bagnet both engage to have the requisite
  • information ready and even hint to each other at the practicability
  • of having a small stock collected there for approval.
  • "Thank you," says Mr. Bucket, "thank you. Good night, ma'am. Good
  • night, governor. Good night, darlings. I am much obliged to you for
  • one of the pleasantest evenings I ever spent in my life."
  • They, on the contrary, are much obliged to him for the pleasure he
  • has given them in his company; and so they part with many expressions
  • of goodwill on both sides. "Now George, old boy," says Mr. Bucket,
  • taking his arm at the shop-door, "come along!" As they go down the
  • little street and the Bagnets pause for a minute looking after them,
  • Mrs. Bagnet remarks to the worthy Lignum that Mr. Bucket "almost
  • clings to George like, and seems to be really fond of him."
  • The neighbouring streets being narrow and ill-paved, it is a little
  • inconvenient to walk there two abreast and arm in arm. Mr. George
  • therefore soon proposes to walk singly. But Mr. Bucket, who cannot
  • make up his mind to relinquish his friendly hold, replies, "Wait half
  • a minute, George. I should wish to speak to you first." Immediately
  • afterwards, he twists him into a public-house and into a parlour,
  • where he confronts him and claps his own back against the door.
  • "Now, George," says Mr. Bucket, "duty is duty, and friendship is
  • friendship. I never want the two to clash if I can help it. I have
  • endeavoured to make things pleasant to-night, and I put it to you
  • whether I have done it or not. You must consider yourself in custody,
  • George."
  • "Custody? What for?" returns the trooper, thunderstruck.
  • "Now, George," says Mr. Bucket, urging a sensible view of the case
  • upon him with his fat forefinger, "duty, as you know very well, is
  • one thing, and conversation is another. It's my duty to inform you
  • that any observations you may make will be liable to be used against
  • you. Therefore, George, be careful what you say. You don't happen to
  • have heard of a murder?"
  • "Murder!"
  • "Now, George," says Mr. Bucket, keeping his forefinger in an
  • impressive state of action, "bear in mind what I've said to you. I
  • ask you nothing. You've been in low spirits this afternoon. I say,
  • you don't happen to have heard of a murder?"
  • "No. Where has there been a murder?"
  • "Now, George," says Mr. Bucket, "don't you go and commit yourself.
  • I'm a-going to tell you what I want you for. There has been a murder
  • in Lincoln's Inn Fields--gentleman of the name of Tulkinghorn. He was
  • shot last night. I want you for that."
  • The trooper sinks upon a seat behind him, and great drops start out
  • upon his forehead, and a deadly pallor overspreads his face.
  • "Bucket! It's not possible that Mr. Tulkinghorn has been killed and
  • that you suspect ME?"
  • "George," returns Mr. Bucket, keeping his forefinger going, "it is
  • certainly possible, because it's the case. This deed was done last
  • night at ten o'clock. Now, you know where you were last night at ten
  • o'clock, and you'll be able to prove it, no doubt."
  • "Last night! Last night?" repeats the trooper thoughtfully. Then it
  • flashes upon him. "Why, great heaven, I was there last night!"
  • "So I have understood, George," returns Mr. Bucket with great
  • deliberation. "So I have understood. Likewise you've been very often
  • there. You've been seen hanging about the place, and you've been
  • heard more than once in a wrangle with him, and it's possible--I
  • don't say it's certainly so, mind you, but it's possible--that he may
  • have been heard to call you a threatening, murdering, dangerous
  • fellow."
  • The trooper gasps as if he would admit it all if he could speak.
  • "Now, George," continues Mr. Bucket, putting his hat upon the table
  • with an air of business rather in the upholstery way than otherwise,
  • "my wish is, as it has been all the evening, to make things pleasant.
  • I tell you plainly there's a reward out, of a hundred guineas,
  • offered by Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet. You and me have always
  • been pleasant together; but I have got a duty to discharge; and if
  • that hundred guineas is to be made, it may as well be made by me as
  • any other man. On all of which accounts, I should hope it was clear
  • to you that I must have you, and that I'm damned if I don't have you.
  • Am I to call in any assistance, or is the trick done?"
  • Mr. George has recovered himself and stands up like a soldier.
  • "Come," he says; "I am ready."
  • "George," continues Mr. Bucket, "wait a bit!" With his upholsterer
  • manner, as if the trooper were a window to be fitted up, he takes
  • from his pocket a pair of handcuffs. "This is a serious charge,
  • George, and such is my duty."
  • The trooper flushes angrily and hesitates a moment, but holds out his
  • two hands, clasped together, and says, "There! Put them on!"
  • Mr. Bucket adjusts them in a moment. "How do you find them? Are they
  • comfortable? If not, say so, for I wish to make things as pleasant as
  • is consistent with my duty, and I've got another pair in my pocket."
  • This remark he offers like a most respectable tradesman anxious to
  • execute an order neatly and to the perfect satisfaction of his
  • customer. "They'll do as they are? Very well! Now, you see,
  • George"--he takes a cloak from a corner and begins adjusting it about
  • the trooper's neck--"I was mindful of your feelings when I come out,
  • and brought this on purpose. There! Who's the wiser?"
  • "Only I," returns the trooper, "but as I know it, do me one more good
  • turn and pull my hat over my eyes."
  • "Really, though! Do you mean it? Ain't it a pity? It looks so."
  • "I can't look chance men in the face with these things on," Mr.
  • George hurriedly replies. "Do, for God's sake, pull my hat forward."
  • So strongly entreated, Mr. Bucket complies, puts his own hat on, and
  • conducts his prize into the streets, the trooper marching on as
  • steadily as usual, though with his head less erect, and Mr. Bucket
  • steering him with his elbow over the crossings and up the turnings.
  • CHAPTER L
  • Esther's Narrative
  • It happened that when I came home from Deal I found a note from Caddy
  • Jellyby (as we always continued to call her), informing me that her
  • health, which had been for some time very delicate, was worse and
  • that she would be more glad than she could tell me if I would go to
  • see her. It was a note of a few lines, written from the couch on
  • which she lay and enclosed to me in another from her husband, in
  • which he seconded her entreaty with much solicitude. Caddy was now
  • the mother, and I the godmother, of such a poor little baby--such a
  • tiny old-faced mite, with a countenance that seemed to be scarcely
  • anything but cap-border, and a little lean, long-fingered hand,
  • always clenched under its chin. It would lie in this attitude all
  • day, with its bright specks of eyes open, wondering (as I used to
  • imagine) how it came to be so small and weak. Whenever it was moved
  • it cried, but at all other times it was so patient that the sole
  • desire of its life appeared to be to lie quiet and think. It had
  • curious little dark veins in its face and curious little dark marks
  • under its eyes like faint remembrances of poor Caddy's inky days, and
  • altogether, to those who were not used to it, it was quite a piteous
  • little sight.
  • But it was enough for Caddy that SHE was used to it. The projects
  • with which she beguiled her illness, for little Esther's education,
  • and little Esther's marriage, and even for her own old age as the
  • grandmother of little Esther's little Esthers, was so prettily
  • expressive of devotion to this pride of her life that I should be
  • tempted to recall some of them but for the timely remembrance that I
  • am getting on irregularly as it is.
  • To return to the letter. Caddy had a superstition about me which had
  • been strengthening in her mind ever since that night long ago when
  • she had lain asleep with her head in my lap. She almost--I think I
  • must say quite--believed that I did her good whenever I was near her.
  • Now although this was such a fancy of the affectionate girl's that I
  • am almost ashamed to mention it, still it might have all the force of
  • a fact when she was really ill. Therefore I set off to Caddy, with my
  • guardian's consent, post-haste; and she and Prince made so much of me
  • that there never was anything like it.
  • Next day I went again to sit with her, and next day I went again. It
  • was a very easy journey, for I had only to rise a little earlier in
  • the morning, and keep my accounts, and attend to housekeeping matters
  • before leaving home.
  • But when I had made these three visits, my guardian said to me, on my
  • return at night, "Now, little woman, little woman, this will never
  • do. Constant dropping will wear away a stone, and constant coaching
  • will wear out a Dame Durden. We will go to London for a while and
  • take possession of our old lodgings."
  • "Not for me, dear guardian," said I, "for I never feel tired," which
  • was strictly true. I was only too happy to be in such request.
  • "For me then," returned my guardian, "or for Ada, or for both of us.
  • It is somebody's birthday to-morrow, I think."
  • "Truly I think it is," said I, kissing my darling, who would be
  • twenty-one to-morrow.
  • "Well," observed my guardian, half pleasantly, half seriously,
  • "that's a great occasion and will give my fair cousin some necessary
  • business to transact in assertion of her independence, and will make
  • London a more convenient place for all of us. So to London we will
  • go. That being settled, there is another thing--how have you left
  • Caddy?"
  • "Very unwell, guardian. I fear it will be some time before she
  • regains her health and strength."
  • "What do you call some time, now?" asked my guardian thoughtfully.
  • "Some weeks, I am afraid."
  • "Ah!" He began to walk about the room with his hands in his pockets,
  • showing that he had been thinking as much. "Now, what do you say
  • about her doctor? Is he a good doctor, my love?"
  • I felt obliged to confess that I knew nothing to the contrary but
  • that Prince and I had agreed only that evening that we would like his
  • opinion to be confirmed by some one.
  • "Well, you know," returned my guardian quickly, "there's Woodcourt."
  • I had not meant that, and was rather taken by surprise. For a moment
  • all that I had had in my mind in connexion with Mr. Woodcourt seemed
  • to come back and confuse me.
  • "You don't object to him, little woman?"
  • "Object to him, guardian? Oh no!"
  • "And you don't think the patient would object to him?"
  • So far from that, I had no doubt of her being prepared to have a
  • great reliance on him and to like him very much. I said that he was
  • no stranger to her personally, for she had seen him often in his kind
  • attendance on Miss Flite.
  • "Very good," said my guardian. "He has been here to-day, my dear, and
  • I will see him about it to-morrow."
  • I felt in this short conversation--though I did not know how, for she
  • was quiet, and we interchanged no look--that my dear girl well
  • remembered how merrily she had clasped me round the waist when no
  • other hands than Caddy's had brought me the little parting token.
  • This caused me to feel that I ought to tell her, and Caddy too, that
  • I was going to be the mistress of Bleak House and that if I avoided
  • that disclosure any longer I might become less worthy in my own eyes
  • of its master's love. Therefore, when we went upstairs and had waited
  • listening until the clock struck twelve in order that only I might be
  • the first to wish my darling all good wishes on her birthday and to
  • take her to my heart, I set before her, just as I had set before
  • myself, the goodness and honour of her cousin John and the happy life
  • that was in store for me. If ever my darling were fonder of me at
  • one time than another in all our intercourse, she was surely fondest
  • of me that night. And I was so rejoiced to know it and so comforted
  • by the sense of having done right in casting this last idle
  • reservation away that I was ten times happier than I had been before.
  • I had scarcely thought it a reservation a few hours ago, but now that
  • it was gone I felt as if I understood its nature better.
  • Next day we went to London. We found our old lodging vacant, and in
  • half an hour were quietly established there, as if we had never gone
  • away. Mr. Woodcourt dined with us to celebrate my darling's birthday,
  • and we were as pleasant as we could be with the great blank among us
  • that Richard's absence naturally made on such an occasion. After that
  • day I was for some weeks--eight or nine as I remember--very much with
  • Caddy, and thus it fell out that I saw less of Ada at this time than
  • any other since we had first come together, except the time of my own
  • illness. She often came to Caddy's, but our function there was to
  • amuse and cheer her, and we did not talk in our usual confidential
  • manner. Whenever I went home at night we were together, but Caddy's
  • rest was broken by pain, and I often remained to nurse her.
  • With her husband and her poor little mite of a baby to love and their
  • home to strive for, what a good creature Caddy was! So self-denying,
  • so uncomplaining, so anxious to get well on their account, so afraid
  • of giving trouble, and so thoughtful of the unassisted labours of her
  • husband and the comforts of old Mr. Turveydrop; I had never known the
  • best of her until now. And it seemed so curious that her pale face
  • and helpless figure should be lying there day after day where dancing
  • was the business of life, where the kit and the apprentices began
  • early every morning in the ball-room, and where the untidy little boy
  • waltzed by himself in the kitchen all the afternoon.
  • At Caddy's request I took the supreme direction of her apartment,
  • trimmed it up, and pushed her, couch and all, into a lighter and more
  • airy and more cheerful corner than she had yet occupied; then, every
  • day, when we were in our neatest array, I used to lay my small small
  • namesake in her arms and sit down to chat or work or read to her. It
  • was at one of the first of these quiet times that I told Caddy about
  • Bleak House.
  • We had other visitors besides Ada. First of all we had Prince, who in
  • his hurried intervals of teaching used to come softly in and sit
  • softly down, with a face of loving anxiety for Caddy and the very
  • little child. Whatever Caddy's condition really was, she never failed
  • to declare to Prince that she was all but well--which I, heaven
  • forgive me, never failed to confirm. This would put Prince in such
  • good spirits that he would sometimes take the kit from his pocket and
  • play a chord or two to astonish the baby, which I never knew it to do
  • in the least degree, for my tiny namesake never noticed it at all.
  • Then there was Mrs. Jellyby. She would come occasionally, with her
  • usual distraught manner, and sit calmly looking miles beyond her
  • grandchild as if her attention were absorbed by a young Borrioboolan
  • on its native shores. As bright-eyed as ever, as serene, and as
  • untidy, she would say, "Well, Caddy, child, and how do you do
  • to-day?" And then would sit amiably smiling and taking no notice of
  • the reply or would sweetly glide off into a calculation of the number
  • of letters she had lately received and answered or of the
  • coffee-bearing power of Borrioboola-Gha. This she would always do
  • with a serene contempt for our limited sphere of action, not to be
  • disguised.
  • Then there was old Mr. Turveydrop, who was from morning to night and
  • from night to morning the subject of innumerable precautions. If the
  • baby cried, it was nearly stifled lest the noise should make him
  • uncomfortable. If the fire wanted stirring in the night, it was
  • surreptitiously done lest his rest should be broken. If Caddy
  • required any little comfort that the house contained, she first
  • carefully discussed whether he was likely to require it too. In
  • return for this consideration he would come into the room once a day,
  • all but blessing it--showing a condescension, and a patronage, and a
  • grace of manner in dispensing the light of his high-shouldered
  • presence from which I might have supposed him (if I had not known
  • better) to have been the benefactor of Caddy's life.
  • "My Caroline," he would say, making the nearest approach that he
  • could to bending over her. "Tell me that you are better to-day."
  • "Oh, much better, thank you, Mr. Turveydrop," Caddy would reply.
  • "Delighted! Enchanted! And our dear Miss Summerson. She is not quite
  • prostrated by fatigue?" Here he would crease up his eyelids and kiss
  • his fingers to me, though I am happy to say he had ceased to be
  • particular in his attentions since I had been so altered.
  • "Not at all," I would assure him.
  • "Charming! We must take care of our dear Caroline, Miss Summerson. We
  • must spare nothing that will restore her. We must nourish her. My
  • dear Caroline"--he would turn to his daughter-in-law with infinite
  • generosity and protection--"want for nothing, my love. Frame a wish
  • and gratify it, my daughter. Everything this house contains,
  • everything my room contains, is at your service, my dear. Do not," he
  • would sometimes add in a burst of deportment, "even allow my simple
  • requirements to be considered if they should at any time interfere
  • with your own, my Caroline. Your necessities are greater than mine."
  • He had established such a long prescriptive right to this deportment
  • (his son's inheritance from his mother) that I several times knew
  • both Caddy and her husband to be melted to tears by these
  • affectionate self-sacrifices.
  • "Nay, my dears," he would remonstrate; and when I saw Caddy's thin
  • arm about his fat neck as he said it, I would be melted too, though
  • not by the same process. "Nay, nay! I have promised never to leave
  • ye. Be dutiful and affectionate towards me, and I ask no other
  • return. Now, bless ye! I am going to the Park."
  • He would take the air there presently and get an appetite for his
  • hotel dinner. I hope I do old Mr. Turveydrop no wrong, but I never
  • saw any better traits in him than these I faithfully record, except
  • that he certainly conceived a liking for Peepy and would take the
  • child out walking with great pomp, always on those occasions sending
  • him home before he went to dinner himself, and occasionally with a
  • halfpenny in his pocket. But even this disinterestedness was attended
  • with no inconsiderable cost, to my knowledge, for before Peepy was
  • sufficiently decorated to walk hand in hand with the professor of
  • deportment, he had to be newly dressed, at the expense of Caddy and
  • her husband, from top to toe.
  • Last of our visitors, there was Mr. Jellyby. Really when he used to
  • come in of an evening, and ask Caddy in his meek voice how she was,
  • and then sit down with his head against the wall, and make no attempt
  • to say anything more, I liked him very much. If he found me bustling
  • about doing any little thing, he sometimes half took his coat off, as
  • if with an intention of helping by a great exertion; but he never got
  • any further. His sole occupation was to sit with his head against the
  • wall, looking hard at the thoughtful baby; and I could not quite
  • divest my mind of a fancy that they understood one another.
  • I have not counted Mr. Woodcourt among our visitors because he was
  • now Caddy's regular attendant. She soon began to improve under his
  • care, but he was so gentle, so skilful, so unwearying in the pains he
  • took that it is not to be wondered at, I am sure. I saw a good deal
  • of Mr. Woodcourt during this time, though not so much as might be
  • supposed, for knowing Caddy to be safe in his hands, I often slipped
  • home at about the hours when he was expected. We frequently met,
  • notwithstanding. I was quite reconciled to myself now, but I still
  • felt glad to think that he was sorry for me, and he still WAS sorry
  • for me I believed. He helped Mr. Badger in his professional
  • engagements, which were numerous, and had as yet no settled projects
  • for the future.
  • It was when Caddy began to recover that I began to notice a change in
  • my dear girl. I cannot say how it first presented itself to me,
  • because I observed it in many slight particulars which were nothing
  • in themselves and only became something when they were pieced
  • together. But I made it out, by putting them together, that Ada was
  • not so frankly cheerful with me as she used to be. Her tenderness for
  • me was as loving and true as ever; I did not for a moment doubt that;
  • but there was a quiet sorrow about her which she did not confide to
  • me, and in which I traced some hidden regret.
  • Now, I could not understand this, and I was so anxious for the
  • happiness of my own pet that it caused me some uneasiness and set me
  • thinking often. At length, feeling sure that Ada suppressed this
  • something from me lest it should make me unhappy too, it came into my
  • head that she was a little grieved--for me--by what I had told her
  • about Bleak House.
  • How I persuaded myself that this was likely, I don't know. I had no
  • idea that there was any selfish reference in my doing so. I was not
  • grieved for myself: I was quite contented and quite happy. Still,
  • that Ada might be thinking--for me, though I had abandoned all such
  • thoughts--of what once was, but was now all changed, seemed so easy
  • to believe that I believed it.
  • What could I do to reassure my darling (I considered then) and show
  • her that I had no such feelings? Well! I could only be as brisk and
  • busy as possible, and that I had tried to be all along. However, as
  • Caddy's illness had certainly interfered, more or less, with my home
  • duties--though I had always been there in the morning to make my
  • guardian's breakfast, and he had a hundred times laughed and said
  • there must be two little women, for his little woman was never
  • missing--I resolved to be doubly diligent and gay. So I went about
  • the house humming all the tunes I knew, and I sat working and working
  • in a desperate manner, and I talked and talked, morning, noon, and
  • night.
  • And still there was the same shade between me and my darling.
  • "So, Dame Trot," observed my guardian, shutting up his book one night
  • when we were all three together, "so Woodcourt has restored Caddy
  • Jellyby to the full enjoyment of life again?"
  • "Yes," I said; "and to be repaid by such gratitude as hers is to be
  • made rich, guardian."
  • "I wish it was," he returned, "with all my heart."
  • So did I too, for that matter. I said so.
  • "Aye! We would make him as rich as a Jew if we knew how. Would we
  • not, little woman?"
  • I laughed as I worked and replied that I was not sure about that, for
  • it might spoil him, and he might not be so useful, and there might be
  • many who could ill spare him. As Miss Flite, and Caddy herself, and
  • many others.
  • "True," said my guardian. "I had forgotten that. But we would agree
  • to make him rich enough to live, I suppose? Rich enough to work with
  • tolerable peace of mind? Rich enough to have his own happy home and
  • his own household gods--and household goddess, too, perhaps?"
  • That was quite another thing, I said. We must all agree in that.
  • "To be sure," said my guardian. "All of us. I have a great regard for
  • Woodcourt, a high esteem for him; and I have been sounding him
  • delicately about his plans. It is difficult to offer aid to an
  • independent man with that just kind of pride which he possesses. And
  • yet I would be glad to do it if I might or if I knew how. He seems
  • half inclined for another voyage. But that appears like casting such
  • a man away."
  • "It might open a new world to him," said I.
  • "So it might, little woman," my guardian assented. "I doubt if he
  • expects much of the old world. Do you know I have fancied that he
  • sometimes feels some particular disappointment or misfortune
  • encountered in it. You never heard of anything of that sort?"
  • I shook my head.
  • "Humph," said my guardian. "I am mistaken, I dare say." As there was
  • a little pause here, which I thought, for my dear girl's
  • satisfaction, had better be filled up, I hummed an air as I worked
  • which was a favourite with my guardian.
  • "And do you think Mr. Woodcourt will make another voyage?" I asked
  • him when I had hummed it quietly all through.
  • "I don't quite know what to think, my dear, but I should say it was
  • likely at present that he will give a long trip to another country."
  • "I am sure he will take the best wishes of all our hearts with him
  • wherever he goes," said I; "and though they are not riches, he will
  • never be the poorer for them, guardian, at least."
  • "Never, little woman," he replied.
  • I was sitting in my usual place, which was now beside my guardian's
  • chair. That had not been my usual place before the letter, but it was
  • now. I looked up to Ada, who was sitting opposite, and I saw, as she
  • looked at me, that her eyes were filled with tears and that tears
  • were falling down her face. I felt that I had only to be placid and
  • merry once for all to undeceive my dear and set her loving heart at
  • rest. I really was so, and I had nothing to do but to be myself.
  • So I made my sweet girl lean upon my shoulder--how little thinking
  • what was heavy on her mind!--and I said she was not quite well, and
  • put my arm about her, and took her upstairs. When we were in our own
  • room, and when she might perhaps have told me what I was so
  • unprepared to hear, I gave her no encouragement to confide in me; I
  • never thought she stood in need of it.
  • "Oh, my dear good Esther," said Ada, "if I could only make up my mind
  • to speak to you and my cousin John when you are together!"
  • "Why, my love!" I remonstrated. "Ada, why should you not speak to
  • us!"
  • Ada only dropped her head and pressed me closer to her heart.
  • "You surely don't forget, my beauty," said I, smiling, "what quiet,
  • old-fashioned people we are and how I have settled down to be the
  • discreetest of dames? You don't forget how happily and peacefully my
  • life is all marked out for me, and by whom? I am certain that you
  • don't forget by what a noble character, Ada. That can never be."
  • "No, never, Esther."
  • "Why then, my dear," said I, "there can be nothing amiss--and why
  • should you not speak to us?"
  • "Nothing amiss, Esther?" returned Ada. "Oh, when I think of all these
  • years, and of his fatherly care and kindness, and of the old
  • relations among us, and of you, what shall I do, what shall I do!"
  • I looked at my child in some wonder, but I thought it better not to
  • answer otherwise than by cheering her, and so I turned off into many
  • little recollections of our life together and prevented her from
  • saying more. When she lay down to sleep, and not before, I returned
  • to my guardian to say good night, and then I came back to Ada and sat
  • near her for a little while.
  • She was asleep, and I thought as I looked at her that she was a
  • little changed. I had thought so more than once lately. I could not
  • decide, even looking at her while she was unconscious, how she was
  • changed, but something in the familiar beauty of her face looked
  • different to me. My guardian's old hopes of her and Richard arose
  • sorrowfully in my mind, and I said to myself, "She has been anxious
  • about him," and I wondered how that love would end.
  • When I had come home from Caddy's while she was ill, I had often
  • found Ada at work, and she had always put her work away, and I had
  • never known what it was. Some of it now lay in a drawer near her,
  • which was not quite closed. I did not open the drawer, but I still
  • rather wondered what the work could be, for it was evidently nothing
  • for herself.
  • And I noticed as I kissed my dear that she lay with one hand under
  • her pillow so that it was hidden.
  • How much less amiable I must have been than they thought me, how much
  • less amiable than I thought myself, to be so preoccupied with my own
  • cheerfulness and contentment as to think that it only rested with me
  • to put my dear girl right and set her mind at peace!
  • But I lay down, self-deceived, in that belief. And I awoke in it next
  • day to find that there was still the same shade between me and my
  • darling.
  • CHAPTER LI
  • Enlightened
  • When Mr. Woodcourt arrived in London, he went, that very same day, to
  • Mr. Vholes's in Symond's Inn. For he never once, from the moment when
  • I entreated him to be a friend to Richard, neglected or forgot his
  • promise. He had told me that he accepted the charge as a sacred
  • trust, and he was ever true to it in that spirit.
  • He found Mr. Vholes in his office and informed Mr. Vholes of his
  • agreement with Richard that he should call there to learn his
  • address.
  • "Just so, sir," said Mr. Vholes. "Mr. C.'s address is not a hundred
  • miles from here, sir, Mr. C.'s address is not a hundred miles from
  • here. Would you take a seat, sir?"
  • Mr. Woodcourt thanked Mr. Vholes, but he had no business with him
  • beyond what he had mentioned.
  • "Just so, sir. I believe, sir," said Mr. Vholes, still quietly
  • insisting on the seat by not giving the address, "that you have
  • influence with Mr. C. Indeed I am aware that you have."
  • "I was not aware of it myself," returned Mr. Woodcourt; "but I
  • suppose you know best."
  • "Sir," rejoined Mr. Vholes, self-contained as usual, voice and all,
  • "it is a part of my professional duty to know best. It is a part of
  • my professional duty to study and to understand a gentleman who
  • confides his interests to me. In my professional duty I shall not be
  • wanting, sir, if I know it. I may, with the best intentions, be
  • wanting in it without knowing it; but not if I know it, sir."
  • Mr. Woodcourt again mentioned the address.
  • "Give me leave, sir," said Mr. Vholes. "Bear with me for a moment.
  • Sir, Mr. C. is playing for a considerable stake, and cannot play
  • without--need I say what?"
  • "Money, I presume?"
  • "Sir," said Mr. Vholes, "to be honest with you (honesty being my
  • golden rule, whether I gain by it or lose, and I find that I
  • generally lose), money is the word. Now, sir, upon the chances of Mr.
  • C.'s game I express to you no opinion, NO opinion. It might be highly
  • impolitic in Mr. C., after playing so long and so high, to leave off;
  • it might be the reverse; I say nothing. No, sir," said Mr. Vholes,
  • bringing his hand flat down upon his desk in a positive manner,
  • "nothing."
  • "You seem to forget," returned Mr. Woodcourt, "that I ask you to say
  • nothing and have no interest in anything you say."
  • "Pardon me, sir!" retorted Mr. Vholes. "You do yourself an injustice.
  • No, sir! Pardon me! You shall not--shall not in my office, if I know
  • it--do yourself an injustice. You are interested in anything, and in
  • everything, that relates to your friend. I know human nature much
  • better, sir, than to admit for an instant that a gentleman of your
  • appearance is not interested in whatever concerns his friend."
  • "Well," replied Mr. Woodcourt, "that may be. I am particularly
  • interested in his address."
  • "The number, sir," said Mr. Vholes parenthetically, "I believe I have
  • already mentioned. If Mr. C. is to continue to play for this
  • considerable stake, sir, he must have funds. Understand me! There are
  • funds in hand at present. I ask for nothing; there are funds in hand.
  • But for the onward play, more funds must be provided, unless Mr. C.
  • is to throw away what he has already ventured, which is wholly and
  • solely a point for his consideration. This, sir, I take the
  • opportunity of stating openly to you as the friend of Mr. C. Without
  • funds I shall always be happy to appear and act for Mr. C. to the
  • extent of all such costs as are safe to be allowed out of the estate,
  • not beyond that. I could not go beyond that, sir, without wronging
  • some one. I must either wrong my three dear girls or my venerable
  • father, who is entirely dependent on me, in the Vale of Taunton; or
  • some one. Whereas, sir, my resolution is (call it weakness or folly
  • if you please) to wrong no one."
  • Mr. Woodcourt rather sternly rejoined that he was glad to hear it.
  • "I wish, sir," said Mr. Vholes, "to leave a good name behind me.
  • Therefore I take every opportunity of openly stating to a friend of
  • Mr. C. how Mr. C. is situated. As to myself, sir, the labourer is
  • worthy of his hire. If I undertake to put my shoulder to the wheel, I
  • do it, and I earn what I get. I am here for that purpose. My name is
  • painted on the door outside, with that object."
  • "And Mr. Carstone's address, Mr. Vholes?"
  • "Sir," returned Mr. Vholes, "as I believe I have already mentioned,
  • it is next door. On the second story you will find Mr. C.'s
  • apartments. Mr. C. desires to be near his professional adviser, and I
  • am far from objecting, for I court inquiry."
  • Upon this Mr. Woodcourt wished Mr. Vholes good day and went in search
  • of Richard, the change in whose appearance he began to understand now
  • but too well.
  • He found him in a dull room, fadedly furnished, much as I had found
  • him in his barrack-room but a little while before, except that he was
  • not writing but was sitting with a book before him, from which his
  • eyes and thoughts were far astray. As the door chanced to be standing
  • open, Mr. Woodcourt was in his presence for some moments without
  • being perceived, and he told me that he never could forget the
  • haggardness of his face and the dejection of his manner before he was
  • aroused from his dream.
  • "Woodcourt, my dear fellow," cried Richard, starting up with extended
  • hands, "you come upon my vision like a ghost."
  • "A friendly one," he replied, "and only waiting, as they say ghosts
  • do, to be addressed. How does the mortal world go?" They were seated
  • now, near together.
  • "Badly enough, and slowly enough," said Richard, "speaking at least
  • for my part of it."
  • "What part is that?"
  • "The Chancery part."
  • "I never heard," returned Mr. Woodcourt, shaking his head, "of its
  • going well yet."
  • "Nor I," said Richard moodily. "Who ever did?" He brightened again in
  • a moment and said with his natural openness, "Woodcourt, I should be
  • sorry to be misunderstood by you, even if I gained by it in your
  • estimation. You must know that I have done no good this long time. I
  • have not intended to do much harm, but I seem to have been capable of
  • nothing else. It may be that I should have done better by keeping out
  • of the net into which my destiny has worked me, but I think not,
  • though I dare say you will soon hear, if you have not already heard,
  • a very different opinion. To make short of a long story, I am afraid
  • I have wanted an object; but I have an object now--or it has me--and
  • it is too late to discuss it. Take me as I am, and make the best of
  • me."
  • "A bargain," said Mr. Woodcourt. "Do as much by me in return."
  • "Oh! You," returned Richard, "you can pursue your art for its own
  • sake, and can put your hand upon the plough and never turn, and can
  • strike a purpose out of anything. You and I are very different
  • creatures."
  • He spoke regretfully and lapsed for a moment into his weary
  • condition.
  • "Well, well!" he cried, shaking it off. "Everything has an end. We
  • shall see! So you will take me as I am, and make the best of me?"
  • "Aye! Indeed I will." They shook hands upon it laughingly, but in
  • deep earnestness. I can answer for one of them with my heart of
  • hearts.
  • "You come as a godsend," said Richard, "for I have seen nobody here
  • yet but Vholes. Woodcourt, there is one subject I should like to
  • mention, for once and for all, in the beginning of our treaty. You
  • can hardly make the best of me if I don't. You know, I dare say, that
  • I have an attachment to my cousin Ada?"
  • Mr. Woodcourt replied that I had hinted as much to him. "Now pray,"
  • returned Richard, "don't think me a heap of selfishness. Don't
  • suppose that I am splitting my head and half breaking my heart over
  • this miserable Chancery suit for my own rights and interests alone.
  • Ada's are bound up with mine; they can't be separated; Vholes works
  • for both of us. Do think of that!"
  • He was so very solicitous on this head that Mr. Woodcourt gave him
  • the strongest assurances that he did him no injustice.
  • "You see," said Richard, with something pathetic in his manner of
  • lingering on the point, though it was off-hand and unstudied, "to an
  • upright fellow like you, bringing a friendly face like yours here, I
  • cannot bear the thought of appearing selfish and mean. I want to see
  • Ada righted, Woodcourt, as well as myself; I want to do my utmost to
  • right her, as well as myself; I venture what I can scrape together to
  • extricate her, as well as myself. Do, I beseech you, think of that!"
  • Afterwards, when Mr. Woodcourt came to reflect on what had passed, he
  • was so very much impressed by the strength of Richard's anxiety on
  • this point that in telling me generally of his first visit to
  • Symond's Inn he particularly dwelt upon it. It revived a fear I had
  • had before that my dear girl's little property would be absorbed by
  • Mr. Vholes and that Richard's justification to himself would be
  • sincerely this. It was just as I began to take care of Caddy that the
  • interview took place, and I now return to the time when Caddy had
  • recovered and the shade was still between me and my darling.
  • I proposed to Ada that morning that we should go and see Richard. It
  • a little surprised me to find that she hesitated and was not so
  • radiantly willing as I had expected.
  • "My dear," said I, "you have not had any difference with Richard
  • since I have been so much away?"
  • "No, Esther."
  • "Not heard of him, perhaps?" said I.
  • "Yes, I have heard of him," said Ada.
  • Such tears in her eyes, and such love in her face. I could not make
  • my darling out. Should I go to Richard's by myself? I said. No, Ada
  • thought I had better not go by myself. Would she go with me? Yes, Ada
  • thought she had better go with me. Should we go now? Yes, let us go
  • now. Well, I could not understand my darling, with the tears in her
  • eyes and the love in her face!
  • We were soon equipped and went out. It was a sombre day, and drops of
  • chill rain fell at intervals. It was one of those colourless days
  • when everything looks heavy and harsh. The houses frowned at us, the
  • dust rose at us, the smoke swooped at us, nothing made any compromise
  • about itself or wore a softened aspect. I fancied my beautiful girl
  • quite out of place in the rugged streets, and I thought there were
  • more funerals passing along the dismal pavements than I had ever seen
  • before.
  • We had first to find out Symond's Inn. We were going to inquire in a
  • shop when Ada said she thought it was near Chancery Lane. "We are not
  • likely to be far out, my love, if we go in that direction," said I.
  • So to Chancery Lane we went, and there, sure enough, we saw it
  • written up. Symond's Inn.
  • We had next to find out the number. "Or Mr. Vholes's office will do,"
  • I recollected, "for Mr. Vholes's office is next door." Upon which Ada
  • said, perhaps that was Mr. Vholes's office in the corner there. And
  • it really was.
  • Then came the question, which of the two next doors? I was going for
  • the one, and my darling was going for the other; and my darling was
  • right again. So up we went to the second story, when we came to
  • Richard's name in great white letters on a hearse-like panel.
  • I should have knocked, but Ada said perhaps we had better turn the
  • handle and go in. Thus we came to Richard, poring over a table
  • covered with dusty bundles of papers which seemed to me like dusty
  • mirrors reflecting his own mind. Wherever I looked I saw the ominous
  • words that ran in it repeated. Jarndyce and Jarndyce.
  • He received us very affectionately, and we sat down. "If you had come
  • a little earlier," he said, "you would have found Woodcourt here.
  • There never was such a good fellow as Woodcourt is. He finds time to
  • look in between-whiles, when anybody else with half his work to do
  • would be thinking about not being able to come. And he is so cheery,
  • so fresh, so sensible, so earnest, so--everything that I am not, that
  • the place brightens whenever he comes, and darkens whenever he goes
  • again."
  • "God bless him," I thought, "for his truth to me!"
  • "He is not so sanguine, Ada," continued Richard, casting his dejected
  • look over the bundles of papers, "as Vholes and I are usually, but he
  • is only an outsider and is not in the mysteries. We have gone into
  • them, and he has not. He can't be expected to know much of such a
  • labyrinth."
  • As his look wandered over the papers again and he passed his two
  • hands over his head, I noticed how sunken and how large his eyes
  • appeared, how dry his lips were, and how his finger-nails were all
  • bitten away.
  • "Is this a healthy place to live in, Richard, do you think?" said I.
  • "Why, my dear Minerva," answered Richard with his old gay laugh, "it
  • is neither a rural nor a cheerful place; and when the sun shines
  • here, you may lay a pretty heavy wager that it is shining brightly in
  • an open spot. But it's well enough for the time. It's near the
  • offices and near Vholes."
  • "Perhaps," I hinted, "a change from both--"
  • "Might do me good?" said Richard, forcing a laugh as he finished the
  • sentence. "I shouldn't wonder! But it can only come in one way
  • now--in one of two ways, I should rather say. Either the suit must be
  • ended, Esther, or the suitor. But it shall be the suit, my dear girl,
  • the suit, my dear girl!"
  • These latter words were addressed to Ada, who was sitting nearest to
  • him. Her face being turned away from me and towards him, I could not
  • see it.
  • "We are doing very well," pursued Richard. "Vholes will tell you so.
  • We are really spinning along. Ask Vholes. We are giving them no rest.
  • Vholes knows all their windings and turnings, and we are upon them
  • everywhere. We have astonished them already. We shall rouse up that
  • nest of sleepers, mark my words!"
  • His hopefulness had long been more painful to me than his
  • despondency; it was so unlike hopefulness, had something so fierce in
  • its determination to be it, was so hungry and eager, and yet so
  • conscious of being forced and unsustainable that it had long touched
  • me to the heart. But the commentary upon it now indelibly written in
  • his handsome face made it far more distressing than it used to be. I
  • say indelibly, for I felt persuaded that if the fatal cause could
  • have been for ever terminated, according to his brightest visions, in
  • that same hour, the traces of the premature anxiety, self-reproach,
  • and disappointment it had occasioned him would have remained upon his
  • features to the hour of his death.
  • "The sight of our dear little woman," said Richard, Ada still
  • remaining silent and quiet, "is so natural to me, and her
  • compassionate face is so like the face of old days--"
  • Ah! No, no. I smiled and shook my head.
  • "--So exactly like the face of old days," said Richard in his cordial
  • voice, and taking my hand with the brotherly regard which nothing
  • ever changed, "that I can't make pretences with her. I fluctuate a
  • little; that's the truth. Sometimes I hope, my dear, and sometimes
  • I--don't quite despair, but nearly. I get," said Richard,
  • relinquishing my hand gently and walking across the room, "so tired!"
  • He took a few turns up and down and sunk upon the sofa. "I get," he
  • repeated gloomily, "so tired. It is such weary, weary work!"
  • He was leaning on his arm saying these words in a meditative voice
  • and looking at the ground when my darling rose, put off her bonnet,
  • kneeled down beside him with her golden hair falling like sunlight on
  • his head, clasped her two arms round his neck, and turned her face to
  • me. Oh, what a loving and devoted face I saw!
  • "Esther, dear," she said very quietly, "I am not going home again."
  • A light shone in upon me all at once.
  • "Never any more. I am going to stay with my dear husband. We have
  • been married above two months. Go home without me, my own Esther; I
  • shall never go home any more!" With those words my darling drew his
  • head down on her breast and held it there. And if ever in my life I
  • saw a love that nothing but death could change, I saw it then before
  • me.
  • "Speak to Esther, my dearest," said Richard, breaking the silence
  • presently. "Tell her how it was."
  • I met her before she could come to me and folded her in my arms. We
  • neither of us spoke, but with her cheek against my own I wanted to
  • hear nothing. "My pet," said I. "My love. My poor, poor girl!" I
  • pitied her so much. I was very fond of Richard, but the impulse that
  • I had upon me was to pity her so much.
  • "Esther, will you forgive me? Will my cousin John forgive me?"
  • "My dear," said I, "to doubt it for a moment is to do him a great
  • wrong. And as to me!" Why, as to me, what had I to forgive!
  • I dried my sobbing darling's eyes and sat beside her on the sofa, and
  • Richard sat on my other side; and while I was reminded of that so
  • different night when they had first taken me into their confidence
  • and had gone on in their own wild happy way, they told me between
  • them how it was.
  • "All I had was Richard's," Ada said; "and Richard would not take it,
  • Esther, and what could I do but be his wife when I loved him dearly!"
  • "And you were so fully and so kindly occupied, excellent Dame
  • Durden," said Richard, "that how could we speak to you at such a
  • time! And besides, it was not a long-considered step. We went out one
  • morning and were married."
  • "And when it was done, Esther," said my darling, "I was always
  • thinking how to tell you and what to do for the best. And sometimes I
  • thought you ought to know it directly, and sometimes I thought you
  • ought not to know it and keep it from my cousin John; and I could not
  • tell what to do, and I fretted very much."
  • How selfish I must have been not to have thought of this before! I
  • don't know what I said now. I was so sorry, and yet I was so fond of
  • them and so glad that they were fond of me; I pitied them so much,
  • and yet I felt a kind of pride in their loving one another. I never
  • had experienced such painful and pleasurable emotion at one time, and
  • in my own heart I did not know which predominated. But I was not
  • there to darken their way; I did not do that.
  • When I was less foolish and more composed, my darling took her
  • wedding-ring from her bosom, and kissed it, and put it on. Then I
  • remembered last night and told Richard that ever since her marriage
  • she had worn it at night when there was no one to see. Then Ada
  • blushingly asked me how did I know that, my dear. Then I told Ada how
  • I had seen her hand concealed under her pillow and had little thought
  • why, my dear. Then they began telling me how it was all over again,
  • and I began to be sorry and glad again, and foolish again, and to
  • hide my plain old face as much as I could lest I should put them out
  • of heart.
  • Thus the time went on until it became necessary for me to think of
  • returning. When that time arrived it was the worst of all, for then
  • my darling completely broke down. She clung round my neck, calling me
  • by every dear name she could think of and saying what should she do
  • without me! Nor was Richard much better; and as for me, I should have
  • been the worst of the three if I had not severely said to myself,
  • "Now Esther, if you do, I'll never speak to you again!"
  • "Why, I declare," said I, "I never saw such a wife. I don't think she
  • loves her husband at all. Here, Richard, take my child, for goodness'
  • sake." But I held her tight all the while, and could have wept over
  • her I don't know how long.
  • "I give this dear young couple notice," said I, "that I am only going
  • away to come back to-morrow and that I shall be always coming
  • backwards and forwards until Symond's Inn is tired of the sight of
  • me. So I shall not say good-bye, Richard. For what would be the use
  • of that, you know, when I am coming back so soon!"
  • I had given my darling to him now, and I meant to go; but I lingered
  • for one more look of the precious face which it seemed to rive my
  • heart to turn from.
  • So I said (in a merry, bustling manner) that unless they gave me some
  • encouragement to come back, I was not sure that I could take that
  • liberty, upon which my dear girl looked up, faintly smiling through
  • her tears, and I folded her lovely face between my hands, and gave it
  • one last kiss, and laughed, and ran away.
  • And when I got downstairs, oh, how I cried! It almost seemed to me
  • that I had lost my Ada for ever. I was so lonely and so blank without
  • her, and it was so desolate to be going home with no hope of seeing
  • her there, that I could get no comfort for a little while as I walked
  • up and down in a dim corner sobbing and crying.
  • I came to myself by and by, after a little scolding, and took a coach
  • home. The poor boy whom I had found at St. Albans had reappeared a
  • short time before and was lying at the point of death; indeed, was
  • then dead, though I did not know it. My guardian had gone out to
  • inquire about him and did not return to dinner. Being quite alone, I
  • cried a little again, though on the whole I don't think I behaved so
  • very, very ill.
  • It was only natural that I should not be quite accustomed to the loss
  • of my darling yet. Three or four hours were not a long time after
  • years. But my mind dwelt so much upon the uncongenial scene in which
  • I had left her, and I pictured it as such an overshadowed
  • stony-hearted one, and I so longed to be near her and taking some
  • sort of care of her, that I determined to go back in the evening only
  • to look up at her windows.
  • It was foolish, I dare say, but it did not then seem at all so to me,
  • and it does not seem quite so even now. I took Charley into my
  • confidence, and we went out at dusk. It was dark when we came to the
  • new strange home of my dear girl, and there was a light behind the
  • yellow blinds. We walked past cautiously three or four times, looking
  • up, and narrowly missed encountering Mr. Vholes, who came out of his
  • office while we were there and turned his head to look up too before
  • going home. The sight of his lank black figure and the lonesome air
  • of that nook in the dark were favourable to the state of my mind. I
  • thought of the youth and love and beauty of my dear girl, shut up in
  • such an ill-assorted refuge, almost as if it were a cruel place.
  • It was very solitary and very dull, and I did not doubt that I might
  • safely steal upstairs. I left Charley below and went up with a light
  • foot, not distressed by any glare from the feeble oil lanterns on the
  • way. I listened for a few moments, and in the musty rotting silence
  • of the house believed that I could hear the murmur of their young
  • voices. I put my lips to the hearse-like panel of the door as a kiss
  • for my dear and came quietly down again, thinking that one of these
  • days I would confess to the visit.
  • And it really did me good, for though nobody but Charley and I knew
  • anything about it, I somehow felt as if it had diminished the
  • separation between Ada and me and had brought us together again for
  • those moments. I went back, not quite accustomed yet to the change,
  • but all the better for that hovering about my darling.
  • My guardian had come home and was standing thoughtfully by the dark
  • window. When I went in, his face cleared and he came to his seat, but
  • he caught the light upon my face as I took mine.
  • "Little woman," said he, "You have been crying."
  • "Why, yes, guardian," said I, "I am afraid I have been, a little. Ada
  • has been in such distress, and is so very sorry, guardian."
  • I put my arm on the back of his chair, and I saw in his glance that
  • my words and my look at her empty place had prepared him.
  • "Is she married, my dear?"
  • I told him all about it and how her first entreaties had referred to
  • his forgiveness.
  • "She has no need of it," said he. "Heaven bless her and her husband!"
  • But just as my first impulse had been to pity her, so was his. "Poor
  • girl, poor girl! Poor Rick! Poor Ada!"
  • Neither of us spoke after that, until he said with a sigh, "Well,
  • well, my dear! Bleak House is thinning fast."
  • "But its mistress remains, guardian." Though I was timid about saying
  • it, I ventured because of the sorrowful tone in which he had spoken.
  • "She will do all she can to make it happy," said I.
  • "She will succeed, my love!"
  • The letter had made no difference between us except that the seat by
  • his side had come to be mine; it made none now. He turned his old
  • bright fatherly look upon me, laid his hand on my hand in his old
  • way, and said again, "She will succeed, my dear. Nevertheless, Bleak
  • House is thinning fast, O little woman!"
  • I was sorry presently that this was all we said about that. I was
  • rather disappointed. I feared I might not quite have been all I had
  • meant to be since the letter and the answer.
  • CHAPTER LII
  • Obstinacy
  • But one other day had intervened when, early in the morning as we
  • were going to breakfast, Mr. Woodcourt came in haste with the
  • astounding news that a terrible murder had been committed for which
  • Mr. George had been apprehended and was in custody. When he told us
  • that a large reward was offered by Sir Leicester Dedlock for the
  • murderer's apprehension, I did not in my first consternation
  • understand why; but a few more words explained to me that the
  • murdered person was Sir Leicester's lawyer, and immediately my
  • mother's dread of him rushed into my remembrance.
  • This unforeseen and violent removal of one whom she had long watched
  • and distrusted and who had long watched and distrusted her, one for
  • whom she could have had few intervals of kindness, always dreading in
  • him a dangerous and secret enemy, appeared so awful that my first
  • thoughts were of her. How appalling to hear of such a death and be
  • able to feel no pity! How dreadful to remember, perhaps, that she had
  • sometimes even wished the old man away who was so swiftly hurried out
  • of life!
  • Such crowding reflections, increasing the distress and fear I always
  • felt when the name was mentioned, made me so agitated that I could
  • scarcely hold my place at the table. I was quite unable to follow the
  • conversation until I had had a little time to recover. But when I
  • came to myself and saw how shocked my guardian was and found that
  • they were earnestly speaking of the suspected man and recalling every
  • favourable impression we had formed of him out of the good we had
  • known of him, my interest and my fears were so strongly aroused in
  • his behalf that I was quite set up again.
  • "Guardian, you don't think it possible that he is justly accused?"
  • "My dear, I CAN'T think so. This man whom we have seen so
  • open-hearted and compassionate, who with the might of a giant has the
  • gentleness of a child, who looks as brave a fellow as ever lived and
  • is so simple and quiet with it, this man justly accused of such a
  • crime? I can't believe it. It's not that I don't or I won't. I
  • can't!"
  • "And I can't," said Mr. Woodcourt. "Still, whatever we believe or
  • know of him, we had better not forget that some appearances are
  • against him. He bore an animosity towards the deceased gentleman. He
  • has openly mentioned it in many places. He is said to have expressed
  • himself violently towards him, and he certainly did about him, to my
  • knowledge. He admits that he was alone on the scene of the murder
  • within a few minutes of its commission. I sincerely believe him to be
  • as innocent of any participation in it as I am, but these are all
  • reasons for suspicion falling upon him."
  • "True," said my guardian. And he added, turning to me, "It would be
  • doing him a very bad service, my dear, to shut our eyes to the truth
  • in any of these respects."
  • I felt, of course, that we must admit, not only to ourselves but to
  • others, the full force of the circumstances against him. Yet I knew
  • withal (I could not help saying) that their weight would not induce
  • us to desert him in his need.
  • "Heaven forbid!" returned my guardian. "We will stand by him, as he
  • himself stood by the two poor creatures who are gone." He meant Mr.
  • Gridley and the boy, to both of whom Mr. George had given shelter.
  • Mr. Woodcourt then told us that the trooper's man had been with him
  • before day, after wandering about the streets all night like a
  • distracted creature. That one of the trooper's first anxieties was
  • that we should not suppose him guilty. That he had charged his
  • messenger to represent his perfect innocence with every solemn
  • assurance he could send us. That Mr. Woodcourt had only quieted the
  • man by undertaking to come to our house very early in the morning
  • with these representations. He added that he was now upon his way to
  • see the prisoner himself.
  • My guardian said directly he would go too. Now, besides that I liked
  • the retired soldier very much and that he liked me, I had that secret
  • interest in what had happened which was only known to my guardian. I
  • felt as if it came close and near to me. It seemed to become
  • personally important to myself that the truth should be discovered
  • and that no innocent people should be suspected, for suspicion, once
  • run wild, might run wilder.
  • In a word, I felt as if it were my duty and obligation to go with
  • them. My guardian did not seek to dissuade me, and I went.
  • It was a large prison with many courts and passages so like one
  • another and so uniformly paved that I seemed to gain a new
  • comprehension, as I passed along, of the fondness that solitary
  • prisoners, shut up among the same staring walls from year to year,
  • have had--as I have read--for a weed or a stray blade of grass. In an
  • arched room by himself, like a cellar upstairs, with walls so
  • glaringly white that they made the massive iron window-bars and
  • iron-bound door even more profoundly black than they were, we found
  • the trooper standing in a corner. He had been sitting on a bench
  • there and had risen when he heard the locks and bolts turn.
  • When he saw us, he came forward a step with his usual heavy tread,
  • and there stopped and made a slight bow. But as I still advanced,
  • putting out my hand to him, he understood us in a moment.
  • "This is a load off my mind, I do assure you, miss and gentlemen,"
  • said he, saluting us with great heartiness and drawing a long breath.
  • "And now I don't so much care how it ends."
  • He scarcely seemed to be the prisoner. What with his coolness and his
  • soldierly bearing, he looked far more like the prison guard.
  • "This is even a rougher place than my gallery to receive a lady in,"
  • said Mr. George, "but I know Miss Summerson will make the best of
  • it." As he handed me to the bench on which he had been sitting, I sat
  • down, which seemed to give him great satisfaction.
  • "I thank you, miss," said he.
  • "Now, George," observed my guardian, "as we require no new assurances
  • on your part, so I believe we need give you none on ours."
  • "Not at all, sir. I thank you with all my heart. If I was not
  • innocent of this crime, I couldn't look at you and keep my secret to
  • myself under the condescension of the present visit. I feel the
  • present visit very much. I am not one of the eloquent sort, but I
  • feel it, Miss Summerson and gentlemen, deeply."
  • He laid his hand for a moment on his broad chest and bent his head to
  • us. Although he squared himself again directly, he expressed a great
  • amount of natural emotion by these simple means.
  • "First," said my guardian, "can we do anything for your personal
  • comfort, George?"
  • "For which, sir?" he inquired, clearing his throat.
  • "For your personal comfort. Is there anything you want that would
  • lessen the hardship of this confinement?"
  • "Well, sir," replied George, after a little cogitation, "I am equally
  • obliged to you, but tobacco being against the rules, I can't say that
  • there is."
  • "You will think of many little things perhaps, by and by. Whenever
  • you do, George, let us know."
  • "Thank you, sir. Howsoever," observed Mr. George with one of his
  • sunburnt smiles, "a man who has been knocking about the world in a
  • vagabond kind of a way as long as I have gets on well enough in a
  • place like the present, so far as that goes."
  • "Next, as to your case," observed my guardian.
  • "Exactly so, sir," returned Mr. George, folding his arms upon his
  • breast with perfect self-possession and a little curiosity.
  • "How does it stand now?"
  • "Why, sir, it is under remand at present. Bucket gives me to
  • understand that he will probably apply for a series of remands from
  • time to time until the case is more complete. How it is to be made
  • more complete I don't myself see, but I dare say Bucket will manage
  • it somehow."
  • "Why, heaven save us, man," exclaimed my guardian, surprised into his
  • old oddity and vehemence, "you talk of yourself as if you were
  • somebody else!"
  • "No offence, sir," said Mr. George. "I am very sensible of your
  • kindness. But I don't see how an innocent man is to make up his mind
  • to this kind of thing without knocking his head against the walls
  • unless he takes it in that point of view.
  • "That is true enough to a certain extent," returned my guardian,
  • softened. "But my good fellow, even an innocent man must take
  • ordinary precautions to defend himself."
  • "Certainly, sir. And I have done so. I have stated to the
  • magistrates, 'Gentlemen, I am as innocent of this charge as
  • yourselves; what has been stated against me in the way of facts is
  • perfectly true; I know no more about it.' I intend to continue
  • stating that, sir. What more can I do? It's the truth."
  • "But the mere truth won't do," rejoined my guardian.
  • "Won't it indeed, sir? Rather a bad look-out for me!" Mr. George
  • good-humouredly observed.
  • "You must have a lawyer," pursued my guardian. "We must engage a good
  • one for you."
  • "I ask your pardon, sir," said Mr. George with a step backward. "I am
  • equally obliged. But I must decidedly beg to be excused from anything
  • of that sort."
  • "You won't have a lawyer?"
  • "No, sir." Mr. George shook his head in the most emphatic manner. "I
  • thank you all the same, sir, but--no lawyer!"
  • "Why not?"
  • "I don't take kindly to the breed," said Mr. George. "Gridley didn't.
  • And--if you'll excuse my saying so much--I should hardly have thought
  • you did yourself, sir."
  • "That's equity," my guardian explained, a little at a loss; "that's
  • equity, George."
  • "Is it, indeed, sir?" returned the trooper in his off-hand manner. "I
  • am not acquainted with those shades of names myself, but in a general
  • way I object to the breed."
  • Unfolding his arms and changing his position, he stood with one
  • massive hand upon the table and the other on his hip, as complete a
  • picture of a man who was not to be moved from a fixed purpose as ever
  • I saw. It was in vain that we all three talked to him and endeavoured
  • to persuade him; he listened with that gentleness which went so well
  • with his bluff bearing, but was evidently no more shaken by our
  • representations that his place of confinement was.
  • "Pray think, once more, Mr. George," said I. "Have you no wish in
  • reference to your case?"
  • "I certainly could wish it to be tried, miss," he returned, "by
  • court-martial; but that is out of the question, as I am well aware.
  • If you will be so good as to favour me with your attention for a
  • couple of minutes, miss, not more, I'll endeavour to explain myself
  • as clearly as I can."
  • He looked at us all three in turn, shook his head a little as if he
  • were adjusting it in the stock and collar of a tight uniform, and
  • after a moment's reflection went on.
  • "You see, miss, I have been handcuffed and taken into custody and
  • brought here. I am a marked and disgraced man, and here I am. My
  • shooting gallery is rummaged, high and low, by Bucket; such property
  • as I have--'tis small--is turned this way and that till it don't know
  • itself; and (as aforesaid) here I am! I don't particular complain of
  • that. Though I am in these present quarters through no immediately
  • preceding fault of mine, I can very well understand that if I hadn't
  • gone into the vagabond way in my youth, this wouldn't have happened.
  • It HAS happened. Then comes the question how to meet it."
  • He rubbed his swarthy forehead for a moment with a good-humoured look
  • and said apologetically, "I am such a short-winded talker that I must
  • think a bit." Having thought a bit, he looked up again and resumed.
  • "How to meet it. Now, the unfortunate deceased was himself a lawyer
  • and had a pretty tight hold of me. I don't wish to rake up his ashes,
  • but he had, what I should call if he was living, a devil of a tight
  • hold of me. I don't like his trade the better for that. If I had kept
  • clear of his trade, I should have kept outside this place. But that's
  • not what I mean. Now, suppose I had killed him. Suppose I really had
  • discharged into his body any one of those pistols recently fired off
  • that Bucket has found at my place, and dear me, might have found
  • there any day since it has been my place. What should I have done as
  • soon as I was hard and fast here? Got a lawyer."
  • He stopped on hearing some one at the locks and bolts and did not
  • resume until the door had been opened and was shut again. For what
  • purpose opened, I will mention presently.
  • "I should have got a lawyer, and he would have said (as I have often
  • read in the newspapers), 'My client says nothing, my client reserves
  • his defence': my client this, that, and t'other. Well, 'tis not the
  • custom of that breed to go straight, according to my opinion, or to
  • think that other men do. Say I am innocent and I get a lawyer. He
  • would be as likely to believe me guilty as not; perhaps more. What
  • would he do, whether or not? Act as if I was--shut my mouth up, tell
  • me not to commit myself, keep circumstances back, chop the evidence
  • small, quibble, and get me off perhaps! But, Miss Summerson, do I
  • care for getting off in that way; or would I rather be hanged in my
  • own way--if you'll excuse my mentioning anything so disagreeable to a
  • lady?"
  • He had warmed into his subject now, and was under no further
  • necessity to wait a bit.
  • "I would rather be hanged in my own way. And I mean to be! I don't
  • intend to say," looking round upon us with his powerful arms akimbo
  • and his dark eyebrows raised, "that I am more partial to being hanged
  • than another man. What I say is, I must come off clear and full or
  • not at all. Therefore, when I hear stated against me what is true, I
  • say it's true; and when they tell me, 'whatever you say will be
  • used,' I tell them I don't mind that; I mean it to be used. If they
  • can't make me innocent out of the whole truth, they are not likely to
  • do it out of anything less, or anything else. And if they are, it's
  • worth nothing to me."
  • Taking a pace or two over the stone floor, he came back to the table
  • and finished what he had to say.
  • "I thank you, miss and gentlemen both, many times for your attention,
  • and many times more for your interest. That's the plain state of the
  • matter as it points itself out to a mere trooper with a blunt
  • broadsword kind of a mind. I have never done well in life beyond my
  • duty as a soldier, and if the worst comes after all, I shall reap
  • pretty much as I have sown. When I got over the first crash of being
  • seized as a murderer--it don't take a rover who has knocked about so
  • much as myself so very long to recover from a crash--I worked my way
  • round to what you find me now. As such I shall remain. No relations
  • will be disgraced by me or made unhappy for me, and--and that's all
  • I've got to say."
  • The door had been opened to admit another soldier-looking man of less
  • prepossessing appearance at first sight and a weather-tanned,
  • bright-eyed wholesome woman with a basket, who, from her entrance,
  • had been exceedingly attentive to all Mr. George had said. Mr. George
  • had received them with a familiar nod and a friendly look, but
  • without any more particular greeting in the midst of his address. He
  • now shook them cordially by the hand and said, "Miss Summerson and
  • gentlemen, this is an old comrade of mine, Matthew Bagnet. And this
  • is his wife, Mrs. Bagnet."
  • Mr. Bagnet made us a stiff military bow, and Mrs. Bagnet dropped us a
  • curtsy.
  • "Real good friends of mine, they are," sald Mr. George. "It was at
  • their house I was taken."
  • "With a second-hand wiolinceller," Mr. Bagnet put in, twitching his
  • head angrily. "Of a good tone. For a friend. That money was no object
  • to."
  • "Mat," said Mr. George, "you have heard pretty well all I have been
  • saying to this lady and these two gentlemen. I know it meets your
  • approval?"
  • Mr. Bagnet, after considering, referred the point to his wife. "Old
  • girl," said he. "Tell him. Whether or not. It meets my approval."
  • "Why, George," exclaimed Mrs. Bagnet, who had been unpacking her
  • basket, in which there was a piece of cold pickled pork, a little tea
  • and sugar, and a brown loaf, "you ought to know it don't. You ought
  • to know it's enough to drive a person wild to hear you. You won't be
  • got off this way, and you won't be got off that way--what do you mean
  • by such picking and choosing? It's stuff and nonsense, George."
  • "Don't be severe upon me in my misfortunes, Mrs. Bagnet," said the
  • trooper lightly.
  • "Oh! Bother your misfortunes," cried Mrs. Bagnet, "if they don't make
  • you more reasonable than that comes to. I never was so ashamed in my
  • life to hear a man talk folly as I have been to hear you talk this
  • day to the present company. Lawyers? Why, what but too many cooks
  • should hinder you from having a dozen lawyers if the gentleman
  • recommended them to you."
  • "This is a very sensible woman," said my guardian. "I hope you will
  • persuade him, Mrs. Bagnet."
  • "Persuade him, sir?" she returned. "Lord bless you, no. You don't
  • know George. Now, there!" Mrs. Bagnet left her basket to point him
  • out with both her bare brown hands. "There he stands! As self-willed
  • and as determined a man, in the wrong way, as ever put a human
  • creature under heaven out of patience! You could as soon take up and
  • shoulder an eight and forty pounder by your own strength as turn that
  • man when he has got a thing into his head and fixed it there. Why,
  • don't I know him!" cried Mrs. Bagnet. "Don't I know you, George! You
  • don't mean to set up for a new character with ME after all these
  • years, I hope?"
  • Her friendly indignation had an exemplary effect upon her husband,
  • who shook his head at the trooper several times as a silent
  • recommendation to him to yield. Between whiles, Mrs. Bagnet looked at
  • me; and I understood from the play of her eyes that she wished me to
  • do something, though I did not comprehend what.
  • "But I have given up talking to you, old fellow, years and years,"
  • said Mrs. Bagnet as she blew a little dust off the pickled pork,
  • looking at me again; "and when ladies and gentlemen know you as well
  • as I do, they'll give up talking to you too. If you are not too
  • headstrong to accept of a bit of dinner, here it is."
  • "I accept it with many thanks," returned the trooper.
  • "Do you though, indeed?" said Mrs. Bagnet, continuing to grumble on
  • good-humouredly. "I'm sure I'm surprised at that. I wonder you don't
  • starve in your own way also. It would only be like you. Perhaps
  • you'll set your mind upon THAT next." Here she again looked at me,
  • and I now perceived from her glances at the door and at me, by turns,
  • that she wished us to retire and to await her following us outside
  • the prison. Communicating this by similar means to my guardian and
  • Mr. Woodcourt, I rose.
  • "We hope you will think better of it, Mr. George," said I, "and we
  • shall come to see you again, trusting to find you more reasonable."
  • "More grateful, Miss Summerson, you can't find me," he returned.
  • "But more persuadable we can, I hope," said I. "And let me entreat
  • you to consider that the clearing up of this mystery and the
  • discovery of the real perpetrator of this deed may be of the last
  • importance to others besides yourself."
  • He heard me respectfully but without much heeding these words, which
  • I spoke a little turned from him, already on my way to the door; he
  • was observing (this they afterwards told me) my height and figure,
  • which seemed to catch his attention all at once.
  • "'Tis curious," said he. "And yet I thought so at the time!"
  • My guardian asked him what he meant.
  • "Why, sir," he answered, "when my ill fortune took me to the dead
  • man's staircase on the night of his murder, I saw a shape so like
  • Miss Summerson's go by me in the dark that I had half a mind to speak
  • to it."
  • For an instant I felt such a shudder as I never felt before or since
  • and hope I shall never feel again.
  • "It came downstairs as I went up," said the trooper, "and crossed the
  • moonlighted window with a loose black mantle on; I noticed a deep
  • fringe to it. However, it has nothing to do with the present subject,
  • excepting that Miss Summerson looked so like it at the moment that it
  • came into my head."
  • I cannot separate and define the feelings that arose in me after
  • this; it is enough that the vague duty and obligation I had felt upon
  • me from the first of following the investigation was, without my
  • distinctly daring to ask myself any question, increased, and that I
  • was indignantly sure of there being no possibility of a reason for my
  • being afraid.
  • We three went out of the prison and walked up and down at some short
  • distance from the gate, which was in a retired place. We had not
  • waited long when Mr. and Mrs. Bagnet came out too and quickly joined
  • us.
  • There was a tear in each of Mrs. Bagnet's eyes, and her face was
  • flushed and hurried. "I didn't let George see what I thought about
  • it, you know, miss," was her first remark when she came up, "but he's
  • in a bad way, poor old fellow!"
  • "Not with care and prudence and good help," said my guardian.
  • "A gentleman like you ought to know best, sir," returned Mrs. Bagnet,
  • hurriedly drying her eyes on the hem of her grey cloak, "but I am
  • uneasy for him. He has been so careless and said so much that he
  • never meant. The gentlemen of the juries might not understand him as
  • Lignum and me do. And then such a number of circumstances have
  • happened bad for him, and such a number of people will be brought
  • forward to speak against him, and Bucket is so deep."
  • "With a second-hand wiolinceller. And said he played the fife. When a
  • boy," Mr. Bagnet added with great solemnity.
  • "Now, I tell you, miss," said Mrs. Bagnet; "and when I say miss, I
  • mean all! Just come into the corner of the wall and I'll tell you!"
  • Mrs. Bagnet hurried us into a more secluded place and was at first
  • too breathless to proceed, occasioning Mr. Bagnet to say, "Old girl!
  • Tell 'em!"
  • "Why, then, miss," the old girl proceeded, untying the strings of her
  • bonnet for more air, "you could as soon move Dover Castle as move
  • George on this point unless you had got a new power to move him with.
  • And I have got it!"
  • "You are a jewel of a woman," said my guardian. "Go on!"
  • "Now, I tell you, miss," she proceeded, clapping her hands in her
  • hurry and agitation a dozen times in every sentence, "that what he
  • says concerning no relations is all bosh. They don't know of him, but
  • he does know of them. He has said more to me at odd times than to
  • anybody else, and it warn't for nothing that he once spoke to my
  • Woolwich about whitening and wrinkling mothers' heads. For fifty
  • pounds he had seen his mother that day. She's alive and must be
  • brought here straight!"
  • Instantly Mrs. Bagnet put some pins into her mouth and began pinning
  • up her skirts all round a little higher than the level of her grey
  • cloak, which she accomplished with surpassing dispatch and dexterity.
  • "Lignum," said Mrs. Bagnet, "you take care of the children, old man,
  • and give me the umbrella! I'm away to Lincolnshire to bring that old
  • lady here."
  • "But, bless the woman," cried my guardian with his hand in his
  • pocket, "how is she going? What money has she got?"
  • Mrs. Bagnet made another application to her skirts and brought forth
  • a leathern purse in which she hastily counted over a few shillings
  • and which she then shut up with perfect satisfaction.
  • "Never you mind for me, miss. I'm a soldier's wife and accustomed to
  • travel my own way. Lignum, old boy," kissing him, "one for yourself,
  • three for the children. Now I'm away into Lincolnshire after George's
  • mother!"
  • And she actually set off while we three stood looking at one another
  • lost in amazement. She actually trudged away in her grey cloak at a
  • sturdy pace, and turned the corner, and was gone.
  • "Mr. Bagnet," said my guardian. "Do you mean to let her go in that
  • way?"
  • "Can't help it," he returned. "Made her way home once from another
  • quarter of the world. With the same grey cloak. And same umbrella.
  • Whatever the old girl says, do. Do it! Whenever the old girl says,
  • I'LL do it. She does it."
  • "Then she is as honest and genuine as she looks," rejoined my
  • guardian, "and it is impossible to say more for her."
  • "She's Colour-Sergeant of the Nonpareil battalion," said Mr. Bagnet,
  • looking at us over his shoulder as he went his way also. "And there's
  • not such another. But I never own to it before her. Discipline must
  • be maintained."
  • CHAPTER LIII
  • The Track
  • Mr. Bucket and his fat forefinger are much in consultation together
  • under existing circumstances. When Mr. Bucket has a matter of this
  • pressing interest under his consideration, the fat forefinger seems
  • to rise, to the dignity of a familiar demon. He puts it to his ears,
  • and it whispers information; he puts it to his lips, and it enjoins
  • him to secrecy; he rubs it over his nose, and it sharpens his scent;
  • he shakes it before a guilty man, and it charms him to his
  • destruction. The Augurs of the Detective Temple invariably predict
  • that when Mr. Bucket and that finger are in much conference, a
  • terrible avenger will be heard of before long.
  • Otherwise mildly studious in his observation of human nature, on the
  • whole a benignant philosopher not disposed to be severe upon the
  • follies of mankind, Mr. Bucket pervades a vast number of houses and
  • strolls about an infinity of streets, to outward appearance rather
  • languishing for want of an object. He is in the friendliest condition
  • towards his species and will drink with most of them. He is free with
  • his money, affable in his manners, innocent in his conversation--but
  • through the placid stream of his life there glides an under-current
  • of forefinger.
  • Time and place cannot bind Mr. Bucket. Like man in the abstract, he
  • is here to-day and gone to-morrow--but, very unlike man indeed, he is
  • here again the next day. This evening he will be casually looking
  • into the iron extinguishers at the door of Sir Leicester Dedlock's
  • house in town; and to-morrow morning he will be walking on the leads
  • at Chesney Wold, where erst the old man walked whose ghost is
  • propitiated with a hundred guineas. Drawers, desks, pockets, all
  • things belonging to him, Mr. Bucket examines. A few hours afterwards,
  • he and the Roman will be alone together comparing forefingers.
  • It is likely that these occupations are irreconcilable with home
  • enjoyment, but it is certain that Mr. Bucket at present does not go
  • home. Though in general he highly appreciates the society of Mrs.
  • Bucket--a lady of a natural detective genius, which if it had been
  • improved by professional exercise, might have done great things, but
  • which has paused at the level of a clever amateur--he holds himself
  • aloof from that dear solace. Mrs. Bucket is dependent on their lodger
  • (fortunately an amiable lady in whom she takes an interest) for
  • companionship and conversation.
  • A great crowd assembles in Lincoln's Inn Fields on the day of the
  • funeral. Sir Leicester Dedlock attends the ceremony in person;
  • strictly speaking, there are only three other human followers, that
  • is to say, Lord Doodle, William Buffy, and the debilitated cousin
  • (thrown in as a make-weight), but the amount of inconsolable
  • carriages is immense. The peerage contributes more four-wheeled
  • affliction than has ever been seen in that neighbourhood. Such is the
  • assemblage of armorial bearings on coach panels that the Herald's
  • College might be supposed to have lost its father and mother at a
  • blow. The Duke of Foodle sends a splendid pile of dust and ashes,
  • with silver wheel-boxes, patent axles, all the last improvements, and
  • three bereaved worms, six feet high, holding on behind, in a bunch of
  • woe. All the state coachmen in London seem plunged into mourning; and
  • if that dead old man of the rusty garb be not beyond a taste in
  • horseflesh (which appears impossible), it must be highly gratified
  • this day.
  • Quiet among the undertakers and the equipages and the calves of so
  • many legs all steeped in grief, Mr. Bucket sits concealed in one of
  • the inconsolable carriages and at his ease surveys the crowd through
  • the lattice blinds. He has a keen eye for a crowd--as for what
  • not?--and looking here and there, now from this side of the carriage,
  • now from the other, now up at the house windows, now along the
  • people's heads, nothing escapes him.
  • "And there you are, my partner, eh?" says Mr. Bucket to himself,
  • apostrophizing Mrs. Bucket, stationed, by his favour, on the steps of
  • the deceased's house. "And so you are. And so you are! And very well
  • indeed you are looking, Mrs. Bucket!"
  • The procession has not started yet, but is waiting for the cause of
  • its assemblage to be brought out. Mr. Bucket, in the foremost
  • emblazoned carriage, uses his two fat forefingers to hold the lattice
  • a hair's breadth open while he looks.
  • And it says a great deal for his attachment, as a husband, that he is
  • still occupied with Mrs. B. "There you are, my partner, eh?" he
  • murmuringly repeats. "And our lodger with you. I'm taking notice of
  • you, Mrs. Bucket; I hope you're all right in your health, my dear!"
  • Not another word does Mr. Bucket say, but sits with most attentive
  • eyes until the sacked depository of noble secrets is brought
  • down--Where are all those secrets now? Does he keep them yet? Did
  • they fly with him on that sudden journey?--and until the procession
  • moves, and Mr. Bucket's view is changed. After which he composes
  • himself for an easy ride and takes note of the fittings of the
  • carriage in case he should ever find such knowledge useful.
  • Contrast enough between Mr. Tulkinghorn shut up in his dark carriage
  • and Mr. Bucket shut up in HIS. Between the immeasurable track of
  • space beyond the little wound that has thrown the one into the fixed
  • sleep which jolts so heavily over the stones of the streets, and the
  • narrow track of blood which keeps the other in the watchful state
  • expressed in every hair of his head! But it is all one to both;
  • neither is troubled about that.
  • Mr. Bucket sits out the procession in his own easy manner and glides
  • from the carriage when the opportunity he has settled with himself
  • arrives. He makes for Sir Leicester Dedlock's, which is at present a
  • sort of home to him, where he comes and goes as he likes at all
  • hours, where he is always welcome and made much of, where he knows
  • the whole establishment, and walks in an atmosphere of mysterious
  • greatness.
  • No knocking or ringing for Mr. Bucket. He has caused himself to be
  • provided with a key and can pass in at his pleasure. As he is
  • crossing the hall, Mercury informs him, "Here's another letter for
  • you, Mr. Bucket, come by post," and gives it him.
  • "Another one, eh?" says Mr. Bucket.
  • If Mercury should chance to be possessed by any lingering curiosity
  • as to Mr. Bucket's letters, that wary person is not the man to
  • gratify it. Mr. Bucket looks at him as if his face were a vista of
  • some miles in length and he were leisurely contemplating the same.
  • "Do you happen to carry a box?" says Mr. Bucket.
  • Unfortunately Mercury is no snuff-taker.
  • "Could you fetch me a pinch from anywheres?" says Mr. Bucket.
  • "Thankee. It don't matter what it is; I'm not particular as to the
  • kind. Thankee!"
  • Having leisurely helped himself from a canister borrowed from
  • somebody downstairs for the purpose, and having made a considerable
  • show of tasting it, first with one side of his nose and then with the
  • other, Mr. Bucket, with much deliberation, pronounces it of the right
  • sort and goes on, letter in hand.
  • Now although Mr. Bucket walks upstairs to the little library within
  • the larger one with the face of a man who receives some scores of
  • letters every day, it happens that much correspondence is not
  • incidental to his life. He is no great scribe, rather handling his
  • pen like the pocket-staff he carries about with him always convenient
  • to his grasp, and discourages correspondence with himself in others
  • as being too artless and direct a way of doing delicate business.
  • Further, he often sees damaging letters produced in evidence and has
  • occasion to reflect that it was a green thing to write them. For
  • these reasons he has very little to do with letters, either as sender
  • or receiver. And yet he has received a round half-dozen within the
  • last twenty-four hours.
  • "And this," says Mr. Bucket, spreading it out on the table, "is in
  • the same hand, and consists of the same two words."
  • What two words?
  • He turns the key in the door, ungirdles his black pocket-book (book
  • of fate to many), lays another letter by it, and reads, boldly
  • written in each, "Lady Dedlock."
  • "Yes, yes," says Mr. Bucket. "But I could have made the money without
  • this anonymous information."
  • Having put the letters in his book of fate and girdled it up again,
  • he unlocks the door just in time to admit his dinner, which is
  • brought upon a goodly tray with a decanter of sherry. Mr. Bucket
  • frequently observes, in friendly circles where there is no restraint,
  • that he likes a toothful of your fine old brown East Inder sherry
  • better than anything you can offer him. Consequently he fills and
  • empties his glass with a smack of his lips and is proceeding with his
  • refreshment when an idea enters his mind.
  • Mr. Bucket softly opens the door of communication between that room
  • and the next and looks in. The library is deserted, and the fire is
  • sinking low. Mr. Bucket's eye, after taking a pigeon-flight round the
  • room, alights upon a table where letters are usually put as they
  • arrive. Several letters for Sir Leicester are upon it. Mr. Bucket
  • draws near and examines the directions. "No," he says, "there's none
  • in that hand. It's only me as is written to. I can break it to Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, to-morrow."
  • With that he returns to finish his dinner with a good appetite, and
  • after a light nap, is summoned into the drawing-room. Sir Leicester
  • has received him there these several evenings past to know whether he
  • has anything to report. The debilitated cousin (much exhausted by the
  • funeral) and Volumnia are in attendance.
  • Mr. Bucket makes three distinctly different bows to these three
  • people. A bow of homage to Sir Leicester, a bow of gallantry to
  • Volumnia, and a bow of recognition to the debilitated Cousin, to whom
  • it airily says, "You are a swell about town, and you know me, and I
  • know you." Having distributed these little specimens of his tact, Mr.
  • Bucket rubs his hands.
  • "Have you anything new to communicate, officer?" inquires Sir
  • Leicester. "Do you wish to hold any conversation with me in private?"
  • "Why--not to-night, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet."
  • "Because my time," pursues Sir Leicester, "is wholly at your disposal
  • with a view to the vindication of the outraged majesty of the law."
  • Mr. Bucket coughs and glances at Volumnia, rouged and necklaced, as
  • though he would respectfully observe, "I do assure you, you're a
  • pretty creetur. I've seen hundreds worse looking at your time of
  • life, I have indeed."
  • The fair Volumnia, not quite unconscious perhaps of the humanizing
  • influence of her charms, pauses in the writing of cocked-hat notes
  • and meditatively adjusts the pearl necklace. Mr. Bucket prices that
  • decoration in his mind and thinks it as likely as not that Volumnia
  • is writing poetry.
  • "If I have not," pursues Sir Leicester, "in the most emphatic manner,
  • adjured you, officer, to exercise your utmost skill in this atrocious
  • case, I particularly desire to take the present opportunity of
  • rectifying any omission I may have made. Let no expense be a
  • consideration. I am prepared to defray all charges. You can incur
  • none in pursuit of the object you have undertaken that I shall
  • hesitate for a moment to bear."
  • Mr. Bucket made Sir Leicester's bow again as a response to this
  • liberality.
  • "My mind," Sir Leicester adds with a generous warmth, "has not, as
  • may be easily supposed, recovered its tone since the late diabolical
  • occurrence. It is not likely ever to recover its tone. But it is full
  • of indignation to-night after undergoing the ordeal of consigning to
  • the tomb the remains of a faithful, a zealous, a devoted adherent."
  • Sir Leicester's voice trembles and his grey hair stirs upon his head.
  • Tears are in his eyes; the best part of his nature is aroused.
  • "I declare," he says, "I solemnly declare that until this crime is
  • discovered and, in the course of justice, punished, I almost feel as
  • if there were a stain upon my name. A gentleman who has devoted a
  • large portion of his life to me, a gentleman who has devoted the last
  • day of his life to me, a gentleman who has constantly sat at my table
  • and slept under my roof, goes from my house to his own, and is struck
  • down within an hour of his leaving my house. I cannot say but that he
  • may have been followed from my house, watched at my house, even first
  • marked because of his association with my house--which may have
  • suggested his possessing greater wealth and being altogether of
  • greater importance than his own retiring demeanour would have
  • indicated. If I cannot with my means and influence and my position
  • bring all the perpetrators of such a crime to light, I fail in the
  • assertion of my respect for that gentleman's memory and of my
  • fidelity towards one who was ever faithful to me."
  • While he makes this protestation with great emotion and earnestness,
  • looking round the room as if he were addressing an assembly, Mr.
  • Bucket glances at him with an observant gravity in which there might
  • be, but for the audacity of the thought, a touch of compassion.
  • "The ceremony of to-day," continues Sir Leicester, "strikingly
  • illustrative of the respect in which my deceased friend"--he lays a
  • stress upon the word, for death levels all distinctions--"was held by
  • the flower of the land, has, I say, aggravated the shock I have
  • received from this most horrible and audacious crime. If it were my
  • brother who had committed it, I would not spare him."
  • Mr. Bucket looks very grave. Volumnia remarks of the deceased that he
  • was the trustiest and dearest person!
  • "You must feel it as a deprivation to you, miss," replies Mr. Bucket
  • soothingly, "no doubt. He was calculated to BE a deprivation, I'm
  • sure he was."
  • Volumnia gives Mr. Bucket to understand, in reply, that her sensitive
  • mind is fully made up never to get the better of it as long as she
  • lives, that her nerves are unstrung for ever, and that she has not
  • the least expectation of ever smiling again. Meanwhile she folds up a
  • cocked hat for that redoubtable old general at Bath, descriptive of
  • her melancholy condition.
  • "It gives a start to a delicate female," says Mr. Bucket
  • sympathetically, "but it'll wear off."
  • Volumnia wishes of all things to know what is doing? Whether they are
  • going to convict, or whatever it is, that dreadful soldier? Whether
  • he had any accomplices, or whatever the thing is called in the law?
  • And a great deal more to the like artless purpose.
  • "Why you see, miss," returns Mr. Bucket, bringing the finger into
  • persuasive action--and such is his natural gallantry that he had
  • almost said "my dear"--"it ain't easy to answer those questions at
  • the present moment. Not at the present moment. I've kept myself on
  • this case, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet," whom Mr. Bucket takes
  • into the conversation in right of his importance, "morning, noon, and
  • night. But for a glass or two of sherry, I don't think I could have
  • had my mind so much upon the stretch as it has been. I COULD answer
  • your questions, miss, but duty forbids it. Sir Leicester Dedlock,
  • Baronet, will very soon be made acquainted with all that has been
  • traced. And I hope that he may find it"--Mr. Bucket again looks
  • grave--"to his satisfaction."
  • The debilitated cousin only hopes some fler'll be executed--zample.
  • Thinks more interest's wanted--get man hanged presentime--than get
  • man place ten thousand a year. Hasn't a doubt--zample--far better
  • hang wrong fler than no fler.
  • "YOU know life, you know, sir," says Mr. Bucket with a complimentary
  • twinkle of his eye and crook of his finger, "and you can confirm what
  • I've mentioned to this lady. YOU don't want to be told that from
  • information I have received I have gone to work. You're up to what a
  • lady can't be expected to be up to. Lord! Especially in your elevated
  • station of society, miss," says Mr. Bucket, quite reddening at
  • another narrow escape from "my dear."
  • "The officer, Volumnia," observes Sir Leicester, "is faithful to his
  • duty, and perfectly right."
  • Mr. Bucket murmurs, "Glad to have the honour of your approbation, Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock, Baronet."
  • "In fact, Volumnia," proceeds Sir Leicester, "it is not holding up a
  • good model for imitation to ask the officer any such questions as you
  • have put to him. He is the best judge of his own responsibility; he
  • acts upon his responsibility. And it does not become us, who assist
  • in making the laws, to impede or interfere with those who carry them
  • into execution. Or," says Sir Leicester somewhat sternly, for
  • Volumnia was going to cut in before he had rounded his sentence, "or
  • who vindicate their outraged majesty."
  • Volumnia with all humility explains that she had not merely the plea
  • of curiosity to urge (in common with the giddy youth of her sex in
  • general) but that she is perfectly dying with regret and interest for
  • the darling man whose loss they all deplore.
  • "Very well, Volumnia," returns Sir Leicester. "Then you cannot be too
  • discreet."
  • Mr. Bucket takes the opportunity of a pause to be heard again.
  • "Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, I have no objections to telling this
  • lady, with your leave and among ourselves, that I look upon the case
  • as pretty well complete. It is a beautiful case--a beautiful
  • case--and what little is wanting to complete it, I expect to be able
  • to supply in a few hours."
  • "I am very glad indeed to hear it," says Sir Leicester. "Highly
  • creditable to you."
  • "Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet," returns Mr. Bucket very seriously,
  • "I hope it may at one and the same time do me credit and prove
  • satisfactory to all. When I depict it as a beautiful case, you see,
  • miss," Mr. Bucket goes on, glancing gravely at Sir Leicester, "I mean
  • from my point of view. As considered from other points of view, such
  • cases will always involve more or less unpleasantness. Very strange
  • things comes to our knowledge in families, miss; bless your heart,
  • what you would think to be phenomenons, quite."
  • Volumnia, with her innocent little scream, supposes so.
  • "Aye, and even in gen-teel families, in high families, in great
  • families," says Mr. Bucket, again gravely eyeing Sir Leicester aside.
  • "I have had the honour of being employed in high families before, and
  • you have no idea--come, I'll go so far as to say not even YOU have
  • any idea, sir," this to the debilitated cousin, "what games goes on!"
  • The cousin, who has been casting sofa-pillows on his head, in a
  • prostration of boredom yawns, "Vayli," being the used-up for "very
  • likely."
  • Sir Leicester, deeming it time to dismiss the officer, here
  • majestically interposes with the words, "Very good. Thank you!" and
  • also with a wave of his hand, implying not only that there is an end
  • of the discourse, but that if high families fall into low habits they
  • must take the consequences. "You will not forget, officer," he adds
  • with condescension, "that I am at your disposal when you please."
  • Mr. Bucket (still grave) inquires if to-morrow morning, now, would
  • suit, in case he should be as for'ard as he expects to be. Sir
  • Leicester replies, "All times are alike to me." Mr. Bucket makes his
  • three bows and is withdrawing when a forgotten point occurs to him.
  • "Might I ask, by the by," he says in a low voice, cautiously
  • returning, "who posted the reward-bill on the staircase."
  • "I ordered it to be put up there," replies Sir Leicester.
  • "Would it be considered a liberty, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, if
  • I was to ask you why?"
  • "Not at all. I chose it as a conspicuous part of the house. I think
  • it cannot be too prominently kept before the whole establishment. I
  • wish my people to be impressed with the enormity of the crime, the
  • determination to punish it, and the hopelessness of escape. At the
  • same time, officer, if you in your better knowledge of the subject
  • see any objection--"
  • Mr. Bucket sees none now; the bill having been put up, had better not
  • be taken down. Repeating his three bows he withdraws, closing the
  • door on Volumnia's little scream, which is a preliminary to her
  • remarking that that charmingly horrible person is a perfect Blue
  • Chamber.
  • In his fondness for society and his adaptability to all grades, Mr.
  • Bucket is presently standing before the hall-fire--bright and warm on
  • the early winter night--admiring Mercury.
  • "Why, you're six foot two, I suppose?" says Mr. Bucket.
  • "Three," says Mercury.
  • "Are you so much? But then, you see, you're broad in proportion and
  • don't look it. You're not one of the weak-legged ones, you ain't. Was
  • you ever modelled now?" Mr. Bucket asks, conveying the expression of
  • an artist into the turn of his eye and head.
  • Mercury never was modelled.
  • "Then you ought to be, you know," says Mr. Bucket; "and a friend of
  • mine that you'll hear of one day as a Royal Academy sculptor would
  • stand something handsome to make a drawing of your proportions for
  • the marble. My Lady's out, ain't she?"
  • "Out to dinner."
  • "Goes out pretty well every day, don't she?"
  • "Yes."
  • "Not to be wondered at!" says Mr. Bucket. "Such a fine woman as her,
  • so handsome and so graceful and so elegant, is like a fresh lemon on
  • a dinner-table, ornamental wherever she goes. Was your father in the
  • same way of life as yourself?"
  • Answer in the negative.
  • "Mine was," says Mr. Bucket. "My father was first a page, then a
  • footman, then a butler, then a steward, then an inn-keeper. Lived
  • universally respected, and died lamented. Said with his last breath
  • that he considered service the most honourable part of his career,
  • and so it was. I've a brother in service, AND a brother-in-law. My
  • Lady a good temper?"
  • Mercury replies, "As good as you can expect."
  • "Ah!" says Mr. Bucket. "A little spoilt? A little capricious? Lord!
  • What can you anticipate when they're so handsome as that? And we like
  • 'em all the better for it, don't we?"
  • Mercury, with his hands in the pockets of his bright peach-blossom
  • small-clothes, stretches his symmetrical silk legs with the air of a
  • man of gallantry and can't deny it. Come the roll of wheels and a
  • violent ringing at the bell. "Talk of the angels," says Mr. Bucket.
  • "Here she is!"
  • The doors are thrown open, and she passes through the hall. Still
  • very pale, she is dressed in slight mourning and wears two beautiful
  • bracelets. Either their beauty or the beauty of her arms is
  • particularly attractive to Mr. Bucket. He looks at them with an eager
  • eye and rattles something in his pocket--halfpence perhaps.
  • Noticing him at his distance, she turns an inquiring look on the
  • other Mercury who has brought her home.
  • "Mr. Bucket, my Lady."
  • Mr. Bucket makes a leg and comes forward, passing his familiar demon
  • over the region of his mouth.
  • "Are you waiting to see Sir Leicester?"
  • "No, my Lady, I've seen him!"
  • "Have you anything to say to me?"
  • "Not just at present, my Lady."
  • "Have you made any new discoveries?"
  • "A few, my Lady."
  • This is merely in passing. She scarcely makes a stop, and sweeps
  • upstairs alone. Mr. Bucket, moving towards the staircase-foot,
  • watches her as she goes up the steps the old man came down to his
  • grave, past murderous groups of statuary repeated with their shadowy
  • weapons on the wall, past the printed bill, which she looks at going
  • by, out of view.
  • "She's a lovely woman, too, she really is," says Mr. Bucket, coming
  • back to Mercury. "Don't look quite healthy though."
  • Is not quite healthy, Mercury informs him. Suffers much from
  • headaches.
  • Really? That's a pity! Walking, Mr. Bucket would recommend for that.
  • Well, she tries walking, Mercury rejoins. Walks sometimes for two
  • hours when she has them bad. By night, too.
  • "Are you sure you're quite so much as six foot three?" asks Mr.
  • Bucket. "Begging your pardon for interrupting you a moment?"
  • Not a doubt about it.
  • "You're so well put together that I shouldn't have thought it. But
  • the household troops, though considered fine men, are built so
  • straggling. Walks by night, does she? When it's moonlight, though?"
  • Oh, yes. When it's moonlight! Of course. Oh, of course!
  • Conversational and acquiescent on both sides.
  • "I suppose you ain't in the habit of walking yourself?" says Mr.
  • Bucket. "Not much time for it, I should say?"
  • Besides which, Mercury don't like it. Prefers carriage exercise.
  • "To be sure," says Mr. Bucket. "That makes a difference. Now I think
  • of it," says Mr. Bucket, warming his hands and looking pleasantly at
  • the blaze, "she went out walking the very night of this business."
  • "To be sure she did! I let her into the garden over the way."
  • "And left her there. Certainly you did. I saw you doing it."
  • "I didn't see YOU," says Mercury.
  • "I was rather in a hurry," returns Mr. Bucket, "for I was going to
  • visit a aunt of mine that lives at Chelsea--next door but two to the
  • old original Bun House--ninety year old the old lady is, a single
  • woman, and got a little property. Yes, I chanced to be passing at the
  • time. Let's see. What time might it be? It wasn't ten."
  • "Half-past nine."
  • "You're right. So it was. And if I don't deceive myself, my Lady was
  • muffled in a loose black mantle, with a deep fringe to it?"
  • "Of course she was."
  • Of course she was. Mr. Bucket must return to a little work he has to
  • get on with upstairs, but he must shake hands with Mercury in
  • acknowledgment of his agreeable conversation, and will he--this is
  • all he asks--will he, when he has a leisure half-hour, think of
  • bestowing it on that Royal Academy sculptor, for the advantage of
  • both parties?
  • CHAPTER LIV
  • Springing a Mine
  • Refreshed by sleep, Mr. Bucket rises betimes in the morning and
  • prepares for a field-day. Smartened up by the aid of a clean shirt
  • and a wet hairbrush, with which instrument, on occasions of ceremony,
  • he lubricates such thin locks as remain to him after his life of
  • severe study, Mr. Bucket lays in a breakfast of two mutton chops as a
  • foundation to work upon, together with tea, eggs, toast, and
  • marmalade on a corresponding scale. Having much enjoyed these
  • strengthening matters and having held subtle conference with his
  • familiar demon, he confidently instructs Mercury "just to mention
  • quietly to Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, that whenever he's ready
  • for me, I'm ready for him." A gracious message being returned that
  • Sir Leicester will expedite his dressing and join Mr. Bucket in the
  • library within ten minutes, Mr. Bucket repairs to that apartment and
  • stands before the fire with his finger on his chin, looking at the
  • blazing coals.
  • Thoughtful Mr. Bucket is, as a man may be with weighty work to do,
  • but composed, sure, confident. From the expression of his face he
  • might be a famous whist-player for a large stake--say a hundred
  • guineas certain--with the game in his hand, but with a high
  • reputation involved in his playing his hand out to the last card in a
  • masterly way. Not in the least anxious or disturbed is Mr. Bucket
  • when Sir Leicester appears, but he eyes the baronet aside as he comes
  • slowly to his easy-chair with that observant gravity of yesterday in
  • which there might have been yesterday, but for the audacity of the
  • idea, a touch of compassion.
  • "I am sorry to have kept you waiting, officer, but I am rather later
  • than my usual hour this morning. I am not well. The agitation and the
  • indignation from which I have recently suffered have been too much
  • for me. I am subject to--gout"--Sir Leicester was going to say
  • indisposition and would have said it to anybody else, but Mr. Bucket
  • palpably knows all about it--"and recent circumstances have brought
  • it on."
  • As he takes his seat with some difficulty and with an air of pain,
  • Mr. Bucket draws a little nearer, standing with one of his large
  • hands on the library-table.
  • "I am not aware, officer," Sir Leicester observes; raising his eyes
  • to his face, "whether you wish us to be alone, but that is entirely
  • as you please. If you do, well and good. If not, Miss Dedlock would
  • be interested--"
  • "Why, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet," returns Mr. Bucket with his
  • head persuasively on one side and his forefinger pendant at one ear
  • like an earring, "we can't be too private just at present. You will
  • presently see that we can't be too private. A lady, under the
  • circumstances, and especially in Miss Dedlock's elevated station of
  • society, can't but be agreeable to me, but speaking without a view to
  • myself, I will take the liberty of assuring you that I know we can't
  • be too private."
  • "That is enough."
  • "So much so, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet," Mr. Bucket resumes,
  • "that I was on the point of asking your permission to turn the key in
  • the door."
  • "By all means." Mr. Bucket skilfully and softly takes that
  • precaution, stooping on his knee for a moment from mere force of
  • habit so to adjust the key in the lock as that no one shall peep in
  • from the outerside.
  • "Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, I mentioned yesterday evening that I
  • wanted but a very little to complete this case. I have now completed
  • it and collected proof against the person who did this crime."
  • "Against the soldier?"
  • "No, Sir Leicester Dedlock; not the soldier."
  • Sir Leicester looks astounded and inquires, "Is the man in custody?"
  • Mr. Bucket tells him, after a pause, "It was a woman."
  • Sir Leicester leans back in his chair, and breathlessly ejaculates,
  • "Good heaven!"
  • "Now, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet," Mr. Bucket begins, standing
  • over him with one hand spread out on the library-table and the
  • forefinger of the other in impressive use, "it's my duty to prepare
  • you for a train of circumstances that may, and I go so far as to say
  • that will, give you a shock. But Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, you
  • are a gentleman, and I know what a gentleman is and what a gentleman
  • is capable of. A gentleman can bear a shock when it must come, boldly
  • and steadily. A gentleman can make up his mind to stand up against
  • almost any blow. Why, take yourself, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet.
  • If there's a blow to be inflicted on you, you naturally think of your
  • family. You ask yourself, how would all them ancestors of yours, away
  • to Julius Caesar--not to go beyond him at present--have borne that
  • blow; you remember scores of them that would have borne it well; and
  • you bear it well on their accounts, and to maintain the family
  • credit. That's the way you argue, and that's the way you act, Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock, Baronet."
  • Sir Leicester, leaning back in his chair and grasping the elbows,
  • sits looking at him with a stony face.
  • "Now, Sir Leicester Dedlock," proceeds Mr. Bucket, "thus preparing
  • you, let me beg of you not to trouble your mind for a moment as to
  • anything having come to MY knowledge. I know so much about so many
  • characters, high and low, that a piece of information more or less
  • don't signify a straw. I don't suppose there's a move on the board
  • that would surprise ME, and as to this or that move having taken
  • place, why my knowing it is no odds at all, any possible move
  • whatever (provided it's in a wrong direction) being a probable move
  • according to my experience. Therefore, what I say to you, Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, is, don't you go and let yourself be put
  • out of the way because of my knowing anything of your family
  • affairs."
  • "I thank you for your preparation," returns Sir Leicester after a
  • silence, without moving hand, foot, or feature, "which I hope is not
  • necessary; though I give it credit for being well intended. Be so
  • good as to go on. Also"--Sir Leicester seems to shrink in the shadow
  • of his figure--"also, to take a seat, if you have no objection."
  • None at all. Mr. Bucket brings a chair and diminishes his shadow.
  • "Now, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, with this short preface I come
  • to the point. Lady Dedlock--"
  • Sir Leicester raises himself in his seat and stares at him fiercely.
  • Mr. Bucket brings the finger into play as an emollient.
  • "Lady Dedlock, you see she's universally admired. That's what her
  • ladyship is; she's universally admired," says Mr. Bucket.
  • "I would greatly prefer, officer," Sir Leicester returns stiffly, "my
  • Lady's name being entirely omitted from this discussion."
  • "So would I, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, but--it's impossible."
  • "Impossible?"
  • Mr. Bucket shakes his relentless head.
  • "Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, it's altogether impossible. What I
  • have got to say is about her ladyship. She is the pivot it all turns
  • on."
  • "Officer," retorts Sir Leicester with a fiery eye and a quivering
  • lip, "you know your duty. Do your duty, but be careful not to
  • overstep it. I would not suffer it. I would not endure it. You bring
  • my Lady's name into this communication upon your responsibility--upon
  • your responsibility. My Lady's name is not a name for common persons
  • to trifle with!"
  • "Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, I say what I must say, and no more."
  • "I hope it may prove so. Very well. Go on. Go on, sir!" Glancing at
  • the angry eyes which now avoid him and at the angry figure trembling
  • from head to foot, yet striving to be still, Mr. Bucket feels his way
  • with his forefinger and in a low voice proceeds.
  • "Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, it becomes my duty to tell you that
  • the deceased Mr. Tulkinghorn long entertained mistrusts and
  • suspicions of Lady Dedlock."
  • "If he had dared to breathe them to me, sir--which he never did--I
  • would have killed him myself!" exclaims Sir Leicester, striking his
  • hand upon the table. But in the very heat and fury of the act he
  • stops, fixed by the knowing eyes of Mr. Bucket, whose forefinger is
  • slowly going and who, with mingled confidence and patience, shakes
  • his head.
  • "Sir Leicester Dedlock, the deceased Mr. Tulkinghorn was deep and
  • close, and what he fully had in his mind in the very beginning I
  • can't quite take upon myself to say. But I know from his lips that he
  • long ago suspected Lady Dedlock of having discovered, through the
  • sight of some handwriting--in this very house, and when you yourself,
  • Sir Leicester Dedlock, were present--the existence, in great poverty,
  • of a certain person who had been her lover before you courted her and
  • who ought to have been her husband." Mr. Bucket stops and
  • deliberately repeats, "Ought to have been her husband, not a doubt
  • about it. I know from his lips that when that person soon afterwards
  • died, he suspected Lady Dedlock of visiting his wretched lodging and
  • his wretched grave, alone and in secret. I know from my own inquiries
  • and through my eyes and ears that Lady Dedlock did make such visit in
  • the dress of her own maid, for the deceased Mr. Tulkinghorn employed
  • me to reckon up her ladyship--if you'll excuse my making use of the
  • term we commonly employ--and I reckoned her up, so far, completely. I
  • confronted the maid in the chambers in Lincoln's Inn Fields with a
  • witness who had been Lady Dedlock's guide, and there couldn't be the
  • shadow of a doubt that she had worn the young woman's dress, unknown
  • to her. Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, I did endeavour to pave the
  • way a little towards these unpleasant disclosures yesterday by saying
  • that very strange things happened even in high families sometimes.
  • All this, and more, has happened in your own family, and to and
  • through your own Lady. It's my belief that the deceased Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn followed up these inquiries to the hour of his death and
  • that he and Lady Dedlock even had bad blood between them upon the
  • matter that very night. Now, only you put that to Lady Dedlock, Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, and ask her ladyship whether, even after
  • he had left here, she didn't go down to his chambers with the
  • intention of saying something further to him, dressed in a loose
  • black mantle with a deep fringe to it."
  • Sir Leicester sits like a statue, gazing at the cruel finger that is
  • probing the life-blood of his heart.
  • "You put that to her ladyship, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, from
  • me, Inspector Bucket of the Detective. And if her ladyship makes any
  • difficulty about admitting of it, you tell her that it's no use, that
  • Inspector Bucket knows it and knows that she passed the soldier as
  • you called him (though he's not in the army now) and knows that she
  • knows she passed him on the staircase. Now, Sir Leicester Dedlock,
  • Baronet, why do I relate all this?"
  • Sir Leicester, who has covered his face with his hands, uttering a
  • single groan, requests him to pause for a moment. By and by he takes
  • his hands away, and so preserves his dignity and outward calmness,
  • though there is no more colour in his face than in his white hair,
  • that Mr. Bucket is a little awed by him. Something frozen and fixed
  • is upon his manner, over and above its usual shell of haughtiness,
  • and Mr. Bucket soon detects an unusual slowness in his speech, with
  • now and then a curious trouble in beginning, which occasions him to
  • utter inarticulate sounds. With such sounds he now breaks silence,
  • soon, however, controlling himself to say that he does not comprehend
  • why a gentleman so faithful and zealous as the late Mr. Tulkinghorn
  • should have communicated to him nothing of this painful, this
  • distressing, this unlooked-for, this overwhelming, this incredible
  • intelligence.
  • "Again, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet," returns Mr. Bucket, "put it
  • to her ladyship to clear that up. Put it to her ladyship, if you
  • think it right, from Inspector Bucket of the Detective. You'll find,
  • or I'm much mistaken, that the deceased Mr. Tulkinghorn had the
  • intention of communicating the whole to you as soon as he considered
  • it ripe, and further, that he had given her ladyship so to
  • understand. Why, he might have been going to reveal it the very
  • morning when I examined the body! You don't know what I'm going to
  • say and do five minutes from this present time, Sir Leicester
  • Dedlock, Baronet; and supposing I was to be picked off now, you might
  • wonder why I hadn't done it, don't you see?"
  • True. Sir Leicester, avoiding, with some trouble those obtrusive
  • sounds, says, "True." At this juncture a considerable noise of voices
  • is heard in the hall. Mr. Bucket, after listening, goes to the
  • library-door, softly unlocks and opens it, and listens again. Then he
  • draws in his head and whispers hurriedly but composedly, "Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, this unfortunate family affair has taken
  • air, as I expected it might, the deceased Mr. Tulkinghorn being cut
  • down so sudden. The chance to hush it is to let in these people now
  • in a wrangle with your footmen. Would you mind sitting quiet--on the
  • family account--while I reckon 'em up? And would you just throw in a
  • nod when I seem to ask you for it?"
  • Sir Leicester indistinctly answers, "Officer. The best you can, the
  • best you can!" and Mr. Bucket, with a nod and a sagacious crook of
  • the forefinger, slips down into the hall, where the voices quickly
  • die away. He is not long in returning; a few paces ahead of Mercury
  • and a brother deity also powdered and in peach-blossomed smalls, who
  • bear between them a chair in which is an incapable old man. Another
  • man and two women come behind. Directing the pitching of the chair in
  • an affable and easy manner, Mr. Bucket dismisses the Mercuries and
  • locks the door again. Sir Leicester looks on at this invasion of the
  • sacred precincts with an icy stare.
  • "Now, perhaps you may know me, ladies and gentlemen," says Mr. Bucket
  • in a confidential voice. "I am Inspector Bucket of the Detective, I
  • am; and this," producing the tip of his convenient little staff from
  • his breast-pocket, "is my authority. Now, you wanted to see Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock, Baronet. Well! You do see him, and mind you, it
  • ain't every one as is admitted to that honour. Your name, old
  • gentleman, is Smallweed; that's what your name is; I know it well."
  • "Well, and you never heard any harm of it!" cries Mr. Smallweed in a
  • shrill loud voice.
  • "You don't happen to know why they killed the pig, do you?" retorts
  • Mr. Bucket with a steadfast look, but without loss of temper.
  • "No!"
  • "Why, they killed him," says Mr. Bucket, "on account of his having so
  • much cheek. Don't YOU get into the same position, because it isn't
  • worthy of you. You ain't in the habit of conversing with a deaf
  • person, are you?"
  • "Yes," snarls Mr. Smallweed, "my wife's deaf."
  • "That accounts for your pitching your voice so high. But as she ain't
  • here; just pitch it an octave or two lower, will you, and I'll not
  • only be obliged to you, but it'll do you more credit," says Mr.
  • Bucket. "This other gentleman is in the preaching line, I think?"
  • "Name of Chadband," Mr. Smallweed puts in, speaking henceforth in a
  • much lower key.
  • "Once had a friend and brother serjeant of the same name," says Mr.
  • Bucket, offering his hand, "and consequently feel a liking for it.
  • Mrs. Chadband, no doubt?"
  • "And Mrs. Snagsby," Mr. Smallweed introduces.
  • "Husband a law-stationer and a friend of my own," says Mr. Bucket.
  • "Love him like a brother! Now, what's up?"
  • "Do you mean what business have we come upon?" Mr. Smallweed asks, a
  • little dashed by the suddenness of this turn.
  • "Ah! You know what I mean. Let us hear what it's all about in
  • presence of Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet. Come."
  • Mr. Smallweed, beckoning Mr. Chadband, takes a moment's counsel with
  • him in a whisper. Mr. Chadband, expressing a considerable amount of
  • oil from the pores of his forehead and the palms of his hands, says
  • aloud, "Yes. You first!" and retires to his former place.
  • "I was the client and friend of Mr. Tulkinghorn," pipes Grandfather
  • Smallweed then; "I did business with him. I was useful to him, and he
  • was useful to me. Krook, dead and gone, was my brother-in-law. He was
  • own brother to a brimstone magpie--leastways Mrs. Smallweed. I come
  • into Krook's property. I examined all his papers and all his effects.
  • They was all dug out under my eyes. There was a bundle of letters
  • belonging to a dead and gone lodger as was hid away at the back of a
  • shelf in the side of Lady Jane's bed--his cat's bed. He hid all
  • manner of things away, everywheres. Mr. Tulkinghorn wanted 'em and
  • got 'em, but I looked 'em over first. I'm a man of business, and I
  • took a squint at 'em. They was letters from the lodger's sweetheart,
  • and she signed Honoria. Dear me, that's not a common name, Honoria,
  • is it? There's no lady in this house that signs Honoria is there? Oh,
  • no, I don't think so! Oh, no, I don't think so! And not in the same
  • hand, perhaps? Oh, no, I don't think so!"
  • Here Mr. Smallweed, seized with a fit of coughing in the midst of his
  • triumph, breaks off to ejaculate, "Oh, dear me! Oh, Lord! I'm shaken
  • all to pieces!"
  • "Now, when you're ready," says Mr. Bucket after awaiting his
  • recovery, "to come to anything that concerns Sir Leicester Dedlock,
  • Baronet, here the gentleman sits, you know."
  • "Haven't I come to it, Mr. Bucket?" cries Grandfather Smallweed.
  • "Isn't the gentleman concerned yet? Not with Captain Hawdon, and his
  • ever affectionate Honoria, and their child into the bargain? Come,
  • then, I want to know where those letters are. That concerns me, if it
  • don't concern Sir Leicester Dedlock. I will know where they are. I
  • won't have 'em disappear so quietly. I handed 'em over to my friend
  • and solicitor, Mr. Tulkinghorn, not to anybody else."
  • "Why, he paid you for them, you know, and handsome too," says Mr.
  • Bucket.
  • "I don't care for that. I want to know who's got 'em. And I tell you
  • what we want--what we all here want, Mr. Bucket. We want more
  • painstaking and search-making into this murder. We know where the
  • interest and the motive was, and you have not done enough. If George
  • the vagabond dragoon had any hand in it, he was only an accomplice,
  • and was set on. You know what I mean as well as any man."
  • "Now I tell you what," says Mr. Bucket, instantaneously altering his
  • manner, coming close to him, and communicating an extraordinary
  • fascination to the forefinger, "I am damned if I am a-going to have
  • my case spoilt, or interfered with, or anticipated by so much as half
  • a second of time by any human being in creation. YOU want more
  • painstaking and search-making! YOU do? Do you see this hand, and do
  • you think that I don't know the right time to stretch it out and put
  • it on the arm that fired that shot?"
  • Such is the dread power of the man, and so terribly evident it is
  • that he makes no idle boast, that Mr. Smallweed begins to apologize.
  • Mr. Bucket, dismissing his sudden anger, checks him.
  • "The advice I give you is, don't you trouble your head about the
  • murder. That's my affair. You keep half an eye on the newspapers, and
  • I shouldn't wonder if you was to read something about it before long,
  • if you look sharp. I know my business, and that's all I've got to say
  • to you on that subject. Now about those letters. You want to know
  • who's got 'em. I don't mind telling you. I have got 'em. Is that the
  • packet?"
  • Mr. Smallweed looks, with greedy eyes, at the little bundle Mr.
  • Bucket produces from a mysterious part of his coat, and identifies it
  • as the same.
  • "What have you got to say next?" asks Mr. Bucket. "Now, don't open
  • your mouth too wide, because you don't look handsome when you do it."
  • "I want five hundred pound."
  • "No, you don't; you mean fifty," says Mr. Bucket humorously.
  • It appears, however, that Mr. Smallweed means five hundred.
  • "That is, I am deputed by Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, to consider
  • (without admitting or promising anything) this bit of business," says
  • Mr. Bucket--Sir Leicester mechanically bows his head--"and you ask me
  • to consider a proposal of five hundred pounds. Why, it's an
  • unreasonable proposal! Two fifty would be bad enough, but better than
  • that. Hadn't you better say two fifty?"
  • Mr. Smallweed is quite clear that he had better not.
  • "Then," says Mr. Bucket, "let's hear Mr. Chadband. Lord! Many a time
  • I've heard my old fellow-serjeant of that name; and a moderate man he
  • was in all respects, as ever I come across!"
  • Thus invited, Mr. Chadband steps forth, and after a little sleek
  • smiling and a little oil-grinding with the palms of his hands,
  • delivers himself as follows, "My friends, we are now--Rachael, my
  • wife, and I--in the mansions of the rich and great. Why are we now in
  • the mansions of the rich and great, my friends? Is it because we are
  • invited? Because we are bidden to feast with them, because we are
  • bidden to rejoice with them, because we are bidden to play the lute
  • with them, because we are bidden to dance with them? No. Then why are
  • we here, my friends? Air we in possession of a sinful secret, and do
  • we require corn, and wine, and oil, or what is much the same thing,
  • money, for the keeping thereof? Probably so, my friends."
  • "You're a man of business, you are," returns Mr. Bucket, very
  • attentive, "and consequently you're going on to mention what the
  • nature of your secret is. You are right. You couldn't do better."
  • "Let us then, my brother, in a spirit of love," says Mr. Chadband
  • with a cunning eye, "proceed unto it. Rachael, my wife, advance!"
  • Mrs. Chadband, more than ready, so advances as to jostle her husband
  • into the background and confronts Mr. Bucket with a hard, frowning
  • smile.
  • "Since you want to know what we know," says she, "I'll tell you. I
  • helped to bring up Miss Hawdon, her ladyship's daughter. I was in the
  • service of her ladyship's sister, who was very sensitive to the
  • disgrace her ladyship brought upon her, and gave out, even to her
  • ladyship, that the child was dead--she WAS very nearly so--when she
  • was born. But she's alive, and I know her." With these words, and a
  • laugh, and laying a bitter stress on the word "ladyship," Mrs.
  • Chadband folds her arms and looks implacably at Mr. Bucket.
  • "I suppose now," returns that officer, "YOU will be expecting a
  • twenty-pound note or a present of about that figure?"
  • Mrs. Chadband merely laughs and contemptuously tells him he can
  • "offer" twenty pence.
  • "My friend the law-stationer's good lady, over there," says Mr.
  • Bucket, luring Mrs. Snagsby forward with the finger. "What may YOUR
  • game be, ma'am?"
  • Mrs. Snagsby is at first prevented, by tears and lamentations, from
  • stating the nature of her game, but by degrees it confusedly comes to
  • light that she is a woman overwhelmed with injuries and wrongs, whom
  • Mr. Snagsby has habitually deceived, abandoned, and sought to keep in
  • darkness, and whose chief comfort, under her afflictions, has been
  • the sympathy of the late Mr. Tulkinghorn, who showed so much
  • commiseration for her on one occasion of his calling in Cook's Court
  • in the absence of her perjured husband that she has of late
  • habitually carried to him all her woes. Everybody it appears, the
  • present company excepted, has plotted against Mrs. Snagsby's peace.
  • There is Mr. Guppy, clerk to Kenge and Carboy, who was at first as
  • open as the sun at noon, but who suddenly shut up as close as
  • midnight, under the influence--no doubt--of Mr. Snagsby's suborning
  • and tampering. There is Mr. Weevle, friend of Mr. Guppy, who lived
  • mysteriously up a court, owing to the like coherent causes. There was
  • Krook, deceased; there was Nimrod, deceased; and there was Jo,
  • deceased; and they were "all in it." In what, Mrs. Snagsby does not
  • with particularity express, but she knows that Jo was Mr. Snagsby's
  • son, "as well as if a trumpet had spoken it," and she followed Mr.
  • Snagsby when he went on his last visit to the boy, and if he was not
  • his son why did he go? The one occupation of her life has been, for
  • some time back, to follow Mr. Snagsby to and fro, and up and down,
  • and to piece suspicious circumstances together--and every
  • circumstance that has happened has been most suspicious; and in this
  • way she has pursued her object of detecting and confounding her false
  • husband, night and day. Thus did it come to pass that she brought the
  • Chadbands and Mr. Tulkinghorn together, and conferred with Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn on the change in Mr. Guppy, and helped to turn up the
  • circumstances in which the present company are interested, casually,
  • by the wayside, being still and ever on the great high road that is
  • to terminate in Mr. Snagsby's full exposure and a matrimonial
  • separation. All this, Mrs. Snagsby, as an injured woman, and the
  • friend of Mrs. Chadband, and the follower of Mr. Chadband, and the
  • mourner of the late Mr. Tulkinghorn, is here to certify under the
  • seal of confidence, with every possible confusion and involvement
  • possible and impossible, having no pecuniary motive whatever, no
  • scheme or project but the one mentioned, and bringing here, and
  • taking everywhere, her own dense atmosphere of dust, arising from the
  • ceaseless working of her mill of jealousy.
  • While this exordium is in hand--and it takes some time--Mr. Bucket,
  • who has seen through the transparency of Mrs. Snagsby's vinegar at a
  • glance, confers with his familiar demon and bestows his shrewd
  • attention on the Chadbands and Mr. Smallweed. Sir Leicester Dedlock
  • remains immovable, with the same icy surface upon him, except that he
  • once or twice looks towards Mr. Bucket, as relying on that officer
  • alone of all mankind.
  • "Very good," says Mr. Bucket. "Now I understand you, you know, and
  • being deputed by Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, to look into this
  • little matter," again Sir Leicester mechanically bows in confirmation
  • of the statement, "can give it my fair and full attention. Now I
  • won't allude to conspiring to extort money or anything of that sort,
  • because we are men and women of the world here, and our object is to
  • make things pleasant. But I tell you what I DO wonder at; I am
  • surprised that you should think of making a noise below in the hall.
  • It was so opposed to your interests. That's what I look at."
  • "We wanted to get in," pleads Mr. Smallweed.
  • "Why, of course you wanted to get in," Mr. Bucket asserts with
  • cheerfulness; "but for a old gentleman at your time of life--what I
  • call truly venerable, mind you!--with his wits sharpened, as I have
  • no doubt they are, by the loss of the use of his limbs, which
  • occasions all his animation to mount up into his head, not to
  • consider that if he don't keep such a business as the present as
  • close as possible it can't be worth a mag to him, is so curious! You
  • see your temper got the better of you; that's where you lost ground,"
  • says Mr. Bucket in an argumentative and friendly way.
  • "I only said I wouldn't go without one of the servants came up to Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock," returns Mr. Smallweed.
  • "That's it! That's where your temper got the better of you. Now, you
  • keep it under another time and you'll make money by it. Shall I ring
  • for them to carry you down?"
  • "When are we to hear more of this?" Mrs. Chadband sternly demands.
  • "Bless your heart for a true woman! Always curious, your delightful
  • sex is!" replies Mr. Bucket with gallantry. "I shall have the
  • pleasure of giving you a call to-morrow or next day--not forgetting
  • Mr. Smallweed and his proposal of two fifty."
  • "Five hundred!" exclaims Mr. Smallweed.
  • "All right! Nominally five hundred." Mr. Bucket has his hand on the
  • bell-rope. "SHALL I wish you good day for the present on the part of
  • myself and the gentleman of the house?" he asks in an insinuating
  • tone.
  • Nobody having the hardihood to object to his doing so, he does it,
  • and the party retire as they came up. Mr. Bucket follows them to the
  • door, and returning, says with an air of serious business, "Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, it's for you to consider whether or not
  • to buy this up. I should recommend, on the whole, it's being bought
  • up myself; and I think it may be bought pretty cheap. You see, that
  • little pickled cowcumber of a Mrs. Snagsby has been used by all sides
  • of the speculation and has done a deal more harm in bringing odds and
  • ends together than if she had meant it. Mr. Tulkinghorn, deceased, he
  • held all these horses in his hand and could have drove 'em his own
  • way, I haven't a doubt; but he was fetched off the box head-foremost,
  • and now they have got their legs over the traces, and are all
  • dragging and pulling their own ways. So it is, and such is life. The
  • cat's away, and the mice they play; the frost breaks up, and the
  • water runs. Now, with regard to the party to be apprehended."
  • Sir Leicester seems to wake, though his eyes have been wide open, and
  • he looks intently at Mr. Bucket as Mr. Bucket refers to his watch.
  • "The party to be apprehended is now in this house," proceeds Mr.
  • Bucket, putting up his watch with a steady hand and with rising
  • spirits, "and I'm about to take her into custody in your presence.
  • Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, don't you say a word nor yet stir.
  • There'll be no noise and no disturbance at all. I'll come back in the
  • course of the evening, if agreeable to you, and endeavour to meet
  • your wishes respecting this unfortunate family matter and the
  • nobbiest way of keeping it quiet. Now, Sir Leicester Dedlock,
  • Baronet, don't you be nervous on account of the apprehension at
  • present coming off. You shall see the whole case clear, from first to
  • last."
  • Mr. Bucket rings, goes to the door, briefly whispers Mercury, shuts
  • the door, and stands behind it with his arms folded. After a suspense
  • of a minute or two the door slowly opens and a Frenchwoman enters.
  • Mademoiselle Hortense.
  • The moment she is in the room Mr. Bucket claps the door to and puts
  • his back against it. The suddenness of the noise occasions her to
  • turn, and then for the first time she sees Sir Leicester Dedlock in
  • his chair.
  • "I ask you pardon," she mutters hurriedly. "They tell me there was no
  • one here."
  • Her step towards the door brings her front to front with Mr. Bucket.
  • Suddenly a spasm shoots across her face and she turns deadly pale.
  • "This is my lodger, Sir Leicester Dedlock," says Mr. Bucket, nodding
  • at her. "This foreign young woman has been my lodger for some weeks
  • back."
  • "What do Sir Leicester care for that, you think, my angel?" returns
  • mademoiselle in a jocular strain.
  • "Why, my angel," returns Mr. Bucket, "we shall see."
  • Mademoiselle Hortense eyes him with a scowl upon her tight face,
  • which gradually changes into a smile of scorn, "You are very
  • mysterieuse. Are you drunk?"
  • "Tolerable sober, my angel," returns Mr. Bucket.
  • "I come from arriving at this so detestable house with your wife.
  • Your wife have left me since some minutes. They tell me downstairs
  • that your wife is here. I come here, and your wife is not here. What
  • is the intention of this fool's play, say then?" mademoiselle
  • demands, with her arms composedly crossed, but with something in her
  • dark cheek beating like a clock.
  • Mr. Bucket merely shakes the finger at her.
  • "Ah, my God, you are an unhappy idiot!" cries mademoiselle with a
  • toss of her head and a laugh. "Leave me to pass downstairs, great
  • pig." With a stamp of her foot and a menace.
  • "Now, mademoiselle," says Mr. Bucket in a cool determined way, "you
  • go and sit down upon that sofy."
  • "I will not sit down upon nothing," she replies with a shower of
  • nods.
  • "Now, mademoiselle," repeats Mr. Bucket, making no demonstration
  • except with the finger, "you sit down upon that sofy."
  • "Why?"
  • "Because I take you into custody on a charge of murder, and you don't
  • need to be told it. Now, I want to be polite to one of your sex and a
  • foreigner if I can. If I can't, I must be rough, and there's rougher
  • ones outside. What I am to be depends on you. So I recommend you, as
  • a friend, afore another half a blessed moment has passed over your
  • head, to go and sit down upon that sofy."
  • Mademoiselle complies, saying in a concentrated voice while that
  • something in her cheek beats fast and hard, "You are a devil."
  • "Now, you see," Mr. Bucket proceeds approvingly, "you're comfortable
  • and conducting yourself as I should expect a foreign young woman of
  • your sense to do. So I'll give you a piece of advice, and it's this,
  • don't you talk too much. You're not expected to say anything here,
  • and you can't keep too quiet a tongue in your head. In short, the
  • less you PARLAY, the better, you know." Mr. Bucket is very complacent
  • over this French explanation.
  • Mademoiselle, with that tigerish expansion of the mouth and her black
  • eyes darting fire upon him, sits upright on the sofa in a rigid
  • state, with her hands clenched--and her feet too, one might
  • suppose--muttering, "Oh, you Bucket, you are a devil!"
  • "Now, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet," says Mr. Bucket, and from this
  • time forth the finger never rests, "this young woman, my lodger, was
  • her ladyship's maid at the time I have mentioned to you; and this
  • young woman, besides being extraordinary vehement and passionate
  • against her ladyship after being discharged--"
  • "Lie!" cries mademoiselle. "I discharge myself."
  • "Now, why don't you take my advice?" returns Mr. Bucket in an
  • impressive, almost in an imploring, tone. "I'm surprised at the
  • indiscreetness you commit. You'll say something that'll be used
  • against you, you know. You're sure to come to it. Never you mind what
  • I say till it's given in evidence. It is not addressed to you."
  • "Discharge, too," cries mademoiselle furiously, "by her ladyship! Eh,
  • my faith, a pretty ladyship! Why, I r-r-r-ruin my character by
  • remaining with a ladyship so infame!"
  • "Upon my soul I wonder at you!" Mr. Bucket remonstrates. "I thought
  • the French were a polite nation, I did, really. Yet to hear a female
  • going on like that before Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet!"
  • "He is a poor abused!" cries mademoiselle. "I spit upon his house,
  • upon his name, upon his imbecility," all of which she makes the
  • carpet represent. "Oh, that he is a great man! Oh, yes, superb! Oh,
  • heaven! Bah!"
  • "Well, Sir Leicester Dedlock," proceeds Mr. Bucket, "this intemperate
  • foreigner also angrily took it into her head that she had established
  • a claim upon Mr. Tulkinghorn, deceased, by attending on the occasion
  • I told you of at his chambers, though she was liberally paid for her
  • time and trouble."
  • "Lie!" cries mademoiselle. "I ref-use his money all togezzer."
  • "If you WILL PARLAY, you know," says Mr. Bucket parenthetically, "you
  • must take the consequences. Now, whether she became my lodger, Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock, with any deliberate intention then of doing this
  • deed and blinding me, I give no opinion on; but she lived in my house
  • in that capacity at the time that she was hovering about the chambers
  • of the deceased Mr. Tulkinghorn with a view to a wrangle, and
  • likewise persecuting and half frightening the life out of an
  • unfortunate stationer."
  • "Lie!" cries mademoiselle. "All lie!"
  • "The murder was committed, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, and you
  • know under what circumstances. Now, I beg of you to follow me close
  • with your attention for a minute or two. I was sent for, and the case
  • was entrusted to me. I examined the place, and the body, and the
  • papers, and everything. From information I received (from a clerk in
  • the same house) I took George into custody as having been seen
  • hanging about there on the night, and at very nigh the time of the
  • murder, also as having been overheard in high words with the deceased
  • on former occasions--even threatening him, as the witness made out.
  • If you ask me, Sir Leicester Dedlock, whether from the first I
  • believed George to be the murderer, I tell you candidly no, but he
  • might be, notwithstanding, and there was enough against him to make
  • it my duty to take him and get him kept under remand. Now, observe!"
  • As Mr. Bucket bends forward in some excitement--for him--and
  • inaugurates what he is going to say with one ghostly beat of his
  • forefinger in the air, Mademoiselle Hortense fixes her black eyes
  • upon him with a dark frown and sets her dry lips closely and firmly
  • together.
  • "I went home, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, at night and found this
  • young woman having supper with my wife, Mrs. Bucket. She had made a
  • mighty show of being fond of Mrs. Bucket from her first offering
  • herself as our lodger, but that night she made more than ever--in
  • fact, overdid it. Likewise she overdid her respect, and all that, for
  • the lamented memory of the deceased Mr. Tulkinghorn. By the living
  • Lord it flashed upon me, as I sat opposite to her at the table and
  • saw her with a knife in her hand, that she had done it!"
  • Mademoiselle is hardly audible in straining through her teeth and
  • lips the words, "You are a devil."
  • "Now where," pursues Mr. Bucket, "had she been on the night of the
  • murder? She had been to the theayter. (She really was there, I have
  • since found, both before the deed and after it.) I knew I had an
  • artful customer to deal with and that proof would be very difficult;
  • and I laid a trap for her--such a trap as I never laid yet, and such
  • a venture as I never made yet. I worked it out in my mind while I was
  • talking to her at supper. When I went upstairs to bed, our house
  • being small and this young woman's ears sharp, I stuffed the sheet
  • into Mrs. Bucket's mouth that she shouldn't say a word of surprise
  • and told her all about it. My dear, don't you give your mind to that
  • again, or I shall link your feet together at the ankles." Mr. Bucket,
  • breaking off, has made a noiseless descent upon mademoiselle and laid
  • his heavy hand upon her shoulder.
  • "What is the matter with you now?" she asks him.
  • "Don't you think any more," returns Mr. Bucket with admonitory
  • finger, "of throwing yourself out of window. That's what's the matter
  • with me. Come! Just take my arm. You needn't get up; I'll sit down by
  • you. Now take my arm, will you? I'm a married man, you know; you're
  • acquainted with my wife. Just take my arm."
  • Vainly endeavouring to moisten those dry lips, with a painful sound
  • she struggles with herself and complies.
  • "Now we're all right again. Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, this case
  • could never have been the case it is but for Mrs. Bucket, who is a
  • woman in fifty thousand--in a hundred and fifty thousand! To throw
  • this young woman off her guard, I have never set foot in our house
  • since, though I've communicated with Mrs. Bucket in the baker's
  • loaves and in the milk as often as required. My whispered words to
  • Mrs. Bucket when she had the sheet in her mouth were, 'My dear, can
  • you throw her off continually with natural accounts of my suspicions
  • against George, and this, and that, and t'other? Can you do without
  • rest and keep watch upon her night and day? Can you undertake to say,
  • 'She shall do nothing without my knowledge, she shall be my prisoner
  • without suspecting it, she shall no more escape from me than from
  • death, and her life shall be my life, and her soul my soul, till I
  • have got her, if she did this murder?' Mrs. Bucket says to me, as
  • well as she could speak on account of the sheet, 'Bucket, I can!' And
  • she has acted up to it glorious!"
  • "Lies!" mademoiselle interposes. "All lies, my friend!"
  • "Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, how did my calculations come out
  • under these circumstances? When I calculated that this impetuous
  • young woman would overdo it in new directions, was I wrong or right?
  • I was right. What does she try to do? Don't let it give you a turn?
  • To throw the murder on her ladyship."
  • Sir Leicester rises from his chair and staggers down again.
  • "And she got encouragement in it from hearing that I was always here,
  • which was done a-purpose. Now, open that pocket-book of mine, Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock, if I may take the liberty of throwing it towards
  • you, and look at the letters sent to me, each with the two words
  • 'Lady Dedlock' in it. Open the one directed to yourself, which I
  • stopped this very morning, and read the three words 'Lady Dedlock,
  • Murderess' in it. These letters have been falling about like a shower
  • of lady-birds. What do you say now to Mrs. Bucket, from her spy-place
  • having seen them all 'written by this young woman? What do you say to
  • Mrs. Bucket having, within this half-hour, secured the corresponding
  • ink and paper, fellow half-sheets and what not? What do you say to
  • Mrs. Bucket having watched the posting of 'em every one by this young
  • woman, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet?" Mr. Bucket asks, triumphant
  • in his admiration of his lady's genius.
  • Two things are especially observable as Mr. Bucket proceeds to a
  • conclusion. First, that he seems imperceptibly to establish a
  • dreadful right of property in mademoiselle. Secondly, that the very
  • atmosphere she breathes seems to narrow and contract about her as if
  • a close net or a pall were being drawn nearer and yet nearer around
  • her breathless figure.
  • "There is no doubt that her ladyship was on the spot at the eventful
  • period," says Mr. Bucket, "and my foreign friend here saw her, I
  • believe, from the upper part of the staircase. Her ladyship and
  • George and my foreign friend were all pretty close on one another's
  • heels. But that don't signify any more, so I'll not go into it. I
  • found the wadding of the pistol with which the deceased Mr.
  • Tulkinghorn was shot. It was a bit of the printed description of your
  • house at Chesney Wold. Not much in that, you'll say, Sir Leicester
  • Dedlock, Baronet. No. But when my foreign friend here is so
  • thoroughly off her guard as to think it a safe time to tear up the
  • rest of that leaf, and when Mrs. Bucket puts the pieces together and
  • finds the wadding wanting, it begins to look like Queer Street."
  • "These are very long lies," mademoiselle interposes. "You prose great
  • deal. Is it that you have almost all finished, or are you speaking
  • always?"
  • "Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet," proceeds Mr. Bucket, who delights
  • in a full title and does violence to himself when he dispenses with
  • any fragment of it, "the last point in the case which I am now going
  • to mention shows the necessity of patience in our business, and never
  • doing a thing in a hurry. I watched this young woman yesterday
  • without her knowledge when she was looking at the funeral, in company
  • with my wife, who planned to take her there; and I had so much to
  • convict her, and I saw such an expression in her face, and my mind so
  • rose against her malice towards her ladyship, and the time was
  • altogether such a time for bringing down what you may call
  • retribution upon her, that if I had been a younger hand with less
  • experience, I should have taken her, certain. Equally, last night,
  • when her ladyship, as is so universally admired I am sure, come home
  • looking--why, Lord, a man might almost say like Venus rising from the
  • ocean--it was so unpleasant and inconsistent to think of her being
  • charged with a murder of which she was innocent that I felt quite to
  • want to put an end to the job. What should I have lost? Sir Leicester
  • Dedlock, Baronet, I should have lost the weapon. My prisoner here
  • proposed to Mrs. Bucket, after the departure of the funeral, that
  • they should go per bus a little ways into the country and take tea at
  • a very decent house of entertainment. Now, near that house of
  • entertainment there's a piece of water. At tea, my prisoner got up to
  • fetch her pocket handkercher from the bedroom where the bonnets was;
  • she was rather a long time gone and came back a little out of wind.
  • As soon as they came home this was reported to me by Mrs. Bucket,
  • along with her observations and suspicions. I had the piece of water
  • dragged by moonlight, in presence of a couple of our men, and the
  • pocket pistol was brought up before it had been there half-a-dozen
  • hours. Now, my dear, put your arm a little further through mine, and
  • hold it steady, and I shan't hurt you!"
  • In a trice Mr. Bucket snaps a handcuff on her wrist. "That's one,"
  • says Mr. Bucket. "Now the other, darling. Two, and all told!"
  • He rises; she rises too. "Where," she asks him, darkening her large
  • eyes until their drooping lids almost conceal them--and yet they
  • stare, "where is your false, your treacherous, and cursed wife?"
  • "She's gone forrard to the Police Office," returns Mr. Bucket.
  • "You'll see her there, my dear."
  • "I would like to kiss her!" exclaims Mademoiselle Hortense, panting
  • tigress-like.
  • "You'd bite her, I suspect," says Mr. Bucket.
  • "I would!" making her eyes very large. "I would love to tear her limb
  • from limb."
  • "Bless you, darling," says Mr. Bucket with the greatest composure,
  • "I'm fully prepared to hear that. Your sex have such a surprising
  • animosity against one another when you do differ. You don't mind me
  • half so much, do you?"
  • "No. Though you are a devil still."
  • "Angel and devil by turns, eh?" cries Mr. Bucket. "But I am in my
  • regular employment, you must consider. Let me put your shawl tidy.
  • I've been lady's maid to a good many before now. Anything wanting to
  • the bonnet? There's a cab at the door."
  • Mademoiselle Hortense, casting an indignant eye at the glass, shakes
  • herself perfectly neat in one shake and looks, to do her justice,
  • uncommonly genteel.
  • "Listen then, my angel," says she after several sarcastic nods. "You
  • are very spiritual. But can you restore him back to life?"
  • Mr. Bucket answers, "Not exactly."
  • "That is droll. Listen yet one time. You are very spiritual. Can you
  • make a honourable lady of her?"
  • "Don't be so malicious," says Mr. Bucket.
  • "Or a haughty gentleman of HIM?" cries mademoiselle, referring to Sir
  • Leicester with ineffable disdain. "Eh! Oh, then regard him! The poor
  • infant! Ha! Ha! Ha!"
  • "Come, come, why this is worse PARLAYING than the other," says Mr.
  • Bucket. "Come along!"
  • "You cannot do these things? Then you can do as you please with me.
  • It is but the death, it is all the same. Let us go, my angel. Adieu,
  • you old man, grey. I pity you, and I despise you!"
  • With these last words she snaps her teeth together as if her mouth
  • closed with a spring. It is impossible to describe how Mr. Bucket
  • gets her out, but he accomplishes that feat in a manner so peculiar
  • to himself, enfolding and pervading her like a cloud, and hovering
  • away with her as if he were a homely Jupiter and she the object of
  • his affections.
  • Sir Leicester, left alone, remains in the same attitude, as though he
  • were still listening and his attention were still occupied. At length
  • he gazes round the empty room, and finding it deserted, rises
  • unsteadily to his feet, pushes back his chair, and walks a few steps,
  • supporting himself by the table. Then he stops, and with more of
  • those inarticulate sounds, lifts up his eyes and seems to stare at
  • something.
  • Heaven knows what he sees. The green, green woods of Chesney Wold,
  • the noble house, the pictures of his forefathers, strangers defacing
  • them, officers of police coarsely handling his most precious
  • heirlooms, thousands of fingers pointing at him, thousands of faces
  • sneering at him. But if such shadows flit before him to his
  • bewilderment, there is one other shadow which he can name with
  • something like distinctness even yet and to which alone he addresses
  • his tearing of his white hair and his extended arms.
  • It is she in association with whom, saving that she has been for
  • years a main fibre of the root of his dignity and pride, he has never
  • had a selfish thought. It is she whom he has loved, admired,
  • honoured, and set up for the world to respect. It is she who, at the
  • core of all the constrained formalities and conventionalities of his
  • life, has been a stock of living tenderness and love, susceptible as
  • nothing else is of being struck with the agony he feels. He sees her,
  • almost to the exclusion of himself, and cannot bear to look upon her
  • cast down from the high place she has graced so well.
  • And even to the point of his sinking on the ground, oblivious of his
  • suffering, he can yet pronounce her name with something like
  • distinctness in the midst of those intrusive sounds, and in a tone of
  • mourning and compassion rather than reproach.
  • CHAPTER LV
  • Flight
  • Inspector Bucket of the Detective has not yet struck his great blow,
  • as just now chronicled, but is yet refreshing himself with sleep
  • preparatory to his field-day, when through the night and along the
  • freezing wintry roads a chaise and pair comes out of Lincolnshire,
  • making its way towards London.
  • Railroads shall soon traverse all this country, and with a rattle and
  • a glare the engine and train shall shoot like a meteor over the wide
  • night-landscape, turning the moon paler; but as yet such things are
  • non-existent in these parts, though not wholly unexpected.
  • Preparations are afoot, measurements are made, ground is staked out.
  • Bridges are begun, and their not yet united piers desolately look at
  • one another over roads and streams like brick and mortar couples with
  • an obstacle to their union; fragments of embankments are thrown up
  • and left as precipices with torrents of rusty carts and barrows
  • tumbling over them; tripods of tall poles appear on hilltops, where
  • there are rumours of tunnels; everything looks chaotic and abandoned
  • in full hopelessness. Along the freezing roads, and through the
  • night, the post-chaise makes its way without a railroad on its mind.
  • Mrs. Rouncewell, so many years housekeeper at Chesney Wold, sits
  • within the chaise; and by her side sits Mrs. Bagnet with her grey
  • cloak and umbrella. The old girl would prefer the bar in front, as
  • being exposed to the weather and a primitive sort of perch more in
  • accordance with her usual course of travelling, but Mrs. Rouncewell
  • is too thoughtful of her comfort to admit of her proposing it. The
  • old lady cannot make enough of the old girl. She sits, in her stately
  • manner, holding her hand, and regardless of its roughness, puts it
  • often to her lips. "You are a mother, my dear soul," says she many
  • times, "and you found out my George's mother!"
  • "Why, George," returns Mrs. Bagnet, "was always free with me, ma'am,
  • and when he said at our house to my Woolwich that of all the things
  • my Woolwich could have to think of when he grew to be a man, the
  • comfortablest would be that he had never brought a sorrowful line
  • into his mother's face or turned a hair of her head grey, then I felt
  • sure, from his way, that something fresh had brought his own mother
  • into his mind. I had often known him say to me, in past times, that
  • he had behaved bad to her."
  • "Never, my dear!" returns Mrs. Rouncewell, bursting into tears. "My
  • blessing on him, never! He was always fond of me, and loving to me,
  • was my George! But he had a bold spirit, and he ran a little wild and
  • went for a soldier. And I know he waited at first, in letting us know
  • about himself, till he should rise to be an officer; and when he
  • didn't rise, I know he considered himself beneath us, and wouldn't be
  • a disgrace to us. For he had a lion heart, had my George, always from
  • a baby!"
  • The old lady's hands stray about her as of yore, while she recalls,
  • all in a tremble, what a likely lad, what a fine lad, what a gay
  • good-humoured clever lad he was; how they all took to him down at
  • Chesney Wold; how Sir Leicester took to him when he was a young
  • gentleman; how the dogs took to him; how even the people who had been
  • angry with him forgave him the moment he was gone, poor boy. And now
  • to see him after all, and in a prison too! And the broad stomacher
  • heaves, and the quaint upright old-fashioned figure bends under its
  • load of affectionate distress.
  • Mrs. Bagnet, with the instinctive skill of a good warm heart, leaves
  • the old housekeeper to her emotions for a little while--not without
  • passing the back of her hand across her own motherly eyes--and
  • presently chirps up in her cheery manner, "So I says to George when I
  • goes to call him in to tea (he pretended to be smoking his pipe
  • outside), 'What ails you this afternoon, George, for gracious sake? I
  • have seen all sorts, and I have seen you pretty often in season and
  • out of season, abroad and at home, and I never see you so melancholy
  • penitent.' 'Why, Mrs. Bagnet,' says George, 'it's because I AM
  • melancholy and penitent both, this afternoon, that you see me so.'
  • 'What have you done, old fellow?' I says. 'Why, Mrs. Bagnet,' says
  • George, shaking his head, 'what I have done has been done this many a
  • long year, and is best not tried to be undone now. If I ever get to
  • heaven it won't be for being a good son to a widowed mother; I say no
  • more.' Now, ma'am, when George says to me that it's best not tried to
  • be undone now, I have my thoughts as I have often had before, and I
  • draw it out of George how he comes to have such things on him that
  • afternoon. Then George tells me that he has seen by chance, at the
  • lawyer's office, a fine old lady that has brought his mother plain
  • before him, and he runs on about that old lady till he quite forgets
  • himself and paints her picture to me as she used to be, years upon
  • years back. So I says to George when he has done, who is this old
  • lady he has seen? And George tells me it's Mrs. Rouncewell,
  • housekeeper for more than half a century to the Dedlock family down
  • at Chesney Wold in Lincolnshire. George has frequently told me before
  • that he's a Lincolnshire man, and I says to my old Lignum that night,
  • 'Lignum, that's his mother for five and for-ty pound!'"
  • All this Mrs. Bagnet now relates for the twentieth time at least
  • within the last four hours. Trilling it out like a kind of bird, with
  • a pretty high note, that it may be audible to the old lady above the
  • hum of the wheels.
  • "Bless you, and thank you," says Mrs. Rouncewell. "Bless you, and
  • thank you, my worthy soul!"
  • "Dear heart!" cries Mrs. Bagnet in the most natural manner. "No
  • thanks to me, I am sure. Thanks to yourself, ma'am, for being so
  • ready to pay 'em! And mind once more, ma'am, what you had best do
  • on finding George to be your own son is to make him--for your
  • sake--have every sort of help to put himself in the right and clear
  • himself of a charge of which he is as innocent as you or me. It won't
  • do to have truth and justice on his side; he must have law and
  • lawyers," exclaims the old girl, apparently persuaded that the latter
  • form a separate establishment and have dissolved partnership with
  • truth and justice for ever and a day.
  • "He shall have," says Mrs. Rouncewell, "all the help that can be got
  • for him in the world, my dear. I will spend all I have, and
  • thankfully, to procure it. Sir Leicester will do his best, the whole
  • family will do their best. I--I know something, my dear; and will
  • make my own appeal, as his mother parted from him all these years,
  • and finding him in a jail at last."
  • The extreme disquietude of the old housekeeper's manner in saying
  • this, her broken words, and her wringing of her hands make a powerful
  • impression on Mrs. Bagnet and would astonish her but that she refers
  • them all to her sorrow for her son's condition. And yet Mrs. Bagnet
  • wonders too why Mrs. Rouncewell should murmur so distractedly, "My
  • Lady, my Lady, my Lady!" over and over again.
  • The frosty night wears away, and the dawn breaks, and the post-chaise
  • comes rolling on through the early mist like the ghost of a chaise
  • departed. It has plenty of spectral company in ghosts of trees and
  • hedges, slowly vanishing and giving place to the realities of day.
  • London reached, the travellers alight, the old housekeeper in great
  • tribulation and confusion, Mrs. Bagnet quite fresh and collected--as
  • she would be if her next point, with no new equipage and outfit, were
  • the Cape of Good Hope, the Island of Ascension, Hong Kong, or any
  • other military station.
  • But when they set out for the prison where the trooper is
  • confined, the old lady has managed to draw about her, with her
  • lavender-coloured dress, much of the staid calmness which is its
  • usual accompaniment. A wonderfully grave, precise, and handsome piece
  • of old china she looks, though her heart beats fast and her stomacher
  • is ruffled more than even the remembrance of this wayward son has
  • ruffled it these many years.
  • Approaching the cell, they find the door opening and a warder in the
  • act of coming out. The old girl promptly makes a sign of entreaty to
  • him to say nothing; assenting with a nod, he suffers them to enter as
  • he shuts the door.
  • So George, who is writing at his table, supposing himself to be
  • alone, does not raise his eyes, but remains absorbed. The old
  • housekeeper looks at him, and those wandering hands of hers are quite
  • enough for Mrs. Bagnet's confirmation, even if she could see the
  • mother and the son together, knowing what she knows, and doubt their
  • relationship.
  • Not a rustle of the housekeeper's dress, not a gesture, not a word
  • betrays her. She stands looking at him as he writes on, all
  • unconscious, and only her fluttering hands give utterance to her
  • emotions. But they are very eloquent, very, very eloquent. Mrs.
  • Bagnet understands them. They speak of gratitude, of joy, of grief,
  • of hope; of inextinguishable affection, cherished with no return
  • since this stalwart man was a stripling; of a better son loved less,
  • and this son loved so fondly and so proudly; and they speak in such
  • touching language that Mrs. Bagnet's eyes brim up with tears and they
  • run glistening down her sun-brown face.
  • "George Rouncewell! Oh, my dear child, turn and look at me!"
  • The trooper starts up, clasps his mother round the neck, and falls
  • down on his knees before her. Whether in a late repentance, whether
  • in the first association that comes back upon him, he puts his hands
  • together as a child does when it says its prayers, and raising them
  • towards her breast, bows down his head, and cries.
  • "My George, my dearest son! Always my favourite, and my favourite
  • still, where have you been these cruel years and years? Grown such a
  • man too, grown such a fine strong man. Grown so like what I knew he
  • must be, if it pleased God he was alive!"
  • She can ask, and he can answer, nothing connected for a time. All
  • that time the old girl, turned away, leans one arm against the
  • whitened wall, leans her honest forehead upon it, wipes her eyes with
  • her serviceable grey cloak, and quite enjoys herself like the best of
  • old girls as she is.
  • "Mother," says the trooper when they are more composed, "forgive me
  • first of all, for I know my need of it."
  • Forgive him! She does it with all her heart and soul. She always has
  • done it. She tells him how she has had it written in her will, these
  • many years, that he was her beloved son George. She has never
  • believed any ill of him, never. If she had died without this
  • happiness--and she is an old woman now and can't look to live very
  • long--she would have blessed him with her last breath, if she had had
  • her senses, as her beloved son George.
  • "Mother, I have been an undutiful trouble to you, and I have my
  • reward; but of late years I have had a kind of glimmering of a
  • purpose in me too. When I left home I didn't care much, mother--I am
  • afraid not a great deal--for leaving; and went away and 'listed,
  • harum-scarum, making believe to think that I cared for nobody, no not
  • I, and that nobody cared for me."
  • The trooper has dried his eyes and put away his handkerchief, but
  • there is an extraordinary contrast between his habitual manner of
  • expressing himself and carrying himself and the softened tone in
  • which he speaks, interrupted occasionally by a half-stifled sob.
  • "So I wrote a line home, mother, as you too well know, to say I had
  • 'listed under another name, and I went abroad. Abroad, at one time I
  • thought I would write home next year, when I might be better off; and
  • when that year was out, I thought I would write home next year, when
  • I might be better off; and when that year was out again, perhaps I
  • didn't think much about it. So on, from year to year, through a
  • service of ten years, till I began to get older, and to ask myself
  • why should I ever write."
  • "I don't find any fault, child--but not to ease my mind, George? Not
  • a word to your loving mother, who was growing older too?"
  • This almost overturns the trooper afresh, but he sets himself up with
  • a great, rough, sounding clearance of his throat.
  • "Heaven forgive me, mother, but I thought there would be small
  • consolation then in hearing anything about me. There were you,
  • respected and esteemed. There was my brother, as I read in chance
  • North Country papers now and then, rising to be prosperous and
  • famous. There was I a dragoon, roving, unsettled, not self-made like
  • him, but self-unmade--all my earlier advantages thrown away, all my
  • little learning unlearnt, nothing picked up but what unfitted me for
  • most things that I could think of. What business had I to make myself
  • known? After letting all that time go by me, what good could come of
  • it? The worst was past with you, mother. I knew by that time (being a
  • man) how you had mourned for me, and wept for me, and prayed for me;
  • and the pain was over, or was softened down, and I was better in your
  • mind as it was."
  • The old lady sorrowfully shakes her head, and taking one of his
  • powerful hands, lays it lovingly upon her shoulder.
  • "No, I don't say that it was so, mother, but that I made it out to be
  • so. I said just now, what good could come of it? Well, my dear
  • mother, some good might have come of it to myself--and there was the
  • meanness of it. You would have sought me out; you would have
  • purchased my discharge; you would have taken me down to Chesney Wold;
  • you would have brought me and my brother and my brother's family
  • together; you would all have considered anxiously how to do something
  • for me and set me up as a respectable civilian. But how could any of
  • you feel sure of me when I couldn't so much as feel sure of myself?
  • How could you help regarding as an incumbrance and a discredit to you
  • an idle dragooning chap who was an incumbrance and a discredit to
  • himself, excepting under discipline? How could I look my brother's
  • children in the face and pretend to set them an example--I, the
  • vagabond boy who had run away from home and been the grief and
  • unhappiness of my mother's life? 'No, George.' Such were my words,
  • mother, when I passed this in review before me: 'You have made your
  • bed. Now, lie upon it.'"
  • Mrs. Rouncewell, drawing up her stately form, shakes her head at the
  • old girl with a swelling pride upon her, as much as to say, "I told
  • you so!" The old girl relieves her feelings and testifies her
  • interest in the conversation by giving the trooper a great poke
  • between the shoulders with her umbrella; this action she afterwards
  • repeats, at intervals, in a species of affectionate lunacy, never
  • failing, after the administration of each of these remonstrances, to
  • resort to the whitened wall and the grey cloak again.
  • "This was the way I brought myself to think, mother, that my best
  • amends was to lie upon that bed I had made, and die upon it. And I
  • should have done it (though I have been to see you more than once
  • down at Chesney Wold, when you little thought of me) but for my old
  • comrade's wife here, who I find has been too many for me. But I thank
  • her for it. I thank you for it, Mrs. Bagnet, with all my heart and
  • might."
  • To which Mrs. Bagnet responds with two pokes.
  • And now the old lady impresses upon her son George, her own dear
  • recovered boy, her joy and pride, the light of her eyes, the happy
  • close of her life, and every fond name she can think of, that he must
  • be governed by the best advice obtainable by money and influence,
  • that he must yield up his case to the greatest lawyers that can be
  • got, that he must act in this serious plight as he shall be advised
  • to act and must not be self-willed, however right, but must promise
  • to think only of his poor old mother's anxiety and suffering until he
  • is released, or he will break her heart.
  • "Mother, 'tis little enough to consent to," returns the trooper,
  • stopping her with a kiss; "tell me what I shall do, and I'll make a
  • late beginning and do it. Mrs. Bagnet, you'll take care of my mother,
  • I know?"
  • A very hard poke from the old girl's umbrella.
  • "If you'll bring her acquainted with Mr. Jarndyce and Miss Summerson,
  • she will find them of her way of thinking, and they will give her the
  • best advice and assistance."
  • "And, George," says the old lady, "we must send with all haste for
  • your brother. He is a sensible sound man as they tell me--out in the
  • world beyond Chesney Wold, my dear, though I don't know much of it
  • myself--and will be of great service."
  • "Mother," returns the trooper, "is it too soon to ask a favour?"
  • "Surely not, my dear."
  • "Then grant me this one great favour. Don't let my brother know."
  • "Not know what, my dear?"
  • "Not know of me. In fact, mother, I can't bear it; I can't make up my
  • mind to it. He has proved himself so different from me and has done
  • so much to raise himself while I've been soldiering that I haven't
  • brass enough in my composition to see him in this place and under
  • this charge. How could a man like him be expected to have any
  • pleasure in such a discovery? It's impossible. No, keep my secret
  • from him, mother; do me a greater kindness than I deserve and keep my
  • secret from my brother, of all men."
  • "But not always, dear George?"
  • "Why, mother, perhaps not for good and all--though I may come to ask
  • that too--but keep it now, I do entreat you. If it's ever broke to
  • him that his rip of a brother has turned up, I could wish," says the
  • trooper, shaking his head very doubtfully, "to break it myself and be
  • governed as to advancing or retreating by the way in which he seems
  • to take it."
  • As he evidently has a rooted feeling on this point, and as the depth
  • of it is recognized in Mrs. Bagnet's face, his mother yields her
  • implicit assent to what he asks. For this he thanks her kindly.
  • "In all other respects, my dear mother, I'll be as tractable and
  • obedient as you can wish; on this one alone, I stand out. So now I am
  • ready even for the lawyers. I have been drawing up," he glances at
  • his writing on the table, "an exact account of what I knew of the
  • deceased and how I came to be involved in this unfortunate affair.
  • It's entered, plain and regular, like an orderly-book; not a word in
  • it but what's wanted for the facts. I did intend to read it, straight
  • on end, whensoever I was called upon to say anything in my defence. I
  • hope I may be let to do it still; but I have no longer a will of my
  • own in this case, and whatever is said or done, I give my promise not
  • to have any."
  • Matters being brought to this so far satisfactory pass, and time
  • being on the wane, Mrs. Bagnet proposes a departure. Again and again
  • the old lady hangs upon her son's neck, and again and again the
  • trooper holds her to his broad chest.
  • "Where are you going to take my mother, Mrs. Bagnet?"
  • "I am going to the town house, my dear, the family house. I have some
  • business there that must be looked to directly," Mrs. Rouncewell
  • answers.
  • "Will you see my mother safe there in a coach, Mrs. Bagnet? But of
  • course I know you will. Why should I ask it!"
  • Why indeed, Mrs. Bagnet expresses with the umbrella.
  • "Take her, my old friend, and take my gratitude along with you.
  • Kisses to Quebec and Malta, love to my godson, a hearty shake of the
  • hand to Lignum, and this for yourself, and I wish it was ten thousand
  • pound in gold, my dear!" So saying, the trooper puts his lips to the
  • old girl's tanned forehead, and the door shuts upon him in his cell.
  • No entreaties on the part of the good old housekeeper will induce
  • Mrs. Bagnet to retain the coach for her own conveyance home. Jumping
  • out cheerfully at the door of the Dedlock mansion and handing Mrs.
  • Rouncewell up the steps, the old girl shakes hands and trudges off,
  • arriving soon afterwards in the bosom of the Bagnet family and
  • falling to washing the greens as if nothing had happened.
  • My Lady is in that room in which she held her last conference with
  • the murdered man, and is sitting where she sat that night, and is
  • looking at the spot where he stood upon the hearth studying her so
  • leisurely, when a tap comes at the door. Who is it? Mrs. Rouncewell.
  • What has brought Mrs. Rouncewell to town so unexpectedly?
  • "Trouble, my Lady. Sad trouble. Oh, my Lady, may I beg a word with
  • you?"
  • What new occurrence is it that makes this tranquil old woman tremble
  • so? Far happier than her Lady, as her Lady has often thought, why
  • does she falter in this manner and look at her with such strange
  • mistrust?
  • "What is the matter? Sit down and take your breath."
  • "Oh, my Lady, my Lady. I have found my son--my youngest, who went
  • away for a soldier so long ago. And he is in prison."
  • "For debt?"
  • "Oh, no, my Lady; I would have paid any debt, and joyful."
  • "For what is he in prison then?"
  • "Charged with a murder, my Lady, of which he is as innocent as--as I
  • am. Accused of the murder of Mr. Tulkinghorn."
  • What does she mean by this look and this imploring gesture? Why does
  • she come so close? What is the letter that she holds?
  • "Lady Dedlock, my dear Lady, my good Lady, my kind Lady! You must
  • have a heart to feel for me, you must have a heart to forgive me. I
  • was in this family before you were born. I am devoted to it. But
  • think of my dear son wrongfully accused."
  • "I do not accuse him."
  • "No, my Lady, no. But others do, and he is in prison and in danger.
  • Oh, Lady Dedlock, if you can say but a word to help to clear him, say
  • it!"
  • What delusion can this be? What power does she suppose is in the
  • person she petitions to avert this unjust suspicion, if it be unjust?
  • Her Lady's handsome eyes regard her with astonishment, almost with
  • fear.
  • "My Lady, I came away last night from Chesney Wold to find my son in
  • my old age, and the step upon the Ghost's Walk was so constant and so
  • solemn that I never heard the like in all these years. Night after
  • night, as it has fallen dark, the sound has echoed through your
  • rooms, but last night it was awfullest. And as it fell dark last
  • night, my Lady, I got this letter."
  • "What letter is it?"
  • "Hush! Hush!" The housekeeper looks round and answers in a frightened
  • whisper, "My Lady, I have not breathed a word of it, I don't believe
  • what's written in it, I know it can't be true, I am sure and certain
  • that it is not true. But my son is in danger, and you must have a
  • heart to pity me. If you know of anything that is not known to
  • others, if you have any suspicion, if you have any clue at all, and
  • any reason for keeping it in your own breast, oh, my dear Lady, think
  • of me, and conquer that reason, and let it be known! This is the most
  • I consider possible. I know you are not a hard lady, but you go your
  • own way always without help, and you are not familiar with your
  • friends; and all who admire you--and all do--as a beautiful and
  • elegant lady, know you to be one far away from themselves who can't
  • be approached close. My Lady, you may have some proud or angry
  • reasons for disdaining to utter something that you know; if so, pray,
  • oh, pray, think of a faithful servant whose whole life has been
  • passed in this family which she dearly loves, and relent, and help to
  • clear my son! My Lady, my good Lady," the old housekeeper pleads with
  • genuine simplicity, "I am so humble in my place and you are by nature
  • so high and distant that you may not think what I feel for my child,
  • but I feel so much that I have come here to make so bold as to beg
  • and pray you not to be scornful of us if you can do us any right or
  • justice at this fearful time!"
  • Lady Dedlock raises her without one word, until she takes the letter
  • from her hand.
  • "Am I to read this?"
  • "When I am gone, my Lady, if you please, and then remembering the
  • most that I consider possible."
  • "I know of nothing I can do. I know of nothing I reserve that can
  • affect your son. I have never accused him."
  • "My Lady, you may pity him the more under a false accusation after
  • reading the letter."
  • The old housekeeper leaves her with the letter in her hand. In truth
  • she is not a hard lady naturally, and the time has been when the
  • sight of the venerable figure suing to her with such strong
  • earnestness would have moved her to great compassion. But so long
  • accustomed to suppress emotion and keep down reality, so long
  • schooled for her own purposes in that destructive school which shuts
  • up the natural feelings of the heart like flies in amber and spreads
  • one uniform and dreary gloss over the good and bad, the feeling and
  • the unfeeling, the sensible and the senseless, she had subdued even
  • her wonder until now.
  • She opens the letter. Spread out upon the paper is a printed account
  • of the discovery of the body as it lay face downward on the floor,
  • shot through the heart; and underneath is written her own name, with
  • the word "murderess" attached.
  • It falls out of her hand. How long it may have lain upon the ground
  • she knows not, but it lies where it fell when a servant stands before
  • her announcing the young man of the name of Guppy. The words have
  • probably been repeated several times, for they are ringing in her
  • head before she begins to understand them.
  • "Let him come in!"
  • He comes in. Holding the letter in her hand, which she has taken from
  • the floor, she tries to collect her thoughts. In the eyes of Mr.
  • Guppy she is the same Lady Dedlock, holding the same prepared, proud,
  • chilling state.
  • "Your ladyship may not be at first disposed to excuse this visit from
  • one who has never been welcome to your ladyship"--which he don't
  • complain of, for he is bound to confess that there never has been any
  • particular reason on the face of things why he should be--"but I hope
  • when I mention my motives to your ladyship you will not find fault
  • with me," says Mr. Guppy.
  • "Do so."
  • "Thank your ladyship. I ought first to explain to your ladyship," Mr.
  • Guppy sits on the edge of a chair and puts his hat on the carpet at
  • his feet, "that Miss Summerson, whose image, as I formerly mentioned
  • to your ladyship, was at one period of my life imprinted on my 'eart
  • until erased by circumstances over which I had no control,
  • communicated to me, after I had the pleasure of waiting on your
  • ladyship last, that she particularly wished me to take no steps
  • whatever in any manner at all relating to her. And Miss Summerson's
  • wishes being to me a law (except as connected with circumstances over
  • which I have no control), I consequently never expected to have the
  • distinguished honour of waiting on your ladyship again."
  • And yet he is here now, Lady Dedlock moodily reminds him.
  • "And yet I am here now," Mr. Guppy admits. "My object being to
  • communicate to your ladyship, under the seal of confidence, why I am
  • here."
  • He cannot do so, she tells him, too plainly or too briefly. "Nor can
  • I," Mr. Guppy returns with a sense of injury upon him, "too
  • particularly request your ladyship to take particular notice that
  • it's no personal affair of mine that brings me here. I have no
  • interested views of my own to serve in coming here. If it was not for
  • my promise to Miss Summerson and my keeping of it sacred--I, in point
  • of fact, shouldn't have darkened these doors again, but should have
  • seen 'em further first."
  • Mr. Guppy considers this a favourable moment for sticking up his hair
  • with both hands.
  • "Your ladyship will remember when I mention it that the last time I
  • was here I run against a party very eminent in our profession and
  • whose loss we all deplore. That party certainly did from that time
  • apply himself to cutting in against me in a way that I will call
  • sharp practice, and did make it, at every turn and point, extremely
  • difficult for me to be sure that I hadn't inadvertently led up to
  • something contrary to Miss Summerson's wishes. Self-praise is no
  • recommendation, but I may say for myself that I am not so bad a man
  • of business neither."
  • Lady Dedlock looks at him in stern inquiry. Mr. Guppy immediately
  • withdraws his eyes from her face and looks anywhere else.
  • "Indeed, it has been made so hard," he goes on, "to have any idea
  • what that party was up to in combination with others that until the
  • loss which we all deplore I was gravelled--an expression which your
  • ladyship, moving in the higher circles, will be so good as to
  • consider tantamount to knocked over. Small likewise--a name by which
  • I refer to another party, a friend of mine that your ladyship is not
  • acquainted with--got to be so close and double-faced that at times it
  • wasn't easy to keep one's hands off his 'ead. However, what with the
  • exertion of my humble abilities, and what with the help of a mutual
  • friend by the name of Mr. Tony Weevle (who is of a high aristocratic
  • turn and has your ladyship's portrait always hanging up in his room),
  • I have now reasons for an apprehension as to which I come to put your
  • ladyship upon your guard. First, will your ladyship allow me to ask
  • you whether you have had any strange visitors this morning? I don't
  • mean fashionable visitors, but such visitors, for instance, as Miss
  • Barbary's old servant, or as a person without the use of his lower
  • extremities, carried upstairs similarly to a guy?"
  • "No!"
  • "Then I assure your ladyship that such visitors have been here and
  • have been received here. Because I saw them at the door, and waited
  • at the corner of the square till they came out, and took half an
  • hour's turn afterwards to avoid them."
  • "What have I to do with that, or what have you? I do not understand
  • you. What do you mean?"
  • "Your ladyship, I come to put you on your guard. There may be no
  • occasion for it. Very well. Then I have only done my best to keep my
  • promise to Miss Summerson. I strongly suspect (from what Small has
  • dropped, and from what we have corkscrewed out of him) that those
  • letters I was to have brought to your ladyship were not destroyed
  • when I supposed they were. That if there was anything to be blown
  • upon, it IS blown upon. That the visitors I have alluded to have been
  • here this morning to make money of it. And that the money is made, or
  • making."
  • Mr. Guppy picks up his hat and rises.
  • "Your ladyship, you know best whether there's anything in what I say
  • or whether there's nothing. Something or nothing, I have acted up to
  • Miss Summerson's wishes in letting things alone and in undoing what I
  • had begun to do, as far as possible; that's sufficient for me. In
  • case I should be taking a liberty in putting your ladyship on your
  • guard when there's no necessity for it, you will endeavour, I should
  • hope, to outlive my presumption, and I shall endeavour to outlive
  • your disapprobation. I now take my farewell of your ladyship, and
  • assure you that there's no danger of your ever being waited on by me
  • again."
  • She scarcely acknowledges these parting words by any look, but when
  • he has been gone a little while, she rings her bell.
  • "Where is Sir Leicester?"
  • Mercury reports that he is at present shut up in the library alone.
  • "Has Sir Leicester had any visitors this morning?"
  • Several, on business. Mercury proceeds to a description of them,
  • which has been anticipated by Mr. Guppy. Enough; he may go.
  • So! All is broken down. Her name is in these many mouths, her husband
  • knows his wrongs, her shame will be published--may be spreading while
  • she thinks about it--and in addition to the thunderbolt so long
  • foreseen by her, so unforeseen by him, she is denounced by an
  • invisible accuser as the murderess of her enemy.
  • Her enemy he was, and she has often, often, often wished him dead.
  • Her enemy he is, even in his grave. This dreadful accusation comes
  • upon her like a new torment at his lifeless hand. And when she
  • recalls how she was secretly at his door that night, and how she may
  • be represented to have sent her favourite girl away so soon before
  • merely to release herself from observation, she shudders as if the
  • hangman's hands were at her neck.
  • She has thrown herself upon the floor and lies with her hair all
  • wildly scattered and her face buried in the cushions of a couch. She
  • rises up, hurries to and fro, flings herself down again, and rocks
  • and moans. The horror that is upon her is unutterable. If she really
  • were the murderess, it could hardly be, for the moment, more intense.
  • For as her murderous perspective, before the doing of the deed,
  • however subtle the precautions for its commission, would have been
  • closed up by a gigantic dilatation of the hateful figure, preventing
  • her from seeing any consequences beyond it; and as those consequences
  • would have rushed in, in an unimagined flood, the moment the figure
  • was laid low--which always happens when a murder is done; so, now she
  • sees that when he used to be on the watch before her, and she used to
  • think, "if some mortal stroke would but fall on this old man and take
  • him from my way!" it was but wishing that all he held against her in
  • his hand might be flung to the winds and chance-sown in many places.
  • So, too, with the wicked relief she has felt in his death. What was
  • his death but the key-stone of a gloomy arch removed, and now the
  • arch begins to fall in a thousand fragments, each crushing and
  • mangling piecemeal!
  • Thus, a terrible impression steals upon and overshadows her that from
  • this pursuer, living or dead--obdurate and imperturbable before her
  • in his well-remembered shape, or not more obdurate and imperturbable
  • in his coffin-bed--there is no escape but in death. Hunted, she
  • flies. The complication of her shame, her dread, remorse, and misery,
  • overwhelms her at its height; and even her strength of self-reliance
  • is overturned and whirled away like a leaf before a mighty wind.
  • She hurriedly addresses these lines to her husband, seals, and leaves
  • them on her table:
  • If I am sought for, or accused of, his murder, believe
  • that I am wholly innocent. Believe no other good of me,
  • for I am innocent of nothing else that you have heard,
  • or will hear, laid to my charge. He prepared me, on that
  • fatal night, for his disclosure of my guilt to you. After
  • he had left me, I went out on pretence of walking in the
  • garden where I sometimes walk, but really to follow him
  • and make one last petition that he would not protract the
  • dreadful suspense on which I have been racked by him, you
  • do not know how long, but would mercifully strike next
  • morning.
  • I found his house dark and silent. I rang twice at his
  • door, but there was no reply, and I came home.
  • I have no home left. I will encumber you no more. May
  • you, in your just resentment, be able to forget the
  • unworthy woman on whom you have wasted a most generous
  • devotion--who avoids you only with a deeper shame than
  • that with which she hurries from herself--and who writes
  • this last adieu.
  • She veils and dresses quickly, leaves all her jewels and her money,
  • listens, goes downstairs at a moment when the hall is empty, opens
  • and shuts the great door, flutters away in the shrill frosty wind.
  • CHAPTER LVI
  • Pursuit
  • Impassive, as behoves its high breeding, the Dedlock town house
  • stares at the other houses in the street of dismal grandeur and gives
  • no outward sign of anything going wrong within. Carriages rattle,
  • doors are battered at, the world exchanges calls; ancient charmers
  • with skeleton throats and peachy cheeks that have a rather ghastly
  • bloom upon them seen by daylight, when indeed these fascinating
  • creatures look like Death and the Lady fused together, dazzle the
  • eyes of men. Forth from the frigid mews come easily swinging
  • carriages guided by short-legged coachmen in flaxen wigs, deep sunk
  • into downy hammercloths, and up behind mount luscious Mercuries
  • bearing sticks of state and wearing cocked hats broadwise, a
  • spectacle for the angels.
  • The Dedlock town house changes not externally, and hours pass before
  • its exalted dullness is disturbed within. But Volumnia the fair,
  • being subject to the prevalent complaint of boredom and finding that
  • disorder attacking her spirits with some virulence, ventures at
  • length to repair to the library for change of scene. Her gentle
  • tapping at the door producing no response, she opens it and peeps in;
  • seeing no one there, takes possession.
  • The sprightly Dedlock is reputed, in that grass-grown city of the
  • ancients, Bath, to be stimulated by an urgent curiosity which impels
  • her on all convenient and inconvenient occasions to sidle about with
  • a golden glass at her eye, peering into objects of every description.
  • Certain it is that she avails herself of the present opportunity of
  • hovering over her kinsman's letters and papers like a bird, taking a
  • short peck at this document and a blink with her head on one side at
  • that document, and hopping about from table to table with her glass
  • at her eye in an inquisitive and restless manner. In the course of
  • these researches she stumbles over something, and turning her glass
  • in that direction, sees her kinsman lying on the ground like a felled
  • tree.
  • Volumnia's pet little scream acquires a considerable augmentation of
  • reality from this surprise, and the house is quickly in commotion.
  • Servants tear up and down stairs, bells are violently rung, doctors
  • are sent for, and Lady Dedlock is sought in all directions, but not
  • found. Nobody has seen or heard her since she last rang her bell. Her
  • letter to Sir Leicester is discovered on her table, but it is
  • doubtful yet whether he has not received another missive from another
  • world requiring to be personally answered, and all the living
  • languages, and all the dead, are as one to him.
  • They lay him down upon his bed, and chafe, and rub, and fan, and put
  • ice to his head, and try every means of restoration. Howbeit, the day
  • has ebbed away, and it is night in his room before his stertorous
  • breathing lulls or his fixed eyes show any consciousness of the
  • candle that is occasionally passed before them. But when this change
  • begins, it goes on; and by and by he nods or moves his eyes or even
  • his hand in token that he hears and comprehends.
  • He fell down, this morning, a handsome stately gentleman, somewhat
  • infirm, but of a fine presence, and with a well-filled face. He lies
  • upon his bed, an aged man with sunken cheeks, the decrepit shadow of
  • himself. His voice was rich and mellow and he had so long been
  • thoroughly persuaded of the weight and import to mankind of any word
  • he said that his words really had come to sound as if there were
  • something in them. But now he can only whisper, and what he whispers
  • sounds like what it is--mere jumble and jargon.
  • His favourite and faithful housekeeper stands at his bedside. It is
  • the first act he notices, and he clearly derives pleasure from it.
  • After vainly trying to make himself understood in speech, he makes
  • signs for a pencil. So inexpressively that they cannot at first
  • understand him; it is his old housekeeper who makes out what he wants
  • and brings in a slate.
  • After pausing for some time, he slowly scrawls upon it in a hand that
  • is not his, "Chesney Wold?"
  • No, she tells him; he is in London. He was taken ill in the library
  • this morning. Right thankful she is that she happened to come to
  • London and is able to attend upon him.
  • "It is not an illness of any serious consequence, Sir Leicester. You
  • will be much better to-morrow, Sir Leicester. All the gentlemen say
  • so." This, with the tears coursing down her fair old face.
  • After making a survey of the room and looking with particular
  • attention all round the bed where the doctors stand, he writes, "My
  • Lady."
  • "My Lady went out, Sir Leicester, before you were taken ill, and
  • don't know of your illness yet."
  • He points again, in great agitation, at the two words. They all try
  • to quiet him, but he points again with increased agitation. On their
  • looking at one another, not knowing what to say, he takes the slate
  • once more and writes "My Lady. For God's sake, where?" And makes an
  • imploring moan.
  • It is thought better that his old housekeeper should give him Lady
  • Dedlock's letter, the contents of which no one knows or can surmise.
  • She opens it for him and puts it out for his perusal. Having read it
  • twice by a great effort, he turns it down so that it shall not be
  • seen and lies moaning. He passes into a kind of relapse or into a
  • swoon, and it is an hour before he opens his eyes, reclining on his
  • faithful and attached old servant's arm. The doctors know that he is
  • best with her, and when not actively engaged about him, stand aloof.
  • The slate comes into requisition again, but the word he wants to
  • write he cannot remember. His anxiety, his eagerness, and affliction
  • at this pass are pitiable to behold. It seems as if he must go mad in
  • the necessity he feels for haste and the inability under which he
  • labours of expressing to do what or to fetch whom. He has written the
  • letter B, and there stopped. Of a sudden, in the height of his
  • misery, he puts Mr. before it. The old housekeeper suggests Bucket.
  • Thank heaven! That's his meaning.
  • Mr. Bucket is found to be downstairs, by appointment. Shall he come
  • up?
  • There is no possibility of misconstruing Sir Leicester's burning wish
  • to see him or the desire he signifies to have the room cleared of
  • every one but the housekeeper. It is speedily done, and Mr. Bucket
  • appears. Of all men upon earth, Sir Leicester seems fallen from his
  • high estate to place his sole trust and reliance upon this man.
  • "Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, I'm sorry to see you like this. I
  • hope you'll cheer up. I'm sure you will, on account of the family
  • credit."
  • Sir Leicester puts her letter in his hands and looks intently in his
  • face while he reads it. A new intelligence comes into Mr. Bucket's
  • eye as he reads on; with one hook of his finger, while that eye is
  • still glancing over the words, he indicates, "Sir Leicester Dedlock,
  • Baronet, I understand you."
  • Sir Leicester writes upon the slate. "Full forgiveness. Find--" Mr.
  • Bucket stops his hand.
  • "Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, I'll find her. But my search after
  • her must be begun out of hand. Not a minute must be lost."
  • With the quickness of thought, he follows Sir Leicester Dedlock's
  • look towards a little box upon a table.
  • "Bring it here, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet? Certainly. Open it
  • with one of these here keys? Certainly. The littlest key? TO be sure.
  • Take the notes out? So I will. Count 'em? That's soon done. Twenty
  • and thirty's fifty, and twenty's seventy, and fifty's one twenty, and
  • forty's one sixty. Take 'em for expenses? That I'll do, and render an
  • account of course. Don't spare money? No I won't."
  • The velocity and certainty of Mr. Bucket's interpretation on all
  • these heads is little short of miraculous. Mrs. Rouncewell, who holds
  • the light, is giddy with the swiftness of his eyes and hands as he
  • starts up, furnished for his journey.
  • "You're George's mother, old lady; that's about what you are, I
  • believe?" says Mr. Bucket aside, with his hat already on and
  • buttoning his coat.
  • "Yes, sir, I am his distressed mother."
  • "So I thought, according to what he mentioned to me just now. Well,
  • then, I'll tell you something. You needn't be distressed no more.
  • Your son's all right. Now, don't you begin a-crying, because what
  • you've got to do is to take care of Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet,
  • and you won't do that by crying. As to your son, he's all right, I
  • tell you; and he sends his loving duty, and hoping you're the same.
  • He's discharged honourable; that's about what HE is; with no more
  • imputation on his character than there is on yours, and yours is a
  • tidy one, I'LL bet a pound. You may trust me, for I took your son. He
  • conducted himself in a game way, too, on that occasion; and he's a
  • fine-made man, and you're a fine-made old lady, and you're a mother
  • and son, the pair of you, as might be showed for models in a caravan.
  • Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, what you've trusted to me I'll go
  • through with. Don't you be afraid of my turning out of my way, right
  • or left, or taking a sleep, or a wash, or a shave till I have found
  • what I go in search of. Say everything as is kind and forgiving on
  • your part? Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, I will. And I wish you
  • better, and these family affairs smoothed over--as, Lord, many other
  • family affairs equally has been, and equally will be, to the end of
  • time."
  • With this peroration, Mr. Bucket, buttoned up, goes quietly out,
  • looking steadily before him as if he were already piercing the night
  • in quest of the fugitive.
  • His first step is to take himself to Lady Dedlock's rooms and look
  • all over them for any trifling indication that may help him. The
  • rooms are in darkness now; and to see Mr. Bucket with a wax-light in
  • his hand, holding it above his head and taking a sharp mental
  • inventory of the many delicate objects so curiously at variance with
  • himself, would be to see a sight--which nobody DOES see, as he is
  • particular to lock himself in.
  • "A spicy boudoir, this," says Mr. Bucket, who feels in a manner
  • furbished up in his French by the blow of the morning. "Must have
  • cost a sight of money. Rum articles to cut away from, these; she must
  • have been hard put to it!"
  • Opening and shutting table-drawers and looking into caskets and
  • jewel-cases, he sees the reflection of himself in various mirrors,
  • and moralizes thereon.
  • "One might suppose I was a-moving in the fashionable circles and
  • getting myself up for almac's," says Mr. Bucket. "I begin to think I
  • must be a swell in the Guards without knowing it."
  • Ever looking about, he has opened a dainty little chest in an inner
  • drawer. His great hand, turning over some gloves which it can
  • scarcely feel, they are so light and soft within it, comes upon a
  • white handkerchief.
  • "Hum! Let's have a look at YOU," says Mr. Bucket, putting down the
  • light. "What should YOU be kept by yourself for? What's YOUR motive?
  • Are you her ladyship's property, or somebody else's? You've got a
  • mark upon you somewheres or another, I suppose?"
  • He finds it as he speaks, "Esther Summerson."
  • "Oh!" says Mr. Bucket, pausing, with his finger at his ear. "Come,
  • I'll take YOU."
  • He completes his observations as quietly and carefully as he has
  • carried them on, leaves everything else precisely as he found it,
  • glides away after some five minutes in all, and passes into the
  • street. With a glance upward at the dimly lighted windows of Sir
  • Leicester's room, he sets off, full-swing, to the nearest
  • coach-stand, picks out the horse for his money, and directs to be
  • driven to the shooting gallery. Mr. Bucket does not claim to be a
  • scientific judge of horses, but he lays out a little money on the
  • principal events in that line, and generally sums up his knowledge of
  • the subject in the remark that when he sees a horse as can go, he
  • knows him.
  • His knowledge is not at fault in the present instance. Clattering
  • over the stones at a dangerous pace, yet thoughtfully bringing his
  • keen eyes to bear on every slinking creature whom he passes in the
  • midnight streets, and even on the lights in upper windows where
  • people are going or gone to bed, and on all the turnings that he
  • rattles by, and alike on the heavy sky, and on the earth where the
  • snow lies thin--for something may present itself to assist him,
  • anywhere--he dashes to his destination at such a speed that when he
  • stops the horse half smothers him in a cloud of steam.
  • "Unbear him half a moment to freshen him up, and I'll be back."
  • He runs up the long wooden entry and finds the trooper smoking his
  • pipe.
  • "I thought I should, George, after what you have gone through, my
  • lad. I haven't a word to spare. Now, honour! All to save a woman.
  • Miss Summerson that was here when Gridley died--that was the name, I
  • know--all right--where does she live?"
  • The trooper has just come from there and gives him the address, near
  • Oxford Street.
  • "You won't repent it, George. Good night!"
  • He is off again, with an impression of having seen Phil sitting by
  • the frosty fire staring at him open-mouthed, and gallops away again,
  • and gets out in a cloud of steam again.
  • Mr. Jarndyce, the only person up in the house, is just going to bed,
  • rises from his book on hearing the rapid ringing at the bell, and
  • comes down to the door in his dressing-gown.
  • "Don't be alarmed, sir." In a moment his visitor is confidential with
  • him in the hall, has shut the door, and stands with his hand upon the
  • lock. "I've had the pleasure of seeing you before. Inspector Bucket.
  • Look at that handkerchief, sir, Miss Esther Summerson's. Found it
  • myself put away in a drawer of Lady Dedlock's, quarter of an hour
  • ago. Not a moment to lose. Matter of life or death. You know Lady
  • Dedlock?"
  • "Yes."
  • "There has been a discovery there to-day. Family affairs have come
  • out. Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, has had a fit--apoplexy or
  • paralysis--and couldn't be brought to, and precious time has been
  • lost. Lady Dedlock disappeared this afternoon and left a letter for
  • him that looks bad. Run your eye over it. Here it is!"
  • Mr. Jarndyce, having read it, asks him what he thinks.
  • "I don't know. It looks like suicide. Anyways, there's more and more
  • danger, every minute, of its drawing to that. I'd give a hundred
  • pound an hour to have got the start of the present time. Now, Mr.
  • Jarndyce, I am employed by Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, to follow
  • her and find her, to save her and take her his forgiveness. I have
  • money and full power, but I want something else. I want Miss
  • Summerson."
  • Mr. Jarndyce in a troubled voice repeats, "Miss Summerson?"
  • "Now, Mr. Jarndyce"--Mr. Bucket has read his face with the greatest
  • attention all along--"I speak to you as a gentleman of a humane
  • heart, and under such pressing circumstances as don't often happen.
  • If ever delay was dangerous, it's dangerous now; and if ever you
  • couldn't afterwards forgive yourself for causing it, this is the
  • time. Eight or ten hours, worth, as I tell you, a hundred pound
  • apiece at least, have been lost since Lady Dedlock disappeared. I am
  • charged to find her. I am Inspector Bucket. Besides all the rest
  • that's heavy on her, she has upon her, as she believes, suspicion of
  • murder. If I follow her alone, she, being in ignorance of what Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, has communicated to me, may be driven to
  • desperation. But if I follow her in company with a young lady,
  • answering to the description of a young lady that she has a
  • tenderness for--I ask no question, and I say no more than that--she
  • will give me credit for being friendly. Let me come up with her and
  • be able to have the hold upon her of putting that young lady for'ard,
  • and I'll save her and prevail with her if she is alive. Let me come
  • up with her alone--a hard matter--and I'll do my best, but I don't
  • answer for what the best may be. Time flies; it's getting on for one
  • o'clock. When one strikes, there's another hour gone, and it's worth
  • a thousand pound now instead of a hundred."
  • This is all true, and the pressing nature of the case cannot be
  • questioned. Mr. Jarndyce begs him to remain there while he speaks to
  • Miss Summerson. Mr. Bucket says he will, but acting on his usual
  • principle, does no such thing, following upstairs instead and keeping
  • his man in sight. So he remains, dodging and lurking about in the
  • gloom of the staircase while they confer. In a very little time Mr.
  • Jarndyce comes down and tells him that Miss Summerson will join him
  • directly and place herself under his protection to accompany him
  • where he pleases. Mr. Bucket, satisfied, expresses high approval and
  • awaits her coming at the door.
  • There he mounts a high tower in his mind and looks out far and wide.
  • Many solitary figures he perceives creeping through the streets; many
  • solitary figures out on heaths, and roads, and lying under haystacks.
  • But the figure that he seeks is not among them. Other solitaries he
  • perceives, in nooks of bridges, looking over; and in shadowed places
  • down by the river's level; and a dark, dark, shapeless object
  • drifting with the tide, more solitary than all, clings with a
  • drowning hold on his attention.
  • Where is she? Living or dead, where is she? If, as he folds the
  • handkerchief and carefully puts it up, it were able with an enchanted
  • power to bring before him the place where she found it and the
  • night-landscape near the cottage where it covered the little child,
  • would he descry her there? On the waste where the brick-kilns are
  • burning with a pale blue flare, where the straw-roofs of the wretched
  • huts in which the bricks are made are being scattered by the wind,
  • where the clay and water are hard frozen and the mill in which the
  • gaunt blind horse goes round all day looks like an instrument of
  • human torture--traversing this deserted, blighted spot there is a
  • lonely figure with the sad world to itself, pelted by the snow and
  • driven by the wind, and cast out, it would seem, from all
  • companionship. It is the figure of a woman, too; but it is miserably
  • dressed, and no such clothes ever came through the hall and out at
  • the great door of the Dedlock mansion.
  • CHAPTER LVII
  • Esther's Narrative
  • I had gone to bed and fallen asleep when my guardian knocked at the
  • door of my room and begged me to get up directly. On my hurrying to
  • speak to him and learn what had happened, he told me, after a word or
  • two of preparation, that there had been a discovery at Sir Leicester
  • Dedlock's. That my mother had fled, that a person was now at our door
  • who was empowered to convey to her the fullest assurances of
  • affectionate protection and forgiveness if he could possibly find
  • her, and that I was sought for to accompany him in the hope that my
  • entreaties might prevail upon her if his failed. Something to this
  • general purpose I made out, but I was thrown into such a tumult of
  • alarm, and hurry and distress, that in spite of every effort I could
  • make to subdue my agitation, I did not seem, to myself, fully to
  • recover my right mind until hours had passed.
  • But I dressed and wrapped up expeditiously without waking Charley or
  • any one and went down to Mr. Bucket, who was the person entrusted
  • with the secret. In taking me to him my guardian told me this, and
  • also explained how it was that he had come to think of me. Mr.
  • Bucket, in a low voice, by the light of my guardian's candle, read to
  • me in the hall a letter that my mother had left upon her table; and I
  • suppose within ten minutes of my having been aroused I was sitting
  • beside him, rolling swiftly through the streets.
  • His manner was very keen, and yet considerate when he explained to me
  • that a great deal might depend on my being able to answer, without
  • confusion, a few questions that he wished to ask me. These were,
  • chiefly, whether I had had much communication with my mother (to whom
  • he only referred as Lady Dedlock), when and where I had spoken with
  • her last, and how she had become possessed of my handkerchief. When I
  • had satisfied him on these points, he asked me particularly to
  • consider--taking time to think--whether within my knowledge there was
  • any one, no matter where, in whom she might be at all likely to
  • confide under circumstances of the last necessity. I could think of
  • no one but my guardian. But by and by I mentioned Mr. Boythorn. He
  • came into my mind as connected with his old chivalrous manner of
  • mentioning my mother's name and with what my guardian had informed me
  • of his engagement to her sister and his unconscious connexion with
  • her unhappy story.
  • My companion had stopped the driver while we held this conversation,
  • that we might the better hear each other. He now told him to go on
  • again and said to me, after considering within himself for a few
  • moments, that he had made up his mind how to proceed. He was quite
  • willing to tell me what his plan was, but I did not feel clear enough
  • to understand it.
  • We had not driven very far from our lodgings when we stopped in a
  • by-street at a public-looking place lighted up with gas. Mr. Bucket
  • took me in and sat me in an arm-chair by a bright fire. It was now
  • past one, as I saw by the clock against the wall. Two police
  • officers, looking in their perfectly neat uniform not at all like
  • people who were up all night, were quietly writing at a desk; and the
  • place seemed very quiet altogether, except for some beating and
  • calling out at distant doors underground, to which nobody paid any
  • attention.
  • A third man in uniform, whom Mr. Bucket called and to whom he
  • whispered his instructions, went out; and then the two others advised
  • together while one wrote from Mr. Bucket's subdued dictation. It was
  • a description of my mother that they were busy with, for Mr. Bucket
  • brought it to me when it was done and read it in a whisper. It was
  • very accurate indeed.
  • The second officer, who had attended to it closely, then copied it
  • out and called in another man in uniform (there were several in an
  • outer room), who took it up and went away with it. All this was done
  • with the greatest dispatch and without the waste of a moment; yet
  • nobody was at all hurried. As soon as the paper was sent out upon its
  • travels, the two officers resumed their former quiet work of writing
  • with neatness and care. Mr. Bucket thoughtfully came and warmed the
  • soles of his boots, first one and then the other, at the fire.
  • "Are you well wrapped up, Miss Summerson?" he asked me as his eyes
  • met mine. "It's a desperate sharp night for a young lady to be out
  • in."
  • I told him I cared for no weather and was warmly clothed.
  • "It may be a long job," he observed; "but so that it ends well, never
  • mind, miss."
  • "I pray to heaven it may end well!" said I.
  • He nodded comfortingly. "You see, whatever you do, don't you go and
  • fret yourself. You keep yourself cool and equal for anything that may
  • happen, and it'll be the better for you, the better for me, the
  • better for Lady Dedlock, and the better for Sir Leicester Dedlock,
  • Baronet."
  • He was really very kind and gentle, and as he stood before the fire
  • warming his boots and rubbing his face with his forefinger, I felt a
  • confidence in his sagacity which reassured me. It was not yet a
  • quarter to two when I heard horses' feet and wheels outside. "Now,
  • Miss Summerson," said he, "we are off, if you please!"
  • He gave me his arm, and the two officers courteously bowed me out,
  • and we found at the door a phaeton or barouche with a postilion and
  • post horses. Mr. Bucket handed me in and took his own seat on the
  • box. The man in uniform whom he had sent to fetch this equipage then
  • handed him up a dark lantern at his request, and when he had given a
  • few directions to the driver, we rattled away.
  • I was far from sure that I was not in a dream. We rattled with great
  • rapidity through such a labyrinth of streets that I soon lost all
  • idea where we were, except that we had crossed and re-crossed the
  • river, and still seemed to be traversing a low-lying, waterside,
  • dense neighbourhood of narrow thoroughfares chequered by docks and
  • basins, high piles of warehouses, swing-bridges, and masts of ships.
  • At length we stopped at the corner of a little slimy turning, which
  • the wind from the river, rushing up it, did not purify; and I saw my
  • companion, by the light of his lantern, in conference with several
  • men who looked like a mixture of police and sailors. Against the
  • mouldering wall by which they stood, there was a bill, on which I
  • could discern the words, "Found Drowned"; and this and an inscription
  • about drags possessed me with the awful suspicion shadowed forth in
  • our visit to that place.
  • I had no need to remind myself that I was not there by the indulgence
  • of any feeling of mine to increase the difficulties of the search, or
  • to lessen its hopes, or enhance its delays. I remained quiet, but
  • what I suffered in that dreadful spot I never can forget. And still
  • it was like the horror of a dream. A man yet dark and muddy, in long
  • swollen sodden boots and a hat like them, was called out of a boat
  • and whispered with Mr. Bucket, who went away with him down some
  • slippery steps--as if to look at something secret that he had to
  • show. They came back, wiping their hands upon their coats, after
  • turning over something wet; but thank God it was not what I feared!
  • After some further conference, Mr. Bucket (whom everybody seemed to
  • know and defer to) went in with the others at a door and left me in
  • the carriage, while the driver walked up and down by his horses to
  • warm himself. The tide was coming in, as I judged from the sound it
  • made, and I could hear it break at the end of the alley with a little
  • rush towards me. It never did so--and I thought it did so, hundreds
  • of times, in what can have been at the most a quarter of an hour, and
  • probably was less--but the thought shuddered through me that it would
  • cast my mother at the horses' feet.
  • Mr. Bucket came out again, exhorting the others to be vigilant,
  • darkened his lantern, and once more took his seat. "Don't you be
  • alarmed, Miss Summerson, on account of our coming down here," he
  • said, turning to me. "I only want to have everything in train and to
  • know that it is in train by looking after it myself. Get on, my lad!"
  • We appeared to retrace the way we had come. Not that I had taken note
  • of any particular objects in my perturbed state of mind, but judging
  • from the general character of the streets. We called at another
  • office or station for a minute and crossed the river again. During
  • the whole of this time, and during the whole search, my companion,
  • wrapped up on the box, never relaxed in his vigilance a single
  • moment; but when we crossed the bridge he seemed, if possible, to be
  • more on the alert than before. He stood up to look over the parapet,
  • he alighted and went back after a shadowy female figure that flitted
  • past us, and he gazed into the profound black pit of water with a
  • face that made my heart die within me. The river had a fearful look,
  • so overcast and secret, creeping away so fast between the low flat
  • lines of shore--so heavy with indistinct and awful shapes, both of
  • substance and shadow; so death-like and mysterious. I have seen it
  • many times since then, by sunlight and by moonlight, but never free
  • from the impressions of that journey. In my memory the lights upon
  • the bridge are always burning dim, the cutting wind is eddying round
  • the homeless woman whom we pass, the monotonous wheels are whirling
  • on, and the light of the carriage-lamps reflected back looks palely
  • in upon me--a face rising out of the dreaded water.
  • Clattering and clattering through the empty streets, we came at
  • length from the pavement on to dark smooth roads and began to leave
  • the houses behind us. After a while I recognized the familiar way to
  • Saint Albans. At Barnet fresh horses were ready for us, and we
  • changed and went on. It was very cold indeed, and the open country
  • was white with snow, though none was falling then.
  • "An old acquaintance of yours, this road, Miss Summerson," said Mr.
  • Bucket cheerfully.
  • "Yes," I returned. "Have you gathered any intelligence?"
  • "None that can be quite depended on as yet," he answered, "but it's
  • early times as yet."
  • He had gone into every late or early public-house where there
  • was a light (they were not a few at that time, the road being
  • then much frequented by drovers) and had got down to talk to the
  • turnpike-keepers. I had heard him ordering drink, and chinking money,
  • and making himself agreeable and merry everywhere; but whenever he
  • took his seat upon the box again, his face resumed its watchful
  • steady look, and he always said to the driver in the same business
  • tone, "Get on, my lad!"
  • With all these stoppages, it was between five and six o'clock and we
  • were yet a few miles short of Saint Albans when he came out of one of
  • these houses and handed me in a cup of tea.
  • "Drink it, Miss Summerson, it'll do you good. You're beginning to get
  • more yourself now, ain't you?"
  • I thanked him and said I hoped so.
  • "You was what you may call stunned at first," he returned; "and Lord,
  • no wonder! Don't speak loud, my dear. It's all right. She's on
  • ahead."
  • I don't know what joyful exclamation I made or was going to make, but
  • he put up his finger and I stopped myself.
  • "Passed through here on foot this evening about eight or nine. I
  • heard of her first at the archway toll, over at Highgate, but
  • couldn't make quite sure. Traced her all along, on and off. Picked
  • her up at one place, and dropped her at another; but she's before us
  • now, safe. Take hold of this cup and saucer, ostler. Now, if you
  • wasn't brought up to the butter trade, look out and see if you can
  • catch half a crown in your t'other hand. One, two, three, and there
  • you are! Now, my lad, try a gallop!"
  • We were soon in Saint Albans and alighted a little before day, when I
  • was just beginning to arrange and comprehend the occurrences of the
  • night and really to believe that they were not a dream. Leaving the
  • carriage at the posting-house and ordering fresh horses to be ready,
  • my companion gave me his arm, and we went towards home.
  • "As this is your regular abode, Miss Summerson, you see," he
  • observed, "I should like to know whether you've been asked for by any
  • stranger answering the description, or whether Mr. Jarndyce has. I
  • don't much expect it, but it might be."
  • As we ascended the hill, he looked about him with a sharp eye--the
  • day was now breaking--and reminded me that I had come down it one
  • night, as I had reason for remembering, with my little servant and
  • poor Jo, whom he called Toughey.
  • I wondered how he knew that.
  • "When you passed a man upon the road, just yonder, you know," said
  • Mr. Bucket.
  • Yes, I remembered that too, very well.
  • "That was me," said Mr. Bucket.
  • Seeing my surprise, he went on, "I drove down in a gig that afternoon
  • to look after that boy. You might have heard my wheels when you came
  • out to look after him yourself, for I was aware of you and your
  • little maid going up when I was walking the horse down. Making an
  • inquiry or two about him in the town, I soon heard what company he
  • was in and was coming among the brick-fields to look for him when I
  • observed you bringing him home here."
  • "Had he committed any crime?" I asked.
  • "None was charged against him," said Mr. Bucket, coolly lifting off
  • his hat, "but I suppose he wasn't over-particular. No. What I wanted
  • him for was in connexion with keeping this very matter of Lady
  • Dedlock quiet. He had been making his tongue more free than welcome
  • as to a small accidental service he had been paid for by the deceased
  • Mr. Tulkinghorn; and it wouldn't do, at any sort of price, to have
  • him playing those games. So having warned him out of London, I made
  • an afternoon of it to warn him to keep out of it now he WAS away, and
  • go farther from it, and maintain a bright look-out that I didn't
  • catch him coming back again."
  • "Poor creature!" said I.
  • "Poor enough," assented Mr. Bucket, "and trouble enough, and well
  • enough away from London, or anywhere else. I was regularly turned on
  • my back when I found him taken up by your establishment, I do assure
  • you."
  • I asked him why. "Why, my dear?" said Mr. Bucket. "Naturally there
  • was no end to his tongue then. He might as well have been born with a
  • yard and a half of it, and a remnant over."
  • Although I remember this conversation now, my head was in confusion
  • at the time, and my power of attention hardly did more than enable me
  • to understand that he entered into these particulars to divert me.
  • With the same kind intention, manifestly, he often spoke to me of
  • indifferent things, while his face was busy with the one object that
  • we had in view. He still pursued this subject as we turned in at the
  • garden-gate.
  • "Ah!" said Mr. Bucket. "Here we are, and a nice retired place it is.
  • Puts a man in mind of the country house in the Woodpecker-tapping,
  • that was known by the smoke which so gracefully curled. They're early
  • with the kitchen fire, and that denotes good servants. But what
  • you've always got to be careful of with servants is who comes to see
  • 'em; you never know what they're up to if you don't know that. And
  • another thing, my dear. Whenever you find a young man behind the
  • kitchen-door, you give that young man in charge on suspicion of being
  • secreted in a dwelling-house with an unlawful purpose."
  • We were now in front of the house; he looked attentively and closely
  • at the gravel for footprints before he raised his eyes to the
  • windows.
  • "Do you generally put that elderly young gentleman in the same room
  • when he's on a visit here, Miss Summerson?" he inquired, glancing at
  • Mr. Skimpole's usual chamber.
  • "You know Mr. Skimpole!" said I.
  • "What do you call him again?" returned Mr. Bucket, bending down his
  • ear. "Skimpole, is it? I've often wondered what his name might be.
  • Skimpole. Not John, I should say, nor yet Jacob?"
  • "Harold," I told him.
  • "Harold. Yes. He's a queer bird is Harold," said Mr. Bucket, eyeing
  • me with great expression.
  • "He is a singular character," said I.
  • "No idea of money," observed Mr. Bucket. "He takes it, though!"
  • I involuntarily returned for answer that I perceived Mr. Bucket knew
  • him.
  • "Why, now I'll tell you, Miss Summerson," he replied. "Your mind will
  • be all the better for not running on one point too continually, and
  • I'll tell you for a change. It was him as pointed out to me where
  • Toughey was. I made up my mind that night to come to the door and ask
  • for Toughey, if that was all; but willing to try a move or so first,
  • if any such was on the board, I just pitched up a morsel of gravel at
  • that window where I saw a shadow. As soon as Harold opens it and I
  • have had a look at him, thinks I, you're the man for me. So I
  • smoothed him down a bit about not wanting to disturb the family after
  • they was gone to bed and about its being a thing to be regretted that
  • charitable young ladies should harbour vagrants; and then, when I
  • pretty well understood his ways, I said I should consider a fypunnote
  • well bestowed if I could relieve the premises of Toughey without
  • causing any noise or trouble. Then says he, lifting up his eyebrows
  • in the gayest way, 'It's no use mentioning a fypunnote to me, my
  • friend, because I'm a mere child in such matters and have no idea of
  • money.' Of course I understood what his taking it so easy meant; and
  • being now quite sure he was the man for me, I wrapped the note round
  • a little stone and threw it up to him. Well! He laughs and beams, and
  • looks as innocent as you like, and says, 'But I don't know the value
  • of these things. What am I to DO with this?' 'Spend it, sir,' says I.
  • 'But I shall be taken in,' he says, 'they won't give me the right
  • change, I shall lose it, it's no use to me.' Lord, you never saw such
  • a face as he carried it with! Of course he told me where to find
  • Toughey, and I found him."
  • I regarded this as very treacherous on the part of Mr. Skimpole
  • towards my guardian and as passing the usual bounds of his childish
  • innocence.
  • "Bounds, my dear?" returned Mr. Bucket. "Bounds? Now, Miss Summerson,
  • I'll give you a piece of advice that your husband will find useful
  • when you are happily married and have got a family about you.
  • Whenever a person says to you that they are as innocent as can be in
  • all concerning money, look well after your own money, for they are
  • dead certain to collar it if they can. Whenever a person proclaims to
  • you 'In worldly matters I'm a child,' you consider that that person
  • is only a-crying off from being held accountable and that you have
  • got that person's number, and it's Number One. Now, I am not a
  • poetical man myself, except in a vocal way when it goes round a
  • company, but I'm a practical one, and that's my experience. So's this
  • rule. Fast and loose in one thing, fast and loose in everything. I
  • never knew it fail. No more will you. Nor no one. With which caution
  • to the unwary, my dear, I take the liberty of pulling this here bell,
  • and so go back to our business."
  • I believe it had not been for a moment out of his mind, any more than
  • it had been out of my mind, or out of his face. The whole household
  • were amazed to see me, without any notice, at that time in the
  • morning, and so accompanied; and their surprise was not diminished by
  • my inquiries. No one, however, had been there. It could not be
  • doubted that this was the truth.
  • "Then, Miss Summerson," said my companion, "we can't be too soon at
  • the cottage where those brickmakers are to be found. Most inquiries
  • there I leave to you, if you'll be so good as to make 'em. The
  • naturalest way is the best way, and the naturalest way is your own
  • way."
  • We set off again immediately. On arriving at the cottage, we found it
  • shut up and apparently deserted, but one of the neighbours who knew
  • me and who came out when I was trying to make some one hear informed
  • me that the two women and their husbands now lived together in
  • another house, made of loose rough bricks, which stood on the margin
  • of the piece of ground where the kilns were and where the long rows
  • of bricks were drying. We lost no time in repairing to this place,
  • which was within a few hundred yards; and as the door stood ajar, I
  • pushed it open.
  • There were only three of them sitting at breakfast, the child lying
  • asleep on a bed in the corner. It was Jenny, the mother of the dead
  • child, who was absent. The other woman rose on seeing me; and the
  • men, though they were, as usual, sulky and silent, each gave me a
  • morose nod of recognition. A look passed between them when Mr. Bucket
  • followed me in, and I was surprised to see that the woman evidently
  • knew him.
  • I had asked leave to enter of course. Liz (the only name by which I
  • knew her) rose to give me her own chair, but I sat down on a stool
  • near the fire, and Mr. Bucket took a corner of the bedstead. Now that
  • I had to speak and was among people with whom I was not familiar, I
  • became conscious of being hurried and giddy. It was very difficult to
  • begin, and I could not help bursting into tears.
  • "Liz," said I, "I have come a long way in the night and through the
  • snow to inquire after a lady--"
  • "Who has been here, you know," Mr. Bucket struck in, addressing the
  • whole group with a composed propitiatory face; "that's the lady the
  • young lady means. The lady that was here last night, you know."
  • "And who told YOU as there was anybody here?" inquired Jenny's
  • husband, who had made a surly stop in his eating to listen and now
  • measured him with his eye.
  • "A person of the name of Michael Jackson, with a blue welveteen
  • waistcoat with a double row of mother of pearl buttons," Mr. Bucket
  • immediately answered.
  • "He had as good mind his own business, whoever he is," growled the
  • man.
  • "He's out of employment, I believe," said Mr. Bucket apologetically
  • for Michael Jackson, "and so gets talking."
  • The woman had not resumed her chair, but stood faltering with her
  • hand upon its broken back, looking at me. I thought she would have
  • spoken to me privately if she had dared. She was still in this
  • attitude of uncertainty when her husband, who was eating with a lump
  • of bread and fat in one hand and his clasp-knife in the other, struck
  • the handle of his knife violently on the table and told her with an
  • oath to mind HER own business at any rate and sit down.
  • "I should like to have seen Jenny very much," said I, "for I am sure
  • she would have told me all she could about this lady, whom I am very
  • anxious indeed--you cannot think how anxious--to overtake. Will Jenny
  • be here soon? Where is she?"
  • The woman had a great desire to answer, but the man, with another
  • oath, openly kicked at her foot with his heavy boot. He left it to
  • Jenny's husband to say what he chose, and after a dogged silence the
  • latter turned his shaggy head towards me.
  • "I'm not partial to gentlefolks coming into my place, as you've heerd
  • me say afore now, I think, miss. I let their places be, and it's
  • curious they can't let my place be. There'd be a pretty shine made if
  • I was to go a-wisitin THEM, I think. Howsoever, I don't so much
  • complain of you as of some others, and I'm agreeable to make you a
  • civil answer, though I give notice that I'm not a-going to be drawed
  • like a badger. Will Jenny be here soon? No she won't. Where is she?
  • She's gone up to Lunnun."
  • "Did she go last night?" I asked.
  • "Did she go last night? Ah! She went last night," he answered with a
  • sulky jerk of his head.
  • "But was she here when the lady came? And what did the lady say to
  • her? And where is the lady gone? I beg and pray you to be so kind as
  • to tell me," said I, "for I am in great distress to know."
  • "If my master would let me speak, and not say a word of harm--" the
  • woman timidly began.
  • "Your master," said her husband, muttering an imprecation with slow
  • emphasis, "will break your neck if you meddle with wot don't concern
  • you."
  • After another silence, the husband of the absent woman, turning to me
  • again, answered me with his usual grumbling unwillingness.
  • "Wos Jenny here when the lady come? Yes, she wos here when the lady
  • come. Wot did the lady say to her? Well, I'll tell you wot the lady
  • said to her. She said, 'You remember me as come one time to talk to
  • you about the young lady as had been a-wisiting of you? You remember
  • me as give you somethink handsome for a handkercher wot she had
  • left?' Ah, she remembered. So we all did. Well, then, wos that young
  • lady up at the house now? No, she warn't up at the house now. Well,
  • then, lookee here. The lady was upon a journey all alone, strange as
  • we might think it, and could she rest herself where you're a setten
  • for a hour or so. Yes she could, and so she did. Then she went--it
  • might be at twenty minutes past eleven, and it might be at twenty
  • minutes past twelve; we ain't got no watches here to know the time
  • by, nor yet clocks. Where did she go? I don't know where she go'd.
  • She went one way, and Jenny went another; one went right to Lunnun,
  • and t'other went right from it. That's all about it. Ask this man. He
  • heerd it all, and see it all. He knows."
  • The other man repeated, "That's all about it."
  • "Was the lady crying?" I inquired.
  • "Devil a bit," returned the first man. "Her shoes was the worse, and
  • her clothes was the worse, but she warn't--not as I see."
  • The woman sat with her arms crossed and her eyes upon the ground. Her
  • husband had turned his seat a little so as to face her and kept his
  • hammer-like hand upon the table as if it were in readiness to execute
  • his threat if she disobeyed him.
  • "I hope you will not object to my asking your wife," said I, "how the
  • lady looked."
  • "Come, then!" he gruffly cried to her. "You hear what she says. Cut
  • it short and tell her."
  • "Bad," replied the woman. "Pale and exhausted. Very bad."
  • "Did she speak much?"
  • "Not much, but her voice was hoarse."
  • She answered, looking all the while at her husband for leave.
  • "Was she faint?" said I. "Did she eat or drink here?"
  • "Go on!" said the husband in answer to her look. "Tell her and cut it
  • short."
  • "She had a little water, miss, and Jenny fetched her some bread and
  • tea. But she hardly touched it."
  • "And when she went from here," I was proceeding, when Jenny's husband
  • impatiently took me up.
  • "When she went from here, she went right away nor'ard by the high
  • road. Ask on the road if you doubt me, and see if it warn't so. Now,
  • there's the end. That's all about it."
  • I glanced at my companion, and finding that he had already risen and
  • was ready to depart, thanked them for what they had told me, and took
  • my leave. The woman looked full at Mr. Bucket as he went out, and he
  • looked full at her.
  • "Now, Miss Summerson," he said to me as we walked quickly away.
  • "They've got her ladyship's watch among 'em. That's a positive fact."
  • "You saw it?" I exclaimed.
  • "Just as good as saw it," he returned. "Else why should he talk about
  • his 'twenty minutes past' and about his having no watch to tell the
  • time by? Twenty minutes! He don't usually cut his time so fine as
  • that. If he comes to half-hours, it's as much as HE does. Now, you
  • see, either her ladyship gave him that watch or he took it. I think
  • she gave it him. Now, what should she give it him for? What should
  • she give it him for?"
  • He repeated this question to himself several times as we hurried on,
  • appearing to balance between a variety of answers that arose in his
  • mind.
  • "If time could be spared," said Mr. Bucket, "which is the only thing
  • that can't be spared in this case, I might get it out of that woman;
  • but it's too doubtful a chance to trust to under present
  • circumstances. They are up to keeping a close eye upon her, and any
  • fool knows that a poor creetur like her, beaten and kicked and
  • scarred and bruised from head to foot, will stand by the husband that
  • ill uses her through thick and thin. There's something kept back.
  • It's a pity but what we had seen the other woman."
  • I regretted it exceedingly, for she was very grateful, and I felt
  • sure would have resisted no entreaty of mine.
  • "It's possible, Miss Summerson," said Mr. Bucket, pondering on it,
  • "that her ladyship sent her up to London with some word for you, and
  • it's possible that her husband got the watch to let her go. It don't
  • come out altogether so plain as to please me, but it's on the cards.
  • Now, I don't take kindly to laying out the money of Sir Leicester
  • Dedlock, Baronet, on these roughs, and I don't see my way to the
  • usefulness of it at present. No! So far our road, Miss Summerson, is
  • for'ard--straight ahead--and keeping everything quiet!"
  • We called at home once more that I might send a hasty note to my
  • guardian, and then we hurried back to where we had left the carriage.
  • The horses were brought out as soon as we were seen coming, and we
  • were on the road again in a few minutes.
  • It had set in snowing at daybreak, and it now snowed hard. The air
  • was so thick with the darkness of the day and the density of the fall
  • that we could see but a very little way in any direction. Although it
  • was extremely cold, the snow was but partially frozen, and it
  • churned--with a sound as if it were a beach of small shells--under
  • the hoofs of the horses into mire and water. They sometimes slipped
  • and floundered for a mile together, and we were obliged to come to a
  • standstill to rest them. One horse fell three times in this first
  • stage, and trembled so and was so shaken that the driver had to
  • dismount from his saddle and lead him at last.
  • I could eat nothing and could not sleep, and I grew so nervous under
  • those delays and the slow pace at which we travelled that I had an
  • unreasonable desire upon me to get out and walk. Yielding to my
  • companion's better sense, however, I remained where I was. All this
  • time, kept fresh by a certain enjoyment of the work in which he was
  • engaged, he was up and down at every house we came to, addressing
  • people whom he had never beheld before as old acquaintances, running
  • in to warm himself at every fire he saw, talking and drinking and
  • shaking hands at every bar and tap, friendly with every waggoner,
  • wheelwright, blacksmith, and toll-taker, yet never seeming to lose
  • time, and always mounting to the box again with his watchful, steady
  • face and his business-like "Get on, my lad!"
  • When we were changing horses the next time, he came from the
  • stable-yard, with the wet snow encrusted upon him and dropping off
  • him--plashing and crashing through it to his wet knees as he had been
  • doing frequently since we left Saint Albans--and spoke to me at the
  • carriage side.
  • "Keep up your spirits. It's certainly true that she came on here,
  • Miss Summerson. There's not a doubt of the dress by this time, and
  • the dress has been seen here."
  • "Still on foot?" said I.
  • "Still on foot. I think the gentleman you mentioned must be the point
  • she's aiming at, and yet I don't like his living down in her own part
  • of the country neither."
  • "I know so little," said I. "There may be some one else nearer here,
  • of whom I never heard."
  • "That's true. But whatever you do, don't you fall a-crying, my dear;
  • and don't you worry yourself no more than you can help. Get on, my
  • lad!"
  • The sleet fell all that day unceasingly, a thick mist came on early,
  • and it never rose or lightened for a moment. Such roads I had never
  • seen. I sometimes feared we had missed the way and got into the
  • ploughed grounds or the marshes. If I ever thought of the time I had
  • been out, it presented itself as an indefinite period of great
  • duration, and I seemed, in a strange way, never to have been free
  • from the anxiety under which I then laboured.
  • As we advanced, I began to feel misgivings that my companion lost
  • confidence. He was the same as before with all the roadside people,
  • but he looked graver when he sat by himself on the box. I saw his
  • finger uneasily going across and across his mouth during the whole of
  • one long weary stage. I overheard that he began to ask the drivers of
  • coaches and other vehicles coming towards us what passengers they had
  • seen in other coaches and vehicles that were in advance. Their
  • replies did not encourage him. He always gave me a reassuring beck of
  • his finger and lift of his eyelid as he got upon the box again, but
  • he seemed perplexed now when he said, "Get on, my lad!"
  • At last, when we were changing, he told me that he had lost the track
  • of the dress so long that he began to be surprised. It was nothing,
  • he said, to lose such a track for one while, and to take it up for
  • another while, and so on; but it had disappeared here in an
  • unaccountable manner, and we had not come upon it since. This
  • corroborated the apprehensions I had formed, when he began to look at
  • direction-posts, and to leave the carriage at cross roads for a
  • quarter of an hour at a time while he explored them. But I was not to
  • be down-hearted, he told me, for it was as likely as not that the
  • next stage might set us right again.
  • The next stage, however, ended as that one ended; we had no new clue.
  • There was a spacious inn here, solitary, but a comfortable
  • substantial building, and as we drove in under a large gateway before
  • I knew it, where a landlady and her pretty daughters came to the
  • carriage-door, entreating me to alight and refresh myself while the
  • horses were making ready, I thought it would be uncharitable to
  • refuse. They took me upstairs to a warm room and left me there.
  • It was at the corner of the house, I remember, looking two ways. On
  • one side to a stable-yard open to a by-road, where the ostlers were
  • unharnessing the splashed and tired horses from the muddy carriage,
  • and beyond that to the by-road itself, across which the sign was
  • heavily swinging; on the other side to a wood of dark pine-trees.
  • Their branches were encumbered with snow, and it silently dropped off
  • in wet heaps while I stood at the window. Night was setting in, and
  • its bleakness was enhanced by the contrast of the pictured fire
  • glowing and gleaming in the window-pane. As I looked among the stems
  • of the trees and followed the discoloured marks in the snow where the
  • thaw was sinking into it and undermining it, I thought of the
  • motherly face brightly set off by daughters that had just now
  • welcomed me and of MY mother lying down in such a wood to die.
  • I was frightened when I found them all about me, but I remembered
  • that before I fainted I tried very hard not to do it; and that was
  • some little comfort. They cushioned me up on a large sofa by the
  • fire, and then the comely landlady told me that I must travel no
  • further to-night, but must go to bed. But this put me into such a
  • tremble lest they should detain me there that she soon recalled her
  • words and compromised for a rest of half an hour.
  • A good endearing creature she was. She and her three fair girls, all
  • so busy about me. I was to take hot soup and broiled fowl, while Mr.
  • Bucket dried himself and dined elsewhere; but I could not do it when
  • a snug round table was presently spread by the fireside, though I was
  • very unwilling to disappoint them. However, I could take some toast
  • and some hot negus, and as I really enjoyed that refreshment, it made
  • some recompense.
  • Punctual to the time, at the half-hour's end the carriage came
  • rumbling under the gateway, and they took me down, warmed, refreshed,
  • comforted by kindness, and safe (I assured them) not to faint any
  • more. After I had got in and had taken a grateful leave of them all,
  • the youngest daughter--a blooming girl of nineteen, who was to be the
  • first married, they had told me--got upon the carriage step, reached
  • in, and kissed me. I have never seen her, from that hour, but I think
  • of her to this hour as my friend.
  • The transparent windows with the fire and light, looking so bright
  • and warm from the cold darkness out of doors, were soon gone, and
  • again we were crushing and churning the loose snow. We went on with
  • toil enough, but the dismal roads were not much worse than they had
  • been, and the stage was only nine miles. My companion smoking on the
  • box--I had thought at the last inn of begging him to do so when I saw
  • him standing at a great fire in a comfortable cloud of tobacco--was
  • as vigilant as ever and as quickly down and up again when we came to
  • any human abode or any human creature. He had lighted his little dark
  • lantern, which seemed to be a favourite with him, for we had lamps to
  • the carriage; and every now and then he turned it upon me to see that
  • I was doing well. There was a folding-window to the carriage-head,
  • but I never closed it, for it seemed like shutting out hope.
  • We came to the end of the stage, and still the lost trace was not
  • recovered. I looked at him anxiously when we stopped to change, but I
  • knew by his yet graver face as he stood watching the ostlers that he
  • had heard nothing. Almost in an instant afterwards, as I leaned back
  • in my seat, he looked in, with his lighted lantern in his hand, an
  • excited and quite different man.
  • "What is it?" said I, starting. "Is she here?"
  • "No, no. Don't deceive yourself, my dear. Nobody's here. But I've got
  • it!"
  • The crystallized snow was in his eyelashes, in his hair, lying in
  • ridges on his dress. He had to shake it from his face and get his
  • breath before he spoke to me.
  • "Now, Miss Summerson," said he, beating his finger on the apron,
  • "don't you be disappointed at what I'm a-going to do. You know me.
  • I'm Inspector Bucket, and you can trust me. We've come a long way;
  • never mind. Four horses out there for the next stage up! Quick!"
  • There was a commotion in the yard, and a man came running out of the
  • stables to know if he meant up or down.
  • "Up, I tell you! Up! Ain't it English? Up!"
  • "Up?" said I, astonished. "To London! Are we going back?"
  • "Miss Summerson," he answered, "back. Straight back as a die. You
  • know me. Don't be afraid. I'll follow the other, by G----"
  • "The other?" I repeated. "Who?"
  • "You called her Jenny, didn't you? I'll follow her. Bring those two
  • pair out here for a crown a man. Wake up, some of you!"
  • "You will not desert this lady we are in search of; you will not
  • abandon her on such a night and in such a state of mind as I know her
  • to be in!" said I, in an agony, and grasping his hand.
  • "You are right, my dear, I won't. But I'll follow the other. Look
  • alive here with them horses. Send a man for'ard in the saddle to the
  • next stage, and let him send another for'ard again, and order four
  • on, up, right through. My darling, don't you be afraid!"
  • These orders and the way in which he ran about the yard urging them
  • caused a general excitement that was scarcely less bewildering to me
  • than the sudden change. But in the height of the confusion, a mounted
  • man galloped away to order the relays, and our horses were put to
  • with great speed.
  • "My dear," said Mr. Bucket, jumping to his seat and looking in again,
  • "--you'll excuse me if I'm too familiar--don't you fret and worry
  • yourself no more than you can help. I say nothing else at present;
  • but you know me, my dear; now, don't you?"
  • I endeavoured to say that I knew he was far more capable than I of
  • deciding what we ought to do, but was he sure that this was right?
  • Could I not go forward by myself in search of--I grasped his hand
  • again in my distress and whispered it to him--of my own mother.
  • "My dear," he answered, "I know, I know, and would I put you wrong,
  • do you think? Inspector Bucket. Now you know me, don't you?"
  • What could I say but yes!
  • "Then you keep up as good a heart as you can, and you rely upon me
  • for standing by you, no less than by Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet.
  • Now, are you right there?"
  • "All right, sir!"
  • "Off she goes, then. And get on, my lads!"
  • We were again upon the melancholy road by which we had come, tearing
  • up the miry sleet and thawing snow as if they were torn up by a
  • waterwheel.
  • CHAPTER LVIII
  • A Wintry Day and Night
  • Still impassive, as behoves its breeding, the Dedlock town house
  • carries itself as usual towards the street of dismal grandeur. There
  • are powdered heads from time to time in the little windows of the
  • hall, looking out at the untaxed powder falling all day from the sky;
  • and in the same conservatory there is peach blossom turning itself
  • exotically to the great hall fire from the nipping weather out of
  • doors. It is given out that my Lady has gone down into Lincolnshire,
  • but is expected to return presently.
  • Rumour, busy overmuch, however, will not go down into Lincolnshire.
  • It persists in flitting and chattering about town. It knows that that
  • poor unfortunate man, Sir Leicester, has been sadly used. It hears,
  • my dear child, all sorts of shocking things. It makes the world of
  • five miles round quite merry. Not to know that there is something
  • wrong at the Dedlocks' is to augur yourself unknown. One of the
  • peachy-cheeked charmers with the skeleton throats is already apprised
  • of all the principal circumstances that will come out before the
  • Lords on Sir Leicester's application for a bill of divorce.
  • At Blaze and Sparkle's the jewellers and at Sheen and Gloss's the
  • mercers, it is and will be for several hours the topic of the age,
  • the feature of the century. The patronesses of those establishments,
  • albeit so loftily inscrutable, being as nicely weighed and measured
  • there as any other article of the stock-in-trade, are perfectly
  • understood in this new fashion by the rawest hand behind the counter.
  • "Our people, Mr. Jones," said Blaze and Sparkle to the hand in
  • question on engaging him, "our people, sir, are sheep--mere sheep.
  • Where two or three marked ones go, all the rest follow. Keep those
  • two or three in your eye, Mr. Jones, and you have the flock." So,
  • likewise, Sheen and Gloss to THEIR Jones, in reference to knowing
  • where to have the fashionable people and how to bring what they
  • (Sheen and Gloss) choose into fashion. On similar unerring
  • principles, Mr. Sladdery the librarian, and indeed the great farmer
  • of gorgeous sheep, admits this very day, "Why yes, sir, there
  • certainly ARE reports concerning Lady Dedlock, very current indeed
  • among my high connexion, sir. You see, my high connexion must talk
  • about something, sir; and it's only to get a subject into vogue with
  • one or two ladies I could name to make it go down with the whole.
  • Just what I should have done with those ladies, sir, in the case of
  • any novelty you had left to me to bring in, they have done of
  • themselves in this case through knowing Lady Dedlock and being
  • perhaps a little innocently jealous of her too, sir. You'll find,
  • sir, that this topic will be very popular among my high connexion. If
  • it had been a speculation, sir, it would have brought money. And when
  • I say so, you may trust to my being right, sir, for I have made it my
  • business to study my high connexion and to be able to wind it up like
  • a clock, sir."
  • Thus rumour thrives in the capital, and will not go down into
  • Lincolnshire. By half-past five, post meridian, Horse Guards' time,
  • it has even elicited a new remark from the Honourable Mr. Stables,
  • which bids fair to outshine the old one, on which he has so long
  • rested his colloquial reputation. This sparkling sally is to the
  • effect that although he always knew she was the best-groomed woman in
  • the stud, he had no idea she was a bolter. It is immensely received
  • in turf-circles.
  • At feasts and festivals also, in firmaments she has often graced, and
  • among constellations she outshone but yesterday, she is still the
  • prevalent subject. What is it? Who is it? When was it? Where was it?
  • How was it? She is discussed by her dear friends with all the
  • genteelest slang in vogue, with the last new word, the last new
  • manner, the last new drawl, and the perfection of polite
  • indifference. A remarkable feature of the theme is that it is found
  • to be so inspiring that several people come out upon it who never
  • came out before--positively say things! William Buffy carries one of
  • these smartnesses from the place where he dines down to the House,
  • where the Whip for his party hands it about with his snuff-box to
  • keep men together who want to be off, with such effect that the
  • Speaker (who has had it privately insinuated into his own ear under
  • the corner of his wig) cries, "Order at the bar!" three times without
  • making an impression.
  • And not the least amazing circumstance connected with her being
  • vaguely the town talk is that people hovering on the confines of Mr.
  • Sladdery's high connexion, people who know nothing and ever did know
  • nothing about her, think it essential to their reputation to pretend
  • that she is their topic too, and to retail her at second-hand with
  • the last new word and the last new manner, and the last new drawl,
  • and the last new polite indifference, and all the rest of it, all at
  • second-hand but considered equal to new in inferior systems and to
  • fainter stars. If there be any man of letters, art, or science among
  • these little dealers, how noble in him to support the feeble sisters
  • on such majestic crutches!
  • So goes the wintry day outside the Dedlock mansion. How within it?
  • Sir Leicester, lying in his bed, can speak a little, though with
  • difficulty and indistinctness. He is enjoined to silence and to rest,
  • and they have given him some opiate to lull his pain, for his old
  • enemy is very hard with him. He is never asleep, though sometimes he
  • seems to fall into a dull waking doze. He caused his bedstead to be
  • moved out nearer to the window when he heard it was such inclement
  • weather, and his head to be so adjusted that he could see the driving
  • snow and sleet. He watches it as it falls, throughout the whole
  • wintry day.
  • Upon the least noise in the house, which is kept hushed, his hand is
  • at the pencil. The old housekeeper, sitting by him, knows what he
  • would write and whispers, "No, he has not come back yet, Sir
  • Leicester. It was late last night when he went. He has been but a
  • little time gone yet."
  • He withdraws his hand and falls to looking at the sleet and snow
  • again until they seem, by being long looked at, to fall so thick and
  • fast that he is obliged to close his eyes for a minute on the giddy
  • whirl of white flakes and icy blots.
  • He began to look at them as soon as it was light. The day is not yet
  • far spent when he conceives it to be necessary that her rooms should
  • be prepared for her. It is very cold and wet. Let there be good
  • fires. Let them know that she is expected. Please see to it yourself.
  • He writes to this purpose on his slate, and Mrs. Rouncewell with a
  • heavy heart obeys.
  • "For I dread, George," the old lady says to her son, who waits below
  • to keep her company when she has a little leisure, "I dread, my dear,
  • that my Lady will never more set foot within these walls."
  • "That's a bad presentiment, mother."
  • "Nor yet within the walls of Chesney Wold, my dear."
  • "That's worse. But why, mother?"
  • "When I saw my Lady yesterday, George, she looked to me--and I may
  • say at me too--as if the step on the Ghost's Walk had almost walked
  • her down."
  • "Come, come! You alarm yourself with old-story fears, mother."
  • "No I don't, my dear. No I don't. It's going on for sixty year that I
  • have been in this family, and I never had any fears for it before.
  • But it's breaking up, my dear; the great old Dedlock family is
  • breaking up."
  • "I hope not, mother."
  • "I am thankful I have lived long enough to be with Sir Leicester in
  • this illness and trouble, for I know I am not too old nor too useless
  • to be a welcomer sight to him than anybody else in my place would be.
  • But the step on the Ghost's Walk will walk my Lady down, George; it
  • has been many a day behind her, and now it will pass her and go on."
  • "Well, mother dear, I say again, I hope not."
  • "Ah, so do I, George," the old lady returns, shaking her head and
  • parting her folded hands. "But if my fears come true, and he has to
  • know it, who will tell him!"
  • "Are these her rooms?"
  • "These are my Lady's rooms, just as she left them."
  • "Why, now," says the trooper, glancing round him and speaking in a
  • lower voice, "I begin to understand how you come to think as you do
  • think, mother. Rooms get an awful look about them when they are
  • fitted up, like these, for one person you are used to see in them,
  • and that person is away under any shadow, let alone being God knows
  • where."
  • He is not far out. As all partings foreshadow the great final one,
  • so, empty rooms, bereft of a familiar presence, mournfully whisper
  • what your room and what mine must one day be. My Lady's state has a
  • hollow look, thus gloomy and abandoned; and in the inner apartment,
  • where Mr. Bucket last night made his secret perquisition, the traces
  • of her dresses and her ornaments, even the mirrors accustomed to
  • reflect them when they were a portion of herself, have a desolate and
  • vacant air. Dark and cold as the wintry day is, it is darker and
  • colder in these deserted chambers than in many a hut that will barely
  • exclude the weather; and though the servants heap fires in the grates
  • and set the couches and the chairs within the warm glass screens that
  • let their ruddy light shoot through to the furthest corners, there is
  • a heavy cloud upon the rooms which no light will dispel.
  • The old housekeeper and her son remain until the preparations are
  • complete, and then she returns upstairs. Volumnia has taken Mrs.
  • Rouncewell's place in the meantime, though pearl necklaces and rouge
  • pots, however calculated to embellish Bath, are but indifferent
  • comforts to the invalid under present circumstances. Volumnia, not
  • being supposed to know (and indeed not knowing) what is the matter,
  • has found it a ticklish task to offer appropriate observations and
  • consequently has supplied their place with distracting smoothings of
  • the bed-linen, elaborate locomotion on tiptoe, vigilant peeping at
  • her kinsman's eyes, and one exasperating whisper to herself of, "He
  • is asleep." In disproof of which superfluous remark Sir Leicester has
  • indignantly written on the slate, "I am not."
  • Yielding, therefore, the chair at the bedside to the quaint old
  • housekeeper, Volumnia sits at a table a little removed,
  • sympathetically sighing. Sir Leicester watches the sleet and snow and
  • listens for the returning steps that he expects. In the ears of his
  • old servant, looking as if she had stepped out of an old
  • picture-frame to attend a summoned Dedlock to another world, the
  • silence is fraught with echoes of her own words, "Who will tell him!"
  • He has been under his valet's hands this morning to be made
  • presentable and is as well got up as the circumstances will allow. He
  • is propped with pillows, his grey hair is brushed in its usual
  • manner, his linen is arranged to a nicety, and he is wrapped in a
  • responsible dressing-gown. His eye-glass and his watch are ready to
  • his hand. It is necessary--less to his own dignity now perhaps than
  • for her sake--that he should be seen as little disturbed and as much
  • himself as may be. Women will talk, and Volumnia, though a Dedlock,
  • is no exceptional case. He keeps her here, there is little doubt, to
  • prevent her talking somewhere else. He is very ill, but he makes his
  • present stand against distress of mind and body most courageously.
  • The fair Volumnia, being one of those sprightly girls who cannot long
  • continue silent without imminent peril of seizure by the dragon
  • Boredom, soon indicates the approach of that monster with a series of
  • undisguisable yawns. Finding it impossible to suppress those yawns by
  • any other process than conversation, she compliments Mrs. Rouncewell
  • on her son, declaring that he positively is one of the finest figures
  • she ever saw and as soldierly a looking person, she should think, as
  • what's his name, her favourite Life Guardsman--the man she dotes on,
  • the dearest of creatures--who was killed at Waterloo.
  • Sir Leicester hears this tribute with so much surprise and stares
  • about him in such a confused way that Mrs. Rouncewell feels it
  • necessary to explain.
  • "Miss Dedlock don't speak of my eldest son, Sir Leicester, but my
  • youngest. I have found him. He has come home."
  • Sir Leicester breaks silence with a harsh cry. "George? Your son
  • George come home, Mrs. Rouncewell?"
  • The old housekeeper wipes her eyes. "Thank God. Yes, Sir Leicester."
  • Does this discovery of some one lost, this return of some one so long
  • gone, come upon him as a strong confirmation of his hopes? Does he
  • think, "Shall I not, with the aid I have, recall her safely after
  • this, there being fewer hours in her case than there are years in
  • his?"
  • It is of no use entreating him; he is determined to speak now, and he
  • does. In a thick crowd of sounds, but still intelligibly enough to be
  • understood.
  • "Why did you not tell me, Mrs. Rouncewell?"
  • "It happened only yesterday, Sir Leicester, and I doubted your being
  • well enough to be talked to of such things."
  • Besides, the giddy Volumnia now remembers with her little scream that
  • nobody was to have known of his being Mrs. Rouncewell's son and that
  • she was not to have told. But Mrs. Rouncewell protests, with warmth
  • enough to swell the stomacher, that of course she would have told Sir
  • Leicester as soon as he got better.
  • "Where is your son George, Mrs. Rouncewell?" asks Sir Leicester,
  • Mrs. Rouncewell, not a little alarmed by his disregard of the
  • doctor's injunctions, replies, in London.
  • "Where in London?"
  • Mrs. Rouncewell is constrained to admit that he is in the house.
  • "Bring him here to my room. Bring him directly."
  • The old lady can do nothing but go in search of him. Sir Leicester,
  • with such power of movement as he has, arranges himself a little to
  • receive him. When he has done so, he looks out again at the falling
  • sleet and snow and listens again for the returning steps. A quantity
  • of straw has been tumbled down in the street to deaden the noises
  • there, and she might be driven to the door perhaps without his
  • hearing wheels.
  • He is lying thus, apparently forgetful of his newer and minor
  • surprise, when the housekeeper returns, accompanied by her trooper
  • son. Mr. George approaches softly to the bedside, makes his bow,
  • squares his chest, and stands, with his face flushed, very heartily
  • ashamed of himself.
  • "Good heaven, and it is really George Rouncewell!" exclaims Sir
  • Leicester. "Do you remember me, George?"
  • The trooper needs to look at him and to separate this sound from that
  • sound before he knows what he has said, but doing this and being a
  • little helped by his mother, he replies, "I must have a very bad
  • memory, indeed, Sir Leicester, if I failed to remember you."
  • "When I look at you, George Rouncewell," Sir Leicester observes with
  • difficulty, "I see something of a boy at Chesney Wold--I remember
  • well--very well."
  • He looks at the trooper until tears come into his eyes, and then he
  • looks at the sleet and snow again.
  • "I ask your pardon, Sir Leicester," says the trooper, "but would you
  • accept of my arms to raise you up? You would lie easier, Sir
  • Leicester, if you would allow me to move you."
  • "If you please, George Rouncewell; if you will be so good."
  • The trooper takes him in his arms like a child, lightly raises him,
  • and turns him with his face more towards the window. "Thank you. You
  • have your mother's gentleness," returns Sir Leicester, "and your own
  • strength. Thank you."
  • He signs to him with his hand not to go away. George quietly remains
  • at the bedside, waiting to be spoken to.
  • "Why did you wish for secrecy?" It takes Sir Leicester some time to
  • ask this.
  • "Truly I am not much to boast of, Sir Leicester, and I--I should
  • still, Sir Leicester, if you was not so indisposed--which I hope you
  • will not be long--I should still hope for the favour of being allowed
  • to remain unknown in general. That involves explanations not very
  • hard to be guessed at, not very well timed here, and not very
  • creditable to myself. However opinions may differ on a variety of
  • subjects, I should think it would be universally agreed, Sir
  • Leicester, that I am not much to boast of."
  • "You have been a soldier," observes Sir Leicester, "and a faithful
  • one."
  • George makes his military bow. "As far as that goes, Sir Leicester, I
  • have done my duty under discipline, and it was the least I could do."
  • "You find me," says Sir Leicester, whose eyes are much attracted
  • towards him, "far from well, George Rouncewell."
  • "I am very sorry both to hear it and to see it, Sir Leicester."
  • "I am sure you are. No. In addition to my older malady, I have had a
  • sudden and bad attack. Something that deadens," making an endeavour
  • to pass one hand down one side, "and confuses," touching his lips.
  • George, with a look of assent and sympathy, makes another bow. The
  • different times when they were both young men (the trooper much the
  • younger of the two) and looked at one another down at Chesney Wold
  • arise before them both and soften both.
  • Sir Leicester, evidently with a great determination to say, in his
  • own manner, something that is on his mind before relapsing into
  • silence, tries to raise himself among his pillows a little more.
  • George, observant of the action, takes him in his arms again and
  • places him as he desires to be. "Thank you, George. You are another
  • self to me. You have often carried my spare gun at Chesney Wold,
  • George. You are familiar to me in these strange circumstances, very
  • familiar." He has put Sir Leicester's sounder arm over his shoulder
  • in lifting him up, and Sir Leicester is slow in drawing it away again
  • as he says these words.
  • "I was about to add," he presently goes on, "I was about to add,
  • respecting this attack, that it was unfortunately simultaneous with a
  • slight misunderstanding between my Lady and myself. I do not mean
  • that there was any difference between us (for there has been none),
  • but that there was a misunderstanding of certain circumstances
  • important only to ourselves, which deprives me, for a little while,
  • of my Lady's society. She has found it necessary to make a journey--I
  • trust will shortly return. Volumnia, do I make myself intelligible?
  • The words are not quite under my command in the manner of pronouncing
  • them."
  • Volumnia understands him perfectly, and in truth he delivers himself
  • with far greater plainness than could have been supposed possible a
  • minute ago. The effort by which he does so is written in the anxious
  • and labouring expression of his face. Nothing but the strength of his
  • purpose enables him to make it.
  • "Therefore, Volumnia, I desire to say in your presence--and in the
  • presence of my old retainer and friend, Mrs. Rouncewell, whose truth
  • and fidelity no one can question, and in the presence of her son
  • George, who comes back like a familiar recollection of my youth in
  • the home of my ancestors at Chesney Wold--in case I should relapse,
  • in case I should not recover, in case I should lose both my speech
  • and the power of writing, though I hope for better things--"
  • The old housekeeper weeping silently; Volumnia in the greatest
  • agitation, with the freshest bloom on her cheeks; the trooper with
  • his arms folded and his head a little bent, respectfully attentive.
  • "Therefore I desire to say, and to call you all to
  • witness--beginning, Volumnia, with yourself, most solemnly--that I am
  • on unaltered terms with Lady Dedlock. That I assert no cause whatever
  • of complaint against her. That I have ever had the strongest
  • affection for her, and that I retain it undiminished. Say this to
  • herself, and to every one. If you ever say less than this, you will
  • be guilty of deliberate falsehood to me."
  • Volumnia tremblingly protests that she will observe his injunctions
  • to the letter.
  • "My Lady is too high in position, too handsome, too accomplished, too
  • superior in most respects to the best of those by whom she is
  • surrounded, not to have her enemies and traducers, I dare say. Let it
  • be known to them, as I make it known to you, that being of sound
  • mind, memory, and understanding, I revoke no disposition I have made
  • in her favour. I abridge nothing I have ever bestowed upon her. I am
  • on unaltered terms with her, and I recall--having the full power to
  • do it if I were so disposed, as you see--no act I have done for her
  • advantage and happiness."
  • His formal array of words might have at any other time, as it has
  • often had, something ludicrous in it, but at this time it is serious
  • and affecting. His noble earnestness, his fidelity, his gallant
  • shielding of her, his generous conquest of his own wrong and his own
  • pride for her sake, are simply honourable, manly, and true. Nothing
  • less worthy can be seen through the lustre of such qualities in the
  • commonest mechanic, nothing less worthy can be seen in the best-born
  • gentleman. In such a light both aspire alike, both rise alike, both
  • children of the dust shine equally.
  • Overpowered by his exertions, he lays his head back on his pillows
  • and closes his eyes for not more than a minute, when he again resumes
  • his watching of the weather and his attention to the muffled sounds.
  • In the rendering of those little services, and in the manner of their
  • acceptance, the trooper has become installed as necessary to him.
  • Nothing has been said, but it is quite understood. He falls a step or
  • two backward to be out of sight and mounts guard a little behind his
  • mother's chair.
  • The day is now beginning to decline. The mist and the sleet into
  • which the snow has all resolved itself are darker, and the blaze
  • begins to tell more vividly upon the room walls and furniture. The
  • gloom augments; the bright gas springs up in the streets; and the
  • pertinacious oil lamps which yet hold their ground there, with their
  • source of life half frozen and half thawed, twinkle gaspingly like
  • fiery fish out of water--as they are. The world, which has been
  • rumbling over the straw and pulling at the bell, "to inquire," begins
  • to go home, begins to dress, to dine, to discuss its dear friend with
  • all the last new modes, as already mentioned.
  • Now does Sir Leicester become worse, restless, uneasy, and in great
  • pain. Volumnia, lighting a candle (with a predestined aptitude for
  • doing something objectionable), is bidden to put it out again, for it
  • is not yet dark enough. Yet it is very dark too, as dark as it will
  • be all night. By and by she tries again. No! Put it out. It is not
  • dark enough yet.
  • His old housekeeper is the first to understand that he is striving to
  • uphold the fiction with himself that it is not growing late.
  • "Dear Sir Leicester, my honoured master," she softly whispers, "I
  • must, for your own good, and my duty, take the freedom of begging and
  • praying that you will not lie here in the lone darkness watching and
  • waiting and dragging through the time. Let me draw the curtains, and
  • light the candles, and make things more comfortable about you. The
  • church-clocks will strike the hours just the same, Sir Leicester, and
  • the night will pass away just the same. My Lady will come back, just
  • the same."
  • "I know it, Mrs. Rouncewell, but I am weak--and she has been so long
  • gone."
  • "Not so very long, Sir Leicester. Not twenty-four hours yet."
  • "But that is a long time. Oh, it is a long time!"
  • He says it with a groan that wrings her heart.
  • She knows that this is not a period for bringing the rough light upon
  • him; she thinks his tears too sacred to be seen, even by her.
  • Therefore she sits in the darkness for a while without a word, then
  • gently begins to move about, now stirring the fire, now standing at
  • the dark window looking out. Finally he tells her, with recovered
  • self-command, "As you say, Mrs. Rouncewell, it is no worse for being
  • confessed. It is getting late, and they are not come. Light the
  • room!" When it is lighted and the weather shut out, it is only left
  • to him to listen.
  • But they find that however dejected and ill he is, he brightens when
  • a quiet pretence is made of looking at the fires in her rooms and
  • being sure that everything is ready to receive her. Poor pretence as
  • it is, these allusions to her being expected keep up hope within him.
  • Midnight comes, and with it the same blank. The carriages in the
  • streets are few, and other late sounds in that neighbourhood there
  • are none, unless a man so very nomadically drunk as to stray into the
  • frigid zone goes brawling and bellowing along the pavement. Upon this
  • wintry night it is so still that listening to the intense silence is
  • like looking at intense darkness. If any distant sound be audible in
  • this case, it departs through the gloom like a feeble light in that,
  • and all is heavier than before.
  • The corporation of servants are dismissed to bed (not unwilling to
  • go, for they were up all last night), and only Mrs. Rouncewell and
  • George keep watch in Sir Leicester's room. As the night lags tardily
  • on--or rather when it seems to stop altogether, at between two and
  • three o'clock--they find a restless craving on him to know more about
  • the weather, now he cannot see it. Hence George, patrolling regularly
  • every half-hour to the rooms so carefully looked after, extends his
  • march to the hall-door, looks about him, and brings back the best
  • report he can make of the worst of nights, the sleet still falling
  • and even the stone footways lying ankle-deep in icy sludge.
  • Volumnia, in her room up a retired landing on the staircase--the
  • second turning past the end of the carving and gilding, a cousinly
  • room containing a fearful abortion of a portrait of Sir Leicester
  • banished for its crimes, and commanding in the day a solemn yard
  • planted with dried-up shrubs like antediluvian specimens of black
  • tea--is a prey to horrors of many kinds. Not last nor least among
  • them, possibly, is a horror of what may befall her little income in
  • the event, as she expresses it, "of anything happening" to Sir
  • Leicester. Anything, in this sense, meaning one thing only; and that
  • the last thing that can happen to the consciousness of any baronet in
  • the known world.
  • An effect of these horrors is that Volumnia finds she cannot go to
  • bed in her own room or sit by the fire in her own room, but must come
  • forth with her fair head tied up in a profusion of shawl, and her
  • fair form enrobed in drapery, and parade the mansion like a ghost,
  • particularly haunting the rooms, warm and luxurious, prepared for one
  • who still does not return. Solitude under such circumstances being
  • not to be thought of, Volumnia is attended by her maid, who,
  • impressed from her own bed for that purpose, extremely cold, very
  • sleepy, and generally an injured maid as condemned by circumstances
  • to take office with a cousin, when she had resolved to be maid to
  • nothing less than ten thousand a year, has not a sweet expression of
  • countenance.
  • The periodical visits of the trooper to these rooms, however, in the
  • course of his patrolling is an assurance of protection and company
  • both to mistress and maid, which renders them very acceptable in the
  • small hours of the night. Whenever he is heard advancing, they both
  • make some little decorative preparation to receive him; at other
  • times they divide their watches into short scraps of oblivion and
  • dialogues not wholly free from acerbity, as to whether Miss Dedlock,
  • sitting with her feet upon the fender, was or was not falling into
  • the fire when rescued (to her great displeasure) by her guardian
  • genius the maid.
  • "How is Sir Leicester now, Mr. George?" inquires Volumnia, adjusting
  • her cowl over her head.
  • "Why, Sir Leicester is much the same, miss. He is very low and ill,
  • and he even wanders a little sometimes."
  • "Has he asked for me?" inquires Volumnia tenderly.
  • "Why, no, I can't say he has, miss. Not within my hearing, that is to
  • say."
  • "This is a truly sad time, Mr. George."
  • "It is indeed, miss. Hadn't you better go to bed?"
  • "You had a deal better go to bed, Miss Dedlock," quoth the maid
  • sharply.
  • But Volumnia answers No! No! She may be asked for, she may be wanted
  • at a moment's notice. She never should forgive herself "if anything
  • was to happen" and she was not on the spot. She declines to enter on
  • the question, mooted by the maid, how the spot comes to be there, and
  • not in her room (which is nearer to Sir Leicester's), but staunchly
  • declares that on the spot she will remain. Volumnia further makes a
  • merit of not having "closed an eye"--as if she had twenty or
  • thirty--though it is hard to reconcile this statement with her having
  • most indisputably opened two within five minutes.
  • But when it comes to four o'clock, and still the same blank,
  • Volumnia's constancy begins to fail her, or rather it begins to
  • strengthen, for she now considers that it is her duty to be ready for
  • the morrow, when much may be expected of her, that, in fact,
  • howsoever anxious to remain upon the spot, it may be required of her,
  • as an act of self-devotion, to desert the spot. So when the trooper
  • reappears with his, "Hadn't you better go to bed, miss?" and when the
  • maid protests, more sharply than before, "You had a deal better go to
  • bed, Miss Dedlock!" she meekly rises and says, "Do with me what you
  • think best!"
  • Mr. George undoubtedly thinks it best to escort her on his arm to the
  • door of her cousinly chamber, and the maid as undoubtedly thinks it
  • best to hustle her into bed with mighty little ceremony. Accordingly,
  • these steps are taken; and now the trooper, in his rounds, has the
  • house to himself.
  • There is no improvement in the weather. From the portico, from the
  • eaves, from the parapet, from every ledge and post and pillar, drips
  • the thawed snow. It has crept, as if for shelter, into the lintels of
  • the great door--under it, into the corners of the windows, into every
  • chink and crevice of retreat, and there wastes and dies. It is
  • falling still; upon the roof, upon the skylight, even through the
  • skylight, and drip, drip, drip, with the regularity of the Ghost's
  • Walk, on the stone floor below.
  • The trooper, his old recollections awakened by the solitary grandeur
  • of a great house--no novelty to him once at Chesney Wold--goes up the
  • stairs and through the chief rooms, holding up his light at arm's
  • length. Thinking of his varied fortunes within the last few weeks,
  • and of his rustic boyhood, and of the two periods of his life so
  • strangely brought together across the wide intermediate space;
  • thinking of the murdered man whose image is fresh in his mind;
  • thinking of the lady who has disappeared from these very rooms and
  • the tokens of whose recent presence are all here; thinking of the
  • master of the house upstairs and of the foreboding, "Who will tell
  • him!" he looks here and looks there, and reflects how he MIGHT see
  • something now, which it would tax his boldness to walk up to, lay his
  • hand upon, and prove to be a fancy. But it is all blank, blank as the
  • darkness above and below, while he goes up the great staircase again,
  • blank as the oppressive silence.
  • "All is still in readiness, George Rouncewell?"
  • "Quite orderly and right, Sir Leicester."
  • "No word of any kind?"
  • The trooper shakes his head.
  • "No letter that can possibly have been overlooked?"
  • But he knows there is no such hope as that and lays his head down
  • without looking for an answer.
  • Very familiar to him, as he said himself some hours ago, George
  • Rouncewell lifts him into easier positions through the long remainder
  • of the blank wintry night, and equally familiar with his unexpressed
  • wish, extinguishes the light and undraws the curtains at the first
  • late break of day. The day comes like a phantom. Cold, colourless,
  • and vague, it sends a warning streak before it of a deathlike hue, as
  • if it cried out, "Look what I am bringing you who watch there! Who
  • will tell him!"
  • CHAPTER LIX
  • Esther's Narrative
  • It was three o'clock in the morning when the houses outside London
  • did at last begin to exclude the country and to close us in with
  • streets. We had made our way along roads in a far worse condition
  • than when we had traversed them by daylight, both the fall and the
  • thaw having lasted ever since; but the energy of my companion never
  • slackened. It had only been, as I thought, of less assistance than
  • the horses in getting us on, and it had often aided them. They had
  • stopped exhausted half-way up hills, they had been driven through
  • streams of turbulent water, they had slipped down and become
  • entangled with the harness; but he and his little lantern had been
  • always ready, and when the mishap was set right, I had never heard
  • any variation in his cool, "Get on, my lads!"
  • The steadiness and confidence with which he had directed our journey
  • back I could not account for. Never wavering, he never even stopped
  • to make an inquiry until we were within a few miles of London. A very
  • few words, here and there, were then enough for him; and thus we
  • came, at between three and four o'clock in the morning, into
  • Islington.
  • I will not dwell on the suspense and anxiety with which I reflected
  • all this time that we were leaving my mother farther and farther
  • behind every minute. I think I had some strong hope that he must be
  • right and could not fail to have a satisfactory object in following
  • this woman, but I tormented myself with questioning it and discussing
  • it during the whole journey. What was to ensue when we found her and
  • what could compensate us for this loss of time were questions also
  • that I could not possibly dismiss; my mind was quite tortured by long
  • dwelling on such reflections when we stopped.
  • We stopped in a high-street where there was a coach-stand. My
  • companion paid our two drivers, who were as completely covered with
  • splashes as if they had been dragged along the roads like the
  • carriage itself, and giving them some brief direction where to take
  • it, lifted me out of it and into a hackney-coach he had chosen from
  • the rest.
  • "Why, my dear!" he said as he did this. "How wet you are!"
  • I had not been conscious of it. But the melted snow had found its way
  • into the carriage, and I had got out two or three times when a fallen
  • horse was plunging and had to be got up, and the wet had penetrated
  • my dress. I assured him it was no matter, but the driver, who knew
  • him, would not be dissuaded by me from running down the street to his
  • stable, whence he brought an armful of clean dry straw. They shook it
  • out and strewed it well about me, and I found it warm and
  • comfortable.
  • "Now, my dear," said Mr. Bucket, with his head in at the window after
  • I was shut up. "We're a-going to mark this person down. It may take a
  • little time, but you don't mind that. You're pretty sure that I've
  • got a motive. Ain't you?"
  • I little thought what it was, little thought in how short a time I
  • should understand it better, but I assured him that I had confidence
  • in him.
  • "So you may have, my dear," he returned. "And I tell you what! If you
  • only repose half as much confidence in me as I repose in you after
  • what I've experienced of you, that'll do. Lord! You're no trouble at
  • all. I never see a young woman in any station of society--and I've
  • seen many elevated ones too--conduct herself like you have conducted
  • yourself since you was called out of your bed. You're a pattern, you
  • know, that's what you are," said Mr. Bucket warmly; "you're a
  • pattern."
  • I told him I was very glad, as indeed I was, to have been no
  • hindrance to him, and that I hoped I should be none now.
  • "My dear," he returned, "when a young lady is as mild as she's game,
  • and as game as she's mild, that's all I ask, and more than I expect.
  • She then becomes a queen, and that's about what you are yourself."
  • With these encouraging words--they really were encouraging to me
  • under those lonely and anxious circumstances--he got upon the box,
  • and we once more drove away. Where we drove I neither knew then nor
  • have ever known since, but we appeared to seek out the narrowest and
  • worst streets in London. Whenever I saw him directing the driver, I
  • was prepared for our descending into a deeper complication of such
  • streets, and we never failed to do so.
  • Sometimes we emerged upon a wider thoroughfare or came to a larger
  • building than the generality, well lighted. Then we stopped at
  • offices like those we had visited when we began our journey, and I
  • saw him in consultation with others. Sometimes he would get down by
  • an archway or at a street corner and mysteriously show the light of
  • his little lantern. This would attract similar lights from various
  • dark quarters, like so many insects, and a fresh consultation would
  • be held. By degrees we appeared to contract our search within
  • narrower and easier limits. Single police-officers on duty could now
  • tell Mr. Bucket what he wanted to know and point to him where to go.
  • At last we stopped for a rather long conversation between him and one
  • of these men, which I supposed to be satisfactory from his manner of
  • nodding from time to time. When it was finished he came to me looking
  • very busy and very attentive.
  • "Now, Miss Summerson," he said to me, "you won't be alarmed whatever
  • comes off, I know. It's not necessary for me to give you any further
  • caution than to tell you that we have marked this person down and
  • that you may be of use to me before I know it myself. I don't like to
  • ask such a thing, my dear, but would you walk a little way?"
  • Of course I got out directly and took his arm.
  • "It ain't so easy to keep your feet," said Mr. Bucket, "but take
  • time."
  • Although I looked about me confusedly and hurriedly as we crossed the
  • street, I thought I knew the place. "Are we in Holborn?" I asked him.
  • "Yes," said Mr. Bucket. "Do you know this turning?"
  • "It looks like Chancery Lane."
  • "And was christened so, my dear," said Mr. Bucket.
  • We turned down it, and as we went shuffling through the sleet, I
  • heard the clocks strike half-past five. We passed on in silence and
  • as quickly as we could with such a foot-hold, when some one coming
  • towards us on the narrow pavement, wrapped in a cloak, stopped and
  • stood aside to give me room. In the same moment I heard an
  • exclamation of wonder and my own name from Mr. Woodcourt. I knew his
  • voice very well.
  • It was so unexpected and so--I don't know what to call it, whether
  • pleasant or painful--to come upon it after my feverish wandering
  • journey, and in the midst of the night, that I could not keep back
  • the tears from my eyes. It was like hearing his voice in a strange
  • country.
  • "My dear Miss Summerson, that you should be out at this hour, and in
  • such weather!"
  • He had heard from my guardian of my having been called away on some
  • uncommon business and said so to dispense with any explanation. I
  • told him that we had but just left a coach and were going--but then I
  • was obliged to look at my companion.
  • "Why, you see, Mr. Woodcourt"--he had caught the name from me--"we
  • are a-going at present into the next street. Inspector Bucket."
  • Mr. Woodcourt, disregarding my remonstrances, had hurriedly taken off
  • his cloak and was putting it about me. "That's a good move, too,"
  • said Mr. Bucket, assisting, "a very good move."
  • "May I go with you?" said Mr. Woodcourt. I don't know whether to me
  • or to my companion.
  • "Why, Lord!" exclaimed Mr. Bucket, taking the answer on himself. "Of
  • course you may."
  • It was all said in a moment, and they took me between them, wrapped
  • in the cloak.
  • "I have just left Richard," said Mr. Woodcourt. "I have been sitting
  • with him since ten o'clock last night."
  • "Oh, dear me, he is ill!"
  • "No, no, believe me; not ill, but not quite well. He was depressed
  • and faint--you know he gets so worried and so worn sometimes--and Ada
  • sent to me of course; and when I came home I found her note and came
  • straight here. Well! Richard revived so much after a little while,
  • and Ada was so happy and so convinced of its being my doing, though
  • God knows I had little enough to do with it, that I remained with him
  • until he had been fast asleep some hours. As fast asleep as she is
  • now, I hope!"
  • His friendly and familiar way of speaking of them, his unaffected
  • devotion to them, the grateful confidence with which I knew he had
  • inspired my darling, and the comfort he was to her; could I separate
  • all this from his promise to me? How thankless I must have been if it
  • had not recalled the words he said to me when he was so moved by the
  • change in my appearance: "I will accept him as a trust, and it shall
  • be a sacred one!"
  • We now turned into another narrow street. "Mr. Woodcourt," said Mr.
  • Bucket, who had eyed him closely as we came along, "our business
  • takes us to a law-stationer's here, a certain Mr. Snagsby's. What,
  • you know him, do you?" He was so quick that he saw it in an instant.
  • "Yes, I know a little of him and have called upon him at this place."
  • "Indeed, sir?" said Mr. Bucket. "Then you will be so good as to let
  • me leave Miss Summerson with you for a moment while I go and have
  • half a word with him?"
  • The last police-officer with whom he had conferred was standing
  • silently behind us. I was not aware of it until he struck in on my
  • saying I heard some one crying.
  • "Don't be alarmed, miss," he returned. "It's Snagsby's servant."
  • "Why, you see," said Mr. Bucket, "the girl's subject to fits, and has
  • 'em bad upon her to-night. A most contrary circumstance it is, for I
  • want certain information out of that girl, and she must be brought to
  • reason somehow."
  • "At all events, they wouldn't be up yet if it wasn't for her, Mr.
  • Bucket," said the other man. "She's been at it pretty well all night,
  • sir."
  • "Well, that's true," he returned. "My light's burnt out. Show yours a
  • moment."
  • All this passed in a whisper a door or two from the house in which I
  • could faintly hear crying and moaning. In the little round of light
  • produced for the purpose, Mr. Bucket went up to the door and knocked.
  • The door was opened after he had knocked twice, and he went in,
  • leaving us standing in the street.
  • "Miss Summerson," said Mr. Woodcourt, "if without obtruding myself on
  • your confidence I may remain near you, pray let me do so."
  • "You are truly kind," I answered. "I need wish to keep no secret of
  • my own from you; if I keep any, it is another's."
  • "I quite understand. Trust me, I will remain near you only so long as
  • I can fully respect it."
  • "I trust implicitly to you," I said. "I know and deeply feel how
  • sacredly you keep your promise."
  • After a short time the little round of light shone out again, and Mr.
  • Bucket advanced towards us in it with his earnest face. "Please to
  • come in, Miss Summerson," he said, "and sit down by the fire. Mr.
  • Woodcourt, from information I have received I understand you are a
  • medical man. Would you look to this girl and see if anything can be
  • done to bring her round. She has a letter somewhere that I
  • particularly want. It's not in her box, and I think it must be about
  • her; but she is so twisted and clenched up that she is difficult to
  • handle without hurting."
  • We all three went into the house together; although it was cold and
  • raw, it smelt close too from being up all night. In the passage
  • behind the door stood a scared, sorrowful-looking little man in a
  • grey coat who seemed to have a naturally polite manner and spoke
  • meekly.
  • "Downstairs, if you please, Mr. Bucket," said he. "The lady will
  • excuse the front kitchen; we use it as our workaday sitting-room. The
  • back is Guster's bedroom, and in it she's a-carrying on, poor thing,
  • to a frightful extent!"
  • We went downstairs, followed by Mr. Snagsby, as I soon found the
  • little man to be. In the front kitchen, sitting by the fire, was Mrs.
  • Snagsby, with very red eyes and a very severe expression of face.
  • "My little woman," said Mr. Snagsby, entering behind us, "to
  • wave--not to put too fine a point upon it, my dear--hostilities for
  • one single moment in the course of this prolonged night, here is
  • Inspector Bucket, Mr. Woodcourt, and a lady."
  • She looked very much astonished, as she had reason for doing, and
  • looked particularly hard at me.
  • "My little woman," said Mr. Snagsby, sitting down in the remotest
  • corner by the door, as if he were taking a liberty, "it is not
  • unlikely that you may inquire of me why Inspector Bucket, Mr.
  • Woodcourt, and a lady call upon us in Cook's Court, Cursitor Street,
  • at the present hour. I don't know. I have not the least idea. If I
  • was to be informed, I should despair of understanding, and I'd rather
  • not be told."
  • He appeared so miserable, sitting with his head upon his hand, and I
  • appeared so unwelcome, that I was going to offer an apology when Mr.
  • Bucket took the matter on himself.
  • "Now, Mr. Snagsby," said he, "the best thing you can do is to go
  • along with Mr. Woodcourt to look after your Guster--"
  • "My Guster, Mr. Bucket!" cried Mr. Snagsby. "Go on, sir, go on. I
  • shall be charged with that next."
  • "And to hold the candle," pursued Mr. Bucket without correcting
  • himself, "or hold her, or make yourself useful in any way you're
  • asked. Which there's not a man alive more ready to do, for you're a
  • man of urbanity and suavity, you know, and you've got the sort of
  • heart that can feel for another. Mr. Woodcourt, would you be so good
  • as see to her, and if you can get that letter from her, to let me
  • have it as soon as ever you can?"
  • As they went out, Mr. Bucket made me sit down in a corner by the fire
  • and take off my wet shoes, which he turned up to dry upon the fender,
  • talking all the time.
  • "Don't you be at all put out, miss, by the want of a hospitable look
  • from Mrs. Snagsby there, because she's under a mistake altogether.
  • She'll find that out sooner than will be agreeable to a lady of her
  • generally correct manner of forming her thoughts, because I'm a-going
  • to explain it to her." Here, standing on the hearth with his wet hat
  • and shawls in his hand, himself a pile of wet, he turned to Mrs.
  • Snagsby. "Now, the first thing that I say to you, as a married woman
  • possessing what you may call charms, you know--'Believe Me, if All
  • Those Endearing,' and cetrer--you're well acquainted with the song,
  • because it's in vain for you to tell me that you and good society are
  • strangers--charms--attractions, mind you, that ought to give you
  • confidence in yourself--is, that you've done it."
  • Mrs. Snagsby looked rather alarmed, relented a little and faltered,
  • what did Mr. Bucket mean.
  • "What does Mr. Bucket mean?" he repeated, and I saw by his face that
  • all the time he talked he was listening for the discovery of the
  • letter, to my own great agitation, for I knew then how important it
  • must be; "I'll tell you what he means, ma'am. Go and see Othello
  • acted. That's the tragedy for you."
  • Mrs. Snagsby consciously asked why.
  • "Why?" said Mr. Bucket. "Because you'll come to that if you don't
  • look out. Why, at the very moment while I speak, I know what your
  • mind's not wholly free from respecting this young lady. But shall I
  • tell you who this young lady is? Now, come, you're what I call an
  • intellectual woman--with your soul too large for your body, if you
  • come to that, and chafing it--and you know me, and you recollect
  • where you saw me last, and what was talked of in that circle. Don't
  • you? Yes! Very well. This young lady is that young lady."
  • Mrs. Snagsby appeared to understand the reference better than I did
  • at the time.
  • "And Toughey--him as you call Jo--was mixed up in the same business,
  • and no other; and the law-writer that you know of was mixed up in the
  • same business, and no other; and your husband, with no more knowledge
  • of it than your great grandfather, was mixed up (by Mr. Tulkinghorn,
  • deceased, his best customer) in the same business, and no other; and
  • the whole bileing of people was mixed up in the same business, and no
  • other. And yet a married woman, possessing your attractions, shuts
  • her eyes (and sparklers too), and goes and runs her delicate-formed
  • head against a wall. Why, I am ashamed of you! (I expected Mr.
  • Woodcourt might have got it by this time.)"
  • Mrs. Snagsby shook her head and put her handkerchief to her eyes.
  • "Is that all?" said Mr. Bucket excitedly. "No. See what happens.
  • Another person mixed up in that business and no other, a person in a
  • wretched state, comes here to-night and is seen a-speaking to your
  • maid-servant; and between her and your maid-servant there passes
  • a paper that I would give a hundred pound for, down. What do
  • you do? You hide and you watch 'em, and you pounce upon that
  • maid-servant--knowing what she's subject to and what a little thing
  • will bring 'em on--in that surprising manner and with that severity
  • that, by the Lord, she goes off and keeps off, when a life may be
  • hanging upon that girl's words!"
  • He so thoroughly meant what he said now that I involuntarily clasped
  • my hands and felt the room turning away from me. But it stopped. Mr.
  • Woodcourt came in, put a paper into his hand, and went away again.
  • "Now, Mrs. Snagsby, the only amends you can make," said Mr. Bucket,
  • rapidly glancing at it, "is to let me speak a word to this young lady
  • in private here. And if you know of any help that you can give to
  • that gentleman in the next kitchen there or can think of any one
  • thing that's likelier than another to bring the girl round, do your
  • swiftest and best!" In an instant she was gone, and he had shut the
  • door. "Now my dear, you're steady and quite sure of yourself?"
  • "Quite," said I.
  • "Whose writing is that?"
  • It was my mother's. A pencil-writing, on a crushed and torn piece of
  • paper, blotted with wet. Folded roughly like a letter, and directed
  • to me at my guardian's.
  • "You know the hand," he said, "and if you are firm enough to read it
  • to me, do! But be particular to a word."
  • It had been written in portions, at different times. I read what
  • follows:
  • I came to the cottage with two objects. First, to see the
  • dear one, if I could, once more--but only to see her--not
  • to speak to her or let her know that I was near. The other
  • object, to elude pursuit and to be lost. Do not blame the
  • mother for her share. The assistance that she rendered me,
  • she rendered on my strongest assurance that it was for the
  • dear one's good. You remember her dead child. The men's
  • consent I bought, but her help was freely given.
  • "'I came.' That was written," said my companion, "when she rested
  • there. It bears out what I made of it. I was right."
  • The next was written at another time:
  • I have wandered a long distance, and for many hours, and
  • I know that I must soon die. These streets! I have no
  • purpose but to die. When I left, I had a worse, but I am
  • saved from adding that guilt to the rest. Cold, wet, and
  • fatigue are sufficient causes for my being found dead, but
  • I shall die of others, though I suffer from these. It was
  • right that all that had sustained me should give way at
  • once and that I should die of terror and my conscience.
  • "Take courage," said Mr. Bucket. "There's only a few words more."
  • Those, too, were written at another time. To all appearance, almost
  • in the dark:
  • I have done all I could do to be lost. I shall be soon
  • forgotten so, and shall disgrace him least. I have nothing
  • about me by which I can be recognized. This paper I part
  • with now. The place where I shall lie down, if I can get
  • so far, has been often in my mind. Farewell. Forgive.
  • Mr. Bucket, supporting me with his arm, lowered me gently into my
  • chair. "Cheer up! Don't think me hard with you, my dear, but as soon
  • as ever you feel equal to it, get your shoes on and be ready."
  • I did as he required, but I was left there a long time, praying for
  • my unhappy mother. They were all occupied with the poor girl, and I
  • heard Mr. Woodcourt directing them and speaking to her often. At
  • length he came in with Mr. Bucket and said that as it was important
  • to address her gently, he thought it best that I should ask her for
  • whatever information we desired to obtain. There was no doubt that
  • she could now reply to questions if she were soothed and not alarmed.
  • The questions, Mr. Bucket said, were how she came by the letter, what
  • passed between her and the person who gave her the letter, and where
  • the person went. Holding my mind as steadily as I could to these
  • points, I went into the next room with them. Mr. Woodcourt would have
  • remained outside, but at my solicitation went in with us.
  • The poor girl was sitting on the floor where they had laid her down.
  • They stood around her, though at a little distance, that she might
  • have air. She was not pretty and looked weak and poor, but she had a
  • plaintive and a good face, though it was still a little wild. I
  • kneeled on the ground beside her and put her poor head upon my
  • shoulder, whereupon she drew her arm round my neck and burst into
  • tears.
  • "My poor girl," said I, laying my face against her forehead, for
  • indeed I was crying too, and trembling, "it seems cruel to trouble
  • you now, but more depends on our knowing something about this letter
  • than I could tell you in an hour."
  • She began piteously declaring that she didn't mean any harm, she
  • didn't mean any harm, Mrs. Snagsby!
  • "We are all sure of that," said I. "But pray tell me how you got it."
  • "Yes, dear lady, I will, and tell you true. I'll tell true, indeed,
  • Mrs. Snagsby."
  • "I am sure of that," said I. "And how was it?"
  • "I had been out on an errand, dear lady--long after it was
  • dark--quite late; and when I came home, I found a common-looking
  • person, all wet and muddy, looking up at our house. When she saw me
  • coming in at the door, she called me back and said did I live here.
  • And I said yes, and she said she knew only one or two places about
  • here, but had lost her way and couldn't find them. Oh, what shall I
  • do, what shall I do! They won't believe me! She didn't say any harm
  • to me, and I didn't say any harm to her, indeed, Mrs. Snagsby!"
  • It was necessary for her mistress to comfort her--which she did, I
  • must say, with a good deal of contrition--before she could be got
  • beyond this.
  • "She could not find those places," said I.
  • "No!" cried the girl, shaking her head. "No! Couldn't find them. And
  • she was so faint, and lame, and miserable, Oh so wretched, that if
  • you had seen her, Mr. Snagsby, you'd have given her half a crown, I
  • know!"
  • "Well, Guster, my girl," said he, at first not knowing what to say.
  • "I hope I should."
  • "And yet she was so well spoken," said the girl, looking at me with
  • wide open eyes, "that it made a person's heart bleed. And so she said
  • to me, did I know the way to the burying ground? And I asked her
  • which burying ground. And she said, the poor burying ground. And so I
  • told her I had been a poor child myself, and it was according to
  • parishes. But she said she meant a poor burying ground not very far
  • from here, where there was an archway, and a step, and an iron gate."
  • As I watched her face and soothed her to go on, I saw that Mr. Bucket
  • received this with a look which I could not separate from one of
  • alarm.
  • "Oh, dear, dear!" cried the girl, pressing her hair back with her
  • hands. "What shall I do, what shall I do! She meant the burying
  • ground where the man was buried that took the sleeping-stuff--that
  • you came home and told us of, Mr. Snagsby--that frightened me so,
  • Mrs. Snagsby. Oh, I am frightened again. Hold me!"
  • "You are so much better now," sald I. "Pray, pray tell me more."
  • "Yes I will, yes I will! But don't be angry with me, that's a dear
  • lady, because I have been so ill."
  • Angry with her, poor soul!
  • "There! Now I will, now I will. So she said, could I tell her how to
  • find it, and I said yes, and I told her; and she looked at me with
  • eyes like almost as if she was blind, and herself all waving back.
  • And so she took out the letter, and showed it me, and said if she was
  • to put that in the post-office, it would be rubbed out and not minded
  • and never sent; and would I take it from her, and send it, and the
  • messenger would be paid at the house. And so I said yes, if it was no
  • harm, and she said no--no harm. And so I took it from her, and she
  • said she had nothing to give me, and I said I was poor myself and
  • consequently wanted nothing. And so she said God bless you, and
  • went."
  • "And did she go--"
  • "Yes," cried the girl, anticipating the inquiry. "Yes! She went the
  • way I had shown her. Then I came in, and Mrs. Snagsby came behind me
  • from somewhere and laid hold of me, and I was frightened."
  • Mr. Woodcourt took her kindly from me. Mr. Bucket wrapped me up, and
  • immediately we were in the street. Mr. Woodcourt hesitated, but I
  • said, "Don't leave me now!" and Mr. Bucket added, "You'll be better
  • with us, we may want you; don't lose time!"
  • I have the most confused impressions of that walk. I recollect that
  • it was neither night nor day, that morning was dawning but the
  • street-lamps were not yet put out, that the sleet was still falling
  • and that all the ways were deep with it. I recollect a few chilled
  • people passing in the streets. I recollect the wet house-tops, the
  • clogged and bursting gutters and water-spouts, the mounds of
  • blackened ice and snow over which we passed, the narrowness of the
  • courts by which we went. At the same time I remember that the poor
  • girl seemed to be yet telling her story audibly and plainly in my
  • hearing, that I could feel her resting on my arm, that the stained
  • house-fronts put on human shapes and looked at me, that great
  • water-gates seemed to be opening and closing in my head or in the
  • air, and that the unreal things were more substantial than the real.
  • At last we stood under a dark and miserable covered way, where one
  • lamp was burning over an iron gate and where the morning faintly
  • struggled in. The gate was closed. Beyond it was a burial ground--a
  • dreadful spot in which the night was very slowly stirring, but where
  • I could dimly see heaps of dishonoured graves and stones, hemmed in
  • by filthy houses with a few dull lights in their windows and on whose
  • walls a thick humidity broke out like a disease. On the step at the
  • gate, drenched in the fearful wet of such a place, which oozed and
  • splashed down everywhere, I saw, with a cry of pity and horror, a
  • woman lying--Jenny, the mother of the dead child.
  • I ran forward, but they stopped me, and Mr. Woodcourt entreated me
  • with the greatest earnestness, even with tears, before I went up to
  • the figure to listen for an instant to what Mr. Bucket said. I did
  • so, as I thought. I did so, as I am sure.
  • "Miss Summerson, you'll understand me, if you think a moment. They
  • changed clothes at the cottage."
  • They changed clothes at the cottage. I could repeat the words in my
  • mind, and I knew what they meant of themselves, but I attached no
  • meaning to them in any other connexion.
  • "And one returned," said Mr. Bucket, "and one went on. And the one
  • that went on only went on a certain way agreed upon to deceive and
  • then turned across country and went home. Think a moment!"
  • I could repeat this in my mind too, but I had not the least idea what
  • it meant. I saw before me, lying on the step, the mother of the dead
  • child. She lay there with one arm creeping round a bar of the iron
  • gate and seeming to embrace it. She lay there, who had so lately
  • spoken to my mother. She lay there, a distressed, unsheltered,
  • senseless creature. She who had brought my mother's letter, who could
  • give me the only clue to where my mother was; she, who was to guide
  • us to rescue and save her whom we had sought so far, who had come to
  • this condition by some means connected with my mother that I could
  • not follow, and might be passing beyond our reach and help at that
  • moment; she lay there, and they stopped me! I saw but did not
  • comprehend the solemn and compassionate look in Mr. Woodcourt's face.
  • I saw but did not comprehend his touching the other on the breast to
  • keep him back. I saw him stand uncovered in the bitter air, with a
  • reverence for something. But my understanding for all this was gone.
  • I even heard it said between them, "Shall she go?"
  • "She had better go. Her hands should be the first to touch her. They
  • have a higher right than ours."
  • I passed on to the gate and stooped down. I lifted the heavy head,
  • put the long dank hair aside, and turned the face. And it was my
  • mother, cold and dead.
  • CHAPTER LX
  • Perspective
  • I proceed to other passages of my narrative. From the goodness of all
  • about me I derived such consolation as I can never think of unmoved.
  • I have already said so much of myself, and so much still remains,
  • that I will not dwell upon my sorrow. I had an illness, but it was
  • not a long one; and I would avoid even this mention of it if I could
  • quite keep down the recollection of their sympathy.
  • I proceed to other passages of my narrative.
  • During the time of my illness, we were still in London, where Mrs.
  • Woodcourt had come, on my guardian's invitation, to stay with us.
  • When my guardian thought me well and cheerful enough to talk with him
  • in our old way--though I could have done that sooner if he would have
  • believed me--I resumed my work and my chair beside his. He had
  • appointed the time himself, and we were alone.
  • "Dame Trot," said he, receiving me with a kiss, "welcome to the
  • growlery again, my dear. I have a scheme to develop, little woman. I
  • propose to remain here, perhaps for six months, perhaps for a longer
  • time--as it may be. Quite to settle here for a while, in short."
  • "And in the meanwhile leave Bleak House?" said I.
  • "Aye, my dear? Bleak House," he returned, "must learn to take care of
  • itself."
  • I thought his tone sounded sorrowful, but looking at him, I saw his
  • kind face lighted up by its pleasantest smile.
  • "Bleak House," he repeated--and his tone did NOT sound sorrowful, I
  • found--"must learn to take care of itself. It is a long way from Ada,
  • my dear, and Ada stands much in need of you."
  • "It's like you, guardian," said I, "to have been taking that into
  • consideration for a happy surprise to both of us."
  • "Not so disinterested either, my dear, if you mean to extol me for
  • that virtue, since if you were generally on the road, you could be
  • seldom with me. And besides, I wish to hear as much and as often of
  • Ada as I can in this condition of estrangement from poor Rick. Not of
  • her alone, but of him too, poor fellow."
  • "Have you seen Mr. Woodcourt, this morning, guardian?"
  • "I see Mr. Woodcourt every morning, Dame Durden."
  • "Does he still say the same of Richard?"
  • "Just the same. He knows of no direct bodily illness that he has; on
  • the contrary, he believes that he has none. Yet he is not easy about
  • him; who CAN be?"
  • My dear girl had been to see us lately every day, some times twice in
  • a day. But we had foreseen, all along, that this would only last
  • until I was quite myself. We knew full well that her fervent heart
  • was as full of affection and gratitude towards her cousin John as it
  • had ever been, and we acquitted Richard of laying any injunctions
  • upon her to stay away; but we knew on the other hand that she felt it
  • a part of her duty to him to be sparing of her visits at our house.
  • My guardian's delicacy had soon perceived this and had tried to
  • convey to her that he thought she was right.
  • "Dear, unfortunate, mistaken Richard," said I. "When will he awake
  • from his delusion!"
  • "He is not in the way to do so now, my dear," replied my guardian.
  • "The more he suffers, the more averse he will be to me, having made
  • me the principal representative of the great occasion of his
  • suffering."
  • I could not help adding, "So unreasonably!"
  • "Ah, Dame Trot, Dame Trot," returned my guardian, "what shall we find
  • reasonable in Jarndyce and Jarndyce! Unreason and injustice at the
  • top, unreason and injustice at the heart and at the bottom, unreason
  • and injustice from beginning to end--if it ever has an end--how
  • should poor Rick, always hovering near it, pluck reason out of it? He
  • no more gathers grapes from thorns or figs from thistles than older
  • men did in old times."
  • His gentleness and consideration for Richard whenever we spoke of him
  • touched me so that I was always silent on this subject very soon.
  • "I suppose the Lord Chancellor, and the Vice Chancellors, and the
  • whole Chancery battery of great guns would be infinitely astonished
  • by such unreason and injustice in one of their suitors," pursued my
  • guardian. "When those learned gentlemen begin to raise moss-roses
  • from the powder they sow in their wigs, I shall begin to be
  • astonished too!"
  • He checked himself in glancing towards the window to look where the
  • wind was and leaned on the back of my chair instead.
  • "Well, well, little woman! To go on, my dear. This rock we must leave
  • to time, chance, and hopeful circumstance. We must not shipwreck Ada
  • upon it. She cannot afford, and he cannot afford, the remotest chance
  • of another separation from a friend. Therefore I have particularly
  • begged of Woodcourt, and I now particularly beg of you, my dear, not
  • to move this subject with Rick. Let it rest. Next week, next month,
  • next year, sooner or later, he will see me with clearer eyes. I can
  • wait."
  • But I had already discussed it with him, I confessed; and so, I
  • thought, had Mr. Woodcourt.
  • "So he tells me," returned my guardian. "Very good. He has made his
  • protest, and Dame Durden has made hers, and there is nothing more to
  • be said about it. Now I come to Mrs. Woodcourt. How do you like her,
  • my dear?"
  • In answer to this question, which was oddly abrupt, I said I liked
  • her very much and thought she was more agreeable than she used to be.
  • "I think so too," said my guardian. "Less pedigree? Not so much of
  • Morgan ap--what's his name?"
  • That was what I meant, I acknowledged, though he was a very harmless
  • person, even when we had had more of him.
  • "Still, upon the whole, he is as well in his native mountains," said
  • my guardian. "I agree with you. Then, little woman, can I do better
  • for a time than retain Mrs. Woodcourt here?"
  • No. And yet--
  • My guardian looked at me, waiting for what I had to say.
  • I had nothing to say. At least I had nothing in my mind that I could
  • say. I had an undefined impression that it might have been better if
  • we had had some other inmate, but I could hardly have explained why
  • even to myself. Or, if to myself, certainly not to anybody else.
  • "You see," said my guardian, "our neighbourhood is in Woodcourt's
  • way, and he can come here to see her as often as he likes, which is
  • agreeable to them both; and she is familiar to us and fond of you."
  • Yes. That was undeniable. I had nothing to say against it. I could
  • not have suggested a better arrangement, but I was not quite easy in
  • my mind. Esther, Esther, why not? Esther, think!
  • "It is a very good plan indeed, dear guardian, and we could not do
  • better."
  • "Sure, little woman?"
  • Quite sure. I had had a moment's time to think, since I had urged
  • that duty on myself, and I was quite sure.
  • "Good," said my guardian. "It shall be done. Carried unanimously."
  • "Carried unanimously," I repeated, going on with my work.
  • It was a cover for his book-table that I happened to be ornamenting.
  • It had been laid by on the night preceding my sad journey and never
  • resumed. I showed it to him now, and he admired it highly. After I
  • had explained the pattern to him and all the great effects that were
  • to come out by and by, I thought I would go back to our last theme.
  • "You said, dear guardian, when we spoke of Mr. Woodcourt before Ada
  • left us, that you thought he would give a long trial to another
  • country. Have you been advising him since?"
  • "Yes, little woman, pretty often."
  • "Has he decided to do so?"
  • "I rather think not."
  • "Some other prospect has opened to him, perhaps?" said I.
  • "Why--yes--perhaps," returned my guardian, beginning his answer in a
  • very deliberate manner. "About half a year hence or so, there is a
  • medical attendant for the poor to be appointed at a certain place in
  • Yorkshire. It is a thriving place, pleasantly situated--streams and
  • streets, town and country, mill and moor--and seems to present an
  • opening for such a man. I mean a man whose hopes and aims may
  • sometimes lie (as most men's sometimes do, I dare say) above the
  • ordinary level, but to whom the ordinary level will be high enough
  • after all if it should prove to be a way of usefulness and good
  • service leading to no other. All generous spirits are ambitious, I
  • suppose, but the ambition that calmly trusts itself to such a road,
  • instead of spasmodically trying to fly over it, is of the kind I care
  • for. It is Woodcourt's kind."
  • "And will he get this appointment?" I asked.
  • "Why, little woman," returned my guardian, smiling, "not being an
  • oracle, I cannot confidently say, but I think so. His reputation
  • stands very high; there were people from that part of the country in
  • the shipwreck; and strange to say, I believe the best man has the
  • best chance. You must not suppose it to be a fine endowment. It is a
  • very, very commonplace affair, my dear, an appointment to a great
  • amount of work and a small amount of pay; but better things will
  • gather about it, it may be fairly hoped."
  • "The poor of that place will have reason to bless the choice if it
  • falls on Mr. Woodcourt, guardian."
  • "You are right, little woman; that I am sure they will."
  • We said no more about it, nor did he say a word about the future of
  • Bleak House. But it was the first time I had taken my seat at his
  • side in my mourning dress, and that accounted for it, I considered.
  • I now began to visit my dear girl every day in the dull dark corner
  • where she lived. The morning was my usual time, but whenever I found
  • I had an hour or so to spare, I put on my bonnet and bustled off to
  • Chancery Lane. They were both so glad to see me at all hours, and
  • used to brighten up so when they heard me opening the door and coming
  • in (being quite at home, I never knocked), that I had no fear of
  • becoming troublesome just yet.
  • On these occasions I frequently found Richard absent. At other times
  • he would be writing or reading papers in the cause at that table of
  • his, so covered with papers, which was never disturbed. Sometimes I
  • would come upon him lingering at the door of Mr. Vholes's office.
  • Sometimes I would meet him in the neighbourhood lounging about and
  • biting his nails. I often met him wandering in Lincoln's Inn, near
  • the place where I had first seen him, oh how different, how
  • different!
  • That the money Ada brought him was melting away with the candles I
  • used to see burning after dark in Mr. Vholes's office I knew very
  • well. It was not a large amount in the beginning, he had married in
  • debt, and I could not fail to understand, by this time, what was
  • meant by Mr. Vholes's shoulder being at the wheel--as I still heard
  • it was. My dear made the best of housekeepers and tried hard to save,
  • but I knew that they were getting poorer and poorer every day.
  • She shone in the miserable corner like a beautiful star. She adorned
  • and graced it so that it became another place. Paler than she had
  • been at home, and a little quieter than I had thought natural when
  • she was yet so cheerful and hopeful, her face was so unshadowed that
  • I half believed she was blinded by her love for Richard to his
  • ruinous career.
  • I went one day to dine with them while I was under this impression.
  • As I turned into Symond's Inn, I met little Miss Flite coming out.
  • She had been to make a stately call upon the wards in Jarndyce, as
  • she still called them, and had derived the highest gratification from
  • that ceremony. Ada had already told me that she called every Monday
  • at five o'clock, with one little extra white bow in her bonnet, which
  • never appeared there at any other time, and with her largest reticule
  • of documents on her arm.
  • "My dear!" she began. "So delighted! How do you do! So glad to see
  • you. And you are going to visit our interesting Jarndyce wards? TO be
  • sure! Our beauty is at home, my dear, and will be charmed to see
  • you."
  • "Then Richard is not come in yet?" said I. "I am glad of that, for I
  • was afraid of being a little late."
  • "No, he is not come in," returned Miss Flite. "He has had a long day
  • in court. I left him there with Vholes. You don't like Vholes, I
  • hope? DON'T like Vholes. Dan-gerous man!"
  • "I am afraid you see Richard oftener than ever now," said I.
  • "My dearest," returned Miss Flite, "daily and hourly. You know what I
  • told you of the attraction on the Chancellor's table? My dear, next
  • to myself he is the most constant suitor in court. He begins quite to
  • amuse our little party. Ve-ry friendly little party, are we not?"
  • It was miserable to hear this from her poor mad lips, though it was
  • no surprise.
  • "In short, my valued friend," pursued Miss Flite, advancing her lips
  • to my ear with an air of equal patronage and mystery, "I must tell
  • you a secret. I have made him my executor. Nominated, constituted,
  • and appointed him. In my will. Ye-es."
  • "Indeed?" said I.
  • "Ye-es," repeated Miss Flite in her most genteel accents, "my
  • executor, administrator, and assign. (Our Chancery phrases, my love.)
  • I have reflected that if I should wear out, he will be able to watch
  • that judgment. Being so very regular in his attendance."
  • It made me sigh to think of him.
  • "I did at one time mean," said Miss Flite, echoing the sigh, "to
  • nominate, constitute, and appoint poor Gridley. Also very regular, my
  • charming girl. I assure you, most exemplary! But he wore out, poor
  • man, so I have appointed his successor. Don't mention it. This is in
  • confidence."
  • She carefully opened her reticule a little way and showed me a folded
  • piece of paper inside as the appointment of which she spoke.
  • "Another secret, my dear. I have added to my collection of birds."
  • "Really, Miss Flite?" said I, knowing how it pleased her to have her
  • confidence received with an appearance of interest.
  • She nodded several times, and her face became overcast and gloomy.
  • "Two more. I call them the Wards in Jarndyce. They are caged up with
  • all the others. With Hope, Joy, Youth, Peace, Rest, Life, Dust,
  • Ashes, Waste, Want, Ruin, Despair, Madness, Death, Cunning, Folly,
  • Words, Wigs, Rags, Sheepskin, Plunder, Precedent, Jargon, Gammon, and
  • Spinach!"
  • The poor soul kissed me with the most troubled look I had ever seen
  • in her and went her way. Her manner of running over the names of her
  • birds, as if she were afraid of hearing them even from her own lips,
  • quite chilled me.
  • This was not a cheering preparation for my visit, and I could have
  • dispensed with the company of Mr. Vholes, when Richard (who arrived
  • within a minute or two after me) brought him to share our dinner.
  • Although it was a very plain one, Ada and Richard were for some
  • minutes both out of the room together helping to get ready what we
  • were to eat and drink. Mr. Vholes took that opportunity of holding a
  • little conversation in a low voice with me. He came to the window
  • where I was sitting and began upon Symond's Inn.
  • "A dull place, Miss Summerson, for a life that is not an official
  • one," said Mr. Vholes, smearing the glass with his black glove to
  • make it clearer for me.
  • "There is not much to see here," said I.
  • "Nor to hear, miss," returned Mr. Vholes. "A little music does
  • occasionally stray in, but we are not musical in the law and soon
  • eject it. I hope Mr. Jarndyce is as well as his friends could wish
  • him?"
  • I thanked Mr. Vholes and said he was quite well.
  • "I have not the pleasure to be admitted among the number of his
  • friends myself," said Mr. Vholes, "and I am aware that the gentlemen
  • of our profession are sometimes regarded in such quarters with an
  • unfavourable eye. Our plain course, however, under good report and
  • evil report, and all kinds of prejudice (we are the victims of
  • prejudice), is to have everything openly carried on. How do you find
  • Mr. C. looking, Miss Summerson?"
  • "He looks very ill. Dreadfully anxious."
  • "Just so," said Mr. Vholes.
  • He stood behind me with his long black figure reaching nearly to the
  • ceiling of those low rooms, feeling the pimples on his face as if
  • they were ornaments and speaking inwardly and evenly as though there
  • were not a human passion or emotion in his nature.
  • "Mr. Woodcourt is in attendance upon Mr. C., I believe?" he resumed.
  • "Mr. Woodcourt is his disinterested friend," I answered.
  • "But I mean in professional attendance, medical attendance."
  • "That can do little for an unhappy mind," said I.
  • "Just so," said Mr. Vholes.
  • So slow, so eager, so bloodless and gaunt, I felt as if Richard were
  • wasting away beneath the eyes of this adviser and there were
  • something of the vampire in him.
  • "Miss Summerson," said Mr. Vholes, very slowly rubbing his gloved
  • hands, as if, to his cold sense of touch, they were much the same in
  • black kid or out of it, "this was an ill-advised marriage of Mr.
  • C.'s."
  • I begged he would excuse me from discussing it. They had been engaged
  • when they were both very young, I told him (a little indignantly) and
  • when the prospect before them was much fairer and brighter. When
  • Richard had not yielded himself to the unhappy influence which now
  • darkened his life.
  • "Just so," assented Mr. Vholes again. "Still, with a view to
  • everything being openly carried on, I will, with your permission,
  • Miss Summerson, observe to you that I consider this a very
  • ill-advised marriage indeed. I owe the opinion not only to Mr. C.'s
  • connexions, against whom I should naturally wish to protect myself,
  • but also to my own reputation--dear to myself as a professional man
  • aiming to keep respectable; dear to my three girls at home, for whom
  • I am striving to realize some little independence; dear, I will even
  • say, to my aged father, whom it is my privilege to support."
  • "It would become a very different marriage, a much happier and better
  • marriage, another marriage altogether, Mr. Vholes," said I, "if
  • Richard were persuaded to turn his back on the fatal pursuit in which
  • you are engaged with him."
  • Mr. Vholes, with a noiseless cough--or rather gasp--into one of his
  • black gloves, inclined his head as if he did not wholly dispute even
  • that.
  • "Miss Summerson," he said, "it may be so; and I freely admit that the
  • young lady who has taken Mr. C.'s name upon herself in so ill-advised
  • a manner--you will I am sure not quarrel with me for throwing out
  • that remark again, as a duty I owe to Mr. C.'s connexions--is a
  • highly genteel young lady. Business has prevented me from mixing much
  • with general society in any but a professional character; still I
  • trust I am competent to perceive that she is a highly genteel young
  • lady. As to beauty, I am not a judge of that myself, and I never did
  • give much attention to it from a boy, but I dare say the young lady
  • is equally eligible in that point of view. She is considered so (I
  • have heard) among the clerks in the Inn, and it is a point more in
  • their way than in mine. In reference to Mr. C.'s pursuit of his
  • interests--"
  • "Oh! His interests, Mr. Vholes!"
  • "Pardon me," returned Mr. Vholes, going on in exactly the same inward
  • and dispassionate manner. "Mr. C. takes certain interests under
  • certain wills disputed in the suit. It is a term we use. In reference
  • to Mr. C,'s pursuit of his interests, I mentioned to you, Miss
  • Summerson, the first time I had the pleasure of seeing you, in my
  • desire that everything should be openly carried on--I used those
  • words, for I happened afterwards to note them in my diary, which is
  • producible at any time--I mentioned to you that Mr. C. had laid down
  • the principle of watching his own interests, and that when a client
  • of mine laid down a principle which was not of an immoral (that is to
  • say, unlawful) nature, it devolved upon me to carry it out. I HAVE
  • carried it out; I do carry it out. But I will not smooth things over
  • to any connexion of Mr. C.'s on any account. As open as I was to Mr.
  • Jarndyce, I am to you. I regard it in the light of a professional
  • duty to be so, though it can be charged to no one. I openly say,
  • unpalatable as it may be, that I consider Mr. C.'s affairs in a very
  • bad way, that I consider Mr. C. himself in a very bad way, and that I
  • regard this as an exceedingly ill-advised marriage. Am I here, sir?
  • Yes, I thank you; I am here, Mr. C., and enjoying the pleasure of
  • some agreeable conversation with Miss Summerson, for which I have to
  • thank you very much, sir!"
  • He broke off thus in answer to Richard, who addressed him as he came
  • into the room. By this time I too well understood Mr. Vholes's
  • scrupulous way of saving himself and his respectability not to feel
  • that our worst fears did but keep pace with his client's progress.
  • We sat down to dinner, and I had an opportunity of observing Richard,
  • anxiously. I was not disturbed by Mr. Vholes (who took off his gloves
  • to dine), though he sat opposite to me at the small table, for I
  • doubt if, looking up at all, he once removed his eyes from his host's
  • face. I found Richard thin and languid, slovenly in his dress,
  • abstracted in his manner, forcing his spirits now and then, and at
  • other intervals relapsing into a dull thoughtfulness. About his large
  • bright eyes that used to be so merry there was a wanness and a
  • restlessness that changed them altogether. I cannot use the
  • expression that he looked old. There is a ruin of youth which is not
  • like age, and into such a ruin Richard's youth and youthful beauty
  • had all fallen away.
  • He ate little and seemed indifferent what it was, showed himself to
  • be much more impatient than he used to be, and was quick even with
  • Ada. I thought at first that his old light-hearted manner was all
  • gone, but it shone out of him sometimes as I had occasionally known
  • little momentary glimpses of my own old face to look out upon me from
  • the glass. His laugh had not quite left him either, but it was like
  • the echo of a joyful sound, and that is always sorrowful.
  • Yet he was as glad as ever, in his old affectionate way, to have me
  • there, and we talked of the old times pleasantly. These did not
  • appear to be interesting to Mr. Vholes, though he occasionally made a
  • gasp which I believe was his smile. He rose shortly after dinner and
  • said that with the permission of the ladies he would retire to his
  • office.
  • "Always devoted to business, Vholes!" cried Richard.
  • "Yes, Mr. C.," he returned, "the interests of clients are never to be
  • neglected, sir. They are paramount in the thoughts of a professional
  • man like myself, who wishes to preserve a good name among his
  • fellow-practitioners and society at large. My denying myself the
  • pleasure of the present agreeable conversation may not be wholly
  • irrespective of your own interests, Mr. C."
  • Richard expressed himself quite sure of that and lighted Mr. Vholes
  • out. On his return he told us, more than once, that Vholes was a good
  • fellow, a safe fellow, a man who did what he pretended to do, a very
  • good fellow indeed! He was so defiant about it that it struck me he
  • had begun to doubt Mr. Vholes.
  • Then he threw himself on the sofa, tired out; and Ada and I put
  • things to rights, for they had no other servant than the woman who
  • attended to the chambers. My dear girl had a cottage piano there and
  • quietly sat down to sing some of Richard's favourites, the lamp being
  • first removed into the next room, as he complained of its hurting his
  • eyes.
  • I sat between them, at my dear girl's side, and felt very melancholy
  • listening to her sweet voice. I think Richard did too; I think he
  • darkened the room for that reason. She had been singing some time,
  • rising between whiles to bend over him and speak to him, when Mr.
  • Woodcourt came in. Then he sat down by Richard and half playfully,
  • half earnestly, quite naturally and easily, found out how he felt and
  • where he had been all day. Presently he proposed to accompany him in
  • a short walk on one of the bridges, as it was a moonlight airy night;
  • and Richard readily consenting, they went out together.
  • They left my dear girl still sitting at the piano and me still
  • sitting beside her. When they were gone out, I drew my arm round her
  • waist. She put her left hand in mine (I was sitting on that side),
  • but kept her right upon the keys, going over and over them without
  • striking any note.
  • "Esther, my dearest," she said, breaking silence, "Richard is never
  • so well and I am never so easy about him as when he is with Allan
  • Woodcourt. We have to thank you for that."
  • I pointed out to my darling how this could scarcely be, because Mr.
  • Woodcourt had come to her cousin John's house and had known us all
  • there, and because he had always liked Richard, and Richard had
  • always liked him, and--and so forth.
  • "All true," said Ada, "but that he is such a devoted friend to us we
  • owe to you."
  • I thought it best to let my dear girl have her way and to say no more
  • about it. So I said as much. I said it lightly, because I felt her
  • trembling.
  • "Esther, my dearest, I want to be a good wife, a very, very good wife
  • indeed. You shall teach me."
  • I teach! I said no more, for I noticed the hand that was fluttering
  • over the keys, and I knew that it was not I who ought to speak, that
  • it was she who had something to say to me.
  • "When I married Richard I was not insensible to what was before him.
  • I had been perfectly happy for a long time with you, and I had never
  • known any trouble or anxiety, so loved and cared for, but I
  • understood the danger he was in, dear Esther."
  • "I know, I know, my darling."
  • "When we were married I had some little hope that I might be able to
  • convince him of his mistake, that he might come to regard it in a new
  • way as my husband and not pursue it all the more desperately for my
  • sake--as he does. But if I had not had that hope, I would have
  • married him just the same, Esther. Just the same!"
  • In the momentary firmness of the hand that was never still--a
  • firmness inspired by the utterance of these last words, and dying
  • away with them--I saw the confirmation of her earnest tones.
  • "You are not to think, my dearest Esther, that I fail to see what you
  • see and fear what you fear. No one can understand him better than I
  • do. The greatest wisdom that ever lived in the world could scarcely
  • know Richard better than my love does."
  • She spoke so modestly and softly and her trembling hand expressed
  • such agitation as it moved to and fro upon the silent notes! My dear,
  • dear girl!
  • "I see him at his worst every day. I watch him in his sleep. I know
  • every change of his face. But when I married Richard I was quite
  • determined, Esther, if heaven would help me, never to show him that I
  • grieved for what he did and so to make him more unhappy. I want him,
  • when he comes home, to find no trouble in my face. I want him, when
  • he looks at me, to see what he loved in me. I married him to do this,
  • and this supports me."
  • I felt her trembling more. I waited for what was yet to come, and I
  • now thought I began to know what it was.
  • "And something else supports me, Esther."
  • She stopped a minute. Stopped speaking only; her hand was still in
  • motion.
  • "I look forward a little while, and I don't know what great aid may
  • come to me. When Richard turns his eyes upon me then, there may be
  • something lying on my breast more eloquent than I have been, with
  • greater power than mine to show him his true course and win him
  • back."
  • Her hand stopped now. She clasped me in her arms, and I clasped her
  • in mine.
  • "If that little creature should fail too, Esther, I still look
  • forward. I look forward a long while, through years and years, and
  • think that then, when I am growing old, or when I am dead perhaps, a
  • beautiful woman, his daughter, happily married, may be proud of him
  • and a blessing to him. Or that a generous brave man, as handsome as
  • he used to be, as hopeful, and far more happy, may walk in the
  • sunshine with him, honouring his grey head and saying to himself, 'I
  • thank God this is my father! Ruined by a fatal inheritance, and
  • restored through me!'"
  • Oh, my sweet girl, what a heart was that which beat so fast against
  • me!
  • "These hopes uphold me, my dear Esther, and I know they will. Though
  • sometimes even they depart from me before a dread that arises when I
  • look at Richard."
  • I tried to cheer my darling, and asked her what it was. Sobbing and
  • weeping, she replied, "That he may not live to see his child."
  • CHAPTER LXI
  • A Discovery
  • The days when I frequented that miserable corner which my dear girl
  • brightened can never fade in my remembrance. I never see it, and I
  • never wish to see it now; I have been there only once since, but in
  • my memory there is a mournful glory shining on the place which will
  • shine for ever.
  • Not a day passed without my going there, of course. At first I found
  • Mr. Skimpole there, on two or three occasions, idly playing the piano
  • and talking in his usual vivacious strain. Now, besides my very much
  • mistrusting the probability of his being there without making Richard
  • poorer, I felt as if there were something in his careless gaiety too
  • inconsistent with what I knew of the depths of Ada's life. I clearly
  • perceived, too, that Ada shared my feelings. I therefore resolved,
  • after much thinking of it, to make a private visit to Mr. Skimpole
  • and try delicately to explain myself. My dear girl was the great
  • consideration that made me bold.
  • I set off one morning, accompanied by Charley, for Somers Town. As I
  • approached the house, I was strongly inclined to turn back, for I
  • felt what a desperate attempt it was to make an impression on Mr.
  • Skimpole and how extremely likely it was that he would signally
  • defeat me. However, I thought that being there, I would go through
  • with it. I knocked with a trembling hand at Mr. Skimpole's
  • door--literally with a hand, for the knocker was gone--and after a
  • long parley gained admission from an Irishwoman, who was in the area
  • when I knocked, breaking up the lid of a water-butt with a poker to
  • light the fire with.
  • Mr. Skimpole, lying on the sofa in his room, playing the flute a
  • little, was enchanted to see me. Now, who should receive me, he
  • asked. Who would I prefer for mistress of the ceremonies? Would I
  • have his Comedy daughter, his Beauty daughter, or his Sentiment
  • daughter? Or would I have all the daughters at once in a perfect
  • nosegay?
  • I replied, half defeated already, that I wished to speak to himself
  • only if he would give me leave.
  • "My dear Miss Summerson, most joyfully! Of course," he said, bringing
  • his chair nearer mine and breaking into his fascinating smile, "of
  • course it's not business. Then it's pleasure!"
  • I said it certainly was not business that I came upon, but it was not
  • quite a pleasant matter.
  • "Then, my dear Miss Summerson," said he with the frankest gaiety,
  • "don't allude to it. Why should you allude to anything that is NOT a
  • pleasant matter? I never do. And you are a much pleasanter creature,
  • in every point of view, than I. You are perfectly pleasant; I am
  • imperfectly pleasant; then, if I never allude to an unpleasant
  • matter, how much less should you! So that's disposed of, and we will
  • talk of something else."
  • Although I was embarrassed, I took courage to intimate that I still
  • wished to pursue the subject.
  • "I should think it a mistake," said Mr. Skimpole with his airy laugh,
  • "if I thought Miss Summerson capable of making one. But I don't!"
  • "Mr. Skimpole," said I, raising my eyes to his, "I have so often
  • heard you say that you are unacquainted with the common affairs of
  • life--"
  • "Meaning our three banking-house friends, L, S, and who's the junior
  • partner? D?" said Mr. Skimpole, brightly. "Not an idea of them!"
  • "--That perhaps," I went on, "you will excuse my boldness on that
  • account. I think you ought most seriously to know that Richard is
  • poorer than he was."
  • "Dear me!" said Mr. Skimpole. "So am I, they tell me."
  • "And in very embarrassed circumstances."
  • "Parallel case, exactly!" said Mr. Skimpole with a delighted
  • countenance.
  • "This at present naturally causes Ada much secret anxiety, and as I
  • think she is less anxious when no claims are made upon her by
  • visitors, and as Richard has one uneasiness always heavy on his mind,
  • it has occurred to me to take the liberty of saying that--if you
  • would--not--"
  • I was coming to the point with great difficulty when he took me by
  • both hands and with a radiant face and in the liveliest way
  • anticipated it.
  • "Not go there? Certainly not, my dear Miss Summerson, most assuredly
  • not. Why SHOULD I go there? When I go anywhere, I go for pleasure. I
  • don't go anywhere for pain, because I was made for pleasure. Pain
  • comes to ME when it wants me. Now, I have had very little pleasure at
  • our dear Richard's lately, and your practical sagacity demonstrates
  • why. Our young friends, losing the youthful poetry which was once so
  • captivating in them, begin to think, 'This is a man who wants
  • pounds.' So I am; I always want pounds; not for myself, but because
  • tradespeople always want them of me. Next, our young friends begin to
  • think, becoming mercenary, 'This is the man who HAD pounds, who
  • borrowed them,' which I did. I always borrow pounds. So our young
  • friends, reduced to prose (which is much to be regretted), degenerate
  • in their power of imparting pleasure to me. Why should I go to see
  • them, therefore? Absurd!"
  • Through the beaming smile with which he regarded me as he reasoned
  • thus, there now broke forth a look of disinterested benevolence quite
  • astonishing.
  • "Besides," he said, pursuing his argument in his tone of
  • light-hearted conviction, "if I don't go anywhere for pain--which
  • would be a perversion of the intention of my being, and a monstrous
  • thing to do--why should I go anywhere to be the cause of pain? If I
  • went to see our young friends in their present ill-regulated state of
  • mind, I should give them pain. The associations with me would be
  • disagreeable. They might say, 'This is the man who had pounds and who
  • can't pay pounds,' which I can't, of course; nothing could be more
  • out of the question! Then kindness requires that I shouldn't go near
  • them--and I won't."
  • He finished by genially kissing my hand and thanking me. Nothing but
  • Miss Summerson's fine tact, he said, would have found this out for
  • him.
  • I was much disconcerted, but I reflected that if the main point were
  • gained, it mattered little how strangely he perverted everything
  • leading to it. I had determined to mention something else, however,
  • and I thought I was not to be put off in that.
  • "Mr. Skimpole," said I, "I must take the liberty of saying before I
  • conclude my visit that I was much surprised to learn, on the best
  • authority, some little time ago, that you knew with whom that poor
  • boy left Bleak House and that you accepted a present on that
  • occasion. I have not mentioned it to my guardian, for I fear it would
  • hurt him unnecessarily; but I may say to you that I was much
  • surprised."
  • "No? Really surprised, my dear Miss Summerson?" he returned
  • inquiringly, raising his pleasant eyebrows.
  • "Greatly surprised."
  • He thought about it for a little while with a highly agreeable and
  • whimsical expression of face, then quite gave it up and said in his
  • most engaging manner, "You know what a child I am. Why surprised?"
  • I was reluctant to enter minutely into that question, but as he
  • begged I would, for he was really curious to know, I gave him to
  • understand in the gentlest words I could use that his conduct seemed
  • to involve a disregard of several moral obligations. He was much
  • amused and interested when he heard this and said, "No, really?" with
  • ingenuous simplicity.
  • "You know I don't intend to be responsible. I never could do it.
  • Responsibility is a thing that has always been above me--or below
  • me," said Mr. Skimpole. "I don't even know which; but as I understand
  • the way in which my dear Miss Summerson (always remarkable for her
  • practical good sense and clearness) puts this case, I should imagine
  • it was chiefly a question of money, do you know?"
  • I incautiously gave a qualified assent to this.
  • "Ah! Then you see," said Mr. Skimpole, shaking his head, "I am
  • hopeless of understanding it."
  • I suggested, as I rose to go, that it was not right to betray my
  • guardian's confidence for a bribe.
  • "My dear Miss Summerson," he returned with a candid hilarity that was
  • all his own, "I can't be bribed."
  • "Not by Mr. Bucket?" said I.
  • "No," said he. "Not by anybody. I don't attach any value to money. I
  • don't care about it, I don't know about it, I don't want it, I don't
  • keep it--it goes away from me directly. How can I be bribed?"
  • I showed that I was of a different opinion, though I had not the
  • capacity for arguing the question.
  • "On the contrary," said Mr. Skimpole, "I am exactly the man to be
  • placed in a superior position in such a case as that. I am above the
  • rest of mankind in such a case as that. I can act with philosophy in
  • such a case as that. I am not warped by prejudices, as an Italian
  • baby is by bandages. I am as free as the air. I feel myself as far
  • above suspicion as Caesar's wife."
  • Anything to equal the lightness of his manner and the playful
  • impartiality with which he seemed to convince himself, as he tossed
  • the matter about like a ball of feathers, was surely never seen in
  • anybody else!
  • "Observe the case, my dear Miss Summerson. Here is a boy received
  • into the house and put to bed in a state that I strongly object to.
  • The boy being in bed, a man arrives--like the house that Jack built.
  • Here is the man who demands the boy who is received into the house
  • and put to bed in a state that I strongly object to. Here is a
  • bank-note produced by the man who demands the boy who is received
  • into the house and put to bed in a state that I strongly object to.
  • Here is the Skimpole who accepts the bank-note produced by the man
  • who demands the boy who is received into the house and put to bed in
  • a state that I strongly object to. Those are the facts. Very well.
  • Should the Skimpole have refused the note? WHY should the Skimpole
  • have refused the note? Skimpole protests to Bucket, 'What's this for?
  • I don't understand it, it is of no use to me, take it away.' Bucket
  • still entreats Skimpole to accept it. Are there reasons why Skimpole,
  • not being warped by prejudices, should accept it? Yes. Skimpole
  • perceives them. What are they? Skimpole reasons with himself, this is
  • a tamed lynx, an active police-officer, an intelligent man, a person
  • of a peculiarly directed energy and great subtlety both of conception
  • and execution, who discovers our friends and enemies for us when they
  • run away, recovers our property for us when we are robbed, avenges us
  • comfortably when we are murdered. This active police-officer and
  • intelligent man has acquired, in the exercise of his art, a strong
  • faith in money; he finds it very useful to him, and he makes it very
  • useful to society. Shall I shake that faith in Bucket because I want
  • it myself; shall I deliberately blunt one of Bucket's weapons; shall
  • I positively paralyse Bucket in his next detective operation? And
  • again. If it is blameable in Skimpole to take the note, it is
  • blameable in Bucket to offer the note--much more blameable in Bucket,
  • because he is the knowing man. Now, Skimpole wishes to think well of
  • Bucket; Skimpole deems it essential, in its little place, to the
  • general cohesion of things, that he SHOULD think well of Bucket. The
  • state expressly asks him to trust to Bucket. And he does. And that's
  • all he does!"
  • I had nothing to offer in reply to this exposition and therefore took
  • my leave. Mr. Skimpole, however, who was in excellent spirits, would
  • not hear of my returning home attended only by "Little Coavinses,"
  • and accompanied me himself. He entertained me on the way with a
  • variety of delightful conversation and assured me, at parting, that
  • he should never forget the fine tact with which I had found that out
  • for him about our young friends.
  • As it so happened that I never saw Mr. Skimpole again, I may at once
  • finish what I know of his history. A coolness arose between him and
  • my guardian, based principally on the foregoing grounds and on his
  • having heartlessly disregarded my guardian's entreaties (as we
  • afterwards learned from Ada) in reference to Richard. His being
  • heavily in my guardian's debt had nothing to do with their
  • separation. He died some five years afterwards and left a diary
  • behind him, with letters and other materials towards his life, which
  • was published and which showed him to have been the victim of a
  • combination on the part of mankind against an amiable child. It was
  • considered very pleasant reading, but I never read more of it myself
  • than the sentence on which I chanced to light on opening the book. It
  • was this: "Jarndyce, in common with most other men I have known, is
  • the incarnation of selfishness."
  • And now I come to a part of my story touching myself very nearly
  • indeed, and for which I was quite unprepared when the circumstance
  • occurred. Whatever little lingerings may have now and then revived in
  • my mind associated with my poor old face had only revived as
  • belonging to a part of my life that was gone--gone like my infancy or
  • my childhood. I have suppressed none of my many weaknesses on that
  • subject, but have written them as faithfully as my memory has
  • recalled them. And I hope to do, and mean to do, the same down to the
  • last words of these pages, which I see now not so very far before me.
  • The months were gliding away, and my dear girl, sustained by the
  • hopes she had confided in me, was the same beautiful star in the
  • miserable corner. Richard, more worn and haggard, haunted the court
  • day after day, listlessly sat there the whole day long when he knew
  • there was no remote chance of the suit being mentioned, and became
  • one of the stock sights of the place. I wonder whether any of the
  • gentlemen remembered him as he was when he first went there.
  • So completely was he absorbed in his fixed idea that he used to avow
  • in his cheerful moments that he should never have breathed the fresh
  • air now "but for Woodcourt." It was only Mr. Woodcourt who could
  • occasionally divert his attention for a few hours at a time and rouse
  • him, even when he sunk into a lethargy of mind and body that alarmed
  • us greatly, and the returns of which became more frequent as the
  • months went on. My dear girl was right in saying that he only pursued
  • his errors the more desperately for her sake. I have no doubt that
  • his desire to retrieve what he had lost was rendered the more intense
  • by his grief for his young wife, and became like the madness of a
  • gamester.
  • I was there, as I have mentioned, at all hours. When I was there at
  • night, I generally went home with Charley in a coach; sometimes my
  • guardian would meet me in the neighbourhood, and we would walk home
  • together. One evening he had arranged to meet me at eight o'clock. I
  • could not leave, as I usually did, quite punctually at the time, for
  • I was working for my dear girl and had a few stitches more to do to
  • finish what I was about; but it was within a few minutes of the hour
  • when I bundled up my little work-basket, gave my darling my last kiss
  • for the night, and hurried downstairs. Mr. Woodcourt went with me, as
  • it was dusk.
  • When we came to the usual place of meeting--it was close by, and Mr.
  • Woodcourt had often accompanied me before--my guardian was not there.
  • We waited half an hour, walking up and down, but there were no signs
  • of him. We agreed that he was either prevented from coming or that he
  • had come and gone away, and Mr. Woodcourt proposed to walk home with
  • me.
  • It was the first walk we had ever taken together, except that very
  • short one to the usual place of meeting. We spoke of Richard and Ada
  • the whole way. I did not thank him in words for what he had done--my
  • appreciation of it had risen above all words then--but I hoped he
  • might not be without some understanding of what I felt so strongly.
  • Arriving at home and going upstairs, we found that my guardian was
  • out and that Mrs. Woodcourt was out too. We were in the very same
  • room into which I had brought my blushing girl when her youthful
  • lover, now her so altered husband, was the choice of her young heart,
  • the very same room from which my guardian and I had watched them
  • going away through the sunlight in the fresh bloom of their hope and
  • promise.
  • We were standing by the opened window looking down into the street
  • when Mr. Woodcourt spoke to me. I learned in a moment that he loved
  • me. I learned in a moment that my scarred face was all unchanged to
  • him. I learned in a moment that what I had thought was pity and
  • compassion was devoted, generous, faithful love. Oh, too late to know
  • it now, too late, too late. That was the first ungrateful thought I
  • had. Too late.
  • "When I returned," he told me, "when I came back, no richer than when
  • I went away, and found you newly risen from a sick bed, yet so
  • inspired by sweet consideration for others and so free from a selfish
  • thought--"
  • "Oh, Mr. Woodcourt, forbear, forbear!" I entreated him. "I do not
  • deserve your high praise. I had many selfish thoughts at that time,
  • many!"
  • "Heaven knows, beloved of my life," said he, "that my praise is not a
  • lover's praise, but the truth. You do not know what all around you
  • see in Esther Summerson, how many hearts she touches and awakens,
  • what sacred admiration and what love she wins."
  • "Oh, Mr. Woodcourt," cried I, "it is a great thing to win love, it is
  • a great thing to win love! I am proud of it, and honoured by it; and
  • the hearing of it causes me to shed these tears of mingled joy and
  • sorrow--joy that I have won it, sorrow that I have not deserved it
  • better; but I am not free to think of yours."
  • I said it with a stronger heart, for when he praised me thus and when
  • I heard his voice thrill with his belief that what he said was true,
  • I aspired to be more worthy of it. It was not too late for that.
  • Although I closed this unforeseen page in my life to-night, I could
  • be worthier of it all through my life. And it was a comfort to me,
  • and an impulse to me, and I felt a dignity rise up within me that was
  • derived from him when I thought so.
  • He broke the silence.
  • "I should poorly show the trust that I have in the dear one who will
  • evermore be as dear to me as now"--and the deep earnestness with
  • which he said it at once strengthened me and made me weep--"if, after
  • her assurance that she is not free to think of my love, I urged it.
  • Dear Esther, let me only tell you that the fond idea of you which I
  • took abroad was exalted to the heavens when I came home. I have
  • always hoped, in the first hour when I seemed to stand in any ray of
  • good fortune, to tell you this. I have always feared that I should
  • tell it you in vain. My hopes and fears are both fulfilled to-night.
  • I distress you. I have said enough."
  • Something seemed to pass into my place that was like the angel he
  • thought me, and I felt so sorrowful for the loss he had sustained! I
  • wished to help him in his trouble, as I had wished to do when he
  • showed that first commiseration for me.
  • "Dear Mr. Woodcourt," said I, "before we part to-night, something is
  • left for me to say. I never could say it as I wish--I never
  • shall--but--"
  • I had to think again of being more deserving of his love and his
  • affliction before I could go on.
  • "--I am deeply sensible of your generosity, and I shall treasure its
  • remembrance to my dying hour. I know full well how changed I am, I
  • know you are not unacquainted with my history, and I know what a
  • noble love that is which is so faithful. What you have said to me
  • could have affected me so much from no other lips, for there are none
  • that could give it such a value to me. It shall not be lost. It shall
  • make me better."
  • He covered his eyes with his hand and turned away his head. How could
  • I ever be worthy of those tears?
  • "If, in the unchanged intercourse we shall have together--in tending
  • Richard and Ada, and I hope in many happier scenes of life--you ever
  • find anything in me which you can honestly think is better than it
  • used to be, believe that it will have sprung up from to-night and
  • that I shall owe it to you. And never believe, dear dear Mr.
  • Woodcourt, never believe that I forget this night or that while my
  • heart beats it can be insensible to the pride and joy of having been
  • beloved by you."
  • He took my hand and kissed it. He was like himself again, and I felt
  • still more encouraged.
  • "I am induced by what you said just now," said I, "to hope that you
  • have succeeded in your endeavour."
  • "I have," he answered. "With such help from Mr. Jarndyce as you who
  • know him so well can imagine him to have rendered me, I have
  • succeeded."
  • "Heaven bless him for it," said I, giving him my hand; "and heaven
  • bless you in all you do!"
  • "I shall do it better for the wish," he answered; "it will make me
  • enter on these new duties as on another sacred trust from you."
  • "Ah! Richard!" I exclaimed involuntarily, "What will he do when you
  • are gone!"
  • "I am not required to go yet; I would not desert him, dear Miss
  • Summerson, even if I were."
  • One other thing I felt it needful to touch upon before he left me. I
  • knew that I should not be worthier of the love I could not take if I
  • reserved it.
  • "Mr. Woodcourt," said I, "you will be glad to know from my lips
  • before I say good night that in the future, which is clear and bright
  • before me, I am most happy, most fortunate, have nothing to regret or
  • desire."
  • It was indeed a glad hearing to him, he replied.
  • "From my childhood I have been," said I, "the object of the untiring
  • goodness of the best of human beings, to whom I am so bound by every
  • tie of attachment, gratitude, and love, that nothing I could do in
  • the compass of a life could express the feelings of a single day."
  • "I share those feelings," he returned. "You speak of Mr. Jarndyce."
  • "You know his virtues well," said I, "but few can know the greatness
  • of his character as I know it. All its highest and best qualities
  • have been revealed to me in nothing more brightly than in the shaping
  • out of that future in which I am so happy. And if your highest homage
  • and respect had not been his already--which I know they are--they
  • would have been his, I think, on this assurance and in the feeling it
  • would have awakened in you towards him for my sake."
  • He fervently replied that indeed indeed they would have been. I gave
  • him my hand again.
  • "Good night," I said, "Good-bye."
  • "The first until we meet to-morrow, the second as a farewell to this
  • theme between us for ever."
  • "Yes."
  • "Good night; good-bye."
  • He left me, and I stood at the dark window watching the street. His
  • love, in all its constancy and generosity, had come so suddenly upon
  • me that he had not left me a minute when my fortitude gave way again
  • and the street was blotted out by my rushing tears.
  • But they were not tears of regret and sorrow. No. He had called me
  • the beloved of his life and had said I would be evermore as dear to
  • him as I was then, and I felt as if my heart would not hold the
  • triumph of having heard those words. My first wild thought had died
  • away. It was not too late to hear them, for it was not too late to be
  • animated by them to be good, true, grateful, and contented. How easy
  • my path, how much easier than his!
  • CHAPTER LXII
  • Another Discovery
  • I had not the courage to see any one that night. I had not even the
  • courage to see myself, for I was afraid that my tears might a little
  • reproach me. I went up to my room in the dark, and prayed in the
  • dark, and lay down in the dark to sleep. I had no need of any light
  • to read my guardian's letter by, for I knew it by heart. I took it
  • from the place where I kept it, and repeated its contents by its own
  • clear light of integrity and love, and went to sleep with it on my
  • pillow.
  • I was up very early in the morning and called Charley to come for a
  • walk. We bought flowers for the breakfast-table, and came back and
  • arranged them, and were as busy as possible. We were so early that I
  • had a good time still for Charley's lesson before breakfast; Charley
  • (who was not in the least improved in the old defective article of
  • grammar) came through it with great applause; and we were altogether
  • very notable. When my guardian appeared he said, "Why, little woman,
  • you look fresher than your flowers!" And Mrs. Woodcourt repeated and
  • translated a passage from the Mewlinnwillinwodd expressive of my
  • being like a mountain with the sun upon it.
  • This was all so pleasant that I hope it made me still more like the
  • mountain than I had been before. After breakfast I waited my
  • opportunity and peeped about a little until I saw my guardian in his
  • own room--the room of last night--by himself. Then I made an excuse
  • to go in with my housekeeping keys, shutting the door after me.
  • "Well, Dame Durden?" said my guardian; the post had brought him
  • several letters, and he was writing. "You want money?"
  • "No, indeed, I have plenty in hand."
  • "There never was such a Dame Durden," said my guardian, "for making
  • money last."
  • He had laid down his pen and leaned back in his chair looking at me.
  • I have often spoken of his bright face, but I thought I had never
  • seen it look so bright and good. There was a high happiness upon it
  • which made me think, "He has been doing some great kindness this
  • morning."
  • "There never was," said my guardian, musing as he smiled upon me,
  • "such a Dame Durden for making money last."
  • He had never yet altered his old manner. I loved it and him so much
  • that when I now went up to him and took my usual chair, which was
  • always put at his side--for sometimes I read to him, and sometimes I
  • talked to him, and sometimes I silently worked by him--I hardly liked
  • to disturb it by laying my hand on his breast. But I found I did not
  • disturb it at all.
  • "Dear guardian," said I, "I want to speak to you. Have I been remiss
  • in anything?"
  • "Remiss in anything, my dear!"
  • "Have I not been what I have meant to be since--I brought the answer
  • to your letter, guardian?"
  • "You have been everything I could desire, my love."
  • "I am very glad indeed to hear that," I returned. "You know, you said
  • to me, was this the mistress of Bleak House. And I said, yes."
  • "Yes," said my guardian, nodding his head. He had put his arm about
  • me as if there were something to protect me from and looked in my
  • face, smiling.
  • "Since then," said I, "we have never spoken on the subject except
  • once."
  • "And then I said Bleak House was thinning fast; and so it was, my
  • dear."
  • "And I said," I timidly reminded him, "but its mistress remained."
  • He still held me in the same protecting manner and with the same
  • bright goodness in his face.
  • "Dear guardian," said I, "I know how you have felt all that has
  • happened, and how considerate you have been. As so much time has
  • passed, and as you spoke only this morning of my being so well again,
  • perhaps you expect me to renew the subject. Perhaps I ought to do so.
  • I will be the mistress of Bleak House when you please."
  • "See," he returned gaily, "what a sympathy there must be between us!
  • I have had nothing else, poor Rick excepted--it's a large
  • exception--in my mind. When you came in, I was full of it. When shall
  • we give Bleak House its mistress, little woman?"
  • "When you please."
  • "Next month?"
  • "Next month, dear guardian."
  • "The day on which I take the happiest and best step of my life--the
  • day on which I shall be a man more exulting and more enviable than
  • any other man in the world--the day on which I give Bleak House its
  • little mistress--shall be next month then," said my guardian.
  • I put my arms round his neck and kissed him just as I had done on the
  • day when I brought my answer.
  • A servant came to the door to announce Mr. Bucket, which was quite
  • unnecessary, for Mr. Bucket was already looking in over the servant's
  • shoulder. "Mr. Jarndyce and Miss Summerson," said he, rather out of
  • breath, "with all apologies for intruding, WILL you allow me to order
  • up a person that's on the stairs and that objects to being left there
  • in case of becoming the subject of observations in his absence? Thank
  • you. Be so good as chair that there member in this direction, will
  • you?" said Mr. Bucket, beckoning over the banisters.
  • This singular request produced an old man in a black skull-cap,
  • unable to walk, who was carried up by a couple of bearers and
  • deposited in the room near the door. Mr. Bucket immediately got rid
  • of the bearers, mysteriously shut the door, and bolted it.
  • "Now you see, Mr. Jarndyce," he then began, putting down his hat and
  • opening his subject with a flourish of his well-remembered finger,
  • "you know me, and Miss Summerson knows me. This gentleman likewise
  • knows me, and his name is Smallweed. The discounting line is his line
  • principally, and he's what you may call a dealer in bills. That's
  • about what YOU are, you know, ain't you?" said Mr. Bucket, stopping a
  • little to address the gentleman in question, who was exceedingly
  • suspicious of him.
  • He seemed about to dispute this designation of himself when he was
  • seized with a violent fit of coughing.
  • "Now, moral, you know!" said Mr. Bucket, improving the accident.
  • "Don't you contradict when there ain't no occasion, and you won't be
  • took in that way. Now, Mr. Jarndyce, I address myself to you. I've
  • been negotiating with this gentleman on behalf of Sir Leicester
  • Dedlock, Baronet, and one way and another I've been in and out and
  • about his premises a deal. His premises are the premises formerly
  • occupied by Krook, marine store dealer--a relation of this
  • gentleman's that you saw in his lifetime if I don't mistake?"
  • My guardian replied, "Yes."
  • "Well! You are to understand," said Mr. Bucket, "that this gentleman
  • he come into Krook's property, and a good deal of magpie property
  • there was. Vast lots of waste-paper among the rest. Lord bless you,
  • of no use to nobody!"
  • The cunning of Mr. Bucket's eye and the masterly manner in which he
  • contrived, without a look or a word against which his watchful
  • auditor could protest, to let us know that he stated the case
  • according to previous agreement and could say much more of Mr.
  • Smallweed if he thought it advisable, deprived us of any merit in
  • quite understanding him. His difficulty was increased by Mr.
  • Smallweed's being deaf as well as suspicious and watching his face
  • with the closest attention.
  • "Among them odd heaps of old papers, this gentleman, when he comes
  • into the property, naturally begins to rummage, don't you see?" said
  • Mr. Bucket.
  • "To which? Say that again," cried Mr. Smallweed in a shrill, sharp
  • voice.
  • "To rummage," repeated Mr. Bucket. "Being a prudent man and
  • accustomed to take care of your own affairs, you begin to rummage
  • among the papers as you have come into; don't you?"
  • "Of course I do," cried Mr. Smallweed.
  • "Of course you do," said Mr. Bucket conversationally, "and much to
  • blame you would be if you didn't. And so you chance to find, you
  • know," Mr. Bucket went on, stooping over him with an air of cheerful
  • raillery which Mr. Smallweed by no means reciprocated, "and so you
  • chance to find, you know, a paper with the signature of Jarndyce to
  • it. Don't you?"
  • Mr. Smallweed glanced with a troubled eye at us and grudgingly nodded
  • assent.
  • "And coming to look at that paper at your full leisure and
  • convenience--all in good time, for you're not curious to read it, and
  • why should you be?--what do you find it to be but a will, you see.
  • That's the drollery of it," said Mr. Bucket with the same lively air
  • of recalling a joke for the enjoyment of Mr. Smallweed, who still had
  • the same crest-fallen appearance of not enjoying it at all; "what do
  • you find it to be but a will?"
  • "I don't know that it's good as a will or as anything else," snarled
  • Mr. Smallweed.
  • Mr. Bucket eyed the old man for a moment--he had slipped and shrunk
  • down in his chair into a mere bundle--as if he were much disposed to
  • pounce upon him; nevertheless, he continued to bend over him with the
  • same agreeable air, keeping the corner of one of his eyes upon us.
  • "Notwithstanding which," said Mr. Bucket, "you get a little doubtful
  • and uncomfortable in your mind about it, having a very tender mind of
  • your own."
  • "Eh? What do you say I have got of my own?" asked Mr. Smallweed with
  • his hand to his ear.
  • "A very tender mind."
  • "Ho! Well, go on," said Mr. Smallweed.
  • "And as you've heard a good deal mentioned regarding a celebrated
  • Chancery will case of the same name, and as you know what a card
  • Krook was for buying all manner of old pieces of furniter, and books,
  • and papers, and what not, and never liking to part with 'em, and
  • always a-going to teach himself to read, you begin to think--and you
  • never was more correct in your born days--'Ecod, if I don't look
  • about me, I may get into trouble regarding this will.'"
  • "Now, mind how you put it, Bucket," cried the old man anxiously with
  • his hand at his ear. "Speak up; none of your brimstone tricks. Pick
  • me up; I want to hear better. Oh, Lord, I am shaken to bits!"
  • Mr. Bucket had certainly picked him up at a dart. However, as soon as
  • he could be heard through Mr. Smallweed's coughing and his vicious
  • ejaculations of "Oh, my bones! Oh, dear! I've no breath in my body!
  • I'm worse than the chattering, clattering, brimstone pig at home!"
  • Mr. Bucket proceeded in the same convivial manner as before.
  • "So, as I happen to be in the habit of coming about your premises,
  • you take me into your confidence, don't you?"
  • I think it would be impossible to make an admission with more ill
  • will and a worse grace than Mr. Smallweed displayed when he admitted
  • this, rendering it perfectly evident that Mr. Bucket was the very
  • last person he would have thought of taking into his confidence if he
  • could by any possibility have kept him out of it.
  • "And I go into the business with you--very pleasant we are over it;
  • and I confirm you in your well-founded fears that you will get
  • yourself into a most precious line if you don't come out with that
  • there will," said Mr. Bucket emphatically; "and accordingly you
  • arrange with me that it shall be delivered up to this present Mr.
  • Jarndyce, on no conditions. If it should prove to be valuable, you
  • trusting yourself to him for your reward; that's about where it is,
  • ain't it?"
  • "That's what was agreed," Mr. Smallweed assented with the same bad
  • grace.
  • "In consequence of which," said Mr. Bucket, dismissing his agreeable
  • manner all at once and becoming strictly business-like, "you've got
  • that will upon your person at the present time, and the only thing
  • that remains for you to do is just to out with it!"
  • Having given us one glance out of the watching corner of his eye, and
  • having given his nose one triumphant rub with his forefinger, Mr.
  • Bucket stood with his eyes fastened on his confidential friend and
  • his hand stretched forth ready to take the paper and present it to my
  • guardian. It was not produced without much reluctance and many
  • declarations on the part of Mr. Smallweed that he was a poor
  • industrious man and that he left it to Mr. Jarndyce's honour not to
  • let him lose by his honesty. Little by little he very slowly took
  • from a breast-pocket a stained, discoloured paper which was much
  • singed upon the outside and a little burnt at the edges, as if it had
  • long ago been thrown upon a fire and hastily snatched off again. Mr.
  • Bucket lost no time in transferring this paper, with the dexterity of
  • a conjuror, from Mr. Smallweed to Mr. Jarndyce. As he gave it to my
  • guardian, he whispered behind his fingers, "Hadn't settled how to
  • make their market of it. Quarrelled and hinted about it. I laid out
  • twenty pound upon it. First the avaricious grandchildren split upon
  • him on account of their objections to his living so unreasonably
  • long, and then they split on one another. Lord! There ain't one of
  • the family that wouldn't sell the other for a pound or two, except
  • the old lady--and she's only out of it because she's too weak in her
  • mind to drive a bargain."
  • "Mr Bucket," said my guardian aloud, "whatever the worth of this
  • paper may be to any one, my obligations are great to you; and if it
  • be of any worth, I hold myself bound to see Mr. Smallweed remunerated
  • accordingly."
  • "Not according to your merits, you know," said Mr. Bucket in friendly
  • explanation to Mr. Smallweed. "Don't you be afraid of that. According
  • to its value."
  • "That is what I mean," said my guardian. "You may observe, Mr.
  • Bucket, that I abstain from examining this paper myself. The plain
  • truth is, I have forsworn and abjured the whole business these many
  • years, and my soul is sick of it. But Miss Summerson and I will
  • immediately place the paper in the hands of my solicitor in the
  • cause, and its existence shall be made known without delay to all
  • other parties interested."
  • "Mr. Jarndyce can't say fairer than that, you understand," observed
  • Mr. Bucket to his fellow-visitor. "And it being now made clear to you
  • that nobody's a-going to be wronged--which must be a great relief to
  • YOUR mind--we may proceed with the ceremony of chairing you home
  • again."
  • He unbolted the door, called in the bearers, wished us good morning,
  • and with a look full of meaning and a crook of his finger at parting
  • went his way.
  • We went our way too, which was to Lincoln's Inn, as quickly as
  • possible. Mr. Kenge was disengaged, and we found him at his table in
  • his dusty room with the inexpressive-looking books and the piles of
  • papers. Chairs having been placed for us by Mr. Guppy, Mr. Kenge
  • expressed the surprise and gratification he felt at the unusual sight
  • of Mr. Jarndyce in his office. He turned over his double eye-glass as
  • he spoke and was more Conversation Kenge than ever.
  • "I hope," said Mr. Kenge, "that the genial influence of Miss
  • Summerson," he bowed to me, "may have induced Mr. Jarndyce," he bowed
  • to him, "to forego some little of his animosity towards a cause and
  • towards a court which are--shall I say, which take their place in the
  • stately vista of the pillars of our profession?"
  • "I am inclined to think," returned my guardian, "that Miss Summerson
  • has seen too much of the effects of the court and the cause to exert
  • any influence in their favour. Nevertheless, they are a part of the
  • occasion of my being here. Mr. Kenge, before I lay this paper on your
  • desk and have done with it, let me tell you how it has come into my
  • hands."
  • He did so shortly and distinctly.
  • "It could not, sir," said Mr. Kenge, "have been stated more plainly
  • and to the purpose if it had been a case at law."
  • "Did you ever know English law, or equity either, plain and to the
  • purpose?" said my guardian.
  • "Oh, fie!" said Mr. Kenge.
  • At first he had not seemed to attach much importance to the paper,
  • but when he saw it he appeared more interested, and when he had
  • opened and read a little of it through his eye-glass, he became
  • amazed. "Mr. Jarndyce," he said, looking off it, "you have perused
  • this?"
  • "Not I!" returned my guardian.
  • "But, my dear sir," said Mr. Kenge, "it is a will of later date than
  • any in the suit. It appears to be all in the testator's handwriting.
  • It is duly executed and attested. And even if intended to be
  • cancelled, as might possibly be supposed to be denoted by these marks
  • of fire, it is NOT cancelled. Here it is, a perfect instrument!"
  • "Well!" said my guardian. "What is that to me?"
  • "Mr. Guppy!" cried Mr. Kenge, raising his voice. "I beg your pardon,
  • Mr. Jarndyce."
  • "Sir."
  • "Mr. Vholes of Symond's Inn. My compliments. Jarndyce and Jarndyce.
  • Glad to speak with him."
  • Mr. Guppy disappeared.
  • "You ask me what is this to you, Mr. Jarndyce. If you had perused
  • this document, you would have seen that it reduces your interest
  • considerably, though still leaving it a very handsome one, still
  • leaving it a very handsome one," said Mr. Kenge, waving his hand
  • persuasively and blandly. "You would further have seen that the
  • interests of Mr. Richard Carstone and of Miss Ada Clare, now Mrs.
  • Richard Carstone, are very materially advanced by it."
  • "Kenge," said my guardian, "if all the flourishing wealth that the
  • suit brought into this vile court of Chancery could fall to my two
  • young cousins, I should be well contented. But do you ask ME to
  • believe that any good is to come of Jarndyce and Jarndyce?"
  • "Oh, really, Mr. Jarndyce! Prejudice, prejudice. My dear sir, this is
  • a very great country, a very great country. Its system of equity is a
  • very great system, a very great system. Really, really!"
  • My guardian said no more, and Mr. Vholes arrived. He was modestly
  • impressed by Mr. Kenge's professional eminence.
  • "How do you do, Mr. Vholes? Will you be so good as to take a chair
  • here by me and look over this paper?"
  • Mr. Vholes did as he was asked and seemed to read it every word. He
  • was not excited by it, but he was not excited by anything. When he
  • had well examined it, he retired with Mr. Kenge into a window, and
  • shading his mouth with his black glove, spoke to him at some length.
  • I was not surprised to observe Mr. Kenge inclined to dispute what
  • he said before he had said much, for I knew that no two people ever
  • did agree about anything in Jarndyce and Jarndyce. But he seemed
  • to get the better of Mr. Kenge too in a conversation that sounded
  • as if it were almost composed of the words "Receiver-General,"
  • "Accountant-General," "report," "estate," and "costs." When they had
  • finished, they came back to Mr. Kenge's table and spoke aloud.
  • "Well! But this is a very remarkable document, Mr. Vholes," said Mr.
  • Kenge.
  • Mr. Vholes said, "Very much so."
  • "And a very important document, Mr. Vholes," said Mr. Kenge.
  • Again Mr. Vholes said, "Very much so."
  • "And as you say, Mr. Vholes, when the cause is in the paper next
  • term, this document will be an unexpected and interesting feature in
  • it," said Mr. Kenge, looking loftily at my guardian.
  • Mr. Vholes was gratified, as a smaller practitioner striving to keep
  • respectable, to be confirmed in any opinion of his own by such an
  • authority.
  • "And when," asked my guardian, rising after a pause, during which Mr.
  • Kenge had rattled his money and Mr. Vholes had picked his pimples,
  • "when is next term?"
  • "Next term, Mr. Jarndyce, will be next month," said Mr. Kenge. "Of
  • course we shall at once proceed to do what is necessary with this
  • document and to collect the necessary evidence concerning it; and of
  • course you will receive our usual notification of the cause being in
  • the paper."
  • "To which I shall pay, of course, my usual attention."
  • "Still bent, my dear sir," said Mr. Kenge, showing us through the
  • outer office to the door, "still bent, even with your enlarged mind,
  • on echoing a popular prejudice? We are a prosperous community, Mr.
  • Jarndyce, a very prosperous community. We are a great country, Mr.
  • Jarndyce, we are a very great country. This is a great system, Mr.
  • Jarndyce, and would you wish a great country to have a little system?
  • Now, really, really!"
  • He said this at the stair-head, gently moving his right hand as if it
  • were a silver trowel with which to spread the cement of his words on
  • the structure of the system and consolidate it for a thousand ages.
  • CHAPTER LXIII
  • Steel and Iron
  • George's Shooting Gallery is to let, and the stock is sold off, and
  • George himself is at Chesney Wold attending on Sir Leicester in his
  • rides and riding very near his bridle-rein because of the uncertain
  • hand with which he guides his horse. But not to-day is George so
  • occupied. He is journeying to-day into the iron country farther north
  • to look about him.
  • As he comes into the iron country farther north, such fresh green
  • woods as those of Chesney Wold are left behind; and coal pits and
  • ashes, high chimneys and red bricks, blighted verdure, scorching
  • fires, and a heavy never-lightening cloud of smoke become the
  • features of the scenery. Among such objects rides the trooper,
  • looking about him and always looking for something he has come to
  • find.
  • At last, on the black canal bridge of a busy town, with a clang of
  • iron in it, and more fires and more smoke than he has seen yet, the
  • trooper, swart with the dust of the coal roads, checks his horse and
  • asks a workman does he know the name of Rouncewell thereabouts.
  • "Why, master," quoth the workman, "do I know my own name?"
  • "'Tis so well known here, is it, comrade?" asks the trooper.
  • "Rouncewell's? Ah! You're right."
  • "And where might it be now?" asks the trooper with a glance before
  • him.
  • "The bank, the factory, or the house?" the workman wants to know.
  • "Hum! Rouncewell's is so great apparently," mutters the trooper,
  • stroking his chin, "that I have as good as half a mind to go back
  • again. Why, I don't know which I want. Should I find Mr. Rouncewell
  • at the factory, do you think?"
  • "Tain't easy to say where you'd find him--at this time of the day you
  • might find either him or his son there, if he's in town; but his
  • contracts take him away."
  • And which is the factory? Why, he sees those chimneys--the tallest
  • ones! Yes, he sees THEM. Well! Let him keep his eye on those
  • chimneys, going on as straight as ever he can, and presently he'll
  • see 'em down a turning on the left, shut in by a great brick wall
  • which forms one side of the street. That's Rouncewell's.
  • The trooper thanks his informant and rides slowly on, looking about
  • him. He does not turn back, but puts up his horse (and is much
  • disposed to groom him too) at a public-house where some of
  • Rouncewell's hands are dining, as the ostler tells him. Some of
  • Rouncewell's hands have just knocked off for dinner-time and seem to
  • be invading the whole town. They are very sinewy and strong, are
  • Rouncewell's hands--a little sooty too.
  • He comes to a gateway in the brick wall, looks in, and sees a great
  • perplexity of iron lying about in every stage and in a vast variety
  • of shapes--in bars, in wedges, in sheets; in tanks, in boilers, in
  • axles, in wheels, in cogs, in cranks, in rails; twisted and wrenched
  • into eccentric and perverse forms as separate parts of machinery;
  • mountains of it broken up, and rusty in its age; distant furnaces of
  • it glowing and bubbling in its youth; bright fireworks of it
  • showering about under the blows of the steam-hammer; red-hot iron,
  • white-hot iron, cold-black iron; an iron taste, an iron smell, and a
  • Babel of iron sounds.
  • "This is a place to make a man's head ache too!" says the trooper,
  • looking about him for a counting-house. "Who comes here? This is very
  • like me before I was set up. This ought to be my nephew, if
  • likenesses run in families. Your servant, sir."
  • "Yours, sir. Are you looking for any one?"
  • "Excuse me. Young Mr. Rouncewell, I believe?"
  • "Yes."
  • "I was looking for your father, sir. I wish to have a word with him."
  • The young man, telling him he is fortunate in his choice of a time,
  • for his father is there, leads the way to the office where he is to
  • be found. "Very like me before I was set up--devilish like me!"
  • thinks the trooper as he follows. They come to a building in the yard
  • with an office on an upper floor. At sight of the gentleman in the
  • office, Mr. George turns very red.
  • "What name shall I say to my father?" asks the young man.
  • George, full of the idea of iron, in desperation answers "Steel," and
  • is so presented. He is left alone with the gentleman in the office,
  • who sits at a table with account-books before him and some sheets of
  • paper blotted with hosts of figures and drawings of cunning shapes.
  • It is a bare office, with bare windows, looking on the iron view
  • below. Tumbled together on the table are some pieces of iron,
  • purposely broken to be tested at various periods of their service, in
  • various capacities. There is iron-dust on everything; and the smoke
  • is seen through the windows rolling heavily out of the tall chimneys
  • to mingle with the smoke from a vaporous Babylon of other chimneys.
  • "I am at your service, Mr. Steel," says the gentleman when his
  • visitor has taken a rusty chair.
  • "Well, Mr. Rouncewell," George replies, leaning forward with his left
  • arm on his knee and his hat in his hand, and very chary of meeting
  • his brother's eye, "I am not without my expectations that in the
  • present visit I may prove to be more free than welcome. I have served
  • as a dragoon in my day, and a comrade of mine that I was once rather
  • partial to was, if I don't deceive myself, a brother of yours. I
  • believe you had a brother who gave his family some trouble, and ran
  • away, and never did any good but in keeping away?"
  • "Are you quite sure," returns the ironmaster in an altered voice,
  • "that your name is Steel?"
  • The trooper falters and looks at him. His brother starts up, calls
  • him by his name, and grasps him by both hands.
  • "You are too quick for me!" cries the trooper with the tears
  • springing out of his eyes. "How do you do, my dear old fellow? I
  • never could have thought you would have been half so glad to see me
  • as all this. How do you do, my dear old fellow, how do you do!"
  • They shake hands and embrace each other over and over again, the
  • trooper still coupling his "How do you do, my dear old fellow!" with
  • his protestation that he never thought his brother would have been
  • half so glad to see him as all this!
  • "So far from it," he declares at the end of a full account of what
  • has preceded his arrival there, "I had very little idea of making
  • myself known. I thought if you took by any means forgivingly to my
  • name I might gradually get myself up to the point of writing a
  • letter. But I should not have been surprised, brother, if you had
  • considered it anything but welcome news to hear of me."
  • "We will show you at home what kind of news we think it, George,"
  • returns his brother. "This is a great day at home, and you could not
  • have arrived, you bronzed old soldier, on a better. I make an
  • agreement with my son Watt to-day that on this day twelvemonth he
  • shall marry as pretty and as good a girl as you have seen in all your
  • travels. She goes to Germany to-morrow with one of your nieces for a
  • little polishing up in her education. We make a feast of the event,
  • and you will be made the hero of it."
  • Mr. George is so entirely overcome at first by this prospect that he
  • resists the proposed honour with great earnestness. Being overborne,
  • however, by his brother and his nephew--concerning whom he renews his
  • protestations that he never could have thought they would have been
  • half so glad to see him--he is taken home to an elegant house in all
  • the arrangements of which there is to be observed a pleasant mixture
  • of the originally simple habits of the father and mother with such as
  • are suited to their altered station and the higher fortunes of their
  • children. Here Mr. George is much dismayed by the graces and
  • accomplishments of his nieces that are and by the beauty of Rosa, his
  • niece that is to be, and by the affectionate salutations of these
  • young ladies, which he receives in a sort of dream. He is sorely
  • taken aback, too, by the dutiful behaviour of his nephew and has a
  • woeful consciousness upon him of being a scapegrace. However, there
  • is great rejoicing and a very hearty company and infinite enjoyment,
  • and Mr. George comes bluff and martial through it all, and his pledge
  • to be present at the marriage and give away the bride is received
  • with universal favour. A whirling head has Mr. George that night when
  • he lies down in the state-bed of his brother's house to think of all
  • these things and to see the images of his nieces (awful all the
  • evening in their floating muslins) waltzing, after the German manner,
  • over his counterpane.
  • The brothers are closeted next morning in the ironmaster's room,
  • where the elder is proceeding, in his clear sensible way, to show how
  • he thinks he may best dispose of George in his business, when George
  • squeezes his hand and stops him.
  • "Brother, I thank you a million times for your more than brotherly
  • welcome, and a million times more to that for your more than
  • brotherly intentions. But my plans are made. Before I say a word as
  • to them, I wish to consult you upon one family point. How," says the
  • trooper, folding his arms and looking with indomitable firmness at
  • his brother, "how is my mother to be got to scratch me?"
  • "I am not sure that I understand you, George," replies the
  • ironmaster.
  • "I say, brother, how is my mother to be got to scratch me? She must
  • be got to do it somehow."
  • "Scratch you out of her will, I think you mean?"
  • "Of course I do. In short," says the trooper, folding his arms more
  • resolutely yet, "I mean--TO--scratch me!"
  • "My dear George," returns his brother, "is it so indispensable that
  • you should undergo that process?"
  • "Quite! Absolutely! I couldn't be guilty of the meanness of coming
  • back without it. I should never be safe not to be off again. I have
  • not sneaked home to rob your children, if not yourself, brother, of
  • your rights. I, who forfeited mine long ago! If I am to remain and
  • hold up my head, I must be scratched. Come. You are a man of
  • celebrated penetration and intelligence, and you can tell me how it's
  • to be brought about."
  • "I can tell you, George," replies the ironmaster deliberately, "how
  • it is not to be brought about, which I hope may answer the purpose as
  • well. Look at our mother, think of her, recall her emotion when she
  • recovered you. Do you believe there is a consideration in the world
  • that would induce her to take such a step against her favourite son?
  • Do you believe there is any chance of her consent, to balance against
  • the outrage it would be to her (loving dear old lady!) to propose it?
  • If you do, you are wrong. No, George! You must make up your mind to
  • remain UNscratched, I think." There is an amused smile on the
  • ironmaster's face as he watches his brother, who is pondering, deeply
  • disappointed. "I think you may manage almost as well as if the thing
  • were done, though."
  • "How, brother?"
  • "Being bent upon it, you can dispose by will of anything you have the
  • misfortune to inherit in any way you like, you know."
  • "That's true!" says the trooper, pondering again. Then he wistfully
  • asks, with his hand on his brother's, "Would you mind mentioning
  • that, brother, to your wife and family?"
  • "Not at all."
  • "Thank you. You wouldn't object to say, perhaps, that although an
  • undoubted vagabond, I am a vagabond of the harum-scarum order, and
  • not of the mean sort?"
  • The ironmaster, repressing his amused smile, assents.
  • "Thank you. Thank you. It's a weight off my mind," says the trooper
  • with a heave of his chest as he unfolds his arms and puts a hand on
  • each leg, "though I had set my heart on being scratched, too!"
  • The brothers are very like each other, sitting face to face; but a
  • certain massive simplicity and absence of usage in the ways of the
  • world is all on the trooper's side.
  • "Well," he proceeds, throwing off his disappointment, "next and last,
  • those plans of mine. You have been so brotherly as to propose to me
  • to fall in here and take my place among the products of your
  • perseverance and sense. I thank you heartily. It's more than
  • brotherly, as I said before, and I thank you heartily for it,"
  • shaking him a long time by the hand. "But the truth is, brother, I am
  • a--I am a kind of a weed, and it's too late to plant me in a regular
  • garden."
  • "My dear George," returns the elder, concentrating his strong steady
  • brow upon him and smiling confidently, "leave that to me, and let me
  • try."
  • George shakes his head. "You could do it, I have not a doubt, if
  • anybody could; but it's not to be done. Not to be done, sir! Whereas
  • it so falls out, on the other hand, that I am able to be of some
  • trifle of use to Sir Leicester Dedlock since his illness--brought on
  • by family sorrows--and that he would rather have that help from our
  • mother's son than from anybody else."
  • "Well, my dear George," returns the other with a very slight shade
  • upon his open face, "if you prefer to serve in Sir Leicester
  • Dedlock's household brigade--"
  • "There it is, brother," cries the trooper, checking him, with his
  • hand upon his knee again; "there it is! You don't take kindly to that
  • idea; I don't mind it. You are not used to being officered; I am.
  • Everything about you is in perfect order and discipline; everything
  • about me requires to be kept so. We are not accustomed to carry
  • things with the same hand or to look at 'em from the same point. I
  • don't say much about my garrison manners because I found myself
  • pretty well at my ease last night, and they wouldn't be noticed here,
  • I dare say, once and away. But I shall get on best at Chesney Wold,
  • where there's more room for a weed than there is here; and the dear
  • old lady will be made happy besides. Therefore I accept of Sir
  • Leicester Dedlock's proposals. When I come over next year to give
  • away the bride, or whenever I come, I shall have the sense to keep
  • the household brigade in ambuscade and not to manoeuvre it on your
  • ground. I thank you heartily again and am proud to think of the
  • Rouncewells as they'll be founded by you."
  • "You know yourself, George," says the elder brother, returning the
  • grip of his hand, "and perhaps you know me better than I know myself.
  • Take your way. So that we don't quite lose one another again, take
  • your way."
  • "No fear of that!" returns the trooper. "Now, before I turn my
  • horse's head homewards, brother, I will ask you--if you'll be so
  • good--to look over a letter for me. I brought it with me to send from
  • these parts, as Chesney Wold might be a painful name just now to the
  • person it's written to. I am not much accustomed to correspondence
  • myself, and I am particular respecting this present letter because I
  • want it to be both straightforward and delicate."
  • Herewith he hands a letter, closely written in somewhat pale ink but
  • in a neat round hand, to the ironmaster, who reads as follows:
  • Miss Esther Summerson,
  • A communication having been made to me by Inspector Bucket
  • of a letter to myself being found among the papers of a
  • certain person, I take the liberty to make known to you
  • that it was but a few lines of instruction from abroad,
  • when, where, and how to deliver an enclosed letter to a
  • young and beautiful lady, then unmarried, in England. I
  • duly observed the same.
  • I further take the liberty to make known to you that it
  • was got from me as a proof of handwriting only and that
  • otherwise I would not have given it up, as appearing to
  • be the most harmless in my possession, without being
  • previously shot through the heart.
  • I further take the liberty to mention that if I could have
  • supposed a certain unfortunate gentleman to have been in
  • existence, I never could and never would have rested until
  • I had discovered his retreat and shared my last farthing
  • with him, as my duty and my inclination would have equally
  • been. But he was (officially) reported drowned, and
  • assuredly went over the side of a transport-ship at night
  • in an Irish harbour within a few hours of her arrival from
  • the West Indies, as I have myself heard both from officers
  • and men on board, and know to have been (officially)
  • confirmed.
  • I further take the liberty to state that in my humble
  • quality as one of the rank and file, I am, and shall ever
  • continue to be, your thoroughly devoted and admiring
  • servant and that I esteem the qualities you possess above
  • all others far beyond the limits of the present dispatch.
  • I have the honour to be,
  • GEORGE
  • "A little formal," observes the elder brother, refolding it with a
  • puzzled face.
  • "But nothing that might not be sent to a pattern young lady?" asks
  • the younger.
  • "Nothing at all."
  • Therefore it is sealed and deposited for posting among the iron
  • correspondence of the day. This done, Mr. George takes a hearty
  • farewell of the family party and prepares to saddle and mount. His
  • brother, however, unwilling to part with him so soon, proposes to
  • ride with him in a light open carriage to the place where he will
  • bait for the night, and there remain with him until morning, a
  • servant riding for so much of the journey on the thoroughbred old
  • grey from Chesney Wold. The offer, being gladly accepted, is followed
  • by a pleasant ride, a pleasant dinner, and a pleasant breakfast, all
  • in brotherly communion. Then they once more shake hands long and
  • heartily and part, the ironmaster turning his face to the smoke and
  • fires, and the trooper to the green country. Early in the afternoon
  • the subdued sound of his heavy military trot is heard on the turf in
  • the avenue as he rides on with imaginary clank and jingle of
  • accoutrements under the old elm-trees.
  • CHAPTER LXIV
  • Esther's Narrative
  • Soon after I had that conversation with my guardian, he put a sealed
  • paper in my hand one morning and said, "This is for next month, my
  • dear." I found in it two hundred pounds.
  • I now began very quietly to make such preparations as I thought were
  • necessary. Regulating my purchases by my guardian's taste, which I
  • knew very well of course, I arranged my wardrobe to please him and
  • hoped I should be highly successful. I did it all so quietly because
  • I was not quite free from my old apprehension that Ada would be
  • rather sorry and because my guardian was so quiet himself. I had no
  • doubt that under all the circumstances we should be married in the
  • most private and simple manner. Perhaps I should only have to say to
  • Ada, "Would you like to come and see me married to-morrow, my pet?"
  • Perhaps our wedding might even be as unpretending as her own, and I
  • might not find it necessary to say anything about it until it was
  • over. I thought that if I were to choose, I would like this best.
  • The only exception I made was Mrs. Woodcourt. I told her that I was
  • going to be married to my guardian and that we had been engaged some
  • time. She highly approved. She could never do enough for me and was
  • remarkably softened now in comparison with what she had been when we
  • first knew her. There was no trouble she would not have taken to have
  • been of use to me, but I need hardly say that I only allowed her to
  • take as little as gratified her kindness without tasking it.
  • Of course this was not a time to neglect my guardian, and of course
  • it was not a time for neglecting my darling. So I had plenty of
  • occupation, which I was glad of; and as to Charley, she was
  • absolutely not to be seen for needlework. To surround herself with
  • great heaps of it--baskets full and tables full--and do a little, and
  • spend a great deal of time in staring with her round eyes at what
  • there was to do, and persuade herself that she was going to do it,
  • were Charley's great dignities and delights.
  • Meanwhile, I must say, I could not agree with my guardian on the
  • subject of the will, and I had some sanguine hopes of Jarndyce and
  • Jarndyce. Which of us was right will soon appear, but I certainly did
  • encourage expectations. In Richard, the discovery gave occasion for a
  • burst of business and agitation that buoyed him up for a little time,
  • but he had lost the elasticity even of hope now and seemed to me to
  • retain only its feverish anxieties. From something my guardian said
  • one day when we were talking about this, I understood that my
  • marriage would not take place until after the term-time we had been
  • told to look forward to; and I thought the more, for that, how
  • rejoiced I should be if I could be married when Richard and Ada were
  • a little more prosperous.
  • The term was very near indeed when my guardian was called out of town
  • and went down into Yorkshire on Mr. Woodcourt's business. He had told
  • me beforehand that his presence there would be necessary. I had just
  • come in one night from my dear girl's and was sitting in the midst of
  • all my new clothes, looking at them all around me and thinking, when
  • a letter from my guardian was brought to me. It asked me to join him
  • in the country and mentioned by what stage-coach my place was taken
  • and at what time in the morning I should have to leave town. It added
  • in a postscript that I would not be many hours from Ada.
  • I expected few things less than a journey at that time, but I was
  • ready for it in half an hour and set off as appointed early next
  • morning. I travelled all day, wondering all day what I could be
  • wanted for at such a distance; now I thought it might be for this
  • purpose, and now I thought it might be for that purpose, but I was
  • never, never, never near the truth.
  • It was night when I came to my journey's end and found my guardian
  • waiting for me. This was a great relief, for towards evening I had
  • begun to fear (the more so as his letter was a very short one) that
  • he might be ill. However, there he was, as well as it was possible to
  • be; and when I saw his genial face again at its brightest and best, I
  • said to myself, he has been doing some other great kindness. Not that
  • it required much penetration to say that, because I knew that his
  • being there at all was an act of kindness.
  • Supper was ready at the hotel, and when we were alone at table he
  • said, "Full of curiosity, no doubt, little woman, to know why I have
  • brought you here?"
  • "Well, guardian," said I, "without thinking myself a Fatima or you a
  • Blue Beard, I am a little curious about it."
  • "Then to ensure your night's rest, my love," he returned gaily, "I
  • won't wait until to-morrow to tell you. I have very much wished to
  • express to Woodcourt, somehow, my sense of his humanity to poor
  • unfortunate Jo, his inestimable services to my young cousins, and his
  • value to us all. When it was decided that he should settle here, it
  • came into my head that I might ask his acceptance of some
  • unpretending and suitable little place to lay his own head in. I
  • therefore caused such a place to be looked out for, and such a place
  • was found on very easy terms, and I have been touching it up for him
  • and making it habitable. However, when I walked over it the day
  • before yesterday and it was reported ready, I found that I was not
  • housekeeper enough to know whether things were all as they ought to
  • be. So I sent off for the best little housekeeper that could possibly
  • be got to come and give me her advice and opinion. And here she is,"
  • said my guardian, "laughing and crying both together!"
  • Because he was so dear, so good, so admirable. I tried to tell him
  • what I thought of him, but I could not articulate a word.
  • "Tut, tut!" said my guardian. "You make too much of it, little woman.
  • Why, how you sob, Dame Durden, how you sob!"
  • "It is with exquisite pleasure, guardian--with a heart full of
  • thanks."
  • "Well, well," said he. "I am delighted that you approve. I thought
  • you would. I meant it as a pleasant surprise for the little mistress
  • of Bleak House."
  • I kissed him and dried my eyes. "I know now!" said I. "I have seen
  • this in your face a long while."
  • "No; have you really, my dear?" said he. "What a Dame Durden it is to
  • read a face!"
  • He was so quaintly cheerful that I could not long be otherwise, and
  • was almost ashamed of having been otherwise at all. When I went to
  • bed, I cried. I am bound to confess that I cried; but I hope it was
  • with pleasure, though I am not quite sure it was with pleasure. I
  • repeated every word of the letter twice over.
  • A most beautiful summer morning succeeded, and after breakfast we
  • went out arm in arm to see the house of which I was to give my mighty
  • housekeeping opinion. We entered a flower-garden by a gate in a side
  • wall, of which he had the key, and the first thing I saw was that the
  • beds and flowers were all laid out according to the manner of my beds
  • and flowers at home.
  • "You see, my dear," observed my guardian, standing still with a
  • delighted face to watch my looks, "knowing there could be no better
  • plan, I borrowed yours."
  • We went on by a pretty little orchard, where the cherries were
  • nestling among the green leaves and the shadows of the apple-trees
  • were sporting on the grass, to the house itself--a cottage, quite a
  • rustic cottage of doll's rooms; but such a lovely place, so tranquil
  • and so beautiful, with such a rich and smiling country spread around
  • it; with water sparkling away into the distance, here all overhung
  • with summer-growth, there turning a humming mill; at its nearest
  • point glancing through a meadow by the cheerful town, where
  • cricket-players were assembling in bright groups and a flag was
  • flying from a white tent that rippled in the sweet west wind. And
  • still, as we went through the pretty rooms, out at the little rustic
  • verandah doors, and underneath the tiny wooden colonnades garlanded
  • with woodbine, jasmine, and honey-suckle, I saw in the papering on
  • the walls, in the colours of the furniture, in the arrangement of all
  • the pretty objects, MY little tastes and fancies, MY little methods
  • and inventions which they used to laugh at while they praised them,
  • my odd ways everywhere.
  • I could not say enough in admiration of what was all so beautiful,
  • but one secret doubt arose in my mind when I saw this, I thought, oh,
  • would he be the happier for it! Would it not have been better for his
  • peace that I should not have been so brought before him? Because
  • although I was not what he thought me, still he loved me very dearly,
  • and it might remind him mournfully of what be believed he had lost. I
  • did not wish him to forget me--perhaps he might not have done so,
  • without these aids to his memory--but my way was easier than his, and
  • I could have reconciled myself even to that so that he had been the
  • happier for it.
  • "And now, little woman," said my guardian, whom I had never seen so
  • proud and joyful as in showing me these things and watching my
  • appreciation of them, "now, last of all, for the name of this house."
  • "What is it called, dear guardian?"
  • "My child," said he, "come and see,"
  • He took me to the porch, which he had hitherto avoided, and said,
  • pausing before we went out, "My dear child, don't you guess the
  • name?"
  • "No!" said I.
  • We went out of the porch and he showed me written over it, Bleak
  • House.
  • He led me to a seat among the leaves close by, and sitting down
  • beside me and taking my hand in his, spoke to me thus, "My darling
  • girl, in what there has been between us, I have, I hope, been really
  • solicitous for your happiness. When I wrote you the letter to which
  • you brought the answer," smiling as he referred to it, "I had my own
  • too much in view; but I had yours too. Whether, under different
  • circumstances, I might ever have renewed the old dream I sometimes
  • dreamed when you were very young, of making you my wife one day, I
  • need not ask myself. I did renew it, and I wrote my letter, and you
  • brought your answer. You are following what I say, my child?"
  • I was cold, and I trembled violently, but not a word he uttered was
  • lost. As I sat looking fixedly at him and the sun's rays descended,
  • softly shining through the leaves upon his bare head, I felt as if
  • the brightness on him must be like the brightness of the angels.
  • "Hear me, my love, but do not speak. It is for me to speak now. When
  • it was that I began to doubt whether what I had done would really
  • make you happy is no matter. Woodcourt came home, and I soon had no
  • doubt at all."
  • I clasped him round the neck and hung my head upon his breast and
  • wept. "Lie lightly, confidently here, my child," said he, pressing me
  • gently to him. "I am your guardian and your father now. Rest
  • confidently here."
  • Soothingly, like the gentle rustling of the leaves; and genially,
  • like the ripening weather; and radiantly and beneficently, like the
  • sunshine, he went on.
  • "Understand me, my dear girl. I had no doubt of your being contented
  • and happy with me, being so dutiful and so devoted; but I saw with
  • whom you would be happier. That I penetrated his secret when Dame
  • Durden was blind to it is no wonder, for I knew the good that could
  • never change in her better far than she did. Well! I have long been
  • in Allan Woodcourt's confidence, although he was not, until
  • yesterday, a few hours before you came here, in mine. But I would not
  • have my Esther's bright example lost; I would not have a jot of my
  • dear girl's virtues unobserved and unhonoured; I would not have her
  • admitted on sufferance into the line of Morgan ap-Kerrig, no, not for
  • the weight in gold of all the mountains in Wales!"
  • He stopped to kiss me on the forehead, and I sobbed and wept afresh.
  • For I felt as if I could not bear the painful delight of his praise.
  • "Hush, little woman! Don't cry; this is to be a day of joy. I have
  • looked forward to it," he said exultingly, "for months on months! A
  • few words more, Dame Trot, and I have said my say. Determined not to
  • throw away one atom of my Esther's worth, I took Mrs. Woodcourt into
  • a separate confidence. 'Now, madam,' said I, 'I clearly perceive--and
  • indeed I know, to boot--that your son loves my ward. I am further
  • very sure that my ward loves your son, but will sacrifice her love to
  • a sense of duty and affection, and will sacrifice it so completely,
  • so entirely, so religiously, that you should never suspect it though
  • you watched her night and day.' Then I told her all our
  • story--ours--yours and mine. 'Now, madam,' said I, 'come you, knowing
  • this, and live with us. Come you, and see my child from hour to hour;
  • set what you see against her pedigree, which is this, and this'--for
  • I scorned to mince it--'and tell me what is the true legitimacy when
  • you shall have quite made up your mind on that subject.' Why, honour
  • to her old Welsh blood, my dear," cried my guardian with enthusiasm,
  • "I believe the heart it animates beats no less warmly, no less
  • admiringly, no less lovingly, towards Dame Durden than my own!"
  • He tenderly raised my head, and as I clung to him, kissed me in his
  • old fatherly way again and again. What a light, now, on the
  • protecting manner I had thought about!
  • "One more last word. When Allan Woodcourt spoke to you, my dear, he
  • spoke with my knowledge and consent--but I gave him no encouragement,
  • not I, for these surprises were my great reward, and I was too
  • miserly to part with a scrap of it. He was to come and tell me all
  • that passed, and he did. I have no more to say. My dearest, Allan
  • Woodcourt stood beside your father when he lay dead--stood beside
  • your mother. This is Bleak House. This day I give this house its
  • little mistress; and before God, it is the brightest day in all my
  • life!"
  • He rose and raised me with him. We were no longer alone. My
  • husband--I have called him by that name full seven happy years
  • now--stood at my side.
  • "Allan," said my guardian, "take from me a willing gift, the best
  • wife that ever man had. What more can I say for you than that I know
  • you deserve her! Take with her the little home she brings you. You
  • know what she will make it, Allan; you know what she has made its
  • namesake. Let me share its felicity sometimes, and what do I
  • sacrifice? Nothing, nothing."
  • He kissed me once again, and now the tears were in his eyes as he
  • said more softly, "Esther, my dearest, after so many years, there is
  • a kind of parting in this too. I know that my mistake has caused you
  • some distress. Forgive your old guardian, in restoring him to his old
  • place in your affections; and blot it out of your memory. Allan, take
  • my dear."
  • He moved away from under the green roof of leaves, and stopping in
  • the sunlight outside and turning cheerfully towards us, said, "I
  • shall be found about here somewhere. It's a west wind, little woman,
  • due west! Let no one thank me any more, for I am going to revert to
  • my bachelor habits, and if anybody disregards this warning, I'll run
  • away and never come back!"
  • What happiness was ours that day, what joy, what rest, what hope,
  • what gratitude, what bliss! We were to be married before the month
  • was out, but when we were to come and take possession of our own
  • house was to depend on Richard and Ada.
  • We all three went home together next day. As soon as we arrived in
  • town, Allan went straight to see Richard and to carry our joyful news
  • to him and my darling. Late as it was, I meant to go to her for a few
  • minutes before lying down to sleep, but I went home with my guardian
  • first to make his tea for him and to occupy the old chair by his
  • side, for I did not like to think of its being empty so soon.
  • When we came home we found that a young man had called three times in
  • the course of that one day to see me and that having been told on the
  • occasion of his third call that I was not expected to return before
  • ten o'clock at night, he had left word that he would call about then.
  • He had left his card three times. Mr. Guppy.
  • As I naturally speculated on the object of these visits, and as I
  • always associated something ludicrous with the visitor, it fell out
  • that in laughing about Mr. Guppy I told my guardian of his old
  • proposal and his subsequent retraction. "After that," said my
  • guardian, "we will certainly receive this hero." So instructions were
  • given that Mr. Guppy should be shown in when he came again, and they
  • were scarcely given when he did come again.
  • He was embarrassed when he found my guardian with me, but recovered
  • himself and said, "How de do, sir?"
  • "How do you do, sir?" returned my guardian.
  • "Thank you, sir, I am tolerable," returned Mr. Guppy. "Will you allow
  • me to introduce my mother, Mrs. Guppy of the Old Street Road, and my
  • particular friend, Mr. Weevle. That is to say, my friend has gone by
  • the name of Weevle, but his name is really and truly Jobling."
  • My guardian begged them to be seated, and they all sat down.
  • "Tony," said Mr. Guppy to his friend after an awkward silence. "Will
  • you open the case?"
  • "Do it yourself," returned the friend rather tartly.
  • "Well, Mr. Jarndyce, sir," Mr. Guppy, after a moment's consideration,
  • began, to the great diversion of his mother, which she displayed by
  • nudging Mr. Jobling with her elbow and winking at me in a most
  • remarkable manner, "I had an idea that I should see Miss Summerson by
  • herself and was not quite prepared for your esteemed presence. But
  • Miss Summerson has mentioned to you, perhaps, that something has
  • passed between us on former occasions?"
  • "Miss Summerson," returned my guardian, smiling, "has made a
  • communication to that effect to me."
  • "That," said Mr. Guppy, "makes matters easier. Sir, I have come out
  • of my articles at Kenge and Carboy's, and I believe with satisfaction
  • to all parties. I am now admitted (after undergoing an examination
  • that's enough to badger a man blue, touching a pack of nonsense that
  • he don't want to know) on the roll of attorneys and have taken out my
  • certificate, if it would be any satisfaction to you to see it."
  • "Thank you, Mr. Guppy," returned my guardian. "I am quite willing--I
  • believe I use a legal phrase--to admit the certificate."
  • Mr. Guppy therefore desisted from taking something out of his pocket
  • and proceeded without it.
  • "I have no capital myself, but my mother has a little property which
  • takes the form of an annuity"--here Mr. Guppy's mother rolled her
  • head as if she never could sufficiently enjoy the observation, and
  • put her handkerchief to her mouth, and again winked at me--"and a few
  • pounds for expenses out of pocket in conducting business will never
  • be wanting, free of interest, which is an advantage, you know," said
  • Mr. Guppy feelingly.
  • "Certainly an advantage," returned my guardian.
  • "I HAVE some connexion," pursued Mr. Guppy, "and it lays in the
  • direction of Walcot Square, Lambeth. I have therefore taken a 'ouse
  • in that locality, which, in the opinion of my friends, is a hollow
  • bargain (taxes ridiculous, and use of fixtures included in the rent),
  • and intend setting up professionally for myself there forthwith."
  • Here Mr. Guppy's mother fell into an extraordinary passion of rolling
  • her head and smiling waggishly at anybody who would look at her.
  • "It's a six-roomer, exclusive of kitchens," said Mr. Guppy, "and in
  • the opinion of my friends, a commodious tenement. When I mention my
  • friends, I refer principally to my friend Jobling, who I believe has
  • known me," Mr. Guppy looked at him with a sentimental air, "from
  • boyhood's hour."
  • Mr. Jobling confirmed this with a sliding movement of his legs.
  • "My friend Jobling will render me his assistance in the capacity of
  • clerk and will live in the 'ouse," said Mr. Guppy. "My mother will
  • likewise live in the 'ouse when her present quarter in the Old Street
  • Road shall have ceased and expired; and consequently there will be no
  • want of society. My friend Jobling is naturally aristocratic by
  • taste, and besides being acquainted with the movements of the upper
  • circles, fully backs me in the intentions I am now developing."
  • Mr. Jobling said "Certainly" and withdrew a little from the elbow of
  • Mr Guppy's mother.
  • "Now, I have no occasion to mention to you, sir, you being in the
  • confidence of Miss Summerson," said Mr. Guppy, "(mother, I wish you'd
  • be so good as to keep still), that Miss Summerson's image was
  • formerly imprinted on my 'eart and that I made her a proposal of
  • marriage."
  • "That I have heard," returned my guardian.
  • "Circumstances," pursued Mr. Guppy, "over which I had no control, but
  • quite the contrary, weakened the impression of that image for a time.
  • At which time Miss Summerson's conduct was highly genteel; I may even
  • add, magnanimous."
  • My guardian patted me on the shoulder and seemed much amused.
  • "Now, sir," said Mr. Guppy, "I have got into that state of mind
  • myself that I wish for a reciprocity of magnanimous behaviour. I wish
  • to prove to Miss Summerson that I can rise to a heighth of which
  • perhaps she hardly thought me capable. I find that the image which I
  • did suppose had been eradicated from my 'eart is NOT eradicated. Its
  • influence over me is still tremenjous, and yielding to it, I am
  • willing to overlook the circumstances over which none of us have had
  • any control and to renew those proposals to Miss Summerson which I
  • had the honour to make at a former period. I beg to lay the 'ouse in
  • Walcot Square, the business, and myself before Miss Summerson for her
  • acceptance."
  • "Very magnanimous indeed, sir," observed my guardian.
  • "Well, sir," replied Mr. Guppy with candour, "my wish is to BE
  • magnanimous. I do not consider that in making this offer to Miss
  • Summerson I am by any means throwing myself away; neither is that the
  • opinion of my friends. Still, there are circumstances which I submit
  • may be taken into account as a set off against any little drawbacks
  • of mine, and so a fair and equitable balance arrived at."
  • "I take upon myself, sir," said my guardian, laughing as he rang the
  • bell, "to reply to your proposals on behalf of Miss Summerson. She is
  • very sensible of your handsome intentions, and wishes you good
  • evening, and wishes you well."
  • "Oh!" said Mr. Guppy with a blank look. "Is that tantamount, sir, to
  • acceptance, or rejection, or consideration?"
  • "To decided rejection, if you please," returned my guardian.
  • Mr. Guppy looked incredulously at his friend, and at his mother, who
  • suddenly turned very angry, and at the floor, and at the ceiling.
  • "Indeed?" said he. "Then, Jobling, if you was the friend you
  • represent yourself, I should think you might hand my mother out of
  • the gangway instead of allowing her to remain where she ain't
  • wanted."
  • But Mrs. Guppy positively refused to come out of the gangway. She
  • wouldn't hear of it. "Why, get along with you," said she to my
  • guardian, "what do you mean? Ain't my son good enough for you? You
  • ought to be ashamed of yourself. Get out with you!"
  • "My good lady," returned my guardian, "it is hardly reasonable to ask
  • me to get out of my own room."
  • "I don't care for that," said Mrs. Guppy. "Get out with you. If we
  • ain't good enough for you, go and procure somebody that is good
  • enough. Go along and find 'em."
  • I was quite unprepared for the rapid manner in which Mrs. Guppy's
  • power of jocularity merged into a power of taking the profoundest
  • offence.
  • "Go along and find somebody that's good enough for you," repeated
  • Mrs. Guppy. "Get out!" Nothing seemed to astonish Mr. Guppy's mother
  • so much and to make her so very indignant as our not getting out.
  • "Why don't you get out?" said Mrs. Guppy. "What are you stopping here
  • for?"
  • "Mother," interposed her son, always getting before her and pushing
  • her back with one shoulder as she sidled at my guardian, "WILL you
  • hold your tongue?"
  • "No, William," she returned, "I won't! Not unless he gets out, I
  • won't!"
  • However, Mr. Guppy and Mr. Jobling together closed on Mr. Guppy's
  • mother (who began to be quite abusive) and took her, very much
  • against her will, downstairs, her voice rising a stair higher every
  • time her figure got a stair lower, and insisting that we should
  • immediately go and find somebody who was good enough for us, and
  • above all things that we should get out.
  • CHAPTER LXV
  • Beginning the World
  • The term had commenced, and my guardian found an intimation from Mr.
  • Kenge that the cause would come on in two days. As I had sufficient
  • hopes of the will to be in a flutter about it, Allan and I agreed to
  • go down to the court that morning. Richard was extremely agitated and
  • was so weak and low, though his illness was still of the mind, that
  • my dear girl indeed had sore occasion to be supported. But she looked
  • forward--a very little way now--to the help that was to come to her,
  • and never drooped.
  • It was at Westminster that the cause was to come on. It had come on
  • there, I dare say, a hundred times before, but I could not divest
  • myself of an idea that it MIGHT lead to some result now. We left home
  • directly after breakfast to be at Westminster Hall in good time and
  • walked down there through the lively streets--so happily and
  • strangely it seemed!--together.
  • As we were going along, planning what we should do for Richard and
  • Ada, I heard somebody calling "Esther! My dear Esther! Esther!" And
  • there was Caddy Jellyby, with her head out of the window of a little
  • carriage which she hired now to go about in to her pupils (she had so
  • many), as if she wanted to embrace me at a hundred yards' distance. I
  • had written her a note to tell her of all that my guardian had done,
  • but had not had a moment to go and see her. Of course we turned back,
  • and the affectionate girl was in that state of rapture, and was so
  • overjoyed to talk about the night when she brought me the flowers,
  • and was so determined to squeeze my face (bonnet and all) between her
  • hands, and go on in a wild manner altogether, calling me all kinds of
  • precious names, and telling Allan I had done I don't know what for
  • her, that I was just obliged to get into the little carriage and calm
  • her down by letting her say and do exactly what she liked. Allan,
  • standing at the window, was as pleased as Caddy; and I was as pleased
  • as either of them; and I wonder that I got away as I did, rather than
  • that I came off laughing, and red, and anything but tidy, and looking
  • after Caddy, who looked after us out of the coach-window as long as
  • she could see us.
  • This made us some quarter of an hour late, and when we came to
  • Westminster Hall we found that the day's business was begun. Worse
  • than that, we found such an unusual crowd in the Court of Chancery
  • that it was full to the door, and we could neither see nor hear what
  • was passing within. It appeared to be something droll, for
  • occasionally there was a laugh and a cry of "Silence!" It appeared to
  • be something interesting, for every one was pushing and striving to
  • get nearer. It appeared to be something that made the professional
  • gentlemen very merry, for there were several young counsellors in
  • wigs and whiskers on the outside of the crowd, and when one of them
  • told the others about it, they put their hands in their pockets, and
  • quite doubled themselves up with laughter, and went stamping about
  • the pavement of the Hall.
  • We asked a gentleman by us if he knew what cause was on. He told us
  • Jarndyce and Jarndyce. We asked him if he knew what was doing in it.
  • He said really, no he did not, nobody ever did, but as well as he
  • could make out, it was over. Over for the day? we asked him. No, he
  • said, over for good.
  • Over for good!
  • When we heard this unaccountable answer, we looked at one another
  • quite lost in amazement. Could it be possible that the will had set
  • things right at last and that Richard and Ada were going to be rich?
  • It seemed too good to be true. Alas it was!
  • Our suspense was short, for a break-up soon took place in the crowd,
  • and the people came streaming out looking flushed and hot and
  • bringing a quantity of bad air with them. Still they were all
  • exceedingly amused and were more like people coming out from a farce
  • or a juggler than from a court of justice. We stood aside, watching
  • for any countenance we knew, and presently great bundles of paper
  • began to be carried out--bundles in bags, bundles too large to be got
  • into any bags, immense masses of papers of all shapes and no shapes,
  • which the bearers staggered under, and threw down for the time being,
  • anyhow, on the Hall pavement, while they went back to bring out more.
  • Even these clerks were laughing. We glanced at the papers, and seeing
  • Jarndyce and Jarndyce everywhere, asked an official-looking person
  • who was standing in the midst of them whether the cause was over.
  • Yes, he said, it was all up with it at last, and burst out laughing
  • too.
  • At this juncture we perceived Mr. Kenge coming out of court with an
  • affable dignity upon him, listening to Mr. Vholes, who was
  • deferential and carried his own bag. Mr. Vholes was the first to see
  • us. "Here is Miss Summerson, sir," he said. "And Mr. Woodcourt."
  • "Oh, indeed! Yes. Truly!" said Mr. Kenge, raising his hat to me with
  • polished politeness. "How do you do? Glad to see you. Mr. Jarndyce is
  • not here?"
  • No. He never came there, I reminded him.
  • "Really," returned Mr. Kenge, "it is as well that he is NOT here
  • to-day, for his--shall I say, in my good friend's absence, his
  • indomitable singularity of opinion?--might have been strengthened,
  • perhaps; not reasonably, but might have been strengthened."
  • "Pray what has been done to-day?" asked Allan.
  • "I beg your pardon?" said Mr. Kenge with excessive urbanity.
  • "What has been done to-day?"
  • "What has been done," repeated Mr. Kenge. "Quite so. Yes. Why, not
  • much has been done; not much. We have been checked--brought up
  • suddenly, I would say--upon the--shall I term it threshold?"
  • "Is this will considered a genuine document, sir?" said Allan. "Will
  • you tell us that?"
  • "Most certainly, if I could," said Mr. Kenge; "but we have not gone
  • into that, we have not gone into that."
  • "We have not gone into that," repeated Mr. Vholes as if his low
  • inward voice were an echo.
  • "You are to reflect, Mr. Woodcourt," observed Mr. Kenge, using his
  • silver trowel persuasively and smoothingly, "that this has been a
  • great cause, that this has been a protracted cause, that this has
  • been a complex cause. Jarndyce and Jarndyce has been termed, not
  • inaptly, a monument of Chancery practice."
  • "And patience has sat upon it a long time," said Allan.
  • "Very well indeed, sir," returned Mr. Kenge with a certain
  • condescending laugh he had. "Very well! You are further to reflect,
  • Mr. Woodcourt," becoming dignified almost to severity, "that on the
  • numerous difficulties, contingencies, masterly fictions, and forms of
  • procedure in this great cause, there has been expended study,
  • ability, eloquence, knowledge, intellect, Mr. Woodcourt, high
  • intellect. For many years, the--a--I would say the flower of the bar,
  • and the--a--I would presume to add, the matured autumnal fruits of
  • the woolsack--have been lavished upon Jarndyce and Jarndyce. If the
  • public have the benefit, and if the country have the adornment, of
  • this great grasp, it must be paid for in money or money's worth,
  • sir."
  • "Mr. Kenge," said Allan, appearing enlightened all in a moment.
  • "Excuse me, our time presses. Do I understand that the whole estate
  • is found to have been absorbed in costs?"
  • "Hem! I believe so," returned Mr. Kenge. "Mr. Vholes, what do YOU
  • say?"
  • "I believe so," said Mr. Vholes.
  • "And that thus the suit lapses and melts away?"
  • "Probably," returned Mr. Kenge. "Mr. Vholes?"
  • "Probably," said Mr. Vholes.
  • "My dearest life," whispered Allan, "this will break Richard's
  • heart!"
  • There was such a shock of apprehension in his face, and he knew
  • Richard so perfectly, and I too had seen so much of his gradual
  • decay, that what my dear girl had said to me in the fullness of her
  • foreboding love sounded like a knell in my ears.
  • "In case you should be wanting Mr. C., sir," said Mr. Vholes, coming
  • after us, "you'll find him in court. I left him there resting himself
  • a little. Good day, sir; good day, Miss Summerson." As he gave me
  • that slowly devouring look of his, while twisting up the strings of
  • his bag before he hastened with it after Mr. Kenge, the benignant
  • shadow of whose conversational presence he seemed afraid to leave, he
  • gave one gasp as if he had swallowed the last morsel of his client,
  • and his black buttoned-up unwholesome figure glided away to the low
  • door at the end of the Hall.
  • "My dear love," said Allan, "leave to me, for a little while, the
  • charge you gave me. Go home with this intelligence and come to Ada's
  • by and by!"
  • I would not let him take me to a coach, but entreated him to go to
  • Richard without a moment's delay and leave me to do as he wished.
  • Hurrying home, I found my guardian and told him gradually with what
  • news I had returned. "Little woman," said he, quite unmoved for
  • himself, "to have done with the suit on any terms is a greater
  • blessing than I had looked for. But my poor young cousins!"
  • We talked about them all the morning and discussed what it was
  • possible to do. In the afternoon my guardian walked with me to
  • Symond's Inn and left me at the door. I went upstairs. When my
  • darling heard my footsteps, she came out into the small passage and
  • threw her arms round my neck, but she composed herself directly and
  • said that Richard had asked for me several times. Allan had found him
  • sitting in the corner of the court, she told me, like a stone figure.
  • On being roused, he had broken away and made as if he would have
  • spoken in a fierce voice to the judge. He was stopped by his mouth
  • being full of blood, and Allan had brought him home.
  • He was lying on a sofa with his eyes closed when I went in. There
  • were restoratives on the table; the room was made as airy as
  • possible, and was darkened, and was very orderly and quiet. Allan
  • stood behind him watching him gravely. His face appeared to me to be
  • quite destitute of colour, and now that I saw him without his seeing
  • me, I fully saw, for the first time, how worn away he was. But he
  • looked handsomer than I had seen him look for many a day.
  • I sat down by his side in silence. Opening his eyes by and by, he
  • said in a weak voice, but with his old smile, "Dame Durden, kiss me,
  • my dear!"
  • It was a great comfort and surprise to me to find him in his low
  • state cheerful and looking forward. He was happier, he said, in our
  • intended marriage than he could find words to tell me. My husband had
  • been a guardian angel to him and Ada, and he blessed us both and
  • wished us all the joy that life could yield us. I almost felt as if
  • my own heart would have broken when I saw him take my husband's hand
  • and hold it to his breast.
  • We spoke of the future as much as possible, and he said several times
  • that he must be present at our marriage if he could stand upon his
  • feet. Ada would contrive to take him, somehow, he said. "Yes, surely,
  • dearest Richard!" But as my darling answered him thus hopefully, so
  • serene and beautiful, with the help that was to come to her so
  • near--I knew--I knew!
  • It was not good for him to talk too much, and when he was silent, we
  • were silent too. Sitting beside him, I made a pretence of working for
  • my dear, as he had always been used to joke about my being busy. Ada
  • leaned upon his pillow, holding his head upon her arm. He dozed
  • often, and whenever he awoke without seeing him, said first of all,
  • "Where is Woodcourt?"
  • Evening had come on when I lifted up my eyes and saw my guardian
  • standing in the little hall. "Who is that, Dame Durden?" Richard
  • asked me. The door was behind him, but he had observed in my face
  • that some one was there.
  • I looked to Allan for advice, and as he nodded "Yes," bent over
  • Richard and told him. My guardian saw what passed, came softly by me
  • in a moment, and laid his hand on Richard's. "Oh, sir," said Richard,
  • "you are a good man, you are a good man!" and burst into tears for
  • the first time.
  • My guardian, the picture of a good man, sat down in my place, keeping
  • his hand on Richard's.
  • "My dear Rick," said he, "the clouds have cleared away, and it is
  • bright now. We can see now. We were all bewildered, Rick, more or
  • less. What matters! And how are you, my dear boy?"
  • "I am very weak, sir, but I hope I shall be stronger. I have to begin
  • the world."
  • "Aye, truly; well said!" cried my guardian.
  • "I will not begin it in the old way now," said Richard with a sad
  • smile. "I have learned a lesson now, sir. It was a hard one, but you
  • shall be assured, indeed, that I have learned it."
  • "Well, well," said my guardian, comforting him; "well, well, well,
  • dear boy!"
  • "I was thinking, sir," resumed Richard, "that there is nothing on
  • earth I should so much like to see as their house--Dame Durden's and
  • Woodcourt's house. If I could be removed there when I begin to
  • recover my strength, I feel as if I should get well there sooner than
  • anywhere."
  • "Why, so have I been thinking too, Rick," said my guardian, "and our
  • little woman likewise; she and I have been talking of it this very
  • day. I dare say her husband won't object. What do you think?"
  • Richard smiled and lifted up his arm to touch him as he stood behind
  • the head of the couch.
  • "I say nothing of Ada," said Richard, "but I think of her, and have
  • thought of her very much. Look at her! See her here, sir, bending
  • over this pillow when she has so much need to rest upon it herself,
  • my dear love, my poor girl!"
  • He clasped her in his arms, and none of us spoke. He gradually
  • released her, and she looked upon us, and looked up to heaven, and
  • moved her lips.
  • "When I get down to Bleak House," said Richard, "I shall have much to
  • tell you, sir, and you will have much to show me. You will go, won't
  • you?"
  • "Undoubtedly, dear Rick."
  • "Thank you; like you, like you," said Richard. "But it's all like
  • you. They have been telling me how you planned it and how you
  • remembered all Esther's familiar tastes and ways. It will be like
  • coming to the old Bleak House again."
  • "And you will come there too, I hope, Rick. I am a solitary man now,
  • you know, and it will be a charity to come to me. A charity to come
  • to me, my love!" he repeated to Ada as he gently passed his hand over
  • her golden hair and put a lock of it to his lips. (I think he vowed
  • within himself to cherish her if she were left alone.)
  • "It was a troubled dream?" said Richard, clasping both my guardian's
  • hands eagerly.
  • "Nothing more, Rick; nothing more."
  • "And you, being a good man, can pass it as such, and forgive and pity
  • the dreamer, and be lenient and encouraging when he wakes?"
  • "Indeed I can. What am I but another dreamer, Rick?"
  • "I will begin the world!" said Richard with a light in his eyes.
  • My husband drew a little nearer towards Ada, and I saw him solemnly
  • lift up his hand to warn my guardian.
  • "When shall I go from this place to that pleasant country where the
  • old times are, where I shall have strength to tell what Ada has been
  • to me, where I shall be able to recall my many faults and
  • blindnesses, where I shall prepare myself to be a guide to my unborn
  • child?" said Richard. "When shall I go?"
  • "Dear Rick, when you are strong enough," returned my guardian.
  • "Ada, my darling!"
  • He sought to raise himself a little. Allan raised him so that she
  • could hold him on her bosom, which was what he wanted.
  • "I have done you many wrongs, my own. I have fallen like a poor stray
  • shadow on your way, I have married you to poverty and trouble, I have
  • scattered your means to the winds. You will forgive me all this, my
  • Ada, before I begin the world?"
  • A smile irradiated his face as she bent to kiss him. He slowly laid
  • his face down upon her bosom, drew his arms closer round her neck,
  • and with one parting sob began the world. Not this world, oh, not
  • this! The world that sets this right.
  • When all was still, at a late hour, poor crazed Miss Flite came
  • weeping to me and told me she had given her birds their liberty.
  • CHAPTER LXVI
  • Down in Lincolnshire
  • There is a hush upon Chesney Wold in these altered days, as there is
  • upon a portion of the family history. The story goes that Sir
  • Leicester paid some who could have spoken out to hold their peace;
  • but it is a lame story, feebly whispering and creeping about, and any
  • brighter spark of life it shows soon dies away. It is known for
  • certain that the handsome Lady Dedlock lies in the mausoleum in the
  • park, where the trees arch darkly overhead, and the owl is heard at
  • night making the woods ring; but whence she was brought home to be
  • laid among the echoes of that solitary place, or how she died, is all
  • mystery. Some of her old friends, principally to be found among the
  • peachy-cheeked charmers with the skeleton throats, did once
  • occasionally say, as they toyed in a ghastly manner with large
  • fans--like charmers reduced to flirting with grim death, after losing
  • all their other beaux--did once occasionally say, when the world
  • assembled together, that they wondered the ashes of the Dedlocks,
  • entombed in the mausoleum, never rose against the profanation of her
  • company. But the dead-and-gone Dedlocks take it very calmly and have
  • never been known to object.
  • Up from among the fern in the hollow, and winding by the bridle-road
  • among the trees, comes sometimes to this lonely spot the sound of
  • horses' hoofs. Then may be seen Sir Leicester--invalided, bent, and
  • almost blind, but of worthy presence yet--riding with a stalwart man
  • beside him, constant to his bridle-rein. When they come to a certain
  • spot before the mausoleum-door, Sir Leicester's accustomed horse
  • stops of his own accord, and Sir Leicester, pulling off his hat, is
  • still for a few moments before they ride away.
  • War rages yet with the audacious Boythorn, though at uncertain
  • intervals, and now hotly, and now coolly, flickering like an unsteady
  • fire. The truth is said to be that when Sir Leicester came down to
  • Lincolnshire for good, Mr. Boythorn showed a manifest desire to
  • abandon his right of way and do whatever Sir Leicester would, which
  • Sir Leicester, conceiving to be a condescension to his illness or
  • misfortune, took in such high dudgeon, and was so magnificently
  • aggrieved by, that Mr. Boythorn found himself under the necessity of
  • committing a flagrant trespass to restore his neighbour to himself.
  • Similarly, Mr. Boythorn continues to post tremendous placards on the
  • disputed thoroughfare and (with his bird upon his head) to hold forth
  • vehemently against Sir Leicester in the sanctuary of his own home;
  • similarly, also, he defies him as of old in the little church by
  • testifying a bland unconsciousness of his existence. But it is
  • whispered that when he is most ferocious towards his old foe, he is
  • really most considerate, and that Sir Leicester, in the dignity of
  • being implacable, little supposes how much he is humoured. As little
  • does he think how near together he and his antagonist have suffered
  • in the fortunes of two sisters, and his antagonist, who knows it now,
  • is not the man to tell him. So the quarrel goes on to the
  • satisfaction of both.
  • In one of the lodges of the park--that lodge within sight of the
  • house where, once upon a time, when the waters were out down in
  • Lincolnshire, my Lady used to see the keeper's child--the stalwart
  • man, the trooper formerly, is housed. Some relics of his old calling
  • hang upon the walls, and these it is the chosen recreation of a
  • little lame man about the stable-yard to keep gleaming bright. A busy
  • little man he always is, in the polishing at harness-house doors, of
  • stirrup-irons, bits, curb-chains, harness bosses, anything in the way
  • of a stable-yard that will take a polish, leading a life of friction.
  • A shaggy little damaged man, withal, not unlike an old dog of some
  • mongrel breed, who has been considerably knocked about. He answers to
  • the name of Phil.
  • A goodly sight it is to see the grand old housekeeper (harder of
  • hearing now) going to church on the arm of her son and to
  • observe--which few do, for the house is scant of company in these
  • times--the relations of both towards Sir Leicester, and his towards
  • them. They have visitors in the high summer weather, when a grey
  • cloak and umbrella, unknown to Chesney Wold at other periods, are
  • seen among the leaves; when two young ladies are occasionally found
  • gambolling in sequestered saw-pits and such nooks of the park; and
  • when the smoke of two pipes wreathes away into the fragrant evening
  • air from the trooper's door. Then is a fife heard trolling within the
  • lodge on the inspiring topic of the "British Grenadiers"; and as the
  • evening closes in, a gruff inflexible voice is heard to say, while
  • two men pace together up and down, "But I never own to it before the
  • old girl. Discipline must be maintained."
  • The greater part of the house is shut up, and it is a show-house no
  • longer; yet Sir Leicester holds his shrunken state in the long
  • drawing-room for all that, and reposes in his old place before my
  • Lady's picture. Closed in by night with broad screens, and illumined
  • only in that part, the light of the drawing-room seems gradually
  • contracting and dwindling until it shall be no more. A little more,
  • in truth, and it will be all extinguished for Sir Leicester; and the
  • damp door in the mausoleum which shuts so tight, and looks so
  • obdurate, will have opened and received him.
  • Volumnia, growing with the flight of time pinker as to the red in her
  • face, and yellower as to the white, reads to Sir Leicester in the
  • long evenings and is driven to various artifices to conceal her
  • yawns, of which the chief and most efficacious is the insertion of
  • the pearl necklace between her rosy lips. Long-winded treatises on
  • the Buffy and Boodle question, showing how Buffy is immaculate and
  • Boodle villainous, and how the country is lost by being all Boodle
  • and no Buffy, or saved by being all Buffy and no Boodle (it must be
  • one of the two, and cannot be anything else), are the staple of her
  • reading. Sir Leicester is not particular what it is and does not
  • appear to follow it very closely, further than that he always comes
  • broad awake the moment Volumnia ventures to leave off, and sonorously
  • repeating her last words, begs with some displeasure to know if she
  • finds herself fatigued. However, Volumnia, in the course of her
  • bird-like hopping about and pecking at papers, has alighted on a
  • memorandum concerning herself in the event of "anything happening" to
  • her kinsman, which is handsome compensation for an extensive course
  • of reading and holds even the dragon Boredom at bay.
  • The cousins generally are rather shy of Chesney Wold in its dullness,
  • but take to it a little in the shooting season, when guns are heard
  • in the plantations, and a few scattered beaters and keepers wait at
  • the old places of appointment for low-spirited twos and threes of
  • cousins. The debilitated cousin, more debilitated by the dreariness
  • of the place, gets into a fearful state of depression, groaning under
  • penitential sofa-pillows in his gunless hours and protesting that
  • such fernal old jail's--nough t'sew fler up--frever.
  • The only great occasions for Volumnia in this changed aspect of the
  • place in Lincolnshire are those occasions, rare and widely separated,
  • when something is to be done for the county or the country in the way
  • of gracing a public ball. Then, indeed, does the tuckered sylph come
  • out in fairy form and proceed with joy under cousinly escort to the
  • exhausted old assembly-room, fourteen heavy miles off, which, during
  • three hundred and sixty-four days and nights of every ordinary year,
  • is a kind of antipodean lumber-room full of old chairs and tables
  • upside down. Then, indeed, does she captivate all hearts by her
  • condescension, by her girlish vivacity, and by her skipping about as
  • in the days when the hideous old general with the mouth too full of
  • teeth had not cut one of them at two guineas each. Then does she
  • twirl and twine, a pastoral nymph of good family, through the mazes
  • of the dance. Then do the swains appear with tea, with lemonade, with
  • sandwiches, with homage. Then is she kind and cruel, stately and
  • unassuming, various, beautifully wilful. Then is there a singular
  • kind of parallel between her and the little glass chandeliers of
  • another age embellishing that assembly-room, which, with their meagre
  • stems, their spare little drops, their disappointing knobs where no
  • drops are, their bare little stalks from which knobs and drops have
  • both departed, and their little feeble prismatic twinkling, all seem
  • Volumnias.
  • For the rest, Lincolnshire life to Volumnia is a vast blank of
  • overgrown house looking out upon trees, sighing, wringing their
  • hands, bowing their heads, and casting their tears upon the
  • window-panes in monotonous depressions. A labyrinth of grandeur, less
  • the property of an old family of human beings and their ghostly
  • likenesses than of an old family of echoings and thunderings which
  • start out of their hundred graves at every sound and go resounding
  • through the building. A waste of unused passages and staircases in
  • which to drop a comb upon a bedroom floor at night is to send a
  • stealthy footfall on an errand through the house. A place where few
  • people care to go about alone, where a maid screams if an ash drops
  • from the fire, takes to crying at all times and seasons, becomes the
  • victim of a low disorder of the spirits, and gives warning and
  • departs.
  • Thus Chesney Wold. With so much of itself abandoned to darkness and
  • vacancy; with so little change under the summer shining or the wintry
  • lowering; so sombre and motionless always--no flag flying now by day,
  • no rows of lights sparkling by night; with no family to come and go,
  • no visitors to be the souls of pale cold shapes of rooms, no stir of
  • life about it--passion and pride, even to the stranger's eye, have
  • died away from the place in Lincolnshire and yielded it to dull
  • repose.
  • CHAPTER LXVII
  • The Close of Esther's Narrative
  • Full seven happy years I have been the mistress of Bleak House. The
  • few words that I have to add to what I have written are soon penned;
  • then I and the unknown friend to whom I write will part for ever. Not
  • without much dear remembrance on my side. Not without some, I hope,
  • on his or hers.
  • They gave my darling into my arms, and through many weeks I never
  • left her. The little child who was to have done so much was born
  • before the turf was planted on its father's grave. It was a boy; and
  • I, my husband, and my guardian gave him his father's name.
  • The help that my dear counted on did come to her, though it came, in
  • the eternal wisdom, for another purpose. Though to bless and restore
  • his mother, not his father, was the errand of this baby, its power
  • was mighty to do it. When I saw the strength of the weak little hand
  • and how its touch could heal my darling's heart and raised hope
  • within her, I felt a new sense of the goodness and the tenderness of
  • God.
  • They throve, and by degrees I saw my dear girl pass into my country
  • garden and walk there with her infant in her arms. I was married
  • then. I was the happiest of the happy.
  • It was at this time that my guardian joined us and asked Ada when she
  • would come home.
  • "Both houses are your home, my dear," said he, "but the older Bleak
  • House claims priority. When you and my boy are strong enough to do
  • it, come and take possession of your home."
  • Ada called him "her dearest cousin, John." But he said, no, it must
  • be guardian now. He was her guardian henceforth, and the boy's; and
  • he had an old association with the name. So she called him guardian,
  • and has called him guardian ever since. The children know him by no
  • other name. I say the children; I have two little daughters.
  • It is difficult to believe that Charley (round-eyed still, and not at
  • all grammatical) is married to a miller in our neighbourhood; yet so
  • it is; and even now, looking up from my desk as I write early in the
  • morning at my summer window, I see the very mill beginning to go
  • round. I hope the miller will not spoil Charley; but he is very fond
  • of her, and Charley is rather vain of such a match, for he is well to
  • do and was in great request. So far as my small maid is concerned, I
  • might suppose time to have stood for seven years as still as the mill
  • did half an hour ago, since little Emma, Charley's sister, is exactly
  • what Charley used to be. As to Tom, Charley's brother, I am really
  • afraid to say what he did at school in ciphering, but I think it was
  • decimals. He is apprenticed to the miller, whatever it was, and is a
  • good bashful fellow, always falling in love with somebody and being
  • ashamed of it.
  • Caddy Jellyby passed her very last holidays with us and was a dearer
  • creature than ever, perpetually dancing in and out of the house with
  • the children as if she had never given a dancing-lesson in her life.
  • Caddy keeps her own little carriage now instead of hiring one, and
  • lives full two miles further westward than Newman Street. She works
  • very hard, her husband (an excellent one) being lame and able to do
  • very little. Still, she is more than contented and does all she has
  • to do with all her heart. Mr. Jellyby spends his evenings at her new
  • house with his head against the wall as he used to do in her old one.
  • I have heard that Mrs. Jellyby was understood to suffer great
  • mortification from her daughter's ignoble marriage and pursuits, but
  • I hope she got over it in time. She has been disappointed in
  • Borrioboola-Gha, which turned out a failure in consequence of the
  • king of Borrioboola wanting to sell everybody--who survived the
  • climate--for rum, but she has taken up with the rights of women to
  • sit in Parliament, and Caddy tells me it is a mission involving more
  • correspondence than the old one. I had almost forgotten Caddy's poor
  • little girl. She is not such a mite now, but she is deaf and dumb. I
  • believe there never was a better mother than Caddy, who learns, in
  • her scanty intervals of leisure, innumerable deaf and dumb arts to
  • soften the affliction of her child.
  • As if I were never to have done with Caddy, I am reminded here of
  • Peepy and old Mr. Turveydrop. Peepy is in the Custom House, and doing
  • extremely well. Old Mr. Turveydrop, very apoplectic, still exhibits
  • his deportment about town, still enjoys himself in the old manner, is
  • still believed in in the old way. He is constant in his patronage of
  • Peepy and is understood to have bequeathed him a favourite French
  • clock in his dressing-room--which is not his property.
  • With the first money we saved at home, we added to our pretty house
  • by throwing out a little growlery expressly for my guardian, which we
  • inaugurated with great splendour the next time he came down to see
  • us. I try to write all this lightly, because my heart is full in
  • drawing to an end, but when I write of him, my tears will have their
  • way.
  • I never look at him but I hear our poor dear Richard calling him a
  • good man. To Ada and her pretty boy, he is the fondest father; to me
  • he is what he has ever been, and what name can I give to that? He is
  • my husband's best and dearest friend, he is our children's darling,
  • he is the object of our deepest love and veneration. Yet while I feel
  • towards him as if he were a superior being, I am so familiar with him
  • and so easy with him that I almost wonder at myself. I have never
  • lost my old names, nor has he lost his; nor do I ever, when he is
  • with us, sit in any other place than in my old chair at his side,
  • Dame Trot, Dame Durden, Little Woman--all just the same as ever; and
  • I answer, "Yes, dear guardian!" just the same.
  • I have never known the wind to be in the east for a single moment
  • since the day when he took me to the porch to read the name. I
  • remarked to him once that the wind seemed never in the east now, and
  • he said, no, truly; it had finally departed from that quarter on that
  • very day.
  • I think my darling girl is more beautiful than ever. The sorrow that
  • has been in her face--for it is not there now--seems to have purified
  • even its innocent expression and to have given it a diviner quality.
  • Sometimes when I raise my eyes and see her in the black dress that
  • she still wears, teaching my Richard, I feel--it is difficult to
  • express--as if it were so good to know that she remembers her dear
  • Esther in her prayers.
  • I call him my Richard! But he says that he has two mamas, and I am
  • one.
  • We are not rich in the bank, but we have always prospered, and we
  • have quite enough. I never walk out with my husband but I hear the
  • people bless him. I never go into a house of any degree but I hear
  • his praises or see them in grateful eyes. I never lie down at night
  • but I know that in the course of that day he has alleviated pain and
  • soothed some fellow-creature in the time of need. I know that from
  • the beds of those who were past recovery, thanks have often, often
  • gone up, in the last hour, for his patient ministration. Is not this
  • to be rich?
  • The people even praise me as the doctor's wife. The people even like
  • me as I go about, and make so much of me that I am quite abashed. I
  • owe it all to him, my love, my pride! They like me for his sake, as I
  • do everything I do in life for his sake.
  • A night or two ago, after bustling about preparing for my darling and
  • my guardian and little Richard, who are coming to-morrow, I was
  • sitting out in the porch of all places, that dearly memorable porch,
  • when Allan came home. So he said, "My precious little woman, what are
  • you doing here?" And I said, "The moon is shining so brightly, Allan,
  • and the night is so delicious, that I have been sitting here
  • thinking."
  • "What have you been thinking about, my dear?" said Allan then.
  • "How curious you are!" said I. "I am almost ashamed to tell you, but
  • I will. I have been thinking about my old looks--such as they were."
  • "And what have you been thinking about THEM, my busy bee?" said
  • Allan.
  • "I have been thinking that I thought it was impossible that you COULD
  • have loved me any better, even if I had retained them."
  • "'Such as they were'?" said Allan, laughing.
  • "Such as they were, of course."
  • "My dear Dame Durden," said Allan, drawing my arm through his, "do
  • you ever look in the glass?"
  • "You know I do; you see me do it."
  • "And don't you know that you are prettier than you ever were?"
  • "I did not know that; I am not certain that I know it now. But I know
  • that my dearest little pets are very pretty, and that my darling is
  • very beautiful, and that my husband is very handsome, and that my
  • guardian has the brightest and most benevolent face that ever was
  • seen, and that they can very well do without much beauty in me--even
  • supposing--."
  • ***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK BLEAK HOUSE***
  • ******* This file should be named 1023.txt or 1023.zip *******
  • This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/1/0/2/1023
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  • will be renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  • one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  • (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  • permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
  • set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  • copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  • protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
  • Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  • charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
  • do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  • rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  • such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  • research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  • practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
  • subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  • redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  • PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  • all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  • and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
  • collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  • located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  • copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  • works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  • are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  • freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  • this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  • the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  • keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  • creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  • with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
  • work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  • through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  • 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  • "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
  • posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
  • you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  • copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  • request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
  • form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  • that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  • owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  • has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  • must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  • prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  • returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  • sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
  • the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or
  • destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  • and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  • of receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  • forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  • both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  • Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
  • Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  • "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  • corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  • property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  • computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  • your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
  • of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  • fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  • LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  • PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  • TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  • LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  • INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  • DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  • your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  • the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  • remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  • To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  • and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  • and the Foundation web page at http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  • state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  • Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  • number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  • The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  • 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  • business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
  • page at http://www.gutenberg.org/about/contact
  • For additional contact information:
  • Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  • spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  • increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  • freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  • array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  • ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  • status with the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
  • SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  • particular state visit http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  • any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  • outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  • ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
  • To donate, please visit:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  • unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
  • keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  • including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  • subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.